Skip to main content

Full text of "Works of the Right Reverend Father in God, Joseph Hall, D.D., successively Bishop of Exeter and Norwich .."

See other formats


^gS*Y  OF  PRI^ 


BX  5037  ,H3  1808  v.l 
Hall,  Joseph,  1574-1656 
Works  of  the  Right  Reverend 
Father 


Digitized  by  the  Internet  Archive 
in  2014 


https://archive.org/details/worksofrightreve01hall_0 


THE 

WORKS  ' 

OF  1  HE 

RIGHT  REVEREND  FATHER  IN  GOD, 

JOSEPH  "H  ALL,  D.  D 

SUCCESSIV  ELY  BISHOP  OF  EXETER  AMD  NORWICH: 

NOW  FIRST  COLLECTED.  ; 

WITH  SOME 

ACCOUNT  OF  HIS  LIFE  AND  SUFFERINGS, 

WRITTEN  BY  HIMSELF. 


ARRANGED  AND  REVISED, 

WITH  A  GLOSSARY,  INDEX,  AND  OCCASIONAL  NOTES, 

BY  JOSIAH  PRATT,  B.D.  F.J.  S. 

lec'it&ek  of  tilt  united  parishes  of  st.  mary  woolnotu  asd  st.  marv  woolchurch  iuw, 
and  lady, camden's  Wednesday  evening  lecturer  at  the  church  of 
st.  lawrence  jewry,  london. 


IN  TEN  VOLUMES. 


VOL.  I.— CONTEMPLATIONS. 


LONDON. 

PIUNIED  BY  C.  WHITTINGHAM, 
Dean  Street ; 

FOR  WILLIAMS  AND  SMITH,  STATIONERS'  COURT; 
J.  BURDITT;  EYFIELD  AND  HAWKESWORTH;  T.  CONDER;  J.  IIATCHAUD;  MATHEWS 
AND    LEIGH;    J.  NUNN;    F.  C.  AND  J.  RIVING  TON ;    L.  B.  SEELEV; 
.1.  WALKER;  J.  WHITE;  AND  VERNOR,  HOOD,  AND  SHARPK. 

1803. 


TO  THE 


KIGHT  REVEREND  FATHER  IN  GOD, 

GEORGE  PRE  TTYMAN  TOMLINE,  D.  D. 

LORD  BISHOP  OF  LINCOLN,  AND  DEAN  OF  ST.  PAUL'S; 

THIS  FIRST 

COMPLETE  COLLECTION 

OF  THE 

WORKS  OF  BISHOP  HALL 

IS  RESPECTFULLY  DEDICATED 

AS  A  TESTIMONY  OF  GRATITUDE 
FOR  HIS  EARLY  AND  WARM  PATRONAGE  OF  THE  UNDERTAKING, 

BY  HIS  OBLIGED 

AND  OBEDIENT  SERVANT, 

THE  EDITOR. 


ADVERTISEMENT. 


This  Edition  of  the  Works  of  Bishop  Hall,  will  be  fol- 
lowed by  similar  Editions  of  the  Works  of  some  other 
great  Prelates,  whose  writings  have  not  hitherto  been  pub- 
lished in  a  collective  form.  Those  of  BISHOP  HOPKINS 
are  now  in  the  press,  and  will  be  comprised  in  Three 
large  Volumes  octavo. 

Doughty  Street, 
Feb.  1,  1808. 


The  following  Pieces  have  been  published  separately. 

Contemplations  on  the  Old  and  New  Testaments,  2  vols, 
demy,  price  18s.  boards  :  royal,  1/.  6s. 

Practical  Works,  2  vols,  demy,  price  18s.  boards:  royal,  1 1.  6s. 

Devotional  Works,  l  vol.  demy,  price  9s.  boards :  royal,  13s. 

The  Divine  Right  of  Episcopacy,  handsomely  printed,  price 
3s.  6d.  sewed. 


PREFACE. 


The  Works  of  Bishop  Hall  have  never,  before  the  present 
undertaking,  been  completely  collected.    A  great  part,  of 
them  were  published  during  his  life,  in  various  ,  sizes  and 
forms,  from  quarto  downwards  :  and  nearly  all  those  pieces 
were  likewise  collected,  in  two  folio  volumes ;  which  are 
usually  called  the  First  and  Second  Volumes  of  his  works. 
A  third  folio  was  also  published  by  himself,  consisting 
wholly  of  his  Paraphrase  on  Hard  Texts.    After  those 
works  appeared,  he  continued  to  publish  other  pieces  in 
various  sizes  :  the  chief  of  which  were  printed,  after  his 
death,  in  what  is  called  the  Third  Folio  :  and  this  was  fol- 
lowed by  a  collection  of  some  posthumous  pieces  in  a  quarto 
volume,  denominated  "  The  Shaking  of  the  Olive-Tree." 
These  with  the  "  Virgidemiarum,"  the  u  Mundus  Alter 
et  Idem,"  the  "  Meditatiunculae  Subitaneas,"  the  "  He- 
nochismus,"  and  a  few  other  treatises,  constitute  the  whole 
of  his  published  works,  which  the  Editor  has  been  able  to 
discover.    Some  of  his  writings,  which  exist  only  in  MS. 
or  are  to  be  gleaned  from  the  w  orks  of  his  contemporaries, 
will  appear  in  the  Appendix  to  his  Life,  hereafter  men- 
tioned.   Among  these  will  be  included  his  Latin  Sermon 
before  the  Synod  of  Dordt,  never  published  separately, 
but  printed  among  the  Acts  of  that  Synod. 

Besides  this  advantage  of  completeness,  the  present 
edition  will  be  found  superior  to  any  preceding,  in  Ar- 
rangement, Revision,  and  Illustration. 

In  respect  to  arrangement,  no  order  whatever  has  been 


Vlll 


PREFACE. 


observed  in  preceding  editions.  In  the  present,  the  various 
works  have  been  classed  together  according  to  their  sub- 
jects. The  Contemplations  form  the  First  and  Second 
volumes:  the  Paraphrase  on  Hard  Texts,  occupies  the 
Third  and  Fourth  :  and  these,  as  the  Expository  part  of  the 
Bishop's  writings,  are  placed  first  in  order.  The  Se?'?nons 
follow,  in  the  Fifth  volume ;  arranged  according  to  chro- 
nological series,  so  far  as  that  could  be  ascertained  :  which 
order  has  been  also  followed  in  the  Devotional  Works, 
forming  the  Sixth  volume  ;  and  the  Practical  Works,  con- 
tained in  the  Seventh  and  Eighth  volumes.  The  Polemical 
U'orks  are  all  brought  together  into  the  Ninth  volume,  and 
are  arranged  under  three  distinct  heads  :  viz.  1.  Those  on  the 
Questions  between  the  Church  of  England  and  the  Church 
of  Rome  :  2.  Those  on  the  Questions  between  the  Church 
of  England  and  the  Dissenters:  and  3.  Those  on  the  Five 
Points  :  and,  under  each  of  these  divisions,  the  chronolo- 
gical order  is  observed,  as  nearly  as  it  could  be  determined. 
The  Miscellaneous  JVorks  close  the  whole,  in  the  Tenth  vo- 
lume :  and  in  these,  on  account  of  the  dissimilarity  of  the 
subjects,  it  was  thought  requisite  to  observe  no  other  order 
than  that  of  Prose  and  Poetry. 

In  the  ef,vis;on  of  these  admirable  writings,  the  Editor 
has  endeavoured  to  present  them  with  every  advantage  of 
perspicuitv,  which  modern  taste  and  good  sense  have  ren- 
dered so  common  in  the  exhibition  of  a  writer's  sentiments. 
In  the  preceding  editions,  the  paragraphs  are  sometimes  of 
enormous  length,  and  comprehend  a  variety  of  distinct 
subjects  ;  and,  at  other  times,  a  single  subject  is  divided  into 
two  or  more  paragraphs  :  great  attention  has  been  em- 
ployed to  remedy  this  defect  throughout  the  whole  work, 
bv  limiting  every  paragraph  to  a  distinct  subject.  The 
punctuation  also  has  been  corrected  throughout ;  and  has 
been  formed  on  rules,  which  appear  to  the  Editor  conso- 
nant to  nature  and  to  the  turn  of  the  Author's  mind.  The 
orthography  has  been  conformed  to  modern  practice,  ex- 
cept in  the  Author's  poetical  pieces  ;  where  the  old  spell- 
ing is  retained,  both  as  a  specimen  of  its  nature,  and  be- 


PREFACE. 


ix 


cause  it  was  often  rendered  necessary  to  complete  either 
the  measure  or  the  rhime.  In  the  Author's  style  no  alte- 
ration whatever  has  been  made ;  even  in  cases,  where  the 
change  of  public  taste  may  now  affix  ideas  of  indelicacy 
or  irreverence  to  expressions,  which  conveyed  no  such  feel- 
ings in  the  Author's  age  :  and  this,  because  the  Editor 
wished  the  reader  to  be  fully  satisfied  that  he  was  in  pos- 
session of  his  author  unaltered ;  and  he  felt  it  to  be  im- 
practicable, if  he  altered  at  all,  so  to  do  it  as  not  to  incur 
the  censure  of  doing  it  either  too  little  or  too  much,  ac- 
cording to  the  judgment  and  taste  of  the  reader.  The 
references  to  scripture  throughout  the  whole  work  have 
been  verified  :  and  the  Scriptures  added  at  the  end  of  each 
Contemplation  on  the  Old  and  New  Testaments. 

In  further  illustration  of  his  Author,  the  Editor  has 
given  ample  tables  of  contents ;  occasional  nates,  on  some 
chronological  and  critical  points ;  a  very  full  glossary  of 
the  obsolete  or  unusual  words  which  occur  in  these  vo- 
lumes ;  and  a  copious,  and  he  believes,  accurate  index  to 
the  whole  series. 

Translations  of  the  Author's  chief  latin  pieces  are  given 
in  this  edition.  Both  the  English  and  the  Latin  of  the 
"  Occasional  Meditations"  being  his  own,  they  are  printed 
in  parallel'  columns,  by  way  of  distinction  from  those 
treatises  which  were  translated  by  others,  the  English  of 
which  is  printed  under  the  Latin.  Of  these,  the  Sermon 
entitled  "  Columba  Noae,"  was  translated  by  his  son  Ro- 
bert ;  as  was  his  "  Inurbanitati  Pontificiae  Responsio  :" 
but  his  admirable  tract  entitled  "  Henochismus"  w  as  given 
in  a  very  loose  and  verbose  English  dress,  by  the  Rev. 
Henry  Brown,  Vicar  of  Nether-Swell.  This  last  treatise 
the  Editor  has  revised  throughout,  and  brought  nearer  to 
the  original.  The  Editor  once  intended  to  give  a  transla- 
tion of  the  "  Mundus  Alter  et  Idem ;"  taking  as  the 
ground-work  a  singular  and  humorous  version  of  this  piece 
by  John  Ilealey,  a  copy  of  which  is  now  very  rarely  to  be 
met  with  :  but  he  found  the  translator  so  often  degene- 
rating into  ribaldry,  and  the  original  to  require  so  much 


X 


PREFACE. 


delicacy  aud  elucidation,  that  he  abandoned  the  design  ; 
not  without  hopes  that  some  person  of  leisure  and  ability 
may  be  induced  to  give  this  fine  piece  of  Irony  a  suitable 
English  dress.  Of  the  other  Latin  pieces,  viz.  the  trea- 
tise entitled  "  Pax  Terris,"  and  a  few  Letters  among  the 
Polemical  Works,  the  Editor,  not  finding  any  translation 
already  made,  did  not  think  them  of  such  importance  as 
to  require  one. 

The  Editor  originally  proposed  to  accompany  this  edi- 
tion with  a  new  life  of  the  author  :  but,  finding  the  ma- 
terials for  such  a  work  accumulate  very  much  in  his  hands, 
he  has  judged  it  best  to  limit  this  publication  to  the 
Bishop's  own  writings  ;  and  has,  therefore,  prefixed  only 
such  memoirs  as  the  Author  has  left  of  himself ;  reserving 
whatever  else  he  has  been  able  to  collect  together  for  a  se- 
parate volume,  to  be  published  hereafter,  and  to  be  inde- 
pendent of  the  present  undertaking.  He  would  only  here 
add  to  what  the  Author  has  said  of  himself  in  the  "  Spe- 
cialities" of  his  Life,  his  "  Letter  from  the  Tower,"  and 
his  "  Hard  Measure,"  that  he  was  gathered  to  his  fathers 
in  a  good  old  age  ;  dying  at  Higham,  near  Norwich,  Sep. 
8.  16.56,  aged  eighty-two  years:  and  was  buried  in  the 
church-yard  at  that  place. 


GENERAL  CONTENTS 


OF  THE 


TEN  VOLUMES. 


VOL.  I. 

Some  Specialities  in  the  Life  of  Bishop  Hall. 
Letter  from  the  Tower. 
Bishop  Hall's  Hard  Measure. 

Contemplations  on  the  Old  Testament  :  Books  i.  to  xviii. 


VOL.  II. 

Contemplations  on  the  Old  Testament  :  Books  xix,  xx,  and  xxi. 
Contemplations  on  the  New  Testament. 

VOL.  III. 

Paraphrase  on  Hard  Texts  :  Genesis  to  Daniel. 

VOL.  IV. 

Paraphrase  on  Hard  Texts  :  Hosea  to  Revelation. 


Sermons. 


VOL.  V. 


xii 


GENERAL  CONTENTS, 


VOL.  VI. 

Devotional  Works. 

Meditations  and  Vows. 
Holy  Observations. 
Occasional  Meditations. 
Meditation  on  the  Love  of  Christ. 
Selec  Thoughts. 
Supernumeraries. 

The  Breathings  of  the  Devout  Soul. 
Soliloquies. 

The  Soul's  Farewell  to  Earth,  and  Approaches  to  Heaven. 
The  Great  Mystery  of  Godliness. 
The  Invisible  World. 


VOL.  VII. 

Practical  Works. 

Heaven  upon  Earth. 

The  Art  of  Divine  Meditation. 

Characters  of  Virtues  and  Vices. 

Epistles.    VI  Decades. 

A  Consolatory  Letter  to  one  under  Censure. 

Letter  of  Answer  to  an  Unknown  Complainant. 

Resolutions  for  Religion. 

Henoch  ismus. 

The  Remedy  of  Profaneness. 

Christian  Moderation. 

Holy  Decency  in  the  Worship  of  God. 

The  Devout  Soul. 

The  Free  Prisoner. 

VOL.  VIII. 

Practical  Works,  concluded. 

Of  Contentation. 
The  Peace  Maker. 
The  Balm  of  Gilead. 
Christ  Mystical. 
The  Christian. 

Satan's  Fiery  Darts  Quenched. 

Pax  Terris. 

Cases  of  Conscience. 

The  Holy  Order  of  Mourners  in  Sion. 

Songs  in  the  Night. 


GENERAL  CONTENTS. 


xiii 


VOL.  IX. 

Polemical  Works. 

Part  I.  On  the  Questions  between  the  Church  of  England,  and  the  Church 

of  Rome. 

A  Serious  Dissuasive  from  Popery. 
No  Peace  with  Rome. 
The  Honour  of  the  Married  Clergy. 
Letter  to  the  Archbishop  of  Spalato. 
The  Old  Religion. 
The  Reconciler. 
Catholic  Propositions. 
Inurbanitati  Pontificiae  Responsio. 
Letter  to  a  Knight. 

On  Christ's  Presence  in  the  Sacrament. 

Part  II.  On  the  Questions  between  the  Church  of  England  and  the  Dissenters, 

An  Apology  against  Brownists. 

Letter  to  Mr.  William  Struthers. 

Letter  on  the  Observation  of  Christ's  Nativity. 

Certain  Irrefragable  Propositions. 

Episcopacy  by  Divine  Right. 

An  Humble  Remonstrance  for  Liturgy  and  Episcopacy. 

Defence  of  the  Humble  Remonstrance. 

Answer  to  Smectvmnuus's  Vindication. 

A  Modest  Offer." 

Imposition  of  Hands. 

For  Episcopacy  and  Liturgy. 

Part  III.  On  the  Five  Points. 

Via  Media  :  The  Way  of  Peace. 

A  Letter  concerning  Falling  Away  from  Grace. 

D.  Balthasari  Willio  Epistola. 

D.  Ludovico  Crocio  Epistola. 

D.  Hermanno  Hildebrando  Epistola. 

VOL.  X. 

Miscellaneous  Works. 

A  Brief  Sum  of  the  Principles  of  Religion. 
Solomon's  Divine  Arts. 

Answer  to  Arguments  against  Bishops  sitting  in  Parliament. 


GENERAL  CONTENTS. 


A  Speech  in  Parliament. 

A  Speech  in  Parliament,  in  Defence  of  the  Canons  made  in  Con 
vocation. 

A  Speech  in  Parliament,  concerning  the  Power  of  Bishops  in  Se 

cular  Things. 
An  Apologetical  Letter  to  a  Person  of  Quality. 
The  Revelation  Unrevealed. 
Mundus  Alter  et  Idem. 
Quo  Vadis  ?  A  Censure  of  Travel. 
Metaphrase  of  some  Psalms. 
Anthems  for  the  Cathedral  of  Exeter. 
Virgidemiarum. — Satires,  in  VI.  Books. 
Glossary. 
Index. 

List  of  Subscribers. 
Errata. 


CONTENTS  OF  VOL.  I. 


I.  Observations  of  some  Specialities  of  Divine  Provi- 
dence in  the  Life  of  Joseph  Hall,  Bishop  of  Nor- 
wich.  Written  with  his  own  Hand    xvii. 

II.  A  Letter  sent  from  the  Tower  to  a  Private  Friend  xlvii. 

III.  Bishop  Hall's  Hard  Measure   liii. 

IV.  Contemplations  on  the  Old  Testament. 

BOOKS  I.  to  XVIII.  Dedication  to  Henry  Prince  of  Wales. 

BOOK  I.   Dedicated  to  Thomas,  Earl  of  Exeter. 

The  Creation    3    Cain  and  Abel   15 

Man    8    The  Deluge   17 

Paradise   12 

BOOK  II.   Dedicated  to  the  Lord  Stanhope. 

Noah   21    Isaac  Sacrificed    29 

Babel   24    Lot  and  Sodom   32 

Abraham    26 

BOOK  III.    Dedicated  to  the  Lord  Denny. 

Jacob  and  Esau   36    Judah  and  Tamar   46 

Jacob  and  Laban   41    Joseph   49 

Dinah   44 

BOOK  IV.    Dedicated  to  James,  Lord  Hay. 

The  Affliction  of  Israel   58    Moses's  Calling   67 

The  Birth  and  Breeding  of  Moses...    62    The  Plagues  of  Egypt   71 

Dedication  to  Prince  Charles   80 

BOOK  V.    Dedicated  to  Henry,  Ear l  of  Huntingdon. 

The  Waters  of  Marah   81    The  Foil  of  Amalek  ;  or  the  Hand 

The  Quails  and  Manna    85        of  Moses  lift  up   94, 

The  Rock  of  Rephidin   90    The  Law   9g 

The  Golden-Calf.   102 

BOOK  VI.    Dedicated  toTHOMAS, Lord  Viscount  Fenton. 

The  Veil  of  Moses   110    The  Searchers  of  Canaan   123 

Nadab  and  Abihu   115    Corah's  Conspiracy   127 

Aaron  and  Miriam   119 

BOOK  VII.    Dedicated  to  Edward,  Lord  Denny. 

Aaron's  Censer  and  Rod   132    Phineas    147 

The  Brazen  Serpent   136    The  Death  of  Moses   150 

Balaam   139 

BOOK  VIII.    Dedicated  to  Master  Robert  Hay. 

Rahab   155    Achan   16S 

Jordan  divided   158    The  Gibeonites  „,..,   17J 

The  Seige  of  Jericho   1C2 


XVI  CONTENTS. 

BOOK  IX.    Ded  icated  to  Sir  Thomas, Egerton,  KnigHt. 

The  Rescue  of  GibeOn   176    Gideon's  Calling   190 

The  Altar  of  the  Reubenites   180     Gideon's  Preparation  and  Victory..  195 

Ehud  and  Eglon   183    The  Revenge  of  Succoth  and  Penuel.  199 

Jael  and  S^sera   187     Abimelech's  Usurpation   203 

BOOK  X.    Dedicated  to  Sir  Henry  Danvers,  Knight. 

Jephtha   208    Samson's  Victory   223 

Samson  Conceived   213     Samson's  End   228 

Samson's  Marriage   218    Micah's  Idolatry   233 

BOOK  XI.    Dedicated  to  Sir  Fulke  Greville,  Knight. 

The  Levite's  Concubine   238     Hannah  and  Peninnah   256 

The  Desolation  of  Benjamin   243     Eli  and  Hannah   259 

Naomi  and  Euih   247    Eli  and  his  Sons   262 

Boaz  and  Ruth   251 

BOOK  XII.    Dedicated  to  the  Lord  Hay. 

The  Ark  and  Dagon   270    The  Inauguration  of  Saul   288 

The  Ark's  Revenge  and  Return        274    Samuel's  Contestation   291 

The  Removal  of  the  Ark   279    Saul's  Sacrifice   294 

The  Meeting  of  Saul  and  Samuel...  282    Jonathan's  Victory  and  Saul's  Oath  297 

BOOK  XIII.    Dedicated  to  Sir  Thomas  Edmonds,  Knight. 

Saul  and  Agag   302  David  and  Goliah   312 

The  Rejection  of  SauJ,  and  Choice  Jonathan's  Love,  and  Saul's  Envy..  319 

of  David   306  Michal's  Wile   323 

David  called  to  the  Court   310  David  and  Abimelech   326 

BOOK  XIV.    Dedicated  to  Philip,  Earl  of  Montgomery. 

Saul  in  David's  Cave  331  Ziklag  Spoiled  and  Revenged   348 

Nabal  and  Abigail   334  The  Death  of  Saul   352 

David  and  Achish   339  Abner  and  Joab   356 

Saul  and  the  Witch  of  Endor   344 

BOOK  XV.    Dedicated  to  William,  Lord  Burleigh. 

Uzzah  and  the  Ark  Removed   361    Nathan  and  David   380 

Mephibosheth  and  Ziba   366    Amnon  and  Tamar   384 

Hanun  and  David's  Embassadors..  37 1  Absalom's  Return  and  Conspiracy  388 
David  with  Bathsheba  and  Uriah...  375 

BOOK  XVI.    Dedicated  to  Francis,  Lord  Russell. 

Shimei  Cursing   393    Sheba's  Rebellion   406 

Ahitophel   397    The  Gibeonites  Revenged   410 

The  Death  of  Absalom   401    The  Numbering  of  the  People   414 

BOOK  XVIL    Dedicated  to  Sir  Henry  Mildmay,  Knight. 

Adonijah  defeated   419    Solomon's  Choice,  with  his  Judg- 

David's  End,  and  Solomon's  Be-  ment  upon  the  Two  Harlots         43  L 

ginning   423    The  Temple   435 

The  Execution  of  Joab  and.  Shimei  428    Solomon,  and  the  Queen  of  Sheba..  439 

Solomon's  Defection   443 

BOOK  XVIII.    Dedicated  to  James,  Lord  Haye. 

Rehoboam  •.   449    Elijah  with  the  Sareptan   476 

Jeroboam   455    Elijah  with  the  Baalites   481 

The  Seduced  Prophet   4  60    Elijah  running  before  Ahab,— flying 

Jeroboam's  Wife   465       from  Jezebel   488 

Asa   470 


OBSERVATIONS 

OF  SOME  SPECIALITIES  OP 

DIVINE  PROVIDENCE 


LIFE  OF  JOSEPH  HALL, 

BISHOP  OF  NORWICH. 


WRITTEN  WITH  HIS  OWN  HAND. 


Not  out  of  a  vain  affectation  of  my  own  glory,  which  I 
know  how  littie  it  can  avail  me,  when  I  am  gone  hence  ; 
but  out  of  a  sincere  desire  to  give  glory  to  my  God,  whose 
wonderful  Providence  I  have  noted  in  all  my  ways,  have  I 
recorded  some  remarkable  passages  of  my  fore-past  life. 
What  I  have  done  is  worthy  of  nothing,  but  silence  and 
forgetfulness  ;  but  what  God  hath  done  for  me,  is  worthy 
of  everlasting  and  thankful  memory. 

I  was  born  July  1,  1574,  at  five  of  the  clock  in  the 
morning,  in  Bristow-Park,  within  the  Parish  of  Ashby  de 
la  Zouch,  a  Town  in  Leicestershire,  of  honest  and  well- 
allowed  parentage. 

My  Father  was  an  officer  under  that  truly  honourable 
and  religious,  Henry  Earl  of  Huntingdon,  President  of 
the  North  ;  and,  under  him,  had  the  government  of  that 
Market-Town,  wherein  the  chief  seat  of  that  Earldom  is 
placed. 

My  Mother  Winifride,  of  the  House  of  the  Barn- 
bridges,  was  a  woman  of  that  rare  sanctity,  that,  were  it 

b 


xviii  bishop  hall's  account  of  himself. 

not  for  my  interest  in  nature,  I  durst  say,  that  neither 
Aleth  the  mother  of  that  just  Honour  of  Clareval,  nor 
Monica,  nor  any  other  of  those  pious  matrons  antiently 
famous  for  devotion,  need  to  disdain  her  admittance  to 
comparison.  She  was  continually  exercised  with  the 
affliction  of  a  weak  body,  and  oft  of  a  wounded  spirit  : 
the  agonies  whereof,  as  she  would  oft  recount  with  much 
passion,  professing  that  the  greatest  bodily  sicknesses  were 
but  flea-bites  to  those  scorpions ;  so,  from  them  all,  at  last 
she  found  a  happy  and  comfortable  deliverance.  And  that, 
not  without  a  more  than  ordinary  hand  of  God:  for,  on  a 
time,  being  in  great  distress  of  conscience,  she  thought  in 
her  dream,  there  stood  by  her  a  grave  personage,  in  the 
gown  and  other  habits  of  a  physician ;  who,  enquiring  of 
her  estate,  and  receiving  a  sad  and  querulous  answer  from 
her,  took  her  by  the  hand,  and  bade  her  be  of  good  com- 
fort, for  this  should  be  the  last  fit  that  ever  she  should  feel 
of  this  kind  :  whereto  she  seemed  to  answer,  that,  upon 
that  condition,  she  could  well  be  content  for  the  time, 
with  that  or  any  other  torment :  reply  was  made  to  her, 
as  she  thought,  with  a  redoubled  assurance  of  that  happy 
issue  of  this  her  last  trial :  whereat  she  began  to  conceive 
an  unspeakable  joy  ;  which  yet,  upon  her  awaking,  left  her 
more  disconsolate,  as  then  conceiting  her  happiness  ima- 
ginary, her  misery  real :  when,  the  very  same  day,  she  was 
visited  by  the  reverend  and  (in  his  time)  famous  Divine, 
Mr.  Anthony  Gilby,  under  whose  ministry  she  lived  ;  who, 
upon  the  relation  of  this  her  pleasing  vision  and  the  con- 
trary effects  it  had  in  her,  began  to  persuade  her,  that 
dream  was  no  other  than  divine,  and  that  she  had  good 
reason  to  think  that  gracious  premonition  was  sent  her 
from  God  himself :  who,  though  ordinarily  he  keeps  the 
common  road  of  his  proceedings ;  yet,  sometimes,  in  the 
distresses  of  his  servants,  he  goes  unusual  ways  to  their 
relief:  hereupon  she  began  to  take  heart;  and,  by  good 
counsel  and  her  fervent  prayers,  found  that  happy  predic- 
tion verified  to  her  ;  and,  upon  all  occasions  in  the  remain- 
der of  her  life,  was  ready  to  magnify  the  mercy  of  her 


SOME  SPECIALITIES  IN  HIS  LIFE. 


XIX 


God  in  so  sensible  a  deliverance.  What  with  the  trial  of 
both  these  hands  of  God,  so  had  she  profited  in  the  School 
of  Christ,  that  it  was  hard  for  any  friend  to  come  from  her 
discourse  no  whit  holier.  How  often  have  I  blessed  the 
memory  of  those  divine  passages  of  experimental  divinity, 
which  I  have  heard  from  her  mouth !  What  day  did  she 
pass,  without  a  large  task  of  private  devotion  ?  whence 
she  would  still  come  forth,  with  a  countenance  of  undis- 
sembled  mortification.  Never  any  lips  have  read  to  me 
such  feeling  lectures  of  piety  :  neither  have  I  known  any 
soul,  that  more  accurately  practised  them,  than  her  own. 
Temptations,  desertions,  and  spiritual  comforts  were  her 
usual  theme.  Shortly,  for  I  can  hardly  take  off  my  pen 
from  so  exemplary  a  subject,  her  life  and  death  were  saint- 
like. 

My  Parents  had,  from  mine  infancy,  devoted  me  to  this 
Sacred  Calling,  whereto,  by  the  blessing  of  God,  I  have 
seasonably  attained.  For  this  cause,  I  was  trained  up  in 
the  public  school  of  the  place. 

After  I  had  spent  some  years,  not  altogether  indiligent- 
ly,  under  the  ferule  of  such  masters  as  the  place  afforded, 
and  had  near  attained  to  some  competent  ripeness  for  the 
University,  my  school-master,  being  a  great  admirer  of 
one  Mr.  Pelset,  who  was  then  lately  come  from  Cam- 
bridge, to  be  the  public  preacher  of  Leicester  ;  (a  man 
very  eminent  in  those  times,  for  the  fame  of  his  learning, 
but  especially  for  his  sacred  oratory,)  persuaded  my  father, 
that  if  I  might  have  my  education  under  so  excellent  and 
complete  a  Divine,  it  might  be  both  a  nearer  and  easier 
way  to  his  purposed  end,  than  by  an  academical  institu- 
tion. The  motion  sounded  well  in  my  father's  ears,  and 
carried  fair  probabilities :  neither  was  it  other  than  fore- 
compacted  betwixt  my  school-master  and  Mr.  Pelset ;  so 
as,  on  both  sides,  it  was  entertained  with  great  forwardness. 

The  gentleman  upon  essay  taken  of  my  fitness  for  the 
use  of  his  studies,  undertakes  within  one  seven  years  to 
send  me  forth,  no  less  furnished  with  Arts,  Languages,  and 
grounds  of  Theorical  Divinity,  than  the  carefullest  tutor 


XX 


BISHOP  HALL'S  ACCOUNT  OF  HIMSELF. 


in  the  strictest  College  of  either  University.  Which  that 
he  might  assuredly  perform,  to  prevent  the  danger  of  any 
mutable  thoughts  in  my  parents  or  myself,  he  desired  mu- 
tual bonds  to  be  drawn  betwixt  us.  The  great,  charge  of 
my  father,  whom  it  pleased.  God  to  bless  with  twelve  chil- 
dren, made  him  the  more  apt  to  y  ield  to  so  likely  a  project 
for  a  younger  son. 

There  and  now,  were  all  the  hopes  of  my  future  life 
upon  blasting.  The  indentures  were  preparing  :  the  time 
was  set :  my  suits  were  addressed  for  the  journey. 

What  was  the  issue  ?  O  God,  thy  Providence  made  and 
found  it.  Thou  knowest  how  sincerely  and  heartily,  in 
those  my  young  years*,  I  did  cast  myself  upon  thy  hands  : 
with  what  faithful  resolution  I  did,  in  this  particular  occa- 
sion, resign  myself  over  to  thy  disposition ;  earnestly  beg- 
ging of  thee  in  my  fervent  prayers  to  order  all  things  to 
the  best,  and  confidently  waiting  upon  thy  will  for  the 
event.  Certainly,  never  did  I,  in  all  my  life,  more  clearly 
roll  myself  upon  the  Divine  Providence,  than  I  did  in  this 
business.    And  it  succeeded  accordinglv. 

It  fell  out  at  this  time,  that  my  elder  brother,  having 
some  occasions  to  journey  unto  Cambridge,  was  kindly  en- 
tertained there  by  Mr.  Nath.  Gilby,  Fellow  of  Lmanuel 
College :  who,  for  that  he  was  born  in  the  same  town  with 
me,  and  had  conceived  some  good  opinion  of  my. aptness 
to  learning,  enquired  diligently  concerning  me ;  and,  hear- 
ing of  the  diversion  of  my  father's  purposes  from  the  Uni- 
versity, importunately  dissuaded  from  that  new  course, 
professing  to  pity  the  loss  of  so  good  hopes.  My  brother, 
partly  moved  with  his  words,  and  partly  won  by  his  own 
eyes,  to  a  great  love  and  reverence  of  an  academical  life, 
returning  home,  fell  upon  his  knees  to  my  father ;  and, 
after  the  report  of  Mr.  Gilby 's  words  and  his  own  admira- 
tion of  the  place,  earnestly  besought  him,  that  he  would 
be  pleased  to  alter  that  so  prejudicial  a  resolution,  that  he 
would  not  sutler  my  hopes  to  be  drowned  in  a  shallow 


*  Anno  jEtatis  15. 


SOME  SPECIALITIES  IN  HIS  LIFE.  XXI 

country-channel ;  but  that  he  would  revive  his  first  pur- 
poses for  Cambridge  ;  adding,  in  the  zeal  of  his  love,  that 
if  the  chargeableness  of  that  course  were  the  hinderance, 
lie  did  there  humbly  beseech  him,  rather  to  sell  some  part 
of  that  land,  which  himself  should  in  course  of  uature  in- 
herit, than  to  abridge  me  of  that  happy  means  to  perfect 
my  education.  No  sooner  had  he  spoken  those  words, 
than  my  father  no  less  passionately  condescended ;  not 
without  a  vehement  protestation,  that,  whatsoever  it  might 
cost  him,  I  should,  God  willing,  be  sent  to  the  University. 
Neither  were  those  words  sooner  out  of  his  lips,  than  there 
was  a  messenger  from  Mr.  Pelset  knocking  at  the  door,  to 
call  me  to  that  fairer  bondage ;  signifying,  that  the  next 
day  he  expected  me,  with  a  full  dispatch  of  all  that  busi- 
ness :  to  whom  my  father  replied,  that  he  came  some  mi- 
nutes too  late,  that  he  had  now  otherwise  determined  of 
me  j  and,  with  a  respective  message  of  thanks  to  the  mas- 
ter, sent  the  man  home  empty,  leaving  me  full  of  the  tears 
of  joy  for  so  happy  a  change. 

Indeed  I  had  been  but  lost,  if  that  project  had  succeed- 
ed ;  as  it  well  appeared  in  the  experience  of  him,  who  suc- 
ceeded in  that  room,  which  was  by  me  thus  unexpectedly 
forsaken. 

O  God,  how  was  I  then  taken  up,  with  a  thankful  ac- 
knowledgment and  joyful  admiration  of  thy  Gracious  Pro- 
vidence over  me ! 

And  now  I  lived  in  the  expectation  of  Cambridge :  whi- 
ther, ere  long,  I  happily  came,  under  Mr.  Gilby's  tuition, 
together  with  my  worthy  friend  Mr.  Hugh  Cholmley,  who, 
as  we  had  been  partners  of  one  lesson  from  our  cradles,  so 
were  we  now  for  many  years  partners  of  one  bed. 

My  two  first  years  were  necessarily  chargeable,  above 
the  proportion  of  my  father's  power  :  whose  not  very  large 
cistern,  was  to  feed  many  pipes  besides  mine.  His  wea- 
riness of  expence  was  wrought  upon  by  the  counsel  of 
some  unwise  friends,  who  persuaded  him  to  fasten  me  upon 
that  school  as  master,  whereof  I  was  lately  a  scholar. 

Now  was  I  fetched  home,  with  a  heavy  heart :  and  now, 


xxii 


BISHOP  HALL'S  ACCOUNT  OF  HIMSELF. 


this  second  time,  had  mine  hopes  been  nipped  in  the  blos- 
som, had  not  God  raised  me  up  an  unhoped  benefactor, 
Mr.  Edmund  Sleigh  of  Derby  (whose  pious  memory  I 
have  cause  ever  to  love  and  reverence)  out  of  no  other  re- 
lation to  me,  save  that  he  married  my  aunt.  Pitying  my 
too  apparent  dejectedness,  he  voluntarily  urged  and  soli- 
cited my  father  for  my  return  to  the  University  ;  and  of- 
fered freely  to  contribute  the  one  half  of  my  maintenance 
there,  till  I  should  attain  to  the  degree  of  Master  of  Arts; 
■u  hich  he  no  less  really  and  lov  ingly  performed.  The  con- 
dition was  gladly  accepted. 

Thither  was  I  sent  back,  with  joy  encrugh  ;  and,  ere 
long,  chosen  Scholar  of  that  strict  and  well  ordered 
College. 

By  that  time  I  had  spent  six  years  there,  now  the  third 
year  of  my  Bachelorship  should  at  once  both  make  an  end 
of  my  maintenance,  and  in  respect  of  standing  give  me  a 
capacity  of  further  preferment  in  that  house,  were  it  not 
that  my  country  excluded  me  :  for  our  Statute  allowed  but 
one  of  a  shire  to  be  fellow  there ;  and,  my  tutor  being  of 
the  same  town  with  me,  must  therefore  necessarily  hold 
me  out. 

But,  O  my  God,  how  strangely  did  thy  gracious  Pro- 
vidence fetch  this  business  about  !  I  was  now  entertaining 
motions  of  remove. 

A  place  was  offered  me  in  the  island  of  Guernsey 
which  I  had  in  speech  and  chase.  It  fell  out,  that  the  fa- 
ther of  my  loving  chamberfellow,  Mr.  Cholmley,  a  gentle- 
man that  had  likewise  dependance  upon  the  most  noble 
Henry  Earl  of  Huntingdon,  having  occasion  to  go  to 
York,  unto  that  his  Honourable  Lord,  fell  into  some  men- 
tion of  me.  That  good  Earl,  who  well  esteemed  my  father's 
service,  having  belikely  heard  some  better  words  of  me 
than  I  could  deserve,  made  earnest  enquiry  after  me,  what 
were  my  courses,  what  my  hopes  :  and,  hearing  of  the  like- 
lihood of  my  removal,  professed  much  dislike  of  it ;  not 
without  some  vehemence,  demanding  why  I  was  not  chosen 
Fellow  of  that  College,  wherein  by  report  I  received  such 


SOME  SPECIALITIES  IN  HIS  LIFE. 


xxiii 


approbation.  Answer  was  returned,  that  my  country  de- 
barred me ;  which,  being  filled  with  my  tutor,  whom  his 
Lordship  well  knew,  could  not  by  the  Statute  admit  a  se- 
cond. The  Earl  presently  replied,  that,  if  that  were  the 
hiuderance,  he  would  soon  take  order  to  remove  it. 
Whereupon  his  Lordship  presently  sends  for  my  tutor  Mr. 
Gilby  unto  York;  and,  with  proffer  of  large  conditions  of 
the  chaplainship  in  his  house,  and  assured  promises  of  bet- 
ter provisions,  drew  him  to  relinquish  his  place  in  the  Col- 
lege to  a  free  election.  No  sooner  was  his  assent  signified, 
than  the  days  were  set  for  the  public  (and  indeed  exqui- 
site) examination  of  the  competitors.  By  that  time  two 
days  of  the  three  allotted  to  this  trial  were  past,  certain 
news  came  to  us  of  the  inexpected  death  of  that  incom- 
parably Religious  and  Noble  Earl  of  Huntingdon;  by 
whose  loss  my  then  disappointed  tutor  must  necessarily  be 
left  to  the  wide  world  unprovided  for.  Upon  notice  there- 
of, I  presently  repaired  to  the  Master  of  the  College,  Mr. 
Dr.  Chaderton  ;  and  besought  him  to  tender  that  hard 
condition  to  which  my  good  tutor  must  needs  be  driven,  if 
the  election  proceeded  ;  to  stay  any  farther  progress  in 
that  business ;  and  to  leave  me  to  my  own  good  hopes 
wheresoever,  whose  youth  exposed  me  both  to  less  needs, 
and  more  opportunities  of  provision.  Answer  was  made 
me,  that  the  place  was  pronounced  void  however ;  and, 
therefore,  that  my  tutor  was  divested  of  all  possibility  of 
remedy,  and  must  wait  upon  the  Providence  of  God  for 
his  disposing  elsewhere,  and  the  election  must  necessarily 
proceed  the  day  following.  Then  was  I,  with  a  cheerful 
unanimity,  chosen  into  that  Society;  which  if  it  had  any 
equals,  I  dare  say  had  none  beyond  it,  for  good  order,  stu- 
dious carriage,  strict  government,  austere  piety  :  in  which 
I  spent  six  or  seven  years  more,  with  such  contentment,  as 
the  rest  of  my  life  hath  in  vain  striven  to  yield. 

Now  was  I  called  to  public  disputations  often,  with  no 
ill  success  :  for  never  durst  I  appear  in  any  of  those  exer- 
cises of  scholarship,  till  I  had  from  my  knees  looked  up  to 


xxiv 


BISHOP  HALL'S  ACCOUNT  OF  HIMSELF. 


heaven  for  a  blessing,  and  renewed  my  actual  dependance 
upon  that  Divine  Hand. 

In  this  while,  two  years  together  was  I  chosen  to  the 
Rhetoric  Lecture  in  the  Public  Schools  ;  where  I  was  en- 
couraged with  a  sufficient  frequence  of  auditors  :  but,  find- 
ing that  well  applauded  work  somewhat  out  of  my  way,  not 
without  a  secret  blame  of  myself  for  so  much  excursion,  I 
fairly  gave  up  that  task,  in  the  midst  of  those  poor  accla- 
mations, to  a  worthy  successor,  Mr.  Dr.  Dod ;  and  betook 
myself  to  those  serious  studies,  which  might  fit  me  for  that 
High  Calling  whereunto  I  was  destined. 

Wherein  after  I  had  carefully  bestowed  myself  for  a 
time,  I  took  the  boldness  to  enter  into  Sacred  Orders:  the 
honour  whereof  having  once  attained,  I  was  no  niggard  of  that 
talent  which  my  God  had  entrusted  to  me ;  preaching  often, 
as  occasion  was  offered,  both  in  country  villages  abroad, 
and  at  home  in  the  most  Awful  auditory  of  the  University. 

And  now  I  did  but  wait  where  and  how  it  would  please 
my  God  to  employ  me. 

There  was  at  that  time  a  famous  School  erected  at  Ti- 
verton in  Devon,  and  endowed  with  a  very  large  pension  ; 
whose  goodly  fabric  was  answerable  to  the  reported  main- 
tenance :  the  care  whereof  was,  by  the  rich  and  bountiful 
founder,  Mr.  Biundel,  cast  principally  upon  the  then  Lord 
Chief  Justice  Popham.  That  faithful  observer,  having 
great  interest  in  the  Master  of  our  House,  Dr.  Chaderton, 
moved  him  earnestly  to  commend  some  able,  learned,  and 
discreet  Governour  to  that  weighty  charge;  whose  action 
should  not  need  to  be  so  much  as  his  oversight.  It  pleased 
our  Master,  out  of  his  good  opinion,  to  tender  this  condi- 
tion unto  me  :  assuring  me  of  no  small  advantages,  and  no 
great  toil :  since  it  was  intended  the  main  load  of  the 
work  should  lie  upon  other  shoulders.  I  apprehended  the 
motion  worth  the  entertaining.  In  that  severe  Society  our 
times  were  stinted :  neither  was  it  wise  or  safe  to  refuse 
good  offers.  Mr.  Dr.  Chaderton  carried  me  to  London  ; 
and  there  presented  me  to  the  Lord  Chief  Justice,  with 


SOME  SPECIALITIES  IN  HIS  LIFE. 


XXV 


much  testimony  of  approbation.  The  Judge  seemed  well 
apaid  with  the  choice.  I  promised  acceptance ;  he,  the 
strength  of  his  favour.  No  sooner  had  I  parted  from  the 
Judge,  than,  in  the  street,  a  messenger  presented  me  with 
a  letter,  from  the  right  virtuous  and  worthy  Lady,  of  dear 
and  happy  memory,  the  Lady  Drury  of  Suffolk,  tendering 
the  Rectory  of  her  Halsted,  then  newly  void,  and  very 
earnestly  desiring  me  to  accept  of  it.  Dr.  Chaderton,  ob- 
serving in  me  some  change  of  countenance,  asked  me  what 
the  matter  might  be.  I  told  him  the  errand,  and  deliver- 
ed him  the  letter  ;  beseeching  his  advice  :  which  when  he 
had  read,  "  Sir,"  quoth  I,  "  methinks  God  pulls  me  by 
the  sleeve ;  and  tells  me  it  is  his  will,  I  should  rather  go 
to  the  east  than  to  the  west."  "  Nay,"  he  answered,  "  I 
should  rather  think  that  God  would  have  you  go  westward, 
for  that  he  hath  contrived  your  engagement  before  the 
tender  of  this  letter ;  which  therefore  coming  too  late, 
may  receive  a  fair  and  easy  answer."  To  this  I  besought 
him  to  pardon  my  dissent ;  adding,  that  I  well  knew,  that 
Divinity  was  the  end  whereto  I  was  destined  by  my  pa- 
rents ;  which  I  had  so  constantly  proposed  to  myself,  that 
I  never  meant  other,  than  to  pass  through  this  Western 
School  to  it  :  but  I  saw  that  God,  who  found  me  ready  to 
go  the  farther  way  about,  now  called  me  the  nearest  and 
directest  way  to  that  sacred  end.  The  good  man  could  no 
further  oppose  ;  but  only  pleaded  the  distaste,  which  would 
hereupon  be  justly  taken  by  the  Lord  Chief  Justice,  whom 
I  undertook  fully  to  satisfy :  which  I  did  with  no  great 
difficulty ;  commending  to  his  Lordship,  in  my  room,  my 
old  friend  and  chamber-fellow  Mr.  Cholmley  :  who,  find- 
ing an  answerable  acceptance,  disposed  himself  to  the 
place ;  so  as  we  two,  who  came  together  to  the  University, 
now  must  leave  it  at  once. 

Having  then  fixed  my  foot  at  Halsted,  I  found  there  a 
dangerous  opposite  to  the  success  of  my  ministry,  a  witty  , 
and  bold  atheist,  one  Mr.  Lilly ;  who,  by  reason  of  his 
travails,  and  abilities  of  discourse  and  behaviour,  had  so 
deeply  insinuated  himself  into  my  patron,  Sir  Robert 


XXVI 


BISHOP  HALL'S  ACCOUNT  OF  HIMSELF. 


Drury,-  that  there  was  small  hopes,  during  his  entireness, 
for  me  to  work  any  good  upon  that  Noble  Patron  of  mine; 
who,  by  the  suggestion  of  this  wicked  detractor,  was  set 
olf  from  me  before  he  knew  me.  Hereupon,  I  confess, 
finding  the  obduredness  and  hopeless  condition  of  that 
man,  I  bent  my  prayers  against  him ;  beseeching  God 
daily,  that  he  would  be  pleased  to  remove,  by  some  means 
or  other,  that  apparent  hinderance  of  my  faithful  labours  : 
who  gave  me  an  answer  accordingly ;  for  this  malicious 
man,  going  hastily  up  to  London  to  exasperate  my  patron 
against  me,  was  then  and  there  swept  away  by  the  pesti- 
lence, and  never  returned  to  do  any  farther  mischief.  Now 
the  coast  was  clear  before  me ;  and  I  gained  everv  day  of 
the  good  opinion  and  favourable  respects  of  that  Honour- 
able Gentleman  and  my  worth}-  neighbours. 

Being  now  therefore  settled  in  that  sweet  and  civil  coun- 
try of  Suffolk,  near  to  St.  Edmund's-Bury,  my  first  work 
was  to  build  up  my  house,  which  was  then  extremely 
ruinous. 

Which  done,  the  uncouth  solitariness  of  my  life,  and 
the  extreme  incommodity  of  that  single  housekeeping, 
drew  my  thoughts,  after  two  years,  to  condescend  to  the 
necessity  of  a  married  estate :  which  God  no  less  strange- 
ly provided  for  me  ;  for,  walking  from  the  church  on  Mon- 
day in  the  Whitsun-week,  with  a  grave  and  reverend  Mi- 
nister, Mr.  Grandidge,  I  saw  a  comely  and  modest  gen- 
tlewoman standing  at  the  door  of  that  house  where  we 
were  invited  to  a  wedding-dinner ;  and,  enquiring  of  that 
worthy  friend  whether  he  knew  her,  "  Yes,"  quoth  he, 
*c  I  know  her  well,  and  have  bespoken  her  for  your  wife." 
When  I  further  demanded  an  account  of  that  answer,  he 
told  me  she  was  the  daughter  of  a  gentleman  whom  he 
much  respected,  Mr.  George  Winn  iff  of  Bretenham ; 
that,  out  of  an  opinion  had  of  the  fitness  of  that  match  for 
me,  he  had  already  treated  with  her  father  about  it,  whom 
he  found  very  apt  to  entertain  it ;  advising  me  not  to  ne- 
glect the  opportunity,  and  not  concealing  the  just  praises 
of  the  modesty,  piety,  good  disposition,  and  other  virtues 


SOME  SPECIALITIES  IN  HIS  LIFE.  XXvii 

that  were  lodged  in  that  seemly  presence.  I  listened  to 
the  motion,  as  sent  from  God ;  and,  at  last,  upon  due  pro- 
secution, happily  prevailed  ;  enjoying  the  comfortable  so- 
ciety of  that  meet  help  for  the  space  of  forty-nine  years. 

I  had  not  passed  two  years  in  this  estate,  when  my 
Noble  Friend,  Sir  Edmund  Bacon,  with  whom  I  had  much 
entireness,  came  to  me  ;  and  earnestly  solicited  me  for  my 
company  in  a  journey,  by  him  projected  to  the  Spa  in  Ar- 
denna :  laying  before  me  the  safety,  the  easiness,  the  plea- 
sure, and  the  benefit  of  that  small  extravagance,  if  oppor- 
tunity were  taken  of  that  time,  when  the  Earl  of  Hertford 
passed  in  Embassy  to  the  Arch-Duke  Albert  of  Brussels. 
I  soon  yielded ;  as  for  the  reasons  by  him  urged,  so  espe- 
cially for  the  great  desire  I  had  to  inform  myself  ocularly 
of  the  state  and  practice  of  the  Iiomish  Church  ;  the 
knowledge  whereof  might  be  of  no  small  use  to  me  in  my 
holy  station. 

Having,  therefore,  taken  careful  order  for  the  supply  of 
my  charge,  with  the  assent  and  good  allowance  of  my 
nearest,  friends,  I  entered  into  this  secret  voyage. 

We  waited  some  days  at  Harwich  for  a  wind  ;  which 
we  hoped  might  waft  us  over  to  Dunkirk,  where  our  Am- 
bassador had  lately  landed :  but,  at  last,  having  spent  a 
day  and  half  a  night  at  sea,  we  were  forced,  for  want  of 
favour  from  the  wind,  to  put  in  at  Queenborough :  from 
whence  coasting  over  the  rich  and  pleasant  country  of 
Kent,  we  renewed  our  shipping  at  Dover ;  and,  soon  land- 
ing at  Calais,  we  passed  after  two  days  by  waggon  to  the 
strong  towns  of  Gravelines  and  Dunkirk :  where  I  could 
not  but  find  much  horror  in  myself  to  pass  under  those 
dark  and  dreadful  prisons,  where  so  many  brave  English- 
men had  breathed  out  their  souls  in  a  miserable  captivity. 
From  thence  we  passed  through  Winnoxberg,  Ypi;es, 
Ghent,  Courtray,  to  Brussels ;  where  the  Ambassador  had 
newly  sat  down  before  us. 

That  Noble  Gentleman,  in  whose  company  I  travelled, 
was  welcomed  with  many  kind  visitations.  Amongst  the 
rest,  there  came  to  him  an  English  Gentleman,  who, 


xxviii  bishop  hall's  account  of  himself. 

having  run  himself  out  of  breath  in  the  Inns  of  Court,  had 
forsaken  his  country,  and  therewith  his  religion ;  and  was 
turned  both  bigot  and  physician,  residing  now  in  Brussels. 
This  man,  after  few  interchanges  of  compliment  with  Sir 
Edmund  Bacon,  fell  into  a  hyperbolical  predication  of  the 
wonderful  miracles  done  newly  by  Our  Lady  at  Zichem, 
or  Sherpen-Heavell,  that  is  Sharp  Hill,  by  Lipsius  Apri- 
collis :  the  credit  whereof  when  that  worthy  Knight  wit- 
tily questioned,  he  avowed  a  particular  miracle  of  cure 
wrought  by  her  upon  himself.    I,  coming  into  the  room  in 
the  midst  of  this  discourse,  habited  not  like  a  Divine  but 
in  such  colour  and  fashion  as  might  best  secure  my  travel, 
and  hearing  my  countryman's  zealous  and  confident  rela- 
tions, at  last  asked  him  this  question  :  "  Sir,"  quoth  I, 
"  put  case  this  report  of  yours  be  granted  for  true,  I  be- 
seech you  teach  me  what  difference  there  is,  betwixt  these 
miracles  which  you  say  are  wrought  by  this  Lady,  and 
those  which  were  wrought  by  Vespasian  by  some  vestals 
by  charms  and  spells ;  the  rather,  for  that  I  have  noted, 
in  the  late  published  report,  of  these  miracles,  some  pa- 
tients prescribed  to  come  upon  a  Friday,  and  some  to  wash 
in  such  a  well  before  their  approach,  and  divers  other  such 
charm-like  observations."    The  gentleman,  not  expecting 
such  a  question  from  me,  answered,  "  Sir,  I  do  not  profess 
this  kind  of  scholarship ;  but  we  have  in  the  city  many 
famous  Divines,  with  whom  if  it  would  please  you  to  con- 
fer, you  might  sooner  receive  satisfaction."     I  asked  him 
whom  he  took  for  the  most  eminent  Divine  of  that  place. 
He  named  to  me  Father  Costerus :  undertaking  that  he 
would  be  very  glad  to  give  me  conference,  if  I  would  be 
pleased  to  come  up  to  the  Jesuits'  College.    I  willingly 
yielded.    In  the  afternoon,  the  forward  gentleman  pre- 
vented his  time  to  attend  me  to  the  Father,  as  he  stiled 
him  ;  who,  as  he  said,  was  ready  to  entertain  me  with  a 
meeting.    I  went  alone  up  with  him.    The  porter,  shut- 
ting the  door  after  me,  welcomed  me  with  a  Deo  gratias. 
I  had  not  staid  long  in  the  Jesuits'  Hall,  before  Costerus 
came  in  to  me  :  who,  after  a  friendly  salutation,  fell  into  ^ 


SOME  SPECIALITIES  IN  HIS  LIFE. 


xxix 


formal  speech  of  the  Unity  of  that  Church,  out  of  which 
is  no  salvation  ;  and  had  proceeded  to  lose  his  breath  and 
labour,  had  not  I,  as  civilly  as  I  might,  interrupted  him 
with  this  short  answer :  "  Sir,  I  beseech  you  mistake  me 
not.    My  nation  tells  you  of  what  religion  I  am.   I  come 
not  hither,  out  of  any  doubt  of  my  professed  belief,  or 
any  purpose  to  change  it ;  but,  moving  a  question  to  this 
gentleman  concerning  the  pretended  miracles  of  the  time, 
he  pleased  to  refer  me  to  yourself  for  my  answer :  which 
motion  of  his  I  was  the  more  willing  to  embrace,  for  the 
lame  that  I  have  heard  of  your  learning  and  worth  ;  and, 
if  you  can  give  me  satisfaction  herein,  I  am  ready  to  re- 
ceive it."    Hereupon  we  settled  to  our  places,  at  a  table 
in  the  end  of  the  hall ;  and  buckled  to  a  further  discourse. 
He  fell  into  a  poor  and  unperfect  account  of  the  difference 
of  divine  miracles  and  diabolical ;  which  I  modestly  re- 
futed.   From  thence  he  slipped  into  a  choleric  invective 
against  our  Church,  which,  as  he  said,  could  not  yield  one 
miracle ;  and  when  I  answered,  that,  in  our  Church,  we 
had  manifest  proofs  of  the  ejection  of  devils  by  fasting  and 
prayer,  he  answered,  that,  if  it  could  be  proved,  that  ever 
any  devil  was  dispossessed  in  our  Church,  he  would  quit 
his  religion.    Many  questions  were  incidently  traversed 
by  us ;  wherein  I  found  no  satisfaction  given  me.  The 
conference  was  long  and  vehement  :  in  the  heat  whereof, 
who  should  come  in  but  Father  Baldwin,  an  English  Je- 
suit, known  to  me,  as  by  face  (after  I  came  to  Brussels) 
so  much  more  by  fame.    He  sat  down  upon  a  bench,  at 
the  further  end  of  the  table,  and  heard  no  small  part  of 
our  dissertation  ;  seeming  not  too  well  apaid,  that  a  gen- 
tleman of  his  nation,  (for  still  I  was  spoken  to  in  that 
habit,  by  the  stile  of  Dominatio  vestra)  should  depart  from 
the  Jesuits'  College  no  better  satisfied.    On  the  next 
morning,  therefore,  he  sends  the  same  English  Physician 
to  my  lodging,  with  a  courteous  compellation ;  professing 
to  take  it  unkindly,  that  his  countryman  should  make 
choice  of  any  other  to  confer  with,  than  himself,  who  de- 
sired both  mine  acquaintance  and  full  satisfaction.  Sir 


XXX  BISHOP  HALL'S  ACCOUNT  OF  HIMSELF. 

Edmund  Bacon,  in  whose  hearing  the  message  was  deliver- 
ed, gave  me  secret  signs  of  his  utter  unwillingness  to  give 
way  to  my  further  conferences :  the  issue  whereof,  since 
we  were  to  pass  further  and  beyond  the  bounds  of  that 
protection,  might  prove  dangerous.  I  returned  a  manner- 
ly answer  of  thanks  to  F.  Baldwin ;  but,  for  any  further 
conference,  that  it  were  bootless.  I  could  not  hope  to 
convert  him,  and  was  resolved  he  should  not  alter  me ; 
and,  therefore,  both  of  us  should  rest  where  we  were. 

Departing  from  Brussels,  we  were  for  Namur  and  Liege. 
In  the  way  we  found  the  good  hand  of  God,  in  delivering 
us  from  the  danger  of  free-booters  ;  and  of  a  nightly  en- 
trance, amidst  a  suspicious  convoy,  into  that  bloody  city. 

Thence  we  came  to  the  Spadane  Waters  :  where  I  had 
good  leisure  to  add  a  second  Century  of  Meditations  to 
those  I  had  published  before  my  journey. 

After  we  had  spent  a  just  time  at  those  medicinal  wells, 
we  returned  to  Liege  ;  and,  in  our  passage  up  the  river 
Mosa,  I  had  a  dangerous  conflict  with  a  Sorbonist,  a  Prior 
of  the  Carmelites,  who  took  occasion  by  our  kneeling  at 
the  receipt  of  the  Eucharist,  to  persuade  all  the  company 
of  our  acknowledgment  of  a  transubstantiation.  I  satis- 
fied the  cavil ;  shewing  upon  what  ground  this  meet  pos- 
ture obtained  with  us.  The  man  grew  furious  upon  his 
conviction  ;  and  his  vehement  associates  began  to  join  with 
him,  in  a  right-down  railing  upon  our  Church  and  Reli- 
gion. I  told  them  they  knew  where  they  were  :  for  me,  I 
had  taken  notice  of  the  security  of  their  laws,  inhibiting 
any  argument  held  against  their  religion  established,  and 
therefore  stood  only  upon  my  defence ;  not  casting  any 
aspersion  upon  theirs,  but  ready  to  maintain  our  own : 
which  though  I  performed  in  as  fair  terms  as  I  might,  yet 
the  choler  of  those  zealots  was  so  moved,  that  the  paleness 
of  their  changed  countenances  began  to  threaten  some  pe- 
rillous  issue,  had  not  Sir  Edmund  Bacon,  both  by  his  eye 
and  by  his  tongue,  wisely  taken  me  off.  I  subduced  my- 
self speedily  from  their  presence,  to  avoid  further  provo- 
cation.   The  Prior  began  to  bewray  some  suspicions  of 


SOME  SPECIALITIES  IN  HIS  LIFE.  XXXI 

my  borrowed  habit  ;  and  told  them,  that  himself  had  a 
green  satin  suit  once  prepared  for  his  travels  into  Eng- 
land :  so  as  I  found  it  needful  for  me,  to  lie  close  at 
Namur. 

From  whence  travelling  the  next  day  towards  Brussels 
in  the  company  of  two  Italian  Captains,  Signior  Ascanio 
Negro  and  another,  whose  name  I  have  forgotten ;  who, 
enquiring  into  our  nation  and  religion,  wondered  to  hear 
that  we  had  any  baptism  or  churches  in  England;  the  con- 
gruity  of  my  Latin,  in  respect  of  their  perfect  barbarism, 
drew  me  and  the  rest  into  their  suspicion  :  so  as  I  might 
overhear  them  muttering  to  each  other,  that  we  were  not 
the  men  we  appeared.  Straight  the  one  of  them  boldly 
expressed  his  conceit ;  and,  together  with  this  charge,  be- 
gan to  enquire  of  our  condition.  I  told  him,  that  the  gen- 
tleman he  saw  before  us  was  the  grandchild  of  that  re- 
nowned Bacon,  the  great  Chancellor  of  England,  a  man 
of  great  birth  and  quality ;  and  that  myself  and  my  other 
companion  travelled  in  his  attendance  to  the  Spa,  from  the 
train  and  under  the  privilege  of  our  late  ambassador  :  with 
which  just  answer  I  stopped  their  mouths. 

Returning  through  Brussels,  we  came  down  to  Antwerp, 
the  paragon  of  cities  :  where  my  curiosity  to  see  a  solemn 
procession  on  St.  John  Baptist's  Day  might  have  drawn  me 
into  danger,  through  my  willing  unreverence,  had  not  the 
hulk  of  a  tall  Brabanter,  behind  whom  I  stood  in  a  corner 
of  the  street,  shadowed  me  from  notice. 

Thence,  down  the  fair  river  of  Scheldt,  we  came  to 
Flushing  :  where,  upon  the  resolution  of  our  company  to 
stay  some  hours,  I  hasted  to  Middleburgh,  to  see  an  ancient 
colleague.  That  visit  lost  me  my  passage.  Ere  I  could 
return,  I  might  see  our  ship  under  sail  for  England.  The 
Master  had  with  the  wind  altered  his  purpose;  and  called 
aboard  with  such  eagerness,  that  my  company  must  either 
away,  or  undergo  the  hazard  of  too  much  loss.  I  looked 
long  after  them  in  vain;  and,  sadly  returning  to  Middle- 
burgh, waited  long,  for  an  inconvenient  and  tempestuous 
passage. 


XXX  il 


BISHOP  HALL'S  ACCOUNT  OF  HIMSELF. 


After  some  year  and  half,  it  pleased  God  inexpectedly 
to  contrive  the  change  of  my  station. 

My  means  were  but  short  at  Halsted ;  yet  such  as  I 
oft  professed,  if  my  then  patron  would  have  added  but  one 
ten  pounds  by  year,  which  I  held  to  be  the  value  of  mv 
detained  due,  I  should  never  have  removed.  One  morn- 
ing, as  I  lay  in  my  bed,  a  strong  motion  was  suddenly 
glanced  into  my  thoughts  of  going  to  London.  I  arose, 
and  betook  me  to  the  way.  The  ground,  that  appeared  of 
that  purpose,  was  to  speak  with  my  patron  Sir  Robert 
Drary;  if,  by  occasion  of  the  public  preachership  of  St. 
Edmund's  Bury  then  offered  me  upon  good  conditions,  I 
might  draw  him  to  a  willing  yieldance  of  that  parcel  of 
my  due  maintenance,  which  was  kept  back  from  my  not 
over-deserving  predecessor  :  who,  hearing  my  errand,  dis- 
suaded me  from  so  ungainful  a  change,  which  had  it  been 
to  my  sensible  advantage,  he  should  have  readily  given 
way  unto ;  but  not  offering  me  the  expected  encourage- 
ment of  my  continuance. 

With  him  I  stayed,  and  preached  on  the  Sunday  follow- 
ing. That  day  Sir  Robert  Drury,  meeting  with  the  Lord 
Denny,  fell  belike  into  the  commendation  of  my  sermon. 
That  religious  and  noble  Lord  had  long  harboured  good 
thoughts  concerning  me,  upon  the  reading  of  those  poor 
pamphlets,  which  I  had  formerly  published  ;  and  long  wish- 
ed the  opportunity  to  know  me.  To  please  him  in  this  de- 
sire, Sir  Robert  willed  me  to  go  and  tender  my  service  to 
his  Lordship;  which  I  modestly  and  seriously  deprecated: 
yet,  upon  his  earnest  charge,  went  to  his  Lordship's  gate ; 
where  I  was  not  sorry  to  hear  of  his  absence. 

Being  now  full  of  cold  and  distemper  in  Drury-lane,  I 
was  found  out  by  a  friend,  in  whom  I  had  formerly  no 
great  interest,  one  Mr.  Gurrey,  tutor  to  the  Earl  of  Essex. 
He  told  me  how  well  my  Meditations  were  accepted  at 
the  Prince's  Court  *  ;  and  earnestly  advised  me  to  step 
over  to  Richmond,  and  preach  to  his  Highness.  I  strongly 

*  Prince  Henry. 


SOME  SPECIALITIES  IN  HIS  LIFE. 


XXXHl 


pleaded  my  indisposition  of  body,  and  my  inpreparation 
for  any  such  work;  together  with  my  bashful  fears,  and 
utter  unfitness  fur  such  a  presence.  My  averseness  doubled 
his  importunity  :  in  tine,  he  left  me  not,  till  he  had  my 
engagement  to  preach  the  Sunday  following  at  Richmond. 
Fie  made  way  for  me  to  that  awful  pulpit  ;  and  encou- 
raged me  by  the  favour  of  his  Noble  Lord,  the  Earl  of 
Essex.  I  preached.  Through  the  favour  of  my  God, 
that  sermon  was  not  so  well  given,  as  taken  :  insomuch  as 
that  Sweet  Prince  signified  his  desire  to  hear  me  again  the 
Tuesday  following.  Which  done,  that  labour  gave  more 
contentment  than  the  former :  so  as  that  Gracious  Prince 
both  gave  me  his  hand  and  commanded  me  to  his  service. 

My  patron,  seeing  me,  upon  my  return  to  London, 
looked  after  by  some  great  persons,  began  to  wish  me  at 
home ;  and  told  me,  that  some  or  other  would  be  snatch- 
ing me  up.  I  answered,  that  it  was  in  his  power  to  pre- 
vent :  would  he  be  pleased  to  make  my  maintenance,  but 
so  competent  as  in  right  it  should  be,  I  would  never  stir 
from  him.  Instead  of  condescending,  it  pleased  him  to 
fall  into  an  expostulation  of  the  rate  of  competencies ; 
affirming  the  variableness  thereof,  according  to  our  own 
estimation,  and  our  either  raising  or  moderating  the  causes 
of  our  expences.  I  shewed  him  the  insufficiency  of  my 
means :  that  I  was  forced  to  write  books  to  buy  books. 
Shortly,  some  harsh  and  unpleasing  answer  so, disheartened 
me,  that  I  resolved  to  embrace  the  first  opportunity  of 
my  remove. 

Now,  while  I  was  taken  up  with  these  anxious  thoughts, 
a  messenger  (it  was  Sir  Robert  Wingfield  of  Northamp- 
ton's son)  came  to  me  from  the  Lord  Denny,  now  Earl  of 
Norwich,  my  after-most-honourable  patron,  entreating  me 
from  his  Lordship  to  speak  with  him.  No  sooner  came  I 
thither,  than,  after  a  glad  and  noble  welcome,  I  was  en- 
tertained with  the  earnest  offer  of  Waltham.  The  condi- 
tions were,  like  the  mover  of  them,  free  and  bountiful.  I 
received  them,  as  from  the  munificent  hand  of  my  God  ; 


xxxiv  bishop  hall's  account  of  himself. 


and  returned,  full  of  the  cheerful  acknowledgments  of  a 
gracious  providence  over  me. 

Too  late  now  did  my  former  Noble  Patron  relent ;  and 
oft'er  me  those  terms,  which  had,  before,  fastened  me  for 
ever. 

I  returned  home,  happy  in  anew  master,  and  in  a  new 
patron :  betwixt  whom,  I  divided  myself  and  my  labours, 
with  much  comfort  and  no  less  acceptation. 

In  the  second  year  of  mine  attendance  on  his  Highness, 
when  I  came  for  my  dismission  from  that  monthly  service, 
it  pleased  the  Prince  to  command  me  a  longer  stay ;  and, 
at  last,  upon  mine  allowed  departure,  by  the  mouth  of  Sir 
Thomas  Challoner,  his  Governour,  to  tender  unto  me  a 
motion  of  more  honour  and  favour  than  I  was  worthy  of : 
which  was,  that  it  was  his  Highness'  pleasure  and  purpose, 
to  have  me  continually  resident  at  the  Court  as  a  constant 
attendant,  while  the  rest  held  on  their  wonted  vicissitudes: 
for  which  purpose,  his  Highness  would  obtain  for  me  such 
preferments,  as  should  yield  me  full  contentment.  I  re- 
turned my  humblest  thanks,  and  my  readiness  to  sacrifice 
myself  to  the  service  of  so  gracious  a  master  ;  but,  being 
conscious  to  myself  of  my  unanswerableness  to  so  great 
expectation,  and  loth  to  forsake  so  dear  and  noble  a 
patron  who  had  placed  much  of  his  heart  upon  me,  I  did 
modestly  put  it  off,  and  held  close  to  my  Waltham  :  where, 
in  a  constant  course,  I  preached  a  long  time,  as  I  had  done 
also  at  Halsted  before,  thrice  in  the  week  ;  yet  never  durst 
I  climb  into  the  pulpit  to  preach  any  sermon,  whereof  I 
had  not  before,  in  my  poor  and  plain  fashion,  penned 
every  word  in  the  same  order,  wherein  I  hoped  to  deliver 
it ;  although,  in  the  expression,  I  listed  not  to  be  a  slave 
to  syllables. 

In  this  while,  my  worthy  kinsman,  Mr.  Samuel  Barton, 
Archdeacon  of  Gloucester,  knowing  in  how  good  terms  I 
stood  at  Court,  and  pitying  the  miserable  condition  of  his 
native  Church  of  Wolverhampton,  was  very  desirous  to 
engage  me  in  so  difficult  and  noble  a  service,  as  the  re- 


SOME  SPECIALITIES  IX  HIS  LIFE. 


XXXV 


demption  of  that  captivated  Church.  For  which  cause  he 
importuned  me  to  move  some, of  my  friends,  to  solicit  the; 
Dean  of  Windsor,  who  by  an  ancient  annexation  is  patron 
thereof,  for  the  grant  of  a  particular  Prebend,  when  it 
should  fall  vacant  in  that  Church.  Answer  was  returned 
mc,  that  it  was  fore-promised  to  one  of  my  Fellow-Chap- 
lains. I  sat  down,  without  further  expectation.  Some 
year  or  two  after,  hearing  that  it  was  become  void,  and 
meeting  with  that  Fellow-Chaplain  of  mine,  I  wished  him 
much  joy  of  the  Prebend.  He  asked  me  if  it  were  void  : 
I  assured  him  so ;  and,  telling  him  of  the  former  answer, 
delivered  to  me  in  my  ignorance,  of  his  engagement, 
wished  him  to  hasten  his  possession  of  it.  He  delayed 
not.  When  he  came  to  the  Dean  of  Windsor  for  his  pro- 
mised dispatch,  the  Dean  brought  him  forth  a  letter  from 
the  Prince,  wherein  he  was  desired  and  charged  to  reverse 
his  former  engagement,  since  that  other  Chaplain  was 
otherwise  provided  for  ;  and  to  cast  that  favour  upon  me. 
I  was  sent  for,  who  least  thought  of  it;  and  received  the 
free  collation  of  that  poor  dignity.  It  was  not  the  value 
of  the  place,  which  was  but  nineteen  nobles  per  annum, 
that  we  aimed  at;  but  the  freedom  of  a  goodly  Church, 
consisting  of  a  Dean  and  eight  Prebendaries  competently 
endowed,  and  many  thousand  souls  lamentably  swallowed 
up  by  wilful  recusants,  in  a  pretended  fee-farm  for  ever. 

O  God,  what  a  hand  hadst  thou  in  the  carriage  of  this 
work  ! 

When  we  set  foot  in  this  suit  (for  another  of  the  Pre- 
bendaries joined  with  me)  we  know  not  wherein  to  insist, 
nor  where  to  ground  a  complaint :  only  we  knew  that  a 
goodly  patrimony  was,  by  sacrilegious  conveyance,  de- 
tained from  the  Church.  But,  in  the  pursuit  of  it,  such 
marvellous  light,  opened  itself  inexpectedly  to  us,  in  re- 
vealing of  a  counterfeit  seal,  found  in  the  ashes  of  that 
burned  house,  of  a  false  register ;  in  the  manifestation  of 
rasures  and  interpolations,  and  misdates  of  unjustifiable 
evidences  ;  that,  after  many  years'  suit,  the  wise  and  ho- 
nourable Lord  Chancellor  Ellesmere,  upon  a  full  hearing, 


xxxvi  bishop  hall's  account  of  himself. 

adjudged  these  two  sued-for  Prebends,  clearly  to  be  re- 
turned to  the  Church,  until,  by  Common  Law,  they  could, 
if  possibly,  be  revicted.     Our  great  adversary,  Sir  Walter 
Leveson,  finding  it  but  loss  and  trouble  to  struggle  for  li- 
tigious sheaves,  came  off  to  a  peaceable  composition  with 
me  of  forty  pounds  per  annum  for  my  part,  whereof  ten 
should  be  to  the  discharge  of  my  stall  in  that  Church,  till 
the  suit  should  by  course  of  Common  Law  be  determined: 
we  agreed  upon  fair  wars.    The  cause  was  heard  at  the 
King's  Bench  Bar:  where  a  special  verdict  was  given  for 
us.    Upon  the  death  of  my  partner  in  the  suit,  in  whose 
name  it  had  now  been  brought,  it  was  renewed ;  a  jury 
empannelled  in  the  county  :  the  foreman,  who  had  vowed 
be  would  carry  it  for  Sir  "Walter  Leveson  howsoever,  was, 
before  the  day,  stricken  mad,  and  so  continued.    We  pro- 
ceeded with  the  same  success  we  formerly  had.    While  we 
were  thus  striving,  a  word  fell  from  my  adversary,  that 
gave  me  intimation,  that  a  third  dog  would  perhaps  come 
in,  and  take  the  bone  from  us  both:  which  I  finding  to 
drive  at  a  supposed  concealment,  happily  prevented  ;  for 
I  presently  addressed  myself  to  his  Majesty,  with  a  peti- 
tion for  the  renewing  the  charter  of  that  Church  ;  and  the 
full  establishment  of  the  lands,  rights,  liberties,  thereto  be- 
longing; which  I  easily  obtained  from  those  gracious 
hands.     Now  Sir  Walter  Leveson,  seeing  the  patrimony 
of  the  Church  so  fast  and  safely  settled,  and  misdoubting 
what  issue  those  his  crazy  evidences  would  find  at  the 
Common  Law,  began  to  incline  to  offers  of  peace ;  and, 
at  last,  drew  him  so  far,  as  that  he  yielded  to  those  two 
main  conditions,  not  particularly  tor  myself,  but  for  the 
•whole  body  of  all  those  Prebends  which  pertained  to  the 
Church  :  First,  that  he  would  be  content  to  cast  up  that 
fee-farm,  which  he  had  of  all  the  patrimony  of  that 
Church  ;  and,  disclaiming  it,  receive  that  which  he  held  of 
the  said  Church  by  lease,  from  us  the  several  Prebendaries 
ior  term,  whether  of  years,  or,  which  he  rather  desired,  of 
lives  :  Secondly,  that  he  would  raise  the  maintenance  of 
every  Prebend,  (whereof  some  were  but  forty  shillings, 


SOME  SPECIALITIES  IN  HIS  LIFE. 


XXXVH 


others  three  pounds,  others  four,  kc)  to  the  yearly  value 
of  thirty  pounds  to  each  man,  during  the  said  term  of  his 
lease  :  only,  for  a  monument  of  my  labour  and  success 
herein,  I  required  that  my  Prebend  might  have  the  addi- 
tion of  ten  pounds  per  annum,  above  the  fellows.  We 
were  busily  treating  of  this  happy  match  for  that  poor 
Church  :  Sir  Walter  Leveson  was  not  only  willing,  but  for- 
ward :  the  then  Dean,  Mr.  Antonius  de  Dominis,  Arch- 
bishop of  Spalato,  gave  both  way  and  furtherance  to  the 
dispatch  :  all  had  been  most  happily  ended,  had  not  the 
scrupulousness  of  one  or  two  of  the  number  deferred  so 
advantageous  a  conclusion.  In  the  meanwhile,  Sir  Walter 
Leveson  dies ;  leaves  his  young  orphan  ward  to  the  King: 
all  our  hopes  were  now  blown  up ;  an  office  was  found  of 
all  those  lands  :  the  very  wonted  payments  were  denied, 
and  I  called  into  the  Court  of  Wards,  in  fair  likelihood,  to 
forego  my  former  hold  and  yielded  possession.  But  there, 
it  was  justly  awarded  by  the  Lord  Treasurer,  then  Master 
of  the  Wards,  that  the  orphan  could  have  no  more,  no 
other  right  than  the  father :  I  was,  therefore,  left  in  my 
former  state:  only,  upon  public  complaint  of  the  hard 
condition  wherein  the  orphan  was  left,  I  suffered  myself  to 
be  over-entreated,  to  abate  somewhat  of  that  evicted  com- 
position. Which  work  having  once  firmly  settled,  in  a  just 
pity  of  the  mean  provision,  if  not  the  destitution  of  so 
many  thousand  souls,  and  a  desire  and  care  to  have  them 
comfortably  provided  for  in  the  future,  I  resigned  up  the 
said  Prebend  to  a  worthy  preacher,  Mr.  Lee,  who  should 
constantly  reside  there,  and  painfully  instruct  that  great 
and  long  neglected  people :  which  he  hath  hitherto  per- 
formed, with  great  mutual  contentment  and  happy  suc- 
cess. 

Now  during  this  twenty-two  years  which  I  spent  at 
Waltham,  thrice  was  I  commanded  and  employed  abroad 
by  his  Majesty  in  public  service. 

First,  in  the  attendance  of  the  Right  Honourable  Earl 
of  Carlisle,  then  Lord  Viscount  Doncaster,  who  was  sent 
upon  a  Noble   Embassy,   with  a  gallant  retinue  into 


xxxv  in 


BISHOP  HALL'S  ACCOUNT  OF  HIMSELF. 


France  :  whose  entertainment  there,  the  annals  of  that  na- 
tion will  tell  to  posterity.  In  the  midst  of  that  service,  was 
I  surprised  with  a  miserable  distemper  of  body  ;  which 
ended  in  a  Diarrhoea  Biliosa,  not  without  some  beginning, 
and  further  threats  of  a  dysentery  :  wherewith  I  was 
brought  so  low,  that  there  seemed  small  hope  of  my  reco- 
very.   Mr.. Peter  Moulin,  to  whom  I  was  beholden  for  his 
frequent  visitations,  being  sent  by  my  Lord  Embassador  to 
inform  him  of  my  estate,  brought  him  so  sad  news  there- 
of, as  that  he  was  much  afflicted  therewith  ;  well  supposing 
his  welcome  to  Wall  ham  could  not  but  want  much  of  the 
heart  without  me.    Now  the  time  of  his  return  drew  on, 
Dr.  Moulin  kindly  offered  to  remove  me,  upon  his  Lord* 
ship's  departure,  to  his  own  house ;  promising  me  all  care-* 
ful  tendance.    I  thanked  him  ;  but  resolved,  if  I  could  but 
creep  homewards,  to  put  myself  upon  the  journey.  A  lit- 
ter was  provided  ;  but  of  so  little  ease,  that  Simeoiv's  pe- 
nitential lodging,  or  a  malefactor's  stocks,  had  been  less 
penal.     I  crawled  down  from  my  close  chamber  into  that 
carriage  :  In  qua  videbaris  mihi  efjerri,  tanquam  in  sanda- 
pild,  as  Mr.  Moulin  wrote  to  me  afterward.    That  misery 
had  I  endured  in  all  the  long  passage  from  Paris  to  Die  ppe, 
being  left  alone  to  the  surly  muleteers,  had  not  the  provi- 
dence of  my  good  God  brought  me  to  St.  Germains,  upon 
the  very  minute  of  the  setting  out  of  those  coaches,  which 
had  staid  there  upon  that  morning's  entertainment  of  my 
Lord  Ambassador.    How  glad  was  I,  that.  I  might  change 
my  seat  and  my  company  !  In  the  way,  beyond  all  ex- 
pectation, I  began  to  gather  some  strength.    Whether  the 
fresh  air  or  the  desires  of  my  home  revived  me,  so  much 
•ind  so  sudden  reparation  ensued,  as  was  sensible  to  my- 
self, and  seemed  strange  to  others.    Being  shipped  at 
Dieppe,  the  sea  used  us  hardly  :  and,  after  a  night  and  a 
great  part,  of  the  day  following,  sent  us  back  well  wind- 
beaten,  to  that  bleak  haven  whence  we  set  forth,  forcing 
us  to  a  more  pleasing  land-passage,  through  the  coasts  of 
Normandy  and  Picardy :  tow  ai  ds  the  end  whereof,  my 
former  complaint  returned  upon  me;  and,  landing  with 


SOME  SPECIALITIES  IN  HIS  LIFE. 


xxxix 


mo,  accompanied  me  to  and  at  my  long-desired  home.  In 
this  my  absence,  it  pleased  his  Majesty  graciously  to  con- 
fer upon  me  the  Deanery  of  Worcester ;  which,  being  pro- 
mised to  me  before  my  departure,  was  deeply  hazarded 
while  I  was  out  of  sight,  by  the  importunity  and  under- 
hand-working of  some  great  ones.  Dr.  Field,  the  learned 
and  worthy  Dean  of  Gloucester,  was  by  his  potent  friends 
put  into  such  assurances  of  it,  that  I  heard  where  he  took 
care  for  the  furnishing  that  ample  house.  But  God  fetched 
it  about  for  me,  in  that  absence  and  nescience  of  mine: 
and  that  reverend  and  better  deserving  Divine  was  well 
satisfied  with  greater  hopes,  and  soon  after  exchanged  this 
mortal  estate  for  an  immortal  and  glorious. 

Before  I  could  go  down,  through  my  continuing  weak- 
ness, to  take  possession  of  that  dignity,  his  Majesty 
pleased  to  design  me  to  his  attendance  into  Scotland : 
where  the  great  love  and  respect  that  I  found,  both  from 
the  Ministers  and  People,  wrought  me  no  small  envy  from 
some  of  our  own.  Upon  a  commonly  received  supposition, 
that  his  Majesty  would  have  no  further  use  of  his  Chap- 
lains, after  his  remove  from  Edinburgh,  (forasmuch  as  the 
Divines  of  the  country,  whoreof  there  is  great  store  and 
worthy  choice,  were  allotted  to  every  station)  I  easily  ob- 
tained, through  the  solicitation  of  my  ever  honoured  Lord 
of  Carlisle,  to  return  with  him  before  my  fellows.  No 
sooner  was  I  gone,  than  suggestions  were  made  to  his 
Majesty  of  my  over  plausible  demeanour  and  doctrine  to 
that  already  prejudicate  people  :  for  which  his  Majesty 
alter  a  gracious  acknowledgment  of  my  good  service  there 
done,  called  me,  upon  his  return,  to  a  favourable  and  mild 
account ;  not  more  freely  professing  what  informations 
had  been  given  against  me,  than  his  own  full  satisfaction, 
with  my  sincere  and  just  answer ;  as  whose  excellent  wis- 
dom well  saw,  that  such  winning  carriage  of  mine  could 
be  no  hinderance  to  those  his  great  designs.  At  the  same 
time,  his  Majesty,  having  secret  notice  that  a  letter  was 
coming  to  me  from  Mr.  W.  Struther,  a  reverend  and 
learned  Divine  of  Edinburgh,  concerning  the  Five  Points 


BISHOP  HALL'S  ACCOUNT  OF  HlMSF.f.F. 


then  proposed  and  urged  to  the  Church  of  Scotland  ;  was 
pleased  to  impose  upon  me  an  earnest  charge,  to  give  him 
a  full  answer  in  satisfaction  to  those  his  modest  doubts, 
and  at  large  to  declare  my  judgment  concerning  those  re- 
quired observations  :  which  I  speedily  performed,  with  so 
great  approbation  of  his  Majesty,  that  it  pleased  him  to 
command  a  transcript  thereof,  as  I  was  informed,  publicly 
read  in  their  most  famous  University  :  the  effect  where- 
of his  Majesty  vouchsafed  to  signify  afterwards,  unto 
some  of  my  best  friends,  with  allowance  beyond  my 
hopes. 

It  was  not  long  after,  that  his  Majesty,  finding  the  exi- 
gence of  the  affairs  of  the  Netherlandish  Churches  to  re- 
quire it,  both  advised  them  to  a  Synodieal  Decision  ;  and, 
by  his  incomparable  wisdom,  promoted  the  work.  My  un- 
worthiness  was  named  for  one  of  the  Assistants  of  that 
Honourable,  Grave,  and  Reverend  Meeting  :  where  I  fail- 
ed not  of  my  best  service  to  that  woefully  distracted 
Church.  By  that  time  I  had  stayed  some  two  months 
there,  the  unquietness  of  the  nights  in  those  garrison 
towns,  working  upon  the  tender  disposition  of  my  body, 
brought  me  to  such  weakness  through  want  of  rest,  that  it 
began  to  disable  me  from  attending  the  Synod  :  which 
yet,  as  I  might,  I  forced  myself  unto  ;  as  wishing  tliat  my 
zeal  could  have  discountenanced  my  infirmity.  Where,  in 
the  mean  time,  it  is  well  worthy  of  my  thankful  remem- 
brance, that,  being  in  an  afflicted  and  languishing  condi- 
tion for  a  fortnight  together  with  that  sleepless  distemper, 
yet  it  pleased  God,  the  very  night  before  I  was  to  preach 
the  Latin  Sermon  to  the  Synod,  to  bestow  upon  me  such 
a  comfortable  refreshing  of  sufficient  sleep,  as  whereby  my 
spirits  were  revived,  and  I  was  enabled  with  much  vigour 
and  vivacity  to  perform  that  service  :  which  was  no  sooner 
done,  than  my  former  complaint  renewed  upon  me,  and 
prevailed  against  all  the  remedies  that  the  counsel  of  phy- 
sicians could  advise  me  unto  ;  so  as,  after  long  strife,  I 
was  compelled  to  yield  unto  a  retirement,  for  the  time,  to 
the  Hague ;  to  see  if  change  of  place  and  more  careful  at- 


SOME  SPECIALITIES  IN  HIS  LIFE. 


Xli 


tendance,  which  I  had  in  the  house  of  our  Right  Honour- 
able Ambassador,  the  Lord  Carleton,  now  Viscount  Dor- 
chester, might  recover  me.  But  when,  notwithstanding 
all  means,  my  weakness  increased  so  far,  as  that  there  was 
small  likelihood  left  of  so  much  strength  remaining,  as 
might  bring  me  back  into  England,  it  pleased  his  Gracious 
Majesty,  by  our  Noble  Ambassador's  solicitation,  to  call 
me  off;  and  to  substitute  a  worthy  Divine,  Air.  Dr. 
Goade,  in  my  unwillingly  forsaken  room.  Returning  by 
Dort,  I  sent  in  my  sad  farewell  to  that  grave  Assembly ; 
who,  by  common  vote,  sent  to  me  the  President  of  the 
Synod  and  the  Assistants,  with  a  respective  and  gracious 
valediction.  Neither  did  the  Deputies  of  my  Lords  the 
States  neglect,  after  a  very  respectful  compliment  sent 
from  them  to  me  by  Daniel  Ueinsius,  to  visit  me :  and, 
after  a  noble  acknowledgment  of  more  good  service  from 
me  than  I  durst  own,  dismissed  me  with  an  honourable  re- 
tribution ;  and  sent  after  me  a  rich  medal  of  gold,  the 
portraiture  of  the  Synod,  for  a  precious  monument  of  their 
respects  to  my  poor  endeavours :  who  failed  not,  while  I 
was  at  the  Hague,  to  impart  unto  them  my  poor  advice, 
concerning  the  proceeding  of  that  Synodical  Meeting. 
The  difficulties  of  my  return,  in  such  weakness,  were  many 
and  great :  wherein,  if  ever,  God  manifested  his  special 
Providence  to  me,  in  overruling  the  cross  accidents  of  that 
passage  ;  and,  after  many  dangers  and  despairs,  contriving 
my  sale  arrival. 

After  not  many  years'  settling  at  home,  it  grieved  my 
soul,  to  see  our  own  Church  begin  to  sicken  of  the  same 
disease,  which  we  had  endeavoured  to  cure  in  our  neigh- 
bours. Mr.  Montague's  tart  and  vehement  assertions  of 
.some  positions,  near  of  kin  to  the  Remonstrants  of  Ne- 
therland,  gave,  occasion  of  raising  no  small  broil  in  the 
Church.  Sides  were  taken :  pulpits  every  where  rang  of 
these  opinions  :  but  parliaments  took  notice  of  the  divi- 
sion, and  questioned  the  occasioner.  Now,  as  one  that 
desired  to  do  all  good  offices  to  our  dear  and  common 
Mother,  I  set  my  thoughts  on  work,  how  so  dangerous  a 


xlii 


nisiiop  hall's  account  of  himself. 


quarrel  might  be  happily  composed  :  and,  finding  that 
mis-taking  was  more  guilty  of  this  dissention,  than  mis- 
believing ;  (since  it  plainly  appeared  to  me,  that  Mr. 
Montague  meant  to  express,  not  Arminius,  but  B.  Ove- 
rall, a  more  moderate  and  safe  author,  however  he  sped  in 
delivery  of  him ;)  I  wrote  a  little  project  of  pacification, 
wherein  I  desired  to  rectify  the  judgment  of  men,  con- 
cerning this  misapprehended  controversy  ;  shewing  them 
the  true  party  in  this  unseasonable  plea :  and,  because  B. 
Overall  went  a  midway,  betwixt  the  two  opinions  which 
he  held  extreme,  and  must  needs  therefore  somewhat  differ 
from  the  commonly-received  tenet  in  these  points,  I  ga- 
thered out  of  B.  Overall  on  the  one  side,  and  out  of  our 
English  Divines  at  Dort  on  the  other,  such  common  pro- 
positions concerning  these  Five  busy  Articles,  as  wherein 
both  of  them  are  fully  agreed.  All  which  being  put  to- 
gether, seemed  unto  me  to  make  up  so  sufficient  a  body  of 
accorded  truth,  that  all  other  questions  moved  hereabouts 
appeared  merely  superfluous  ;  and  every  moderate  Chris- 
tian might  find  where  to  rest  himself,  without  hazard  of 
contradiction.  These  I  made  bold,  by  the  hands  of  Dr. 
Young  the  worthy  Dean  of  Winchester,  to  present  to  his 
Excellent  Majesty,  together  with  an  humble  motion  of  a 
peaceable  silence  to  be  enjoined  to  both  parts,  in  those 
other  collateral  and  needless  disquisitions  :  which,  if  they 
might  befit  the  Schools  of  Academical  Disputants,  could 
not  certainly  sound  well  from  the  Pulpits  of  Popular  Au- 
ditories. Those  reconciliatory  papers  fell  under  the  eyes 
of  some  grave  Divines  on  both  parts.  Mr.  Montague 
professed  that  he  had  seen  them,  and  would  subscribe  to 
them  very  willingly  :  others,  that  were  contrarily  minded, 
both  English,  Scottish,  and  French  Divines,  proffered 
their  hands  to  a  no  less  ready  subscription.  So  as  much 
peace  promised  to  result,  out  of  that  weak  and  poor  en- 
terprise, had  not  the  confused  noise  of  the  misconstruc- 
tions of  those,  who  never  saw  the  work,  crying  it  down  for 
the  very  name's  sake,  meeting  with  the  royal  edict  of  a 
general  inhibition,  buried  it  in  a  secure  silence. 


SOME  SPECIALITIES  IN  HIS  LIFE. 


xliii 


I  was  scorched  a  little  with  this  flame,  which  I  desired 
to  quench  :  yet  this  could  not  stay  my  hand  from  thrusting 
itself  into  a  hotter  fire. 

Some  insolent  Romanists,  Jesuits  especially,  in  their 
bold  disputations,  (which,  in  the  time  of  the  treaty  of 
the  Spanish  Match  and  the  calm  of  that  relaxation,  were 
very  frequent,)  pressed  nothing  so  much,  as  a  Catalogue 
of  the  Professors  of  our  Religion  to  be  deduced  from  the 
primitive  times ;  and,  with  the  peremptory  challenge  of 
the  impossibility  of  this  pedigree,  dazzled  the  eyes  of  the 
simple  :  while  some  of  our  learned  men,  undertaking  to 
satisfy  so  needless  and  unjust  a  demand,  gave,  as  I  con- 
ceived, great  advantage  to  the  adversary.  In  a  just  indig- 
nation to  see  us  thus  wronged  by  misstating  the  question 
betwixt  us,  as  if  we,  yielding  ourselves  of  another  Church, 
originally  and  fundamentally  different,  should  make  good 
our  own  erection  upon  the  ruins,  yea,  the  nullity  of  theirs; 
and,  well  considering  the  infinite  and  great  inconve- 
niences, that  must  needs  follow  upon  this  defence ;  I  ad- 
ventured to  set  my  pen  on  work  ;  desiring  to  rectify  the 
opinions  of  those  men,  whom  an  ignorant  zeal  had  trans- 
ported, to  the  prejudice  of  our  holy  cause  :  laying  forth 
the  damnable  corruptions  of  the  Roman  Church,  yet 
making  our  game  of  the  outward  visibility  thereof ;  and, 
by  this  means,  putting  them  to  the  probation  of  those 
newly  obtruded  corruptions,  which  are  truly  guilty  of  the 
breach  betwixt  us.  The  drift  whereof  being  not  well  con- 
ceived, by  some  spirits  that,  were  not  so  wise  as  fervent,  I 
was  suddenly  exposed  to  the  rash  censures  of  many  well 
affected  and  zealous  Protestants  ;  as  if  I  had,  in  a  remis- 
sion to  my  wonted  zeal  to  the  truth,  attributed  too  much 
to  the  Roman  Church,  and  strengthened  the  adversaries' 
hands  and  weakened  our  own.  This  envy  I  was  fain  to 
take  off,  by  my  speedy  Apologetical  Advertisement  ;  and, 
after  that,  by  my  Reconciler,  seconded  with  the  unanimous 
Letters  of  such  reverend,  learned,  sound  Divines  *  both 

*  13,  Morton.  B.  Davcnant.  Dr.  Ptideaux,  Dr.  Primrose. 


xliv  bishop  hall's  account  of  himself. 

Bishops  and  Doctors,  as  wnose  undoubtable  authority  was 
able  to  bear  down  calumny  itself:  which  done,  I  did,  by 
a  seasonable  moderation,  provide  for  the  peace  of  the 
Church,  in  silencing  both  my  defendants  and  challengers, 
in  this  unkind  and  ill-raised  quarrel. 

Immediately  before  the  publishing  of  this  Tractate, 
(which  did  not  a  little  aggravate  the  envy  and  suspicion) 
I  was  by  his  Majesty  raised  to  the  Bishopric  of  Exeter ; 
having  formerly,  with  much  humble  deprecation,  refused 
the  See  of  Gloucester  earnestly  proffered  unto  me.  How, 
beyond  all  expectation,  it  pleased  God  to  place  me  in  that 
Western  Charge ;  which,  if  the  Duke  of  Buckingham's 
letters,  he  being  then  in  France,  had  arrived  but  some 
hours  sooner,  I  had  been  defeated  of;  and,  by  what  strange 
means  it  pleased  God  to  make  up  the  competency  of  that 
provision,  by  the  unthought  of  addition  of  the  Rectory  of 
St.  Breok  within  that  Diocese  ;  if  I  should  fully  relate, 
the  circumstances,  would  ibrce  the  confession  of  an  extra- 
ordinary hand  of  God  in  the  disposing  of  those  events. 

I  entered  upon  that  place,  not  without  much  prejudice 
and  suspicion  on  some  hands :  for  some,  that  sat  at  the 
stern  of  the  Church,  had  me  in  great  jealousy  for  too  much 
favour  of  Puritanism.  1  soon  had  intelligence  who  were 
set  over  me  for  espials.  My  ways  were  curiously  ob- 
served, and  scanned.  However,  I  took  the  resolution  to 
follow  those  courses,  which  might  most  conduce  to  the 
peace  and  happiness  of  my  new  and  weighty  charge. 
Finding,  therefore,  some  factious  spirits  very  busy  in  that 
Diocese,  I  used  all  fair  and  gentle  means  to  win  them  to 
good  order  ;  and  therein  so  happily  prevailed,  that,  saving 
two  of  that  numerous  Clergy  who  continuing  in  their  re- 
fractoriness fled  away  from  censure,  they  were  all  perfectly 
reclaimed:  so  as  I  had  not  one  Minister  professedly  oppo- 
site to  the  anciently  received  orders  (for  I  was  never  guilty 
of  urging  any  new  impositions)  of  the  Church  in  that 
large  Diocese. 

Thus  we  went  on  comfortably  together,  till  some  per- 
sons of  note  in  the  Clergy,  being  guilty  of  their  own  neg- 


SOME  SPECIALITIES  IN  HIS  LIFE. 


xlv 


Iigence  and  disorderly  courses,  began  to  envy  our  success ; 
and,  finding  me  ever  ready  to  encourage  those  whom  I 
found  conscionably  forward  and  painful  in  their  places,  and 
Willingly  giving  way  to  orthodox  and  peaceable  Lectures 
in  several  parts  of  my  Diocese,  opened  their  mouths  against 
me,  both  obliquely  in  the  Pulpit  and  directly  at  the  Court ; 
complaining  of  my  too  much  indulgence  to  persons  dis- 
affected, and  my  too  much  liberty  of  frequent  Lecturings 
within  my  charge.  The  billows  went  so  high,  that  I  was 
three  several  times  upon  my  knee  to  his  Majesty,  to  an- 
swer these  great  criminations  :  and  what  contestation  I 
had  with  some  great  Lords  concerning  these  particulars, 
it  would  be  too  long  to  report :  only  this  j  under  how  dark 
a  cloud  I  was  hereupon  I  was  so  sensible,  that  I  plainly 
told  the  Lord  Archbishop  of  Canterbury,  that  rather  than 
I  would  be  obnoxious  to  those  slanderous  tongues  of  his 
misinformers,  I  would  cast  up  my  rochet.  I  knew  I  went 
right  ways,  and  would  not  endure  to  live  under  undeserved 
suspicions. 

What  messages  of  caution  I  had  from  some  of  my  wary- 
brethren,  and  what  expostulatory  letters  I  had  from  above, 
I  need  not  relate.  Sure  I  am,  I  had  peace  and  comfort  at 
home,  in  the  happy  sense  of  that  general  unanimity  and 
loving  correspondence  of  my  Clergy,  till,  in  the  last  year 
of  my  presiding  there,  after  the  svnodical  oath  was  set  on 
foot,  (which  yet  I  did  never  tender  to  any  one  Minister 
of  my  Diocese)  by  the  incitation  of  some  busy  interlopers 
of  the  neighbour  county,  some  of  them  began  to  enter  into 
an  unkind  contestation  with  me,  about  the  election  of 
Clerks  of  the  Convocation ;  whom  they  secretly,  without 
ever  acquainting  me  with  their  desire  or  purpose,  as 
driving  to  that  end  which  we  see  now  accomplished,  would 
needs  nominate  and  set  up  in  competition  to  those,  whom 
I  had,  after  the  usual  form,  recommended  to  them.  That 
they  had  a  right  to  free  voices  in  that  choice,  I  denied  not : 
only,  I  had  reason  to  take  it  unkindly,  that  they  would 
work  underhand,  without  me,  and  against  me  ;  professing, 
that  if  they  had  beforehand  made  their  desires  known  to 


xlvi  bishop  hall's  account  of  himself. 

me,  I  should  willingly  have  gone  along  with  them  in  their 
election.  It  came  to  the  poll.  Those  of  my  nomination 
carried  it. 

The  Parliament  begun.  After  some  hard  tugging  there, 
returning  home  upon  a  recess,  I  was  met  on  the  way,  and 
cheerfully  welcomed  with  some  hundreds. 

In  no  worse  terms,  I  left  that  my  once  dear  Diocese : 
when,  returning  to  Westminster,  I  was  soon  called  by  his 
Majesty,  who  was  then  in  the  north,  to  a  remove  to  Nor* 
wich. 

But  how  I  took  the  Tower  in  my  way,  and  how  I  have 
been  dealt  with  since  my  repair  hither,  I  could  be  lavish  in 
the  sad  report ;  ever  desiring  my  Good  God,  to  enlarge 
my  heart  in  thankfulness  to  him  for  the  sensible  experience 
I  have  had  of  his  Fatherly  hand  over  me  in  the  deepest  of 
all  my  afflictions,  and  to  strengthen  me  for  whatsoever 
other  trials  he  shall  be  pleased  to  call  me  unto;  that,  being 
found  faithful  unto  the  death,  I  may  obtain  that  crown  of 
life,  which  he  hath  ordained  for  all  those  that  overcome. 


A 

LETTER 

SENT  FROM  THE  TOWER, 

TO  A 

PRIVATE  FRIEND : 

AND  BY  HIM  THOUGHT  FIT  TO  BE  PUBLISHED. 


TO  MY  MUCH  RESPECTED  GOOD  FRIEND, 

MR.  H.  S. 


WORTHY  SIR  : 

You  think  it  strange,  that  I  should  salute  you  from  hence. 
How  can  you  choose,  when  I  do  yet  still  wonder  to  see 
myself  here  ?  My  intentions  and  this  place  are  such  stran- 
gers, that  I  cannot  enough  marvel  how  they  met. 

But,  howsoever,  I  do  in  all  humility  kiss  the  rod,  where- 
with I  smart ;  as  well  knowing  whose  hand  it  is,  that 
wields  it.  To  that  Infinite  Justice  who  can  be  innocent  ? 
but  to  my  King  and  Country  never  heart  was  or  can  be 
more  clear ;  and  I  shall  beshrew  my  hand,  if  it  shall  have, 
against  my  thoughts,  justly  offended  either  :  and  if  either 
say  so,  I  reply  not ;  as  having  learned  not  to  contest  with 
those,  that  can  command  legions. 

In  the  mean  time,  it  is  a  kind,  but  a  cold  compliment, 
that  you  pity  me ;  an  affection  well  placed,  where  a  man 


xlviii  bishop  hall's  account  of  HIMSELF. 

deserves  to  be  miserable :  for  me,  I  am  not  conscious  of 
such  merit. 

You  tell  me  in  what  fair  terms  I  stood,  not  long  since, 
with  the  world  ;  how  large  room  I  had  in  the  hearts  of  the 
best  men  :  but  can  you  tell  me  how  I  lost  it  ?  Truly,  I 
have,  in  the  presence  of  my  God,  narrowly  searched  my 
own  bosom.  I  have  impartially  ransacked  this  fag-end  of 
my  life,  and  curiously  examined  every  step  of  my  ways ; 
and  I  cannot,  by  the  most  exact  scrutiny  of  my  saddest 
thoughts,  find  what  it  is,  that  I  have  done  to  forfeit  that 
good  estimation,  wherewith,  you  say,  1  was  once  blessed. 

I  can  secret  by  arraign  and  condemn  myself  of  infinite 
transgressions,  before  the  tribunal  of  heaven.  Who,  that 
dwells  in  a  house  of  clay,  can  be  pure  in  his  sight,  that 
charged  his  angels  with  folly  ?  O  God,  when  I  look  upon 
the  reckonings  betwixt  thee  and  my  soul,  and  find  my 
shameful  arrears,  I  can  be  most  vile  in  my  own  sight,  be- 
cause I  have  deserved  to  be  so  in  thine  :  yet,  even  then,  in 
thy  most  pure  eyes,  give  me  leave,  the  while,  not  to  abdi- 
cate my  sincerity.  Thou  knowest  my  heart  desires  to  be 
right  with  thee,  whatever  my  failings  may  have  been  ;  and 
I  know  what  value  thou  puttest  upon  those  sincere  desires, 
notw  ithstanding  all  the  intermixtures  of  our  miserable  in- 
firmities. These  I  can  penitently  bewail  to  thee  :  but,  in 
the  mean  time,  what  have  I  done  to  men  ?  Let  them  not 
spare  to  shame  me,  with  the  late  sinful  declinations  of  my 
age  ;  and  fetch  blushes,  if  they  can,  from  a  wrinkled  face. 

Let  mine  enemies  (for  such  I  perceive  I  have,  and  those 
are  the  surest  monitors)  say  what  I  have  offended.  For 
their  better  irritation,  my  clear  conscience  bids  me  boldly 
to  take  up  the  challenge  of  good  Samuel,  Behold,  here  I 
am  !  Witness  against  vie  before  the  Lord,  and  before  his 
Anointed :  zvhose  ox  have  I  taken  t  or  zvhose  ass  have  I 
taken  f  or  whom  have  I  defrauded  ?  zvhom  have  I  oppres- 
sed f  or  of  zvhose  hand  have  I  received  any  bribe.,  to  blind- 
mine  eyes  therezvith  f  and  I  will  restore  it  you. 

Can  they  say,  that  I  bore  up  the  reins  of  government 
too  hard  ;  and  exercised  my  jurisdiction  in  a  rigorous  and 


-HIS  LETTER  SENT  FROM  THE  TOWER.  xlix 

tyrannical  way,  insolently  lording  it  over  my  charge  ? 
Malice  itself,  perhaps,  would,  but  dare  not  speak  it ;  or,  if 
it  should,  the  attestation  of  so  grave  and  numerous  a 
Clergy  would  choak  such  impudence.  Let  them  witness, 
whether  they  were  not  still  entertained  by  me  with  an 
equal  return  of  reverence,  as  if  they  had  been  all  Bishops 
with  me,  or  I  only  a  Presbyter  with  them  ;  according  to 
the  old  rule  of  Egbert,  Archbishop  of  York,  Intra  domain 
'Episcgpus  collegam  se  Presbyteroram  esse  cognoscat.  Let 
them  say,  whether  ought  here  looked  like  despotical ;  or 
t  sounded  rather  of  imperious  commands,  than  of  brotherly 
complying  :  whether  I  have  not  rather,  from  some  be- 
holders, undergone  the  censure  of  a  too  humble  remiss- 
ness ;  as,  perhaps,  stooping  too  low  beneath  the  eminence 
of  Episcopal  dignity  :  whether  I  have  not  suffered  as  much 
in  some  opinions,  for  the  winning  mildness  of  my  adminis- 
tration, as  some  others  for  a  rough  severity. 

Can  they  say,  for  this  aspersion  is  likewise  common,  that 
I  barred  the  free  course  of  religious  exercises,  by  the  sup- 
pression of  painful  and  peaceable  preachers  ?  If  shame  will 
suffer  any  man  to  object  it,  let  me  challenge  him  to  in- 
stance but  in  one  name.  Nay,  the  contrary  is  so  famously- 
known  in  the  western  parts,  that  every  mouth  will  herein 
justify  me.  What  free  admission  and  encouragement  have 
I  always  given  to  all  the  sons  of  peace,  that  came  with 
God's  message  in  their  mouths  !  What  missuggestions 
have  I  waved  !  What  blows  have  I  borne  off,  in  the  behalf 
of  some  of  them,  from  some  gainsayers  !  How  have  I 
often  and  publicly  professed,  that,  as  well  might  we  com- 
plain of  too  many  stars  in  the  sky,  as  too  many  orthodox 
preachers  in  the  Church  ! 

Can  they  complain,  that  I  fretted  the  necks  of  my 
Clergy  with  the  uneasy  yoke  of  new  and  illegal  imposi- 
tions ?  Let  them,  whom  I  have  thus  hurt,  blazon  my  un- 
just severity,  and  write  their  wrongs  in  marble  :  but  if,  dis- 
liking all  novel  devices,  I  have  held  close  to  those  ancient 
rules  which  limited  the  audience  of  our  godly  prede- 
cessors ;  if  I  have  grated  upon  no  man's  conscience  by 

d 


i 


BISHOP  HALL'S  ACCOUNT  OF  HIMSELF. 


the  pressure,  no  not  by  the  tender,  of  the  late  oath,  of 
any  unprescribed  ceremony ;  if  I  have  freely,  in  the  Com- 
mittee appointed  by  the  most  Honourable  House  of  Peers, 
declared  my  open  dislike  in  all  innovations,  both  in  doc- 
trine and  rites  ;  why  doth  my  innocence  suffer  ? 

Can  they  challenge  me  as  a  close  and  back-stair-friend 
to  Popery  or  Arminianism,  who  have,  in  so  many  pulpits 
and  so  many  presses,  cried  down  both  ?  Surely,  the  very 
paper,  that  I  have  spent  in  the  refutation  of  both  these,  is 
enough  to  stop  more  mouths  than  can  be  guilty  of  this  ca- 
lumny. 

Can  they  check  me  with  a  lazy  silence  in  my  place  ? 
with  infrequence  of  preaching  ?  Let  the  populous  audito- 
ries where  I  have  lived  witness,  whether,  having  furnished 
all  the  churches  near  me  with  able  preachers,  I  took  not 
all  opportunities  of  supplying  such  courses,  as  I  could  get, 
in  my  Cathedral ;  and,  when  my  tongue  was  silent,  let  the 
world  say  whether  my  hand  were  idle. 

Lastly  a  since  no  man  can  offer  to  upbraid  me  with  too 
much  pompj  which  is  wont  to  be  the  common  eye-sore  of 
our  envied  profession,  can  any  man  pretend  to  a  ground  of 
taxing  me,  as  I  perceive  one  of  late  hath  most  unjustly 
done,  of  too  much  worldliness  ?  Surely,  of  all  the  vices 
forbidden  in  the  Decalogue,  there  is  no  one,  which  my 
heart,  upon  due  examination,  can  less  fasten  upon  me,  than 
this.  He,  that  made  it,  knows  that  he  hath  put  into  it  a  true 
disregard  (save  only  for  necessary  use)  of  the  world ;  and 
of  all  that  it  can  boast  of,  whether  for  profit,  pleasure,  or 
glory.  No,  no :  I  know  the  world  too  well  to  dote  upon 
it.  While  I  am  in  it,  how  can  I  but  use  it  ?  but  I  never 
care^  never  yield  to  enjoy  it.  It  were  too  great  a  shame 
for  a  Philosopher,  a  Christian,  a  Divine,  a  Bishop,  to  have 
his  thoughts  grovelling  here  upon  earth :  for  mine,  they 
scorn  the  employment  j  and  look  upon  all  these  sublunary 
distractions,  as  upon  this  man's  false  censure,  with  no  other 
eyes  than  contempt » 

And  noWj  Sir,  since  I  cannot,  how  secretly  faulty  soever, 
guess  at  my  own  public  exorbitances,  I  beseech  you, 


HIS  LETTER  SENT  FROM  THE  TOWER.  li 

n  here  you  hear  my  name  traduced,  learn  of  mine  accusers, 
whose  lyncean  eyes  would  seem  to  see  farther  into  me  than 
my  own,  what  singular  offence  I  have  committed. 

If,  perhaps,  my  calling  be  my  crime  ;  it  is  no  other, 
than  the  most  holy  Fathers  of  the  Church  in  the  primitive 
and  succeeding  ages,  ever  since  the  Apostles,  many  of 
them  also  blessed  Martyrs,  have  been  guilty  of :  it  is  no 
other,  than  all  the  holy  Doctors  of  the  Church  in  all  gene- 
rations, ever  since,  have  celebrated,  as  most  reverend,  sa- 
cred, inviolable :  it  is  no  other,  than  all  the  whole  Chris* 
tian  World,  excepting  one  small  handfull  of  our  neigh- 
bours, whose  condition  denied  them  the  opportunity  of 
this  government,  is  known  to  enjoy,  without  contradic- 
tion.   How  safe  is  it  erring  in  such  company ! 

If  my  offence  be  in  my  pen,  which  hath,  as  it  could, 
undertaken  the  defence  of  that  Apostolical  Institution, 
though  with  all  modesty  and  fair  respects  to  the  Churches 
differing  from  us,  I  cannot  deprecate  a  truth ;  and  such,  I 
know  this  to  be :  which  is  since  so  cleared  by  better 
hands,  that  I  well  hope  the  better  informed  world  cannot 
but  sit  down  convinced.  Neither  doubt  I,  but  that,  as 
metals  receive  the  more  lustre  with  often  rubbing,  this 
truth,  the  more  agitation  it  undergoes,  shall  appear  every 
day  more  glorious.  Only,  may  the  Good  Spirit  of  the  Al* 
mighty  speedily  dispell  all  those  dusky  prejudices  from  the 
minds  of  men,  which  may  hinder  them  from  discerning  so 
clear  a  light. 

Shortly,  then,  knowing  nothing  by  myself,  whereby  I 
have  deserved  to  alienate  any  good  heart  from  me,  I  shall 
resolve  to  rest  securely  upon  the  acquitting  testimony  of  a 
good  conscience,  and  the  secret  approbation  of  my  Gra- 
cious God  :  who  shall  one  day  cause  mine  innocence  to 
break  forth  as  the  morning  light,  and  shall  give  me  beauty 
for  bonds  -3  and,  for  a  light  and  momentary  affliction,  an 
eternal  weight  of  glory. 

To  shut  up  all,  and  to  surcease  your  trouble,  I  write  not 
this,  as  one,  that  would  pump  for  favour  and  reputation 
from  the  disaffected  multitude;  for  I  charge  you,  that 


Hi  bishop  hall's  account  of  himself. 

what  passes  privately  betwixt  us  may  not  fall  under  com- 
mon eyes  :  but  only  with  this  desire  and  intention,  to  give 
you  true  grounds,  where  you  shall  hear  my  name  mention- 
ed with  a  causeless  offence,  to  yield  me  a  just  and  chari- 
table vindication.  Go  you  on  still  to  do  the  office  of  a 
true  friend,  yea  the  duty  of  a  just  man,  in  speaking  in  the 
cause  of  the  dumb,  in  righting  the  innocent,  in  rectifying 
the  mis-guided  ;  and,  lastly,  the  service  of  a  faithful  and 
Christian  Patriot,  in  helping  the  times  with  the  best  aid  of 
your  prayers  ;  which  is  daily  the  task  of 

Your  much  devoted, 

and  thankful  friend, 

JOS.  NORVIC. 

From  the  Tower, 
Jan.  24,  1641. 


BISHOP  HALL'S 


HARD  MEASURE. 


Nothing  could  be  more  plain,  than  that,  upon  the  call  of 
this  Parliament,  and  before,  there  was  a  general  plot  and 
resolution  of  the  Faction  to  alter  the  Government  of  the 
Church  especially.  The  height  and  insolency  of  some 
Church-Governors,  as  was  conceived,  and  the  ungrounded 
imposition  of  some  innovations  upon  the  Churches  both 
of  Scotland  and  England,  gave  a  fit  hint  to  the  project. 

In  the  vacancy,  therefore,  before  the  summons,  and  im- 
mediately after  it,  there  was  great  working  secretly  for  the 
designation  and  election,  as  of  Knights  and  Burgesses,  so 
especially,  beyond  all  former  use,  of  the  Clerks  of  Convo- 
cation :  when  now  the  Clergy  were  stirred  up  to  contest 
with  and  oppose  their  Diocesans,  for  the  choice  of  such 
men  as  were  most  inclined  to  the  favour  of  an  alteration. 

The  Parliament  was  no  sooner  sat,  than  many  vehement 
speeches  were  made  against  established  Church-Govern- 
ment, and  enforcement  of  extirpation  both  root  and 
branch. 

And,  because  it  was  not  fit  to  set  upon  all  at  once,  the 
resolution  was  to  begin  with  those  Bishops,  which  had  sub- 
scribed to  the  Canons  then  lately  published,  upon  the 
shutting  up  of  the  former  Parliament :  whom  they  would 
first  have  had  accused  of  treason  ;  but  that  not  appearing 
feasible,  they  thought  best  to  indict  them  of  very  high 
crimes  and  offences  against  the  King,  the  Parliament,  and 
Kingdom:  which  was  prosecuted  with  great  earnestness 
by  some  prime  Lawyers  in  the  House  of  Commons,  and 
entertained  with  like  fervency  by  some  zealous  Lords  in 
the  House  of  Peers    every  of  those  particular  Canons 


liv 


BISHOP  HALL'S  ACCOUNT  OF  HIMSELF. 


being  pressed  to  the  most  envious  and  dangerous  height 
that  was  possible  :  the  Archbishop  of  York  (was  designed 
for  the  report)  aggravating  Mr.  Maynard's  criminations  to 
the  utmost,  not  without  some  interspersions  of  his  own. 
The  Counsel  of  the  accused  Bishops  gave  in  such  a  de- 
murring Answer,  as  stopped  the  mouth  of  that  heinous  in- 
dictment. 

When  this  prevailed  not,  it  was  contrived  to  draw  Peti- 
tions accusatory  from  many  parts  of  the  kingdom,  against 
Episcopal  Government ;  and  the  promoters  of  the  peti- 
tions were  entertained  with  great  respects  :  whereas  the 
many  petitions  of  the  opposite  part,  though  subscribed 
with  many  thousand  hands,  were  slighted  and  disregarded. 

Withal,  the  rabble  of  London,  after  their  petitions  cun- 
ningly and  upon  other  pretences  procured,  were  stirred  up 
to  come  to  the  Houses  personally  to  crave  justice  both 
against  the  Earl  of  Strafford,  first ;  and,  then,  against  the 
Archbishop  of  Canterbury  ;  and,  lastly,  against  the  whole 
Order  of  Bishops  :  which,  coming  at  first  unarmed,  were 
checked  by  some  well  willers,  and  easily  persuaded  to  gird 
on  their  rusty  swords  ;  and,  so  accoutered,  came  by  thou- 
sands to  the  Houses,  filling  all  the  outer  rooms,  offering 
foul  abuses  to  the  Bishops  as  they  passed,  crying  out  "No 
Bishops,  no  Bishops ;"  and,  at  last,  after  divers  days'  as- 
sembling, grown  to  that  height  of  fury,  that  many  of  them, 
whereof  Sir  Richard  Wiseman  professed  (though  to  his 
cost)  to  be  Captain,  came  with  resolution  of  some  violent 
courses,  insomuch  that  many  swords  were  drawn  hereupon 
at  Westminster,  and  the  rout  did  not  stick  openly  to  pro- 
fess that  they  would  pull  the  Bishops  in  pieces.  Messages 
were  sent  down  to  them  from  the  Lords.  They  still  held 
firm,  both  to  the  place  and  their  bloody  resolutions.  It 
now  grew  to  be  torch-light.  One  of  the  Lords,  the  Mar- 
quis of  Hertford,  came  up  to  the  Bishops'  Form,  told  us 
that  we  were  in  great  danger,  advised  us  to  take  some 
course  for  our  own  safety ;  and,  being  desired  to  tell  us 
what  he  thought  was  the  best  way,  counselled  us  to  conti- 
nue in  the  Parliament  House  all  that  night ;  "  For,"  saith 


HIS  HARD  MEASURE. 


iv 


he,  "  these  people  vow  they  will  watch  you  at  your  going 
out,  and  will  search  every  coach  for  you  with  torches,  so 
as  you  cannot  escape."  Hereupon  the  House  of  Lords 
was  moved  for  some  Order,  for  the  preventing  their  muti- 
nous and  riotous  meetings,  Messages  were  sent  down  to 
the  House  of  Commons,  to  this  purpose,  more  than  once : 
nothing  was  effected  ;  but,  for  the  present,  (forsomuch  as 
all  the  danger  was  at  the  rising  of  the  House)  it  was  ear- 
nestly desired  of  the  Lords  that  some  care  might  be  taken 
of  our  safety.  The  motion  was  received  by  some  Lords 
with  a  smile.  Some  other  Lords,  as  the  Earl  of  Man- 
chester, undertook  the  protection  of  the  Archbishop  of 
York  and  his  company  (whose  shelter  I  went  under)  to 
their  lodgings.  The  rest,  some  of  them  by  their  long 
stay,  others  by  secret  and  far-fetched  passages,  escaped 
home. 

It  was  not  for  us  to  venture  any  more  to  the  House, 
without  some  better  assurance.  Upon  our  resolved  for- 
bearance therefore,  the  Archbishop  of  York  sent  for  us  to 
his  lodging  at  Westminster ;  lays  before  us  the  perilous 
condition  we  were  in ;  advises  for  remedy,  except  we 
meant  utterly  to  abandon  our  right  and  to  desert  our  sta^ 
tion  in  Parliament,  to  petition  both  his  Majesty  and  the 
Parliament,  that,  since  we  were  legally  called  by  his  Ma- 
jesty's Writ  to  give  our  attendance  in  Parliament,  we 
might  be  secured,  in  the  performance  of  our  duty  and 
service,  against  those  dangers  that  threatened  us ;  and, 
withal,  to  protest  against  any  such  Acts,  as  should  be 
made  during  the  time  of  our  forced  absence  :  for  which  he 
assured  us  there  were  many  precedents  in  former  Parlia- 
ments ;  and  which  if  we  did  not,  we  should  betray  the 
trust  committed  to  us  by  his  Majesty,  and  shamefully  be- 
tray and  abdicate  the  due  right  both  of  ourselves  and  suc- 
cessors. 

To  this  purpose,  in  our  presence,  he  drew  up  the  said 
Petition  and  Protestation ;  avowing  it  to  be  legal,  just, 
and  agreeable  to  all  former  proceedings  ;  and,  being  fair 
written,  sent  it  to  our  several  lodgings  for  our  hands  f 


Ivi 


BISHOP  HALL'S  ACCOUNT  OF  HIMSELF. 


■which  we  accordingly  subscribed,  intending  yet  to  have 
had  some  further  consultation  concerning  the  delivering 
and  whole  carriage  of  it.  But,  ere  we  could  suppose  it 
to  be  in  any  hand  but  his  own,  the  first  news  we  heard 
was,  that  there  were  Messengers  addressed  to  fetch  us  in 
to  the  Parliament,  upon  an  accusation  of  High  Treason. 
For,  whereas  this  Paper  was  to  have  been  delivered,  first 
to  his  Majesty's  Secretary  ;  and,  after  perusal  by  him,  to 
his  Majesty  ;  and,  after,  from  his  Majesty  to  the  Parlia- 
ment ;  and,  for  that  purpose,  to  the  Lord  Keeper,  the 
Lord  Littleton,  who  was  the  Speaker  of  the  House  of 
Peers ;  all  these  professed  not  to  have  perused  it  at  all : 
but  the  said  Lord  Keeper,  willing  enough  to  take  this  ad- 
vantage of  engratiating  himself  with  the  House  of  Com- 
mons and  the  Faction,  to  which  he  knew  himself  suffi- 
ciently obnoxious,  finding  what  use  might  be  made  of  it 
by  prejudicate  minds,  reads  the  same  openly  in  the  House 
of  the  Lords :  and,  when  he  found  some  of  the  Faction 
apprehensive  enough  of  misconstruction,  aggravates  the 
matter,  as  highly  offensive  and  of  dangerous  consequence; 
and,  thereupon,  not  without  much  heat  and  vehemence, 
and  with  an  ill  preface,  it  is  sent  down  to  the  House  of 
Commons  :  tswhere  it  was  entertained  heinously;  Glynne, 
with  a  full  mouth,  crying  it  up  for  no  less  than  a  High 
Treason ;  and  some  comparing,  yea  preferring  it  to  the 
Powder-Plot. 

We,  poor  souls,  who  little  thought  that  we  had  done 
any  thing  that  might  deserve  a  chiding,  are  now7  called  to 
our  knees  at  the  Bar,  and  charged  severally  with  High 
Treason ;  being  not  a  little  astonished  at  the  suddenness 
of  this  crimination,  compared  with  the  perfect  innocence 
of  our  own  intentions,  which  were  only  to  bring  us  to  our 
due  places  in  Parliament  with  safety  and  speed,  without 
the  least  purpose  of  any  man's  offence. 

But,  now,  traitors  we  are  in  all  the  haste,  and  must  be 
dealt  with  accordingly :  for,  on  January  SOth,  in  all  the 
extremity  of  frost,  at  Eight  o'Clock  in  the  dark  evening, 
are  we  voted  to  the  Tower :  only,  two  of  our  number  had 


HIS  HARD  MEASURE. 


Ivii 


the  favour  of  the  Black  Rod,  by  reason  of  their  age ; 
which,  though  desired  by  a  Noble  Lord  on  my  behalf, 
would  not  be  yielded.  Wherein  I  acknowledge  and  bless 
the  gracious  Providence  of  my  God  :  for,  had  I  been  gra- 
tified, I  had  been  undone  both  in  Body  and  purse ;  the 
rooms  being  strait,  and  the  expence  beyond  the  reach  of 
my  estate. 

The  news  of  this  our  crime  and  imprisonment  soon  flew 
over  the  city ;  and  was  entertained  by  our  well-willers, 
with  ringing  of  bells  and  bonfires  :  who  now  gave  us  up, 
not  without  great  triumph,  for  lost  men  ;  railing  on  our 
perfidiousness,  and  adjudging  us  to  what  foul  deaths  they 
pleased.  And  what  scurrile  and  malicious  pamphlets  were 
scattered  abroad,  throughout  the  kingdom  and  in  foreign 
parts,  blazoning  our  infamy,  and  exaggerating  our  trea- 
sonable practices  !  What  insultations  of  our  adversaries 
was  here  ! 

Being  caged  sure  enough  in  the  Tower,  the  Faction  had 
now  fair  opportunities  to  work  their  own  designs.  They 
therefore,  taking  the  advantage  of  our  restraint,  renew 
that  Bill  of  theirs,  which  had  been  twice  before*  rejected 
since  the  beginning  of  this  Session,  for  taking  away  the 
votes  of  Bishops  in  Parliament  ;  and,  in  a  very  thin  house* 
easily  passed  it :  which  once  condescended  unto,  I  know 
not  by  what  strong  importunity,  his  Majesty's  assent  was 
drawn  from  him  thereunto. 

We  now,  instead  of  looking  after  our  wonted  honour, 
must  bend  our  thoughts  upon  the  guarding  of  our  lives  j 
which  were,  with  no  small  eagerness,  pursued  by  the  vio- 
lent agents  of  the  Faction.  Their  sharpest  wits  and 
greatest  lawyers  were  employed  to  advance  our  impeach- 
ment to  the  height  :  but  the  more  they  looked  into  the 
business,  the  less  crime  could  they  find  to  fasten  upon  us : 
insomuch  as  one  of  their  oracles,  being  demanded  his 
judgment  concerning  the  fact,  professed  to  them,  they 
might  with  as  good  reason  accuse  us  of  adultery.  Yet, 
still,  there  are  we  fast  :  only,  upon  petition  to  the  Lords, 
obtaining  this  favour,  that  we  might  have  Counsel  assigned 


Iviii  bishop  hall's  account  of  himself. 

us :  which,  after  much  reluctation,  and  many  menaces 
from  the  Commons  against  any  man  of  all  the  Commoners 
of  England  that  should  dare  to  be  seen  to  plead  in  this 
case  against  the  Representative  Body  of  the  Commons, 
was  granted  us.  The  Lords  assigned  us  five  very  worthy 
Lawyers,  which  were  nominated  to  them  by  us.  What 
trouble  and  charge  it  was,  to  procure  those  eminent  and 
much  employed  Counsellors  to  come  to  the  Tower  to  us ; 
and  to  observe  the  strict  laws  of  the  place,  for  the  time  of 
their  ingress,  regress,  and  stay  ;  it  is  not  hard  to  judge. 

After  we  had  lain  some  weeks  there,  however  the  House 
of  Commons,  upon  the  first  tender  of  our  impeachment, 
had  desired  we  might  be  brought  to  a  speedy  trial ;  yet 
now,  finding  belike  how  little  ground  they  had  for  so 
high  an  accusation,  they  began  to  slack  their  pace,  and 
suffered  us  rather  to  languish  under  the  fear  of  so  dreadful 
arraignment :  insomuch  as  now  we  are  fain  to  petition  the 
Lords,  that  we  might  be  brought  to  our  trial. 

The  day  was  set :  several  summons  were  sent  unto  us  ; 
the  Lieutenant  had  his  warrant  to  bring  us  to  the  Bar  : 
our  impeachment  was  severally  read  :  we  pleaded  "  Not 
Guilty,"  modo  et  formd;  and  desired  speedy  proceedings  ; 
which  were  accordingly  promised,  but  not  too  hastily  per- 
formed. 

After  long  expectation,  another  day  was  appointed  for 
the  prosecution  of  this  high  charge.  The  Lieutenant 
brought  us  again  to  the  Bar ;  but,  with  what  shoutings, 
and  exclamations,  and  furious  expressions  of  the  enraged 
multitudes,  it  is  not  easy  to  apprehend.  Being  thither 
brought,  and  severally  charged  upon  our  knees,  and  having 
given  our  negative  answers  to  every  particular,  two 
Bishops,  London  and  Winchester,  were  called  in  as  wit- 
nesses against  us,  as  in  that  point,  whether  they  appre- 
hended any  such  cause  of  fears  in  the  tumults  assembled, 
as  that  we  were  in  any  danger  of  our  lives  in  coming  to 
the  Parliament  :  who  seemed  to  incline  to  a  favourable  re- 
port of  the  perils  threatened  j  though  one  of  them  was 
convinced  out  of  his  own  mouth,  from  the  relations  him* 


HIS  HARD  MEASURE. 


lix 


self  had  made  at  the  Archbishop  of  York's  lodging.  After 
this  Wild  and  GJynne  made  fearful  declamations  at  the 
Bar  against  us ;  aggravating  all  the  circumstances  of  our 
pretended  Treason  to  the  highest  pitch.  Our  Counsel 
were  all  ready  at  the  Bar  to  plead  for  us,  in  answer  of 
their  clamorous  and  envious  suggestions :  but  it  was  an- 
swered, that  it  was  now  too  late,  we  should  have  another 
day  :  which  day,  to  this  day  never  came. 

The  circumstances  of  that  day's  hearing  were  more 
grievous  to  us  than  the  substance:  for  we  were  all 
thronged  so  miserably  in  that  strait  room  before  the  Bar, 
by  reason  that  the  whole  House  of  Commons  would  be 
there  to  see  the  prizes  of  their  champions  played,  that  we 
stood  the  whole  afternoon  in  no  small  torture ;  sweating 
and  struggling  with  a  merciless  multitude  ;  till,  being  dis- 
missed, we  were  exposed  to  a  new  and  greater  danger. 
For  now,  in  the  dark,  we  must  to  the  Tower ;  by  barge, 
as  we  came  :  and  must  shoot  the  Bridge,  with  no  small 
peril.  That  God,  under  whose  merciful  protection  we  are, 
returned  us  to  our  safe  custody. 

There  now  we  lay  some  weeks  longer,  expecting  the 
summons  for  our  Counsels'  answer ;  but,  instead  thereof, 
our  merciful  adversaries,  well  finding  how  sure  they  would 
be  foiled  in  that  unjust  charge  of  Treason,  now,  under 
pretences  of  remitting  the  height  of  rigour,  wave  their 
former  Impeachment  of  Treason  against  us,  and  fall  upon 
an  Accusation  of  High  Misdemeanours  in  that  our  Pro- 
testation, and  will  have  us  prosecuted  as  guilty  of  a  Pre- 
munire :  although,  as  we  conceive,  the  law  hath  ever  been 
in  the  Parliamentary  Proceedings,  that,  if  a  man  were  im- 
peached, as  of  treason,  being  the  highest  crime,  the  accu- 
sant must  hold  him  to  the  proof  of  the  charge,  and  may 
not  fall  to  any  meaner  impeachment  upon  failing  of  the 
higher. 

But,  in  this  case  of  ours,  it  fell  out  otherwise  :  for,  al- 
though the  Lords  had  openly  promised  us,  that  nothing 
should  be  done  against  us,  till  we  and  our  Counsel  were 


Ix  BISHOP  HALl's  ACCOUNT  OF  HIMSELF. 

heard  in  our  defence ;  yet  the  next  news  we  heard  was, 
the  House  of  Commons  had  drawn  up  a  Bill  against  us, 
wherein  they  declared  us  to  be  delinquents  of  a  very  high 
nature,  and  had  thereupon  desired  to  have  it  enacted  that 
all  our  spiritual  means  should  be  taken  away  :  only,  there 
should  be  a  yearly  allowance  to  every  Bishop  for  his  main- 
tenance, according  to  a  proportion  by  them  set  down  j 
wherein  they  were  pleased  that  my  share  should  come  to 
four  hundred  pounds  per  annum.  This  Bill  was  sent  up 
to  the  Lords,  and  by  them  also  passed  ;  and  there  hath, 
ever  since,  lain. 

This  being  done,  after  some  weeks  more,  finding  the 
Tower,  besides  the  restraint,  chargeable  ;  we  petitioned 
the  Lords,  that  we  might  be  admitted  to  bail,  and  have 
liberty  to  return  to  our  homes.  The  Earl  of  Essex  moved : 
the  Lords  assented,  took  our  bail,  sent  to  the  Lieutenant 
of  the  Tower  for  our  discharge.  How  glad  were  we  to  fly 
out  of  our  cage  ! 

No  sooner  was  I  got  to  my  lodging,  than  I  thought  to 
take  a  little  fresh  air,  in  St.  James's  Park ;  and,  in  my  re- 
turn to  my  lodging  in  the  Dean's  Yard,  passing  through 
Westminster  Hall,  was  saluted  by  divers  of  my  parliament 
acquaintance,  and  welcomed  to  my  liberty  :  whereupon, 
some,  that  looked  upon  me  with  an  evil  eye,  run  into  the 
House,  and  complained  that  the  Bishops  were  let  loose : 
which,  it  seems,  was  not  well  taken  by  the  House  of  Com- 
mons ;  who  presently  sent  a  kind  of  expostulation  to  the 
Lords,  that  they  had  dismissed  so  heinous  offenders  with- 
out their  knowledge  and  consent. 

Scarce  had  I  rested  me  in  my  lodging,  when  there 
comes  a  messenger  to  me  with  the  sad  news,  of  sending  me 
and  the  rest  of  my  brethren  the  Bishops  back  to  the  Tower 
again :  from  whence  we  came,  thither  we  must  go ;  and 
thither  I  went  with  a  heavy,  but  I  thank  God,  not  impa- 
tient, heart. 

After  we  had  continued  there  some  six  weeks  longer, 
and  earnestly  petitioned  to  return  to  our  several  charges, 


HIS  HARD  MEASURE. 


Ixi 


we  were  upon  five  thousand  pound  Bond  dismissed  ;  with 
a  clause  of  revocation  at  a  short  warning,  if  occasion 
i  should  require. 

Thus  having  spent  the  time  betwixt  New-year's  Even 
and  Whitsuntide  in  those  safe  walls,  where  we  by  turns 
preached  every  Lord's  Day  to  a  large  auditory  of  citizens, 
we  disposed  of  ourselves  to  the  places  of  our  several  abode. 

For  myself,  addressing  myself  to  Norwich,  whither  it 
was  his  Majesty's  pleasure  to  remove  me,  I  was  at  the  first 
received  with  more  respect,  than  in  such  times  I  could  have 
expected.  There  I  preached,  the  day  after  my  arrival,  to 
a  numerous  and  attentive  people :  neither  was  sparing  of 
my  pains  in  this  kind,  ever  since  ;  till  the  times,  growing 
every  day  more  impatient  of  a  Bishop,  threatened  my 
silencing. 

There,  though  with  some  secret  murmurs  of  disaffected 
persons,  I  enjoyed  peace  till  the  ordinance  of  sequestra- 
tion came  forth,  which  was  in  the  latter  end  of  March  fol- 
lowing ;  then,  when  I  was  in  hope  of  receiving  the  profits 
of  the  fore-going  half  year  for  the  maintenance  of  my  fa- 
mily, were  all  my  rents  stopped  and  diverted  :  and,  in  the 
April  following,  came  the  Sequestrators,  viz.  Mr.  Sotherton, 
Mr.  Tooley,  Mr.  JRawley,  Mr.  Greenwood,  &c.  to  the  Pa- 
lace ;  and  told  me,  that,  by  virtue  of  an  Ordinance  of  Par- 
liament, they  must  seize  upon  the  palace,  and  all  the  estate 
I  had  both  real  and  personal ;  and,  accordingly,  sent  cer- 
tain men  appointed  by  them,  whereof  one  had  been  burnt 
in  the  hand  for  the  mark  of  his  truth,  to  apprize  all  the 
goods  that  were  in  the  house  :  which  they  accordingly  exe- 
cuted with  all  diligent  severity  ;  not  leaving  so  much  as  a 
dozen  of  trenchers,  or  my  children's  pictures,  out  of  their 
curious  inventory.  Yea,  they  would  have  apprized  our 
very  wearing  clothes,  had  not  Alderman  Tooley  and  She- 
riff Rawley,  to  whom  I  sent  to  require  their  judgment  con- 
cerning the  Ordinance  in  this  point,  declared  their  opinion 
to  the  contrary. 

These  goods,  both  library  and  household  stuff  of  all 


Ixii  bishop  hall's  account  of  himself. 

kinds,  were  appointed  to  be  exposed  to  public  sale.  Much 
enquiry  there  was,  when  the  goods  should  be  brought  to 
the  market ;  but,  in  the  mean  time,  Mrs.  Goodwin,  a  re- 
ligious good  gentlewoman,  whom  yet  we  had  never  known 
or  seen,  being  moved  with  compassion,  very  kindly  offered 
to  lay  down  to  the  Sequestrators  that  whole  sum  which  the 
goods  were  valued  at ;  and  was  pleased  to  leave  them  in 
our  hands  for  our  use,  till  we  might  be  able  to  repurchase 
them  :  which  she  did  accordingly,  and  had  the  goods  for- 
mally delivered  to  her  by  Mr.  Smith  and  Mr.  Greenwood, 
two  Sequestrators.  As  for  the  books,  several  stationers 
looked  on  them ;  but  were  not  forward  to  buy  them :  at 
last,  Mr.  Cook,  a  worthy  Divine  of  this  Diocese,  gave 
bond  to  the  Sequestrators,  to  pay  to  them  the  whole  sum 
whereat  they  were  set :  which  was  afterwards  satisfied  out 
of  that  poor  pittance,  that  was  allowed  me  for  my  mainte- 
nance. As  for  my  evidences,  they  required  them  from  me. 
I  denied  them ;  as  not  holding  myself  bound  to  deliver 
them.  They  nailed  and  sealed  up  the  door,  and  took  such 
as  they  found  with  me. 

But,  before  this,  the  first  noise  that  I  heard  of  my  trou- 
ble was,  that,  one  morning,  before  my  servants  were  up, 
there  came  to  my  gates  one  Wright,  a  London  Trooper, 
attended  with  others,  requiring  entrance ;  threatening,  if 
they  were  not  admitted,  to  break  open  the  gates  :  whom  I 
found,  at  my  first  sight,  struggling  with  one  of  my  servants 
for  a  pistol,  which  he  had  in  his  hand.  I  demanded  his 
business  at  that  unseasonable  time.  He  told  me,  he  came 
to  search  for  arms  and  ammunition,  of  which  I  must  be 
disarmed.  I  told  him  I  had  only  two  muskets  in  the  house, 
and  no  other  military  provision.  He,  not  resting  upon  my 
word,  searched  round  about  the  house,  looked  into  the 
chests  and  trunks,  examined  the  vessels  in  the  cellar.  Find- 
ing no  other  warlike  furniture,  he  asked  me  what  horses  I 
had,  for  his  commission  was  to  take  them  also.  I  told  him 
how  poorly  I  was  stored,  and  that  my  age  would  not  allow 
me  to  travel  on  foot.    In  conclusion,  he  took  one  horse,  for 


HIS  HARD  MEASURE. 


Ixiii 


ihe  present :  and  such  accompt  of  another,  that  he  did 
highly  expostulate  with  me  afterwards,  that  I  had  other- 
wise disposed  of  him. 

Now  not  only  my  rents  present,  but  the  arrearages  of 
the  former  years  which  I  had  in  favour  forborne  to  some 
tenants,  being  treacherously  confessed  to  the  Sequestrators, 
were  by  them  called  for,  and  taken  from  me.  Neither  was 
there  any  course  at  all  taken  for  my  maintenance.  I 
therefore  addressed  myself  to  the  Committee  sitting  here 
at  Norwich  ;  and  desired  them  to  give  order  for  some 
means,  out  of  that  large  patrimony  of  the  Church,  to  be 
allowed  me.  They  all  thought  it  very  just ;  and,  there 
.  being  present  Sir  Tho.  Woodhouse,  and  Sir  John  Potts, 
parliament  men,  it  was  moved,  and  held  fit  by  them  and 
the  rest,  that  the  proportion  which  the  votes  of  the  Parlia- 
ment had  pitched  upon,  v'xt.  four  hundred  pounds  per  an- 
num, should  be  allowed  to  me.  My  Lord  of  Manchester, 
who  was  then  conceived  to  have  great  power  in  matter  of 
these  sequestrations,  was  moved  herewith.  He  apprehend- 
ed it  very  just  and  reasonable;  and  wrote  to  the  Committee 
here,  to  set  out  so  many  of  the  manors  belonging  to  this 
Bishoprick,  as  should  amount  to  the  said  sum  of  four  hun- 
dred pounds  annually  ;  which  was  answerably  done,  under 
the  hands  of  the  whole  Table. 

And  now  I  well  hoped,  I  should  yet  have  a  good  com- 
petency of  maintenance  out  of  that  plentiful  estate  which 
I  might  have  had  :  but  those  hopes  were  no  sooner  con- 
ceived, than  dashed;  for,  before  I  could  gather  up  one 
quarter's  rent,  there  comes  down  an  order  from  the  Com- 
mittee for  Sequestrations  above,  under  the  hand  of  Ser- 
geant Wild  the  Chairman,  procured  by  Mr.  Miles  Corbet, 
to  inhibit  any  such  allowance  ;  and  telling  our  Committee 
here,  that  neither  they,  nor  any  other,  had  power  to  allow 
me  any  thing  at  all :  but,  if  my  wife  found  herself  to  need 
a  maintenance  ;  upon  her  suit  to  the  Committee  of  Lords 
and  Commons,  it  might  be  granted  that  she  should  have  a 
fifth  part,  according  to  the  Ordinance,  allowed  for  the  sus- 
tentation  of  herself  and  her  family.    Hereupon  she  sends 


Ixiv  bishop  hall's  account  of  himself. 

a  petition  up  to  that  Committee ;  which,  after  a  long 
delay,  was  admitted  to  be  read,  and  an  order  granted  for 
the  fifth  part. 

But  still  the  rents  and  revenues,  both  of  my  Spiritual 
and  Temporal  Lands,  were  taken  up  by  the  Sequestrators, 
both  in  Norfolk,  and  Suffolk,  and  Essex,  and  we  kept  off 
from  either  allowance  or  accompt. 

At  last,  upon  much  pressing,  Beadle  the  Solicitor,  and 
Rust  the  Collector,  brought  in  an  account  to  the  Com- 
mittee, such  as  it  was  ;  but  so  confused  and  perplexed  and 
so  utterly  imperfect,  that  we  could  never  come  to  know 
what  a  fifth  part  meant :  but  they  were  content  that  I 
should  eat  my  books,  by  setting  off  the  sum,  engaged  for 
them  out  of  the  fifth  part.  Mean  time,  the  Synodalls 
both  in  Norfolk  and  Suffolk,  and  all  the  Spiritual  profits  of 
the  Diocese,  were  also  kept  back :  only  Ordinations  and 
Institutions  continued  a  while. 

But  after  the  Covenant  was  appointed  to  be  taken,  and 
was  generally  swallowed  of  both  Clergy  and  Laity,  my 
power  of  Ordination  was,  with  some  strange  violence,  re- 
strained :  for  when  I  was  going  on  in  my  wonted  course, 
which  no  law  or  ordinance  had  inhibited,  certain  forward 
volunteers  in  the  city,  banding  together,  stir  up  the  Mayor 
and  Aldermen  and  Sheriffs  to  call  me  to  an  account  for  an 
open  violation  of  their  Covenant. 

To  this  purpose,  divers  of  them  came  to  my  gates  at  a 
very  unseasonable  time  ;  and,  knocking  very  vehemently, 
required  to  speak  with  the  Bishop.  Messages  were  sent 
to  them  to  know  their  business  :  nothing  would  satisfy 
them  but  the  Bishop's  presence.  At  last,  I  came  down  to 
them,  and  demanded  what  the  matter  was :  they  would 
have  the  gate  opened,  and  then  they  would  tell  me.  I 
answered  that  I  would  know  them  better  first  :  if  they  had 
any  thing  to  say  to  me,  I  was  ready  to  hear  them.  They 
told  me  they  had  a  writing  to  me,  from  Mr.  Mayor,  and 
some  other  of  their  Magistrates.  The  paper  contained 
both  a  challenge  of  me  for  breaking  the  Covenant,  in  or- 
daining Ministers  j  and,  withal,  required  me  to  give  in  the 


HIS  HARD  MEASURE. 


Ixv 


names  of  those,  which  were  ordained  by  me  both  then  and 
formerly  since  the  Covenant.    My  answer  was,  that  Mr. 
Mayor  was  much  abused,  by  those,  who  had  misinformed 
him,  and  drawn  that  paper  from  him ;  that  I  would  the 
next  day  give  a  full  answer  to  the  writing.    They  moved 
that  my  answer  might  be  by  my  personal  appearance  at 
the  Guildhall.    I  asked  them  when  they  ever  heard  of  a 
Bishop  of  Norwich  appearing  before  a  Mayor.    I  knew 
mine  own  place ;  and  would  take  that  way  of  answer, 
which  I  thought  fit;  and  so  dismissed  them,  who  had  given 
out  that  day,  that  had  they  known  before  of  mine  ordain- 
ing, they  would  have  pulled  me  and  those  whom  I  ordain- 
ed out  of  the  chapel  by  the  ears. 

AVhile  I  received  nothing,  yet  something  was  required 
of  me.  They  were  not  ashamed,  after  they  had  taken 
away  and  sold  all  my  goods  and  personal  estate,  to  come 
to  me  for  assessments  and  monthly  payments  for  that 
estate,  which  they  had  taken  ;  and  took  Distresses  from 
me,  upon  my  most  just  denial ;  and  vehemently  required 
me  to  find  the  wonted  arms  of  my  predecessors,  when 
they  had  left  me  nothing. 

Many  insolencies  and  affronts  were,  in  all  this  time,  put 
upon  us.    One  while,  a  whole  rabble  of  volunteers  came 
to  my  gates  late,  when  they  were  locked  up,  and  called 
for  the  porter  to  give  them  entrance :  which  being  not 
yielded,  they  threatened  to  make  by  force ;  and,  had  not 
the  said  gates  been  very  strong,  they  had  done  it.  Others 
of  them  clambered  over  the  walls,  and  would  come  into 
my  house:  their  errand,  they  said,  was  to  search  for  de- 
linquents :  what  they  would  have  done  I  know  not,  had 
not  we  by  a  secret  way  sent  to  raise  the  officers  for  our 
rescue.    Another  while,  the  Sheriff  Toftes  and  Alderman 
Linsey,  attended  with  many  zealous  followers,  came  into 
my  chapel,  to  look  for  Superstitious  Pictures  and  Relics  of 
Idolatry ;  and  send  for  me,  to  let  me  know  they  found 
those  windows  full  of  images,  which  were  very  offensive, 
and  must  be  demolished,    I  told  them  they  were  the.  pic  - 

e 


Ixvi  bishop  hall's  account  of  himself. 

tures  of  some  antient  and  worthy  Bishops,  as  St.  Ambrose, 
Austin,  &c.  It  was  answered  me,  that  they  were  so  many 
Popes ;  and  one  younger  man  amongst  the  rest  (Town- 
send,  as  I  perceived  afterwards)  would  take  upon  him  to 
defend  that  every  Diocesan  Bishop  wasPope.  Iansweredhim 
with  some  scorn  ;  and  obtained  leave  that  I  might,  with  the 
least  loss  and  defacing  of  the  windows,  give  order  for  taking 
off  that  offence ;  which  I  did,  by  causing  the  heads  of 
those  pictures  to  be  taken  off,  since  1  knew  the  bodies 
could  not  offend. 

There  was  not  that  care  and  moderation  used,  in  re- 
forming the  Cathedral  Church  bordering  upon  my  Palace. 
It  is  no  other  than  tragical,  to  relate  the  carriage  of  that 
furious  sacrilege,  whereof  our  eyes  and  ears  were  the  sad 
witnesses,  under  the  authority  and  presence  of  Linsey, 
Toftes  the  Sheriff,  and  Greenwood.  Lord,  what  work  was 
here  !  what  clattering  of  glasses  !  what  beating  down  of 
walls !  what  tearing  up  of  monuments  !  what  pulling 
down  of  seats  !  what  wresting  out  of  irons  and  brass  from 
the  windows  and  graves  !  what  defacing  of  arms !  what 
demolishing  of  curious  stone-work,  that  had  not  any  re- 
presentation in  the  world,  but  only  of  the  cost  of  the  foun- 
der, and  skill  of  the  mason  !  what  tooting  and  piping  upon- 
the  destroyed  organ  pipes  !  and  what  a  hideous  triumph 
on  the  market-day  before  all  the  country ;  when,  in  a  kind 
of  sacrilegious  and  profane  procession,  all  the  organ  pipes, 
vestments,  both  copes  and  surplices,  together  with  the  lea- 
den cross  which  had  been  newly  sawn  down  from  over  the 
Green- Yard  Pulpit,  and  the  service  books  and  singing 
books  that  could  be  had,  were  carried  to  the  fire  in  the 
public  market-place;  a  lewd  wretch  walking  before  the 
train,  in  his  cope  trailing  in  the  dirt,  with  a  service-book 
in  his  hand,  imitating  in  an  impious  scorn  the  tune,  and 
usurping  the  words  of  the  litany  used  formerly  in  the 
Church.  Near  the  Public  Cross,  all  these  monuments  of 
idolatry  must  be  sacrificed  to  the  fire ;  not  without  much 
Ostentation  of  a  zealous  joy,  in  discharging  ordnance,  to 
the  cost  of  some,  who  professed  how  much  they  had  longed 


HIS  HARD  MEASURE. 


Ixvii 


to  see  that  day.  Neither  was  it  any  news  upon  this  Guild- 
day,  to  have  the  Cathedral,  now  open  on  all  sides,  to  be 
filled  with  musketeers,  waiting  for  the  Major's  return; 
drinking  and  tobacconing  as  freely,  as  if  it  had  turned  ale- 
house. 

Still  yet  I  remained  in  my  palace,  though  with  but  a 
poor  retinue  and  means ;  but  the  house  was  held  too  good 
for  me.  Many  messages  were  sent  by  Mr.  Corbet,  to  re- 
move me  thence.  The  first  pretence  was,  that  the  Com- 
.  mittee,  who  now  was  at  charge  for  a  house  to  sit  in,  might 
make  their  daily  Session  there ;  being  a  place  both  more 
public,  roomy,  and  chargeless.  The  Committee,  after 
many  consultatious,  resolved  it  convenient  to  remove  thi- 
ther ;  though  many  overtures  and  offers  were  made  to  the 
contrary.  Mr.  Corbet  was  impatient  of  my  stay  there ; 
and  procures  and  sends  peremptory  messages,  for  my  pre- 
sent dislodging  :  we  desired  to  have  some  time  allowed  for 
providing  some  other  mansion,  if  we  must  needs  be  cast 
out  of  this  ;  which  my  wife  was  so  willing  to  hold,  that  she 
offered,  if  the  charge  of  the  present  Committee  House 
were  the  thing  stood  upon,  she  would  be  content  to  de- 
fray the  sum  of  the  rent  of  that  house  of  her  fifth  part : 
but  that  might  not  be  yielded  :  out  we  must,  and  that  in 
three  weeks  warning  by  Midsummer  Day  then  approach- 
ing ;  so  as  we  might  have  lain  in  the  street  for  ought  I 
know,  had  not  the  Providence  of  God  so  ordered  it,  that 
a  neighbour  in  the  Close,  one  Mr.  Gostlin,  a  widower,  was 
content  to  void  his  house  for  us. 

This  hath  been  my  Measure ;  wherefore,  I  know  not  : 
Lord,  thou  knowest,  who  only  canst  remedy,  and  end,  and 
forgive  or  avenge  this  horrible  oppression. 


Scripsi  May  29, 
1647. 


JOS.  NORVIC. 


CONTEMPLATIONS 


VPON  THE 


PRINCIPAL  PASSAGES 


HOLY  STORY. 


VOL.  I. 


TO  THE  HIGH  AND  MIGHTY  PRINCE, 


HENRY,  PRINCE  OF  WALES, 


HIS  HIGHNESS'S  UNWORTHY  SERVANT, 
DEDICATES  ALL  HIS  LABOURS,  AND  WISHES  ALL  HAPPINESS, 


MOST  GRACIOUS  PRINCE  : 


A  his  work  of  mine,  which,  if  my  hopes  and  desires  fail 
me  not;  time  may  hereafter  make  great,  I  have  presumed 
both  to  dedicate  in  whole  to  your  Highness,  and  to  parcel 
out  in  severals  unto  subordinate  hands.  It  is  no  marvel  if 
books  have  this  freedom,  when  we  ourselves  can  and  ought 
to  be  all  your's,  while  we  are  our  own  and  others  under  you. 
I  dare  say,  these  meditations,  how  rude  soever  they  may 
fall  from  my  pen,  in  regard  of  their  subject  are  fit  for  a 
prince.  Here  your  Highness  shall  see  how  the  great  pat- 
tern of  princes,  the  King  of  Heaven,  hath  ever  ruled  the 
world  ;  how  his  substitutes,  earthly  kings,  have  ruled  it  un- 
der him,  and  with  what  success  either  of  glory  or  ruin. 
Both  your  peace  and  war  shall  find  here  holy  and  great  ex- 
amples. And  if  history  and  observation  be  the  best  coun- 
sellors of  your  youth,  what  story  can  be  so  wise  and  faith- 
ful as  that  which  God  hath  written  for  men,  wherein  you 
see  both  what  hath  been  done,  and  what  should  be  ?  What 
observation  so  worthy  as  that  which  is  both  raised  from 
God,  and  directed  to  him  ?  If  the  propriety  which  your 
Highness  justly  hath  in  the  Work  and  Author,  may  draw 
your  princely  eyes  and  heart  the  rather  to  these  holy  spe- 
culations, your  servant  shall  be  happier  in  this  f  ivour  than 
in  all  your  outward  bounty  ;  as  one  to  whom  your  spiritual 
progress  deserves  to  be  dearer  than  his  own  life  ;  and  whose 
daily  suit  is,  that  God  would  guide  your  steps  aright  in 
this  slippery  age,  and  continue  to  rejoice  all  good  hearts 
in  the  view  of  your  gracious  proceedings. 


Your  Highness's  humbly  devoted  servant, 

JOSEPH  HALL 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


BOOK  I. 


TO  THE  RIGHT  HONOURABLE 

THOMAS,  EARL  OF  EXETER, 

one  or  his  majesty's  most  honourable  privy  council, 

ALL  GRACE  AND  HAPPINESS. 
RIGHT  HONOURABLE  : 

I  KNEW  I  could  not  bestow  my  thoughts  better  than  upon  God's 
own  History,  so  full  of  edification  and  delight :  which  I  have  in 
such  sort  endeavoured  to  do,  that  I  shall  give  occasion  to  my  reader 
of  some  meditations,  which  perhaps  he  would  have  missed.  Every 
help  in  this  kind  deserves  to  be  precious.  J  present  the  first  part  to 
your  Honour ,  wherein  you  shall  see  the  world  both  made  and  smo- 
thered again  :  Man  in  the  glory  of  his  creation,  and  the  shame  of 
his  fall :  Paradise  at  once  made  and  lost :  The  first  man  killing 
his  seed,  the  second  his  brother.  If  in  these  I  shall  give  light  to 
the  thoughts  of  my  reader,  let  him  with  me  give  the  praise  to  Him 
from  whom  that  light  shone  forth  to  me.  To  whose  grace  and  pro* 
tection  I  humbly  commend  your  Lordship,  as 

Four  Honour's  unfeignedly  devoted 

in  all  observance  and  duty, 

JOSEPH  HALL. 


THE  CREATION. 

"What  can  I  sec,  O  God,  in  thy  creation,  but  miracles  of  won- 
ders ?  Thou  raadest  something  of  nothing,  and  of  that  something, 
all  things.  Thou,  which  wast  without  a  beginning,  gavest  a  be- 
ginning to  time,  and  to  the  world  in  time.  It  is  the  praise  of  us 
men,  it'  when  we  have  matter,  we  can  give  fashion :  thou  gavest  a 
being  to  the  matter,  without  form  ;  thou  gavest  a  form  to  that  mat- 
ter, and  a  glory  to  that  form.    If  we  can  but  finish  a  slight  and  im- 


4  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

perfect  matter  according  to  a  former  pattern,  it  is  the  height  of  our 
skill :  but  to  begin  that  which  never  was,  whereof  there  was  no 
example,  whereto  there  was  no  inclination,  wherein  there  was  no 
possibility  of  that  which  it  should  be,  is  proper  only  to  such  power 
as  thine  ;  the  infinite  power  of  an  infinite  creator :  with  us,  not  so 
much  as  a  thought  can  arise  without  some  matter  ;  but  here  with 
thee,  all  matter  arises  from  nothing.  How  easy  is  it  for  thee  to  re- 
pair all  out  of  something,  which  couldest  thus  fetch  all  out  of  no- 
thing !  Wherein  can  we  now  distrust  thee,  that  hast  proved  thy- 
self thus  omnipotent  ?  Behold  :  to  have  made  the  least  clod  of  no- 
thing, is  more  above  wonder,  than  to  multiply  a  world  ;  but  now 
the  matter  doth  not  more  praise  thy  power,  than  the  form  thy  wis- 
dom :  what  beauty  is  here  !  what  order !  what  order  in  working, 
what  beauty  in  the  work  ! 

Thou  mightest  have  made  all  the  world  perfect  in  an  instant,  but 
thou  wouldest  not.  That  will,  whicb  caused  thee  to  create,  is  rea- 
son enough  why  thou  didst  thus  create.  How  should  we  delibe- 
rate in  our  actions,  which  are  so  subject  to  imperfection  !  since  it 
pleased  thine  infinite  perfection,  not  out  of  need,  to  take  leisure. 
Neither  did  thy  wisdom  herein  proceed  in  time  onlv,  but  in  de- 
grees :  at  first  thou  madest  nothing  absolute  ;  first,  thou  madest 
things  which  should  have  being  without  life  ;  then,  those  which 
should  have  life  and  being  ;  lastly,  those  which  have  being,  life, 
reason  :  so  we  ourselves  in  the  ordinary  course  of  generation,  first 
live  the  life  of  vegetation,  then  of  sense,  of  reason  afterwards. 
That  instant  wherein  the  heaven  and  the  earth  were  created  in 
their  rude  matter,  there  was  neither  day  nor  light,  but  px-esentlv 
thou  madest  both  light  and  day.  While  we  have  this  example  of 
thine,  how  vainly  do  we  hope  to  be  perfect  at  once  !  It  is  well  for. 
us,  if  through  many  degrees  we  can  rise  to  our  consummation. 

But,  alas  !  what  was  the  very  heaven  itself  without  light  ?  how 
confused  !  how  formless  !  like  to  a  goodly  body  without  a  soul, 
like  a  soul  without  thee.  Thou  art  light,  and  in  thee  is  no  dark- 
ness. Oh  how  incomprehensibly  glorious  is  the  light  that  is  in 
thee,  since  one  glimpse  of  this  created  light,  gave  so  lively  a  glory 
to  all  thy  workmanship  !  This,  even  the  brute  creatures  can  be- 
hold ;  that,  not  the  very  angels.  That  shines  forth  only  to  the 
other  supreme  world  of  immortality,  this  to  the  basest  part  of  thy 
creation.  There. is  one  cause  of  our  darkness  on  earth,  and  of  the 
utter  darkness  in  hell-,  the  restraint  of  thy  light.  Shine  thou,  O 
God,  into  the  vast  corners  of  my  soul,  and  in  thy  light  I  shall  see 
light. 

But  whence,  O  God,  was  that  first  light  ?  The  sun  was  not 
made  till  the  fourth  day  ;  light,  the  first.  If  man  had  been,  he 
might  have  seen  all  lightsome ;  but  whence  it  had  come  he  could  not 
have  seen  ;  as  in  some  great  pond,  we  see  the  banks  full,  we  see 
not  the  springs  from  whence  that  water  riseth.  Thou  madest  the 
sun,  madest  the  light  without  the  sun,  before  the  sun,  that  so  light 
might  depend  upon  thee,  and  not  upon  thy  creature.  Thy  power 
will  not  be  limited  to  means.    It  was  easy  to  thee  to  make  a  hea- 


THE  CREATION.  5 

ven  without  a  sun,  light  without  a  heaven,  day  without  a  sun, 
time  without  a  day  :  it  is  good  reason  thou  shouldest  be  the  lord  of 
thine  own  works.  All  means  serve  thee :  why  do  we  weak  wretches 
distrust  thee,  in  the  want  of  those  means,  which  thou  canst  either 
command,  or  forbear  ?  How  plainly  wouldst  thou  teach  us,  that 
we  creatures  need  not  one  another,  so  long  as  we  have  thee  !  One 
day  we  shall  have  light  again  without  the  sun.  Thou  shalt  be  our 
sun;  thy  presence  shall  be  our  light:  light  is  sown  for  the  righ- 
teous. The  sun  and  light  is  but  for  the  world  below  itself ;  thine 
only  for  above.  Thou  givest  this  light  to  the  sun,  which  the  sun 
gives  to  the  world  :  that  light,  which  thou  shalt  once  give  us,  shall 
make  us  shine  like  the  sun  in  glory. 

Now  this  light  which  for  three  days  was  thus  dispersed  through 
the  whole  heavens,  it  pleased  thee  at  last  to  gather  and  uuite  into 
one  body  of  the  sun.  The  whole  heaven  was  our  sun,  before  the 
sun  was  created  :  but  now  one  star  must  be  the  treasury  of  light  to 
the  heaven  and  earth.  How  thou  lovest  the  union  and  reduction 
of  all  tilings  of  one  kind  to  their  own  head  and  centre  !  So  the 
waters  must  by  thy  command  be  gathered  into  one  place,  the  sea ; 
so  the  upper  waters  must  be  severed  by  these  airy  limits  from  the 
lower :  so  heavy  substances  hasten  downward,  and  light  mount  up; 
so  the  general  light  of  the  first  days  must  be  called  into  the  com- 
pass of  one  sun  ;  so  thou  wilt  once  gather  thine  elect,  from  all 
coasts  of  heaven,  to  the  participation  of  one  glory.  Why  do  we 
abide  our  thoughts  and  affections  scattered  from  thee,  from  thy 
saints,  from  thine  anointed?  Oh  let  this  light,  which  thou  hast  now 
spread  abroad  in  the  hearts  of  all  thine,  once  meet  in  thee  :  we  are 
as  thy  heavens  in  this  their  first  imperfection ;  be  thou  our  sun,  unto 
which  our  light  may  be  gathered. 

Yet  this  light  was  by  thee  interchanged  with  darkness,  which 
thou  niightest  as  easily  have  commanded  to  be  perpetual.  The 
continuance,  even  of  the  best  things,  cloyeth  and  wearieth  :  there 
is  nothing  but  thyself,  wherein  there  is  not  satiety.  So  pleasing  is 
the  vicissitude  of  things,  that  the  intercourse  even  of  those  occur- 
rents  which  in  their  own  nature  are  less  worthy,  gives  more  con- 
tentment, than  the  unaltered  estate  of  better.  The  day  dies  into 
night,  and  rises  into  the  morning  again,  that  we  might  not  expect 
any  stability  here  below,  but  in  perpetual  successions  :  it  is  always 
day  with  thee  above  ;  the  night  savoureth  only  of  mortality  :  why 
are  we  not  here  spiritually  as  we  shall  be  hereafter  ?  Since  thou 
hast  made  us  children  of  the  light,  and  of  the  day,  teach  us  to  walk 
ever  in  the  light  of  thy  presence,  not  in  the  darkness  of  error  and 
unbelief. 

Now  in  this  thine  enlightened  frame,  how  fitly,  how  wisely  are 
all  the  parts  disposed,  that  the  method  of  the  creation  might  answer 
the  matter,  and  the  form  both  !  Behold  all  purity  above  ;  below, 
the  dregs  and  Ices  of  all.  The  higher  I  go,  the  more  perfection  ; 
«ach  element  superior  to  other,  not  more  in  place  than  dignity  ; 
that  by  these  stairs  of  ascending  perfection,  our  thoughts  might 
climb  unto  the  top  of  all  glory,  and  might  know  thine  imperial 


6 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


heaven  no  less  glorious  above  the  visible,  than  those  above  the 
earth.  Oh  how  miserable  is  the  place  of  our  pilgrimage,  in  re- 
spect of  our  home !  Let  my  soul  tread  awhile  in  the  steps  of  thine 
own  proceedings;  and  so  think,  as  thou  wroughtest :  when  we 
Would  describe  a  man,  we  begin  not  at  the  feet  but  the  head  :  the 
head  of  thy  creation  is  the  heaven  ;  how  higii !  how  spacious !  how 
glorious !  It  is  a  wonder  that  we  can  look  up  to  so  admirable  a 
height,  and  that  the  very  eye  is  not  tired  in  the  way.  If  this  as- 
cending line  could  be  drawn  right  forwards,  some,  that  have  calcu- 
lated curiously,  have  found  it  five  hundred  years'  journey  unto  the 
starry  heaven.  I  do  not  examine  their  art;  O  Lord,  I  wonder  ra- 
ther at  thine,  which  hast  drawn  so  large  a  line  about  this  little 
point  of  earth :  for  in  the  plainest  rules  of  art  and  experience, 
the  compass  must  needs  be  six  times  as  much  as  half  the  height. 
We  think  one  island  great,  but  the  earth  unmeasurable.  If  we 
were  in  that  heaven  with  these  eyes,  the  whole  earth,  were  it  equal- 
ly enlightened,  would  seem  as  little  to  us,  as  now  the  least  star  in 
the  firmament  seems  to  us  upon  earth  :  and,  indeed,  how  few  stars 
are  so  little  as  it !  And  yet  how  many  void  and  ample  spaces  are 
there  beside  all  the  stars  !  The  hugeness  of  thy  work,  O  God,  is 
little  inferior  for  admiration  to  the  majesty  of  it. 

But,  oh  !  what  a  glorious  heaven  is  this,  which  thou  hast  spread 
over  our  heads !  With  how  precious  a  vault  hast  thou  walled  in 
this  our  inferior  world  !  What  worlds  of  light  hast  thou  set  above 
us  !  Those  things,  which  we  see,  are  wondrous :  but  those,  which 
we  believe  and  see  not,  are  yet  more.  Thou  dost  but  set  out 
these  unto  view,  to  shew  us  what  there  is  within.  How  propor- 
tionable arc  thy  works  to  thyself !  Kings  erect  not  cottages,  but 
set  forth  their  magnificence  in  sumptuous  buildings  :  so  hast  thou 
done,  O  King  of  Glory.  If  the  lowest  pavement  of  that  heaven  of 
thine  be  so  glorious,  what  shall  we  think  of  the  better  parts  yet  un- 
seen ?  And  if  this  sun  of  thine  be  of  such  brightness  and  majesty, 
oh  what  is  the  glory  of  the  maker  of  it  ?  And  yet  if  some  other 
of  thy  stars  were  let  down  as  low  as  it,  those  other  stars  would  be 
suns  to  us ;  which  now  thou  wouldst  rather  have  admired  in  their 
distance.  And  if  such  a  sky  be  prepared  for  the  use  and  benefit 
even  of  thine  enemies  also  upon  earth,  how  happy  shall  those  eter- 
nal tabernacles  be,  which  thou  hast  sequestered  for  thine  own  ! 

Behold  then  in  this  high  and  stately  building  of  thine,  I  see  three 
stages  ;  this  lowest  heaven  for  fowls,  for  vapour,  for  meteors :  the 
second,  for  the  stars:  the  third,  for  thine  angels  and  saints.  The 
first  is  thine  outward  court,  open  for  all :  the  second  is  the  body  of 
thy  covered  temple,  wherein  are  those  candles  of  heaven  perpe- 
tually burning:  tiie  third  is  thy  holy  of  holies.  In  the  first  is  tu- 
mult and  vanity:  in  the  second,  immutability  and  rest:  in  the 
third,  glory  and  blessedness.  The  first  we  feel ;  the  second  we  see ; 
the  third  we  believe.  In  these  two  lower  is  no  felicity  ;  for  nei- 
ther the  fowls  nor  stars  are  happy.  It  is  in  the  third  heaven  alone, 
where  thou,  O  blessed  Trinity,  enjoyest  thyself,  and  thy  glorified 
spirits  enjoy  thee.    It  is  the  manifestation  of  thy  glorious  presence, 


THE  CREATION.  7 

that  makes  Heaven  to  be  itself.  This  is  the  privilege  of  thy  chil- 
dren :  that  they  here  seeing  thee,  which  art  invisible,  by  the  eye 
of  faith,  have  already  begun  that  heaven,  which  the  perfect  sight  of 
thee  shall  make  perfect  above. 

Let  my  soul  then  let  these  heavens  alone,  till  it  may  see,  as  it  is 
seen :  that  we  may  descend  to  this  lowest  and  meanest  region  of 
heaven,  wherewith  our  senses  are  more  acquainted.  What  marvels 
do  even  here  meet  with  us  !  There  are  thy  clouds,  thy  bottles  of 
rain  ;  vessels  as  thin  as  the  liquor  which  is  contained  in  them : 
there  they  hang,  and  move,  though  weighty  with  their  burden : 
how  they  are  upheld,  and  why  they  fall,  here  and  now,  we  know 
not,  and  wonder.  These  thou  makest  one  while  as  some  airy  seas 
to  hold  water :  another  while,  as  some  airy  furnaces  whence  thou 
scattcrest  the  sudden  fires  unto  all  parts  of  the  earth,  astonishing 
the  world  with  the  fearful  noise  of  that  eruption  5  out  of  the  midst 
of  water  thou  fetchest  fire,  and  hard  stones  out  of  the  midst  of  thin 
vapours  :  another  while,  as  some  steel-glasses,  wherein  the  sun 
looks  and  shews  his  face  in  the  variety  of  those  colours  which  he 
hath  not.  There  are  thy  streams  of  light,  blazing  and  falling  stars, 
fires  darted  up  and  down  in  many  forms,  hollow  openings,  and,  as 
it  were,  gulphs  in  the  sky,  bright  circles  about  the  moon  and  other 
planets,  snows,  hail :  in  all  which  it  is  enough  to  admire  thy  hand, 
though  we  cannot  search  out  thine  action.  There  are  thy  subtle 
winds,  which  we  hear  and  feel,  yet  neither  can  sec  their  substance, 
nor  know  their  causes :  whence  and  whither  they  pass,  and  what 
they  are,  thou  knowest.  There  are  thy  fowls  of  all  shapes,  colours, 
notes,  and  natures :  whilst  I  compare  these  with  the  inhabitants  of 
that  other  heaven,  I  find  those  stars,  and  spirits  like  one  another; 
those  meteors  and  fowls,  in  as  many  varieties,  as  there  are  several 
creatures.  Why  is  this  ?  Is  it  because  man,  for  whose. sake  these 
are  made,  delights  in  change ;  thou  in  constancy  ?  Or  is  it,  that 
in  these  thou  mayest  shew  thine  own  skill,  and  their  imperfection  ? 
There  is  no  variety  in  that  which  is  perfect,  because  there  is  but 
one  perfection ;  and  so  much  shall  we  grow  nearer  to  perfectness, 
by  how  much  we  draw  nearer  to  unity,  and  uniformity. 

From  thence,  if  wc  go1  down  to  the  great  deep,  the  womb  of 
moisture,  the  well  of  fountains,  the  great  pond  of  the  world  ;  we 
know  not  whether  to  wonder  at  the  element  itself,  or  the  guests 
which  it  contains.  How  doth  that  sea  of  thine  roar,  and  foam,  and 
swell,  as  if  it  would  swallow  up  the  earth !  Thou  stayest  the  rage 
of  it  by  an  insensible  violence ;  and  by  a  natural  miracle  confinest 
his  waves  ;  why  it  moves,  and  why  it  stays,  it  is  to  us  equally  won- 
derful. What  living  mountains  (such  are  thy  whales)  roll  up  and 
down  in  those  fearful  billows :  for  greatness  of  number,  hugeness 
of  quantity,  strangeness  of  shapes,  variety  of  fashions,  neither  air 
nor  earth  can  compare  with  the  waters. 

I  say  nothing  of  thy  hid  treasures,  which  thy  wisdom  hath  re- 
posed in  the  bowels  of  the  earth  and  sea  ;  how  secretly,  and  how 
basely  are  they  laid  up  !  secretly,  that  we  might  not  seek  them ; 
basely,  that  we  might  not  over-esteem  them  :  I  need  not  dig  so  low 


8 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


as  these  metals,  mineries,  quarries  which  yield  riches  enough  of 
observation  to  the  soul ;  how  many  millions  of  wonders  doth  the 
very  face  of  the  earth  offer  me ;  which  of  these  herbs,  flowers, 
trees,  leaves,  seeds,  fruits,  is  there;  what  beast,  what  worm,  wherein 
we  may  not  see  the  footsteps  of  a  Deity  ?  wherein  we  mav  not 
read  intiniteness  of  power,  of  skill :  and  must  be  forced  to  confess, 
that  he,  which  made  the  angels  and  stars  of  heaven,  made  also  the 
vermin  on  the  earth  ?  O  God,  the  heart  of  man  is  too  strait  to 
admire  enough,  even  that  which  he  treads  upon.  What  shall  we 
say  to  thee,  the  Maker  of  all  these  r  0  Lord,  how  wonderful  are 
thy  works  in  all  the  world  I  in  wisdom  hast  thou  made  them  all. 
And  in  all  these  thou  spakest,  and  they  were  done.  Thy  will  is  tin- 
word,  andthv  word  is  thv  deed.  Our  tongue,  and  hand,  and  heart 
are  different :  all  are  one  in  thee  ;  which  art  simplv  one,  and  infi- 
nite. Here  needed  no  helps,  no  instruments ;  what  could  be  pre- 
sent with  the  Eternal  r  what  needed,  or  what  could  be  added  to  the 
Infinite  :  Thy  hand  is  not  shortened,  thy  word  is  still  equally  ef- 
fectual ;  say  thou  the  word,  and  mv  soul  shall  be  made  new  again : 
say  thou  the  word,  and  my  body  shall  be  repaired  from  his  dust. 
For  all  things  obey  thee,  O  Lord  !  why  do  I  not  yield  to  the  word 
of  thy  counsel ;  since  I  must  yield,  as  all  thy  creatures,  to  the  word 
of  thy  command  ?    .  Gen.  i. 


OF  MAN. 

But,  O  God,  what  a  little  Lord  hast  thou  made  over  this  great 
world !  The  least  corn  of  sand  is  not  so  small  to  the  whole  earth,  as 
man  is  to  the  heaven :  when  I  see  the  heavens,  the  sun,  moon,  and 
stars ;  O  God,  what  is  man  !  who  would  think  thou  shouldst  make 
all  these  creatures  for  one  ?  and  that  one  well  near  the  least  of  all  r 
Yet  none  but  he  can  see  what  thou  hast  done  •,  none  but  he  can 
admire  and  adore  thee  in  what  he  seeth  ;  how  had  he  need  to  do 
not  ling  but  this,  since  he  alone  must  do  it !  Certainly,  the  price 
and  virtue  of  things  consist  not  in  the  quantity :  one  diamond  is 
more  worth  than  many  quarries  of  stone,  one  loadstone  hath  more 
virtue  Man  mountains  of  earth :  It  is  lawful  for  us  to  praise  thee 
in  ourselves. 

All  thv  creation  hath  not  more  wonder  in  it,  than  one  of  us : 
other  creatures  thou  madest  by  a  simple  command  ;  man,  not  with- 
out a  divine  consultation :  others  at  once ;  man  thou  didst  first 
form,  then  inspire  :  others  in  several  shapes  like  to  none  but  them- 
selves ;  man,  after  thine  own  image  :  others  with  qualities  fit  for 
service  ;  man,  for  dominion.  Man  had  his  name  from  thee  ;  they 
hid  their  names  from  man.  How  should  we  be  consecrated  to  thee 
ajore  all  others,  since  tiiou  hast  bestowed  more  cost  on  us  than 
others ! 

What  shall  I  admire  first?  thv  providence  in  the  time  of  our 
creation  ?  or  thy  p  iwer  and  wisdom  in  the  act  ?  First,  thou  madest 
the  great  house  of  t.ie  world,  and  fumishedst  it :  then  thou  broughtest 
ui  t.'iy  tenant  to  possess  it.    The  bare  wails  had  been  too  good  for 


OF  MAN. 


9 


lis,  but  thy  love  was  above  our  desert.  Thou,  that  madest  the  earth 
ready  for  us  before  we  were,  hast  by  the  same  mercy  prepared  a 

f)lace  in  heaven  for  us  while  we  are  on  earth.  The  stage  was  first 
ully  prepared,  then  was  man  brought  forth  thither,  as  au  actor  or 
spectator :  that  he  might  neither  be  idle  nor  discontent ;  behold, 
thou  hadst  addressed  an  earth  for  use,  and  heaven  for  contem- 
plation. 

After  thou  hadst  drawn  that  large  real  map  of  the  world,  thou 
didst  thus  abridge  it  into  this  little  table  of  man  ;  he  alone  consists 
of  heaven  and  earth,  soul  and  body.  Even  this  earthly  part,  which 
is  vile  in  comparison  of  the  other;  as  it  is  thine,  O  God,  I  dare  ad- 
mire it,  though  I  can  neglect  it  as  mine  own  ;  for  lo,  this  heap  of 
earth  hath  an  outward  reference  to  heaven  :  other  creatures  grovel 
down  to  their  earth,  and  have  all  their  senses  intent  upon  it ;  this 
is  reared  up  towards  heaven,  and  hath  no  more  power  to  look  beside 
heaven,  than  to  tread  beside  the  earth.  Unto  this,  every  part  hath 
his  wonder.  The  head  is  nearest  to  heaven,  as  in  place,  so  in  re- 
semblance ;  both  for  roundness  of  figure,  and  for  those  divine  guests 
which  have  their  seat  in  it ;  there  dwell  those  majestical  powers  of 
reason,  which  makes  a  man;  all  the  senses  as  they  have  their  origi- 
nal from  thence,  so  they  do  all  agree  there  to  manifest  their  virtue  : 
how  goodly  proportions  hast  thou  set  in  the  face  !  such  as  though 
oft-times  we  can  give  no  reason  when  they  please,  yet  transport  us 
to  admiration.  What  living  glasses  are  those  which  thou  hast 
placed  in  the  midst  of  this  visage,  whereby  all  objects  from  far  are 
clearly  represented  to  the  mind  ?  and  because  their  tenderness  lies 
open  to  dangers,  how  hast  thou  defended  them  with  hollow  bones, 
and  with  prominent  brows,  and  lids  !  And  lest  they  should  be  too 
much  bent  on  what  they  ought  not,  thou  hast  given  them  peculiar 
nerves  to  pull  them  up  towards  the  seat  of  their  rest.  What  a 
tongue  hast  thou  given  htm,  the  instrument  not  of  taste  only,  but 
of  speech  !  How  sweet  and  excellent  voices  are  formed  by  that 
little  loose  film  of  flesh !  What  an  incredible  strength  hast  thou 
given  to  the  weak  bones  of  the  jaws  !  What  a  comely  and  tower- 
hke  neck ;  therefore  most  sinewy,  because  smallest !  And  lest  I  be 
infinite,  what  able  arms  and  active  hands  hast  thou  framed  him, 
whereby  he  can  frame  all  things  to  his  own  conceit !  In  every 
part,  beauty,  strength,  convenience  meet  together.  Neither  is 
there  any  whereof  our  weakness  cannot  give  reason,  why  it  should 
be  no  otherwise.  How  hast  thou  disposed  of  all  the  inward  ves- 
sels, for  all  offices  of  life,  nourishment,  egestion,  generation  !  No 
vein,  sinew,  artery  is  idle.  There  is  no  piece  m  this  exquisite 
frame,  whereof  the  place,  use,  form,  doth  not  admit  wonder,  and 
exceed  it. 

Yet  this  body  if  it  be  compared  to  the  soul,  what  is  it,  but  as  a 
clay  wall  that  encompasses  a  treasure  ;  as  a  wooden  box  of  a  jew- 
eller ;  as  a  coarse  case  to  a  rich  instrument ;  or  as  a  mask  to  a 
beautiful  face !  Man  was  made  last,  because  he  was  worthiest. 
The  soul  was  inspired  last,  because  yet  more  noble ;  if  the  body 
have  this  honour  to  be  the  companion  jjf  the  soul,  yet  withal  it  15 


10 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


the  drudge.  If  it  be  the  instrument,  yet  also  the  clog  of  that  di- 
vine part :  the  companion  for  life,  the  drudge  for  service,  the  in- 
strument for  action,  the  clog  in  respect  of  contemplation.  These 
external  works  are  effected  by  it,  the  internal  which  are  more  no- 
ble, hindered  ;  contrary  to  the  bird  which  sings  most  in  her  cage, 
but  flies  most  and  highest  at  liberty.  This  my  soul  teaches  me  of 
itself,  that  itself  cannot  conceive  how  capable,  how  active  it  is.  It 
can  pass  by  her  nimble  thoughts  from  heaven  to  earth  in  a  mo- 
ment :  it  can  be  all  things,  can  comprehend  all  things  ;  know  that 
which  is ;  and  conceive  that  which  ne^er  was,  never  shall  be  :  no- 
thing can  fill  it,  but  thou  which  art  infinite:  nothing  can  limit  it, 
but  thou  which  art  everywhere.  O  God,  which  madest  it,  re- 
plenish it,  possess  it,  dwell  thou  in  it,  which  hast  appointed  it  to 
dwell  in  clay.  The  body  was  made  of  earth  common  to  his  fellows, 
the  soul  inspired  immediately  from  God.  The  body  lay  senseless 
upon  the  earth  like  itself :  the  breath  of  life  gave  it  what  it  is  ;  and 
that  breath  was  from  thee.  Sense,  motion,  reason,  are  infused  into 
it,  at  once.  From  whence  then  was  this  .quickening  breath  ?  No 
air,  no  c*uth,  no  water  was  here  used  to  give  help  to  this  work  : 
thou,  that  breathedst  upon  man  and  gavest  him  the  Holy  Spirit, 
didst  also  breathe  upon  the  body  and  gavest  it  a  living  spirit ;  we 
are  beholden  to  nothing  but  thee  for  our  soul.  Our  flesh  is  from 
flesh,  our  spirit  is  from  the  God  of  Spirits.  How  should  our  souls 
rise  up  to  thee,  and  fix  themselves  in  their  thoughts  upon  thee, 
who  alone  ereatedstthemin  their  infusion,  and  infusedst  them  in  their 
creation  !  How  should  they  long  to  return  back  to  the  Fountain 
of  their  being,  and  Author  of  being  glorious  !  Why  may  we  not 
say,  that  this  soul,  as  it  came  from  thee,  so  it  is  like  thee  ?  as  thou, 
so  it,  is  one,  immaterial,  immortal,  understanding  spirit,  dis- 
tinguished into  three  powers  which  all  make  up  one  spirit.  So 
thou,  the  wise  Creator  of  all  things,  wouldst  have  some  things  to  re- 
semble their  Creator.  These  other  creatures  are  all  body  ;  man  is- 
body  and  spirit  ;  the  angels  are  all  spirit  not  without  a  kind  of  spi- 
ritual composition  ;  thou  art  alone  after  thine  own  manner,  simple, 
glorious,  infinite  no  creature  can  be  like  thee  in  thy  proper 
being,  because  it  is  a  creature ;  how  should  our  finite,  weak,  com- 
pounded nature  give  any  perfect  resemblance  of  thine  ?  Yet  of  all 
visible  creatures  thou  vouchsafest  man  the  nearest  correspondence 
to  thee:  not  so  much  in  the  natural  faculties,  as  in  those  divine 
graces,  wherewith  thou  beautifiest  his  soul. 

Our  knowledge,  holiness,  righteousness,  was  like  the  first  copy 
from  which  they  were  drawn.  Behold,  we  were  not  more  like  thee 
in  these,  than  now  we  are  unlike  ourselves  in  their  loss.  O  God, 
we;  now  praise  ourselves  to  our  shame  ;  for  the  better  we  were,  we 
are  the  worse;  as  the  sons  of  some  prodigal  or  tainted  ancestors,  tell 
of  the  lands  and  lordships  which  were  once  theirs.  Only  do  thou 
whet  our  desires  answerably  to  the  readiness  of  thy  mercies,  that  we 
may  redeem  what  we  have  lost ;  that  we  may  recover  in  thee  what 
we  have  lost  in  ourselves.  The  fault  shall  be  om-s,  if  our  damage 
prove  not  beneficial. 


OF  MAN.  11 

I  do  not  find,  that  man,  thus  framed,  found  the  want  of  a  helper. 
His  fruition  of  God  gave  him  fulness  of  contentment ;  the  sweet- 
ness which  he  found  in  the  contemplation  of  this  new  workmanship, 
and  the  glory  of  the  author;,  did  so  take  him  up,  that  he  had  neither 
leisure  nor  cause  of  complaint.  If  man  had  craved  a  helper,  he 
had  grudged  at  the  condition  of  his  creation,  and  had  questioned 
that  which  he  had ;  perfection  of  being.  But  he,  that  gave  him  his 
being,  and  knew  him  better  than  himself,  thinks  of  giving  him 
comfort  in  the  creature,  whilst  he  sought  none  but  in  his  Maker  : 
he  sees  our  wants,  and  forecasts  our  relief,  when  we  think  our- 
selves too  happy  to  complain :  how  ready  will  he  be  to  help  our 
necessities,  that  thus  provides  for  our  perfection  ! 

God  gives  the  nature  to  his  creatures  :  man  must  give  the  name  ; 
he  that  might  see  they  were  made  for  him,  they  shall  be  to  him 
what  he  will.  Instead  of  their  first  homage,  they  are  presented  to 
their  new  lord,  and  must  see  of  whom  they  hold.  He  that  was  so 
careful  of  man's  sovereignty  in  his  innocency,  how  can  he  be  care- 
less of  his  safety  in  his  renovation  !  If  God  had  given  them  their 
names,  it  had  not  been  so  great  a  praise  of  Adam's  memory  to  re- 
cal  them,  as  it  was  now  of  his  judgment,  at  first  sight,  to  impose 
them  :  he  saw  the  inside  of  all  the  creatures  at  first ;  (his  posterity 
sees  but  their  skins  ever  since;)  and  by  his  knowledge  he  fitted 
their  names  to  their  dispositions. 

All  that  he  saw  were  fit  to  be  his  servants,  none  to  be  his  com- 
panions. The  same  God,  that  finds  the  want,  supplies  it.  Rather 
than  man's  innocency  shall  want  an  outward  comfort,  God  will 
begin  a  new  creation  :  not  out  of  the  earth,  which  was  the  matter 
of  man;  not  out  of  the  inferior  creatures,  which  were  the  servants  of 
man;  but  out  of  himself,  for  dearness,  for  equality.  Doubtless  such 
was  man's  power  of  obedience,  that  if  God  had  bidden  him  y  ield  up 
his  rib,  waking,  for  his  use,  he  had  done  it  cheerfully :  but  the 
bounty  of  God  was  so  absolute,  that  he  would  not  so  much  as  con- 
sult with  man's  will,  to  make  him  happy.  As  man  knew  not  while 
he  was  made,  so  shall  he  not  know  while  his  other  self  is  made  out 
of  him  :  that  the  comfort  might  be  greater,  which  was  seen  before 
it  was  expected. 

If  the  woman  should  have  been  made,  not  without  the  pain,  or 
will  of  the  man,  she  might  have  been  upbraided  with  her  depend- 
ance  and  obligation.  Now  she  owes  nothing  but  to  her  creator : 
the  rib  of  Adam  sleeping,  can  challenge  no  more  of  her,  than  the 
earth  can  of  him.  It  was  a  happy  change  to  Adam,  of  a  rib,  for 
a  helper.  What  help  did  that  bone  give  to  his  side  ?  God  had  not 
made  it,  if  it  had  been  superfluous  :  and  yet  if  man  could  not  have 
been  perfect  without  it,  it  had  not  been  taken  out.  Many  things 
are  useful  and  convenient,  which  are  not  necessary :  and  if  God 
had  seen  man  might  not  want  it,  how  easy  had  it  been  for  him, 
which  made  the  woman  of  that  bone,  to  turn  the  flesh  into  another 
bone  !  But  he  saw  man  could  not  complain  of  the  want  of  that 
bone,  which  he  had  so  multiplied,  so  animated. 


12 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


O  God,  we  can  never  be  losers  by  thy  changes,  we  have  nothing 
but  what  is  thine :  take  from  us  thine  own,  when  thou  wilt,  we  are 
sure  thou  eanst  not  but  give  us  better.  Gen.  ii. 


OF  PARADISE. 

Man  could  no  sooner  see,  than  he  saw  himself  happy :  his  eye- 
sight and  reason  were  both  perfect  at  once,  and  the  objects  of 
both  were  able  to  make  him  as  happy  as  he  would.  When  he  first 
opened  his  eyes,  he  saw  heaven  above  him,  earth  under  him,  the 
creatures  about  him,  God  before  him ;  he  knew  what  all  these 
things  meant,  as  if  he  had  been  long  acquainted  with  them  all : 
he  saw  the  heavens  glorious,  but  far  off":  his  Maker  thought  it 
requisite  to  fit  him  with  a  paradise  nearer  home.  If  God  had  ap- 
pointed him  immediately  to  heaven,  bis  body  had  been  superfluous ; 
it  was  fit  his  body  should  be  answered  with  an  earthen  image  of 
that  heaven,  which  was  for  his  soul :  had  man  been  made  only  for 
contemplation,  it  would  have  served  as  well  to  have  been  placed 
in  some  vast  desert ;  on  the  top  of  some  barren  mountain  •,  but  the 
same  power,  which  gave  him  a  heart  to  meditate,  gave  him  hands 
to  work,  and  work  fit  for  his  hands. 

Neither  was  it  the  purpose  of  the  Creator,  that  man  should  but 
live  :  pleasure  may  stand  with  innocence ;  he,  that  rejoiced  to  see 
all  he  had  made  to  be  good,  rejoiceth  to  see  all  that  lie  had  made 
to  be  well,  God  loves  to  see  his  creatures  happy ;  our  lawful  de- 
light is  his :  they  know  not  God  that  think  to  please  him  with 
making  themselves  miserable.  The  idolaters  thought  it  a  fit  ser- 
vice for  Baal,  to  cut  and  lance  themselves;  never  any  holy  man 
looked  for  thanks  from  the  true  God,  by  wronging  himself. 

Every  earth  was  not  fit  for  Adam,  but  a  garden  ;  a  paradise. 
What  excellent  pleasures,  and  rare  varieties,  have  men  found  in 
gardens  planted  by  the  hands  of  men !  And  yet  all  the  world  of 
men  cannot  make  one  twig,  or  leaf,  or  spire  of  grass.  When  he,  that 
made  the  matter,  undertakes  the  fashion,  how  must  it  needs  be, 
beyond  our  capacity,  excellent !  No  herb,  no  flower,  no  tree,  was 
wanting  there,  that  might  be  for  ornament  or  use ;  whether  for 
sight,  or  for  scent,  or  for  taste.  The  bounty  of  God  wrought  fur- 
ther than  to  necessity,  even  to  comfort  and  recreation.  Why  are 
we  niggardly  to  ourselves,  when  God  is  liberal  ?  But,  for  all  this, 
if  God  had  not  there  conversed  with  man,  no  abundance  could 
have  made  him  blessed. 

Yet  behold  :  that  which  was  man's  storehouse  was  also  his  work- 
house ;  his  pleasure  was  his  task  :  paradise  served  not  only  to  feed 
his  senses,  but  to  exercise  his  hands.  If  happiness  had  consisted 
in  doing  nothing,  man  had  not  been  employed ;  all  his  delights 
could  not  have  made  him  happy  in  an  idle  life.  Man,  therefore,  is 
no  sooner  made,  than  he  is  set  to  work  :  neither  greatness  nor  per- 
fection can  privilege  a  folded  hand  ;  he  must  labour,  because  he 
was  happy ;  how  much  more  we,  that  we  may  be  !  This  first  la^ 
hour  of  his  was,  as  without  necessity,  so  without  pains,  without 


OF  PARADISE. 


13 


weariness ;  how  much  more  cheerfully  we  go  about  our  businesses, 
so  much  nearer  we  come  to  our  paradise. 

Neither  did  these  trees  afford  him  only  action  for  his  hands,  but 
instruction  to  his  heart:  for  here  he  saw  God's  sacraments  grow 
before  him ;  all  other  trees  had  a  natural  use ;  these  two  in  the 
midst  of  the  garden,  a  spiritual.  Life  is  the  act  of  the  soul,  know- 
ledge the  life  of  the  soul ;  the  tree  of  knowledge,  and  the  tree  of 
life,  then,  were  ordained  as  earthly  helps  of  the  spiritual  pari: 
perhaps  he,  which  ordained  the  end,  immortality  of  life,  did  appoint 
this  fruit  as  the  means  of  that  life.  It  is  not  for  us  to  enquire  after 
the  life  we  had  ;  and  the  means  we  should  have  had.  I  am  sure  it 
served  to  nourish  the  soul  by  a  lively  representation  of  that  living 
tree,  whose  fruit  is  eternal  life,  and  whose  leaves  serve  to  heal  the 
nations. 

O  infinite  mercy  !  Man  saw  his  Saviour  before  him,  ere  he  had 
need  of  a  Saviour  ;  he  saw  in  whom  he  should  recover  a  heavenly 
life,  ere  he  lost  the  earthly :  but  after  he  had  tasted  of  the  tree 
of  knowledge,  he  might  not  taste  of  the  tree  of  life ;  that  immor- 
tal food  was  not  for  a  mortal  stomach  :  yet  then  did  he  most  savour 
that  invisible  tree  of  life,  when  he  was  most  restrained  from  the 
other.  O  Saviour,  none  but  a  sinner  can  relish  thee :  my  taste 
hath  been  enough  seasoned  with  the  forbidden  fruit,  to  make  it 
capable  of  thv  sweetness ;  sharpen  thou  as  well  the  stomach  of  my 
soul  by  repenting,  by  believing :  so  shall  I  eat,  and  in  despite  of 
Adam  live  for  ever. 

The  one  tree  was  for  confirmation ;  the  other  for  trial :  one 
shewed  him  what  life  he  should  have  ;  the  other  what  knowledge 
he  should  not  desire  to  have.  Alas  !  he,  that  knew  all  other  things, 
knew  not  this  one  thing,  that  he  knew  enough.  How  divine  a 
thing  is  knowledge,  whereof  even  innocency  itself  is  ambitious! 
Satan  knew  what  he  did :  if  this  bait  had  been  gold,  or  honour, 
or  pleasure,  man  had  contemned  it :  who  can  hope  to  avoid  error, 
when  even  man's  perfection  is  mistaken  !  He  looked  for  speculative 
knowledge,  he  should  have  looked  for  experimental :  he  thought 
it  had  been  good  to  know  evil :  good  was  large  enough  to  have 
perfected  his  knowledge,  and  therein  his  blessedness. 

All  that  God  made  was  good,  and  the  Maker  of  them  much  more 
good  j  they  good  in  their  kinds,  he  good  in  himself.  It  would  not 
content  him  to  know  God,  and  his  creatures  ;  his  curiosity  affected 
to  know  that  which  God  never  made,  evil  of  sin,  and  evil  of  death, 
which  indeed  himself  made  by  desiring  to  know  them  ;  now  we 
know  well  evil  enough,  and  smart  with  knowing  it.  How  dear 
hath  this  lesson  cost  us,  That  in  some  cases  it  is  better  to  be  igno- 
rant ;  and  yet  do  the  sons  of  Eve  inherit  this  saucy  appetite  of 
their  grandmother :  How  many  thousand  souls  miscarry  with  the 
presumptuous  affectation  of  forbidden  knowledge !  O  God,  thou 
hast  revealed  more  than  we  can  know,  enough  to  make  us  happy  : 
teach  me  a  sober  knowledge,  and  a  contented  ignorance. 

Paradise  was  made  for  man,  yet  there  I  see  the  serpent.  What 
marvel  is  it  if  my  corruption  find  the  serpent  in  my  closet,  in  my 


14/  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

table,  in  my  bed,  wben  our  holy  parents  found  him  in  the  midst 
of  paradise  f  No  sooner  he  is  entered,  but  he  tempteth  :  he  can  no 
more  be  idle,  than  harmless.  I  do  not  see  him  at  any  other  tree; 
lie  knew  there  was  no  danger  in  the  rest ;  I  see  him  at  the  tree  for- 
bidden. How  true  a  serpent  is  he  in  every  point !  in  his  insinua- 
tion to  the  place,  in  his  choice  of  the  tree,  in  his  assault  of  the 
woman,  in  his  plausihleness  of  speech  to  avoid  terror,  in  his  ques- 
tion to  move  doubt,  in  his  reply  to  work  distrust,  in  his  protesta- 
tion of  safety,  in  his  suggestion  to  envy  and  discontent,  in  his  pro- 
mise of  gain ! 

And  if  he  were  so  cunning  at  the  first,  what  shall  we  think  of 
him  now,  after  so  many  thousand  years'  experience !  Only  thou, 
O  God,  and  those  angels  that  see  thy  face,  are  wiser  than  he.  I 
do  not  ask  why,  when  he  left  his  goodness,  thou  didst  not  bereave 
him  of  his  skill.  Still  thou  wouldst  have  him  an  angel,  though  an 
evil  one :  and  thou  knowest  how  to  ordain  his  craft  to  thine  own 
glory.  I  do  not  desire  thee  to  abate  of  his  subtlety,  but  to  make 
me  wise;  let  me  beg  it  without  presumption,  make  me  wiser  than 
Adam  :  even  thine  image,  which  he  bore,  made  him  not,  through 
his  own  weakness,  wise  enough  to  obey  thee  ;  thou  offeredst  him 
all  fruits,  and  restrainedst  but  one ;  Satan  offered  him  but  one, 
and  restrained  not  the  rest :  when  he  chose  rather  to  be  at  Satan's 
feeding  than  thine,  it  was  just  with  thee  to  turn  him  out  of  thy 
gates  with  a  curse :  why  shouldst  thou  feed  a  rebel  at  thine  own 
board  ? 

And  yet  we  transgress  daily,  and  thou  shuttest  not  heaven  against 
us :  how  is  it  that  we  find  more  mercy  than  our  forefather  ?  His 
strength  is  worthy  of  severity,  our  weakness  finds  pity.  That  God, 
from  whose  face  he  fled  in  the  garden,  now  makes  him  with  shame 
to  fly  out  of  the  garden :  those  angels,  that  should  have  kept  him, 
now  keep  the  gates  of  paradise  against  him ;  it  is  not  so  easy  to 
recover  happiness,  as  to  keep  it,  or  lose  it :  yea,  the  same  cause 
that  drove  man  from  paradise,  hath  also  withdrawn  paradise  from 
the  world. 

That  fiery  sword  did  not  defend  it  against  those  waters,  where- 
with the  sins  of  men  drowned  the  glory  of  that  place  :  neither  now 
do  I  care  to  seek  where  that  paradise  was,  which  we  lost :  I  know 
where  that  paradise  is,  which  we  must  care  to  seek  and  hope  to 
find.  As  man  was  the  image  of  God,  so  was  that  earthly  paradise 
an  image  of  heaven ;  both  the  images  are  defaced,  both  the  first 
patterns  are  eternal :  Adam  was  in  the  first,  and  staid  not :  in  the 
second,  is  the  second  Adam  which  said,  This  day  shalt  thou  be  with 
me  in  paradise.  There  was  that  chosen  vessel,  and  heard  and 
saw  what  could  not  be  expressed :  by  how  much  the  third  heaven 
exceeds  the  richest  earth ;  so  much  doth  that  paradise,  whereto  we 
aspire,  exceed  that  which  wc  have  lost.  Gen.  Hi. 


OF  CAIN  AND  ABEL. 


15 


Look  now,  O  my  soul,  upon  the  two  first  brethren,  perhaps  twins; 
and  wonder  at  their  contrary  dispositions  and  estates :  if  the  pri- 
vileges of  nature  had  been  worth  any  thing,  the  first-born  child 
should  not  have  been  a  reprobate.  Now,  that  we  may  ascribe  all 
to  free  grace,  the  elder  is  a  murderer,  the  younger  a  saint ;  though 
goodness  may  be  repaired  in  ourselves,  yet  it  cannot  be  propagated 
to  others.  Now  might  Adam  sec  the  image  of  himself  in  Cain ; 
for  after  his  own  image  begot  he  him ;  Adam  slew  his  posterity, 
Cain  his  brother :  we  are  too  like  one  another  in  that  wherein  we 
are  unlike  to  God :  even  the  clearest  grain  sends  forth  that  chaff, 
from  which  it  was  fanned  ere  the  sowing.  Yet  is  this  Cain  a  pos- 
session ;  the  same  Eve,  that  mistook  the  fruit  of  the  garden,  mis- 
took also  the  fruit  of  her  own  body,  her  hope  deceived  her  in 
both;  so,  many  good  names  are  ill  bestowed,  and  our  comfortable 
expectations  in  earthly  things  do  not  seldom  disappoint  us. 

Doubtless,  their  education  was  holy  %  for  Adam,  though  in  para- 
dise he  could  not  be  innocent,  yet  was  a  good  man  out  of  paradise  ; 
his  sin  and  fall  now  made  him  circumspect,  and  since  he  saw  that 
his  act  had  bereaved  them  of  that  image  of  God,  which  he  once 
had  for  them,  he  could  not  but  labour  by  all  holy  endeavours  to 
repair  it  in  them,  that  so  his  care.might  make  amends  for  his  trespass. 
Plow  plain  is  it,  that  even  good  breeding  cannot  alter  destiny  ! 

That  which  is  crooked  can  none  make  straight ;  who  would  think 
that  brethren,  and  but  two  brethren,  should  not  love  each  other? 
Dispersed  love  grows  weak,  and  fewness  of  objects  useth  to  unite 
affections :  if  but  two  brothers  be  left  alive  of  many,  they  think 
that  the  love  of  all  the  rest  should  survive  in  them  ;  and  now  the 
beams  of  their  affection  are  so  much  the  hotter,  because  they  re- 
flect mutually  in  a  right  line  upon  each  other :  yet,  behold,  here 
are  but  two  brothers  in  a  world,  and  one  is  the  butcher  of  the 
other.  Who  can  wonder  at  dissensions  amongst  thousands  of  bre- 
thren, when  he  sees  so  deadly  opposition  betwixt  two,  the  first 
roots  of  brotherhood  r  Who  can  hope  to  live  plausibly,  and  se- 
curely, amongst  so  many  Cains,  when  he  sees  one  Cain  the  death 
of  one  Abel  ? 

The  same  devil,  that  set  enmity  betwixt  man  and  God,  sets  en- 
mity betwixt  man  and  man  ;  and  yet  God  said,  /  will  put  enmity 
between  thy  seed  and  her  seed.  Our  hatred  of  the  serpent  and  his 
seed  is  from  God :  their  hatred  of  the  holy  seed  is  from  the  ser- 
pent. Behold  here  at  once  in  one  person,  the  seed  of  the  woman 
and  of  the  serpent :  Cain's  natural  parts  are  of  the  woman ;  lys 
vicious  qualities  of  the  serpent :  the  woman  gave  him  to  be  a  bro- 
ther, the  serpent  to  be  a  man-slayer ;  all  uncharitableness,  all  quar- 
rels, are  of  one  author:  we  cannot  entertain  wrath,  and  not  give 
place  to  the  devil.  Certainly,  so  deadly  an  act  must  needs  be 
deeply  grounded. 

What  then  was  the  occasion  of  this  capital  malice  ?  Abel's  sacri-  . 
ficc  is  accepted  ;  what  was  this  to  Cain  ?  Cain's  is  rejected  ;  what 


16  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

could  Abel  remedy  this  ?  O  envy,  the  corrosive  of  all  ill  minds, 
and  the  root  of  all  desperate  actions :  the  same  cause,  that  moved 
Satan  to  tempt  the  first  man  to  destroy  himself  and  his  posterity, 
the  same  moves  the  second  man  to  destroy  the  third. 

It  should  have  been  Cain's  joy,  to  see  his  brother  accepted  ;  it 
should  have  been  his  sorrow,  to  see  that  himself  had  deserved  a 
rejection  :  his  brother's  example  should  have  excited  and  directed 
him.  Could  Abel  have  stayed  God's  fire  from  descending  ?  Or 
should  he,  if  he  could,  reject  God's  acceptation,  and  displease  his 
Maker,  to  content  a  brother?  Was  Cain  ever  the  farther  from  a 
blessing,  because  his  brother  obtained  mercy  ?  How  proud  and 
foolish  is  malice !  which  grows  thus  mad,  for  no  other  cause,  but 
because  God  or  Abel  is  not  less  good.  It  hath  been  an  old  and 
happy  danger  to  be  holy :  indifferent  actions  must  be  careful  to 
avoid  offence ;  but  I  care  not  what  devil  or  what  Cain  be  angry, 
that  I  do  good,  or  receive  good. 

There  was  never  any  nature  without  envy.  Every  man  is  born 
a  Cain  ;  hating  that  goodness  in  another,  which  he  neglecteth  in 
himself.  There  was  never  envy  that  was  not  bloody  ;  tor  if  it  eat 
not  another's  heart,  it  will  eat  our  own  :  but  unless  it  be  restrained, 
it  will  surely  feed  itself  with  the  blood  of  others,  oft-times  in  act, 
always  in  affection  ;  and  that  God,  which,  in  good,  accepts  the  will 
for  the  deed,  condemns  the  will  for  the  deed  in  evil.  If  there  be 
an  evil  heart,  there  will  be  an  evil  eye ;  and  if  both  these,  there 
will  be  an  evil  hand. 

How  early  did  martyrdom  come  into  the  world  !  The  first  man 
that  died,  died  for  religion  ;  who  dare  measure  God's  love  by  out- 
ward events,  when  he  sees  wicked  Cain  standing  over  bleeding 
Abel ;  whose  sacrifice  was  first  accepted,  and  now  himself  is  sacri- 
ficed ?  Death  was  denounced  to  man  as  a  curse ;  yet,  behold,  it 
first  lights  upon  a  saint :  how  soon  was  it  altered  by  the  mercy  of 
that  just  hand  which  inflicted  it !  If  death  had  been  evil,  and  life 
good,  Cain  had  been  slain,  and  Abel  had  survived  ;  now  that  it 
begins  with  him  that  God  loves,  0  death,  where  is  thy  sting  ? 

Abel  says  nothing,  his  blood  cries  s  every  drop  of  innocent  blood 
hath  a  tongue,  and  is  not  only  vocal,  but  importunate:  what  a 
noise  then  did  the  blood  of  my  Saviour  make  in  heaven  !  who  Avas 
himself  the  shepherd  and  the  sacrifice ;  the  man  that  was  offered, 
and  the  God  to  whom  it  was  offered.  The  Spirit,  that  heard  both, 
says,  It  spake  better  things  than  the  blood  of  Abel.  Abel's  blood 
called  for  revenge,  his  for  mercy ;  Abel's  pleaded  his  own  inno- 
cency,  his  the  satisfaction  for  all  the  believing  world  ;  Abel's  pro- 
cured Cain's  punishment,  his  freed  all  repentant  souls  from  punish- 
ment: better  things,  indeed,  than  the  blood  of  Abel.  Better,  and 
therefore  that  which  Abel's  blood  said,  was  good  :  it  is  good,  that 
God  should  be  avenged  of  sinners.  Execution  of  justice  upon  of- 
fenders is  no  less  good  than  rewards  of  goodness. 

No  sooner  doth  Abel's  blood  speak  unto  God,  than  God  speaks 
to  Cain.  There  is  no  wicked  man  to  whom  God  speaks  not,  if  not 
to  his  ear,  yet  to  his  heart.  What  speech  was  this  ?  Not  an  accu- 


OF  THE  DELUGE. 


17 


sation,  but  an  inquiry  ;  yet  such  an  inquiry  as  would  infer  an  ac- 
cusation. God  loves  to  have  a  sinner  accuse  himself,  and  there- 
fore hath  he  set  his  deputy  in  the  breast  of  man  ;  neither  doth  God 
love  this  more  than  nature  abhors  it :  Cain  answers  stubbornly  : 
the  very  name  of  Abel  wounds  him  no  less,  than  his  hand  had 
wounded  Abel.  Consciences  that  are  without  remorse,  are  not 
without  horror :  wickedness  makes  men  desperate ;  the  murderer 
is  angry  with  God,  as  of  late  for  accepting  his  brother's  oblation, 
so  now  for  listening  to  his  blood. 

And  now  he  dares  answer  God  with  a  question,  Am  I  my  bro- 
ther's  keeper  ?  where  he  should  have  said,  Am  not  I  my  brother's 
murderer  ?  Behold,  he  scorneth  to  keep  whom  he  feared  not  to 
kill :  good  duties  are  base  and  troublesome  to  wicked  minds, 
whilst  even  violences  of  evil  are  pleasant.  Yet  this  miscreant, 
which  neither  had  grace  to  avoid  his  sin,  nor  to  confess  it,  now 
that  he  is  convinced  of  sin,  and  cursed  for  it,  how  he  howleth, 
how  he  exclaimeth !  He,  that  cares  not  for  the  act  of  his  sin,  shall 
care  for  the  smart  of  his  punishment.  The  damned  are  weary  of 
their  torments,  but  in  vain.  How  great  a  madness  is  it  to  com- 
plain too  late !  He,  that  would  not  keep  his  brother,  is  cast  out 
from  the  protection  of  God ;  he,  that  feared  not  to  kill  his  brother, 
fears  now,  that  whosoever  meets  him  will  kill  him.  The  troubled 
conscience  projecteth  fearful  things,  and  sin  makes  even  cruel  men 
cowardly. 

God  saw  it  was  too  much  favour  for  him  to  die :  he  therefore 
wills  that  which  Cain  wills.  Cain  would  live ;  it  is  yielded  him, 
but  for  a  curse :  how  often  doth  God  hear  sinners  in  anger '  He 
shall  live  banished  from  God,  carrying  his  hell  in  his  bosom,  and 
the  brand  of  God's  vengeance  in  his  forehead :  God  rejects  him, 
the  earth  repines  at  him,  men  abhor  him;  himself  now  wishes  that 
death  which  he  feared,  and  no  man  dare  pleasure  him  with  a  mur- 
der; how  bitter  is  the  end  of  sin,  yea,  without  end!  still  Cain 
finds  that  he  killed  himself  more  than  his  brother.  We  should  ne- 
ver sin,  if  our  foresight  were  but  as  good  as  our  sense :  the  issue 
of  sin  would  appear  a  thousand  times  more  horrible  than  the  act 
is  pleasant.  Gen.  iv. 


OF  THE  DELUGE. 
The  world  was  grown  so  foul  with  sin,  that  God  saw  it  was  time 
to  wash  it  with  a  flood.  And  so  close  did  wickedness  cleave  to  the 
authors  of  it,  that  when  they  were  washed  to  nothing,  yet  it  would 
not  off:  yea,  so  deep  did  it  stick  in  the  very  grain  of  the  earth, 
that  God  saw  it  meet  to  let  it  soak  long  under  the  waters.  So,  un- 
der the  Law,  the  very  vessels  that  had  touched  unclean  water,  must 
either  be  rinsed  or  broken.  Mankind  began  but  with  one  :  and 
yet  he,  that  saw  the  first  man,  lived  to  see  the  earth  peopled  with 
a  world  of  men :  yet  men  grew  not  so  fast  as  wickedness.  One 
man  could  soon  and  easily  multiply  a  thousand  sins,  never  man- 
vol.  i.  c 


IS  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

had  so  many  children :  so  that,  when  there  were  men  enough  to 
store  the  earth,  there  were  as  many  sins  as  would  reach  up  to  hea- 
ven ;  whereupon  the  waters  came  down  from  heaven,  and  swelled 
up  to  heaven  again.  If  there  had  not  been  so  deep  a  deluge  of 
sin,  there  had  been  none  of  the  waters.  From  whence  then  was 
tliis  superfluity  of  iniquity  ?  Whence,  but  from  the  unequal  yoke 
with  infidels  ?  These  marriages  did  not  beget  men,  so  much  as 
wickedness ;  from  hence  religious  husbands  both  lost  their  piety, 
and  gained  a  rebellious  and  godless  generation. 

That,  which  was  the  first  occasion  of  sin,  was  the  occasion  of  the 
increase  of  sin :  a  woman  seduced  Adam,  women  betrav  these  sons 
of  God  :  the  beauty  of  the  apple  betrayed  the  woman,  the  beauty 
of  these  women  betrayed  this  holy  seed:  Eve  saw,  and  lusted, 
so  did  they;  this  also  was  a  forbidden  fruit,  they  lusted,  tasted, 
sinned,  died;  the  most  sins  begin  at  the  eyes,  by  them  commonly 
Satan  creeps  into  the  heart :  that  soul  can  never  be  in  safety,  that 
hath  not  covenanted  with  his  eyes. 

God  needed  not  have  given  these  men  any  warning  of  his  judg- 
ment ;  they  gave  him  no  warning  of  their  sins,  no  respite:  yet, 
that  God  might  approve  his  mercies  to  the  very  wicked,  he  gives 
them  a  hundred  and  twenty  years  respite  of  repenting  :  how  loth 
is  God  to  strike,  that  threats  so  long  !  He,  that  delights  in  revenge, 
surprises  his  adversary;  whereas  he,  that  gives  long  warnings,  de- 
sires to  be  prevented :  if  we  were  not  wilful,  we  should  never 
smart. 

Neither  doth  he  give  them  time  only,  but  a  faithful  teacher.  It 
is  a  happy  thing  when  he  that  teacheth  others  is  righteous  ;  Noah's 
hand  taught  them  as  much  as  his  tongue.  His  business  in  building' 
the  ark,  was  a  real  sermon  to  the  world  ;  wherein  at  once  were 
taught  mercy  and  life  to  the  believer,  and  to  the  rebellious  de- 
struction. 

Methinks  I  see  those  monstrous  sons  of  Lamcch  coming  to  Noah, 
and  asking  him,  what  he  means  by  that  strange  work  ;  whether  he 
means  to  sail  upon  the  dry  land.  To  whom  when  he  reports  God's 
purpose  an^  his,  they  go  away  laughing  at  his  idleness,  and  tell 
one  another,  in  sport,  that  too  much  holiness  hath  made  him  mad: 
yet  cannot  they  all  flout  Noah  out  of  his  faith;  he  preaches,  and 
builds,  and  finishes.  Doubtless  more  hands  went  to  this  work  than 
his  :  many  a  one  wrought  upon  the  ark,  which  vet  was  not  saved 
in  the  ark.  Our  outward  works  cannot  save  us,  without  our  faith; 
we  may  help  to  save  others,  and  perish  ourselves :  what  a  wonder 
of  mercy  is  this  that  I  here  see  !  One  poor  family  called  out  of  a 
world,  and  as  it  were  eight  grains  of  corn  fanned  from  a  whole 
barnful  of  chaff:  one  hypocrite  was  saved  with  the  rest  for  Noah's 
sake  ;  not  one  righteous  man  was  swept  awav  for  company.  For 
these  few  was  the  earth  preserved  still  under  the  waters,  and  all 
kinds  of  creatures  upon  the  waters,  which  else  had  been  all  de- 
stroyed. Still  the  world  stands,  for  their  sakes,  for  whom  it  was 
preserved;  else  fire  should  consume  that,  which  could  not  be 
cleansed  by  water. 


OF  THE  DELUGE.  19 

This  difference  is  strange :  I  see  the  savagest  of  all  creatures, 
lions,  tigers,  bears,  by  an  instinct  from  God,  come  to  seek  the  ark 
(as  we  see  swine  foreseeing  a  storm  run  home  crying  for  shelter), 
men  I  see  not;  reason  once  debauched  is  worse  than  brutislmess : 
God  hath  use  even  of  these  fierce  and  cruel  beasts,  and  glory  by 
them  :  even  they  being  created  for  man,  must  live  by  him,  though 
to  liis  punishment :  how  gently  do  they  offer  and  submit  themselves 
to  their  preserver ;  renewing  that  obeisance  to  this  repairer  of  the 
world,  which  they,  before  sin,  yielded  to  him  that  first  stored  the 
world  :  he,  that  shut  them  into  the  ark  when  they  were  entered, 
shut  their  mouths  also  white  they  did  enter.  The  lions  fawn  upon 
Noah  and  Daniel ;  what  heart  cannot  the  Maker  of  them  mollify  ! 

The  unclean  beasts  God  would  have  to  live,  the  clean  to  multi- 
ply ;  and  therefore  he  sends  to  Noah  seven  of  the  clean,  of  the 
unclean  two :  he  knew  the  one  would  annoy  man  with  their  multi- 
tude, the  other  would  enrich  him  ;  those  things  are  worthy  of  most 
respect,  which  are  of  most  use. 

But  why  seven  ?  Surely  that  God,  that  created  seven  days  in  the 
week,  and  made  one  for  himself,  did  here  preserve  of  seven  clean 
beasts,  one  for  himself,  for  sacrifice :  he  gives  us  six  for  one  in 
earthly  things,  that  in  spiritual  we  should  be  all  for  him. 

Now  the  day  is  come,  all  the  guests  are  entered,  the  ark  is  shut, 
and  the  windows  of  heaven  open  :  I  doubt  not  but  many  of  those 
scoffers,  when  they  saw  the  violence  of  the  waves  descending,  and 
ascending,  according  to  Noah's  prediction,  came  wading  middle- 
deep  unto  the  ark,  and  importunately  craved  that  admittance  which 
they  once  denied  :  but  now,  as  they  formerly  rejected  God,  so  are 
they  justly  rejected  of  God.  For  ere  vengeance  begin,  repentance 
is  seasonable  ;  but  if  judgment  be  once  gone  out,  we  cry  too  late. 
While  the  Gospel  solicits  us,  the  doors  of  the  ark  are  open  ;  if  we 
neglect  the  time  of  grace,  in  vain  shall  we  seek  it  with  tears  :  God 
hcLls  it  no  mercy  to  pity  the  obstinate.  Others,  more  bold  than 
they,  hope  to  over-run  the  judgment,  and,  climbing  up  to  the 
high  mountains,  look  down  upon  the  waters  with  more  hope  than 
fear  :  and  now,  when  they  see  their  hills  become  islands,  they  climb 
up  into  the  tallest  trees ;  there  with  paleness  and  horror  at  once 
look  for  death,  and  study  to  avoid  it,  whom  the  waves  overtake  at 
last  half  dead  with  famine,  and  half  with  fear.  Lo  !  now  from  the 
tops  of  the  mountains  they  descry  the  ark  floating  upon  the  waters, 
and  behold  with  envy  that  which  before  they  beheld  with  scorn. 

In  vain  doth  he  fly  whom  God  pursues.  There  is  no  way  to  fly 
from  his  judgments,  but  to  fly  to  his  mercy  by  repenting.  The 
faith  of  the  righteous  cannot  be  so  much  derided,  as  their  success 
is  magnified:  how  securely  doth  Noah  ride  out  this  uproar  of 
heaven,  earth,  and  waters!  He  hears  the  pouring  down  of  the  rain 
above  his  head  ;  the  shrieking  of  men,  and  roaring  and  bellowing 
of  beasts,  on  both  sides  of  him ;  the  raging  and  threats  of  the  waves 
under  him ;  he  saw  the  miserable  shifts  of  the  distressed  unbe- 
lievers ;  and  in  the  mean  time  sit:  quietly  in  his  dry  cabin,  neither 
feeling  nor  fearing  evil :  he  knew  that  he,  which  owned  the  waters, 
would  steer  him ;  tha,t  he,  who  shut  him  in,  would  preserve  him. 


20 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


How  happy  a  thing  is  faith  !  What  a  quiet  safety,  what  a  heavenly 
peace,  doth  it  work  in  the  soul,  in  the  midst  of  all  the  inundations 
of  evil ! 

Now,  when  God  hath  fetched  again  all  the  life  which  he  had 
given  to  his  unworthy  creatures,  and  reduced  the  world  unto  his 
first  form  wherein  waters  were  over  the  face  of  the  earth,  it  was 
time  for  a  renovation  of  all  things  to  succeed  this  destruction.  To 
have  continued  the  deluge  long,  had  been  to  punish  Noah,  that 
was  righteous.  After  forty  days,  therefore,  the  heavens  clear  up  ; 
after  a  hundred  and  fifty  the  waters  sink  down.  How  soon  is 
God  weary  of  punishing,  which  is  never  wearv  of  blessing !  yet 
may  not  the  ark  rest  suddenly.  If  we  did  not  stay  somevvhile  un- 
der God's  hand,  we  should  not  know  how  sweet  his  mercy  is,  and 
how  great  our  thankfulness  should  be.  The  ark,  though  it  was 
Noah's  fort  against  the  waters,  yet  it  was  his  prison  ;  he  was  safe 
in  it,  but  put  up  ;  he,  that  gave  him  life  by  it,  now  thinks  time  to 
give  him  liberty  out  of  it. 

God  doth  not  reveal  all  tilings  to  his  best  servants  :  behold,  he, 
that  told  Noah  a  hundred  and  twenty  years  before  what  day  he 
should  go  into  the  ark,  yet  foretels  him  not  now  in  the  ark  what 
day  the  ark  should  rest  upon  the  hills,  and  he  should  go  forth. 
Noah  therefore  sends  out  his  intelligencers,  the  raven  and  the 
dove  ;  whose  wings  in  that  vaporous  air  might  easily  descry  fur- 
ther than  his  sight.  The  raven,  of  quick  scent,  of  gross  feed,  of 
tough  constitution  ;  no  fowl  was  so  fit  for  discovery :  the  likeliest 
thing's  ahvavs  succeed  not.  He  neither  will  venture  far  into  that 
solitary  world  for  fear  of  want,  nor  yet  come  into  the  ark  for  love 
of  liberty  ;  but  hovers  about  in  uncertainties.  How  many  carnal 
minds  fly  out  of  the  ark  of  God's  Church,  and  embrace  the  pre- 
sent world  ;  rather  choosing  to  feed  upon  the  unsavoury  carcasses 
of  sinful  pleasures,  than  to  be  restrained  within  the  straight  lists 
of  Christian  obedience ! 

The  dove  is  sent  forth,  a  fowl  both  swift  and  simple.  She,  like 
a  true  citizen  of  the  ark,  returns  ;  and  brings  faithful  notice  of  the 
continuance  of  the  waters,  by  her  restless  and  empty  return  ;  by 
her  olive-leaf,  of  the  abatement :  how  worthy  are  those  messengers 
to  be  welcome,  which,  with  innocence  in  their  lives,  bring  glad 
tidings  of  peace;  and  salvation,  in  their  mouths  ! 

Noah  rejoices  and  believes  ;  vet  still  he  waits  seven  days  more  : 
it  is  not  good  to  devour  the  favours  of  God  too  greedily  ;  but  to 
take  them  in,  that  we  may  digest  them.  O  strong  faith  of  Noah, 
that  was  not  weary  with  this  delay  !  Some  man  would  have  so  longed 
for  the  open  air  after  so  long  closeness,  that  upon  the  first  notice 
of  safetv  he  would  have  uncovered,  and  voided  the  ark  ;  Noah 
stays  seven  days  ere  he  will  open,  and  well  near  two  months  ere 
he  will  forsake  the  ark  ;  and  not  then,  unless  God,  that  commanded 
to  enter,  had  bidden  him  depart.  There  is  no  action  good  without 
our  faith  ;  no  faith,  without  a  word.  Happy  is  that  man,  which, 
in  all  things,  neglecting  the  counsels  of  flesh  and  blood,  depends 
upon  the  commission  of  his  Maker.  Gen.  vi,  vii,  viii. 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


BOOK  II. 


TO  THE  RIGHT  HONOURABLE 

THE  LORD  STANHOPE, 

ONE  OF  HIS  MAJESTY'S  MOST  HONOURABLE  PRIVY  COUNCIL, 
ALL  GRACE  AND  HAPPINESS, 


RIGHT  HONOURABLE  : 

I  DURST  appeal  to  the  judgment  of  a  carnal  reader  (let  him 
not  be  prejudicate J  that  there  is  no  History  so  pleasant  as  the  Sa- 
cred. Set  aside  the  majesty  of  the  inditer ;  none  can  compare  with 
it  for  magnificence  and  antiquity  of  the  matter,  the  sweetness  of 
compiling,  the  strange  variety  of  memorable  occurrences :  and  if 
the  delight  be  such,  what  shall  the  profit  be  esteemed  of  that  which, 
was  written  by  GO  J)  for  the  salvation  of  Men!  I  confess,  no 
thoughts  did  ever  more  sweetly  steal  vie  and  time  away,  than  those 
which  I  have  employed  in  this  subject,  and  I  hope,  none  pan  equally 
benefit  others :  for,  if  the  mere  relation  of  these  holy  things  be 
profitable,  how  much  more  when  it  is  reduced  to  use  J  This  second 
part  of  the  World  repaired,  I  dedicate  to  your  Lordship  ;  wherein 
you  shall  see  Noah  as  weak  in  his  tent,  as  strong  in  the  ark ;  an 
ungracious  son  reserved  from  the  deluge  to  his  father'' s  curse ; 
modest  piety  rewarded  with  blessings ;  the  building  of  Babel^  begun 
tn  pride,  ended  in  confusion;  Abraham's  faith,  fear ,  obedience; 
Isaac  bound  upon  the  altar  under  the  hand  of  a  father,  that  hath 
forgotten  both  nature  and  all  his  hopes ;  Sodom  burning  with  a 
double  fire,  from  hell,  and  from  heaven  ;  Lot  rescued  from  that 
impure  city,  yet  after  finding  Sodom  in  his  cave :  Every  one  of 
these  passages  is  not  more  full  of  xvonder  than  of  edification.  That 
Spirit,  which  hath  penned  all  these  things  for  our  learning,  teach 
us  their  right  use ;  and  sanctify  these  my  unworthy  meditations  to 
the  good  of  his  church  !  To  whose  abundant  grace  I  humbly  com- 
mend  your  Lordship. 

Four  Lordship's  unfeignedly  devoted 
in  all  due  observance, 

JOSEPH  HALL, 


NOAH. 

No  sooner  is  Noah  come  out  of  the  ark,  but  he  builds  an  altar : 
not  a  house  for  himself,  but  an  altar  to  the  Lord  :  our  faith  will 
ever  teach  us  to  prefer  God  to  ourselves.    Delayed  thankfulness  is 


22 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


not  worthy  of  acceptation.  Of  those  few  creatures  that  are  left, 
God  must  have  some  ;  they  are  all  his  ;  yet  his  goodness  will  have 
man  know  that  it  was  he,  for  whose  sake  they  were  preserved.  It 
was  a  privilege  to  those  very  brute  creatures,  that  they  were  saved 
from  the  waters,  to  be  offered  up  in  fire  unto  God  :  what  a  favour 
is  it  to  men,  to  be  reserved  from  common  destructions,  to  be  sacri- 
ficed to  their  Maker  and  Redeemer  ! 

Lothis  little  fire  of  Noah,  through  the  virtue  of  his  faith,  purged 
the  world,  and  ascended  up  into  those  heavens,  from  which  the 
waters  fell,  and  caused  a  glorious  rainbow  to  appear  therein  for  his 
security  :  all  the  sins  of  the  former  world  were  not  so  unsavoury 
unto  God,  as  this  smoke  was  pleasant.  No  perfume  can  be  so 
sweet,  as  the  holy  obedience  of  the  faithful.  Now  God,  that  was 
before  annoyed  with  the  ill-savour  of  sin,  smells  a  sweet  savour  of 
rest:  behold  here  a  new  and  second  rest:  first,  God  rested  from 
making  the  world,  now  he  rests  from  destroying  it :  even  while 
we  cease  not  to  offend,  he  ceases  from  a  public  revenge.  His 
word  was  enough,  yet  withal  he  gives  a  sign,  which  may  speak  the 
truth  of  his  promise  to  the  very  eyes  of  men  :  thus  he  doth  still  in 
his  blessed  sacraments,  which  are  as  real  words  to  the  soul.  The 
rainbow  is  the  pledge  of  our  safety,  which  even  naturally  signifies 
the  end  of  a  shower  :  all  the  signs  of  God's  institution  are  proper 
and  significant. 

But  who  would  look  after  all  this,  to  have  found  righteous  Noah, 
the  father  of  the  new  world,  lying  drunken  in  his  tent  ?  Who 
would  think  that  wine  should  overthrow  him,  that  was  preserved 
from  the  waters  ?  That  he,  who  could  not  be  tainted  with  the  sinful 
examples  of  the  former  world,  should  begin  the  example  of  a  new 
sin  of  his  own  ?  What  are  we  men,  if  we  be  but  ourselves  !  While 
God  upholds  us,  no  temptation  can  move  us :  when  he  leaves  us, 
no  temptation  is  too  weak  to  overthrow  us.  What  living  man  ever 
had  so  noble  proofs  of  the  mercy,  of  the  justice  of  God  !  Mercy 
upon  himself,  justice  upon  others.  What  man  had  so  gracious 
approbation  from  his  Maker  !  Behold,  he,  of  whom  in  an  unclean 
world  God  said,  Thee  only  have  I found  righteous,  proves  now  un- 
clean when  the  world  was  purged.  The  preacher  of  righteous- 
ness unto  the  former  age,  the  king,  priest,  and  prophet  of  the 
world  i-enevved,  is  the  first  that  renews  the  sins  of  that  world  which 
he  had  reproved,  and  which  he  saw  condemned  for  sin  :  God's  best 
children  have  no  fence  for  sins  of  infirmity  :  which  of  the  saints 
have  not  once  done  that,  whereof  they  are  ashamed?  God,  that 
Jets  us  fall,  knows  how  to  make  as  good  use  of  the  sins  of  his  holy 
ones,  as  of  their  obedience  :  If  we  had  not  such  patterns,  who  could 
choose  but  despair  at  the  sight  of  his  sins  ? 

Yet  we  find  Noah  drunken  but  once.  One  act  can  no  more 
make  a  good  heart  unrighteous,  than  a  trade  of  sin  can  stand  with 
regeneration  :  but  when  I  look  to  the  effect  of  this  sin,  I  cannot 
but  blush  and  wonder :  Lo,  this  sin  is  worse  than  sin ;  other  sins 
move  shame,  but  hide  it ;  this  displays  it  to  the  world.    Adam  had 


OF  NOAH. 


23 


no  sooner  sinned,  but  lie  saw  and  abhorred  Ins  own  nakedness, 
seeking  to  hide  it  even  with  bushes. 

Noah  had  no  sooner  sinned,  but  he  discovers  his  nakedness,  and 
hath  not  so  much  rule  of  himself,  as  to  be  ashamed  :  one  hour's 
drunkenness  bewrays  that,  which  more  than  six  hundred  years  so- 
briety had  modestly  concealed  ;  he,  that  gives  himself  to  wine,  is 
not  his  own  :  what  shall  we  think  of  this  vice,  which  robs  a  man  of 
himself,  and  lays  a  beast  in  his  room  ?  Noah's  nakedness  is  seen  in 
wine  :  it  is  no  unusual  quality,  in  this  excess  to  disclose  secrets  ; 
drunkenness  doth  both  make  imperfections,  and  shew  those  we 
have  to  others'  eyes  ;  so  would  God  have  it,  that  we  might  be  dou- 
bly ashamed,  both  of  those  weaknesses  which  we  discover,  and  of 
that  weakness  which  moved  us  to  discover. 

Noah  is  uncovered  ;  but  in  the  midst  of  his  own  tent :  it  had 
been  sinful,  though  no  man  had  seen  it :  unknown  sins  have  their 
guilt  and  shame,  and  are  justly  attended  with  known  punishments. 
Ungracious  Cham  saw  it  and  laughed ;  his  father's  shame  should 
have  been  his ;  the  deformity  of  those  parts  from  which  he  had  his 
being,  should  have  begotten  in  him  a  secret  horror,  and  dejection  : 
how  many  graceless  men  make  sport  at  the  causes  of  their  humilia- 
tion !  Twice  had  Noah  given  him  life  :  yet  neither  the  name  of  a 
father,  and  preserver,  nor  age,  nor  virtue,  could  shield  him  from 
the  contempt  of  his  own.  1  see  that  even  God's  ark  may  nourish 
monsters  :  some  filthy  toads  may  lie  under  the  stones  of  the  tem- 
ple. God  preserves  some  men  in  judgment;  better  had  it  been  for 
Cham  to  have  perished  in  the  waters,  than  to  live  unto  his  father's 
curse. 

Not  content  to  be  a  witness  of  this  filthy  sight,  he  goes  on  to  be 
a  proclaimcr  of  it.  Sin  doth  ill  in  the  eye,  but  worse  in  the  tongue : 
as  all  sin  is  a  work  of  darkness,  so  it  should  be  buried  in  darkness. 
The  report  of  sin  is  oft-times  as  ill,  as  the  commission  ;  for  it  can 
never  be  blazoned  without  uncharitableness ;  seldom,  without  in- 
fection :  Oh  the  unnatural  and  more  than  Chammish  impiety  of 
those  sons,  which  rejoice  to  publish  the  nakedness  of  their  spiritual 
parents  even  to  their  enemies  ! 

Yet  it  was  well  for  Noah  that  Cham  could  tell  it  to  none  but  his 
own  ;  and  those,  gracious  and  dutiful  sons.  Our  shame  is  the  less, 
if  none  know  our  faults  but  our  friends.  Behold,  how  love  cover- 
eth  sins  ;  these  good  sons  are  so  far  from  going  forward  to  see 
their  father's  shame,  that  they  go  backward  to  hide  it.  Thecloke 
is  laid  on  both  their  shoulders,  they  both  go  back  with  equal  paces, 
and  dare  not  so  much  as  look  back,  lest  they  should  unwillingly 
sec  the  cause  of  their  shame ;  and  will  rather  adventure  to  stumble 
at  their  father's  body,  than  to  see  his  nakedness  :  how  did  it  grieve 
them  to  think,  that  they,  which  had  so  oft  come  to  their  holy  fa- 
.  tlier  with  reverence,  must  now  in  reverence  turn  their  backs  upon 
him  ;  and  that  they  must  now  clothe  him  in  pity,  which  had  so 
often  clothed  them  in  love  !  And,  which  adds  more  to  their  duty, 
they  covered  him,  and  said  nothing.  This  modest  sorrow  is  their 
praise,  and  our  example  :  the  sins  of  those  we  love  and  honour, 


24 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


we  must  hear  of  with  indignation,  fearfully  and  unwillingly  be- 
lieve, acknowledge  with  grief  and  shame,  hide  with  honest  ex- 
cuses, and  bury  in  silence. 

How  equal  a  regard  is  this  both  of  piety  and  disobedience!  be- 
cause Cham  sinned  against  his  father,  therefore  he  shall  be  plagued 
in  his  children  ;  Japheth  is  dutiful  to  his  father,  and  finds  it  in 
his  posterity.  Because  Cham  was  an  ill  son  to  his  father,  there- 
fore his  sons  shall  be  servants  to  his  brethren  ;  because  Japheth  set 
his  shoulder  to  Shem's,  to  bear  the  cloke  of  shame,  therefore  shall 
Japheth  dwell  in  the  tents  of  Shem,  partaking  with  him  in  bless- 
ings as  in  duty.  When  we  do  but  what  we  ought,  yet  God  is 
thankful  to  us  ;  and  rewards  that,  which  we  should  sin  if  we  did 
not :  who  could  ever  yet  shew  me  a  man  rebelliously  undutiful  to 
his  parents,  that  hath  prospered  in  himself,  and  his  seed  ? 

Gen.  vii,  ix. 


OF  BABEL. 

How  soon  are  men  and  sins  multiplied !  within  one  hundred 
years  the  world  is  as  full  of  both,  as  if  there  had  been  no  deluge. 
Though  men  could  not  but  see  the  fearful  monuments  of  the  ruin 
of  their  ancestors,  yet  how  quickly  had  they  forgotten  a  flood  ! 
Good  Noah  lived  to  see  the  world  both  populous  and  wicked 
again  ; '  and  doubtless  oft-times  repented  to  have  been  preserver  of 
some,  whom  he  saw  to  traduce  the  vices  of  the  former  world,  to 
the  renewed.  It  could  not  but  grieve  him,  to  see  the  destroyed 
giants  revive  out  of  his  own  loins,  and  to  see  them  of  his  flesh  and 
blood  tyrannize  over  themselves.  In  his  sight  Nimrod,  casting  off 
the  awe  of  his  holy  grandfather,  grew  imperious  and  cruel,  and 
made  his  own  kinsmen  servants.  How  easy  a  thing  it  is  for  a 
great  spirit  to  be  the  head  of  a  faction,  when  even  brethren  will 
stoop  to  servitude  !  And  now  when  men  are  combined  together, 
evil  and  presumptuous  motions  find  encouragement  in  multitudes; 
and  each  man  takes  a  pride  in  seeming  fonvardest :  we  are  the 
cheerfuller  in  good  when  we  have  the  assistance  of  company ; 
much  more  in  sinning,  by  how  much  we  are  more  prone  to  evil 
than  good.  It  Avas  a  proud  word,  Come,  let  us  build  us  a  city  and 
a  tower,  whose  top  may  reach  to  heaven. 

They  were  newly  come  down  from  the  hills  unto  the  plains,  and 
now  think  of  raising  up  a  hill,  of  building  in  the  plain:  when 
their  tents  w-ere  pitched  upon  the  mountains  of  Armenia,  they 
were  as  near  to  heaven  as  their  tower  could  make  them ;  but  their 
ambition  must  needs  aspire  to  a  height  of  their  own  raising. 
Pride  is  ever  discontented,  and  still  seeks  matter  of  boasting  in  her 
own  works. 

How  fondly  do  men  reckon  without  God !  Come,  let  us  build;  as 
if  there  had  been  no  stop  but  in  their  own  will ;  as  if  both  earth 
and  time  had  been  theirs.  Still  do  all  natural  men  build  Babel ; 
forecasting  their  own  plots  so  resolutely,  as  if  there  were  no  power 


OF  BABEL.  25 
to  countermand  them.  It  is  just  with  God  that  peremptory  deter- 
minations seldom  prosper ;  whereas  those  things,  which  are  fear- 
fully and  modestly  undertaken,  commonly  succeed. 

Let  us  build  us  a  city.  If  they  had  taken  God  with  them,  it  had 
been  commendable  ;  establishing  of  societies  is  pleasing  to  him 
that  is  the  God  of  order  :  but  a  tower  whose  top  may  reach  to  hea- 
ven, was  a  shameful  arrogance,  an  impious  presumption.  Who 
would  think  that  we  little  ants  that  creep  upon  the  earth,  should 
think  of  climbing  up  to  heaven,  by  multiplying  of  earth  ? 

Pride  ever  looks  at  the  highest :  the  first  man  would  know  as 
God,  these  would  dwell  as  God  ;  covetousness  and  ambition  know 
no  limits.  And  what  if  they  had  reached  up  to  heaven  ?  some 
hills  are  as  high  as  they  could  hope  to  be,  and  yet  are  no  whit  the 
better  ;  no  place  alters  the  condition  of  nature  :  an  angel  is  glo- 
rious, though  he  be  upon  earth  ;  and  man  is  but  earth,  though  he 
be  above  the  clouds,  The  nearer  they  had  been  to  heaven,  the 
more  subject  should  they  have  been  to  the  violences  of  heaven  ;  to 
thunders,  lightnings,  and  those  other  higher  inflammations  ;  what 
had  this  been,  but  to  thrust  themselves  into  the  hands  of  the  re- 
venger of  all  wicked  insolencies  ?  God  loves  that  heaven  should  be 
Jooked  at,  and  aiFected  with  all  humble  desires,  with  the  holy  am- 
bitions of  faith,  not  with  the  proud  imaginations  of  our  own 
achievements. 

But  wherefore  was  all  this  ?  Not  that  they  loved  so  much  to  be 
neighbours  to  heaven,  as  to  be  famous  upon  earth ;  it  was  not  com- 
modity that  was  here  sought,  Hot  safety,  but  glory  ;  whither  doth 
not  thirst  of  fame  carry  men,  whether  in  good  or  evil!  It  makes 
them  seek  to  climb  to  heaven  •,  it  makes  thein  not  fear  to  run  down 
headlong  to  hell.  Even  in  the  best  things,  desire  of  praise  stands 
in  competit  ion  with  conscience,  and  brags  to  have  the  more  clients. 
One  builds  a  temple  to  Diana,  in  hope  of  glory,  intending  it  for 
one  of  the  great  wonders  of  the  world  ;  another,  in  hope  of  fame, 
burns  it.  He  is  a  rare  man  that  hath  not  some  Babel  of  his  own, 
whereon  he  bestows  pains  and  cost,  only  to  be  talked  of.  If  they 
had  done  better  things  in  a  vain  glorious  purpose,  their  act  had  been 
accursed ;  if  they  had  built  houses  to  God,  if  they  had  sacrificed, 
prayed,  lived  well  \  the  intent  poisons  the  action:  but  now,  both 
the  act  and  the  purpose  are  equally  vain,  and  the  issue  is  as  vain  as 
either. 

God  hath  a  special  indignation  at  pride,  above  all  sins  ;  and  will 
cross  our  endeavours,  not  for  that  they  are  evil,  (what  hurt  could 
be  in  laying  one  brick  upon  another?)  but  for  that  they  are  proud- 
ly undertaken.  He  could  have  hindered  the  laying  of  the  first 
stone  ;  and  might  as  easily  have  made  a  trench  for  the  foundation, 
the  grave  of  the  builders ;  but  he  loves  to  see  what  wicked  men 
would  do,  and  to  let  fools  run  themselves  out  of  breath  :  what  mo- 
nument should  they  have  had  of  their  own  madness,  and  his  pow- 
erful interruption,  if  the  walls  had  risen  to  no  height  ? 

To  stop  them  then  in  the  midst  of  their  course,  he  meddles  not 
with  either  their  hands,  or  their  feet,  but  their  tongues ;  not  by 


26  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

pulling  them  out,  not  by  loosing  their  strings,  nor  by  making  them 
say  nothing,  but  by  teaching  them  to  say  too  much :  here  is  no- 
thing varied  but  the  sound  of  letters ;  even  this  frustrates  the 
work,  and  befools  the  workmen :  how  easy  it  is  for  God  ten  thou- 
sand ways  to  correct  and  forestal  the  greatest  projects  of  men ! 
He,  that  taught  Adam  the  first  words,  taught  them  words  that  ne- 
ver were.  One  calls  for  brick,  the  other  looks  him  in  the  face,  and 
wonders  what  he  commands,  and  how  and  why  he  speaks  such 
words  as  were  never  heard ;  and  instead  thereof  brings  him  mor- 
tar, returning  him  an  answer  as  little  understood:  each  chides  with 
other,  expressing  his  choler,  so  as  he  only  can  understand  himself; 
from  heat  they  fall  to  quiet  intreaties,  but  still  with  the  same  suc- 
cess. At  first,  every  man  thinks  his  fellow  mocks  him  ;  but  now, 
perceiving  this  serious  confusion,  their  onlv  answer  was  silence, 
and  ceasing  :  they  coidd  not  come  together,  for  no  man  could  call 
them  to  be  understood ;  and  if  they  had  assembled,  nothing  could 
be  determined,  because  one  could  never  attain  to  the  other's  pur- 
pose :  no,  they  could  not  have  the  honour  of  a  general  dismission, 
but  each  man  leaves  his  trowel  and  station,  more  like  a  fool  than 
he  undertook  it :  so  commonly  actions  begun  in  glory,  shut  up  in 
shame. 

All  external  actions  depend  upon  the  tongue  :  no  man  can  know 
another's  mind,  if  this  be  not  the  interpreter  ;  hence,  as  there  were 
many  tongues  given  to  stay  the  building  of  Babel,  so  there  were 
as  many  given  t  o  build  the  New  Jerusalem,  the  evangelical  Church. 
How  dear  hath  Babel  cost  all  the  world  !  At  the  first,  when  there 
was  but  one  language,  men  did  spend  their  time  in  arts,  (so  was 
it  requisite  at  the  first  settling  of  the  world)  and  so  came  early  to 
perfection  ;  but  now  we  stay  so  long  (of  necessity)  upon  the 
shell  of  tongues,  that  we  can  hardly  have  time  to  chew  the  sweet 
kernel  of  knowledge :  surely  men  would  have  grown  too  proud, 
if  there  had  been  no  Babel !  It  falls  out  oft-times  that  one  sin  is  a 
remedy  of  a  greater.  Division  of  tongues  must  needs  slacken  any 
work  :  multiplicity  of  language  had  not  been  given  by  the  Holy 
Ghost,  for  a  blessing  to  the  Church,  if  the  world  had  not  been  be- 
fore possessed  with  multiplicity  of  languages  for  a  punishment : 
hence  it  is,  that  the  building  of  our  Sion  rises  no  faster,  because 
our  tongues  are  divided  ;  happy  were  the  Church  of  God,  if  we  all 
spake  but  one  language  :  while  we  differ,  we  can  build  nothing 
but  Babel ;  difference  of  tongues  caused  their  Babel  to  cease,  but 
it  builds  ours.  Gen.  xi. 

OF  ABRAHAM. 

It  was  fit  that  he,  which  should  be  the  father  and  pattern  of  the 
faithful,  should  be  thoroughly  tried  ;  for  in  a  set  copy  every  fault 
is  important,  and  may  prove  a  rule  of  error.  Of  ten  trials  which 
Abraham  past,  the  last  was  the  sorest.  No  son  of  Abraham  can  hope 
to  escape  temptations,  while  he  sees  that  bosom,  in  which  he  de- 
s  res  to  rest,  so  assaidted  with  difficulties. 


OF  ABRAHAM.  27 

Abraham  must  leave  his  country  and  kindred,  and  iive  amongst 
strangers  :  the  calling  of  God  never  leaves  men,  where  k  finds 
them":  the  earth  is  the  Lord's,  and  all  places  are  alike  to  the  wise 
and  faithful.  If  Chaldea  had  not  been  grossly  idolatrous,  Abra- 
ham had  not  left  it ;  no  bond  must  tie  us  to  the  danger  of  in- 
fection. 

But  whither  must  he  go  ?  to  a  place  he  knew  not,  to  men  that 
knew  not  him:  it  is  enough  comfort  to  a  good  man,  wheresoever  he 
is,  that  he  is  acquainted  with  God;  we  are  never  out  of  our  way, 
while  we  follow  the  calling  of  God.  Never  any  man  lost  by  his 
obedience  to  the  Highest;  because-Abraham  yielded,  God  gives 
him  the  possession  of  Canaan  :  I  wonder  more  at  his  faith  in  taking 
this  possession,  than  ii>  leaving  his  own  ;  behold,  Abraham  takes 
possession  for  that  seed  which  he  had  not,  which  in  nature  he  was 
not  like  to  have;  of  that  land  whereof  he  should  not  have  one  foot, 
wherein  his  seed  should  not  be  settled  of  almost  five  hundred  years 
after  :  the  power  of  faith  can  prevent  time,  and  make  future  things 
present;  if  we  be  the  true  sons  of  Abraham,  we  have  already, 
while  we  sojourn  here  on  earth,  the  possession  of  our  Land  of  Pro- 
mise :  while  we  seek  our  country,  we  have  it. 

Yet  even  Canaan  doth  not  afford  him  bread,  which  yet  he  must 
believe  shall  flow  with  milk  and  honey  to  his  seed :  sense  must 
yield,  to  faith  ;  woe  were  us,  if  we  must  judge  of  our  futufe  estate 
by  the  present:  Egypt  gives  relief  to  Abraham,  when  Canaan  can- 
not. In  outward  things  God's  enemies  may  fare  better  than  his 
friends.  Thrice  had  Egypt  preserved  the  Church  of  God,  in  Abra- 
ham, in  Jacob,  in  Christ;  God  oft-times  makes  use  of  the  world, 
for  the  behoof  of  his,  though  without  their  thanks :  as  contrariljr 
he  uses  the  wicked  for  scourges  to  his  own  inheritance,  and  burns 
them  ;  because  in  his  good  they  intended  evil. 

But  what  a  change  is  this  !  hitherto  hath  Sarah  been  Abraham's 
wife,  now  Egypt  hath  made  her  his  sister:  fear  hath  turned  him 
from  a  husband  to  a  brother  ;  no  strength  of  faith  can  exclude  some 
doubtings  :  God  hath  said,  "  I  will  make  thee  a  great  nation  ;"  Abra- 
ham says,  "  The  Egyptians  will  kill  nie  :"  he,  that  lived  by  his 
faith,  yet  shrinketh  andsinneth.  How  vainly  shall  we  hope  to  be- 
lieve without  all  fear,  and  to  live  without  infirmities!  Some  little 
aspersions  of  unbelief  cannot  hinder  the  praise  and  power  of  faith  ; 
Abraham  believed,  and  it  was  imputed  to  him  for  righteousness. 
He,  that  through  inconsideratcness  doubted  twice  of  his  own  life, 
doubted  not  the  life  of  his  seed,  even  from  the  dead  and  dry  womb 
of  Sarah  :  yet  was  it  more  difficult  that  his  posterity  should  live  in 
Sarah,  than  that  Sarah's  husband  should  live  in  Egypt :  this  was 
above  nature,  yet  he  believes  it.  Sometimes  the  believer  sticks  at 
easy  trials,  and  yet  breaks  through  the  greatest  temptations  with- 
out fear.  Abraham  was  old,  ere  this  promise  and  hope  of  a  son  ; 
ar.d  still  the  older,  the  more  incapable:  yet  God  makes  him  wait 
twenty-five  years  for  performance.  No  time  is  long  to  faith  ; 
which  had  learned  to  defer  hopes  without  fainting  and  hksomencss. 


28  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

Abraham  heard  this  news  from  the  angel,  and  laughed ;  Sarah 
heard  it,  and  laughed  :  they  did  not  more  agree  in  their  desire, 
than  differ  in  their  affection  :  Abraham  laughed  for  joy  ;  Sarah,  for 
distrust:  Abraham  laughed,  because  he  believed  it  would  be  so; 
Sarah,  because  she  believed  it  could  not  be  so :  the  same  act  va- 
ries in  the  manner  of  doing,  and  the  intention  of  the  doer.  Yet  Sa- 
rah laughed  but  within  herself,  and  is  betrayed  :  how  God  can  find 
us  out  in  secret  sins!  How  easily  did  she  now  think,  that  he,  which 
could  know  of  her  inward  laughter,  could  know  of  her  conception  ; 
and  now  she  that  laughed,  and  believed  not,  believeth  and  feareth. 

What  a  lively  pattern  do  I  see  in  Abraham  and  Sarah  of  a  strong 
faith,  and  weak  !  of  strong  in  Abraham,  and  weak  in  Sarah.  She, 
to  make  God  good  of  his  word  to  Abraham,  knowing  her  own  bar- 
renness, substitutes  a  Hagar,  and  in  an  ambition  of  seed  persuades 
to  polygamy.  Abraham  had  never  looked  to  obtain  the  promise  by 
any  other  than  a  barren  womb,  if  his  own  wife  had  not  impor- 
tuned him  to  take  another.  When  our  own  apparent  means  fail, 
weak  faith  is  put  to  the  shifts ;  and  projects  strange  devices  of  her 
own  to  attain  the  end.  She  will  rather  conceive  by  another  womb 
than  be  childless :  when  she  hears  of  an  impossibility  to  nature, 
she  doubteth,  and  yet  hides  her  diffidence ;  and  when  she  must  be- 
lieve, feareth,  because  she  did  distrust :  Abraham  hears  and  be- 
lieves, and  expects  and  rejoices ;  he  saith  not,  "  I  am  old  and 
Weak,  Sarah  is  old  and  barren  ;  where  are  the  many  nations  that 
shall  come  from  these  withered  loins  ?"  It  is  enough  to  him  that 
God  hath  said  it :  he  sees  not  the  means,  he  sees  the  promise.  He 
knew  that  God  would  rather  raise  him  up  seed  from  the  very  stones 
that,  he  trod  upon,  than  himself  should  want  a  large  and  happy  issue. 

There  is  no  faith,  where  there  is  either  means  or  hopes.  Difficul- 
ties and  impossibilities  are  the  true  objects  of  belief:  hereupon 
God  adds  to  his  name,  that  which  he  would  fetch  from  his  loins, 
and  made  his  name  as  ample  as  his  posterity  :  never  any  man  was  a 
loser  by  believing  :  faith  is  ever  recompensed  with  glory. 

Neither  is  Abraham  content  only  to  wait  for  God,  but  to  smart 
for  him :  God  bids  him  cut  his  own  flesh ;  he  willingly  sacrifices 
this  parcel  of  his  skin  and  blood  to  him,  that  was  the  owner  of  all : 
How  glad  he  is  to  carry  this  painful  mark  of  the  love  of  his  Cre- 
ator !  bow  forward  to  seal  this  covenant  with  blood,  betwixt  God 
and  him  !  not  regarding  the  soreness  of  his  body,  in  comparison 
of  the  confirmation  of  his  soul.  The  wound  was  not  so  grievous 
as  the  signification  was  comfortable.  For  herein  he  saw,  that  from 
his  loins  should  come  that  blessed  Seed,  which  should  purge  his 
soul  from  all  corruption.  Well  is  that  part  of  ns  lost,  which  may 
give  assurance  of  the  salvation  of  the  whole ;  our  faith  is  not  yet 
sound,  if  it  have  not  taught  us  to  neglect  pain  for  God,  and  more 
to  love  his  sacraments  than  our  own  flesh.  Gen.  xii. 


29 


OF  ISAAC  SACRIFICED. 

But  all  these  are  but  easy  tasks  of  faith :  all  ages  have  stood 
amazed  at  the  next ;  not  knowing  whether  they  should  more  won- 
der at  God's  command,  or  Abraham's  obedience.  Many  years  had 
that  good  patriarch  waited  for  his  Isaac  ;  now  at  last  he  hath  joy- 
fully received  him,  and  that  with  this  gracious  acclamation  ;  In 
Isaac  shall  thy  seed  be  called,  and  all  nations  blessed.  Behold,  the 
son  of  his  age,  the  son  of  his  love,  the  son  of  his  expectation,  he 
that  might  not  endure  a  mock  from  his  brother,  must  now  endure 
the  knife  of  his  father  :  Take  thine  only  son  Isaac  whom  thou 
loves t,  and  get  thee  to  the  land  of  Moriuh,  and  offer  him  there  for 
a  burnt  offering. 

Never  any  gold  was  tried  in  so  hot  a  fire.  Who  but  Abraham 
would  not  have  expostulated  with  God  ?  "  What !  doth  the  God 
of  mercies  now  begin  to  delight  in  blood  ?  Is  it  possible  that  mur- 
der should  become  piety  ?  or,  if  thou  wilt  needs  take  pleasure  in  a 
human  sacrifice,  is  there  none  but  Isaac  fit  for  thine  altar  ;  none  but 
Abraham  to  offer  him  ?  Shall  these  hands  destroy  the  fruits  of  mine 
own  loins  ?  Can  I  not  be  faithful  unless  I  be  unnatural ;  or,  if  I 
must  needs  be  the  monster  of  all  parents,  will  not  Ishmael  yet  be  ac- 
cepted ?  O  God,  where  is  thy  mercy  ;  where  is  thy  justice  ?  Hast 
thou  given  me  but  one  only  son,  and  must  I  now  slay  him  ?  Why 
did  I  wait  so  long  for  him  ?  Why  didst  thou  give  him  me  ?  Wiry 
didst  thou  promise  me  a  blessing  in  him  i  What  will  the  heathen 
say,  when  they  shall  hear  of  this  infamous  massacre  ?  How  can 
thy  name  and  my  profession  escape  a  perpetual  blasphemy  r  With 
what  face  shall  I  look  upon  my  wife  Sarah,  whose  son  I  have  mur- 
dered ?  How  shall  she  entertain  the  executioner  of  Isaac  ?  or  who 
will  believe  that  I  did  this  from  thee  ?  How  shall  not  all  the  world 
spit  at  this  holy  cruelty,  and  say,  '  There  goes  the  man  that  cut  the 
throat  of  his  own  son  ?'  Yet  if  he  were  an  ungracious  or  rebel- 
lious child,  his  deserts  might  give  some  colour  to  this  violence  ;  but 
to  lay  hands  on  so  dear,  so  dutiful,  so  hopeful  a  son,  is  incapable 
of  all  pretences.  But  grant  that  thou,  which  art  the  God  of  nature, 
mayest  either  alter  or  neglect  it :  what  shall  I  say  to  the  truth  of  thy 
promises  ?  Can  thy  justice  admit  contradictions  ?  Can  thy  decrees 
be  changeable  ?  Canst  thou  promise  and  disappoint  ?  Can  these 
two  stand  together,  '  Isaac  shall  live  to  be  the  father  of  nations 
and  1  Isaac  shall  now  die  by  the  hand  of  his  father  ?'  When  Isaac 
is  once  gone,  where  is  my  seed,  where  is  my  blessing  ?  O  God,  if 
thy  commands  and  purposes  be  capable  of  alteration,  alter  this 
bloody  sentence,  and  let  thy  first  word  stand." 

These  would  have  been  the  thoughts  of  a  weak  heart :  but  God 
knew  that  he  spake  to  an  Abraham,  and  Abraham  knew  that  he 
had  to  do  with  a  God :  faith  had  taught  him  not  to  argue,  but 
obey.  In  a  holy  wilfulness  he  either  forgets  nature,  or  despises  her  ; 


30  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

he  is  sure  that  what  God  commands,  is  good  ;  that  what  he  pro- 
mises, is  infallible ;  and  therefore  is  careless  of  the  means,  and  trusts 
to  the  end. 

In  matters  of  God,  whosoever  consults  with  flesh  and  blood  shall 
never  offer  up  his  Isaac  to  God  :  there  needs  no  counsellor  when  we 
know  God  is  the  commander  :  here  is  neither  grudging,  nor  delibe- 
rating, nor  delaying :  his  faith  would  not  suffer  him  so  much  as  to 
be  sorry  for  that  he  must  do.  Sarah  herself  may  not  know  of  God's 
charge,  and  her  husband's  purpose,  lest  her  affection  should  have 
overcome  her  faith ;  lest  her  weakness,  now  grown  importunate, 
should  have  said,  "  Disobey  God  and  die."  That  which  he  must 
do,  he  will  do  ;  he,  that  hath  learned  not  to  regard  the  life  of  his  son, 
had  learned  not  to  regard  the  sorrow  of  his  wife.  It  is  too  much 
tenderness  to  respect  the  censures  and  constructions  of  others, 
when  we  have  a  direct  word  from  God. 

The  good  patriarch  rises  early,  and  addresses  himself  to  his  sad 
journey.  And  now  must  he  travel  three  whole  days  to  this  execu- 
tion ;  and  still  must  Isaac  be  in  his  eye,  whom  all  this  while  he 
seems  to  see  bleeding  upon  the  pile  of  wood  which  he  carries  : 
there  is  nothing  so  miserable  as  to  dwell  under  the  expectation  of 
a  great  evil;  that  misery  which  must  be,  is  mitigated  with  speed, 
and  aggravated  with  delay.  All  this  while,  if  Abraham  had  re- 
pented him,  he  had  leisure  to  return. 

There  is  no  small  trial  even  in  the  very  time  of  trial.  Now,  when 
they  are  come  within  sight  of  the  chosen  mountain,  the  servants 
are  dismissed  ;  what  a  devotion  is  this  that  will  abide  no  witnesses  ! 
He  will  not  suffer  two  of  his  own  vassals  to  see  him  do  that,  which 
soon  after  all  the  world  must  know  he  hath  done  ;  yet  is  not  Abra- 
ham afraid  of  that  piety,  which  the  beholders  could  not  see  without 
horror,  without  resistance  ;  which  no  ear  could  hear  of  without 
abomination.  What  stranger  could  have  endured  to  see  the  father 
carry  the  knife  and  fire,  instruments  of  that  death,  which  he  would 
rather  suffer  than  inflict? — The  son  securely  carrying  that  burden 
which  must  carry  him  ? 

But  if  Abraham's  heart  could  have  known  how  to  relent,  that 
question  of  his  dear,  innocent,  and  religious  son  had  melted  it  into 
compassion  ;  My  father,  behold  the  fire  and  the  wood,  but  where  is 
the  sacrifice  f  I  know  not  whether  that  word,  My  father,  did  not 
strike  Abraham  as  deep  as  the  knife  of  Abraham  could  strike  his 
son  :  yet  doth  he  not  so  much  as  think,  "  O  miserable  man,  that 
may  not  at  once  be  a  son  to  such  a  God,  and  a  father  to  such  a 
son  ;"  still  he  persists,  and  conceals,  and,  where  he  meant  not,  pro- 
phesies ;  My  son,  God  shall  provide  a  lamb  for  the  burnt  offering. 

The  heavy  tidings  were  loath  to  come  forth :  it  was  a  death  to 
Abraham  to  say  what  he  must  do  :  he  knows  his  own  faith  to  act 
this,  he  knows  not  Isaac's  to  endure  it.  But  now  when  Isaac  hath 
helped  to  build  the  altar,  whereon  he  must  be  consumed,  he  hears, 
not  without  astonishment,  the  strange  command  of  God,  the  final 
will  of  his  father:  "  My  son,  thou  art  the  lamb  which  God  hath 
provided  for  this  burnt-oifering  :  if  my  blood  would  have  excused 


OF  ISAAC  SACRIFICED.  31 

thee,  how  many  thousand  times  would  I  rather  to  give  tlicc  mine 
own  life  than  take  thine  !  Alas,  I  am  full  of  days,  and  now  of 
long  lived  not  but  in  thee  ;  thou  mightest  have  preserved  the  life 
of  thy  father,  and  have  comforted  his  death,  but  the  God  of  us  both 
hath  chosen  thee:  he,  that  gave  thee  unto  me  miraculously,  bids  me 
by  an  unusual  means  return  thee  unto  him.  I  need  not  tell  thee,  that 
I  sacritice  all  my  worldly  joys,  yea  and  myself,  in  thee  ;  but  God 
must  be  obeyed ;  neither  art  thou  too  dear  for  him  that  calls  thee: 
come  on,  my  son,  restore  the  life  that  God  hath  given  thee  by  me  : 
offer  thyself  willingly  to  these  flames;  send  up  thy  soul  cheerful- 
ly unto  thy  glory  ;  and  know  that  God  loves  thee  above  others, 
since  he  requires  thee  alone  to  be  consecrated  in  sacrifice  to  him- 
self." 

Who  cannot  imagine  with  what  perplexed  mixtures  of  passions, 
with  what  changes  of  countenance,  what  doubts,  what  fears,  what 
amazement,  good  Isaac  received  this  sudden  message  from  the 
mouth  of  his  father,  how  he  questioned,  hovv  lie  pleaded  ?  But 
when  he  had  somewhat  digested  his  thoughts,  and  considered  that 
the  author  was  God,  the  actor  Abraham,  the  action  a  sacrifice,  he 
now  approves  himself  the  son  of  Abraham  ;  now  he  encourages  the 
trembling  hand  of  his  father,  with  whom  he  strives  in  this  praise  of 
forwardness  and  obedience  ;  now  he  offers  his  hands  and  feet  to  the 
cords,  his  throat  to  the  knife,  his  body  to  the  altar  ;  and  growing 
ambitious  of  the  sword  and  fire,  intreats  his  father  to  do  that  which 
he  would  have  done  though  he  had  dissuaded  him.  O  holy  emu- 
lation of  faith !  O  blessed  agreement  of  the  sacrificer  and  obla- 
tion !  Abraham  is  as  ready  to  take,  as  Isaac  to  give  ;  he  binds  those 
dear  hands,  which  are  more  straitly  bound  with  the  cords  of  duty 
and  resolution  :  he  lays  his  sacrifice  upon  the  wood,  which  now  be- 
fore-hand burnt  inwardly  with  the  heavenly  fire  of  zeal  and  de- 
votion. 

And  now,  having  kissed  him  his  last,  not  without  mutual  tears, 
he  lifts  up  his  hand  to  fetch  the  stroke  of  death  at  once,  not  so 
much  as  thinking,  "  perhaps  God  will  relent  after  the  first  wound." 
Now,  the  stay  of  Abraham,  the  hope  of  the  Church,  lies  about  to 
bleed  under  the  hand  of  a  father  :  what  bowels  can  choose  but  yearn 
at  this  spectacle  ?  which  of  the  savagest  heathens  that  had  been 
now  upon  the  hill  of  Moriab,  and  had  seen,  through  the  bushes, 
the  sword  of  a  father  hanging  over  the  throat  of  such  a  son,  would 
not  have  been  more  perplexed  in  his  thoughts,  than  that  unexpect- 
ed sacrifice  was  in  those  briars  ?  yet  he  whom  it  nearest  concerned 
is  least  touched  ;  faith  hath  wrought  the  same  in  him  which  cruelty 
would  in  others,  not  to  be  moved.  He  contemns  all  fears,  and 
overiocksall  impossibilities  ;  his  heart  tells  him  that  the  same  hand, 
which  raised  Isaac  frcm  the  dead  womb  of  Sarah,  can  raise  him 
again  from  the  ashes  of  his  sacrifice :  with  this  confidence  was  'the 
hand  of  Abraham  now  falling  upon  the  throat  of  Isaac,  who  had 
given  himself  for  dead,  and  rejoiced  in  the  change  ;  when  sudden- 
ly the  angel  of  God  interrupts  him,  forbids  him,  commends  him. 

The  voice  of  God  was  never  so  welcome,  nev«<r  so  sweet,  never 


32  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

so  seasonable  as  now  :  it  was  the  trial,  that  God  intended,  not  the 
fact;  Isaac  is  sacrificed,  and  is  yet  alive:  and  now  both  of  them 
are  more  happy  in  that  they  would  have  done,  than  they  could  have 
been  distressed  if  they  had  done  it.  God's  charges  are  oft-times 
harsh  in  the  beginnings  and  proceeding,  but  in  the  conclusion  al- 
ways comfortable  :  true  spiritual  comforts  are  commonly  late  and 
sudden  :  God  defers  on  purpose  that  our  trials  may  be  perfect,  our 
deliverance  welcome,  our  recompence  glorious ;  Isaac  had  never 
been  so  precious  to  his  father,  if  he  had  not  been  recovered  from 
death  ;  if  he  had  not  been  as  miraculously  restored  as  given  :  Abra- 
ham had  never  been  so  blessed  in  his  seed,  if  he  had  not  neglected 
Isaac  for  God.  The  only  way  to  find  comfort  in  any  earthly  ching, 
is  to  surrender  it,  in  a  faithful  carelessness,  into  the  hands  of  God. 

Abraham  came  to  sacrifice,  he  may  not  go  away  with  dry  hands  : 
God  cannot  abide  that  good  purposes  should  be  frustrated.  Lest 
either  he  should  not  do  that  for  which  he  came,  or  should  want 
means  of  speedy  thanksgiving  for  so  gracious  a  disappointment ; 
behold  a  ram  stands  ready  for  the  sacrifice,  and,  as  it  were,  prof- 
fers himself  to  this  happy  exchange.  He,  that  made  that  beast, 
brings  him  thither,  fastens  him  there :  even  in  small  things  there 
is  a  great  providence.  What  mysteries  there  are  in  every  act  of  God  ! 
the  only  Son  of  God,  upon  this  very  hill  is  laid  upon  the  altar  of  the 
Cross  ;  and  so  becomes  a  true  sacrifice  for  the  world,  that  yet  he  is 
raised  without  impeachment,  and  exempted  from  the  power  of 
death :  the  Lamb  of  God,  which  takes  away  the  sins  of  the  world, 
is  here  really  offered  and  accepted  :  one  Saviour  in  two  figures  ;  in 
the  onedving  ;  restored  in  the  other.  So  Abraham,  while  he  ex- 
ercises his  faith,  confirms  it ;  and  rejoices  more  to  foresee  the  true 
Isaac  in  that  place  offered  to  death  for  his  sins,  than  to  see  the  car- 
nal Isaac  preserved  from  death  for  the  reward  of  his  faith. 

Whatsoever  is  dearest  to  us  upon  earth  is  our  Isaac  ;  happy  are 
we  if  we  can  sacrifice  it  to  God :  those  shall  never  rest  with  Abra- 
ham, that  cannot  sacrifice  with  Abraham.  Gen.  xxu. 


OF  LOT  AND  SODOM. 

Before  Abraham  and  Lot  grew  rich,  they  dwelt  together ;  now  their 
wealth  separates  them  :  their  society  was  a  greater  good  than  their 
riches ;  many  a  one  is  a  loser  by  his  wealth  :  who  would  account 
those  things  good  which  make  us  worse? 

It  had  been  the  duty  of  young  Lot  to  offer  rather  than  to  choose  ; 
to  yield  rather  than  contend  :  who  would  not  here  think  Abraham 
the"  nephew,  and  Lot  the  uncle  \  It  is  no  disparagement  for 
greater  persons  to  begin  treaties  of  peace.  Better  doth  it  beseem 
ever}-  son  of  Abraham  to  win  with  love,  than  to  sway  with  power. 
Abraham  yields  over  this  right  of  his  choice  ;  Lot  takes  it.  And 
behold,  Lot  is  crossed  in  that  which  he  chose,  Abraham  is  blessed 
in  that  which  was  left  him  ;  God  never  suffers  any  man  to  lose,  by 
an  humble  remission  of  his  right  in  a  desire  of  peace. 


OF  LOT  AND  SODOMi 


93 


Wealth  had  made  Lot  not  only  undutiful,  but  covetous ;  be  sees  the 
good  plains  of  Jordan,  the  richness  of  the  soil,  the  commodity  of 
the  rivers,  the  situation  of  the  cities,  and  now,  not  once  inquiring' 
into  the  conditions  of  the  inhabitants,  he  is  in  love  with  Sodom  : 
outward  appearances  are  deceitful  guides  to  our  judgment,  or  af- 
fections: they  are  worthy  to  be  deceived  that  value  things  as  they 
seem  :  it  is  not  long  after,  that  Lot  pays  dear  for  his  rashness.  He 
fled  for  quietness  with  his  uncle,  and  finds  war  with  strangers  : 
now  is  he  carried  prisoner  with  all  his  substance,  by  great  enemies  ; 
Abraham  must  rescue  him,  of  whom  he  was  forsaken.  That  wealth, 
which  was  the  cause  of  his  former  quarrels,  is  made  a  pre}''  to  mer- 
ciless heathens  :  that  place,  which  his  eye  covetously  chose,  betrays 
his  life  and  goods.  How  many  Christians,  while  they  have  looked 
at  gain,  have  lost  themselves  ! 

Yet  this  ill  success  hath  neither  driven  out  Lot,  nor  amended 
Sodom  ;  he  still  loves  his  commodity,  and  the  Sodomites  their  sins: 
wicked  men  grow  worse  with  afflictions,  as  water  grows  more  cold 
after  a  heat ;  and  as  they  leave  not  sinning,  so  God  leaves  not 
plaguing  them,  but  still  follows  them  with  succession  of  judg- 
ments. In  how  few  years  hath  Sodom  forgot  she  was  spoiled,  and 
led  captive  !  If  that  wicked  city  had  been  warned  by  the  sword,  it 
had  escaped  the  fire  ;  but  now  this  visitation  hath  not  made  ten 
good  men,  in  those  five  cities  :  how  fit  was  this  heap  for  the  fire, 
which  was  all  chad'!  Only  Lot  vexed  his  righteous  soul  with  the 
sight  of  their  uncleanness  ;  he  vexed  his  own  soul,  for  who  bade 
him  stay  there?  yet  because  he  was  vexed,  he  is  delivered.  He 
escapeth  their  judgment  from  whose  sins  he  escaped.  Though 
lie  would  be  a  guest  of  Sodom,  yet  because  he  would  not  enter- 
tain their  sins,  he  becomes  a  host  to  the  angels :  even  the  good 
angels  are  the  executioners  of  God's  judgment :  there  cannot  be 
a  better  or  more  noble  act,  than  to  do  justice  upon  obstinate  ma- 
lefactors. 

Who  can  be  ashamed  of  that  which  did  not  mis-beseem  the  very- 
angels  of  God  ?  Where  should  the  angels  lodge  but  with  lx>t  > 
the  houses  of  holy  men  are  full  of  these  heavenly  spirits,  when  they 
know  not ;  they  pitch  their  tents  in  ours,  and  visit  us,  when  we  see 
not ;  and  when  we  feel  not,  protect  us.  It  is  the  honour  of  God's 
saints  to  be  attended  by  angels.  The  filthy  Sodomites  now  flock 
together,  stiried  up  with  the  fury  of  envy  and  lust ;  and  dare  re- 
quire to  do  that  in  troops,  which  to  act  single,  had  been  too  abo- 
minable ;  to  imagine,  unnatural :  continuance  and  society  in  evil, 
makes  wicked  men  outrageous  and  impudent :  ft  is  not  enough  for 
Lot  to  be  the  witness,  but  he  must  be  the  bawd  also.  Bring  forth 
these  men,  th-it  we  may  know  them.  Behold  !  even  the  Sodomites 
speak  modestly  ;  though  their  acts  and  intents  be  villanous.  What 
a  shame  is  it  iorvthose  which  profess  purity  of  heart,  to  speak 
filthily!  ' 

The  good  man  craves  and  pleads  the  laws  of  hospitality  ;  and 
vox,,  i.  D 


i4  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

■when  lie  sees  headstrong  purposes  of  mischief,  chooses  rather  to  be 
an  ill  father  than  an  ill  host :  his  intention  was  good,  but  his  offer 
was  faulty  ;  if  through  his  allowance  the  Sodomites  had  defiled  his 
daughters,  it  had  been  his  sin  ;  if  through  violence  they  had  de- 
filed his  guests,  it  had  been  oulv  theirs  :  there  can  be  no  warrant 
tor  us  to  sin,  lest  others  should  sin  :  it  is  for  God  to  prevent  sins 
with  judgments,  it  is  not  for  men  to  prevent  a  greater  sin  with  a 
less  :  the  best  minds,  wiien  thev  are  troubled,  yield  inconsiderate 
motions  ;  as  water,  that  is  violently  stirred,  sends  up  bubbles  :  God 
meant  better  to  Lot,  than  to  surfer  his  weak  offer  to  be  accepted : 
those  which  are  bent  upon  villany  arc  more  exasperated  bv  dis- 
suasion ;  as  some  strong  streams,  when  they  are  resisted  by  flood- 
gates, swell  over  the  banks. 

Many  a  one  is  hardened  by  the  good  Word  of  God  ;  and  instead 
of  receiving  the  counsel,  rages  at  the  messenger  :  when  men  are 
grown  to  that  pass,  that  they  are  no  whit  better  bv  afflictions,  and 
worse  with  admonitions,  God  finds  it  time  to  strike.  Now  Lot's 
guests  begin  to  shew  themselves  angels,  and  first  deliver  Lot  in 
Sodom,  then  from  Sodom ;  first  strike  them  with  blindness,  whom 
they  will  after  consume  with  fire.  How  little  did  the  Sodomites 
think  that  vengeance  was  so  near  them  !  While  thev  went  groping 
in  the  street,  and  cursing  those  whom  they  could  not  find,  Lot  with 
the  angels  is  in  secure  light,  and  sees  them  miserable,  and  foresee* 
them  burning.  It  is  the  use  of  God  to  blind  and  besot  those  whom 
he  means  to  destroy :  the  light  which  they  shall  see  shall  be  fierv, 
which  shall  be  the  beginning  of  an  everlasting  darkness,  and  a  fire 
unquenchable. 

Now  thev  have  done  sinning,  and  God  begins  to  judge-  wick- 
edness hath  but  a  time,  the  punishment  of  wickedness  is  beyond  all 
time.  The  residue  of  the  night  was  both  short  and  dangerous. 
Yet,  good  Lot,  though  sought  for  by  the  Sodomites,  and  newly 
pulled  into  his  house  bv  the  angels,  goes  forth  of  his  house  to  seek 
his  sons-in-law  :  no  good  man  would  be  saved  alone  ;  faith  makes 
us  charitable  with  neglect  of  all  peril :  he  warns  them  like  a  pro- 
phet, and  advises  them  like  a  father,  but  both  in  vain  ;  he  seems  to 
them  as  if  he  mocked,  and  they  do  more  than  seem  to  mock  him 
again.  "  Why  should  to-morrow  differ  from  other  days  r  Who 
ever  saw  it  rain  fire  f  or  whence  should  that  brimstone  come  ?  Or 
if  such  showers  must  fall,  how  shall  nothing  burn  but  tins  valley  r" 
So  to  carnal  men  preaching  is  foolishness,  devotion  idleness,  the 
prophets  madmen,  Paul  a  babbler  :  these  men's  incredulity  is  as 
worthy  of  the  fire,  as  the  others'  uncleanness.  He,  that  believes  not, 
is  condemned  already. 

The  messengers  of  God  do  not  only  hasten  Lot,  but  pull  him  by 
a  gracious  violence,  out  of  that  impure  city.  They  thirsted  at 
once  after  vengeance  upon  Sodom,  and  Lot's  Afety  ;  they  knew 
God  could  not  strike  Sodom,  till  Lot  were  gone  out,  and  that  Lot 
could  not  be  safe  within  those  walls.  We  are  naturally  in  Sodom  : 
if  God  did  not  hale  us  out,  whilst  we  linger,  we  should  be  con- 


or  lot  and  sodom.  35 

demned  with  the  world.  If  God  meet  with  a  very  good  field,  he 
pulls  up  the  weeds,  and  lets  the  corn  grow;  if  indifferent,  he  lets 
the  corn  and  weeds  grow  together ;  if  very  ill,  he  gathers  the  few 
ears  of  corn,  and  burns  the  weeds. 

Oh  the  large  bounty  of  God,  which  reacheth  not  to  us  only,  but 
to  ours  !  God  saves  Lot  for  Abraham's  sake,  and  Zoar  for  Lot's 
sake  ;  if  Sodom  had  not  beea  too  wicked,  it  had  escaped  :  were  it 
not  for  God's  dear  children,  that  are  intermixed  with  the  world,  it 
could  not  stand  :  the  wicked  owe  their  lives  unto  those  few  good, 
whom  they  hate  and  persecute. 

Now  at  once  the  sun  rises  upon  Zoar,  and  fire  falls  down  upon 
Sodom  :  Abraham  stands  upon  the  hill,  and  sees  the  cities  burning  ; 
it  is  fair  weather  with  God's  children,  when  it  is  foulest  with  the 
wicked.  Those,  which  burned  with  the  fire  of  lust,  are  now  con- 
sumed with  the  fire  of  vengeance  :  they  sinned  against  nature  ;  and 
now  against  the  course  of  nature,  fire  descends  from  heaven,  and 
consumes  them. 

Lot  may  not  so  much  as  look  at  the  flame,  whether  for  the  stay 
of  his  passage,  or  the  horror  of  the  sight,  or  trial  of  his  faith,  or 
fear  of  commiseration.  Small  precepts  from  God  are  of  impor- 
tance; obedience  is  as  well  tried,  and  disobedience  as  well  pu- 
nished, in  little,  as  in  much :  his  wife  doth  but  turn  back  her  head, 
whether  in  curiosity,  or  unbelief,  or  love  and  compassion  of  the 
place  ;  she  is  turned  into  a  monument  of  disobedience  :  what  doth 
it  avail  her  not  to  be  turned  into  ashes  in  Sodom,  when  she  is 
turned  into  a  pillar  of  salt  in  the  plain  !  He,  that  saved  a  whole 
city,  cannot  save  his  own  wife.  God  cannot  abide  small  sins,  in 
those  whom  he  hath  obliged.  If  we  displease  him,  God  can  as  well 
meet  with  us  out  of  Sodom.  Lot,  now  come  into  Zoar,  marvels 
at  the  stay  of  her,  whom  he  might  not  before  look  back  to  call ; 
and  soon  after  returning  to  seek  her,  beholds  this  change  with 
wonder  and  grief :  he  finds  salt  instead  of  flesh,  a  pillar  instead  of 
a  wife:  he  finds  Sodom  consumed,  and  her  standing  ;  and  is  more 
amazed  with  this,  by  how  much  it  was  both  more  near  him,  and  less 
expected. 

When  God  delivers  us  from  destruction,  he  doth  not  secure  us 
from  all  afflictions  :  Lot  hath  lost  his  wife,  his  allies,  his  substance, 
and  now  betakes  himself  to  an  uncomfortable  solitariness. 

Yet  though  he  fled  from  company,  lie  could  not  fly  from  sin : 
he,  who  could  not  be  tainted  witn  uncleanness  in  Sodom,  is  over- 
taken with  drunkennness  and  incest  in  a  cave:  rather  than  Satan 
shall  want  baits,  his  own  daughters  will  prove  Sodomites:  those, 
which  should  have  comforted,  betrayed  him :  how  little  are  some 
hearts  moved  with  judgments  !  the  ashes  of  Sodom,  and  the  pdlar 
of  salt,  were  not  yet  out  of  their  eye,  when  they  dare  think  of  lying 
with  their  own  father.  They  knew  that  whilst  Lot  was  sober,  he 
could  not  be  unchaste  :  drunkenness  is  the  way  o  all  bestial  affec- 
tion sand  acts.  Wine  knows  no  difference  either  of  persons,  or 
sins :    No  doubt,  Lot  was  afterwards  ashamed  of  his  incestuous 


S6  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

seed,  and  now  wished  he  had  come  alone  out  of  Sodom  ;  yet  eveu 
this  unnatural  bed  was  blessed  with  increase  ;  and  one  of  our  Sa- 
viour's worthy  ancestors  sprung  after  from  this  line.  God's  elec- 
tion is  not  tied  to  our  means  ;  neither  are  blessings  or  curses  ever 
traduced :  the  chaste  bed  of  holy  parents  hath  oft-times  bred  a 
monstrous  generation ;  and  contrarily,  God  hath  raised  sometimes 
a  holy  seed  from  the  drunken  bed  of  incest  or  fornication.  It 
hath  been  seen,  that  weighty  ears  of  corn  have  grown  out  of  the 
compass  of  the  tilled  field  :  thus  will  God  magnify  the  freedom  of 
his  own  choice;  and  let  us  know  that  we  are  not  born,  but  made 
good.  Gen,  xiii,  xix. 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


BOOK  III. 


TO  THE  RIGHT  HONOURABLE 

THE  LORD  DENNY, 

BARON  OF  WALTHAM,  MY  SINGULAR  GOOD  PATRON, 
ALL  GRACE  AND  HAPPINESS, 


RIGHT  honourable:- 

I  KNOW,  and  in  all  humility  confess,  how  weak  my  discourse 
is,  and  how  unworthy  of  this  divine  subject  which  J  have  under- 
taken ;  which  if  an  angel  from  heaven  should  say  he  could  suffi- 
ciently comment  upon,  I  should  distrust  him  :  yet  this  let  me  say, 
without  any  vain  boasting,  that  these  thoughts,  such  as  they  are, 
through  the  blessing  of  God,  I  have  woven  out  of  myself ;  as  hold- 
ing it  after  our  Saviour's  rule,  better  to  give,  than  to  receive.  It  is 
easier  to  heap  together  large  volumes  of  others'  labours,  than  to 
work  out  lesser  of  our  own  ;  and  the  suggestion  of  one  new  thought, 
is  better  than  many  repeated. 

This  part  (which  together  with  the  Author  is  your' 's J  shall 
present  to  your  Lordship  the  busiest  of  all  the  patriarchs,  together 
with  his  trials,  and  success  :  wherein  you  shall  see  Esau  stripped 
by  fraud  of  that  which  he  willingly  sold ;  Jacob's  hard  adventures 
jor  the  blessing,  and  no  less  hard  services  for  his  wh>es  and  sub- 
stance,  his  dangerous  encounters  ending  joyfully ,  the  rape  of  his 
only  daughter,  seconded  with  the  treacherous  murder  of  his  sons ; 
JudaKs  wrong  to  Tamar  repayed  by  his  own  uncleanness ;  Jo- 
seph's sale,  imprisonment,  honour,  piety ;  the  sin  of  his  brethren 
well  bestowed,  well  answered.  I  so  touch  at  the  uses  of  all  these, 
as  one  that  knows  it  is  easy  to  say  more,  and  impossible  to  say 
enough.  God  give  a  blessing  to  my  endeavours,  and  a  pardon  to 
my  weakness,  to  your  Lordship  an  increase  of  his  graces,  and  per- 
fection of  all  happiness. 

Your  Lordship's  humbly 

and  officiously  devoted  in  all  duty, 

JOSEPH  HALL. 


OF  JACOB  AND  ESAU. 

Of  all  the  patriarchs,  none  make  so  little  noise  in  the  world  as 
Isaac  ;  none  lived  either  so  privately,  or  so  innocently  :  neither 
know  I  whether  he  approved  himself  a  better  son  or  husband. 
For  the  one  ;  he  gave  himself  over  to  the  knife  of  his  father,  and 


38  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

mourned  three  years  for  his  mother :  for  the  other  ;  he  sought  not 
to  any  handmaid's  bed,  but  in  a  chaste  forbearance  reserved  him- 
self for  twenty  years'  space,  and  prayed :  Rebecca  was  so  long 
barren :  his  prayers  proved  more  effectual  than  his  seed.  At  last 
she  conceived,  as  if  she  had  been  more  than  the  daughter-in-law 
to  Sarah,  whose  son  was  given  her,  not  out  of  the  power  of  nature, 
but  of  her  husband's  faith. 

God  is  oft  better  to  us  than  we  would  :  Isaac  prays  for  a  son  ; 
God  gives  him  two  at  once :  now,  she  is  no  less  troubled  with  the 
strife  of  the  children  in  her  womb,  than  before  with  the  want  of 
children  :  we  know  not  when  we  are  pleased ;  that  which  we  de- 
sire, oft-times  discontents  us  more  in  the  fruition  ;  we  are  ready 
to  complain  both  full  and  fasting.  Before  Rebecca  conceived,  she 
was  at  ease  :  before  spiritual  regeneration  there  is  all  peace  in  the 
sou!  ;  no  sooner  is  the  new  man  formed  in  us,  but  the  flesh  con- 
flicts with  the  spirit.  There  is  no  grace  where  is  no  unquietness : 
Esau  alone  would  not  have  striven  :  nature  will  ever  agree  with  it- 
self. Never  anv  Rebecca  conceived  only  an  Esau,  or  was  so  happy 
as  to  conceive  none  but  a  Jacob  ;  she  must  be  the  mother  of  both, 
that  she  may  have  both  joy  and  exercise.  This  strife  began  early  ; 
every  true  Israelite  begins  his  war  with  his  being.  How  many  ac- 
tions which  we  know  not  of,  are  not  without  presage  and  signi- 
fication ! 

These  two  were  the  champions  of  two  nations ;  the  field  was 
thejr  mother's  womb  ;  their  quarrel  precedency  and  superiority. 
Ei,au  got  the  right  of  nature,  Jacob  of  grace  :  yet  that  there  might 
be  some  pretence  of  equalitv,  lest  Esau  should  outrun  his  brother 
into  the  world,  Jacob  holds  him  fast  by  the  heel:  so  his  hand  was 
born  before  the  other's  foot:  but  because  Esau  was  some  minutes 
the  elder,  that  the  younger  might  have  better  claim  to  that  which 
God  had  promised,  he  buys  that  which  he  could  not  win  :  if  either 
by  strife,  or  purchase,  or  suit,  we  can  attain  spiritual  blessings,  we 
are  happy  :  if  Jacob  had  come  forth  first,  he  had  not  known  how 
much  he  was  bound  to  God  for  the  favour  of  his  advancement. 

There  was  never  any  meat,  except  the  forbidden  fruit,  so  dear 
bought  as  this  broth  of  Jacob  ;  in  both  the  receiver  and  the  eater 
is  accursed  :  every  true  son  of  Israel  will  be  content  to  purchase 
spiritual  favours  with  earthly  ;  and  that  man  hath  in  him  too  much 
of  the  blood  of  Esau,  which  will  not  rather  die  than  forego  his 
birth-right. 

But  what  hath  careless  Esau  lost,  if,  having  sold  his  birth-right, 
he  may  obtain  the  blessing  ?  Or  what  hath  Jacob  gained,  if  his 
brother's  venison  may  countervail  his  pottage  ?  Yet  thus  hath  old 
Isaac  decreed  ;  who  was  not  now  more  blind  in  his  eyes,  than  in 
his  affections  :  God  had  forewarned  him  that  the  elder  should  serve 
the  younger,  yet  Isaac  goes  about  to  bless  Esau. 

It  was  not  so  hard  for  Abraham  to  reconcile  God's  promise  and 
Isaac's  sacrifice,  as  for  Isaac  to  reconcile  the  superiority  of  Jacob 
with  Esau's  benediction  ;  for  God's  hand  was  in  that,  in  this  none 
hut  his  own  :  the  dearest  of  God's  saints  have  been  sometimes 


JACOB  AND  ESAU.  39 

transported  with  natural  affections  :  he  saw  himself  preferred  to 
Ishmael,  though  the  elder  ;  he  saw  his  father  wilfully  forgetting  na- 
ture at  God's  command,  in  binding  him  for  sacrifice  ;  he  saw  Esau 
lewdly  matched  with  heathens  ;  and  yet  he  will  remember  nothing, 
but,  "  Esau  is  my  first-born  :"  but  how  gracious  is  God,  that,  when 
we  would,  will  not  let  us  sin  ;  and  so  orders  our  actions,  that  we  do 
not  what  we  will,  but  what  we  ought  ! 

That  God,  which  had  ordained  the.  lordship  to  the  younger,  will 
also  contrive  for  him  the  blessing :  what  he  will  have  effected  shall 
not  want  means  :  the  mother  shall  rather  defeat  the  son,  and  be- 
guile the  father,  than  the  father  shall  beguile  the  chosen  son  of  his 
blessing.  What  was  Jacob  to  Rebecca  more  than  Esau  ?  or  what 
mother  doth  not.  more  affect  the  elder  t  But  now  God  inclines  the 
love  of  the  mother  to  the  younger,  against  the  custom  of  nature, 
because  the  father  loves  the  elder,  against  the  promise  :  the  affec- 
tions of  the  parents  are  divided,  that  the  promise  might  be  fulfilled  ; 
Rebecca's  craft  shall  answer  Isaac's  partiality  :  Isaac  would  un- 
justly turn  Esau  into  Jacob,  Rebecca  doth  as  cunningly  turn  Ja- 
cob into  Esau :  her  desire  was  good,  her  means  were  unlawful ; 
God  doth  oft-times  effect  his  just  will  by  our  weaknesses ;  yet 
neither  thereby  justif}dng  our  infirmities,  nor  blemishing  his  own 
actions. 

Here  was  nothing  but  counterfeiting ;  a  feigned  person,  a 
feigned  name,  feigned  venison,  a  feigned  answer,  and  yet  behold, 
a  true  blessing  ;  but  to  the  man,  not  to  the  moans  :  those  were  so 
unsound,  that  Jacob  himself  doth  more  fear  their  curse  than  hope 
for  their  success.  Isaac  was  now  both  simple  and  old ;  yet  if  he 
had  perceived  the  fraud,  Jacob  had  been  more  sure  of  a  curse, 
than  he  could  be  sure  that  he  should  not  be  perceived. 

Those,  which  are  plain-hearted  in  themselves,  are  the  bitterest 
enemies  to  deceit  in  others:  Rebecca,  presuming 'upon  the  oracle 
of  God,  and  her  husband's  simplicity,  dare  be  surety  for  the 
danger,  his  counsellor  for  the  carriage  of  the  business,  his  cook  for 
the  diet,  yea,  dresses  Uoth  the  meat  and  the  man  ;  and  now  puts 
words  into  his  mouth,  tile  dish  into  his  hand,  the  garments  upon 
his  back,  the  goat's-hair  upon  the  open  parts  of  his  body,  and  sends 
him  in  thus  furnished  for  the  blessing ;  standing  no  doubt,  at  the 
door,  to  see  how  well  her  lesson  was  learned,  how  well  her  device 
succeeded.  And  if  old  Isaac  should  by  any  of  his  senses  liave  dis- 
cerned the  guise,  she  had  soon  stept  in  and  undertaken  the  blame, 
and  urged  him  with  the  known  will  of  God  concerning  Jacob's 
dominion  and  Esau's  servitude,  which  either  age  or  affection  had 
made  him  forget. 

And  now  she  wishes  she  could  borrow  Esau's  tongue  as  well  as 
his  garments,  that  she  might  securely  deceive  all  the  senses  of  him, 
which  had  suffered  himself  to  be  more  dangerously  deceived  with 
his  affection  :  but  this  is  past  her  remedy  :  her  son  must  name 
himself  Esau  with  the  voice  of  Jacob.  It  is  hard  if  our  tongue  do 
not  bewray  what  we  are,  in  spite  of  our  habit.  This  was  enough 
to  work  Isaac  to  a  suspicion,  to  an  inquiry,  not  to  an  incredulity  : 


40  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

lie,  that  is  good  of  himself,  will  hardlv  believe  evil  of  another ;  and 
will  rather  distrust  his  own  senses,  than  the  fidelity  of  those  he 
trusted.  All  the  senses  are  set  to  examine  ;  none  sticketh  at  the 
judgment  hut  the  ear  ;  to  deceive  that,  Jacob  must  second  his  dis- 
simulation with  three  lies  at  one  breath  :  /  am  Esau ;  as  thou  badst 
me  ;  my  venison  t  one  sin  entertained  fetcheth  in  another  ;  and  if 
it  be  forced  to  lodge  alone,  either  departeth  or  dieth  :  I  love  Ja- 
cob's blessing,  but  I  hate  his  lie.  I  would  not  do  that  wilfully, 
which  Jacob  did  weakly,  upon  condition  of  a  blessing  :  he,  that  par- 
doned his  infirmity,  would  curse  my  obstinacy. 

Good  Isaac  sets  his  hands  to  try  whether  his  ears  informed  him 
aright ;  lie  feels  the  hands  of  him  whose  voice  he  suspected:  that 
honest  heart  could  not  think,  that  the  skin  might  more  easily  be 
counterfeited,  than  the  lungs:  a  small  satisfaction  contents  those 
whom  guiltiness  hath  not  made  scrupulous :  Isaac  believes  and 
blesses  the  younger  son  in  the  garments  of  the  elder  :  if  our  hea- 
venly Father  smell  upon  our  backs  the  savour  of  our  elder  brother's 
robes,  we  cannot  depart  from  him  unblessed. 

No  sooner  is  Jacob  gone  away  full  of  the  joy  of  his  blessing,  than 
Esau  comes  in  full  of  the  hope  of  the  blessing  :  and  now  he  cannot 
repent  him  to  have  sold  that  in  his  hunger  for  pottage,  which  in  his 
pleasure  he  shall  buy  again  with  venison.  The  hopes  of  the  wicked 
fail  tiiem  when  they  are  at  highest,  whereas  God's  children  find 
those  comforts  in  extremity  which  they  durst  not  expect. 

Now  he  comes  in  blowing  and  sweating  for  his  reward,  and 
finds  nothing  but  a  repulse  :  lewd  men,  when  the}'  think  they  have 
earned  of  God,  and  come  proudly  to  challenge  favour,  receive  no 
answer,  but,  Who-art  thou  ?  Both  the  father  and  the  son  wonder  at 
each  other ;  the  one  with  fear,  the  other  with  grief.  Isaac  trem- 
bled and  Esau  wept ;  the  one  upon  conscience,  the  other  upon 
envy.  Isaac's  heart  now  told  him,  that  he  should  not  have  purpos- 
ed the  blessing  where  he  did,  and  that  it  was  due  to  him  unto 
whom  it  was  given  and  not  purposed  ;  hence  he  durst  not  reverse 
that  which  he  had  done  with  God's  will,  besides  his  own  :  for  now 
he  saw  that  he  had  done  unwilling  justice  :  God  will  find  both  time 
and  means  to  reclaim  his  own,  to  prevent  their  sins,  to  manifest 
and  reform  their  errors.  Who  would  have  looked  for  tears  from 
Esau  ?  Or  who  dare  trust  tears,  when  he  sees  them  fall  from  so 
graceless  eves  ? 

It  was  a  good  word,  Bless  vie  also,  my  father  :  every  miscreant 
can  wish  himself  well :  no  man  would  be  miserable,  if  it  were 
enough  to  desire  happiness  :  why  did  he  not  rather  weep  to  his 
brother  for  the  pottage,  than  to  Isaac  for  a  blessing  ?  If  he  had  not 
then  sold,  he  had  not  needed  now  to  beg  :  it  is  just  with  God  to 
deny  us  those  favours,  which  we  were  careless  in  keeping,  and 
which  we  undervalued  in  enjoying.  Esau's  tears  find  no  place  for 
Isaac's  repentance ;  except  it  were  that  he  hath  done  that  by  wile, 
which  he  should  have  done  upon  duty. 

No  motive  can  cause  a  good  heart  to  repent  that  he  hath  done 
well.   How  happy  a  thing  it  is,  to  know  the  seasons  of  grace,  and 


OF  JACOB  AND  LABAN.  41 

notto  neglect  them  !  How  desperate,  to  have  known  and  neglected 
theiQ  !  These  tears  were  both  late  and  false  ;  the  tears  of  rage,  of 
envy,  of  carnal  desire:  worldly  sorrow  causeth  death:  yet  while 
Esau  howls  out  thus  for  a  blessing,  I  hear  him  cry  out,  of  his  fa- 
ther's store,  Hast  thou  but  one  blessing,  my  father  ?  of  his  bro- 
ther's subtlety,  l\*as  he  not  rightly  called  Jacob?  I  do  not  hear 
him  blame  his  own  deserts.  He  did  not  see,  while  his  father  was 
deceived,  and  his  brother  crafty,  that  God  was  just,  and  himself 
incapable  :  he  knew  himself  profane,  and  yet  claims  a  blessing. 

Those,  that  care  not  to  please  God,  yet  care  for  the  outward  fa- 
vours of  God,  and  are  ready  to  murmur  if  they  want  them ;  as  if 
God  were  bound  to  them,  and  they  free.  And  yet  so  merciful  is 
God,  that  he  hath  second  blessings  for  those  that  love  him  not,  and 
gn  us  them  all  they  care  for.  That  one  blessing  of  special  love  is 
for  none  but  Israel ;  but  those  of  common  kindness  are  for  them 
that  can  sell  their  birthright  :  this  blessing  was  more  than  Esau 
could  bo  worthy  of;  yet,  like  a  second  Cain,  he  resolves  to  kill  his 
brother,  because  he  was  more  accepted  :  I  know  not  whether  he 
were  a  worse  son  or  brother  ;  he  hopes  for  his  father's  death,  and 
purposes  his  brother's,  and  vows  to  shed  blood  instead  of  tears. 
But  wicked  men  cannot  be  so  ill  as  they  would  ;  that  strong  wrest- 
ler, against  whom  Jacob  prevailed,  prevailed  with  Esau,  and  turned 
his  wounds  into  kisses.  A  host  of  men  came  with  Esau,  an  army 
of  angels  met  Jacob  :  Esau  threatened,  Jacob  praved :  his  prayers 
and  presents  have  melted  the  heart  of  Esau  into  love.  And  now, 
instead  of  the  grim  and  stern  countenance  of  an  executioner,  Ja- 
cob sees  the  face  of  Esau,  as  the  face  of  God.  Both  men  and  de- 
vils are  stinted  ;  tiie  stoutest  heart  cannot  stand  out  against  God. 
He,  that  can  wrestle  earnestly  with  God,  is  secure  from  the  harms 
of  men.  Those  minds,  which  are  exasperated  with  violence,  and 
cannot  be  broken  with  fear,  yet  are  bowed  with  love ;  when  the 
ways  of  a  man  please  God,  he  will  make  his  enemies  at  peace  with 
him.  Gen.  xxv,  x.vvi,  x.vvii. 


OF  JACOB  AND  LABAN. 

Isaac's  life  was  not  more  retired  and  quiet,  than  Jacob's  was  busy 
and  troublesome.  In  the  one  I  see  the  image  of  contemplation  ; 
of  action,  in  the  other.  None  of  the  patriarchs  saw  so  evil  davs 
as  he  ;  from  whom  justly  hath  the  church  of  God  therefore  taken 
her  name.  Neither  were  the  faithful  over  since  called  Abiu* 
hamites,  but  Israelites.  That  no  time  might  be  lost,  he  began  his 
strife  in  the  womb  ;  after  that,  he  flies  for  his  life  from  a  cruel  bro- 
ther to  a  cruel  uncle.  With  a  staff  goes  he  over  Jordan  alone, 
doubtful  and  comfortless1,  not  like  the  son  of  Isaac.  In  the  way 
,  the  earth  is  his  bed,  and  a  stone  his  pillow;  yet  even  there  he  sees 
a  vision  of  angels  :  Jacob's  heart  was  never  so  full  of  joy,  as  when 
his  head  lay  hardest.  God  is  most  present  with  us  in  our  greatest 
dejection,  and  loves  to  give  comfort  to  those  that  are  forsaken  of 
their  hopes. 


42 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


He  came  far  to  find  out  a  hard  friend  ;  and  of  a  nephew  be- 
comes a  servant.  No  doubt  when  Laban  heard  of  his  sister's  son, 
he  looked  for  the  camels  and  attendance  that  came  to  fetch  his 
sister  Rebecca  ;  not  thinking  that  Abraham's  servant  could  come 
better  furnished  than  Isaac's  son :  but  now,  when  he  saw  nothing; 
but  a  start,  he  looks  upon  him,  not  as  an  uncle,  but  a  master  ;  and 
while  h^  pretends  to  offer  him  a  wife  as  a  reward  of  his  service,  he 
craftilv  requires  his  service  as  thedourv  of  his  wife. 

After  the  service  of  a  hard  apprenticeship  hath  earned  her  whom 
he  loved,  his  wife  is  changed,  and  he  is  in  a  sort  forced  to  an  un- 
willing- adultery  •"  his  mother  had  before,  in  a  cunning  disguise, 
substituted  him  who  was  the  younger  son  for  the  eider,  and  now 
not  long  after,  his  father-in-law,  by  a  like  fraud,  substitutes  to  him 
the  elder  daughter  for  the  vounger  :  God  comes  oftentimes  home 
to  us  in  our  own  kind  :  and  even  by  the  sin  of  others  pavs  us  our 
own,  when  we  look  not  for  it.  It  is  doubtful  whether  it  were  a 
greater  cross  to  marrv  whom  he  would  not,  or  to  be  disappointed 
of  her  whom  he  desired.  And  now  he  must  begin  a  new  hope, 
where  he  made  account  of  fruition.  To  raise  up  an  expectation 
once  frustrate,  is  more  difficult,  than  to  continue  a  long  hope  drawn 
on  with  likelihoods  of  performance ;  vet  thus  dear  is  Jacob  con- 
tent to  pay  for  Rachel,  fourteen  vears'  servitude.  Commonly  God's 
children  come  not  easily  by  their  pleasures  :  what  miseries  will 
not  love  digest  and  overcome  !  and  if  Jacob  were  willingly  con- 
sumed  with  h?at  in  the  dav,  and  frost  in  the  night,  to  become  the 
son-in-law  to  Laban,  what  shouid  we  refuse  to  be  the  sons  of  God  3 

Rachel,  when  he  loved,  is  barren:  Leah,  who  was  despised,  is 
fruitful  :  how  wisely  God  weighs  out  to  us  our  favours  and  crosses 
in  an  equal  balance  :  so  tempering  our  sorrows  that  they  may  not 
oppress,  and  our  joys  that  thev  may  not  transport  us !  each  one 
hath  some  matter  of  enw  to  others,  and  of  grief  to  himself.  Leah 
envies  Rachel's  beauty  and  love  ;  Rachel  envies  Leah's  fruitfulness ; 
yet  Leah  would  not  be  barren,  nor  Rachel  blear-eved. 

I  see  in  Rachel  the  image  of  her  grandmother  Sarah  ;  both  in  her 
beauty  of  person,  in  her  actions,  in  her  success  :  she  also  will  needs 
suborn  her  handmaid  to  make  her  a  mother ;  and  at  last,  beyond 
hope,  herself  conceiveth  :  it  is  a  weak  greediness  in  us  to  affect 
God's  blessings  by  unlawful  means ;  what  a  proof  and  praise  had 
it  been  of  her  faith,  if  she  had  staid  God's  leisure,  and  would  ra- 
ther have  endured  her  barrenness  than  her  husband's  polygamy  ! 
Now  she  shews  herself  the  daughter  of  Laban;  the  father  for  covet- 
ousness,  the  daughters  for  emulation,  have  drawn  sin  into  Jacob's 
bed :  he  offended  in  yielding,  but  they  more  in  soliciting  him,  and 
therefore  the  fact  is  not  imputed  to  Jacob,  but  to  them.  In  those 
sins  which  Satan  draws  us  into,  the  blame  is  ours ;  in  those  which 
we  move  each  other  unto,  the  most  fault  and  punishment  lies  upon 
the  tempter.  None  of  the  patriarchs  d  ivided  his  seed  into  so  many 
wombs  as  Jacob  ;  none  was  so  much  crossed  in  his  seed. 

Thus,  rich  in  nothing  but  wives  and  children,  was  he  now  re- 
turning to  his  father's  house,  accounting  his  charge  his  wealth 


OF.  JACOB  AND  LABAN".  45 

But  God  meant  him  yet  more  good.  Laban  sees  that  both  his  fa- 
mily and  his  flocks  were  well  increased  by  Jacob's  service.  Not  his 
love  therefore  but  his  gain  mak-S  him  loth  to  part.  Even  Laban's 
eovetousness  is  made  by  God  the  means  to  enrich  Jacob. 

Behold,  his  strait  master  entreats  him  to  that  recompence,  which 
made  his  nephew  mighty,  and  himself  envious  :  God,  considering 
his  hard  service,  paid  him  wages  out  of  Laban's  folds.  Those 
flocks  and  herds  had  but  few  spotted  sheep  and  goats,  untU  Jacob's 
covenant;  then,  as  if  the.  fashion  had  been  altered,  they  all  ran 
into  party-colours ;  the  most  and  best,  as  if  they  had  been  weary 
of  their  former  owner,  changed  the  colours  of  their  young,  that 
they  might  change  their  master. 

In  the  very  shapes  and  colours  of  brute  creatures  there  is  a  di- 
vine  hand,  which  disposeth  them  to  his  own  ends.  Small  and  un- 
likely means  shall  prevail,  where  God  intends  an  effect.  Little 

Jeeled  sticks  of  ha^el  or  poplar  laid  in  the  troughs,  shall  enrich 
acob  with  an  increase  of  his  spotted  flocks ;  Laban's  sons  might 
have  tried  the  same  means  and  failed  :  God  would  have  Laban 
know,  that  he  put  a  difference  betwixt  Jacob  and  him  ;  that  as  for 
fourteen  years  he  fiad  multiplied  Jacob's  charge  of  cattle  to  Laban, 
so  now  for  the  last  six  years  he  would  multiply  Laban's  flock  to 
Jacob  :  and  if  Laban  had  the  more,  yet  the  better  were  Jacob's  : 
even  in  these  outward  things,  God's  children  have  many  times  sen, 
sible  tastes  of  his  favours  above  the  wicked. 

I  know  not  whether  Laban  were  a  worse  uncle,  or  father,  or 
master:  he  can  like  well  Jacob's  service,  not  his  wealth.  As  the 
wicked  have  no  peace  with  God,  so  the  godly  have  no  peace  with 
men  ;  for  if  they  prosper  not,  they  are  despised  ;  if  they  prosper, 
they  are  envied. 

This  uncle,  whom  his  service  had  made  his  father,  must  now 
upon  his  wealth  be  fled  from  as  an  enemy,  and  like  an  enemy  pur- 
sues him :  if  Laban  had  meant  to  have  taken  a  peaceable  leave,  he 
had  never  spent  seven  days'  journey  in  following  his  innocent  son: 
Jacob  knew  his  churlishness,  and,  therefore,  resolved  rather  to  be 
unmannerly  than  injured  ;  well  might  he  think,  that  he,  whose  op- 
pression changed  his  wages  so  often  in  his  stav,  would  also  abridge 
his  wages  in  the  parting  ;  now,  therefore,  he  wisely  prefers  his  own 
estate  to  Laban's  love  :  it  is  not  good  to  regard  too  much  the  un- 
just discontentment  of  worldly  men,  and  to  purchase  unprofitable 
favour  with  too  great  loss. 

Behold  :  Laban  follows  Jacob  with  one  troop,  Esau  meets  him 
with  another,  both  with  hostile  intentions  ;  both  go  on  till  the  ut- 
most point  of  their  execution;  both  are  prevented  ere  the  execu- 
tion. God  make.;  fools  of  the  enemies  of  his  Church  ;  heletstherrt 
proceed,  that  they  may  be  frustrated,  and  when  they  are  gone  to  the 
utmost  reach  of  their  tether,  he  pulls  them  back  to  their  task  with 
shame.  Lo  now,  Laban  leaves  Jacob  with  a  kiss  ;  Esau  meets  him 
with  a  kiss :  of  the  one  he  hath  an  oath,  tears  of  the  other,  peace 
with  botli :  who  shall  need  to  fear  man  that  is  in  league  with  God }. 

But  what  a  wonder  is  this  !  Jacob  received  not  so  much  hurt 


♦  4  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

from  all  his  enemies,  as  from  his  best  friend.  Not  one  of  his  hairs 
perished  by  Laban  or  Esau  ;  yet  he  lost  a  joint  bv  the  angel,  and 
was  seat  halting  to  his  grave  :  he,ahat  knows  our  strength,  yet  will 
wrestle  with  us  for  our  exercise,  and  loves  our  violence  and  impor- 
tunity. 

O  happy  loss  of  Jacob  !  he  lost  a  joint,  and  won  a  blessing :  it  is 
a  favour  to  halt  from  God,  yet  this  favour  is  seconded  with  a 
greater.  He  is  blessed,  because  he  would  rather  halt,  than  leave 
ere  he.  was  blessed.  If  he  had  left  sooner,  he  had  not  halted,  but 
he  had  not  prospered.  That  man  shall  go  away  sound  but  misera- 
ble, that  loves  a  limb  more  than  a  blessing.  Surely  if  Jacob  had 
not  wrestled  with  God,  he  had  been  foiled  with  evils  :  How  many 
are  the  troubles  of  the  righteous  / 

Not  long  after,  Rachel,  the  comfort  of  his  life,  dieth  ;  and 
when,  but  in  her  travail,  and  in  his  travel  to  his  father !  wiien  he 
had  now  before  digested  in  his  thoughts  the  jov  and  gratulation  of 
his  aged  father,  for  so  welcome  a  burden  !  His  children,  the  staff 
of  his  age,  wound  his  soul  to  the  death :  Reuben  proves  inces- 
tuous; Judah,  adulterous;  Dinah,  ravished;  Simeon  and  Levi, 
murderous;  Erand  Onan,  stricken  dead  ;  Joseph,  lost;  Simeon, 
imprisoned  ;  Benjamin,  the  death  of  his  mother,  the  father's  right- 
hand,  endangered  ;  himself  driven  by  famine  in  his  old  age  to  die 
amongst  the  Egyptians,  a  people  that  held  it  abomination  to  eat 
with  him.  If  that  angel,  with  whom  he  strove,  and  who  therefore 
strove  for  him,  had  not  delivered  his  soul  out  of  all  adversity,  he 
had  been  supplanted  with  evils,  and  had  been  so  far  from  gaining 
the  nams  of  Israel,  that  he  had  lost  the  name  of  Jacob  :  now  what 
son  of  Israel  can  hope  for  good  days,  when  he  hears  his  father's 
were  so  evil?  It  is  enough  for  us,  if,  when  we  are  dead,  we  can  rest 
with  him  in  the  land  of  promise.  If  the  angel  of  the  Covenant 
once  bless  us,  no  pain,  no  sorrows  can  make  us  miserable. 

Gen,  jcxity  xxxy  xxxi,  xxxii,  xxxiii. 


OF  DINAH. 

I  find  but  one  only  daughter  of  Jacob,  who  must  needs  there- 
fore be  a  great  darling  to  her  father  ;  and  she  so  miscarries,  that 
she  causes  her  father's  grief  to  be  more  than  his  love.  As  her  mo- 
ther Leah,  so  she  hath  a  fault  in  her  eyes,  which  was  curiosity  : 
she  will  needs  see,  and  be  seen  ;  and  while  she  cloth  vainly  see, 
she  is  seen  lustfully.  It  is  not  enough  for  us  to  look  to  our  own 
thoughts,  except  we  beware  of  the  provocations  of  others  :  if  we 
once  wander  out  of  the  lists  that  God  hath  set  us  in  our  callings, 
there  is  nothing  but  danger  :  her  virginity  had  been  safe,  if  she  had 
kept  home  ;  or  if  Shechem  had  forced  her  in  her  mother's  tent,  this 
loss  of  her  virginity  had  been  without  her  sin ;  now  she  is  not  in- 
nocent that  gave  the  occasion. 

Her  eyes  were  guilty  of  the  temptation  ;  only  to  see,  is  an  in- 
sufficient warrant  to  draw  us  into  places  of  spi  ritual  hazard :  if  Shechem 


OF  DINAH.  45 

had  seen  her  busy  at  home,  his  love  had  been  free  from  outrage  ; 
now  the  lightness  of  her  presence  gave  encouragement  to  his  inor- 
dinate desires.  Immodesty  of  behaviour  makes  way  to  lust,  and 
gives  life  unto  wicked  hopes  ;  yet  Shechem  bewrays  a  good  nature 
even  in  filthiness ;  he  loves  Dinah  after  his  sin,  and  will  needs 
marry  her  whom  lie  had  defiled.  Commonly  lust  ends  in  loathing  ; 
Amnon  abhors  Taniar  as  much  after  his  act,  as  before  tie  loved 
her  ;  and  beat  her  out  of  doors,  whom  he  was  sick  to  bring  in.  But 
Shechem  would  not  let  Dinah  fare  the  worse  for  his  sin.  And  now 
he  goes  about  to  entertain  her  with  honest  love,  whom  the  rage  of 
his  lust  bad  dishonestly  abused.  Her  deflouring  shall  be  no  preju- 
dice to  her,  since  her  shame  shall  redound  to  none  but  him,  and  he 
will  bide  her  dishonour  with  the  name  of  a  husband.  What  could 
he  now  do,  but  sue  to  his  father,  to  hers,  to  herself,  to  her  brethren; 
intreating  that  with  humble  submission,  which  he  might  have  ob- 
tained bv  violence  ?  Those  actions,  which  are  ill  begun,  can  hardlv 
be  salved  up  with  late  satisfactions  ;  whereas,  good  entrances  give 
strength  unto  the  proceedings,  and  success  to  the  end. 

The.  young  man's  father  doth  not  only  consent,  but  solicit ;  and 
is  ready  to  purchase  a  daughter  either  with  substance,  or  pain  :  the 
two  old  men  would  have  ended  the  matter  peaceably  ;  but  youth 
common!}-  undertakes  rashlv,  and  performs  with  passion.  The 
sons  of  Jacob  think  of  nothing  but  revenge,  and,  which  is  worst  of 
all,  begin  their  cruelty  with  craft,  and  hide  their  craft  with  reli- 
gion :  a  smiling  malice  is  most  deadly  ;  and  hatred  doth  most  rankle 
the  heart,  when  it  is  kept  in  and  dissembled.  We  cannot  give  our 
sister  to  an  uncircumcised  man  ;  here  was  God  in  the  mouth,  and 
Satan  in  the  heart :  the  bloodiest  of  all  projects  have  ever  wont  to 
be  coloured  with  religion  ;  because  the  worse  any  thing  is,  the  bet- 
ter shew  it  desires  to  make  :  and  contrarily,  the  better  colour  is  put 
upon  any  vice,  the  more  odious  it  is  ;  for  as  every  simulation  adds 
to  an  evil,  so  the  best  adds  most  evil.  Themselves  had  taken  the 
daughters  and  sisters  of  uncircumcised  men  ;  yea  Jacob  himself 
did  so  ;  why  might  not  an  uncircumcised  man  obtain  their  sister  ? 
Or  if  there  be  a  difference  of  giving  and  taking,  it  had  been  well, 
if  it  had  not  been  only  pretended.  It  had  been  a  happy  ravish- 
ment of  Dinah,  that  should  have  drawn  a  whole  country  into  the 
bosom  of  the  Church  ;  but  here  was  a  sacrament  intended,  not  to 
the  good  of  the  soul,  but  to  murder  of  the  body:  it  was  a  hard 
task  for  Hamor  and  Shechem,  not  only  to  put  the  knife  to  their  own 
foreskins,  but  to  persuade  a  multitude  to  so  painful  a  condition. 

The  sons  of  Jacob  dissemble  with  them  ;  they,  with  the  people  : 
shall  not  their  jlocks  and  substance  be  ovtrs  ?  Common  profit  is  pre- 
tended, whereas  only  Shechem' s  pleasure  is  meant.  No  motive  is  so 
powerful  to  the  vulgar  sort,  as  the  name  of  commodity  :  the  hope 
of  this,  makes  them  prodigal  of  their  skin  and  blood  ;  not  the  love 
to  the  sacrament,  not  the  love  to  Shechem:  sinister  respects  draw 
more  to  the  profession  of  religion,  than  conscience  :  if  it  were  not 
for  the  loaves  and  fishes,  the  train  of  Christ  would  be  less.  But 


45 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


the  sacraments  of  God  mis-received,  never  prosper  in  the  end. 
These  men  are  content  to  smart,  so  they  may  gain. 

And  now  that  every  man  lies  sore  of  his  own  wound,  Simeon 
and  Levi  rush  in  armed,  and  wound  all  the  males  to  death :  Cursed 
be  their  wrath,  for  it  was  fierce ;  and  their  rage,  for  it  was  cruel. 
Indeed,  filthiness  should  not  have  been  wrought  in  Israel ;  yet  mur- 
der should  not  have  been  wrought  by  Israel.  If  they  had  been  fit 
judges,  which  were  but  bloody  executioners,  how  far  doth  the  pu- 
nishment exceed  the  fault !  To  punish  above  the  offence,  is  no  less 
injustice,  than  to  offend  :  one  offendeth  and  all  feel  the  revenge  ; 
yea  all,  though  innocent,  suffer  that  revenge,  which  he  that  offend- 
ed deserved  not.  Shechem  sinneth,  but  Dinah  tempted  him  :  she, 
that  was  so  light,  as  to  wander  abroad  alone,  only  to  gaze,  I  fear 
was  not  over  difficult  to  yield :  and  if,  having  Avrought  her  shame, 
he  had  driven  her  home  with  disgrace  to  her  father's  tent,  such  ty- 
rannous lust  had  justly  called  for  blood;  but  now  he  craves,  and 
offers,  and  would  pay  dear  for  but  leave  to  give  satisfaction. 

To  execute  rigour  upon  a  submissive  offender,  is  more  merciless 
than  just ;  or  if  the  punishment  had  been  both  just  and  proportion- 
able from  another,  yet  from  them  which  had  vowed  peace  and  affi- 
nity, it  Avas  shamefully  unjust.  To  disappoint  the  trust  of  ano- 
ther, and  to  neglect  our  own  promise  and  fidelity  for  private  pur- 
poses, adds  faithlessness  unto  our  cruelty.  That  they  were  impo- 
tent, it  was  through  their  circumcision  :  what  impiety  was  this  ;  in- 
stead of  honouring  a  holy  sign,  to  take  an  advantage  by  it! 

What  shrieking  was  there  now  in  the  streets  of  the  city  of  the 
Hivites  !  And  how  did  the  beguiled  Shechemites,  when  they  saw  the 
swords  of  the  two  brethren,  die,  cursing  the  sacrament  in  their 
hearts,  which  had  betrayed  them  !  Even  their  curses  were  the  sins 
of  Simeon  and  Levi  ;  whose  fact,  though  it  were  abhorred  by  their 
father,  yet  it  was  seconded  by  their  brethren.  Their  spoil  makes 
good  the  others'  slaughter.  Who  would  have  looked  to  have  found 
this  outrage  in  the  family  of  Jacob  ?  How  did  that  good  patriarch, 
when  he  saw  Dinah  come  home  blubbered  and  wringing  her  hands, 
Simeon  and  Levi  sprinkled  with  blood,  wish  that  Leah  had  been 
barren  as  long  as  Rachel !  Good  parents  have  grief  (though  they 
sustain  no  blame)  for  their  children's  sins.  What  great  evils  arise 
from  small  beginnings  !  The  idle  curiosity  of  Dinah  hath  bred  all 
this  mischief ;  ravishment  follows  upon  her  wandering  ;  upon  her 
ravishment,  murder;  upon  the  murder,  spoil :  it  is  holy  and  safe  to 
be  jealous  of  the  first  occasions  of  evil,  either  done  or  suffered. 

Gen.  xxxiv. 


OF  JUDAH  AND  TAMAR. 

I  find  not  many  of  Jacob's  sons  more  faulty  than  Judah ;  \t1k> 
yet  is  singled  out  from  all  the  rest  to  be  the  royal  progenitor  of 
Christ,  and  to  be  honoured  with  the  dignity  of  the  birthright,  that 
God's  election  might  not  be  of  merit,  but  of  grace;  else,  howso- 


OF  JUOAH  AND  TAMA?..  4? 

ever  iie  might  have  sped  alone,  Tamar  had  never  been  joined  with 
him  m  this  line.  Even  Judah  marries  a  Canaanite  ;  it  is  no  marvel, 
though  his  seed  prosper  not :  and  yet,  that  good  children  may  not 
be  too  much  discouraged  with  their  unlawful  propagation,  the  fa- 
thers of  the  promised  seed  are  raised  from  an  incestuous  bed. 

Judah  was  very  young,  scarce  from  under  the  rod  of  his  father, 
yet  takes  no  other  counsel  for  his  marriage,  but  from  his  own  eyes, 
which  were  like  his  sister  Dinah's,  roving  and  wanton  :  what  better 
issue  could  be  expected  from  such  beginnings  ?  Those  proud  Jews, 
that  glorv  so  much  of  their  pedigree  and  name  from  this  patriarch, 
may  now  choose  whether  they  will  have  their  mother  a  Canaanite, 
or  a  harlot. 

Even  in  these  things  oft-times  the  birth  follows  the  belly.  His 
eldest  son  Er,  is  too  wicked  to  live  ;  God  strikes  him  dead  ere  he 
can  leave  any  issue,  not  abiding  any  scions  to  grow  out  of  so  bad  a 
stock  :  notorious  sinners  God  reserves  to  his  own  vengeance.  He 
doth  not  inrlict  sensible  judgments  upon  all  his  enemies,  lest  the 
wicked  should  think  there  were  no  punishment  abiding  for  them 
elsewhere  :  he  doth  inflict  such  judgments  upon  some,  lest  he 
should  seem  careless  of  evil.  It  were  as  easy  for  him  to  strike  all 
dead,  as  one  ;  but  he  would  rather  all  should  be  warned  by  one, 
and  would  have  his  enemies  find  him  merciful,  as  well  as  his  chil- 
dren, just. 

His  brother  Onan  sees  the  judgment,  and  yet  follows  his  sins. 
Every  little  thing  discourages  us  from  good ;  nothing  can  alter  the 
heart  that  is  set  upon  evil.  Er  was  not  worthy  of  any  love  ;  but 
though  lie  were  a  miscreant,  yet  he  was  a  brother.  Seed  should 
have  been  raised  to  him;  Onan  justly  leases  his  life  witli  his  seed, 
which  he  would  rather  spill,  than  lend  to  a  wicked  brother.  Some 
duties  we  owe  to  humanity,  more  to  nearness  of  blood.  Ill  de- 
serving of  others  can  be  no  excuse  for  our  injustice,  for  our  uncha- 
ritableness.  That  which  Tamar  required,  Moses  afterward,  as 
from  God,  commanded  ;  the  succession  of  brothers  into  the  burren 
bed  :  some  laws  God  spake  to  his  Church,  long  ere  he  wrote  them  : 
while  the  author  is  certainly  known,  the  voice  and  the  finger  of  God 
are  worthy  of  equal  respect. 

Judah  hath  lost  two  sonj,  and  now  doth  but  promise  the  third, 
whom  he  sins  in  not  giving.  It  is  the  weakness  of  nature,  rather 
to  hazard  a  sin  than  a  danger  ;  and  to  neglect  our  own  duty,  for 
wrongful  suspicion  of  others  :  though  he  had  lost  his  son  in  giv- 
ing him,  yet  he  should  have  giv  en  him  :  a  faithful  man's  promise,  is 
his  debt,  which  no  fear  of  damage  can  dispense  with. 

But  whereupon  was  this  slackness  ?  Judah  feared  that  some  tm- 
happiness  in  the  bed  of  Tamar  was  the  cause  of  his  son's  miscar- 
riage ;  whereas  it  was  their  fault,  that  Tamar  was  both  a  widow 
and  childless.  Those,  that  are  but  the  patients  of  evil,  are  many 
times  burdened  with  suspicions  ;  and  therefore  are  ill  thought  of, 
because  they  fare  ill :  arflictions  would  not  be  so  heavy,  n  they 
did  not  lay  us  open  unto  uncharitable  conceits. 

What  difference  God  puts  betwixt  sins  of  wilfulness  and  in  fir- 


43 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


mity  !  The  son's  pollution  is  punished  with  present  death  ;  the  fa- 
ther's ineest  is  pardoned,  and  in  a  sort  prospercth. 

Now  Tainar  seeks  by  subtlety,  that  which  she  could  not  have 
by  award  of  justice  :  the  neglect  of  due  retributions  drives  men  to 
indirect  courses  ;  neither  know  I  whether  they  sin  more  in  righting 
themselves  wrongfully,  or  the  other  in  not  righting  them.  She  there- 
fore takes  upon  her  the  habit  of  a  harlot,  that  she  might  perform 
the  act :  if  she  had  not  wished  to  seem  a  whore,  she  had  not  worn 
that  attire,  nor  chosen  that  place.  Immodesty  of  outward  fashion 
or  gesture  bewrays  evil  desires :  the  heart,  that  means  well,  will 
never  wish  to  seem  ill ;  for  commonly  we  affect  to  shew  better  than 
Ave  are.  Many  harlots  will  put  on  the  semblances  of  chastity  ,  of 
modesty  ;  never  the  contrary.  It  is  no  trusting  those,  who  do  not 
wish  to  appear  good.  Judah  esteems  her  by  her  habit :  and  now 
the  sight  of  a  harlot  hath  stirred  up  in  him  a  thought  of  lust ; 
Satan  finds  well,  that  a  fit  object  is  half  a  victory. 

Who  would  not  be  ashamed,  to  see  a  son  of  Jacob  thus  trans- 
ported with  filthy  affections !  At  the  first  sight  he  is  inflamed  ; 
neither  yet  did  he  see  the  face  of  her,  whom  he  lusted  after  :  it  was 
enough  motive  to  him  that  she  was  a  woman  ;  neither  could  the 
presence  of  his  neighbour,  the  Adullamite,  compose  those  wicked 
thoughts,  or  hinder  his  unchaste  acts. 

That  sin  must  needs  be  impudent  which  can  abide  a  witness ; 
yea,  so  hath  his  iust  besotted  him,  that  he  cannot  discern  the 
voice  of  Tamar,  that  he  cannot  foresee  the  danger  of  his  shame 
in  parting  with  such  pledges.  There  is  no  passion  which  doth  not 
ior  the  time  bereave  a  man  of  himself. 

Tamar  had  learned  not  to  trust  him  without  a  pawn :  he  had 
promised  his  son  to  her  as  a  daughter,  and  failed  ;  now  he  pro- 
mised a  kid  to  her,  as  a  harlot,  and  performeth  it :  whether  his 
pledge  constrained  him,  or  the  power  of  his  word,  I  inquire  not: 
many  are  faithful  in  all  things,  save  those  which  are  the  greatest 
and  dearest :  if  his  credit  had  been  as  much  endangered  in  the 
former  promise,  he  had  kept  it.  Now  hath  Tamar  requited  him. 
She  expected  long  the  enjoying  of  his  promised  son,  and  he  per- 
formed not ;  but  here  he  perforins  the  promise  of  the  kid,  and 
she  stavs  not  to  expect  it.  Judah  is  sorry  that  he  Cannot  pay  the 
hire  of  his  lust,  and  now  feareth  lest  he  shall  be  beaten  with  his 
own  staff;  lest  f lis  signet  shall  be  used  to  confirm  and  seal  his  re- 
proach ;  resolving  not  to  know  them,  and  wishing  they  were  un- 
'  known  of  others.  Shame  is  the  easiest  wages  of  sin,  and  the  surest, 
which  ever  begins  first  in  ourselves.  Nature  is  not  more  forward 
to  commit  sin,  than  willing  to  hide  it. 

I  hear  as  yet'  of  no  remorse  in  Judah,  but  fear  of  shame.  Three 
months  hath  his  sin  slept,  and  now,  when  he  is  securest,  it  awakes 
and  baits  him.  News  is  brought  him,  that  Tamar  begins  to  swell 
with  her  conception  ;  and  now  he  swells  with  rage,  and  calls  her 
forth  to  the  flame  like  a  rigorous  judge,  without  so  much  as  stay- 
ing fur  the  time  of  her  deliverance,  that  his  cruelty  in  this  justice 
should  bfj  no  less  ill  than  the  injustice  of  occasioning  it.    If  Judah 


OF  JOSEPH. 


49 


had  not  forgotten  his  sin,  his  pity  had  been  more  than  his  hatred 
to  this  of  his  daughter's :  How  easy  is  it  to  detest  those  sins  in 
others,  which  we  Matter  in  ourselves !  Tamar  doth  not  deny  the 
sin,  nor  refuse  punishment,  but  calls  for  that  partner  in  her  punish- 
ment, which  was  her  partner  in  the  sin  :  the  staff,  the  signet,  the 
handkerchief,  accuse  and  convince  Judah  ;  and  now  he  blushes  at 
his  own  sentence,  much  more  at  his  act,  and  cries  out,  She  is  more 
righteous  than  I.  God  will  find  a  time  to  bring  his  children  upon 
their  knees,  and  to  wring  from  them  penitent  confessions ;  and 
rather  than  he  will  not  have  them  soundly  ashamed,  lie  will  make 
them  the  trumpets  of  their  own  reproach. 

Yet  doth  he  not  offer  himself  to  the  flame  with  her,  but  rather 
excuses  her  by  himself.  This  relenting  in  his  own  case  shamed  his 
former  zeal:  even  in  the  best  men  nature  is  partial  to  itself:  it  is 
good  so  to  sentence  others'  frailties,  that  yet  we  remember  our  own ; 
whether  those  that  have  been,  or  may  be  :  with  what  shame,  yea, 
with  what  horror,  must  Judah  needs  look  upon  the  great  belly  of 
Tamar ;  and  on  her  two  sons,  the  monuments  of  his  filthiness  ! 

How  must  it  needs  wound  his  soul,  to  hear  them  call  him  both 
father  and  grandfather ;  to  call  her  mother  and  sister  !  If  this  had 
not  cost  him  many  a  sigh,  he  had  no  more  escaped  his  father's 
curse  than  Reuben  did :  I  see  the  difference  not  of  sins,  but  of 
men  :  remission  goes  not  by  the  measure  of  the  sin,  but  the  qua- 
lity of  the  sinner;  yea,  rather  the  mercy  of  the  forgiver:  Blessed 
is  the  man  (not  that  sins  not,  but)  to  whom  the  Lord  imputes  not 
his  sin.  Gen.  xxxviii, 

OF  JOSEPH. 

I  marvel  not  that  Joseph  had  the  double  portion  of  Jacob's  land, 
who  had  more  than  two  parts  of  his  sorrows :  none  of  his  sons  did 
so  truly  inherit  his  afflictions  ;  none  of  them  was  either  so  miserable, 
or  so  great:  suffering  is  the  way  to  glory. 

I  see  in  him  not  a  clearer  type  of  Christ,  than  of  every  Christian ; 
because  we  are  dear  to  our  father,  and  complain  of  sins,  therefore 
are  we  hated  of  our  carnal  brethren  :  if  Joseph  had  not  meddled 
with  his  brothers'  faults,  yet  he  had  been  envied  for  his  father's 
affection  ;  but  now  malice  is  met  with  envy  :  there  is  nothing  more 
thankless  or  dangerous  than  to  stand  in  the  way  of  a  resolute  sin- 
ner. That,  which  doth  correct  and  oblige  the  penitent,  makes  the 
wilful  mind  furious  and  revengeful. 

All  the  spite  of  his  brethren  cannot  make  Joseph  cast  off  the 
livery  of  his  father's  love :  what  need  we  care  for  the  censures  of 
men,  if  our  hearts  can  tell  us  that  we  are  in  favour  with  God  ? 

But  what  meant  young  Joseph,  to  add  unto  his  own  envy,  by 
reporting  his  dreams  ?  The  concealment  of  our  hopes  or  abilities 
hath  not  more  modesty  than  safety  :  he,  that  was  envied  for  his 
dearness,  and  hated  for  his  intelligence,  was  botli  envied  and  hated 
tor  his  dreams.  Surely  God  meant  to  make  the  relation  of  these 
dreams  a  means  to  effect  that,  which  the  dreams  imported.  Wc 

VOL.  I.  E 


SO  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

men  work  by  likely  means ;  God,  by  contraries.  The  main  quar- 
rel was,  Behold,  this  dreamer  comzth  Had  it  not  been  for  his 
dreams,  he  had  not  been  sold  ;  if  he  had  not  been  sold,  he  had  not 
been  exalted.  So  Joseph's  state  had  not  deserved  envy,  if  his 
dreams  had  not  caused  him  to  be  envied. 

Full  little  did  Joseph  think,  when  he  went  to  seek  his  brethren, 
that  this  was  the  last  time  he  should  see  his  father's  house :  full 
little  did  his  brethren  think,  when  they  sokl  him  naked  to  the  Lh- 
maelites,  to  have  once  seen  him  in  the  thror.e  of  Egypt.  God's 
decree  runs  on  ;  and,  while  we  either  think  not  of  it  or  oppose  it, 
is  performed. 

In  an  honest  and  obedient  simplicity,  Joseph  comes  to  inquire 
of  his  brethren's  health,  and  now  may  not  return  to  carry  news  of 
his  own  misery  :  while  he  thinks  of  their  welfare,  they  are  plotting 
bis  destruction  ;  Come,  let  us  slaij  kim.  Who  would  have  expected 
this  cruelty  in  them,  which  should  be  the  fathers  of  God's  Church? 
It  was  thought  a  favour,  that  Reuben's  entreaty  obtained  for  him, 
that  he  might  be  cast  into  the  pit  alive,  to  die  there.  Fie  looked 
for  brethren  ;  and  behold,  murderers  ;  every  man's  tongue,  every 
man's  fist,  was  bent  against  him :  each  one  strives  who  shall  lay 
the  first  hand  upon  that  changeable  coat,  which  was  dyed  with  their 
father's  love  and  their  envy  ;  and  now  they  have  stripped  him 
naked,  and  haling  him  bv  both  arms,  as  it  were,  cast  him  alive 
into  his  grave.  So,  in  pretence  of  forbearance,  they  resolve  to 
torment  him  with  a  lingering  death:  the  savagest  robbers  could 
not  have  been  more  merciless ;  for  now  besides,  what  in  them  lies, 
they  kill  their  father  in  their  brother.  Nature,  if  it  once  degene- 
rate, grows  more  monstrous  and  extreme  than  a  disposition  born 
to  cruelty. 

All  this  while  Joseph  wanted  neither  words  nor  tears;  but,  like 
a  passionate  suppliant,  bowing  his  bare  knees  to  them  whom  he 
dreamed  should  bow  to  him,  intreats  and  persuades,  by  the  dear 
name  of  their  brotherhood,  by  their  profession  of  one  common 
God,  for  their  father's  sake,  for  their  own  souls'  sake,  not  to  sin 
against  his  blood.  But  envy  hath  shut  out  mercy,  and  makes  them 
not  only  forget  themselves  to  be  brethren,  but  men.  What  stranger 
can  think  of  poor  innocent  Joseph,  crying  naked  in  that  desolate 
and  dry  pit  (only  saving  that  he  moistened  it  with  tears),  and  not 
be  moved  ?  Yet  his  hard-hearted  brethren  sit  them  down  care- 
lessly, with  the  noise  of  his  lamentation  in  their  ears,  to  eat  bread ; 
not  once  thinking,  by  their  own  hunger,  what  it  was  for  Joseph  to 
be  famished  to  death. 

Whatsoever  they  thought,  God  never  meant  that  Joseph  should 
perish  in  that  pit ;  and  therefore  he  sends  very  Ishmaelites,  to  ran- 
som him  from  his  brethren :  the  seed  of  him  that  persecuted  his 
brother  Isaac  shall  now  redeem  Joseph  from  his  brethren's  perse- 
cution. 

When  they  came  to  fetch  him  out  of  the  pit,  he  now  hoped  for 
a  speedy  dispatch  ;  that  since  they  seemed  not  to  have  so  much 
mercy  as  to  prolong  his  life,  they  would  not  continue  so  much  cru- 


OF  JOSEPH. 


51 


elty  as  to  prolong  his  death.  And  now,  when  he  hath  comforted 
himself  with  hope  of  the  favour  of  dying-,  behold,  death  exchanged 
for  bondage :  how  much  is  servitude,  to  an  ingenuous  nature, 
worse  than  death  !  For,  this  is  common  to  all ;  that,  to  none  but 
the  miserable.  Judah  meant  this  well,  but  God  better :  Reuben 
saved  him  from  the  sword,  Judah  from  famishing :  God  will  ever 
raise  up  some  secret  favourers  to  his  own,  amongst  those  that  are 
most  malicious. 

How  well  was  this  favour  bestowed  !  If  Joseph  had  died  for  hun- 
ger in  the  pit,  both  Jacob  and  Judah  and  all  his  brethren  had  died 
for  hunger  in  Canaan.  Little  did  the  Ishmaelitish  merchants  know 
what  a  treasure  they  bought,  carried,  and  sold  ;  more  precious 
than  all  their  balms  and  myrrhs.  Little  did  they  think  that  they 
had  in  their  hands  the  lord  of  Egypt,  the  jewel  of  the  world. 
Why  should  we  contemn  any  man's  meanness,  when  we  know  not 
his  destiny  ? 

One  sin  is  commonly  used  for  the  veil  of  another  :  Joseph's  coat 
is  sent  home  dipped  in  blood,  that,  while  they  should  hide  their 
own  cruelty,  they  might  afflict  their  father,  no  less  than  their  bro- 
ther. They  have  devised  this  real  lie,  to  punish  their  old  father, 
for  his  love,  with  so  grievous  a  monument  of  his  sorrow. 

He,  that  is  mourned  for  in  Canaan,  as  dead,  prospers  in  Egypt 
under  Potiphar  ;  and,  of  a  slave,  is  made  ruler.  Thus  God  meant 
to  prepare  him  for  a  greater  charge  ;  he  must  first  rule  Potipiiar's 
house,  then  Pharaoh's  kingdom:  his  own  service  is  his  least  good, 
for  his  very  presence  procures  a  common  blessing  :  a  whole  family 
shall  fare  the  better  for  one  Joseph. 

Virtue  is  not  looked  upon  alike  with  all  eyes :  his  fellows  praise 
him,  his  master  trusts  him,  his  mistress  affects  him  too  much.  All 
the  spite  of  his  brethren  was  not  so  great  a  cross  to  him,  as  the  in- 
ordinate affection  of  his  mistress.  Temptations  on  the  right  hand 
are  now  more  perilous  and  hard  to  resist,  by  how  much  they  are 
more  plausible  and  glorious ;  but  the  heart  that  is  bent  upon  God 
knows  how  to  walk  steadily  and  indifferently,  betwixt  the  pleasures 
of  sin  and  fears  of  evil,  fie  saw  this  pleasure  would  advance  hint ; 
he  knew  what  it  was  to  be  a  minion  of  one  of  the  greatest  ladies 
in  Egypt;  yet  resolves  to  contemn :  a  good  heart  will  rather  lie  in 
the  dust,  than  rise  by  wickedness.  How  shall  I  do  this,  and  sin 
against  God  ? 

He  knew  that  all  the  honours  of  Egypt  could  not  buy  off  the 
guilt  of  one  sin,  and  therefore  abhors  not  only  her  bed,  but  her 
company:  he,  that  will  be  safe  from  the  acts  of  evil,  must  wisely 
avoid  the  occasions.  As  sin  ends  ever  in  shame,  when  it  is  com- 
mitted, so  it  makes  us  past  shame,  that  we  may  commit  it:  the 
impudent  strumpet  dare  not  only  solicit,  but  importune,  and  in  a 
sort  force  the  modesty  of  her  good  servant ;  she  lays  hold  on  his 
garment ;  her  hand  seconds  her  tongue. 

Good  Joseph  found  it  now  time  to  fly,  when  such  an  enemy 
pursued  him:  how  much  would  he  rather  leave  his  cloke  than  his 
virtue !  and  to  suffer  his  mistress  to  spoil  him  of  his  livery,  rather 


52  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

than  he  should  blemish  her  honour,  or  his  master's  in  her,  or  God 
in  either  of  them  ! 

This  second  time  is  Joseph  stripped  of  his  garment ;  before  in 
the  violence  of  envy,  now  of  lust;  before  of  necessity,  now  of 
choice  ;  before  to  deceive  his  father,  now  his  master :  for  behold, 
the  pledge  of  his  fidelity,  which  he  left  in  those  wicked  hands,  is 
made  an  evidence  against  him,  of  that  which  he  refused  to  do  ; 
therefore  did  he  leave  his  cloke  because  he  would  not  do  that,  of 
which  he  is  accused  and  condemned  because  he  left  it :  what 
safety  is  there  against  great  adversaries,  when  even  arguments  of 
innocence  are  used  to  convince  of  evil  ?  Lust  yielded  unto  is  a 
pleasant  madness,  but  is  a  desperate  madness  when  it  is  opposed  : 
no  hatred  burns  so  furiously  as  that,  which  arises  from  the  quenched 
coals  of  love.  , 

Malice  is  witty  to  devise  accusations  of  others,  out  of  their  virtue 
and  our  own  guiltiness.  Joseph  either  pleads  not,  or  is  not  heard. 
Doubtless  he  denied  the  fact,  but  he  dare  not  accuse  the  offender : 
there  is  not  only  the  praise  of  patience,  but  oft-times  of  wisdom, 
even  in  unjust  sufferings :  he  knew  that  God  would  find  a  time  to 
clear  his  innocence,  and  to  regard  his  chaste  faithfulness. 

No  prison  would  serve  him,  but  Pharaoh's.  Joseph  had  lain 
"obscure  and  not  been  known  to  Pharaoh,  if  he  had  not  been  cast 
into  Pharaoh's  dungeon  :  the  afflictions  of  God's  children  turn  ever 
to  their  advantage.  No  sooner  is  Joseph  a  prisoner,  than  a  guar- 
dian of  the  prisoners.  Trust  and  honour  accompany  him  where- 
soever he  is.  In  his  father's  house,  in  Potiphar's,  in  the  gaol,  in 
the  court ;  still  he  hath  both  favour  and  rule. 

So  long  as  God  is  witli  him,  he  cannot  but  shine  in  spite  of 
men  :  the  walls  of  that  dungeon  cannot  hide  his  virtues ;  the  iron 
cannot  hold  them.  Pharaoh's  officers  are  sent  to  witness  his  graces, 
which  he  may  not  come  forth  to  shew  ;  the  cupbearer  admires  him 
in  the  gaol,  but  forgets  him  in  the  court.  How  easily  doth  our  own 
prosperity  make  us  either  forget  the  deservings  or  miseries  of 
others  ! 

But  as  God  cannot  neglect  his  own,  so  least  of  all  in  their  sor- 
rows. After  two  years  more  of  Joseph's  patience,  that  God,  which 
caused  him  to  be  lifted  out  of  the  former  pit  to  be  sold,  now  calls 
him  out  of  the  dungeon  to  honour.  He  now  puts  a  dream  into  the 
head  of  Pharaoh  :  he  puts  the  remembrance  of  Joseph's  skill  into 
the  head  of  the  cupbearer ;  who,  to  pleasure  Pharaoh,  not  to  re- 
quite Joseph,  commends  the  prisoner,  for  an  interpreter  :  he  puts 
an  interpretation  in  the  mouth  of  Joseph  :  he  puts  this  choice  into 
the  heart  of  Pharaoh,  of  a  miserable  prisoner,  to  make  him  the 
ruler  of  Egypt.  Behold  :  one  hour  hath  changed  his  fetters  into 
a.  chain  of  gold,  his  rags  into  fine  linen,  his  stocks  into  a  chariot, 
his  gaol  into  a  palace,  Potiphar's  captive  into  his  master's  lord,  the 
noise  of  his  chains  into  Bow  the  knee.  He,  whose  chastity  refused 
the  wanton  allurements  of  the  wife  of  Potiphar,  had  now  given  him 
to  his  wife  the  daughter  of  Potipherah.  Humility  goes  before  ho- 
nour j  serving  and  suffering  are  the  best  tutors  to  government. 


OF  JOSEPH. 


53 


How  well  are  God's  children  paid  for  their  patience  !  How  happy 
are  the  issues  of  the  faithful !  Never  any  man  repented  him  of  the 
advancement  of  a  good  man. 

Pharaoh  had  not  more  prefered  Joseph,  than  Joseph  had  en- 
riched Pharaoh  ;  if  Joseph  had  not  ruled,  Egypt  and  all  the  border- 
ing nations  had  perished.  The  providence  of  so  faithful  an  officer 
hath  both  given  the  Egyptians  their  lives;  and  the  money,  cattle, 
lands,  bodies  of  the  Egvptians  to  Pharaoh.  Both  have  reason  to  be 
well  pleased.  The  subjects  owe  to  him  theirlives  ;  the  king,  his 
subjects  and  his  dominions :  the  bounty  of  God  made  Joseph  able 
to  give  more  than  he  received. 

It  is  like  the  seven  years  of  plenty  were  not  confined  to  Egypt  ; 
other  countries  adjoining  were  no  less  fruitful ;  yet  in  the  seven 
years  of  famine,  Egypt  had  corn  when  they  wanted.  See  the 
difference  betwixt  a  wise  prudent  frugality,  and  a  vain  igno- 
rant expence  of  the  benefits  of  God :  the  sparing  hand  is  both 
full  and  beneficial ;  whereas  the  lavish  is  not  only  empty,  but  in- 
jurious. 

Good  Jacob  is  pinched  with  the  common  famine.  No  piety  can 
exempt  us  from  the  evils  of  neighbourhood.  No  man  can  tell  by 
outward  event,  which  is  the  Patriarch  and  which  the  Canaanite. 
Neither  doth  his  profession  lead  him  to  the  hope  of  a  miraculous 
preservation.  It  is  a  vain  tempting  of  God,  to  cast  ourselves  upon 
an  immediate  provision,  with  neglect  of  common  means.  His  ten 
sons  must  now  leave  their  flocks,  and  go  down  into  Egypt,  to  be 
their  father's  purveyors. 

And  now  they  go  to  buy  of  him  whom  they  had  sold ;  and  bow 
their  knees  to  him  for  his  relief,  who  had  bowed  to  them  before 
for  his  own  life.  His  age,  his  habit,  the  place,  the  language,  kept 
Joseph  from  their  knowledge  ;  neither  had  they  called  off  their 
minds  from  their  folds,  to  inquire  of  matters  of  foreign  state,  or  to 
hear  that  a  Hebrew  was  advanced  to  the  highest  honour  of  Egypt. 
But  he  cannot  but  know  them,  whom  he  left  at  their  full  growth, 
whose  tongue,  and  habit,  and  number  were  all  one  ;  whose  faces 
had  left  so  deep  an  impression  in  his  mind,  at  their  unkind  parting : 
it  is  wisdom  sometimes  to  conceal  our  knowledge,  that  we  may  not 
prejudice  truth. 

He,  that  was  hated  of  his  brethren,  for  being  his  father's  spy, 
now  accuses  his  brethren,  for  common  spies  of  the  weakness  of 
Egypt :  he  could  not  without  their  suspicion  have  come  to  a  perfect 
intelligence  of  his  father's  estate  and  theirs,  if  he  had  not  objected 
to  them  that  which  was  not.  We  are  always  bound  to  go  the  near- 
est way  to  truth.  It  is  more  safe  in  cases  of  inquisition,  to  fetch 
far  about  :  that  he  might  seem  enough  an  Egyptian,  he  swears  hea- 
thcnishly :  how  little  could  they  suspect,  this  oath  could  proceed 
from  the  son  of  him,  which  swore  by  the  fear  of  his  father  Isaac  ! 
How  oft  have  sinister  respects  drawn  weak  goodness,  to  disg  uise  it- 
self even  with  sins  ! 

It  was  no  small  joy  to  Joseph,  to  see  this  late  accomplishment  of 
his  ancient  dream  ;  to  seethe  suppliants  (I  know  not  whether  more 


5*  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

brethren,  or  enemies)  grovelling  before  him  in  an  unknown  submis- 
sion  :  and  now  it  doth  him  good  to  seem  merciless  to  them,  whom 
he  had  round  wilfully  cruel  ;  to  hide  his  love  from  them,  which  had 
shewed  their  hate  to  him ;  and  to  think  how  much  he  favoureth 
them,  and  how  little  they  know  it  :  and,  as  sporting  himself  in  their 
seeming  misery,  he  pleasantly  imitates  all  those  actions  reciprocal- 
ly unto  them,  which  they  in  despight  and  earnest  had  done  former- 
ly to  him  ;  he  speaks  roughly,  rejects  their  persuasions,  puts  them 
in  hold,  and  one  of  them  in  bonds.  The  mind  must  not  always  be 
judged  by  the  outward  face  of  the  actions.  God's  countenance  is 
oft-times  as  severe,  and  his  hand  as  heavy,  to  them  whom  he  best 
loverh.  Many  a  one,  under  the  habit  of  an  Egyptian,  hath  the 
heart  of  an  Israelite.  No  song  could  be  so  delightful  to  him,  as  to 
hear  them  in  a  late  remorse  condemn  themselves  before  him,  of 
their  old  cruelty  towards  him,  who  was  now  their  unknown  witness 
and  judge. 

Nothing  doth  so  powerfully  call  home  the  conscience,  as  afflic- 
tion ;  neither  need  there  any  other  art  of  memory  for  sin,  besides 
misery.  They  had  heard  Joseph's  deprecation  of  their  evil  with 
tears,  and  had  not  pitied  him  ;  yet  Joseph  doth  but  hear  their  men- 
tion of  this  evil  which  they  had  done  against  him,  and  pities  them 
with  tears  :  he  weeps  for  joy  to  see  their  repentance,  and  to  com- 
pare his  safety  and  happiness  with  the  cruelty  which  they  intend- 
ed, and  did,  and  thought  they  had  done. 

Yet  he  can  abide  to  see  his  brother  his  prisoner,  whom  no  bonds 
could  bind  so  strong,  as  his  affection  bound  him  to  his  captive  :  Si- 
meon is  left  in  pawn,  in  fetters  ;  the  rest  return  with  their  corn,  with 
their  money,  paying  nothing  for  their  provision,  but  their  labour  ; 
that  they  might  be  as  much  troubled  with  the  beneficence  of  that 
strange  Egyptian  lord,  as  before  with  his  imperioussuspicion.  Their 
wealth  was  now  more  irksome  to  them,  than  their  need  ;  and  they 
fear,  God  means  to  punish  them  more  in  this  superfluity  of  money 
than  in  the  want  of  victuals,  What  is  this,  that  God  hath  done  to 
us  ?  It  is  a  wise  course  to  be  jealous  of  our  gain,  and  more  to  fear 
than  desire  abundance. 

Old  Jacob,  that  was  not  used  to  simple  and  absolute  content- 
ments, receives  the  blessing  of  seasonable  provision,  together  with 
the  affliction  of  that  heavy  message,  the  loss  of  one  son  and  the 
danger  of  another  ;  and  knows  not  whether  it  be  better  for  him  to 
die  with  hunger,  or  with  grief  for  the  departure  of  that  son  of  his 
right  hand.  He  drives  off  all  to  the  last  :  protraction  is  a  kind  of 
ease  in  evils  that  must  come. 

At  length,  as  no  plea  is  so  importunate  as  that  of  famine,  Ben- 
jamin must  go  :  one  evil  must  be  hazarded  for  the  redress  of  ano- 
ther :  what  would  it  avail  him,  to  see  whom  he  loved,  miserable? 
How  injurious  were  that  affection  to  keep  his  son  so  long  in  his  eye, 
till  they  should  see  each  other  die  for  hunger  ! 

The  ten  brothers  return  into  Egypt,  loaded  with  double  money 
in  their  sacks,  and  a  present  in  their  hands  :  the  danger  of  mistak- 
ing is  requited,  by  honest  minds,  with  more  than  restitution.    It  is 


OF  JOSEPH. 


55 


not  enough  to  find  our  own  hearts  clear  in  suspicious  actions,  ex- 
cept we  satisfy  others. 

Now  hath  Joseph  what  he  would,  the  sight  and  presence  of  his 
Benjamin ;  whom  he  therefore  borrows  of  his  father  for  a  time, 
that  he  might  return  him  with  a  greater  interest  of  joy.  And  now 
he  feasts  them  whom  he  formerly  threatened,  and  turns  their  fear 
into  wonder :  all  unequal  love  is  not  partial ;  all  the  brethren  are 
entertained  bountifully,  but  Benjamin  hath  a  five-fold  portion  :  by 
how  much  his  welcome  was  greater,  by  so  much  his  pretended  theft 
seemed  more  heinous  ;  for  good  turns  aggravate  unkindnesses,  and 
our  offences  are  increased  with  our  obligations. 

How  easy  is  it  to  find  advantages,  where  there  is  a  purpose  to  ac- 
cuse !  Benjamin's  sack  makes  him  guilty  of  that,  whereof  his  heart 
was  free:  crimes  seem  strange  to  the  innocent  :  well  might  they 
abjure  this  fact,  with  the  offer  of  bondage  and  death ;  for  they, 
which  carefully  brought  again  that  which  they  might  have  taken, 
would  never  take  that  which  was  not  given  them.  But  thus  Joseph 
would  yet  dally  with  his  brethren  ;  and  make  Benjamin  a  thief, 
that  he  might  make  him  a  servant ;  and  fright  his  brethren  #itb  the 
peril  of  that  their  charge,  that  he  might  double  their  joy  and  amaze- 
ment, in  giving  them  two  brothers  at  once :  our  happiness  is 
greater,  and  sweeter,  when  we  have  well  feared,  and  smarted  with 
evils. 

But  now,  when  Judah  seriously  reported  the  danger  of  his  old  fa- 
ther and  the  sadness  of  his  last  complaint,  compassion  and  joy  will 
be  concealed  no  longer,  but  break  forth  violently  at  his  voice  and 
eyes.  Many  passions  do  not  well  abide  witnesses,  because  they  are 
guilty  to  their  own  weakness.  Joseph  sends  forth  his  servants,  that 
he  might  freely  weep.  He  knew  he  could  not  say,  /  am  Josephy 
without  an  unbeseeming  vehemence. 

Never  any  word  sounded  so  strangely  as  this,  in  the  ears  of  the 
patriarchs.  Wonder,  doubt,  reverence,  joy,  fear,  hope,  guiltiness, 
struck  them  at  once.  It  was  time  for  Joseph  to  say,  Fear  not  :  no 
marvel  if  they  stood  with  paleness  and  silence  before  him  ;  looking 
on  him,  and  on  each  other  :  the  more  they  considered,  they  won- 
dered more  ;  and  the  more  they  believed,  the  more  they  feared  : 
for  those  words,  /  am  Joseph,  seemed  to  sound  thus  much  to  their 
guilty  thoughts  ;  "  You  are  murdera's,  and  lam  a  prince  in  spite 
of  you  :  my  power  and  this  place  give  me  all  opportunities  of  re- 
venge ;  my  glory  is  your  shame,  my  life  your  danger  ;  your  sin 
lives  together  with  me." 

But  now  the  tears  and  gracious  words  of  Joseph  have  soon  as- 
sured them  of  pardon  and  love,  and  have  bidden  them  turn  their 
eyes  from  their  sin  against  their  brother  to  their  happiness  in  him, 
and  have  changed  their  doubts  into  hopes  and  joys  ;  causing  them 
to  look  upon  him  without  fear,  though  not  without  shame.  His 
loving  embracemcnts  clear  their  hearts  of  all  jealousies,  and  hasten 
to  put  new  thoughts  into  them  of  favour  and  of  greatness  ;  so  that 
now,  forgetting  what  evil  they  did  to  their  brother,  they  are  think- 
ing of  what  good  their  brother  may  do  to  them.    Actions  salved  up 


56  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

with  a  free  forgiveness  are  as  not  done;  and,  as  a  bone  once  broken 
is  stronger  after  well  setting,  so  is  love  after  reconcilement. 

But,  as  wounds  once  healed  leave  a  scar  behind  them,  so  remitted 
injuries  leave  commonly  in  the  actors  a  guilty  remembrance  ;  which 
hindered  these  brethren  from  that  freedom  of  joy,  which  else  they 
had  conceived :  this  was  their  fault,  not  Joseph's ;  who  strives  to 
give  them  all  security  of  his  love,  and  will  be  as  bountiful  as  they 
are  cruel ;  they  send  him  naked  to  strangers,  he  sends  them  in  new 
and  rich  liveries  to  their  father  ;  they  took  a  small  sum  of  money 
for  him,  he  gives  them  great  treasures ;  they  sent  his  torn  coat  to 
his  father,  he  sends  variety  of  costly  raiments  to  his  father  by  them; 
they  sold  him  to  be  the  load  of  camels,  he  sends  them  home  with 
chariots. 

It  must  be  a  great  favour  that  can  appease  the  conscience  of  a 
great  injury.  Now  they  return  home  rich  and  joyful,  making 
themselves  happy  to  think  how  glad  they  should  make  their  father 
with  this  news. 

That  good  old  man  would  never  have  hoped,  that  Egypt  could 
have  afforded  such  provision  as  this ;  Joseph  is  yet  alive  :  this  was 
not  food,  but  life  to  him.  The  return  of  Benjamin  was  comforta- 
ble ;  but  that  his  dead  son  was  yet  alive,  after  so  many  years'  la- 
mentation, was  tidings  too  happy  to  be  believed,  and  was  enough 
to  endanger  that  life  with  excess  of  joy,  which  the  knowledge 
thereof  doubled.  Over-excellent  objects  are  dangerous  in  their  sud- 
den apprehensions.  One  grain  of  that  joy  would  have  safely 
cheered  him,  whereof  a  full  measure  over-lays  his  heart  with  too 
much  sweetness.  There  is  no  earthly  pleasure  whereof  we  may  not 
surfeit ;  of  the  spiritual,  we  can  never  have  enough. 

Yet  bis  eyes  revive  his  mind,  which  his  ears  had  thus  astonished. 
When  he  saw  the  chariots  of  his  son,  he  believed  Joseph's  life,  and 
refreshed  his  own.  He  had  too  much  before,  so  that  he  could  not 
enjoy  it ;  now  he  saith,  /  have  enough,  Joseph  my  son  is  yet  alive. 

They  told  him  of  his  honour,  he  speaks  of  his  life:  life  is  better 
than  honour.  To  have  heard  tltat  Joseph  lived  a  servant,  would 
have  joyed  him  more,  than  to  hear  that  he  died  honourably.  The 
greater  blessing  obscures  the  less.  He  is  not  worthy  of  honour, 
that  is  not  thankful  for  life. 

Yet  Joseph's  life  did  not  content  Jacob  without  his  presence  ;  / 
will  go  down  and  sec  him  ere  I  die  :  the  sight  of  the  eye  is  better 
than  to  walk  in  desires  ;  good  things  pleasure  us  not  in  their  being, 
but  in  our  enjoying. 

The  height  of  all  earthly  contentment  appeared  in  the  meeting 
of  these  two  ;  whom  their  mutual  loss  had  more  endeared  to  each 
other :  the  intermission  of  comforts  hath  this  advantage,  that  it 
sweetens  our  delight  more  in  the  return,  than  was  abated  in  the  for- 
bearance. God  doth  oft-times  hide  away  our  Joseph  for  a  time, 
that  we  may  be  more  joyous  and  thankful  in  his  recovery.  This 
was  the  sincerest  pleasure  that  ever  Jacob  had,  which  therefore  God 
reserved  for  his  age. 

And  if  the  meeting  of  earthly  friends  be  so  unspeakably  com- 


OF  JOSEPH.  57 

fortable,  how  happy  shall  we  be  in  the  light  of  the  glorious  face  of 
God  our  heavenly  Father  !  of  that  our  blessed  Redeemer  whom  we 
sold  to  death  by  our  sins  ;  and  which  now,  after  that  noble  triumph, 
hath  all  power  given  him  in  heaven  and  earth  ! 

Thus  did  Jacob  rejoice,  when  he  was  to  go  out  of  the  land  of 
promise  to  a  foreign  nation  for  Joseph's  sake  ;  being  glad  that  he 
should  lose  his  country  for  his  son.  What  shall  our  joy  be,  who 
must  go  out  of  this  foreign  land  of  our  pilgrimage,  to  the  home  of 
our  glorious  inheritance,  to  dwell  with  none  but  our  own  ;  in  that 
better  and  more  lightsome  Goshen,  free  from  all  the  incumbrances 
of  this  Egypt,  and  full  of  all  the  riches  and  delights  of  God  ! 

The  guilty  conscience  can  never  think  itself  safe:  so  many  years 
experience  of  Joseph's  love  could  not  secure  his  brethren  of  remis- 
sion :  those,  that  know  they  have  deserved  ill,  are  wont  to  misinter- 
pret favours,  and  think  they  cannot  be  beloved  :  all  that  while  his 
goodness  seemed  but  concealed  and  sleeping  malice  ;  which  they 
feared  in  their  father's  last  sleep  would  awake,  and  betray  itself  in 
revenge  :  still  therefore  they  plead  the  name  of  their  father,  though 
dead,  not  daring  to  use  their  own.  Good  meanings  cannot  be  more 
wronged  than  with  suspicion  :  it  grieves  Joseph  to  see  their  fear, 
and  to  find  they  had  not  forgotten  their  own  sin,  and  to  hear  them 
so  passionately  crave  that  which  they  had. 

Forghe  the  trespass  of  the  servants  of  thy  fathers  God  :  What 
a  conjuration  of  pardon  was  this  !  What  wound  could  be  either  so 
deep,  or  so  festered,  as  this  plaster  could  not  cure  !  They  say  not, 
"  the  sons  of  thy  father  ;"  for  they  knew  Jacob  was  dead,  and 
they  had  degenerated  ;  but  the  servants  of  thy  fathers  God :  how 
much  stronger  are  the  bonds  of  religion  than  of  nature  !  If  Jo- 
seph had  been  rancorous,  this  deprecation  had  charmed  him  ;  but 
now  it  resolves  him  into  tears :  they  are  not  so  ready  to  acknow- 
ledge their  old  offence,  as  he  to  protest  his  love ;  and  if  he  chide 
them  for  any  thing,  it  is  for  that  they  thought  they  needed  to  in- 
treat ;  since  they  might  know,  it  could  not  stand  with  the  fellow-ser- 
vant of  their  father's  God,  to  harbour  maliciousness,  to  purpose 
revenge  ;  Am  not  I  under  God  ?  And,  fully  to  secure  them,  he  turns 
their  eyes  from  themselves  to  the  decree  of  God  ;  from  the  action  to 
the  event ;  as  one  that  would  have  them  think,  there  was  no  cause 
to  repent  of  that  which  proved  so  successful. 

Even  late  confession  finds  forgiveness :  Joseph  had  long  ago  seen 
their  sorrow,  never  but  now  heard  he  their  humble  acknowledg- 
ment :  mercy  stays  not  for  outward  solemnities.  How  much  more 
shall  that  infinite  Goodness  pardon  our  sins,  when  he  finds  the  truth 
of  our  repentance  ! 

Gen.  xxxvii,  xxxix,  xl%  xli,  xlii,  xliii,  xliv,  xlv. 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 

BOOK  IV. 


TO  THE  RIGHT  HONOURABLE 

JAMES,  LORD  HAY, 

ALL  GRACE  AND  HAPPINESS. 


RIGHT  honourable: 

M-LL  that  I  can  say  for  myself,  is  a  desire  of  doing  good;  which 
if  it  were  as  fervent  in  richer  hearts,  the  Church,  which  ?ww  we  sec 
comely,  would  then  be  glorious.  This  honest  ambition  hath  carried 
me  to  neglect  the  fear  of  seeming  prodigal  of  my  little ;  and  while 
I  see  others'1  talents  rusting  in  the  earth,  hath  drawn  me  to  traffic 
with  mine  in  public.  I  hope,  no  adventure,  that  ever  I  made  of  this 
kind,  shall  be  equally  gainful  to  this  my  present  labour,  wherein  I 
take  God's  own  history  for  the  ground,  and  work  upon  it  by  what 
meditations  my  weakness  can  afford  :  the  divineness  of  this  subject 
shall  make  more  than  amends  for  the  manifold  defects  of  my  dis- 
course ;  although  also  the  blame  of  an  imperfection  is  so  much  the 
more,  when  itlighteth  upon  so  high  a  choice.  This  part,  which  I 
offer  to  your  Lordship,  shall  shew  you  Pharaoh  impotently  envious 
and  cruel ;  the  Israelites  of  friends  become  slaves,  punished  only 
for  prospering  ;  Moses  in  the  weeds,  in  the  court,  in  the  desert,  in 
the  Hill  of  Visions  ;  a  courtier  in  Egypt,  a  shepherd  in  Midian,  an 
ambassador  from  God,  a  leader  [of  God's  people  :  and  when  you  see 
prodigious  variety  of  the  plagues  of  Egypt, you  shall  not  know  whe- 
ther more  to  wonder  at  the  miracles  of  Moses,  or  Pharaoh's  obsti- 
nacy. Finally,  you  shall  see.  the  same  waves  made  both  a  wall  and 
a  gulf  in  one  hour ;  the  Egyptians  drowned,  where  no  Israelite 
was  wet-shod  :  and  if  these  passages  yield  not  abundance  of  profita- 
ble thoughts,  impute  it  (not  without  pardon)  to  the  poverty  of  my 
weak  conceit ;  which  yet  may  perhaps  occasion  better  unto  others. 
In  all  humble  submission  I  commend  them  (what  they  are  J  to  your 
Lordship's  favourable  acceptation,  and  yourself  with  them  to  the 
gracious  blessing  of  our  God. 

Your  Lordship's  in  all  dutiful  observance  at  command, 

JOSEPH  HALL, 


THE  AFFLICTION  OF  ISRAEL. 

Egypt  was  long  a  harbour  to  the  Israelites;  now  it  proves  a 
gaol  :  the  posterity  of  Jacob  finds  too  late,  what  it  was  for  their  fore- 
fathers to  sell  Joseph  a  slave  into  Egypt.    Those  whom  the  Egyp- 


THB  AFFLICTION  OF  ISRAEI,. 


59 


tians  honoured  before  as  lords,  now  they  contemn  as  drudges :  one 
Pharaoh  advances  whom  another  labours  to  depress  :  not  seldom  the 
same  man  changes  copies ;  but  if  favours  out-live  one  age,  they 
prove  decrepit  and  heartless.  It  is  a  rare  thing  to  find  posterity 
heirs  of  their  father's  love.  How  should  men's  favour  be  but  like 
themselves,  variable  and  inconstant  ?  There  is  no  certainty  but  in  the 
favour  of  God,  in  whom  can  be  no  change;  whose  love  is  entailed 
upon  a  thousand  generations. 

Yet  if  the  Israelites  had  been  treacherous  to  Pharaoh,  if  disobe- 
dient, this  great  change  of  countenance  had  been  just ;  now  the 
only  offence  of  Israel  is,  that  he  prospereth :  that,  which  should  be 
the  motive  of  their  gratulation  and  friendship*  is  the  cause  of  their 
malice.  There  is  no  more  hateful  sight  to  a  wicked  man,  than  the 
prosperity  of  the  conscionable.  None  but  the  spirit  of  that  true 
harbinger  of  Christ,  can  teach  us  to  say  with  contentment,  He 
vuist  increase,  but  I  must  decrease. 

And  what  if  Israel  be  mighty  and  rich  ?  If  there  be  war,  they 
may  join  with  our  enemies,  and  get  them  out  of  the  land.  Be- 
hold, they  are  afraid  to  part  with  those  whom  they  are  grieved  to 
entertain  :  either  staving  or  going  is  offence  enough  to  those  that 
seek  quarrels.  There  were  no  wars,  and  yet  they  say,  If  there  be 
wars :  the  Israelites  had  never  given  cause  of  fear  to  revolt,  and 
yet  they  say,  Lest  they  join  to  our  enemies,  to  those  enemies  which 
we  may  have  ;  so  they  make  their  certain  friends  slaves,  for  fear  of 
uncertain  enemies.  Wickedness  is  ever  cowardly,  and  full  of  un- 
just suspicions  ;  it  makes  a  man  fear,  where  no  fear  is  ;  fly,  when 
no  one  pursues  him.  What  difference  there  is  betwixt  David  and 
Pharaoh  !  the  faith  of  the  one  says,  /  will  not  be  afraid  for  ten 
thousand  that  should  beset  me  ;  the  fear  of  the  other  says,  Lest  if 
there  be  war,  they  join  with  our  enemies ;  therefore  should  he  have 
made  much  of  the  Israelites,  that  they  might  be  his ;  his  favour 
might  have  made  them  firm  ;  why  may  they  not  as  well  draw  their 
swords  for  him  ? 

Weak  and  base  minds  ever  incline  to  the  worse  ;  and  seek  safety, 
rather  in  an  impossibility  of  hurt,  than  in  the  likelihood  of  just  ad- 
vantage. Favours  had  been  more  binding  than  cruelties  ;  yet  the 
foolish  Egyptians  will  rather  have  impotent  servants,  than  able 
friends. 

For  their  welfare  alone,  Pharaoh  owes  Israel  a  mischief;  and  how 
will  he  pay  it  ?  Come,  let  us  work  wisely  :  lewd  men  call  wicked 
policies  wisdom,  and  their  success  happiness :  herein  Satan  is  wiser 
than  they  ;  who  both  lays  the  plot,  and  makes  them  such  fools,  as 
to  mistake  villainy  and  madness,  for  the  best  virtue. 

Injustice  is  upheld  by  violence,  whereas  just  governments  are 
maintained  by  love.  Task-masters  must  be  set  over  Israel ;  they 
should  not  be  the  true  seed  of  Israel,  if  they  were  not  still  set  to 
wrestle  with  God  in  afflictions.  Heavy  burdens  must  be  laid  upon 
them :  Israel  is  never  but  loaded  ;  the  destiny  of  one  of  Jacob's 
sons  is  common  to  all,  to  lie  down  betwixt  their  burdens.  If  they 
had  seemed  to  breathe  them  in  Goshen  sometimes,  yet  even  there* 


60 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


it  was  no  small  misery  to  be  foreigners,  and  to  live  among  Idola- 
ters ;  but  now  tbe  name  of  a  slave  is  added  to  the  name  of  a  stran- 
ger. Israel  had  gathered  some  rust  in  idolatrous  Egypt,  and  now 
he  must  be  scowered  :  the}-  had  borne  the  burden  of  God's  anger, 
if  they  had  not  borne  the  burdens  of  the  Egyptians. 

As  God  afflicted  them  with  another  mind  than  the  Egvptians  ; 
(God  to  exercise  them,  the  Egyptians  to  suppress  them  ;)  so  causes 
he  the  event  to  differ.  Who  would  not  have  thought,  with  these 
Egyptians,  that  so  extreme  misery  should  not  have  made  the  Is- 
raelites unfit  both  for  generation  and  resistance  ?  Moderate  ex- 
ercise strengthens,  extreme  destroys  nature.  That  God,  which 
many  times  works  by  contrary  means,  caused  them  to  grow  with 
depression  ;  with  persecution  to  multiply  :  how  can  God's  Church 
but  fare  well,  since  the  very  malice  of  their  enemies  benefits  them  ? 
Oh  the  sovereign  goodness  of  our  God,  that  turns  all  our  poisons 
into  cordials  !  God's  vine  bears  the  better  with  bleeding. 

And  now  the  Egyptians  could  be  angrv  with  their  own  malicious- 
ness, that  this  was  the  occasion  of  multiplying  them  whom  they 
hated  and  feared  ;  to  see  that  this  service  gained  more  to  the  work- 
men, than  to  their  masters :  the  stronger  therefore  the  Israelites 
grew,  the  more  impotent  grew  the  malice  of  their  persecutors  ; 
and  since  their  own  labour  strengthens  them,  now  tyranny  will  try 
what  can  be  done  by  the  violence  of  others :  since  the  present 
strength  cannot  be  subdued,  the  hopes  of  succession  must  be  pre- 
vented ;  women  must  be  suborned  to  be  murderers,  and  those,  whose 
office  is  to  help  the  birth,  must  destroy  it. 

There  was  less  suspicion  of  cruelty  in  that  sex,  and  more  op- 
portunity of  doing  mischief.  The  male  children  must  be  born,  and 
die  at  once  ;  what  can  be  more  innocent,  than  the  child  that  hath 
not  lived  so  much  as  to  cry,  or  to  see  light  ?  it  is  faidt  enough  to 
be  the  son  of  an  Israelite.  The  daughters  may  live  for  bondage, 
for  lust ;  a  condition  so  much  (at  the  least)  worse  than  death,  as 
their  sex  was  weaker.  O  marvellous  cruelty,  that  a  man  should 
kill  a  man  for  his  sex's  sake  1  Whosoever  hath  loosed  the  reins 
unto  cruelty,  is  easily  carried  into  incredible  extremities. 

From  burdens  they  proceed  to  bondage,  and  from  bondage  to 
blood  ;  from  an  unjust  vexation  of  their  body,  to  an  inhuman  de- 
struction of  the  fruit  of  their  body.  As  the  sins  of  the  concupis- 
cible  part,  from  slight  motions,  grow  on  to  foul  executions,  so  do 
those  of  the  irascible  :  there  is  no  sin,  whose  harbour  is  more  un- 
safe, than  that  of  malice ;  but  oft-times  the  power  of  tyrants 
answers  not  their  will :  evil  commanders  cannot  always  meet  with 
equally  mischiev  ous  agents. 

The  fear  of  God  teaches  the  midwives  to  disobey  an  unjust  com- 
mand ;  they  well  knew,  how  no  excuse  it  is  for  evil,  "  I  was  bid- 
den." God  said  to  their  hearts,  Thou -shu.lt  not  kill :  this  voice  was 
louder  than  Pharaoh's.  I  commend  their  obedience  in  disobeying  ;  I 
dare  not  commend  their  excuse  :  there  was  as  much  weakness  in  their 
answer,  as  strength  in  their  practice :  as  they  feared  God  in  not 
killing,  so  they  feared  Pharaoh  in  dissembling ;  oft-times  those,  that 


THE  AFFLICTION  OF  ISRAEL. 


61 


make  conscience  of  greater  sins,  are  overtaken  with  less.  It  is  well 
and  rare,  if  we  can  come  forth  of  a  dangerous  action  without  any 
foil ;  and  if  we  have  escaped  the  storm,  that  some  after-drops  wet 
us  not. 

Who  would  not  have  expected,  that  the  midvvives  should  be  mur- 
dered, for  not  murdering  !  Pharaoh  could  not  be  so  simple  to 
think  these  women  trusty  ;  yet  his  indignation  had  no  power  to 
reach  their  punishment.  God  prospered  the  midwives,  who  can 
harm  them  ?  Even  the  not  doing  of  evil  is  rewarded  with  good. 
And  why  did  they  prosper  ?  Because  they  feared  God  ;  not  for 
their  dissimulation,  but  their  piety.  So  did  God  regard  their  mer- 
cy, that  he  regarded  not  their  infirmity.  How  fondly  do  men  lay 
the  thank  upon  the  sin,  which  is  due  to  the  virtue.  True  wisdom 
teaches  to  distinguish  God's  actions,  and  to  ascribe  them  to  the 
right  causes :  pardon  belongs  to  the  lie  of  the  midwives,  and  remu- 
neration to  their  goodness,  prosperity  to  their  fear  of  God. 

But  that  which  the  midwives  will  not,  the  multitude  shall  do.  It 
were  strange,  if  wicked  rulers  should  not  find  some  or  other  instru- 
ments of  violence.  All  the  people  must  drown  whom  the  women 
saved.  Cruelty  had  but  smoked  before,  now  it  flames  up  ;  secret 
practising  hath  made  it  shameless,  that  now  it  dare  proclaim  tyran- 
ny. It  is  a  miserable  state,  where  every  man  is  made  an  execu- 
tioner. There  can  be  no  greater  argument  of  an  ill  cause,  than  a 
bloody  persecution  ;  whereas,  truth  upholds  herself  by  mildness, 
and  is  promoted  by  patience.  This  is  their  act,  what  was  their  is- 
sue ?  the  people  must  drown  their  males,  themselves  are  drowned  : 
they  died  by  the  same  means,  by  which  they  caused  the  poor  Is- 
raelitish  infants  to  die  ;  that  law  of  retaliation  which  God  will  not 
allow  to  us,  because  we  are  fellow  creatures,  he  justly  practiseth  in 
us.  God  would  have  us  read  our  sins  in  our  judgments,  that  we 
might  both  repent  of  our  sins  and  give  glory  to  his  justice. 

Pharaoh  raged  before  ;  much  more  now,  that  he  received  a  mes- 
sage of  dismission  ;  the  monitions  of  God  make  ill  men  worse  :  the 
waves  do  not  beat  nor  roar  any  where  so  much,  as  at  the  bank 
which  restrains  them.  Corruption,  when  it  is  checked,  grows  mad 
with  rage ;  as  the  vapour  in  a  cloud  would  not  make  that  fearful 
report,  if  it  met  not  with  opposition.  A  good  heart  yields  at  the 
stillest  voice  of  God  ;  but  the  most  gracious  motions  of  God 
harden  the  wicked.  Many  would  not  be  so  desperately  settled  in 
their  sins,  if  the  word  had  not  controlled  them.  How  mild  a  mes- 
sage was  this  to  Pharaoh,  and  yet  how  galling  !  We  pray  thee  let 
us  go.  God  commands  him  that  which  he  feared.  He  took  plea- 
sure in  the  present  servitude  of  Israel  :  God  calls  for  a  release.  If 
the  suit  had  been  for  mitigation  of  labour,  for  preservation  of  their 
children,  it  might  have  carried  some  hope,  and  have  found  some  fa- 
vour :  but  now  God  requires  that  which  he  knows  will  as  much  dis- 
content Pharaoh,  as  Pharaoh's  cruelty  could  discontent  the  Israel- 
ites ;  Let  us  go.  How  contrary  are  God's  precepts  to  natural 
minds  !  and  indeed,  as  thv-y  love  to  cross  him  in  their  practice,  so 
he  loves  to  cross  them  in  their  commands  before,  and  his  punishments 


62  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

afterwards  :  it  is  a  dangerous  sign  of  an  ill  heart,  to  feel  God's  yoke 
heavy. 

Moses  talks  of  sacrifice  ;  Pharaoh  talks  of  work.  Any  thing 
seems  due  work  to  a  carnal  mind,  saving  God's  service  ;  nothing 
superfluous,  but  religious  duties.  Christ  tells  us,  there  is  but  one 
thing  necessary  ;  nature  tells  us,  there  is  nothing  but  that  needless. 
Moses  speaks  of  devotion  ;  Pharaoh,  of  idleness.  It  hath  been  an 
old  use,  as  to  cast  fair  colours  upon  our  own  vicious  actions,  so  to 
cast  evil  aspersions  upon  the  good  actions  of  others.  The  same 
devil,  that  spoke  in  Pharaoh,  speaks  still  in  our  scoffers,  and  calls 
religion  hypocrisj7,  conscionable  care  .singularity.  Every  vice 
hath  a  title,  and  every  virtue  a  disgrace. 

Yet  while  possible  tasks  were  imposed,  there  was  some  comfort : 
their  diligence  might  save  their  backs  from  stripes.  The  conceit 
of  a  benefit  to  the  commander,  and  hope  of  impunity  to  the  la- 
bourer, might  give  a  good  pretence  to  great  difficulties  ;  but  to  re- 
quire tasks  not  feasible,  is  tyrannical,  and  doth  only  pick  a  quarrel 
to  punish;  they  could  neither  make  straw,  nor  find  it,  yet  they 
must  have  it.  "  Do  what  mav  be,"  is  tolerable  ;  but  "  Do  what 
cannot  be,"  is  cruel.  Those  which  are  above  others  in  place  must 
measure  their  commands,  not  by  their  own  wills,  but  by  the 
strength  of  their  inferiors.  To  require  more  of  a  beast  than  he  can 
do,  is  inhuman.  The  task  is  not  done  ;  the  task-masters  are  beaten  : 
the  punishment  lies  whrre  the  charge  is  ;  they  must  exact  it  of  the 
people,  Pharaoh  of  them.  It  is  the  misery  of  those  which  are 
trusted  with  authority,  that  their  inferiors'  faults  are  beaten  upon 
their  backs.  This  was  not  the  fault,  to  require  it  of  the  task-mas- 
ters, but  to  require  it  by  the  task-masters  of  the  people.  Public 
persons  do  either  good  or  ill  with  a  thousand  hands,  and  with  no 
fewer  shall  receive  it.  E'xod.  L 


OF  THE  BIRTH  AND  BREEDING  OF  MOSES. 

It  is  a  wonder  that  Amram,  the  father  of  Moses,  would  think  of 
the  marriage  bed  in  so  troublesome  a  time,  when  he  knew  he  should 
beget  children  either  to  slavery  or  slaughter  ;  yet  even  now,  in  the 
heat  of  this  bondage,  he  marries  Jochebed.  The  drowning  of  his 
sons  was  not  so  great  an  evil,  as  his  own  burning  ;  the  thraldom  of 
his  daughters  not  so  great  an  evil,  as  the  subjection  unto  sinful  de- 
sires :  he  therefore  uses  God's  remedy  for  his  sin,  and  refers  the 
sequel  of  his  danger  to  God.  How  necessary  is  this  imitation,  for 
those  which  have  not  the  power  of  containing  !  perhaps  we  would 
have  thought  it  better  to  live  childless  ;  but  Amram  and  Jochebed 
durst  not  incur  the  danger  of  a  sin,  to  avoid  the  danger  of  a  mis- 
chief. 

No  doubt,  when  Jochebed,  theraother  of  Moses,  saw  a  man-child 
born  of  her,  and  him  beautiful  and  comely,  she  fell  into  extreme 
passion,  to  think  that  the  executioner's  hand  should  succeed  the 
midwife's.  All  the  time  of  her  conception,  she  could  not  but  fear  a 
son  ;  now  she  sees  him,  and  thinks  of  his  birth  and  death  at  once, 


OF  THE  BIRTH  AND  BREEDING  OF  MOSES. 


63 


her  second  throes  are  more  grievous  than  her  first.  The  pains  of 
travail  in  others  are  somewhat  mitigated  with  hope,  and  counter- 
vailed with  joy  that  a  man-child  was  born ;  in  her,  they  are  dou- 
bled with  fear ;  the  remedy  of  others  is  her  complaint :  still  she 
looks  when  some  fierce  Egyptian  would  come  in,  and  snatch  her 
new-born  infant  out  of  her  bosom  ;  whose  comeliness  had  now  also 
added  to  her  affection. 

Many  times  God  writes  presages  of  majesty  and  honour,  even  in 
the  faces  of  children.  Little  did  she  think,  that  she  held  in  her  lap 
the  deliverer  of  Israel.  It  is  good  to  hazard  in  greatest  appear- 
ances of  danger.  If  Jochebed  had  said,  "  If  I  bear  a  son,  they 
will  kill  him,"  where  had  been  the  great  rescuer  of  Israel  ?  Happy 
is  that  resolution  which  can  follow  God  hood-winked,  and  let  him 
dispose  of  the  event.  When  she  can  no  longer  hide  him  in  her 
womb,  she  hides  him  in  her  house  ;  afraid  lest  every  of  hiscryings 
should  guide  the  executioners  to  his  cradle. 

And  now  she  sees  her  treasure  can  be  no  longer  hid,  she  ships 
him  in  a  bark  of  bullrushes,  and  commits  him  to  the  mercy  of  the 
waves,  and,  which  was  more  merciless,  to  the  danger  of  an  Egyp- 
tian passenger ;  yet  doth  she  not  leave  him  without  a  guardian. 
No  tyranny  can  forbid  her  to  love  him,  whom  she  is  forbidden  to 
keep  :  her  daughter's  eyes  must  supply  the  place  of  her  arms. 

And  if  the  weak  affection  of  a  mother  were  thus  effectually  care- 
ful, what  shall  we  think  of  him,  whose  love,  whose  compassion,  is, 
as  himself,  infinite.  His  eye,  his  hand,  cannot  but  be  with  us,  even 
when  we  forsake  ourselves.  Moses  had  never  a  stronger  protec- 
tion about  him,  no  not  when  all  his  Israelites  were  pitched  about 
his  tent  in  the  wilderness,  than  now  when  he  lay  sprawling  alone 
upon  the  waves :  no  water,  no  Egyptian  can  hurt  him.  Neither 
friend  nor  mother  dare  own  him,  and  now  God  challenges  his  custo- 
dy. When  we  seem  most  neglected  and  forlorn  in  ourselves,  then 
is  God  most  present,  most  vigilant. 

His  providence  brings  Pharaoh's  daughter  thither  to  wash  her- 
self. Those  times  looked  for  no  great  state :  a  princess  comes  to 
bathe  herself  in  the  open  stream  :  she  meant  only  to  wash  herself ; 
God  fetches  her  thither,  to  deliver  the  deliverer  of  his  people.  His 
designs  go  beyond  ours.  We  know  not,  when  we  set  our  foot  over 
our  threshold,  what  he  hath  to  do  with  us.  This  event  seemed  ca- 
sual to  this  princess,  but  predetermined  and  provided  by  God,  be- 
fore she  was :  how  wisely  and  sweetly  God  brings  to  pass  his  own 
purposes,  in  our  ignorance  and  regardlessness !  She  saw  the  ark, 
opens  it,  finds  the  child  weeping  ;  his  beauty  and  his  tears  had  God 
provided  for  the  strong  persuasions  of  mercy.  This  young  and 
lively  oratory  prevailed.  Her  heart  is  struck  with  compassion,  and 
yet  her  tongue  could  say,  It  is  a  Hebrew  child. 

See  here  the  merciful  daughter  of  a  cruel  father  ;  it  is  an  uncha- 
ritable and  injurious  ground,  to  judge  of  the  child's  disposition  by 
the  parents,  How  well  doth  pity  beseem  great  personages !  and 
moj  t  in  extremities.  It  had  been  death  to  another  to  rescue  the 
child  of  a  Hebrew  ;  in.  her  it  was  safe  and  noble.    It  is  a  happy 


64 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


thing,  when  great  ones  improve  their  places  to  so  much  more  cha- 
rity, as  their  liberty  is  more. 

Moses's  sister,  finding  the  princess  compassionate,  offers  to  pro- 
cure a  nurse,  and  fetches  the  mother  :  and  who  can  be  so  fit  a 
nurse  as  a  mother  ?  She  now  with  glad  hands  receives  her  child, 
both  with  authority  and  reward.  She  would  have  given  all  her 
substance  for  the  life  of  her  son  ;  and  now  she  hath  a  reward  to 
nurse  him.  The  exchange  of  the  name  of  a  mother,  for  the  name 
of  a  nurse,  hath  gained  her  both  her  son  and  his  education,  and 
with  both  a  recompcnce.  Religion  doth  not  call  us  to  a  weak  sim- 
plicity, but  allows  us  as  much  of  the  serpent  as  of  the  dove  :  law- 
ful policies  have  from  God  both  liberty  in  the  use,  and  blessing  in 
the  success. 

The  good  lady  did  not  breed  him  as  some  child  of  alms,  or  as 
some  wretched  outcast,  for  whom  it  might  be  favour  enough  to 
live,  but  as  her  own  son  ;  in  all  the  delicacies,  in  all  the  learning 
of  Egypt.  Whatsoever  the  court  or  the  school  could  put  into 
him,  he  wanted  not;  yet  all  this  could  not  make  him  forget  that 
he  was  a  Hebrew.  Education  works  wondrous  changes,  and  is  of 
great  force  either  way  :  a  little  advancement  hath  so  puffed  some 
up  above  themselves,  that  they  have  not  only  forgot  their  friends, 
but  scorned  their  parents.  All  the  honours  of  Egypt  could  not 
win  Moses,  not  to  call  his  nurse,  mother,  or  wean  him  from  a  wil- 
ling misery  with  the  Israelites.  If  we  had  Moses's  faith,  we  could 
not  but  make  his  choice.  It  is  only  our  infidelity  that  binds  us  so 
to  the  world,  and  makes  us  prefer  the  momentary  pleasures  of  sin, 
unto  that  everlasting  recompense  of  reward. 

He  went  forth,  and  looked  on  the  burdens  of  Israel.  What 
needed  Moses  to  have  afflicted  himself  with  the  afflictions  of 
others  ?  Himself  was  at  ease  and  pleasure  in  the  court  of  Pharaoh. 
A  good  heart  cannot  endure  to  be  happy  alone  ;  and  must  needs, 
unbidden,  share  with  others  in  their  miseries.  He  is  no  true 
Moses,  that  is  not  moved  with  the  calamities  of  God's  Church.  To 
see  an  Egyptian  smite  a  Hebrew,  it  smote  him,  and  moved  him  to 
smite.  He  hath  no  Israelitish  blood  in  him,  that  can  endure  to  see 
an  Israelite  stricken  either  with  hand  or  with  tongue. 

Here  was  his  zeal :  where  was  his  authority  ?  Doubtless,  Moses 
had  an  instinct  from  God  of  his  magistracy  ;  else  how  should  he 
think  they  would  have  understood  what  himself  did  not  ?  Oppres- 
sions may  not  be  righted  by  violence,  but  by  law.  The  redress  of 
evil  by  a  person  unwarranted,  is  evil.  Moses  knew  that  God  had 
called  him  ;  he  knew  that  Pharaoh  knew  it  not :  therefore  he  hides 
the  Egyptian  in  the  sand.  Those  actions  which  may  be  approved 
unto  God  are  not  always  safe  with  men  ;  as  contrarily,  too  many 
things  go  current  with  men,  which  are  not  approved  of  God. 

Another  Hebrew  is  stricken,  but  by  a  Hebrew :  the  act  is  the 
same,  the  agents  differ  ;  neither  doth  their  profession  more  differ, 
than  Moses's  proceedings.  He  gives  blows  to  the  one  ;  to  the 
other,  words.  The  blows,  to  the  Egyptian,  were  deadly  ;  the 
words,  to  the  Hebrew,  gentle  and  plausible.    As  God  makes  a  dif- 


OF  THE  BIRTH  AND  BREEDING  OF  MOSES.  65 

ference  betwixt  chastisements  of  his  own,  and  punishments  of 
strange  children  ;  so  must  wise  governors  learn  to  distinguish  of  sins 
and  judgments,  according  to  circumstances. 

How  mildly  doth  Moses  admonish  !  Sirs,  ye  air  brethren.  If 
there  had  been  but  any  drachm  of  good  nature  in  these  Hebrews, 
they  had  relented  ;  now  it  is  strange  to  see,  that,  being  so  univer- 
sally vexed  with  the  if  common  adversary,  they  should  yet  ve.x 
one  another  :  one  would  have  thought  that  a  common  opposition 
should  have  united  them  more,  yet  now  private  grudges  do  thus 
dangerously  divide  them.  Blows  enough  were  not  dealt  by  the 
Egyptians  ;  their  own  must  add  to  the  violence.  Still  Satan  is  thus 
busv,  and  Christians  are  thus  malicious,  that,  as  if  they  wanted 
enemies,  they  By  in  one  another's  faces.  While  we  are  in  this  Egypt 
of  theworl.l,  all  unkind  strifes  would  easily  be  composed,  if  we  did 
not  forget  that  we  are  brethren. 

Behold  an  Egyptian  in  the  skin  of  a  Hebrew  !  How  dogged 
an  answer  doth  Moses  receive  to  so  gentle  a  reproof !  Who  would 
not  have  expected,  that  this  Hebrew  had  been  enough  dejected  with 
the  common  affliction  ?  But  vexations  may  make  some  more  mi- 
serable, not  more  humble  ;  as  we  see  sicknesses  make  some  tracta- 
ble, others  more  froward.  It  is  no  easy  matter  to  bear  a  reproof 
well,  if  never  so  well  tempered  :  no  sugar  can  bereave  a  pill  of  his 
bitterness.  None  but  the  gracious  can  say,  Let  the  righteous  smite 
vie.  Next  to  the  not  deserving  a  reproof,  is  the  well  taking  of  it. 
But  who  is  so  ready  to  except  and  exclaim,  as  the  wrong-doer  ? 
The  patient  replies  not.  One  injury  draws  on  another  ;  first  to 
his  brother,  then  to  his  reprover.  Guiltiness  will  make  a  man  stir 
upon  every  touch  :  he  that  was  wronged  could  incline  to  reconci- 
liation :  malice  makes  men  incapable  of  good  counsel ;  and  there 
are  none  so  great  enemies  to  justice,  as  those  which  are  enemies  to 
peace. 

With  what  impatience  doth  a  galled  heart  receive  an  admoni- 
tion !  This  unworthy  Israelite  is  the  pattern  of  a  stomachful  of- 
fender ;  first,  he  is  moved  to  cholcr  in  himself ;  then,  he  calls  for 
the  authority  of  the  admonisher  :  a  small  authority  will  serve  for  a 
loving  admonition.  It  is  the  duty  of  men,  much  more  of  Chris- 
tians, to  advise  against  sin  ;  yet  this  man  asks,  Who  made  thee  a 
judge  ?  for  but  finding  fault  with  his  injury.  Then  he  aggra- 
vates, and  misconstrues,  Wilt  thou  kill  mec?  when  Moses  meant 
only  to  save  both.  It  was  the  death  of  his  malice  only  that  was 
intended,  and  the  safety  of  his  person.  And  lastly,  he  upbraid* 
him  with  former  actions,  Thou  killedst  the  Egyptian  :  What  if  he 
did  ?  What  if  unjustly  ?  What  was  this  to  the  Hebrew  ?  Another 
man's  sin  is  no  excuse  for  ours. 

A  wicked  heart  never  looks  inward  to  itself,  but  outward  to  the 
quality  of  the  reprover :  if  that  afford  exception,  it  is  enough ;  a 
a  dog  runs  first  to  revenge  on  the  stone.  What  matter  is  it  to  me 
who  he  be  that  admonisheth  me  ?  Let  me  look  home  into  myself : 
let  me  look  to  his  advice.  If  that  be  good,  it  is  more  shame  tome 
to  be  reproved  by  an  evil  man.    As  a  good  man's  allowance  cannot 

F 


66  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

warrant  evil,  so  an  evil  man's  reproof  may  remedy  evil :  if  this  He- 
brew had  been  well  pleased,  Moses  had  not  heard  of  his  slaughter ; 
now  in  choler  all  will  out :  and  if  this  man's  tongue  had  not  thus 
cast  him  in  the  teeth  with  blood,  he  had  been  surprised  by  Pharaoh, 
ere  he  could  have  known  that  the  fact  was  known. 

Now  he  grows  jealous,  flees,  and  escapes.  No  friend  is  so  com- 
modious in  some  cases  as  an  adversary.  This  wound,  which  the 
Hebrew  thought  to  give  Moses,  saved  his  life.  As  it  is  good  for  a 
man  to  have  an  enemy,  so  it  shall  be  our  wisdom  to  make  use  of 
his  most  choleric  objections.  The  worst  of  an  enemy  may  prove 
most  sovereign  to  ourselves.  Moses  flees.  It  is  no  discomfort  for 
a  man  to  flee,  when  his  conscience  pursues  him  not.  Where  God's 
warrant  will  not  protect  us,  it  is  good  for  the  heels  to  supply  the 
place  of  the  tongue. 

Moses,  when  he  may  not  in  Egypt,  will  be  doing  justice  in 
Midian.  In  Egypt,  he  delivers  the  oppressed  Israelite  ;  in  Midian, 
the  wronged  daughters  of  Jethro.  A  good  man  will  be  doing  good, 
wheresoever  he  is  :  his  trade  is  a  compound  of  charity  and  jus- 
tice ;  as  therefore  evil  dispositions  cannot  be  changed  with  airs,  no 
more  will  good. 

Now  then  he  sits  him  down  by  a  well  in  Midian.  There  he 
might  have  to  drink,  but  where  to  eat  he  knew  not.  The  case  was 
altered  with  Moses ;  to  come  from  the  dainties  of  the  court  of 
Egypt,  to  the  hunger  of  the  fields  of  Midian :  it  is  a  lesson  that 
all  God's  children  must  learn  to  take  out,  To  want  and  to  abound. 
Who  can  think  strange  of  penury,  when  the  great  governor  of 
God's  people  once  hath  nothing  ? 

Who  would  not  have  thought  in  this  case,  Moses  should  have 
been  heartless  and  sullen  ?  So  cast  down  with  his  own  complaints, 
that  he  should  have  had  no  feeling  of  others  ?  Yet  how  hot  is  he 
upon  justice  !  No  adversity  can  make  a  good  man  neglect  good 
duties  :  he  sees  the  oppression  of  the  shepherds,  the  image  of  that 
other  he  left  behind  him  in  Egypt.  The  maids,  daughters  of  so 
great  a  peer,  draw  water  for  their  flocks  ;  the  inhuman  shepherds 
drive  them  away  :  rudeness  hath  no  respect  either  to  sex  or  con- 
dition. If  we  lived  not  under  laws,  this  were  our  case  :  might 
would  be  the  measure  of  justice  :  we  should  not  so  much  as  enjoy 
our  own  water. 

Unjust  courses  will  not  ever  prosper :  Moses  shall  rather  come 
from  Egypt  to  Midian  to  beat  the  shepherds,  than  they  shall  vex 
the  daughters  of  Jethro. 

This  act  of  justice  was  not  better  done  than  taken  :  Reuel  re- 
quites it  kindly  with  a  hospitable  entertainment.  A  good  nature 
is  ready  to  answer  courtesies :  we  cannot  do  too  much  for  a  thank- 
ful man  :  and  if  a  courteous  heathen  reward  the  watering  of  a  sheep 
in  this  bountiful  manner,  how  shall  our  God  recompense  but  a 
cup  of  cold  water  that  is  given  to  a  disciple ! 

This  favour  hath  won  Moses ;  who  now  consents  to  dwell  with 
him,  though  out  of  the  Church.  Curiosity,  or  whatsoever  idle  oc- 
casions, may  not  draw  us,  for  our  residence,  out  of  the  bounds  of 


OF  MOSES'S  CALLING.  .61 

the  Church  of  God  ;  danger  of  life  may  :  we  love  not  the  Church 
if  we  easily  leave  it  ;  if  in  a  case  of  life,  we  leave  it  not,  upon  op- 
portunity, for  a  time  of  respite,  we  love  not  ourselves. 

The  rirst  part  of  Moses's  requital  was  his  wife  ;  one  of  those 
whom  he  had  formerly  protected.  I  do  not  so  much  marvel  that 
Jethro  gave  him  his  daughter  (for  he  saw  him  valiant,  wise,  learn- 
ed, nobly  bred)  as  that  Moses  would  take  her  ;  a  stranger  both  in 
blood  and  religion.  I  could  plead  for  him  necessity  :  his  own  na- 
tion was  shut  up  to  him  ;  if  he  would  have  tried  to  fetch  a  daugh- 
ter of  Israel,  he  had  endangered  to  leave  himself  behind.  I  coidd 
plead  some  correspondence  in  common  principles  of  religion  ;  for 
doubtless,  Moses's  zeal  could  not  suffer  him  to  smother  the  truth  in 
himself:  he  should  have  been  an  unfaithful  servant,  if  he  had  not 
been  his  master's  teacher.  Yet  neither  of  these  can  make  this 
match  either  safe  or  good.  The  event  bewrays  it  dangerously  in- 
convenient. 

This  choice  had  like  to  have  cost  him  dear :  she  stood  in  his  way 
for  circumcision  ;  God  stands  in  his  way  for  revenge.  Though  he 
was  now  in  God's  message,  yet  might  he  not  be  forborne  in  this 
neglect.  No  circumstance,  either  of  the  dearness  of  the  solicitor 
or  our  own  engagement,  can  bear  out  a  sin  with  Go;I. 

Those,  which  are  unequally  yoked,  may  not  ever  look  to  draw 
one  way.  True  love  to  the  person  cannot  long  agree  with  dislike 
of  the  religion.  He  had  need  to  be  more  than  a  man,  that  hath  a 
Zipporahin  his  bosom,  and  would  have  true  zeal  in  his  heart. 

All  this  while  Moses's  affection  was  not  so  tied  to  Midian,  that 
he  could  forget  Egypt.  He  was  a  stranger  in  Midian  :  what  was 
he  else  in  Egypt  ?  Surely,  either  Egypt  was  not  his  home,  or  a 
miserable  one ;  and  yet,  in  reference  to  it,  he  calls  his  son  Ger- 
shom,  a  stranger  there.  Much  better  were  it  to  be  a  stranger 
there,  than  a  dweller  in  Egypt.  How  hardly  can  we  forget  the 
place  of  our  abode  or  education,  although  never  so  homely  !  And 
if  he  so  thought  of  his  Egyptian  home,  where  was  nothing  but 
bondage  and  tyranny  ;  how  should  we  think  of  that  home  of  ours, 
above,  where  is  nothing  but  rest  and  blessedness !        Kxo<]L.  ii. 


OF  MOSES'S  CALLING. 

Forty  years  was  Moses  a  courtier;  and  forty  years,  after  that,  a 
shepherd.  That  great  men  may  not  be  ashamed  of  honest  voca- 
tions, the  greatest  that  ever  were  have  been  content  to  take  up  with 
mean  trades.  The  contempt  of  honest  callings  in  those  which  are 
well  born,  argues  pride  without  wit.  How  constantly  did  Moses 
stick  to  his  hook!  and  yet  a  man  of  great  spirits,  of  excellent 
learning,  of  curious  education;  and  if  God  had  not,  after  his  forty 
years'  service,  called  him  off,  he  had  so  ended  his  days.  Humble 
resolutions  are  so  much  more  heroical,  as  they  fall  into  higher  Sub-« 
jects.  J  .  ° 

There  can  be  no  fitter  disposition  for  a  leader  of  God's  people, 
than  constancy  in  his  undertakings,  without  either  weariness  or 


68 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


change.  How  had  he  learned  to  subdue  all  ambitious  desires,  and 
to  rest  content  with  his  obscurity  !  So  he  might  have  the  freedom 
of  his  thoughts  and  full  opportunity  of  holy  meditations,  he  wil- 
lingly leaves  the  world  to  others,  and  envies  not  his  proudest  ac- 
quaintance of  the  court  of  Pharaoh.  He,  that  hath  true  worth  in 
himself  and  familiarity  with  God,  finds  more  pleasure  in  the  de- 
serts of  Midian,  than  others  can  do  in  the  palaces  of  kings. 

While  he  is  tending  his  sheep,  God  appeared  unto  him :  God 
never  graces  the  idle  with  his  visions  :  when  he  finds  us  in  our  call- 
ings, we  find  him  in  the  tokens  of  his  mercy.  Satan  appears  to  the 
idle  man  in  manifold  temptations  ;  or  rather  presents  himself,  and 
appears  not.  God  was  ever  with  Moses,  yet  was  he  not  seen  till 
now.  He  is  never  absent  from  his,  but  sometimes  he  makes  their 
senses  witnesses  of  his  presence. 

In  small  matters  may  be  greater  wonders.  That  a  bush  should 
burn,  is  no  marvel ;  but  that  it  should  not  consume  in  burning,  is 
justly  miraculous.  God  chuseth  not  ever  great  subjects  wherein 
to  exercise  his  power.  It  is  enough  that  his  power  is  great  in  the 
smallest. 

When  I  look  upon  this  burning  bush  with  Moses,  metHnks  I 
can  never  see  a  worthier  and  more  lively  emblem  of  the  Church  ; 
that  in  Egypt  was  in  the  furnace,  yet  wasted  not :  since  then  how 
oft  hath  it  been  flaming,  never  consumed !  The  same  power,  that  en- 
lightens it,  preserves  it ;  and  to  none  but  to  his  enemies,  is  he  a  con- 
suming fire. 

Moses  was  a  great  philosopher  ;  but  small  skill  would  have  serv- 
ed to  know  the  nature  of  fire,  and  of  the  bush  ;  that  fire  meeting 
with  combustible  matter,  could  not  but  consume :  if  it  had  been 
some  solid  wood,  it  would  have  yielded  later  to  the  flames ;  but 
bushes  are  of  so  quick  dispatch,  that  the  joy  of  the  wicked  is  com- 
pared to  a  fire  of  thorns.  He  noted  awhile,  saw  it  continued,  and 
began  to  wonder.  It  was  some  marvel  how  it  should  come  there ; 
but  how  it  should  continue  without  supply,  yea,  without  diminu- 
tion of  matter,  was  truly  admirable. 

Doubtless  he  went  oft  about  it,  and  viewed  it  on  all  sides  ;  and 
now,  when  his  eyes  and  mind  could  meet  with  no  likely  causes,  so 
far  off,  resolves,  /  will  go  see  it :  his  curiosity  led  him  nearer  ;  and 
what  could  he  see  but  a  bush  and  a  flame,  which  he  saw  at  first  un- 
satisfied ?  It  is  good  to  come  to  the  place  of  God's  presence,  how- 
soever :  God  may  perhaps  speak  to  thy  heart,  though  thou  come 
but  for  novelty.  Even  those  which  have  come  upon  curiosity  have 
been  oft  taken  :  absence  is  without  hope  :  if  Moses  had  not  come, 
he  had  not  been  called  out  of  the  bush. 

To  see  a  fire  not  consuming  the  bush,  was  much  ;  but  to  hear  a 
speaking  fire,  this  was  more  ;  and  to  hear  his  own  name  out  of  the 
mouth  of  the  fire,  it  was  most  of  all.  God  makes  way  for  his 
greatest  messages  by  astonishment  and  admiration  ;  as,  on  the  con- 
trary, carelessness  carries  us  to  a  mere  unproficiency  under  the  best 
means  of  God.  If  our  hearts  were  more  awful,  God's  messages 
would  be  more  effectual  to  us. 


OF  MOSES'S  CALLING.  69 

.  In  that  appearance,  God  meant  to, call  Moses  to  come;  yet,  when 
he  is  come,  inhibits  him;  Come  not  hither.  We  must  come  to 
God ;  must  not  come  too  near  him.  When  We  meditate  of  the 
great  mysteries  of  his  word,  we  come  to  him  ;  wc  come  too  near 
him,  when  we  search  into  his  counsels.  The  sun  and  the  fire 
w,\y  of  themselves,  "  Come  not  too  near;"  how  much  more 
the  light  which  none  can  attain  unto !  We  have  all  our  limits 
set  us :  the  Gentiles  might  come  into  some  outer  courts,  not 
into  the  inmost :  the  Jews  might  come  into  the  inner  court,  not 
into  the  temple ;  the  priests  and  Levites  into  the  temple,  not 
into  the  Holv  of  Holies  ;  Moses  to  the  hill,  not  to  the  bush. 
The  waves  of  the  sea  had  not  more  need  of  bounds,  than  man's 
presumption.  Moses  must,  not  come  close  to  the  bush  at  all ;  and 
where  he  may  stand,  he  may  not  stand  with  his  shoes  on.  There 
is  no  unholiness  in  clothes :  God  prepared  them  for  man  at  first, 
and  that  of  skins,  lest  any  exception  should  be  taken  at  the  hides 
of  dead  beasts.  This  rite  was  significant.  What  are  the  shoes  but 
worldly  and  carnal  affections  ?  If  these  be  not  cast  off  when  we 
come  to  the  holy  place,  we  make  ourselves  unholy  :  how  much  less 
should  we  dare  to  come  with  resolutions  of  sin  !  This  is  not  only  to 
come  with  shoes  on,  but  with  shoes  bemired  with  wicked  filthiness  ; 
the  touch  whereof  profanes  the  pavement  of  God,  and  makes  our 
presence  odious. 

Moses  was  the  son  of  Amram,  Amram  of  Kohath,  Kohath  of 
Levi,  Levi  of  Jacob,  Jacob  of  Isaac,  Isaac  of  Abraham.  God 
puts  together  both  ends  of  his  pedigree  ;  /  am  the  God  of  thy  fa- 
titer,  and  of  Abraham,  Isaac,  Jacob.  If  he  had  said  only,  J  am 
thy  God,  it  had  been  Moses's  duty  to  attend  awfully  ;  but  now  that 
he  says,  I  am  the  God  of  thy  father,  and  of  Abraham,  Kc.  he 
challenges  reverence  by  prescription.  Any  thing,  that  was  our  an- 
cestors', pleases  us;  their  houses,  their  vessels,  their  coat-armour; 
how  much  more  their  God  !  How  careful  should  parents  be  to  make 
holy  choices !  Every  precedent  of  theirs  is  so  many  monuments 
and  motives  to  their  posterity. 

What  a  happiness  it  is,  to  be  born  of  good  parents  !  Hence  God 
claims  an  interest  in  us,  and  we  in  him,  for  their  sake.  As  many  a 
man  smarteth  for  his  father's  sin,  so  the  goodness  of  others  is 
crowned  in  a  thousand  generations.  Neither  doth  God  say,  "  I 
was  the  God  of  Abraham,  Isaac,  Jacob  ;"  but,  /  am.  The  pa- 
triarchs still  live,  after  so  many  thousand  years  of  dissolution.  No 
length  of  time  can  separate  the  souls  of  the  just  from  their  Maker. 
As  for  their  body,  there  is  still  a  real  relation  betwixt  the  dust  of  it, 
and  the  soul ;  and  if  the  being  of  this  part  be  more  defective,  the 
being  of  the  other  is  more  lively,  and  doth  more  than  recompense 
the  wants  of  that  earthly  half. 

God  could  not  describe  himself  by  a  more  sweet  name  than  this, 
I  am  the  (rod  of  thy  father,  and  of  Abraham,  SCc,  yet  Moses  hides 
his  face  for  fear.  If  he  had  said,  "  I  am  the  glorious  God  that 
made  heaven  and  earth,  that  dwell  in  light  inaccessible,  whom 
the  angels  cannot  behold  j"  or,     I  am  God  the  avenger,  jus*  and 


70  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

terrible,  a  consuming  fire,  to  mine  enemies;  here  had  been  just 
cause  of  terror.  But  why  was  Moses  so  frighted  with  a  familiar 
compellation  ?  God  is  no  less  awful  to  his  own  in  his  very  mercies: 
Great  is  thy  mercy,  that  thou  mayest  be  feared ;  for  to  them,  no 
less  majesty  shines  in  the  favours  of  God,  than  in  his  judgments 
and  justice.  The  wicked  heart  never  fears  God,  bu4  thundering, 
or  shaking  the  earth,  or  raining  fire  from  heaven ;  but  the  good 
can  dread  him  in  his  very  sun-shine :  his  loving  deliverances  and 
blessu.gs  affect  them  with  awfulness.  Moses  was  the  true  son  of 
Jacob  ;  who,  when  he  saw  nothing  but  visions  of  love  and  mercy, 
could  sav,  Ilow  dreadful  is  this  place  / 

I  see  Moses  now  at  the  bush  hiding  his  face  at  so  mild  a  repre- 
sentation :  hereafter  we  shall  see  him  in  this  very  mount  betwixt 
heaven  and  earth  ;  in  thunder,  lightning,  smoke,  earthquakes, 
speaking  mouth  to  mouth  with  God,  barefaced,  and  fearless:  God 
was  then  more  terrible,  but  Moses  was  less  strange.  This  was  his 
first  meeting  with  God  ;  further  acquaintance  makes  him  familiar, 
and  familiarity  makes  him  bold  :  frequence  of  conversation  gives 
us  freedom  of  access  to  God  ;  and  makes  us  pour  out  our  hearts  to 
him,  as  fully  and  as  fearlessly  as  to  our  friends.  In  the  mean  time, 
now  at  first  he  made  not  so  much  haste  to  see,  but  he  made  as 
much  to  hide  his  eyes. 

Twice  did  Moses  hide  his  face  ;  once,  for  the  glory  which  God 
put  upon  him,  which  made  him  so  shine,  that  he  could  not  be  be- 
held of  others  ;  once,  for  God's  own  glory,  which  he  could  not  be- 
hold. No  marvel.  Some  of  the  creatures  are  too  glorious  for  mor- 
tal eyes  ;  how  much  more,  when  God  appears  to  us  in  the  easiest 
manner,  must  his  glory  needs  overcome  us  ! 

Behold  the  difference  betwixt  our  present  and  future  estate : 
then,  the  more  majesty  of  appearance,  the  more  delight :  when  our 
sin  is  quite  gone,  all  our  fear  at  God's  presence  shall  be  turned 
into  joy.  God  appeared  to  Adam  before  his  sin  with  comfort,  but 
in  the  same  form  which  after  his  sin  was  terrible.  And  if  Moses 
cannot,  abide  to  look  upon  God's  glory  when  he  descends  to  us  in 
mercy,  how  shall  wicked  ones  abide  to  see  his  fearful  presence 
when  he  sets  upon  vengeance  !  In  this  fire  he  flamed  and  con- 
sumed not,  but  in  his  revenge  our  God  is  a  consuming  fire. 

First,  Moses  hides  himself  in  fear,  now  in  modesty  :  Who  am  I? 
None  in  all  Egypt  or  Midian  was  comparably  fit  for  this  embas- 
sage. Which  of  the  Israelites  had  been  brought  up  a  courtier,  a 
scholar,  an  Israelite  by  blood,  by  education  an  Egyptian,  learned, 
wise,  valiant,  experienced  ?  Yet,  Who  am  J  ?  The  more  fit  any 
man  is  for  whatsoever  vocation,  the  less  he  thinks  himself.  For- 
wardness argues  insufficiency.  The  unworthy  thinks  still,  "  Who 
am  I  not  ?"  Modest  beginnings  give  hopeful  proceedings,  and 
happy  endings.  Once  before,  Moses  had  taken  upon  h  m  and 
laid  about  him  ;  hoping  then  they  would  have  known,  that  by  his 
hand  God  meant  to  deliver  Israel ;  but  now,  when  it  comes  to  the 
point,  Who  am  1?  God's  best  servants  are  not  ever  in  an  equal 
disposition  to  good  duties.    If  we  find  differences  in  ourselves 


OF  THE  PLAGUES  OF  EGYPT.  71 

sometimes,  it  argues  that  grace  is  not  our  own.  It  is  our  frailty, 
that  those  services  which  we  are  forward  to,  aloof  off ;  we  shrink 
at  near  hand,  and  fearfully  misgive.  How  many  of  us  can  bid  de- 
fiances to  death,  and  suggest  answers  to  absent  temptations,  which 
when  they  come  home  to  us,  we  fly  off,  and  change  our  note,  an4 
instead  of  action,  expostulate  !  Exod.  Hi. 


OF  THE  PLAGUES  OF  EGYPT. 

It  is  too  much  honour  for  flesh  and  blood,  to  receive  a  message 
from  heaven  ;  yet  here  God  sends  a  message  to  man,  and  is  re- 
pulsed. Well  may  God  ask,  Who  is  man,  that  I  should  regard 
him  ?  but  for  man  to  ask,  Who  is  the  Lord  ?  is  a  proud  and  bold 
blasphemy. 

Thus  wild  is  nature  at  the  first ;  but  ere  God  hath  done  with 
Pharaoh,  he  will  be  known  of  him ;  he  will  make  himself  known 
by  him,  to  all  the  world.  God  might  have  swept  him  away  sud- 
denly. 

How  unworthy  is  he  of  life,  who,  with  the  same  breath  that  he 
receives,  denies  the  Giver  of  it !  But  he  would  have  him  con- 
vinced, ere  he  were  punished ;  first  therefore,  he  works  miracles 
before  him,  then  upon  him. 

Pharaoh  was  now,  from  a  staff  of  protection  and  sustentation  to 
God's  people,  turned  to  a  serpent  that  stung  them  to  death  :  God 
shews  himself  iti  this  real  emblem  ;  doing  that  suddenly  before  him, 
which  Satan  had  wrought  to  him  by  leisure  ;  and  now  when  he 
crawls,  and  winds,  and  hisses,  threatening  peril  to  Israel,  he  shews 
him  how  in  an  instant  he  can  turn  him  into  a  senseless  stick,  and 
make  him  if  not  useful,  yet  fearless. 

The  same  God,  which  wrought  this,  gives  Satan  leave  to  imitate 
it :  the  first  plague,  that  he  meant  to  inflict  upon  Pharaoh,  is  delu- 
sion. God  can  be  content  the  devil  should  win  himself  credit, 
where  he  means  to  judge,  and  holds  the  honour  of  a  miracle  well 
lost,  to  harden  an  enemy  ;  yet,  to  shew  that  his  miracle  was  of 
power,  the  otuers  of  permission,  Moses's  serpent  devours  theirs. 
How  easily  might  the  Egyptians  have  thought,  that  he,  which  caused 
their  serpent  not  to  be,  could  have  kept  it  from  being  ;  and  that 
they,  which  could  not  keep  his  serpent  from  devouring,  could  not 
secure  them  from  being  consumed !  but  wise  thoughts  enter  not 
into  those  that  must  perish. 

All  God's  judgments  stand  ready,  and  wait  but  till  they  be 
called  for.  They  need  hut  a  watch-word  to  be  given  them.  No 
sooner  is  the  rod  lift  up,  but  they  are  gone  forth  into  the  world  ; 
presently,  the  waters  run  into  blood,  the  frogs  and  lice  crawl  about, 
and  all  the  other  troops  of  God  come  rushing  in  upon  his  adversa- 
ries. 

All  creatures  conspire  to  revenge  the  injuries  of  God.  If 
the  Egyptians  look  upward,  there  they  have  thunder,  lightning, 
hail,  tempests  ;  one,  while  no  light  at  all,  another  while  such  fear- 


72  CONTEMPLATION'S. 

ful  flashes  as  had  more  terror  than  darkness :  if  they  look  under 
them,  there  they  see  their  waters  changed  into  blood,  their  earth 
swarming  with  frogs  and  grasshoppers:  if  about  them,  one  while 
the  flies  fill  their  eyes  and  ears  ;  another  while,  they  see  their  fruits 
deployed,  their  cattle  dying,  their  children  dead:  if,  lastly,  they 
look  upon  themselves,  they  see  themselves  loathsome  with  lice, 
painl'ul  and  deformed  with  scabs,  biles,  and  blotches. 

First,  God  begins  his  judgments  with  waters.  As  the  river  of 
Nilus  was  to  Egypt,  instead  of  heaven,  to  moisten  and  fatten  the 
earth  ;  so  their  confidence  was  more  in  it  than  in  heaven.  Men  are 
sure  to  be  punished  most  and  soonest,  in  that  which  they  make  a 
co-rival  with  God. 

They  had  before  defiled  the  river  with  the  blood  of  innocents  ; 
and  now  it  appears  to  them,  in  his  own  colour.  The  waters  will 
no  longer  keep  their  counsel.  Never  any  man  delighted  in  blood, 
which  had  not  enough  of  it  ere  his  end  :  they  shed  but  some  few 
streams,  and  now  behold,  whole  rivers  of  blood. 

Neither  was  this  more  a  monument  of  their  slaughter  past,  than 
an  image  of  their  future  destruction.  They  were  afterward  over- 
whelmed in  the  Red  Sea,  and  now  beforehand  they  see  the  rivers 
red  with  blood. 

How  dependant  and  servile  is  the  life  of  man,  that  cannot  either 
want  one  element,  or  endure  it  corrupted  •  It  is  hard  to  sav, 
whether  there  were  more  horror  or  annoyance  in  this  plague. 
They  complain  of  thirst,  and  yet  doubt  whether  they  should  die, 
or  quench  it  with  blood. 

Their  fish,  the  chief  part  of  their  sustenance,  dies  with  infec- 
tion, and  infecteth  more  by  being  dead.  The  stench  of  both  is 
ready  to  poison  the  inhabitants  •,  yet  Pharaoh's  curiositv  carries 
him  away  quite  from  the  sense  of  the  judgment :  he  would  rather 
send  for  his  magicians  to  work  feats,  than  to  humble  himself  under 
God  for  the  removal  of  this  plague  ;  and  God  plagues  his  curiosity 
with  deceit :  those  whom  he  trusts  shall  undo  him  with  prevailing  ; 
the  glory  of  a  second  miracle  shall  be  obscured  by  a  false  imita- 
tion, for  a  greater  glory  to  God  in  the  sequel. 

The  rod  is  lift  up  again  :  behold,  that  Nilus,  which  they  had  be- 
fore adored,  was  never  so  beneficial  as  it  is  now  troublesome  ;  yield- 
ing them  not  only  a  dead,  but  a  living  annoyance :  it  never  did  so 
store  them  with  fish,  as  now  it  plagues  them  with  frogs;  whatever 
any  man  makes  his  god,  besides  the  true  one,  shall  be  once  his  tor- 
menter.  Those  loathsome  creatures  leave  their  own  element,  to 
punish  them  which  rebelliously  detain  Israel  from  their  own.  No 
bed,  no  table,  can  be  free  from  them  :  their  dainty  ladies  cannot 
keep  them  out  of  their  bosoms  :  neither  can  the  Egyptians  sooner 
open  their  mouths,  than  they  are  ready  to  creep  into  their  throats; 
as  if  they  would  tell  them,  that  they  came  on  purpose  to  revenge 
the  wrongs  of  their  Maker.  * 

Yet  even  this  wonder  also  is  Satan  allowed  to  imitate.  Who  can 
marvel,  to  see  the  best  virtues  counterfeited  by  wicked  men,  when 
he  sees  the  devil  emulating  the  miraculous  power  of  God  ?  The 


OF  THE  PLAGUES  OF  EGYPT.  73 

feats  that  Satan  plays  may  harden,  but  cannot  benefit.  He,  that 
hath  leave  to  bring  frogs,  hath  neither  leave  nor  power  to  take 
them  away,  nor  to  take  away  the  stench  from  them.  To  bring 
them,  was  but  to  add  to  the  judgment ;  to  remove  them,  was  an 
act  of  mercy.  -God  doth  commonly  use  Satan  in  executing  of 
judgment,  never  in  the  works  of  mercy  to  men. 

Yet  even  by  thus  much  is  Pharaoh  hardened,  and  the  sorcerers 
grown  insolent.  When  the  devil  and  his  agents  are  in  the  height 
of  their  pride,  God  shames  them  in  a  trifle. 

The  rod  is  lift  up :  the  very  dust  receives  life  :  lice  abound  every- 
where, and  make  no  difference  betwixt  beggars  and  princes. 

Though  Pharaoh  and  his  courtiers  abhorred  to  see  themselves 
lousy  ;  yet  thev  hoped  this  miracle  would  be  more  easily  imitable  : 
but  now  the  greater  possibility,  the  greater  foil.  How  are  the  great 
wonder-mongers  of  Egypt  abashed,  that  they  can  neither  make  lice 
of  their  own,  nor  deliver  themselves  from  the  lice  that  are  made  ! 
Those,  that  could  make  serpents  and  frogs,  could  not  either  make  or 
kill  lice  ;  to  shew  them,  that  those  frogs  and  serpents  were  not  their 
own  workmanship.  Now  Pharaoh  must  needs  see  how  impotent  a 
devil  he  served,  that  could  not  make  that  vermin  which  every  day 
rises  voluntarily  out  of  corruption.  Jannes  and  Jambrcs  cannot  now 
make  those  lice,  so  much  as  by  delusion,  which,  at  another  time, 
they  cannot  chuse  but  produce  unknowing,  and  which  now  they 
cannot  avoid.  That  spirit,  which  is  powerful  to  execute  the  greatest 
things  when  he  is  bidden,  is  unable  to  do  the  least  when  he  is 
restrained. 

Now  these  co-rivals  of  Moses  can  say,  This  is  the  finger  of  God. 
Ye  foolish  enchanters,  was  God's  finger  in  the  lice,  not  in  the 
frogs,  not  in  the  blood,  not  in  the  serpent  ?  And  why  was  it  rather 
in  the  less,  than  in  the  greater  ?  Because  ye  did  imitate  the  other, 
not  these.  As  if  the  same  finger  of  God  had  not  been  before  in 
your  imitation,  which  was  now  in  your  restraint :  as  if  ye  could 
have  failed  in  these,  if  ye  had  not  been  only  permitted  the  other. 
While  wicked  minds  have  their  full  scope,  they  never  look  up 
above  themselves ;  but  when  once  God  crosses  them  in  their  pro- 
ceedings, their  want  of  success  teaches  them  to  give  God  his  own. 

All  these  plagues  perhaps  had  more  horror  than  pain  in  them. 
The  frogs  creep  upon  their  clothes,  the  lice  upon  their  skins ;  but 
those  stinging  hornets  which  succeed  them,  shall  wound  and  kill. 
The  water  was  annoyed  with  the  first  plague,  the  earth  with  the 
second  and  third  ;  this  fourth  fills  the  air,  and,  besides  corruption, 
brings  smart. 

And,  that  they  may  see  this  winged  arm)'  comes  from  an  angry 
God,  not  either  from  nature  or  chance,  even  the  very  flies  shall 
make  a  difference  betwixt  Egypt  and  Goshen.  He,  who  gave 
them  their  being,  sets  them  their  stint.  They  can  no  more  sting 
an  Israelite,  than  favour  an  Egyptian.  The  very  wings  of  flies  are 
directed  by  a  providence,  and  do  acknowledge  their  limits. 

Now  Pharaoh  finds  how  impossible  it  is  for  him  to  jtand  out  with 
God,  since  all  his  power  cannot  rescue  him  from  lice  and  flies.  And 


1* 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


now  his  heart  begins  to  thaw  a  little:  Go,  do  sacrifice  to  your  God 
tn  this  land :  or,  since  that  will  not  be  accepted,  Go  into  the  wil- 
derness, but  not  far. 

But  how  soovi  it  knits  again  !  Good  thoughts  make  but  a  tho- 
roughfare of  carnal  hearts ;  they  can  never  settle  there :  yea,  his 
very  misgiving  hardens  him  the  more  ;  that  now,  neither  the  mur- 
rain of  his  cattle,  nor  the  blotches  of  his  servants,  can  stir  him  a 
whit,  He  saw  his  cattle  struck  dead  with  a  sudden  contagion  ;  he 
saw  his  sorcerers,  after  their  contestation  with  God's  messengers, 
struck  witli  a  scab  in  their  very  faces ;  and  yet  his  heart  is  not 
struck.  Who  would  think  it  possible,  that  any  soul  could  be  se- 
cure, in  the  midst  of  such  variety  and  frequency  of  judgments  ? 
These  very  plagues  have  not  more  wonder  in  them,  than  their 
success  hath.  To  what  a  height  of  obduration  will  sin  lead  a 
man,  and,  of  all  sins,  incredulity! 

Amidst  ail  these  storms  Pharaoh  sleepeth ;  till  the  voice  of  God's 
mighty  thunders,  and  hail  mixed  with  fire,  roused  him  up  a  little. 
Now,  as  betwixt  sleeping  and  waking,  he  starts  up  and  says,  God 
is  righteous,  I  am  wicked ;  Moses,  pray  for  14s  ;  and  presently  lays 
down  his  head  again.  God  hath  no  sooner  done  thundering,  than 
he  hath  done  fearing. 

All  this  while,  you  never  find  him  careful  to  prevent  any  one 
evil,  but  desirous  still  to  shift  it  off,  when  he  feels  it ;  never  holds 
constant  to  any  good  motion ;  never  prays  for  himself,  but  care- 
lessly wills  Moses  and  Aaron  to  pray  for  him ;  never  yields  God 
his  whole  demand,  but  higgleth  and  dodgeth,  like  some  hard  chap- 
man, that  would  get  a  release  with  the  cheapest :  first,  They  shall 
not  go  ;  then,  Go  and  sacrifice,  but  in  Egypt ;  next,  Go  sacrifice 
in  the  wilderness,  but  not  far  off;  after,  Go  ye  that  are  men  ;  then, 
Go  you  and  your  children  only ;  at  last,  Go  all  save  yaur  sheep 
and  cattle.  Wheresoever  mere  nature  is,  she  is  still  improvident 
of  future  good,  sensible  of  present  evil,  inconstant  in  good  pur- 
poses ;  unable,  through  unacquaintance,  and  unwilling  to  speak 
lor  herself;  niggardly  in  her  grants,  and  uncheerful. 

The  plague  of  the  grasshoppers  startled  him  a  little,  and  the. 
more  through  the  importunity  of  his  servants :  for,  when  he  con- 
sidered the  fish  destroyed  with  the  first  blow  ;  the  cattle,  with  the 
fifth  ;  the  corn,  with  the  seventh ;  the  fruit  and  leaves,  with  this 
eighth  ;  and  nothing  now  left  him,  but  a  bare  fruitless  earth  to  live 
upon,  and  that,  covered  over  with  locusts ;  necessity  drove  him  to 
relent  for  an  advantage. :  Forgive  me  this  once ;  take  from  me  this, 
death  only. 

But,  as  constrained  repentance  is  ever  short  and  unsound,  the 
west  wind,  together  with  the  grasshoppers,  blows  away  his  re- 
morse ;  and  now  is  he  ready  for  another  judgment.  As  the  grass- 
hoppers took  away  the  sight  of  the  earth  from  him,  so  now  a  gross 
darkness  takes  away  the  sight  of  heaven  too  :  other  darknesses 
were  but  privative,  this  was  real  and  sensible. 

The  Egyptians  thought  this  n;ght  long;  how  could  they  chusa 
when  it  was  six  in  one !  and  so  much  the  more,  for  that  no  man 


OF  THE  PLAGUES  OF  EGYPT.  75 

could  rise  to  talk  with  other,  but  was  necessarily  confined  to  his 
own  thoughts :  one  thinks  the  fault  in  his  own  eyes,  which  he  rubs 
oftentimes  in  vain  :  others  think,  that  the  sun  is  lost  out  of  the  fir- 
mament, and  is  now  withdrawn  for  ever :  others,  that  all  things 
are  returning  to  their  first  confusion :  all  think  themselves  misera- 
ble, past  remedy,  and  wish,  whatsoever  had  befallen  them,  that 
they  might  have  had  but  light  enough  to  see  themselves  die. 

Now  Pharaoh  proves  like  to  some  beasts  that  grow  mad  with 
baiting :  grace  often  resisted  turns  to  desperateness :  Get  thee 
from  me ;  look  thou  see  my  face  no  more ;  whensoever  thou  contest 
in  my  sight,  thou  shalt  die.  As  if  Moses  could  not  plague  him  as 
well  in  absence :  as  if  he,  that  could  not  take  away  the  lice,  flies, 
frogs,  grasshoppers,  could  at  his  pleasure  take  away  the  life  of 
Moses,  that  procured  them.  What  is  this,  but  to  run  upon  the, 
judgments,  and  run  away  from  the  remedies  ?  Evermore,  when 
God's  messengers  are  abandoned,  destruction  is  near. 

Moses  will  see  him  no  more,  till  he  see  him  dead  upon  the  sands ; 
but  God  will  now  visit  him  more  than  ever.  The  fearfullest 
plagues  God  still  reserves  for  the  upshot :  all  the  former  do  but 
make  way  for  the  last.  Pharaoh  may  exclude  Moses  and  Aaron, 
but  God's  angel  he  cannot  exclude :  insensible  messengers  are 
used,  when  the  visible  are  debarred. 

Now  God  begins  to  call  for  the  blood  they  owed  him :  in  one 
night,  every  house  hatli  a  carcase  in  it ;  and,  which  is  more 
grievous,  of  their  first-born  ;  and,  which  is  yet  more  fearful,  in  an 
instant,  No  man  could  comfort  other  :  every  man  was  too  full  of 
his  own  sorrow ;  helping  rather  to  make  the  noise  of  the  lamenta- 
tion more  doleful  and  astonishing. 

How  soon  hath  God  changed  the  note  of  this  tyrannical  people  ! 
Egypt  was  never  so  stubborn  in  denying  passage  to  Israel,  as  now 
importunate  to  entreat  it :  Pharaoh  did  not  more  force  them  to  stay 
before,  than  now  to  depart :  whom  lately  they  would  not  permit, 
now  t S ley  hire  to  go.  Their  rich  jewels  of  silver  and  gold  were  not 
too  dear  for  them,  whom  they  hated  ;  how  much  rather  would  they 
to  send  them  away  wealthy,  than  to  have  them  stay  to'be  their  ex- 
ecutors !  Their  Jove  to  themselves  obtained  of  them  the  enriching 
of  their  enemies  ;  and  now  they  are  glad  to  pay  them  well,  for 
their  old  work,  and  their  present  journey :  God's  people  had 
stayed  like  slaves,  they  go  away  like  conquerors,  with  the  spoil  of 
those  that  hated  them ;  armed  for  security,  and  wealthy  for  main- 
tenance. 

Old  Jacob's  seventy  souls  which  he  brought  down  into  Egypt, 
in  spite  of  their  bondage  and  bloodshe  I,  go  forth  six  hundred 
thousand  men  besides  children.  The  world  is  well  mended  with 
Israel,  since  he  went  with  his  staff  and  his  scrip  over  Jordan. 
Tyranny  is  too  weak,  where  God  bids,  Increase  and  multiply,  I 
know  not  where  else  the  good  herb  overgrows  the  weeds ;  the 
Church  outstrips  the  world.  I  fear  if  they  had  lived  in  ease  and 
delicacy,  they  had  not  been  so  strong,  so  numerous.  Never  any 
true  Israelite  lost  by  his  affliction. 


76  CONTEMPLATION'S. 

Not  only  for  the  action,  but  the  time,  Pharaoh's  choice  meets 
with  God's :  that  very  ni^ht,  when  the  four  hundred  and  thirty  years 
were  expired,  Israel  is  gone:  Pharaoh  neither  can,  nor  can  will, 
to  keep  them  any  longer;  yet  in  this,  not  fulfilling  God's  will, 
but  his  own.  How  sweetly  doth  God  dispose  of  ail  second  causes, 
that,  while  they  do  their  own  will,  they  do  his ! 

The  Israelites  are  equally  glad  of  this  haste.  Who  would  not 
be  ready  to  go,  yea  to  rly ,  out  of  bondage  ?  They  have  what  they 
wished  :  it  was  no  staying  for  a  second  invitation.  The  loss  of  an 
opportunity  is  many  times  irrecqverable  :  the  love  of  their  liberty- 
made  the  burden  of  their  dough  light.  Who  knew,  whether  the 
variable  mind  of  Pharaoh  mioht  return  to  a  denial,  and,  after  all 
bis  stubbornness,  repent  of  his  obedience  ?  It  is  foolish  to  ha- 
zard, where  there  is  certainty  of  good  offers,  and  uncertainty  of 
continuance.  They  go  therefore  ;  and  the  same  God,  that  fetched 
them  out,  is  hoth  their  guide  and  protector. 

How  carefully  doth  he  chuse  their  way  !  not  the  nearer,  but 
the  safer.  He  would  not  have  his  people  so  suddenly  change  from 
bondage  to  war.  It  is  the  wondrous  mercy  of  God,  that  he  hath 
respect,  as  to  his  own  glory,  so  to  our  infirmities.  He  intends 
them  wars  hereafter,  but  after  some  longer  breathing,  and  more 
preparation,  his  goodness  so  orders  all,  that  evils  are  not  ready  for 
us,  till  we  be  ready  for  them. 

And  as  he  chooses,  so  he  guides  their  way.  That  they  might 
not  err  in  that  sandy  and  untracked  wilderness,  himself  goes  before 
them  :  who  could  but  follow  cheerfully,  when  he  sees  God  lead 
him  ?  He,  that  led  the  wise  men  by  a  star,  leads  Israel  by  a  cloud  : 
that  was  a  higher  obiect,  therefore  he  gives  them  a  higher  and 
more  heavenly  conduct ;  this  was  more  earthly,  therefore  he  con- 
tents himself  with  a  lower  representation  of  his  presence ;  a  pillar 
of  cloud  and  fire  :  a  pillar,  for  firmness  ;  of  cloud  and  fire,  for 
visibility  and  use.  The  greater  light  extinguishes  the  less  ;  there- 
fore in  the  day  he  shews  them  not  fire,  but  a  cloud :  in  the  night 
nothing  is  seen  without  light ;  therefore  he  shews  them  not  the 
cloud,  but  fire  :  the  cloud  shekel's  them  from  heat  by  day  ;  the  fire 
digests  the  rawness  of  the  night.  The  same  God.  is  both  a  cloud 
and  a  fire  to  his  children  ;  ever  putting  himself  into  those  forms 
of  gracious  respects,  that  may  best  fit  their  necessities. 

As  good  motions  are  long  ere  they  can  enter  into  hard  hearts,  so 
they  seldom  continue  long.  No  sooner  were  the  backs  of  Israel 
turned  to  depart,  than  Pharaoh's  heart  and  face  is  turned  after 
them,  to  fetch  them  back  again.  It  vexes  him  to  see  so  great  a 
command,  so  much  wealth,  cast  away  in  one  night ;  which  now  he 
resolves  to  redeem,  though  with  more  plagues.  The  same  ambi- 
tion and  covetousness  that  made  him  wear  out  so  many  judgments, 
will  not  leave  him  till  it  have  wrought  out  his  full  destruction. 

All  God's  vengeances  have  their  end  ;  the  final  perdition  of  his 
enemies,  which  they  cannot  rest  till  they  have  attained :  Pharaoh 
therefore  and  his  Egyptians  will  needs  go  fetch  their  bane. 

They  well  knew,  that  Israel  was  fitter  to  serve  than  to  fight ; 


OF  THE  PLAGUES  OF  EGYPT.  77 

weary  with  their  servitude  ;  not  trained  up  to  war  ;  not  furnished 
with  provision  for  a  field  :  themselves,  captains  and  soldiers  by- 
profession  ;  furnished  with  horses,  and  chariots  of  war.  They 
gave  themselves  therefore  the  victory  beforehand,  and  Israel  either 
tor  spoil  or  bondage. 

Yea,  the  weak  Israelites  gave  up  themselves  for  dead,  and  al- 
ready are  talking  of  their  graves.  They  see  the  sea  before  them ; 
behind  them,  the  Egyptians :  they  know  not  whether  is  more  mer- 
ciless, and  are  stricken  with  the  fear  of  both.  O  God,  howcouldst 
thou  forbear  so  distrustful  a  people  !  they  had  seen  all  thy  won- 
ders in  Egypt  and  in  their  Goshen  ;  they  saw  even  now  thy  pil- 
lar before  them,  and  yet  they  did  more  fear  Egypt  than  believe 
thee.  Thy  patience  is  no  less  miracle  than  thy  deliverance.  But 
instead  of  removing  from  them,  the  cloudy  pillar  removes  behind 
them,  and  stands  betwixt  the  Israelites  and  Egyptians ;  as  if  God 
would  have  said,  "  They  shall  first  overcome  me,  O  Israel,  ere 
they  touch  thee."  Wonder  did  now  justly  strive  with  fear  in  the 
Israelites,  when  they  saw  the  cloud  remove  behind  them,  and  the 
sea  remove  before  them.  They  were  not  used  to  such  bulwarks. 
God  stood  behind  them  in  the  cloud ;  the  sea  reared  them  up  walls 
on  both  sides  them.  That,  which  they  feared  would  be  their  de- 
struction, protected  them:  how  easily  can  God  make  the  cruellest 
of  his  creatures  both  our  friends  and  patrons ! 

Yet  here  was  faith  mixed  with  unbelief.  He  was  a  bold  Israelite 
that  set  the  first  foot  into  the  channel  of  the  sea ;  and  every  step, 
that  they  set  in  that  moist  way,  was  a  new  exercise  of  their  faith. 

Pharaoh  sees  all  this,  and  wonders ;  yet  hath  not  the  wit  nor 
grace  to  think,  though  the  pillar  tells  him  so  much,  that  God 
made  a  difference  betwixt  him  and  Israel.  He  is  offended  with 
the  sea,  for  giving  way  to  his  enemies,  and  yet  sees  not  why  he 
may  not  trust  it  as  well  as  the)'.  He  might  well  have  thought, 
that  he  which  gave  light  in  Goshen,  when  there  was  darkness  in 
Egypt,  could  as  well  distinguish  in  the  sea;  but  he  cannot  now 
either  consider,  or  fear :  it  is  his  time  to  perish.  God  makes  him 
fair  way,  and  lets  him  run  smoothly  on,  till  he  be  come  to  the 
midst  of  the  sea ;  not  one  wave  may  rise  up  against  him,  to  wet 
so  much  as  the  hoof  of  his  horse.  Extraordinary  favours  to  wicked 
men,  are  the  forerunners  of  their  ruin. 

Now  when  God  sees  the  Egyptians  too  far  to  return,  he  finds 
time  to  strike  them  with  their  last  terror  :  they  know  not  why,  but 
they  would  return  too  late.  Those  chariots,  in  which  they  trusted, 
now  fail  them  ;  as  having  done  service  enough,  to  carry  them  into 
perdition.  God  pursues  them,  and  they  cannot  fly  from  him. 
Wicked  men  make  equal  haste,  both  to  sin,  and  from  judgment ; 
hut  they  shall  Owe  day  find,  that  it  is  not  more  easy  to  run  into 
sin,  than  impossible  to  run  away  from  judgment :  the  sea  will  shew 
them,  that  it  regards  the  rod  of  Moses,  not  the  sceptre  of  Pha- 
raoh ;  and  now,  as  glad  to  have  got  the  enemies  of  God  at  such 
advantage,  shuts  her  mouth  upon  them,  and  swallows  them  up  in 


78 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


her  waves  ;  and,  after  she  had  made  sport  with  them  awhile,  casts 
them  upon  her  sand,  for  a  spectacle  of  triumph  to  their  adver- 
saries. 

What  a  sight  was  this  to  the  Israelites,  when  they  were  now  safe 
on  the  shore,  to  see  their  enemies  come  floating  after  them  upon 
the  billows ;  and  to  find  among  the  carcasses  upon  the  sands, 
their  known  oppressors,  which  now  they  can  tread  upon  with  in- 
sult !  they  did  not  cry  more  loud  before,  than  now  they  sing. 
Not  their  faith,  but  their  sense,  teaches  them  now  to  magnify  that 
God  after  their  deliverance,  whom  they  hardly  trusted  for  their 
deliverance.  Exod,  vii,  viii,  ix,  x,  xi.  xii. 


CONTEMPLATIONS 


UPON  THE 


PRINCIPAL  PASSAGES 

IN  THE 


HOLY  STORY. 


TO  THE  HIGH  AND  MIGHTY  PRINCE, 

CHARLES,  PRINCE  OF  GREAT  BRITAIN. 


MOST  EXCELLENT  PRINCE  ! 

-According  to  the  true  duty  of  a  servant,  I  intended  all 
my  Contemplations  to  your  now  glorious  Brother,  of 
sweet  and  sorrowful  memory.  The  first  part  whereof,  as 
it  was  the  last  book  that  ever  was  dedicated  to  that  dear 
and  immortal  name  of  his;  so  it  was  the  last,  that  was 
turned  over  by  his  gracious  hand. 

Now,  since  it  pleased  the  God  of  spirits  to  call  him 
from  these  poor  Contemplations  of  ours,  to  the  blessed 
contemplation  of  himself,  to  see  him  as  He  is,  to  see  as  he 
is  seen ;  to  whom  is  this  sequel  of  my  labours  due,  but  to 
your  Highness,  the  heir  of  his  honour  and  virtues  ?  Every 
year  of  my  short  pilgrimage  is  like  to  add  something  to 
this  Work;  which,  in  regard  of  the  subject,  is  scarce  finite: 
The  whole  doth  not  only  crave  your  Highness's  patronage, 
but  promises  to  requite  your  princely  acceptation,  with 
many  sacred  examples  and  rules,  both  for  piety  and  wis- 
dom ;  towards  the  decking  up  of  this  flourishing  spring  of 
your  age ;  in  the  hopes  whereof,  not  only  we  live,  but  he 
that  is  dead,  lives  still  in  you :  and  if  any  piece  of  these 
endeavours  come  short  of  my  desires,  I  shall  supply  the 
rest  with  my  prayers ;  which  shall  never  be  wanting  to  the 
God  of  Princes,  that  your  happy  proceedings  may  make 
glad  the  Church  of  God,  and  yourself  in  either  world 
glorious. 

Your  Highness's  in  all  humble  devotion, 
and  faithful  observance, 

JOSEPH  HALL. 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 

BOOK  V. 


TO  THE  RIGHT  HONOURABLE 

HENRY,  EARL  OF  HUNTINGDON, 

LORD  HASTINGS,  BOTREAUX,  MOLINES  AND  MOILES, 
HIS  MAJESTY'S  LIEUTENANT  IN  THE  COUNTY  OF  LEICESTER, 
A  BOUNTIFUL  FAVOURER  OF  ALL  GOOD  LEARNING, 
A  NOBLE  PRECEDENT  OF  VIRTUE, 
THE  FIRST  PATRON  OF  MY  POOR  STUDIES, 

/.  H. 

DEDICATES  THIS  PIECE  OF  HIS  LABOURS,  AND  WISHETH  ALL 
HONOUR  AND  HAPPINESS. 


THE  WATERS  OF  MARAH. 

Israel  was  not  more  loth  to  come  to  the  Red  Sea,  than  to  part 
from  it.  How  soon  can  God  turn  the  horror  of  any  evil  into  plea- 
sure !  One  shore  resounded  with  shrieks  of  fear ;  the  other,  with 
timbrels  and  dances,  and  songs  of  deliverance.  Every  main  afflic- 
tion is  our  Red  Sea,  which,  while  it  threats  to  swallow,  preserves 
us.  At  last,  our  songs  shall  be  louder  than  our  cries.  The  Isra- 
elitish  dames,  when  they  saw  their  danger,  thought  they  might 
have  left  their  timbrels  behind  them ;  how  unprofitable  a  burden 
seemed  those  instruments  of  music  !  yet  now  they  live  to  renew 
that  forgotten  minstrelsy  and  dancing,  which  their  bondage  had  so 
long  discontinued  :  and  well  might -those  feet  dance  upon  the  shore, 
which  had  walked  through  the  sea.  The  land  of  Goshen  was  not 
so  bountiful  to  them,  as  these  waters.  That  afforded  them  a  ser- 
•\  ile  life  :  this  gave  them  at  once  freedom,  victory,  riches  ;  bestow- 
ing upon  them  the  remainder  of  that  wealth,  which  the  Egyptians 
had  but  lent.  It  was  a  pleasure  to  see  the  floating  carcasses  of 
their  adversaries  ;  and  every  day  offers  them  new  booties  :  it  is  no 
marvel  then  if  their  hearts  were  tied  to  these  banks.  If  we  find, 
but  a  little  pleasure  in  our  life,  we  are  ready  to  dote  upon  it. 
Every  small  contentment  glues  our  affections  to  that  we  like  :  and 
if  here  our  imperfect  delights  hold  us  so  fast,  that  we  would  not 
be  loosed  ;  how  forcible  shall  those  infinite  joys  be  above,  when 
our  souls  are  once  possessed  of  them  ! 
vol.  i.  c 


82  CONTEMPLATION'S. 

\  et  if  the  place  had  pleased  them  more,  it  is  no  marvel  thev 
were  willing  to  fellow  Moses ;  that  they  durst  follow  him  in  the 
wilderness,  whom  they  followed  through  the  sea :  it  is  a  great  con- 
firmation to  any  people,  when  they  have  seen  the  hand  of  God 
with  their  guide.  O  Saviour,  which  hast  undertaken  to  carry  me 
from  the  spiritual  Egypt  to  the  Land  of  Promise ;  how  faithful, 
how  powerful,  have  I  found  thee  !  How  fearlessly  should  I  trust 
thee  !  How  cheerfully  should  I  follow  thee  through  contempt, 
poverty,  death  itself!  Master,  if  it  be  thou,  bid  us  come  unto 
thee. 

Immediately  before,  they  had  complained  of  too  much  water ; 
now  they  go  three  days  without.  Thus  God  meant  to  punish  their 
infidelity,  with  the  defect  of  that,  whose  abundance  made  them  to 
distrust.  Before,  they  saw  all  water,  no  laud  ;  now  all  dry  and 
dusty  land,  and  no  water.  Extremities  are  the  best  trials  of  men  ; 
as  in  hodies,  those  that  can  bear  sudden  changes  of  heats  and  cold 
without  complaint,  are  the  strongest.  So  much  as  an  evil  touches 
upon  the  mean,  so  much  help  it  yields  towards  patience ;  every 
degree  of  sorrow  is  a  preparation  of  the  next ;  but  when  we  pass 
to  extremes  without  the  mean,  we  want  the  benefit  of  recollection, 
and  must  trust  to  our  present  strength.  To  come  from  all  things 
to  nothing,  is  not  a  descent  but  a  downfall ;  and  it  is  a  rare  strength 
and  constancy,  not  to  be  maimed  at  least.  These  headlong  evils, 
as  they  are  the  sorest,  so  they  must  be  most  provided  for ;  as,  on 
the  contrary,  a  sudden  advancement  from  a  low  condition  to  the 
height  of  honour,  is  most  hard  to  manage.  No  man  can  marvel 
how  that  tyrant  blinded  his  captives,  when  he  hears  that  he  brought 
them  immediately,  out  of  a  dark,  dungeon,  into  rooms  that  were 
made  bright  and  glorious.  We  are  not  worthy  to  know,  for  what 
we  are  reserved  :  no  evil  can  amate  us,  if  we  can  overcome  sudden 
extremities. 

The  long  deferring  of  a  good,  though  tedious,  yet  makes  it  the 
better  when  it  comes.  Well  did  the  Israelites  hope,  that  the  waters 
which  were  so  long  in  finding,  would  be  precious  \\lren  they  were 
found :  yet  behold,  they  are  crossed,  not  only  in  their  desires, 
but  in  their  hopes ;  for  after  three  days  travel,  the  first  fountains 
they  find  arc  bitter  waters.  If  these  wells  had  not  run  pure  gall, 
thev  could  not  have  so  much  complained :  long  thirst  will  make 
bitter  water-  sweet;  yet  such  were  these  springs,  that  the  Israelites 
did  not  so  much  like  their  moisture,  as  abhor  their  relish.  I  see 
the  first  handsel  that  God  gives  them  in  their  voyage  to  the  Land 
of  Promise  ;  thirst  and  bitterness.  Satan  gives  us  pleasant  entrances 
into  his  ways,  and  reserves  the  bitterness  for  the  end :  God  inures 
us  to  our  worst  at  first,  and  sweetens  our  conclusion  with  pleasure. 

The  same  God,  that  would  not  lead  Israel  through  the  Philistines' 
land,  lest  they  should  shrink  at  the  sight  of  war,  now  leads  them 
through  the  wilderness,  and  fears  not  to  try  their  patience  with 
bitter  potions.  If  he  had  not  loved  them,  the  Egyptian  furnace 
or  sword  had  prevented  their  thirst,  or  that  sea  whereof  their  ene- 
mies drunk  dead  ;  and  yet  sec  how  lie  diets  them.  Never  any  have 


THE  WATERS  OF  MARAH. 


S3 


had  so  bitter  draughts  upon  earth,  as  those  he  lores  best :  the  pa- 
late is  an  ill  judge  of  the  favours  of  God.  O  my  Saviour,  thou 
didst  drink  a  more  bitter  cup  from  the  hands  of  thy  father,  than 
that  which  thou  refusedst  of  the  Jews,  or  than  that  which  I  can 
drink  from  thee. 

Before,  they  could  not  drink  if  they  would ;  now,  they  might 
and  would  not.  God  can  give  us  blessings  with  such  a  tang,  that 
the  fruition  shall  not  much  differ  from  the  want :  so,  many  a  one 
hath  riches,  not  grace  to  use  them  ;  many  have  children,  but  such 
as  they  prefer  barrenness.  They  had  said  before,  "  Oh  that  we  had 
any  water  !"  now,  "  Oh  that  we  had  good  wter  !"  It  is  good  so  to 
desire  blessings  from  God,  that  we  may  be  the  better  for  enjoy- 
ing them ;  so  to  crave  water,  that  it  may  not  be  sauced  with  bit- 
terness. 

Now,  these  fond  Israelites,  instead  of  praying,  murmur ;  in- 
stead of  praying  to  God,  murmur  against  Moses.  What  hath  the 
righteous  done?  He  made  not  either  the  wilderness  dry,  or  the 
waters  bitter  ;  yea,  if  his  conduct  were  the  matter,  what  one  foot 
went  he  before  them  without  God  ?  The  pillar  led  them,  and  not 
he  ;  yet  Moses  is  murmured  at.  It  is  the  hard  condition  of  autho- 
rity, that  when  the  multitude  fare  well,  they  applaud  themselves  ; 
when  ill,  they  repine  against  their  governors.  Who  can  hope  to 
be  free,  if  Moses  escape  not  ?  Never  any  prince  so  merited  of  a 
people.  He  thrust  himself  upon  the  pikes  of  Pharaoh's  tyranny. 
He  brought  them  from  a  bondage  worse  than  death.  His  rod  di- 
vided  the  sea,  and  shared  life  to  them,  death  to  their  pursuers. 
Who  would  not  have  thought  these  men  so  obliged  to  Moses,  that 
no  death  could  have  opened  their  mouths  or  raised  their  hands 
against  him  ?  Yet,  now,  the  first  occasion  of  want  makes  them  re- 
bel. No  benefit  can  stop  the  mouth  of  impatience  :  if  our  turn  be 
not  served  for  the  present,  former  favours  are  either  forgotten,  or 
contemned.  No  marvel  if  we  deal  so  with  men,  when  God  receives 
this  measure  from  us.  One  year  of  famine,  one  summer  of  pesti- 
lence, one  moon  of  unseasonable  weather,  makes  us  overlook  all 
the  blessings  of  God  ;  and  more  to  mutiny  at  the  sense  of  our  evil, 
than  to  praise  him  for  our  varieties  of  good  :  whereas  favours  well 
bestowed,  leave  us  both  mindful  and  confident,  and  will  not  suffer 
us  cither  to  forget  or  distrust.  O  God,  I  have  made  an  ill  use  of 
thy  mercies,  if  I  have  not  learned  to  be  content  with  thy  correc- 
tions. 

Moses  was  in  the  same  want  of  water  with  them,  in  the  same 
distaste  of  bitterness,  and  yet  they  say  to  Moses,  What  shall  we 
drink  ?  If  they  had  seen  him  furnished  with  full  vessels  of  sweet 
water,  and  themselves  put  over  to  this  unsavoury  liquor,  envy 
might  have  given  some  colour  to  this  mutiny  ;  but  how  their  lead- 
er's common  misery,  might  have  freed  him  from  their  murmurs. 
They  held  it  one  piece  of  the. late  Egyptian  tyranny,  that  a  task 
was  required  of  them,  which  the  imposers  knew  they  could  not 
perform;  to  make  brick 'when  they  had  no  straw:  yet  they  say  to 
Moses,  What  shall  -we  drink  ?  Themselves  are  grown  exactors, 


84  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

and  are  ready  to  menace  more  than  stripes,  if  they  have  not  their 
ends,  without  means.  Moses  took  not  upon  him  their  provision, 
but  their  deliverance ;  and  yet,  as  if  he  had  been  the  common 
victualler  of  the  camp,  they  ask,  What  shall  we  drink  f  When 
want  meets  with  impatient  minds,  it  transports  them  to  fury ; 
every  thing  disquiets,  and  nothing  satisfies  them. 

What  course  doth  Moses  now  take  ?  That  which  they  should 
have  done,  and  did  not :  they  cried  not  more  fervently  to  him, 
than  he  to  God  :  if  he  were  their  leader,  God  was  his  ;  that  which 
they  unjustly  required  of  him,  he  justly  requires  of  God,  that 
could  do  it ;  he  knew  whence  to  look  for  redress  of  all  complaints  ; 
this  was  not  his  charge,  but  his  Maker's,  which  was  able  to  main- 
tain his  own  act.  I  see  and  acknowledge  the  harbour,  that  we  must 
put  into,  in  all  our  ill  weather.  It  is  to  thee,  O  God,  that  we  must 
pour  out  our  hearts,  which  only  canst  make  our  bitter  waters 
sweet. 

Might  not  that  rod,  which  took  away  the  liquid  nature  from  the 
waters,  and  made  them  solid,  have  also  taken  away  the  bitter  qua- 
lity from  these  waters,  and  made  them  sweet ;  since  to  flow  is  na- 
tural unto  the  water,  to  be  bitter  is  but  accidental  ?  Moses  durst 
hot  employ  his  rod  without  a  precept ;  he  knew  the  power  came 
from  the  commandment.  We  may  not  presume  on  likelihoods, 
but  depend  upon  warrants ;  therefore  Moses  doth  not  lift  up  his 
rod  to  the  waters,  but  his  hand  and  voice  to  God. 

The  hand  of  faith  never  knocked  at  heaven  in  vain  :  no  sooner 
hath  Moses  shewed  his  grievance,  than  God  shews  him  the  iemedy ; 
yet  an  unlikely  one,  that  it  might  be  miraculous.  He,  that  made 
the  waters,  could  have  given  them  any  savour :  how  easy  is  it  for 
him  that  made  the  matter,  to  alter  the  quality  1  It  is  not  more  hard 
to  take  away,  than  to  give.  Who  doubts  but  the  same  hand  that 
created  them,  might  have  immediately  changed  them  ?  Yet  that 
Almighty  Power  will  do  it  by  means.  A  piece  of  wood  must  sweeten 
the  waters  :  what  relation  hath  wood  to  water  ?  or  that  which  hath 
no  savour,  to  the  redress  of  bitterness  ?  Yet  here  is  no  more  pos- 
sibility of  failing,  than  proportion  to  the  success.  All  things  are 
subject  to  the  command  of  their  Maker  ;  he,  that  made  all  of  no- 
thing, can  make  every  thing  of  any  thing  :  there  is  so  much  power 
in  every  creature,  as  he  will  please  to  give.  It  is  the  praise  of 
Omnipotency  to  work  by  improbabilities  ;  Elisha  with  salt,  Moses 
with  wood,  shall  sweeten  the  bitter  waters  :  let  no  man  despise  the 
means,  when  he  knows  the  Author. 

God  taught  his  people  by  actions,  as  well  as  words.  This  en- 
trance shewed  them  their  whole  journey  ;  wherein  the)  should  taste 
of  much  bitterness,  but  at  last,  through  the  mercy  of  God,  sweet- 
ened with  comfort.  Or  did  it  not  represent  themselves  rather, 
in  the  journey  ?  in  the  fountains  of  whose  hearts,  were  the  bitter 
waters  of  manifold  corruptions,  yet  their  unsavoury  souls  are 
sweetened  by  the  graces  of  his  Spirit.  O  blessed  .Saviour,  the 
wood  of  thy  cross,  that  is,  the  application  of  thy  sufferings,  is 
enough  to  sweeten  a  whole  sea  of  bitterness.    1  care  not  how  un- 


THE  QUAILS  AND  MANNA.  85 

pleasant  a  potion  I  find  in  this  wilderness,  if  the  power  and  benefit 
of  thy  precious  death  may  season  it  to  my  soul.         Exoik  xv. 


THE  QUAILS  AND  MANNA. 

The  thirst  of  Israel  is  well  quenched  ;  for,  besides  the  change  of 
the  waters  of  Marah,  their  station  is  changed  to  Elim  ;  where  were 
twelve  fountains,  for  their  twelve  tribes ;  and  now  they  complain 
as  fast  of  hunger. 

Contentation  is  a  rare  blessing ;  because  it  arises,  either  from  a  frui- 
tion of  all  comforts,  or  a  not  desiring  of  some  which  we  have  not. 
Now,  we  are  never  so  bare,  as  not  to  have  some  benefits  ;  never  so 
full,  as  not  to  want  something,  yea  as  not  to  be  full  of  wants.  God 
hath  much  ado  with  us ;  either  we  lack  health,  or  quietness,  or 
children,  or  wealth,  or  company,  or  ourselves  in  all  these.  It  is  a 
wonder  these  men  found  not  fault  with  the  want  of  sauce  to  their 
quails,  or  with  their  old  clothes,  or  their  solitary  way.  Nature  is 
moderate  in  her  desires ;  but  conceit  is  insatiable.  Yet  who  can 
deny  hunger  to  be  a  sore  vexation  ?  Before,  they  were  forbidden 
sour  bread,  but  now.  what  leaven  is  so  sour  as  want?  When 
means  holdout,  it  is  easy  to  be  content.  While  their  dough 
other  cates  lasted,  while  they  were  gathering  of  the  dates  of 
Elim,  we  hear  no  news  of  thein.  Who  cannot  pray  for  his  daily 
bread,  when  he  hath  it  in  his  cupboard  ?  But  when  our  own  provi- 
sion fails  us,  then  not  to  distrust  the  provision  of  God,  is  a  noble 
trial  of  faith.  They  should  have  said;  "  He,  that  stopped  the 
mouth  of  the  sea,  that  it  could  not  devour  us,  can  as  easily  stop 
the  mouth  of  our  stomachs  :  it  was  no  easier  matter  to  kill  the  first- 
born of  Egypt,  by  his  immediate  hand,  than  to  preserve  us:  he, 
that  commanded  the  sea  to  stand  still  and  guard  us,  can  as  easily 
command  the  earth  to  nourish  us :  he,  that  made  the  rod  a  ser- 
pent, can  as  well  make  these  stones  bread  :  he,  that  brought  ar- 
mies of  frogs  and  caterpillars  to  Egypt,  can  as  well  bring  whole 
drifts  of  birds  and  beasts  to  the  desert :  he,  that  sweetened  the 
waters  with  wood,  can  as  well  refresh  our  bodies  with  the  fruits  of 
the  earth.  Why  do  we  not  wait  on  him,  whom  we  have  found  so 
powerful  ?"  Now  they  set  the  mercy  and  love  of  God  upon  a 
wrong  last ;  while  they  measure  it  only  by  their  present  sense. 
Nature  is  jocund  and  cheerful,  while  it  prospereth :  let  God 
withdraw  his  hand  ;  no  sight,  no  trust.  Those  can  praise  him 
with  timbrels  for  a  present  favour,  that  cannot  depend  upon  him  in 
the  want  of  means  for  a  future.  We  all  are  never  weary  of  receiv- 
ing, soon  weary  of  attending. 

The  other  mutiny  was  of  some  few  malecontents,  perhaps  those 
strangers  which  sought  their  own  protection  und.  r  the  wing  of 
Israel;  this,  of  the  whole  troop.  Not  that  none  were  free:  Caleb, 
Joshua,  Moses,  Aaron,  Miriam  were  not  yet  tainted  :  usually  God 
measures  the  state  of  any  church  or  country  by  the  most;  the  greater 
part  carries  both  the  name  and  censure.    Sins  are  so  much  greater, 


86 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


as  they  are  more  universal ;  so  far  is  evil  from  being  extenuated  by 
the  multitude  of  the  guilty,  that  nothing  can  more  aggravate  it. 
With  men,  commonness  may  plead  for  favour  ;  with  God,  it  pleads 
for  judgment.  Many  hands  draw  the  cable  with  more  violence, 
than  few  :  the  leprosy  of  the  whole  body  is  more  loathsome,  than 
that  of  a  part. 

But  what  do  these  mutineers  say,  Oh  that  we  had  died  by 
the  hand  of  the  Lord!  And  whose  hand  was  this,  oh  3-e  fond  Is- 
raelites, if  ye  must  perish  by  famine  ?  God  carried  you  forth  ; 
God  restrained  his  creatures  from  you  :  and  while  von  are  ready  to 
die  thus,  ye  say,  Oh  that  we  had  died  by  the  hand  of  the  Lord  ! 

It  is  the  folly  of  men,  that  in  immediate  judgments  they  can  see 
God's  hand  ;  not  in  those,  whose  second  causes, are  sensible  : 
whereas  God  holds  himself  equally  interested  in  all ;  challenging 
that  there  is  no  evil  in  the  city,  but  from  him.  It  is  but  one  hand, 
and  many  instruments,  that  God  strikes  us  with:  the  water  may 
not  lose  the  name,  though  it  come  by  channels  and  pipes  from  the 
spring.  It  is  our  faithlessness,  that  in  visible  means  we  see  not 
him  that  is  invisible. 

And  when  would  they  have  wished  to  die  r  When  we  sat.  by  the 
flesh-pots  of  Egypt :  alas,  what  good  would  their  flesh-pots  have 
done  them,  in  their  death  ?  If  they  might  sustain  their  life,  yet 
what  could  they  avail  them  in  dying  ?  for  if  the)-  were  unpleasant, 
what  comfort  was  it,  to  see  them  ?  if  pleasant,  what  comfort  to  part 
from  them?  Our  greatest  pleasures  are  but  pains  in  their  loss. 
Every  mind  affects  that  which  is  like  itself.  Carnal  minds  are  for 
the  flesh-pots  of  Egypt,  though  bought  with  servitude ;  spiritual  are 
for  the  presence  of  God,  though  redeemed  with  famine,  and 
would  rather  die  in  God's  presence,  than  live  without  him  in  the 
sight  of  delicate  or  full  dishes. 

They  loved  their  lives  well  enough  :  I  heard  how  they  shrieked, 
when  they  were  in  danger  of  the  Egyptians ;  yet  now  they  say, 
Oh  that  we  had  died  !  not,  "  Oh  that  we  might  live  by  the  flesh- 
pots  ;"  but,  Oh  that  we  had  died!  Although  life  be  naturally 
sweet,  yet  a  little  discontentment  makes  us  weary.  It  is  a  base 
cowardliness,  so  soon  as  ever  we  are  called  from  the  garrison  to  the 
field,  to  think  of  running  away.  Then  is  our  fortitude  worthy  of 
praise,  when  we  can  endure  to  be  miserable. 

But  what !  can  no  flesh-pots  serve  but  those  of  Egypt  ?  I  am 
deceived,  if  that  land  afforded  them  anv  flesh-pots  save  their  own  : 
their  landlords  of  Egypt  held  it  abomination  to  eat  of  their  dishes, 
or  to  kill  that  which  they  did  eat.  In  those  times  then  they  did  eat 
of  their  own  ;  and  why  not  now  ?  They  had  droves  of  cattle  in 
the  wilderness :  why  did  they  not  take  of  them  ?  Surely,  if 
they  would  have  been  as  good  husbands  of  their  cattle,  as  they  were 
of  their  dough,  they  might  have  had  enough  to  eat  without  need 
of  murmuring :  for  if  their  back-burden  of  dough  lasted  for  a 
month ;  their  herds  might  have  served  them  many  years.  All 
grudging  is  odious ;  but  most,  when  our  hands  are  full.  To 
whine  in  the  midst  of  abundance,  is  a  shameful  unthankfulness. 


THE  QUAILS  AND  MANNA.  87 

When  a  man  would  have  looked,  that  the  anger  of  God  should 
have  appeared  in  tire  ;  now  behold,  his  glory  appears  in  a  cloud. 
Oh  the  exceeding  long  suffering  of  God,  that  hears  their  murmur- 
inu-s !  and  as  if  he  had  been  bound  to  content  them,  instead  of 
punishing,  pleases  them  ;  as  a  kind  mother  would  deal  with  a 
crabbed  child,  who  rather  stills  him  with  the  breast,  than  calls  for 
the  rod.  One  would  have  thought,  that  the  sight  of  the  cloud  of 
God  should  have  dispelled  the  cloud  of  their  distrust  ;  and  this 
glory  of  God  should  have  made  them  ashamed  of  themselves, 
and  afraid  of  him:  yet  I  do  not  hear  them  once  say,  "  What 
a  mightv  and  gracious  God  have  we  distrusted !"  Nothing 
will  content  an  impotent  mind,  but  fruition.  When  a  heart 
is  hardened  with  any  passion,  it  will  endure  much,  ere  it  will 
yield  to  relent. 

Their  eyes  saw  the  cloud  ;  their  ears  heard  the  promise,  the  per- 
formance is  speedy  and  answerable.  Needs  must  they  be  con- 
vinced, when  they  saw  God  as  glorious  in  his  work,  as  in  his  presence; 
when  they  saw  his  word  justified  by  his  act.  God  tells  them  afore- 
hand  what  he  will  do,  that  their  expectation  might  stay  their 
hearts.  He  doth  that  which  he  foretold,  that  they  might  learn  to 
trust  him,  ere  he  perform. 

They  desired  meat,  and  receive  quails  ;  they  desired  bread,  and 
have  manna.  If  they  had  had  of  the  coarsest  flesh,  and  of  the 
basest  pulse,  hunger  would  have  made  it  dainty  :  but  now  God  will 
pamper  their  famine  ;  and  gives  them  meat  of  kings,  and  bread  of 
angels.  What  a  world  of  quails  were  but  sufficient  to  serve  six 
hundred  thousand  persons  !  'J  hey  were  all  strong,  all  hungry  ;  nei- 
ther could  they  be  satisfied  with  single  fowls.  What  a  table  hath 
God  prepared  in  the  desert,  for  abundance,  for  delicacy  ! 

Never  prince  was  so  served  in  his  greatest  pomp,  as  these  rebel- 
lious Israelites  in  the  wilderness.  God  loves  to  over-deserve  of 
men  ;  and  to  exceed  not  only  their  sins,  but  their  very  desires,  in. 
mercy.  How  good  shall  we  find  him  to  those  that  please  him, 
since  he  is  so  gracious  to  offenders !  If  the  most  gi'aceless  Israel- 
ites be  fed  with  quails  and  manna ;  oh,  what  goodness  is  that  he 
ha*  li  laid  up  for  them  that  love  him!  As  on  the  contrary,  if  the 
righteous  scarce  be  saved,  where  will  the  sinners  appear  ?  O  God, 
thou  canst,  thou  wilt  make  this  difference.  Howsoever  with  us 
men,  the  most  crabbed  and  stubborn  oftentimes  fare  the  best ;  the 
righteous  Judge  of  the  world  frames  his  remunerations  as  he  finds 
us  ;  and  if  his  mercy  sometimes  provoke  the  worst  to  repentance 
by  his  temporal  favours,  yet  he  ever  reserves  so  much  greater  re- 
ward for  the  righteous,  as  eternity  is  beyond  time,  and  heaven 
above  earth. 

It  was  not  of  any  natural  instinct,  but  from  the  over-nffing 
power  of  their  Creator,  that  these  quails  came  to  the  desert. 
Needs  must  they  come  whom  GOD  brings.  I! is  hand  is  in 
all  the  motions  of  his  meanest  creatures.  Not  only  we,  but  they 
move  in  him.    As  not  many  quails,  so  not  one  sparrow  falls  without 


ss 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


him :  how  much  more  are  the  actions  of  his  best  creature,  man, 
directed  by  his  providence  ! 

How  ashamed  might  these  Israelites  have  been,  to  see  these  creaT 
tnres  so  obedient  to  their  Creator,  as  to  come  and  offer  themselves 
to  their  slaughter  ;  while  they  went  so  repiningly  to  his  service  and 
their  own  preferment !  Who  can  distrust  the  provision  of  the 
great  Housekeeper  of  the  world,  when  he  sees  how  he  can  furnish 
his  tables  at  pleasure  ?  Is  he  grown  now  careless,  or  we  faithless 
rather  ?  Why  do  we  not  repose  upon  his  mere}-  ?  Rather  than 
we  shall  want,  when  we  trust  him,  he  will  fetch  quails  from  all  the 
coasts  of  heaven  to  our  board.  O  Lord,  thy  hand  is  not  shortened 
to  give  ;  let  not  ours  be  shortened,  or  shut  in  receiving. 

Elijah's  servitors,  the  ravens,  brought  him  his  full  service  of 
bread  and  flesh  at  once;  each  morning  and  evening.  But  these 
Israelites  have  their  flesh  at  even,  and  their  bread  in  the  morning. 
Good  reason  there  should  be  a  difference  :  Elijah's  table  was  upon 
God's  direct  appointment ;  the  Israelites',  upon  their  mutiny  :  al- 
though God  will  relieve  them  witli  provision,  yet  he  will  punish 
their  impatience  with  delay  ;  so  shall  they  know  themselves  his 
people,  that  they  shall  find  they  were  nmrmurers. 

Not  only  in  the  matter,  but  in  the  order,  God  answers  their 
grudging.  First  they  complain  of  the  want  of  flesh-pots,  then  of 
bread.  In  the  first  place  therefore  they  have  flesh,  bread  after. 
When  they  have  flesh,  yet  they  must  stay  a  time  ere  they  can  have 
a  full  meal ;  unless  they  would  eat  their  meat  breadless,  and  their 
bread  dry.  God  will  be  waited  on,  and  will  give  the  consumma- 
tion of  his  blessings  at  his  own  leisure.  In  the  evening  of  our  life, 
we  have  the  first  pledges  of  his  favour  ;  but  in  the  morning  of  our 
resurrection,  must  we  look  for  our  perfect  satiety  of  the  true  man- 
na, the  bread  of  life. 

Now  the  Israelites  sped  well  with  their  quails  ;  they  did  eat,  and 
digest,  and  prosper:  not  long  after,  they  have  quails  with  a  ven- 
geance ;  the  meat  was  pleasant,  but  the  sauce  was  fearful :  they  let 
down  the  quails  at  their  mouth,  but  they  came  out  at  their  nostrils. 
How  much  better  had  it  been  to  have  died  of  hunger,  through  the 
chastisement  of  God,  than  of  the  plague  of  God,  with  the  flesh  be- 
twixt their  teeth  !  Behold,  they  perish  of  the  same  disease  then, 
whereof  they  now  recover.  The  same  sin  repeated,  is  death, 
whose  first  act  found  remission  :  relapses  are  desperate,  where  the 
sickness  itself  is  not.  With  us  men,  once  goes  away  with  a  warn- 
ing, the  second  act  is  but  whipping,  the  third  is  death.  It  is  a  mor- 
tal thing  to  abuse  the  lenity  of  God  ;  we  should  be  presumptuously 
mad,  to  hope  that  God  will  stand  us  for  a  sinning-stock,  to  provoke 
him  how  we  will.  It  is  more  mercy  than  he  owes  us,  if  he  forbear 
us  once  :  it  is  his  justice  to  plague  us  the  second  time :  we  may 
thank  ourselves,  if  we  will  not  be  warned. 

Their  meat  was  strange,  but  nothing  so  much  as  their  bread.  To 
find  quails  in  a  wilderness  was  unusual ;  but  for  bread  to  come 
down  from  heaven  was  yet  more.    They  had  seen  quails  before, 


THE  QUAILS  AND  MANNA. 


though  not  in  such  number :  manna  was  never  seen  till  now. 
From  this  day  till  their  settling  in  Canaan,  God  wrought  a  perpe- 
tual miracle  in  this  food  :  a  miracle  in  the  place  :  other  bread  rises 
up  from  below,  this  fell  down  from  above  ;  neither  did  it  ever  rain 
bread  till  now  ;  vet  so  did  this  heavenly  shower  fail,  that  it  is  con- 
fined to  the  camp  of  Israel :  a  miracle,  in  the  quantity  ;  that  every 
morning  should  fell  enough  to  fill  so  many  hundred  thousand 
mouths  and  maws :  a  miracle  in  the  composition  ;  that  it  was 
sweet  like  honey-cakes,  round  like  corianders,  transparent  as  dew  *. 
a  miracle,  in  the  quality  ;  that  it  melted  by  one  heat,  by  another 
hardened :  a  miracle,  in  the  difference  of  the  fall  ;  that,  as  if  it 
knew  times,  and  would  teach  them  as  well  as  feed  them,  it  fell  dou- 
ble in  the  even  of  the  Sabbath,  and  on  the  Sabbath  fell  not :  a  mi- 
racle, in  the  putrefaction  and  preservation  ;  that  it  was  full  of 
worms  when  it  was  kept  beyond  the  due  hour  for  distrust ;  full  of 
sweetness  when  it  was  kept  a  day  longer  for  religion,  yea  many 
ages  in  the  ark  for  a  monument  of  the  power  and  mercy  of  the 
Giver  :  a  miracle,  in  the  continuance  and  ceasing  ;  that  this  shower 
of  bread  followed  their  camp  in  all  their  removals,  till  they  came 
to  taste  of  the  bread  of  Canaan,  and  then  withdrew  itself,  as  if  it 
should  have  said,  "  Ye  need  no  miracles  now  ye  have  means." 

They  had  the  types  ;  we  have  the  substance.  In  this  wilderness 
of  the  world,  the  true  manna  is  rained  upon  the  tents  of  our  hearts. 
He,  that  sent  the  manna,  was  the  manna  which  he  sent:  he  hath 
said,  /  am  tne  manna  that  came  down  from  heaven.  Behold, 
their  whole  meals  were  sacramental :  every  morsel  they  did  eat, 
was  spiritual.  We  eat  still  of  their  manna:  still  he  comes  down 
from  heaven.  He  hath  substance  enough  for  worlds  of  souls  ;  yet 
only  is  to  be  found  in  the  lists  of  the  true  Church.  He  hath  more 
sweetness,  than  the  honey  and  the  honey-comb.  Happy  are  we, 
if  we  can  find  him  so  sweet  as  he  is. 

The  same  hand,  that  rained  manna  upon  their  tents,  could  have 
rained  it  into  their  mouths  or  laps.  God  loves  we  should  take 
pains  for  our  spiritual  food.  Little  would  it  have  availed  them, 
that  the  manna  lay  about  their  tents,  if  they  had  not  gone  forth  and 
gathered  it,  beaten  it,  baked  it :  let  salvation  be  never  so  plentiful,  if 
we  bring  it  not  home,  and  make  it  ours  by  faith,  we  are  no  whit  the 
better.  If  the  work  done,  and  means  used,  had  been  enough  to 
give  life,  no  Israelite  had  died  :  their  bellies  were  full  of  that 
bread,  whereof  one  crumb  gives  life  ;  yet  they  died  many  of  them 
in  displeasure. 

As  in  natural,  so  in  spiritual  things,  we  may  not  trust  to  means  ; 
the  carcase  of  the  sacrament  cannot  give  life,  but  the  soul  of  it  ; 
which  is  the  thing  represented.  I  see  each  man  gather,  and  take 
his  just  measure  out  of  the  common  heap.  We  must  be  industri- 
ous, and  helpful  each  to  other  :  but  when  we  have  done,  Christ  i3 
not  partial.  If  our  sanctification  differ,  yet  our  justification  is 
equal  in  all. 

He,  that  gave  a  gomer  to  each,  could  have  given  an  ephah  :  as 
-easily  could  he  have  rained  down  enough  for  a  month,  or  a  year, 


90 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


at  once,  as  for  a  day.  God  delights  to  have  us  live  in  a  continual 
dependence  upon  his  providence,  and  each  day  renew  the  acts  of 
our  faith  and  thankfulness.  But  what  a  covetous  Israelite  was  that, 
which,  in  a  foolish  distrust,  would  he  sparing  the  chai'ges  of  God  ; 
and  reserving  that  for  morning,  which  he  should  have  spent  upon 
his  supper  !  He  shall  know,  that  even  the  hread  that  came  dowii 
from  heaven  can  corrupt :  the  manna  was  from  above  ;  the  worms 
and  stink  from  his  diffidence.  Nothing  is  so  sovereign,  which,  be- 
ing perverted,  mav  not  annoy,  instead  of  benefitting  us. 

Yet  I  see  some  difference  between  the  true'  and  typical  manna  ; 
God  never  meant  that  the  shadow  and  the  body  should  agree  in  all 
things.  The  outward  manna  reserved,  was  poison  :  the  spiritual 
manna  is  to  us,  as  it  was  to  the  ark  ;  not  good,  unless  it  be  kept 
perpetually  ;  if  we  keep  it,  it  shall  keep  us  from  putrefaction.  The 
outward  manna  fell  hot  at  all  on  the  Sabbath  :  the  spiritual  manna, 
though  it  balks  no  day,  yet  it  falls  double  on  God's  day  ;  and  if  wc 
gather  it  not  then  ;  we  famish.  In  that  true  Sabbath  of  our  glorious 
rest,  we  shall  for  ever  feed  of  that  manna,  which  we  have  gathered 
in  this  even  of  our  life,  Evod.  xvi. 


THE  ROCK  OF  REPHIDIM. 

Before,  Israel  thirsted  and  was  satisfied  ;  after  that,  they  hungered 
and  were  filled  ;  now,  they  thirst  again.  They  have  bread  and 
meat,  but  want  drink  :  it  is  a  marvel  if  God  do  not  evermore  hold 
us  ^hort  of  something,  because  he  would  keep  us  still  in  exercise 
We  should  forget  at  whose  cost  we  live,  if  we  wanted  nothing. 
Still  God  observes  a  vicissitude  of  evil  nd  good  ;  and  the  same 
evils  that  we  have  passed  return  upon  us  in  their  courses.  Crosses 
are  not  of  the  nature  of  those  diseases,  which  they  say  a  man  can 
have  but  once.  Their  fir  it  seizure  doth  but  make  way  for  their 
re-entry.  None  but  our  last  enemy  comes  once  for  all ;  and  I 
know  not,  if  that :  for  even  in  living  we  die  daily.  So  must  we 
take  our  leaves  of  all  afflictions,  tnat  we  reserve  a  lodging  for  them, 
and  expect  their  return. 

All  Israel  murmured  when  thev  wanted  bread,  meat,  water  ;  and 
yet  all  Israel  departed  from  the  wilderness  of  Sin  to  Rephidim,  at 
God's  command.  The  very  worst  men  will  obey  God  in  some- 
thing ;  none  but  the  good,  in  all :  he  is  rarely  desperate,  that  makf  s 
an  universal  opposition  to  God.  It  is  an  unsound  praise  that  is 
given  a  man,  for  one  good  action.  It  mav  be  safely  said  of  the 
very  devils  themselves,  that  they  do  something  well;  thev  know, 
and  believe,  and  tremble.  If  we  follow  God  and  murmur,  it  is  all 
one,  as  if  we  had  staid  behind. 

Those  distrust  his  providence  in  their  necessity,  that  are  ready 
to  follow  his  guidance  in  their  welfare.  It  is  a  harder  matter  to  en- 
dure in  extreme  want,  than  to  obey  a  hard  commandment.  Suffer- 
ings are  greater  trials  than  actions  :  how  many  have  we  seen  jeopard 
their  lives  with  cheerful  resolution,  which  cannot  endure  in  cold 


THE  ROCK  OF  REPHIDIM. 


9 1 


blood  to  lose  a  limb  witb  patience!  Because  God  will  have  bis 
thoroughly  tried,  be  puts  them  to  both  ;  and  if  we  cannot  endure 
both  to  follow  him  from  Sin,  and  to  thirst  in  llephidim,  we  are  not 
sound  Israelites. 

God  led  them  on  purpose  to  this  dry  Rephidi:n  :  be  could  as  well 
have  conducr-  1  them  to  another  Elim,  to  convenient  waterings ; 
or  tie,  that  gives  the  waters  of  ail  their  channels,  could  as  well  have 
derived  them  to  meet  Israel:  but  God  doth  purposely  carry  them 
to  thirst.  It  is  not  for  necessity  tbat  we  fare  ill,  but  out  of  choice : 
it  were  all  one  with  God  to  give  us  beaith  as  sickness,  abundance 
as  poverty.  The  treasury  of  bis  riches  hath  more  store  than  bis 
creature  can  be  capable  of :  we  could  not  complain,  if  it  were  not 
good  for  us  to  want. 

This  should  have  been  a  contentment  able  to  quench  any  thirst : 
11  God  hath  led  us  hither ;  if  Moses  out  of  ignorance  had  mis- 
guided us,  or  we  by  chance  fallen  upon  these  dry  deserts,  though 
this  were  no  remedy  of  our  grief,  yet  it  might  be  some  ground  of  our 
complaint.  But  now  the  counsel  of  so  wise  and  merciful  a  God, 
bath  drawn  us  into  this  want ;  and  shall  not  be  as  easily  find  the 
way  out  ?  It  is  the  Lord,  let  him  do  what  he  will.  There  can 
be  no  more  forcible  motive  to  patience,  than  "the  acknowledgment 
of  a  divine  hand  that  strikes  us.  It  is  fearful  to  be  in  the  hand  of 
an  adversary  ;  but  who  would  not  be  confident  of  a  Father  ?  Yet 
in  our  frail  humanity,  choler  may  transport  a  man  from  remem- 
brance of  nature  ;  but  when  we  feel  ourselves  under  the  discipline 
of  a  wise  God,  that  can  temper  our  afflictions  to  our  strength,  to 
our  benefit,  who  would  not  rather  murmur  at  himself,  that,  he 
should  swerve  towards  impatience  ?  Yet  these  sturdy  Israelites 
wilfully  murmur;  and  will  not  have  their  thirst  quenched  with 
faith,  but  with  water.    Give  us  water. 

I  looked  to  bear  when  they  would  have  entreated  Moses  to  pray 
for  thein  ;  but  instead  of  entreating,  they  contend  ;  and,  instead 
of  prayers,  I  find  commands ;  Give  us  water.  If  they  bad  gone 
to  God  without  Moses,  I  should  have  praised  their  faith  ;  but  now 
they  go  to  Moses  without  God,  I  hate  their  stubborn  faithlessness. 
To  seek  to  the  second  means,  with  neglect  of  the  first,  is  the  fruit 
of  a  false  faith. 

The  answer  of  Moses  is  like  himself,  mild  and  sweet :  Why  con- 
tend you  with  me  ?  Why  tempt  yc  the  Lord  f  in  the  first  expos- 
tulation condemning  them  of  injustice;  since  not  he,  but  the 
Lord  had  afflicted  them  :  in  the  second,  of  presumption  ;  that, 
since  it  was  God  tbat  tempted  them  by  want,  they  should  tempt 
him  by  murmuring  :  in  the  one,  he  would  bave  them  see  their 
wrong  ;  in  the  other,  their  danger.  As  the  act  came  not  from  him, 
but  from  God  ;  so  be  puts  it  oif  to  God,  from  himself,  Why  tempt 
ye  the  Lord  ?  The  opposition,  which  is  made  to  the  instrument  i  of 
God,  redounds  ever  to  his  person.  He  holds  himself  smitten 
through  the  sides  of  his  ministers  :  so  hath  God  incorporated  these 
respects,  that  our  subtlety  cannot  divide  them. 


02 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


But  what  temptation  is  this  ?  Ls  the  Lord  among  us,  or  no  ? 
Infidelity  is  crafty,  and  yet  foolish  ;  crafty  in  her  insinuations, 
foolish  in  her  conceits.  They  imply,  "  If  we  were  sure  the  Lord 
were  with  us,  we  would  not  distrust;  they  conceive  doubts  of  his 
presence,  after  such  confirmations.  What  could  God  do  more,  to 
nial\e  them  know  him  present,  unless  every  moment  should  have 
renewed  miracles  ?  The  plagues  of  Egypt  and  the  division  of  the. 
sea  were  so  famous,  that  the  very  inns  of  Jericho  rang  of  them. 
Their  waters  were  lately  sweetened  ;  the  quails  were  yet  in  their 
teeth  ;  the  manna  was  yet  in  their  eye  ;  yea,  they  saw  God  in  the 
pillar  of  the  cloud,  and  yet  they  say,  Is  the  Lord  amongst  its  ? 
NG  argument  is  enough  to. an  incredulous  heart;  not  reason,  not 
sense,  not  experience.  How  much  better  was  that  faith  of  Thomas, 
that  would  believe  his  eyes  and  hands,  though  his  cars  he  would 
not  ?  Oh  the  deep  infidelity  of  these  Israelites,  that  saw  and  be- 
lieved not ! 

And  how  will  they  know  if  God  be  amongst  them  ?  As  if  he 
could  not  be  with  them,  and  they  be  athirst.  Either  God  must  hu- 
mour carnal  minds,  or  be  distrusted  :  if  the}7  prosper,  though  it 
be  with  wickedness,  God  is  with  them  ;  if  they  be  thwarted  in 
their  own  designs,  straight,  Ls  God  with  us  ?  It  was  the  way  to  put 
God  from  them,  to  distrust  and  murmur.  If  he  had  not  been  with 
them,  they  had  not  lived  ;  if  he  had  been  in  them,  they  had  not 
mutinied.  They  can  think  him  absent  in  their  want,  and  cannot  see 
him  absent  in  their  sin  :  and  yet  wickedness,  not  affliction,  argues 
him  gone  ;  yet  then  is  he  most  present,  when  he  most  chastises. 

Who  would  not  have  looked,  that  this  answer  of  Moses  should 
have  appeased  their  fury  ?  As  what  can  still  him,  that  will  not  be 
quiet  to  think  he  hath  God  for  his  adversary  ?  But  as  if  they  would 
wilfully  war  against  heaven,  they  proceed  ;  yet  with  no  less  craft 
than  violence  ;  bending  their  exception  to  one  part  of  the  answer, 
and  smoothlv  omitting  what  they  could  not  except  against.  They 
will  not  hear  of  tempting  God;  they  maintain  their  strife  with 
Moses,  both  with  words  and  stones.  How  malicious,  how  heady 
is  impatience  !  The  act  was  God's ;  they  cast,  it  upon  Moses, 
Wherefore  hast  thou  brought  us  ?  The  act  of  God  was  merciful ; 
they  make  it  cruel,  To  kill  us  and  our  children  :  as  if  God  and 
Moses  meant  nothing  but  their  ruin,  who  inte  nded  nothing  but  their 
life  and  liberty.  Foolish  men  !  What  needed  this  journey  to  death  ? 
Were  they  not  as  obnoxious  to  God  in  Egypt  ?  Could  not  God  by 
Moses  as  easily  have  killed  them  in  Egypt,  or  in  the  sea,  as  their 
enemies?  Impatience  is  full  of  misconstruction:  if  it  be  possible 
to  find  out  any  gloss  to  corrupt  the  text  of  God's  actions  they  shall 
be  sure  not  to  escape  untainted. 

It  was  no  expostulating  with  an  unreasonable  multitude  :  Moses 
runs  straight  to  him,  that  was  able  at  once  to  quench  their  thirst 
and  their  fury  :  What  shall  L  do  to  this  people  ?  It  is  the  best  way 
to  trust  God  with  his  own  causes  :  when  men  will  be  intermeddling 
with  his  affairs,  they  undo  themselves  in  vain,    We  shall  find  diftv 


THE  ROCK  OF  REPHIDIM. 


93 


culties  in  all  great  enterprises  :  if  we  be  sure  we  have  begun  them 
from  God,  we  may  securely  cast  all  events  upon  his  providence, 
which  knows  how  to  dispose,  and  how  to  end  them. 

Moses  perceived  rage,  not  in  the  tongues  only,  but  in  the  hands 
of  the  Israelites.  Yet  a  while  longer,  and  tliey  will  stone  me. 
Even  the  leader  of  God's  people  feared  death  ;  and  sinned  not  in 
fearing.  Life  is  worthy  to  be  dear  to  all ;  especially  to  him,  whom 
public  charge  hath  made  necessary  :  mere  fear  is  not  sinful ;  it 
is  impotence  and  distrust  that  accompany  it,  which  make  it  evil. 
How  well  is  that  fear  bestowed,  that  sends  us  the  more  importu- 
nately to  God  !  Some  man  would  have  thought  of  flight ;  Moses 
flies  to  his  prayers  ;  and  that,  not  for  revenge,  but  for  help.  Who 
but  Moses  would  not  have  said,  "  This  tw  ice  they  have  mutinied, 
and  been  pardoned  ;  and  now  again  thou  scest,  O  Lord,  how  mad- 
ly they  rebel ;  and  how  bloodily  they  intend  against  me  ;  preserve 
me,  I  beseech  thee,  and  plague  them."  I  hear  none  of  this  ;  but, 
imitating  the  long-suffering  of  his  God,  he  seeks  to  God  for  them, 
which  sought  to  kill  him  for  the  quarrel  of  God. 

Neither  is  God  sooner  sought  than  found :  all  Israel  might  see 
Moses  go  towards  the  rock ;  none  but  the  elders  might  see  him 
strike  it.  Their  unbelief  made  them  unworthy  of  this  privilege. 
It  is  no  small  favour  of  God,  to  make  us  witnesses  of  his  great 
works  ;  that  he  crucifies  his  Son  before,  us,  that  he  fetches  the  water 
of  life  out  of  the  true  Rock  in  our  sight,  is  a  high  prerogative  ;  if 
his  rigour  would  have  taken  it,  our  infidelity  had  equally  excluded 
us,  whom  now  his  mercy  hath  received. 

Moses  must  take  his  rod:  God  could  have  done  it  by  his  will, 
without  a  word  ;  or  by  his  word,  without  the  rod  ;  but  he  will  do 
by  means,  that  which  he  can  as  easily  do  without.  There  was  no 
virtue  in  the  rod,  none  in  the  stroke  ;  but  all  in  the  command  of 
God.  Means  must  be  used,  and  yet  their  efficacy  must  be  expect- 
ed out  of  themselves. 

It  doth  not  suffice  God  to  name  the  rod,  without  a  description  ; 
Whereby  thou  smotest  the  river  :  wherefore,  but  to  strengthen  the 
faith  of  Moses,  that  he  might  well  expect  this  wonder  from  that, 
which  he  had  tried  to  be  miraculous  ?  How  could  he  but  firmly 
believe,  that  the  same  means,  which  turned  the  waters  into  blood, 
and  turned  the  sea  into  a  wall,  could  as  well  turn  the  stone  into 
water  ?  Nothing  more  raises  up  the  heart  in  present  affiance,  than 
the  recognition  of  favours  or  wonders  passed.  Behold,  the  same 
rod,  that  brought  plagues  to  the  Egyptians,  brings  deliverances  to 
Israel !  By  the  same  means  can  God  save  and  condemn  ;  like  as  the 
same  sword  defends  and  kills. 

That  power,  which  turned  the  wings  of  the  quails  to  the  wilder- 
ness, turned  the  course  of  the  water  through  the  rock  :  he  might, 
if  he  had  pleased,  have  caused  a  spring  to  well  out  of  the  plain 
earth ;  but  he  will  now  fetch  it  out  of  the  stone,  to  convince  and 
shame  their  infidelity. 

What  is  more  hard  and  dry  than  the  rock  ?  What  more  moist 
and  supple  than  water  ?  That  they  may  be  ashamed  to  think,  they 


94 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


distrusted  lest  God  could  bring  them  water  out  of  the  clouds  or 
springs,  the  very  rock  shall  yield  it. 

And  now,  unless  their  hearts  had  been  more  rocky  than  this 
stone,  they  could  not  but  have  resolved  them  into  tears,  for  this 
diffidence. 

I  wonder  to  see  these  Israelites  fed  with  sacraments.  Their  bread 
was  sacramental,  whereof  they  communicated  everyday:  lest  any 
man  should  complain  of  frequence,  the  Israelites  received  daily  ; 
and  now  their  drink  was  sacramental,  that  the  ancient  Church  may 
give  no  warrant  of  a  dry  communion. 

Twice  therefore  hath  the  rock  yielded  them  water  of  refreshing, 
to  signify  that  the  true  spiritual  rock  yields  it  always.  The  rock 
that  followed  them  was  Christ :  out  of  thy  side,  O  Saviour,  issued 
that  bloody  stream,  whereby  the  thirst  of  all  believers  is  comfort- 
ably quenched:  let  us  but  thirst;  not  with  repining,  but  with 
faith  ;  this  rock  of  thine  shall  abundantly  flow  forth  to  our  souls, 
and  follow  us,  till  this  water  be  changed  into  that  new  wine,  which 
we  shall  drink  with  thee  in  thy  Father's  kingdom.      Exod.  xvii. 


THE  FOIL  OF  AMALEK;  OR  THE  HAND  OF  MOSES 

LIFT  UP. 

No  sooner  is  Israel's  thirst  slaked,  than  God  hath  an  Amalekite 
ready  to  assault  them.  The  Almighty  hath  choice  of  rods  to  whip 
us  with ;  and  will  not  be  content  with  one  trial.  They  would  needs 
be  quarrelling  with  Moses,  without  a  cause ;  and  now  God  sends 
the  Amalekites  to  quarrel  with  them.  It  is  just  with  God,  that 
they,  which  would  be  contending  with  their  best  friends,  should 
have  work  enough  of  contending  with  enemies. 

In  their  passage  out  of  Egypt,  God  would  not  lead  them  the 
nearest  way,  by  the  Philistines'  land,  lest  they  should  repent  at  the 
sight  of  war ;  now  they  both  see  and  feel  it.  He  knows  how  to 
make  the  fittest  choice  of  the  times  of  evil ;  and  withholds  that  one 
while,  which  he  sends  another,  not  without  a  just  reason,  why  he 
sends  and  with-holds  it :  and  though  to  us  they  come  ever,  as  we 
think,  unseasonably,  and  at  some  times  more  unfitly  than  others ; 
yet  he  that  sends  them  knows  their  opportunities. 

Who  would  not  have  thought,  a  worse  time  could  never  have 
be?n  picked  for  Israel's  war  than  now  ?  In  the  feebleness  of  their 
troops,  when  they  were  wearied,  thirsty,  unweaponed ;  yet  now 
must  the  Amalekites  do  that,  which  before  the  Philistines  might  not 
do  :  we  are  not  worthy,  not  able  to  chuse  for  ourselves. 

To  be  sick  and  die  in  the  strength  of  youth,  in  the  minority  of 
children  ;  to  be  pinched  with  poverty,  or  miscarriage  of  children, 
ui  <mr  age;  how  harshly  unseasonable  it  seems!  But  the  infinite 
wisdom,  that  orders  our  events,  knows  how  to  order  our  times.  Un- 
less we  will  be  shameless  unbelievers,  O  Lord,  we  must  trust  thee 
sv  iih  ourselves  and  our  seasons  ;  and  know,  that  not  that  which  we 
re,  but  that  which  thou  hast  appointed,  is  the  fittest  time  for 
our  sufferings. 


THE  FOIL  OF  AMALEK,  &C.  9j 

Amalck  was  Ksau's  grand-child  ;  and  these  Israelites,  the  sons  of 
J;;cob.  The  abode  of  Ainalek  was  not  so  far  from  Egypt,  but  they 
might  well  hear  what  became  of  their  cousins  of  Israel ;  and  now, 
doubtless,  out  of  envy  watched  their  opportunity  of  revenge  for 
theirold  grudge.  Malice  is  commonly  hereditary,  and  runs  in 
the  blood  ;  and,  as  we  use  to  say  of  rennet,  the  older  it  is  the 
stronger. 

Hence  is  that  foolish  hostility,  which  some  men  unjustly  nou- 
rish upon  no  other  grounds  than  the  quarrels  of  their  fore-fathers. 
To  wreak  our  malice  upon  posterity,  is,  at  the  best,  but  the  hu- 
mour of  an  Amalekite. 

How  cowardly  and  how  crafty  was  this  skirmish  of  Amalek  ! 
They  do  not  bid  them  battle  in  fair  terms  of  war,  but  without  all 
noise  of  warning,  come  stealing  upon  the  hindmost,  and  fall  upon 
the  weak  and  scattered  remnants  of  Israel.  There  is  no  looking 
for  favour  at  the  hands  of  malice  :  the  worst  that  either  force  or 
fraud  can  do,  must  be  expected  of  an  adversary  ;  but  much  more 
of  our  spiritual  enemy,  by  how  much  his  hatred  is  deeper.  Be- 
hold, this  Amalek  lies  in  ambush  to  hinder  our  passage  unto  our 
land  of  promise  ;  aud  subtlelv  takes  ail  advantages  of  our  weak- 
nesses. We  cannot  be  wise  nor  safe,  if  we  stay  behind  our  co- 
lours; and  strengthen  not  those  parts,  where  is  most  peril  of  op- 
position. 

I  do  not  hear  Moses  say  to  his  Joshua,  "  Amalek  is  come  up 
against  us  ;  it  matters  not  whether  thou  go  against  him  or  not ;  or 
if  thou  go,  whether  alone  or  with  company  ;  or  if  accompanied, 
whether  with  many  or  few,  strong  or  weak  ;  or  if  strong  men,  whe- 
ther they  fight  or  no  ;  I  will  pray  on  the  hill :"  but,  Choose  us- 
out  wen,  and  go  fight. 

Then  only  can  we  pray  with  hope,  when  we  have  done  our  best. 
And  though  the  means  cannot  eneet  that,  which  we  desire ;  yet 
God  will  have  us  use  the  likeliest  means  on  our  part  to  effect  it. 
Where  it  comes  immediately  from  the  charge  of  God,  any  means 
are  effectual  :  one  stick  of  wood  shall  fetch  water  out  of  the  rock, 
another  shall  fetch  bitterness  out  of  the  water  ;  but  in  those  pro- 
jects which  we  make  for  our  own  purposes,  we  must  choose  those 
helps  which  promise  most  efficacy.  In  vain  shall  Moses  be  upon 
the  hill,  if  Joshua  be  not  in  the  valley.  Prayer  without  means  is 
a  mockery  of  God. 

Here  are  two  shadows  of  one  substance  ;  the  same  Christ,  in 
Joshua  fights  against  our  spiritual  Amalek,  and  in  Moses  spreads 
out  his  arms  upon  the  hill ;  and  in  both,  conquers.  And  why  doth 
he  climb  up  the  hill  rather  than  pray  in  the  valley  ?  perhaps,  that 
he  might  have  the  more  freedom  to  his  thoughts  ;  which,  following 
the  sense,  are  so  much  more  heavenly,  as  the  eye  sees  more  of  hea- 
ven ;  though  virtue  lies  not  in  the  place,  yet  choice  must  be  made 
of  those  places,  which  may  be  most  help  to  our  devotion  :  per- 
haps, that  he  might  be  in  the  eye  of  Israel. 

The  presence  and  sight  of  the  leader  gives  heart  to  the  people; 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


neither  doth  any  thing  more  move  the  multitude  than  example. 
A  public  person  cannot  hide  himself  in  the  valley;  but  yet  it  be- 
comes him  best,  to  show  himself  upon  the  hill. 

The  hand  of  Moses  must  be  raised,  but  not  empty  ;  neither  is  it 
his  own  rod  that  he  holds,  but  God's.  In  the  first  meeting  of  God 
with  Moses,  the  rod  was  Moses's  ;  it  is  like,  for  the  use  of  his  trade: 
now  the  property  is  altered  ;  God  hath  so  wrought  by  it,  that  now 
he  challenges  it ;  and  Moses  dare  not  call  it  his  own. 

Those,  things,  which  it  pleases  God  to  use  for  his  own  service, 
are  now  changed  in  their  condition.  The  bread  of  the  sacrament 
was  once  the  baker  s,  now  it  is  God's  ;  the  water  was  once  every 
man's,  now  it  is  tiie  laver  of  regeneration.  It  is  both  unjust  and 
unsafe  to  hold  those  things  common,  wherein  God  hath  a  peculi- 
arity. 

At  other  times,  upon  occasion  of  the  plagues,  and  of  the  quails, 
and  of  the  rock,  he  was  commanded  to  take  the  rod  in  his  hand  ; 
now,  he  doth  it  unbidden  :  he  doth  it  not  now  for  miraculous  ope- 
ration, but  for  encouragement :  for  when  the  Israelites  should  cast 
up  their  eyes  to  the  hill,  and  see  Moses  and  his  rod,  (the  man  and 
the  means  that  had  wrought  so  powerfully  for  them,)  they  could 
not  but  take  heart  to  themselves,  and  think,  u  There  is  the  man 
that  delivered  us  from  the  Egyptian,  why  not  now  from  the  Amale- 
kite  ?  There  is  the  rod  which  turned  waters  to  blood,  and  brought 
varieties  of  plagues  upon  Egypt,  why  not  now  on  Amalek  ?" 

Nothing  can  more  hearten  our  faith,  than  the  view  of  the  monu- 
ments of  God's  favour  :  if  ever  we  have  found  any  word  or  act  of 
God  cordial  to  us,  it  is  good  to  fetch  it  forth  oft  to  the  eye.  The 
renewing  of  our  sense  and  remembrance,  makes  every  gift  of  God 
perpetually  beneficial. 

If  Moses  had  received  a  command,  that  rod,  which  fetched  water 
from  the  rock,  could  as  well  have  fetched  the  blood  of  the  Amale- 
kites  out  of  their  bodies.  God  will  not  work  miracles  always  ;  nei- 
ther must  we  expect  them  unbidden. 

Not  as  a  standard-bearer,  so  much  as  a  suppliant,  doth  Moses  lift 
up  his  hand  :  the  gesture  of  the  body  should  both  express  and  fur- 
ther the  piety  of  the  soul.  This  flesh  of  ours  is  not  a  good  ser- 
vant, unless  it  help  us  in  the  best  offices.  The  God  of  Spirits  doth 
most  respect  the  soul  of  our  devotion  ;  yet  it  is  both  unmannerly 
and  irreligious,  to  be  misgestured  in  our  prayers.  The  careless  and 
uncomely  carriage  of  the  body,  helps  both  to  signify  and  make  a 
profane  soul. 

The  hand  and  the  rod  of  Moses  never  moved  in  vain :  though 
the  rod  did  not  strike  Amalek,  as  it  had  done  the  rock  ;  yet  it  smote 
heaven,  and  fetched  down  victory.  And,  that  the  Israelites  might 
seethe  hand  of  Moses  had  a  greater  stroke  in  the  fight  than  all 
theirs,  the  success  must  rise  and  fall  with  it :  Amalek  rose,  and 
Israel  fell,  with  his  hand  falling  ;  Amalek  fell,  and  Israel  rises,  with 
his  hand  raised.  Oh  the  wondrous  power  of  the  prayers  of  faith  ! 
All  heavenly  favours  are  derived  to  us  from  this  channel  of  grace : 


THE  FOIL  OF  AMALEK,  &C.  97 

to  these  are  we  beholden  for  our  peace,  preservations,  and  all  the 
rich  mercies  of  God  which  we  enjoy.  We  could  not  want,  if  we 
could  ask. 

Every  man's  hand  would  not  have  done  this,  but  the  hand  of  a 
Moses.  A  faithless  man  may  as  well  hold  his  hand  and  tongue  still ; 
he  may  babble,  but  prays  not ;  he  prays  ineffectually,  and  receives 
not :  only  the  prayer  of  the  righteous  availeth  much  ;  and  only  the 
believer  is  righteous. 

There  can  be  no  merit,  no  recompence  answerable  to  a  good 
man's  prayer  ;  for  heaven,  and  the  ear  of  God,  is  open  to  him  :  but 
the  formal  devotions  of  an  ignorant  and  faithless  man,  are  not 
worth  that  crust  of  bread  which  he  asks  ;  yea,  it  is  presumption  in 
himself ;  how  should  it  be  beneficial  to  others  ?  it  profanes  the  name 
of  God,  instead  of  adoring  it. 

But  how  justly  is  the  fervency  of  the  prayer  added  to  the  righ- 
teousness of  the  person  ?  When  Moses'  hand  slackened,  Amalek 
prevailed.  No  Moses  can  have  his  hand  ever  up  :  it  is  a  title  pro- 
per to  God,  that  his  hands  are  stretched  out  still ;  whether  to  mercy 
or  vengeance.  Our  infirmity  will  not  suffer  any  long  intention, 
either  of  bodvorniind.  Long  prayers  can  hardly  maintain  their 
vigour;  as  in  tall  bodies  the  spirits  are  diffused.  The  strongest 
hand  will  languish,  with  long  extending :  and  when  our  devotion 
tires,  it  is  seen  in  the  success ;  then  straight  our  Amalek  prevails. 
Spiritual  wickednesses  are  mastered  by  vehement  prayer ;  and  by 
heartlessness  in  prayer  overcome  us. 

Moses  had  two  helps,  a  stone  to  sit  on ,  and  a  hand  to  raise  his ;  and 
his  sitting  and  holpen  hand  is  no  whit  less  effectual.  Even  in  our 
prayers  will  God  allow  us  to  respect  our  own  infirmities.  In  cases 
of  our  necessity,  he  regards  not  the  posture  of  body,  but  the  affec- 
tions of  the  soul. 

Doubtless  Aaron  and  Hur  did  not  only  raise  their  hands,  but  their 
minds  with  his  :  the  more  cords  the  easier  draught.  Aaron  was  bro- 
ther to  Moses  :  there  cannot  be  a  more  brotherly  office,  than  to  help 
one  another  in  our  prayers,  and  to  excite  our  mutual  devotions.  No 
Christian  may  think  it  enough  to  pray  alone  :  he  is  no  true  Israelite, 
that  will  not  be  ready  to  lift  up  the  weary  hands  of  God's  saints. 

All  Israel  saw  this  ;  or,  if  they  were  so  intent  upon  the  slaughter 
and  spoil,  that  they  observed  it  not,  they  might  hear  it  after  from 
Aaron  and  Hur:  yet  this  contents  not  God;  It  must  be  writtetp. 
Many  other  miracles  had  God  done  before  ;  not  one,  directly  com- 
manded to  be  recorded :  the  other  were  only  for  the  wonder,  this 
for  the  imitation,  of  God's  people.  In  things  that  must  live  by  re- 
port, every  tongue  adds  or  detracts  something.  The  word  once 
written  is  both  unalterable  and  permanent. 

As  God  is  careful  to  maintain  the  glory  of  his  miraculous  victory, 
so  is  Moses  desirous  to  second  him  ;  God  by  a  book,  and  Mo;es  by 
an  altar  and  a  name.  God  commands  to  enrol  it  in  parchment; 
Moses  registers  it  in  the  atones  of  his  altar  ;  which  he  raises  not  only 
for  future  memory  but  lor  present  use. 

That  hand,  which  was  weary  of  hltijig  up,  straight  offers  a  sacii- 
vol.  i.  "  h 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


fi.ce  of  praise  to  God  :  how  well  it  becomes  the  just  to  be  thankful ! 
Even  very  nature  teacheth  us  men,  to  abhor  ingratitude  in  small  fa- 
vours. How  much  less  can  that  fountain  of  goodness  abide  to  be 
laded  at  with  unthankful  hands  !  O  God,  we  cannot  but  confess  our 
deliverances :  where  are  our  altars  ?  Where  are  our  sacrifices  ? 
Where  is  our  Jehovah-Nissi  ?  I  do  not  more  wonder  at  thy  power  in 
preserving  us,  than  at  thy  mercy,  which  is  not  weary  of  casting 
away  favours  upon  the  ungrateful.  Exod.  xvii. 


THE  LAW. 

It  is  but  about  seven  weeks,  since  Israel  came  out  of  Egypt;  in 
which  space,  God  had  cherished  their  faith  by  five  several  wonders : 
yet  now  he  thinks  it  time  to  give  them  statutes  from  heaven,  as  well 
as  bread. 

The  manna  and  water  from  the  rock  (which  was  Christ  in  the 
Gospel)  were  given  before  the  law ;  the  sacraments  of  grace,  be- 
fore the  legal  covenant.  The  grace  of  God  preventeth  our  obe- 
dience: therefore  should  we  keep  the  law  of  God,  because  we  have 
a  Saviour.  O  the  mercy  of  our  God  !  which,  before  we  see  what 
we  are  bound  to  do,  shews  us  our  remedy,  if  we  do  it  not :  how 
can  our  faith  disannul  the  law,  when  it  was  before  it  ?  It  may  help 
to  fulfil  that  which  shall  be :  it  cannot  frustrate  that  which  was 
not. 

The  letters,  which  God  had  written  in  our  fleshly  tables,  were 
now,  as  those  which  are  carved  in  some  barks,  almost  grown  out ; 
he  saw  it  time  to  write  them  in  dead  tables,  whose  hardness  should 
not  be  capable  of  alteration  :  he  knew  that  the  stone  would  be  more 
faithful  than  our  hearts. 

O  marvellous  accordance  betwixt  the  two  testaments !  In  the 
very  time  of  their  delivery,  there  is  the  same  agreement,  which  is 
in  the  substance.  Th  ancient  Jews  kept  our  feasts,  and  we  still 
keep  theirs.  The  feast  of  the  passover  is  the  time  of  Christ's  re- 
surrection ;  then  did  he  pass  from  under  the  bondage  of  death. 
Christ  is  our  passover,  the  spotless  Lamb,  whereof  not  a  bone  must 
be  broken.  The  very  day,  wherein  God  came  down  in  fire  and 
thunder  to  deliver  the  Law,  even  the  same  day  came  also  the  Holy 
Ghost  down  upon  the  disciples  in  fiery  tongues,  for  the  propaga- 
tion of  the  Gospel.  That  other  was  in  fire  and  smoke  ;  obscurity 
was  mingled  with  terror :  this  was  in  fire  without  smoke,  befitting 
the  light  and  clearness  of  the  Gospel :  fire,  not  in  flashes,  but  in 
tongues ;  not  to  terrify,  but  to  instruct.  The  promulgation  of 
the  Law  makes  way  for  the  law  of  the  Gospel :  no  man  receives 
the  Holy  Ghost,  but  he  which  hath  felt  the  terrors  of  Sinai. 

God  might  have  imposed  upon  them  a  law  by  force  :  they  were 
his  creatures,  and  he  could  require  nothing  but  justice.  It  had 
been  but  equal,  that  they  should  be  compelled  to  obey  their  Maker ; 
yet  that  God,  which  loves  to  do  all  things  sweetly,  gives  the  law 


THE  LAW. 


99 


of  justice  in  mercy,  and  will  not  imperiously  command,  but  craves 
our  assent  for  tha't,  which  it  were  rebellion  not  to  do. 

How  gentle  should  be  the  proceeding-  of  fellow  creatures,  who 
have  an  equality  of  being,  with  an  inequality  of  condition  ;  when 
their  infinite  Maker  requests,  where  he  might  constrain  !  God  will 
make  no  covenant  with  the  unwilling  ;  how  much  less  the  Cove- 
nant of  Grace,  which  stands  all  upon  love !  If  we  stay  till  God 
offer  violence  to  our  will,  or  to  us  against  our  will,  we  shall  die 
strangers  from  him.  The  Church  is  the  spouse  of  Christ :  he  will 
enjoy  her  love  by  a  willing  contract,  not  by  a  ravishment.  The 
obstinate  have  nothing  to  do  with  God  :  the  title  of  all  converts, 
is,  A  Willing  People. 

That  Israel  inclined  to  God,  it  was  from  God  ;  he  inquires  after 
his  own  gifts  in  us,  for  our  capacity  of  more.  They  had  not  re- 
ceived the  law,  unless  they  had  first  received  a  disposition  fit  to  be 
commanded.  As  there  was  an  inclination  to  hear,  so  there  must 
be  a  preparation  for  hearing.  God's  justice  had  before  prepared 
his  Israelites,  by  hunger,  thirst,  fear  of  enemies ;  his  mercy  had 
prepared  them  by  deliverances,  by  provisions  of  water,  meat, 
bread  :  and  yet,  besides  all  the  sight  of  God  in  his  miracles,  they 
must  be  three  days  prepared  to  hear  him.  When  our  souls  are  at 
the  best,  our  approach  to  God  requires  particular  addresses  ;  and 
if  three  days  were  little  enough  to  prepare  them  to  receive  the 
law,  how  is  all  our  life  short  enough  to  prepare  for  the  reckoning 
of  our  observing  it !  And  if  the  word  of  a  command  expected 
such  readiness  ;  what  shall  the  word  of  promise,  the  promise,  of 
Christ  and  salvation  ! 

The  murrain  of  Egypt  was  not  so  infectious  as  their  vices  ;  the 
contagion  of  these  stuck  still  by  Israel  :  all  the  water  of  the  Red 
Sea,  and  of  Marah,  and  that  which  gushed  out  of  the  rock,  had 
not  washed  it  off.  From  these,  they  must  now  be  sanctified.  As 
sin  is  always  dangerous ;  so  most,  when  we  bring  it  into  God's 
sight :  it  envenomed)  both  our  persons  and  services,  and  turns  our 
good  into  evil.  As  therefore  we  must  be  always  holy  ;  so  most, 
when  we  present  ourselves  to  the  holy  eyes  of  our  Creator.  We 
wash  our  hands  every  day  ;  but  when  we  are  to  sit  with  some  great 
person,  we  scOur  them  with  balls.  And  if  Ave  must  be  sanctified 
only  to  receive  the  Law,  how  holy  must  we  be  to  receive  the  grace 
promised  in  the  Gospel ! 

Neither  must  themselves  only  be  cleansed,  but  their  very  clothes: 
their  garments  smelt  of  Kgypt,  even  they  must  be  washed.  Neither 
can  clothes  be  capable  of  sin,  nor  can  water  cleanse  from  sin  :  the 
danger  was  neither  in  their  garments,  nor  their  skin ;  yet  they  must 
be  washed,  that  they  might  learn,  by  their  clothes,  with  what  souls 
to  appear  before  their  God.  Those  garments  must  be  washed, 
which  should  never  wax  old,  that  now  they  might  begin  their  age 
in  purity  ;  as  those  which  were  in  more  danger  of  being  foul  than 
bare.  It  is  fit  that  our  reverence  to  God's  presence,  should  appear 
in  our  very  garments ;  that  both  without  and  within  we  may  be 
cleanly  ;  but  little  would  neatness  of  vestures  avail  us  with  a  filthy 


100 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


soul.  The  God  of  Spirits  looks  to  the  inner  man  ;  and  challenges 
the  purity  of  that  part  which  resembles  himself ;  Cleanse  your 
hands,  ye  sinners  ;  and  purge  your  hearts,  ye  double  minded. 

Yet  even  when  they  were  washed  and  sanctified,  they  may  not 
touch  the  mount ;  not  only  with  their  feet,  but,  not  with  their 
eyes  :  the  smoke  keeps  it  from  their  eyes ;  the  marks  from  their 
feet.  Not  only  men  that  had  some  impurity  at  their  best,  are  re- 
strained, but  even  beasts  which  are  not  capable  of  any  unholincss. 
Those  beasts  which  must  touch  his  altars,  yet  might  not  touch  his 
hill ;  and  if  a  beast  touch  it,  he  must  die  ;  yet  so  as  no  hands  may 
touch  that,  which  hath  touched  the  hill.  Unreasonableness  might 
seem  to  be  an  excuse  in  these  creatures ;  that  therefore  which  is 
death  to  a  beast,  must  needs  be  capital  to  them,  whose  reason 
should  guide  them  to  avoid  presumption.  Those  Israelites,  which 
saw  God  every  day  in  the  pillar  of  fire  and  the  cloud,  must  not 
come  near  him  in  the  mount.  God  loves  at  once  familiarity  and 
fear  ;  familiarity  in  our  conversation,  and  fear  in  his  commands. 
He  loves  to  be  acquainted  with  men,  in  the  walks  of  their  obe- 
dience ;  yet  he  takes  state  upon  him  in  his  ordinances,  and  will  be 
trembled  at,  in  his  word  and  judgments. 

I  see  the  difference  of  God's  carriage  to  men  in  the  Law  and  in 
the  Gospel  :  there,  the  very  hill  where  he  appeared  may  not  be 
touched  of  the  purest  Israelite  ;  here,  the  hem  of  his  garment  is 
touched  bv  the  woman,  that  had  the  flux  of  blood,  yea,  his  very 
face  was  touched  with  the  lips  of  Judas :  there,  the  very  earth 
was  prohibited  them  on  which  he  .descended  ;  here,  his  very  body 
and  blood  is  proffered  to  our  touch  and  taste.  Oh  the  marvellous 
kindness  of  our  God  !  How  unthankful  are  we,  if  we  do  not  ac- 
knowledge this  mercy  above  his  ancient  people  !  They  were  his 
own  ;  yet  strangers,  in  comparison  of  our  liberty.  It  is  our  shame 
and  sin,  if,  in  these  means  of  entireness  we  be  no  better  acquaint- 
ed with  God,  than  they  whicli  in  their  greatest  familiarity  were 
commanded  aloof. 

God  was  ever  wonderful  in  his  works,  and  fearful  in  his  judg- 
ments ;  but  he  was  never  so  terrible  in  the  execution  of  his  will,  as 
now  in  the  promulgation  of  it.  Here  was  nothing  but  a  majestical 
terror  in  the  e}-es,  in  the  ears  of  the  Israelites  ;  as  if  God  meant  to 
shew  them  by  this,  how  fearful  he  could  be.  Here  was  the  light- 
ning darted  in  their  eyes,  the  thunders  roaring  in  their  ears,  the 
trumpet  of  God  drowning  the' thunder-claps,  the  voice  of  God 
out-speaking  the  trumpet  of  the  angel ;  the  cloud  enwrapping,  the 
smoke  ascending,  the  fire  flaming,  the  mount  trembling,  Moses 
climbing  and  quaking,  paleness  and  death  in  the  face  of  Israel,  up- 
roar in  the  elements,  and  all  the  glory  of  heaven  turned  into  ter- 
ror. In  the  destruction  of  the  first  world,  there  were  clouds  with- 
out fire  ;  in  the  destruction  of  Sodom,  there  was  fire  raining  with- 
out clouds  ;  but  here  were  fire,  smoke,  clouds,  thunder,  earth- 
quakes, and  whatsoever  might  work  more  astonishment,  than  ever 
was  in  any  vengeance  indicted. 

And  if  the  law  were  thus  given,  how  shall  it  be  required  ?  If 


THE  LAW. 


101 


such  were  the  proclamation  of  God's  statutes,  what  shall  the  ses- 
sions be  ?  I  see,  and  tremble  at  the  resemblance.  The  trumpet  of 
the  angel  called  unto  the  one;  the  voice  of  an  archangel,  the  trum- 
pet of  God,  shall  summon  us  to  the  other.  To  the  one,  Moses, 
that  climbed  up  that  hill,  and  alone  saw  it,  says,  God  came  with 
ten  thousands  of  his  saints ;  in  the  other,  thousand  thousands  shall 
minister  to  hivi,  and  ten  thousand  thousands  shall  stand  before  him. 
In  the  one,  Mount  Sinai  only  was  on  a  flame  ;  all  the  world  shall  be 
so,  in  the  other.  In  the  one,  there  were  fire,  smoke,  thunder,  and 
lightning  ;  in  the  other,  a  fiery  stream  shall  issue  from  him,  where- 
with the  heavens  shall  be  dissolved,  and  the  elements  shall  melt 
away  with  a  noise.  O  God,  how  powerful  art  thou  to  inflict  ven- 
geance upon  sinners,  who  didst  thus  forbid  sin  !  and  if  thou  wert 
so  terrible  a  Lawgiver,  what  a  Judge  shalt  thou  appear  !  What 
shall  become  of  the  breakers  of  so  fiery  a  law  ?  Oh  where  shall 
those  appear  that  are  guilty  of  the  transgressing  that  law,  whose 
very  delivery  was  little  less  than  death  ?  If  our  God  should  exact 
his  law  but  in  the  same  rigour  wherein  he  gave  it,  sin  could  not 
quit  the  cost :  but  now  the  fire  wherein  it  was  delivered,  was  but 
terrifying;  the  fire  wherein  it  shall  be  required,  is  consuming. 
Happy  are  those  that  are  from  under  the  terrors  of  that  law,  winch 
was  given  in  fire,  and  in  fire  shall  be  required. 

God  would  have  Israel  see,  that  they  had  not  to  do  with 
some  impotent  commander,  that  is  fain  to  publish  his  laws  with- 
out noise,  in  dead  paper  ;  which  can  more  easily  enjoin,  than 
punish ;  or  descry,  than  execute  :  and  therefore,  before  he  gives 
them  a  law,  he  shews  them  that  he  can  command  heaven,  earth, 
fire,  air,  in  revenge  of  the  breach  of  the  law ;  that  they  could 
not  but  think  it  deadly  to  displease  such  a  Lawgiver,  or  violate 
such  dreadful  statutes  ;  that  they  might  see  all  the  elements, 
examples  of  that  obedience,  which  they  should  yield  unto  their 
Maker. . 

This  fire,  wherein  the  law  was  given,  is  still  in  it  ;  and  will  never 
out:  hence  are  those  terrors  which  it  flashes  in  every  conscience, 
that  hath  felt  remorse  of  sin.  Every  man's  heart  is  a  Sinai,  and 
resembles  to  him  both  heaven  and  hell.  The  sting  of  death  is  sin, 
and  the  strength  of  sin  is  the  law. 

That  they  might  see  he  could  find  out  their  closest  sins,  he  de- 
livers his  law  in  the  light  of  fire,  from  out  of  the  smoke  ;  that  they 
might  see  what  is  due  to  their  sins,  they  see  fire  above,  to  represent 
the  fire  that  should  be  below  them  ;  that  they  might  know  he  could 
waken  their  security,  the  thunder  and  louder  voice  of  God  speak 
to  their  hearts.  That  they  might  see  what  their  hearts  should  do, 
the  earth  quakes  under  them.  That  they  might  see  they  could 
not  shift  their  appearance,  the  angels  call  them  together.  O 
royal  law,  and  mighty  law-giver  !  How  could  they  think  of  having 
any  other  God,  that  had  such  proofs  of  this  !  How  could  they 
think  of  making  any  resemblance  of  him,  whom  they  saw  could  not 
be  seen,  and  whom  they  saw  in  not  being  seen,  infinite  ?  How 
could  they  think  of  daring  to  profane  his  name,  whom  they 


102  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

heard  to  name  himself,  with  that  voice,  Jehovah  ?  How  could 
they  think  of  standing  with  him  for  a  day,  whom  they  saw  to  com- 
mand that  heaven,  which  makes  and  measures  day  r  How  could 
they  think  of  disobeying  his  deputies,  whom  they  saw  so  able  to 
revenge  ?  How  could  they  think  of  killing,  when  they  were  half 
dead  with  the  fear  of  him,  that  could  kill  both  body  and  soul  ? 
How  could  they  think  of  the  flames  of  lust,  that  saw  such  fires  of 
vengeance  ?  How  could  they  think  of  stealing  from  others,  that 
saw  whose  the  heaven  and  earth  were  to  dispose  of  at  his  pleasure  ? 
How  could  thev  think  of  speaking  falsely,  that  heard  God  speak  in 
so  fearful  a  tone  ?  How  could  they  think  of  coveting  others  goods, 
that  saw  how  weak  and  uncertain  a  right  they  had  to  their  own  ? 
Yea,  to  us  was  his  law  so  delivered  ;  to  us  in  them  :  neither  had 
there  been  such  state  in  the  promulgation  of  it,  if  God  had  not 
intended  it  for  eternity.  We  men,  that  so  fear  the  breach  of  hu- 
man laws,  for  some  small  mulcts  of  forfeiture ;  how  should  we 
fear  thee,  O  Lord,  that  canst  cast  body  and  soul  into  hell ! 

Exod.  xix,  xx. 

THE  GOLDEN  CALF. 

It  was  not  much  above  a  month,  since  Israel  made  their  covenant 
with  God ;  since  they  trembled  to  hear  him  say,  Thou  shall  have 
no  other  Gods  but  me ;  since  they  saw  Moses  part  from  them,  and 
climb  up  the  hill  to  God  :  and  now  they  say,  Make  us  Gods,  we 
know  not  what  is  become  of  this  Moses.  O  ye  mad  Israelites,  have 
ye  so  soon  forgotten  that  fire  and  thunder,  which  you  heard  and 
saw  ?  Is  that  smoke  vanished  out  of  your  mind,  as  soon  as  out  of 
your  sight  ?  Could  your  hearts  cease  to  tremble  with  the  earth  ? 
Can  ye  in  the  very  sight  of  Sinai,  call  for  other  gods  ?  And,  for 
Moses  ;  was  it  not  for  your  sakes,  that  he  thrust  himself  into  the 
midst  of  that  smoke  and  fire,  which  ye  feared  to  see  afar  oil'  ?  Was 
he  not  now  gone,  after  so  many  sudden  embassages,  to  be  your 
leaguer  with  God  ?  If  ye  had  seen  him  take  to  his  heels,  and  run 
away  from  you  into  the  wilderness,  what  could  ye  have  said  or 
done  more  ?  Behold,  our  better  'Moses  was  with  us  awhile  upon 
earth,  he  is  now  ascended  into  the  mount  of  heaven,  to  mediate  for 
us  ;  shall  we  now  think  of  another  Saviour  ?  Shall  we  not  hold  it 
our  happiness,  that  he  is  for  our  sakes  above  ? 

And  what  if  your  Moses  had  been  gone  for  ever  ?  Must  yo 
therefore  have  gods  made  ?  If  ye  had  said,  "  Choose  us  another 
governor,"  it  had  been  a  wicked  and  unthankful  motion  ;  ye  were 
too  unworthy  of  a  Moses,  that  could  so  soon  forget  him  :  but  to 
say,  Make  us  Gods,  was  absurdly  impious.  Moses  was  not  your 
God,  but  your  governor  :  neither  was  the  presence  of  God  tied  to 
Moses  :  You  saw  God  still  when  he  was  gone,  in  his  pillar,  and  in 
his  manna,  and  yet  ye  say,  Make  zis  Gods. 

Every  word  is  full  of  senseless  wickedness.  How  many  gods 
would  you  have  ?  -  or  what  gods  are  those  that  can  be  made  ?  or, 
whatever  the  idolatrous  Egyptians  did,  with  what  face  can  ye, 


THE  GOLDEN  CALF. 


103 


after  so  many  miraculous  obligations,  speak  of  another  God  ?  Had 
the  voice  of  God  scarce  done  thundering  in  your  ears  ?  Did  you 
so  lately  hear  and  see  him  to  be  an  infinite  God  ?  Did  ye  quake 
to  hear  him  say  out  of  the  midst  of  the  flames,  I  am  Jehovah  thy 
God:  thou  shalt  have  110  Gods  but  Ale?  Did  ye  acknowledge  God 
your  Maker,  and  do  you  now  speak  of  making  of  Gods  ?  If  ye  had 
said,  "  Make  us  another  man  to  go  before  us",  it  had  been  an  im- 
possible suit.  Aaron  might  help  to  mar  you  and  himself;  he 
could  not  make  one  hair  of  a  man  :  and  do  ye  say,  Make  us  Gods  ? 
And  what  should  those  Gods  do  ?  Go  before  you.  How  could  they 
go  before  you  that  cannot  stand  alone  r  your  help  makes  them  to 
stand,  and  yet  they  must  conduct  you. 

Oh  the  impatient  ingratitude  of  carnal  minds  !  Oh  the  sottish- 
ness  of  idolatry  !  Who  would  not  have  said,  "  Moses  is  not  with 
us,  but  he  is  with  God  for  us  ?  He  stays  long  :  he,  that  called  him, 
withholds  him :  his  delay  is  for  our  sakes,  as  well  as  his  ascent. 
Though  we  see  him  not,  we  will  hope  for  him  ;  his  favours  to  us 
have  deserved  not  to  be  rejected  :  or,  if  God  will  keep  him  from 
us;  he,  that  withholds  him,  can  supply  him  ;  he,  that  sent  him, 
can  lead  us  without  him  ;  his  fire  and  cloud  are  all-sufficient ;  God 
hath  said  and  done  enough  for  us,  to  make  us  trust  him :  we  will, 
we  can  have  no  other  God ;  we  care  not  for  any  other  guide." 
But  behold  here  is  none  of  this  :  Moses  stays  but  some  five-and- 
thirty  days,  and  now  he  is  forgotten,  and  is  become  but  this 
Moses:  yea,  God  is  forgotten,  with  him;  and,  as  if  God^  and 
Moses  had  been  lost  at  once,  they  say,  Make  us  Gods.  Natural 
men  must  have  God  at  their  bent ;  and  if  he  come  not  at  a  call,  he 
is  cast  off,  and  they  take  themselves  to  their  own  shifts :  like  as 
the  Chinese  whip  their  gods,  when  they  answer  them  not;  whereas 
his  holy  ones  wait  long,  and  seek  him ;  and  not  only  in  their  sink- 
ing, but  from  the  bottom  of  the  deeps,  call  upon  htm;  and  though 
he  kill  them,  will  trust  in  him. 

Superstition  besots  the  minds  of  men,  and  blinds  the  eye  of 
reason;  and  first  makes  them  not  men,  ere  it  makes  them  ido- 
laters. How  else  could  he,  that  is  the  image  of  God,  fall  down 
to  the  images  of  creatures  ?  how  could  our  forefathers  have  so 
doted  upon  stocks  and  stones,  if  they  had  been  themselves  ? 
As  the  Syrians  were  first  blinded,  and  then  led  into  the  midst 
of  Samaria,  so  are  idolaters  first  bereaved  of  their  wits  and  com- 
mon sense,  and  afterwards  are  carried  brutishly  into  all  palpable 
impiety. 

Who  woidd  not  have  been  ashamed  to  hear  this  answer  from  the 
brother  of  Moses,  Pluck  off  your  ear-rings  ?  He  should  have  said, 
*i  Pluck  this  idolatrous  thought  out  of  your  hearts  :"  and  now,  in- 
stead of  chiding,  he  soothes  them  ;  and,  as  if  he  had  been  no  kin  to 
Moses,  he  helps  to  lead  them  back  agaiti  from  God  to  Egypt.  The 
people  importuned  him,  perhaps  with  threats.  He  that  had  waded 
through  all  the  menaces  of  Pharaoh,  doth  he  now  shrink  at  ihj 
threats  of  his  own  ?  Moses  is  not  afraid  of  the  terrors  of  God  :  his 
faith,  that  carried  him  through  the  water,  led  him  up  to  the  fire  of 


104  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

God's  presence  ;  whilst  his  brother  Aaron  fears  the  faces  of  those 
men,  which  he  lately  saw  pale  with  the  fear  of  their  glorious  law- 
giver. As  if  he,  that  forbad  other  gods,  could  not  have  maintained 
his  own  act  and  agent  against  men.  Sudden  fears,  when  they  have 
possessed  weak  minds,  lead  them  to  shameful  errors.  Importunity 
or  violence  may  lessen,  but  they  cannot  excuse  a  fault.  Wherefore 
was  he  a  governor,  but  to  depress  their  disordered  motions  ?  Faci- 
lity of  yielding  to  a  sin,  or  wooing  it  with  our  voluntary  suit,  is  a 
higher  stair  of  evil ;  but,  even  at  last  to  be  won  to  sin,  is  damnable. 
It  is  good  to  resist  any  onset  of  sin  ;  but  one  condescension  loses  all 
the  thanks  of  our  opposition.  What  will  it  avail  a  man,  that  others 
are  plagued  for  soliciting  him,  while  he  smartcth  for  yielding  i  If 
both  be  in  hell,  what  ease  is  it  to  him  that  another  is  deeper  in 
the  pit? 

What  now  did  Aaron  ?  Behold,  he,  that  alone  was  allowed  to 
climb  up  the  trembling  and  fiery  hill  of  Sinai,  with  Moses,  and  heard 
God  say,  Thou  shall  not  make  to  thyself  any  graven  image,  for 
J  am  a  jealous  God,  as  if  he  meant  particularly  to  prevent  this 
act,  within  one  month  calls  for  their  ear-rings,  makes  the  graven 
image  of  a  calf,  erects  an  altar,  consecrates  a  day  to  it,  calls  it  their 
god,  and  weeps  not  to  see  them  dance  before  it.  It  is  a  miserable 
thing,  when  governors  humour  the  people  in  their  sins;  and. in- 
stead of  making  up  the  breach,  enlarge  it.  Sin  will  take  heart  by 
the  approbation  of  the  meanest  looker-on  ;  but  if  authority  once 
second  it,  it  grows  impudent :  as  contrarily,  where  the  public  go- 
vernment opposes  evil  (though  it  be  under-hand  practised,  not 
without  fear)  there  is  life  in  that  state. 

Aaron  might  have  learned  better  counsel  of  his  brother's  exam- 
ple. When  they  came  to  him  with  stones  in  their  hands,  and.  said, 
Give  us  water,  he  ran  as  roundly  to  God,  with  prayers  in  his  mouth ; 
so  should  Aaron  have  done,  when  they  said,  Give  us  Gods  :  but  he 
weakly  runs  to  their  ear-rings,  that  which  should  be  made  then- 
god;  not  to  the  true  God,  which  they  had,  and  forsook.  Who 
can  promise  to  himself  freedom  from  gross  infirmities,  when  he,  that 
went  up  into  the  mount,  comes  down,  and  doth  that  in  the  valley, 
which  he  heard  forbidden  in  the  hill  f 

I  see  yet,  and  wonder  at  the  mercy  of  that  God,  which  had  justly 
called  himself  jealous.  This  very  Aaron,  whose  infirmity  had  yielded 
to  so  foul  an  idolatry,  is  afterwards  chosen  by  God,  to  be  a  priest 
to  himself :  he,  that  had  set  up  an  altar  to  the  calf,  must  serve  at  the 
altar  of  God  :  he,  that  had  melted  and  carved  out  the  calf  for  a  god, 
must  sacrifice  calves,  and  rams,  and  bullocks  unto  the  true  God  : 
he,  that  consecrated  a  day  to  the  idol,  is  himself  consecrated  to 
him,  which  was  dishonoured  by  the  idol.  The  grossest  of  all 
sins  cannot  prejudice  the  calling  of  God;  yea,  as  the  light  is  best 
seen  in  darkxiess,  the  mercy  of  God  is  most  magnified  in  our  un- 
worthiness. 

What  a  difference  God  puts  between  persons  and  sins  !  While 
so  many  thousand  Israelites  were  slain,  that  had  stomachfully  de- 
sired the  idol ;  Aaron,  that  in  weakness  condescended,  is  both 


THE  GOLDEN  CALF.  105 

pardoned  the  fact,  and  afterwards  laden  with  honour  from  God. 
Let  no  man  take  heart  to  sin,  from  mercy:  he,  that  can  purpose 
to  sin  upon  the  knowledge  of  God's  mercy  in  the  remission  of 
infirmities,  presumes,  and  makes  himself  a  wilful  offender.  It  is 
no  comfort  to  the  wilful,  that  there  is  remission  to  the  weak  and 
penitent. 

The  ear-rings  are  plucked  off :  Egyptian  jewels  are  fit  for  an 
idolatrous  use.  This  very  gold  was  contagious.  It  had  been  better 
the  Israelites  had  never  borrowed  these  ornaments,  than  that  they 
should  pay  them  back  to  .the  idolatry  of  their  first  owners.  What 
cost  the  superstitious  Israelites  are  content  to  be  at  for  this  lewd  de- 
votion !  The  riches  and  pride  of  their  outward  habit,  are  they  wil- 
ling to  part  with,  to  their  molten  god ;  as  glad  to  have  their  ears 
bare,  that  they  might  fill  their  eyes.  No  gold  is  too  dear,  for  their 
idol ;  each  man  is  content  to  spoil  his  wives  and  children,  of  that 
whereof  they  spoiled  the  Egyptians. 

Where  are  those  worldlings,  that  cannot  abide  to  be  at  any  cost 
for  their  religion  ;  which  could  be  content  to  do  God  chargelcss 
service  ?  These  very  Israelites,  that  were  ready  to  give  gold, 
not  out  of  their  purses,  but  from  their  very  ears  to  misdevotion, 
shall  once  condemn  them.  O  sacrilege  succeeding  to  supersti- 
tion !  of  old  they  were  ready  to  give  gold  to  the  false  service  of 
God  ;  we,  to  take  away  gold  from  the  true :  how  do  we  see  men 
prodigal  to  their  lusts  and  ambitions,  and  we  hate  not  to  be  nig- 
gards to  God ! 

This  gold  is  riflw  grown  to  a  calf ;  let  no  man  think  that  form 
came  forth  casually  out  of  the  melted  ear-rings  :  this  shape  was  in- 
tended by  the  Israelites,  and  perfected  by  Aaron  :  they  brought 
this  god  in  their  hearts  with  them  out  of  Egypt,  and  now  they  set  it 
up  in  their  eyes.  Still  doth  Egypt  hurt  them  :  servitude  was  the 
least  evil  that  Israel  receives  from  Egypt;  for  that  sent  them  still 
to  the  true  God,  but  this  idolatrous  example  led  them  to  a  false. 
The  very  sight  of  evil  is  dangerous  ;  and  it  is  hard  for  the  heart 
not  to  run  into  those  sins,  to  which  the  eye  and  ear  are  inured  :  not 
out  of  love,  but  custom,  we  fall  into  some  offences. 

The  Israelites  wrought  so  long  in  the  furnaces  of  the  Egyp- 
tians' brick,  that  they  have  brought  forth  a  molten  calf.  The 
black  calf  with  the  white  spots,  which  they  saw  worshipped  in 
Egypt,  hath  stolen  their  hearts  ;  and  they,  which  before  would 
have  been  at  the  Egyptian  flesh-pots,  would  now  be  at  their  de- 
votions. How  many  have  fallen  into  a  fashion  of  swearing,  scoff- 
ing, drinking,  out  of  the  usual  practice  of  others  ;  as  those,  that 
live  in  an  ill  air,  are  infected  with  diseases  !  A  man  may  pass 
through  Ethiopia  unchanged  ;  but  he  cannot  dwell  there,  and  not 
be  discoloured. 

Their  sin  was  bad  enough,  let  not  our  uncharitableness  make  it 
worse  :  no  man  may  think  they  have  so  put  off  humanity  and  sense 
with  their  religion,  as  to  think  that  calf  a  God  ;  or  that  this  idol, 
which  they  saw  yesterday  made,  did  bring  them  out  of  Egypt 
,three  months  ago.    This  were  to  make  them  more  beasts  than  that 


106 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


calf,  which  this  image  represented  :  or  if  they  should  have  been 
so  insensate,  can  we  think  that  Aaron  could  be  thus  desperately- 
mad  ?  The  image  and  the  holy  day  were  both  to  one  Deity  :  To- 
morrow is  the  holyday  of  the  Lord  your  God.  It  was  the  true 
God  they  meant  to  worship  in  the  calf ;  and  yet  at  best  this  ido- 
latry is  shameful.  It  is  no  marvel  if  this  foul  sin  seek  pretences  ; 
yet  no  excuse  can  hide  the  shame  of  such  a  face.  God's  jea- 
lousy is  not  stirred  only  by  the  rivalry  of  a  false  god,  but  of  a 
false  worship  :  nothing  is  more  dangerous,  than  to  mint  God's  ser- 
vices in  our  own  brain. 

God  sends  down  Moses  to  remedy  this  sin.  He  could  as  easily 
have  prevented,  as  redressed  it.  He  knew  before  Moses  came  up, 
what  Israel  would  do  before  he  came  down  :  like  as  he  knew  the  two 
tableswould  be  broken,  before  he  gave  them.  God  most  wisely  per- 
mits, and  ordinates  sin  to  his  own  ends,  without  our  excuse  ;  and 
though  he  could  easily  by  his  own  hands  remedy  evils,  yet  he  will 
do  it  by  means,  both  ordinary  and  subordinate.  It  is  not  for  us  to 
look  for  any  immediate  redress  from  God,  when  we  have  a  Moses, 
by  whom  it  may  be  wrought :  since  God  himself  expects  this  from 
man,  why  should  man  expect  it  from  God  ? 

Now  might  Moses  have  found  a  time  to  have  been  even  with 
Israel,  for  all  their  unthankfulness,  and  mutinous  insurrections  ; 
Let  me  alone  :  /  will  consume  them,  and  make  thee  a  mighty  nation. 
Moses  should  not  need  to  solicit  God  for  revenge ;  God  solicits 
him,  in  a  sort,  for  leave  to  revenge.  Who  would  look  for  such  a 
word  from  God  to  man,  Let  me  alone  ?  As  yet,  Moses  had  said 
nothing  ;  before  he  opens  his  mouth,  God  prevents  his  importu- 
nity, as  foreseeing  that  hoi}'  violence,  winch  the  requests  of  Moses 
would  offer  to  him.  Moses  stood  trembling  before  the  majesty  of 
his  Maker  ;  and  yet  hears  him  say,  Let  me  alone.  The  mercy  of 
our  God  hath,  as  it  were,  obliged  his  power  to  the  faith  of  men  : 
the  fervent  prayers  of  the  faithful  hold  the  hands  of  the  Almighty. 
As  I  find  it  said  afterwards  of  Christ,  That  he  could  do  no  miracles 
there,  because  of  their  unbelief ;  so  now,  I  hear  God,  as  if  lie  could 
not  do  execution  upon  Israel  because  of  Moses's  faith,  say,  Let 
me  alone,  that  lmay  consume  them. 

We  all  naturally  affect  propriety,  and  like  our  own  so  much 
better,  as  it  is  freer  from  partners.  Every  one  would  be  glad  to 
say,  with  that  proud  one,  / am,  and  there  is  none  beside  vie:  so 
much  the  more  sweetly  would  this  message  have  sounded  to  nature, 
/  will  consume  them,  and  make  of  thee  a  might}/  nation:  how 
many  endeavour  that  not,  without  danger  of  curses  and  uproar, 
which  was  voluntarily  tendered  unto  Moses  !  Whence  are  our 
depopulations  and  inclosures,  but  for  that  men  cannot  abide  either 
fellows  or  neighbours  :  but  how  graciously  doth  Moses  strive  with 
God,  against  his  own  preferment  !  If  God  had  threatened,  "  I 
will  consume  thee,  and  make  of  them  a  mighty  nation;"  I  doubi 
whether  he  could  have  been  more  moved.  The  more  a  man  can 
leave  himself  behind  him,  and  aspire  to  a  care  of  community 3  the 


THE  GOLDEN  CALF.  107 

more  spiritual  he  is.  Nothing  makes  a  man  so  good  a  patriot  as 
religion.  ' 

Oh  the  sweet  disposition  of  Moses  ;  fit  for  him  that  should  be 
familiar  with  God  !  He  saw  they  could  he  content  to  be  merry 
and  happy  without  him  ;  he  would  not  be  happy  without  them. 
They  had  professed  to  have  forgotten  him  ;  -lie  slacks  not  to  sue 
for  them.  He,  that  will  ever  hope  for  good  himself,  must  return 
good  for  evil  unto  others. 

Yet  was  it  not  Israel  so  much  that  Mcses  respected,  as  God  in 
Israel.  He  was  thrifty  and  jealous  for  his  Maker  ;  and  would  not 
have  him  lose  the  glory  of  his  mighty  deliverances  ;  nor  would 
abide  a  pretence  for  any  Egyptian  dog  to  bark  against  the  pow- 
erful work  of  God  ;  Wherefore  shall  the  Egyptians  say  ?  If  Israel 
could  have  perished  without  dishonour  to  God,  perhaps  his  haired 
to  their  idolatry  would  have  overcome  his  natural  love,  and  he 
had  let  God  alone  :  now,  so  tender  is  he  over  the  name  of  God, 
that  he  would  rather  have  Israel  escape  with  a  sin,  than  God's 
glory  should  be  blemished  in  the  opinions  of  men,  by  a  just  judg- 
ment. He  saw  that  the  eyes  and  tongues  of  all  the  world  were 
intent  upon  Israel ;  a  people  so  miraculously  fetched  from  Egypt, 
whom  tnesea  gave  way  to,  whom  lieavenfed,  whom  the  rock  wa- 
tered, whom  the  fire  and  cloud  guarded,  which  heard  the  audible 
voice  of  God.  He  knew  withal,  how  ready  the  world  would  be  to 
misconstrue,  and  how  the  heathens  would  be  ready  to  cast  impu- 
tations of  levity  or  impotence  upon  God ;  and  therefore  s  iys, 
What  will  the  Egyptians  say  ?  Happy  is  that  man,  which  can 
make  God's  glory  the  scope  of  all  his  actions  and  desires  ;  neither 
cares  for  his  own  welfare,  nor  fears  the  miseries  of  others,  but 
with  respect  to  God  in  both. 

If  God  had  not  given  Moses  this  care  of  his  glory,  he  could  not 
have  had  it;  and  now  his  goodness  takes  it  so  kindly,  as  if  himself 
had  received  a  favour  from  his  creature  ;  and  for  a  reward  of  the 
grace  he  had  wrought,  promises  not  to  do  that  which  he  threatened. 

But  what  needs  God  to  care  for  the  speecli  of  the  Egyptians ; 
men,  infidels  ?  And  if  they  had  been  good,  yet  their  censure 
should  have  been  unjust.  Shall  God  care  for  the  tongues  of  men  ; 
the  holy  God,  for  the  tongues  of  infidels?  The  very  Israelites, 
now  they  were  from  under  the  hands  of  Egypt,  cared  not  for  their 
words  ;  and  shall  the  God  of  heaven  regard  that,  which  is  not 
worth  the  regard  of  men  ?  Their  tongues  could  not  walk  against. 
God,  but  from  himself;  and  if  it  could  have  been  the  worse  for 
him,  would  he  have  permitted  it  ?  But,  O  God,  how  dainty  art 
thou  of  thine  honour,  that  thou  canst  not  endure  the  worst  of  "men 
should  liave  any  colour  to  taint  it  !  What  do  we  men  stand  upon 
our  justice  and  innocence,  with  neglect  of  all  unjust  censures ; 
when  that  infinite  God,  whom  no  censures  can  reach,  will  not 
abide  that  the  very  Egyptians  should  falsely  tax  his  power  and 
mercy  ?  Wise  men  must  care,  not  only  to  deserve  well,  but  to 
hear  well ;  and  to  wipe  off,  not  only  crimes,  but  censures. 

There  was  never  so  precious  a  monument,  as  the  tables  written 


10S  CONTEMPLATION'S. 

with  God's  own  hand.  If  we  see  but  the  stone  which  Jacob's  head 
rested  on,  or  on  which  the  foot  of  Christ  did  once  tread,  we 
look  upon  it  with  more  than  ordinary  respect ;  with  what  eve 
should  we  have  beheld  this  stone,  which  was  hewen  and  written 
with  the  very  finger  of  God  ?  Any  manuscript  scroll  written  by 
the  hand  of  a  famous  man,  is  laid  up  amongst  our  jewels;  what 
place  then  should  we  have  given  to  the  hand-writing  of  the  Al- 
mighty !  That,  which  he  hath  dictated  to  his  servants  the  pro- 
phets, challenges  just  honour  from  us  ;  how  doth  that  deserve  ve- 
neration, which  his  own  hand  wrote  immediatelv  ! 

Prophecies  and  evangelical  discourses  he  hath  written  bv  others  ; 
never  did  he  write  anv  thing  himself  but  these  tables  of  the  law  : 
neither  did  he  ever  speak  anv  thing  audiblvto  the  whole  of  mankind, 
but  it  ;  the  hand,  the  stone,  the  law  were  all  his.  Bv  how  much 
more  precious  this  record  was,  by  so  much  was  the  fault  greater,  of 
defacing  it.  W  hat  king  holds  it  less  than  rebellion,  to  tear  his 
Writing,  and  blemish  his  seal  ?  At  the  first  he  engraved  his  image 
in  the  table  of  man's  heart ;  Adam  blurred  the  image,  but,  through 
God's  mercv,  saved  the  tablet.  Now  he  writes  his  will  in  the 
tables  of  stone  ;  Moses  breaks  the  tables,  and  defaces  the  writing  : 
if  they  had  been  given  him  for  himself,  the  author,  the  matter  had 
deserved,  that,  as  they  were  written  in  stone  for  permanency,  so  they 
should  be  kept  for  ever  ;  and  as  they  were  everlasting  in  use,  so 
they  should  be  in  preservation.  Had  thev  been  written  in  clay, 
they  could  but  have  been  broken  ;  but  now  they  were  given  for  all 
Israel,  for  all  mankind.  He  was  but  the  messenger,  not  the  owner. 
Howsoever  therefore  Israel  had  deserved,  bv  breaking  this  cove- 
nant with  God,  to  have  this  monument  of  God's  covenant  with  them 
broken  by  the  same  hand  that  wrote  it,  yet  how  durst  Moses  thus 
carelessly  cast  away  the  treasure  of  all  the  world  ;  and  by  his  hands 
undo  that,  which  was  with  such  cost  and  care  done  by  his  Cre- 
ator r  How  durst  he  fail  the  trust  of  that  God,  whose  pledge  he 
received  with  awe  and  reverence  ?  He  that  expostulated  with  God, 
to  have  Israel  live  and  prosper,  whv  would  he  deface  the  rule  of 
their  life,  in  the  keeping  whereof  they  should  prosper  ? 

I  see,  that  forty  days'  talk  with  God  cannot  bereave  a  man  of 
passionate  infirmity  :  he,  that  was  the  meekest  upon  earth,  in  a 
sudden  indignation  abandons  that,  which  in  cold  blood  he  would 
have  held  faster  than  his  life  :  he  forgets  the  law  written,  when  he 
sees  it  broken  ;  his  zeal  for  God  hath  transported  him  from  him- 
self, and  his  duty  to  the  charge  of  God  :  he  more  hates  the  golden 
calf,  wherein  he  sees  engraven  the  idolatry  of  Israel,  than  lie  ho- 
nours the  tables  of  stone,  wherein  God  had  engraven  his  com- 
mandments ;  and  more  longs  to  deface  the  idol,  than  he  cares  to 
preserve  the  tables,  Yet  that  God,  which  so  sharply  revenged  the 
breach  of  one  law  upon  the  Israelites,  checks  not  Moses  for  break- 
ing both  the  tables  of  the  law.  The  law  of  God  is  spiritual ;  the 
internal  breach  of  one  law  is  so  heinous,  that,  in  comparison  of  it, 
God  scarce  counts  the  breaking  of  the  outward  tables  a  breacli  of 
the  law.    The  goodness  of  God  winks  at  the  errors  of  honest  zeal, 


THE  GOLDEN  CALF.  109 

and  so  loves  the  strength  of  good  affections,  that  it  passeth  over 
their  infirmities  :  how  highly  God  doth  esteem  a  well-governed 
zeal,  when  his  mercy  crowns  it  with  all  the  faults  ! 

The  tables  had  not  offended  ;  the  calf  had,  and  Israel  in  it. 
Moses  takes  revenge  on  both :  he  burns  and  stamps  the  calf  to 
powder,  and  gives  it  Israel  to  drink  ;  that  they  might  have  it  in 
their  guts,  instead  of  their  eyes  :  how  he  hasteth  to  destroy  the 
idol,  wherein  they  sinned  !  that,  as  an  idol  is  nothing,  so  it  might 
be  brought  to  nothing  ;  and  atoms  and  dust  are  nearest  to  no- 
thing :  that,  instead  of  going  before  Israel,  it  might  pass  through 
them  ;  so  as  the  next  day  they  might  find  their  god  in  their 
excrements  ;  to  the  just  shame  of  Israel,  when  they  should  see 
their  new  God  cannot  defend  himself,  from  heing  either  nothing 
or  worse. 

Who  can  but  wonder,  to  see  a  multitude  of  so  many  hundred 
thousands,  when  Moses  came  running  down  the  hill,  to  turn  their 
eyes  from  their  god  to  him  ;  and  on  a  sudden,  instead  of  worship- 
ing their  idol,  to  batter  it  in  pieces,  in  the  very  height  of  the  no- 
velty !  instead  of  building  altars,  and  kindling  fires  to  it,  to  kindle 
a  hotter  fire  than  that,  wherewith  it  was  melted,  to  consume  it  ! 
instead  of  dancing  before  it,  to  abhor  and  deface  it ;  instead  of 
singing,  to  weep  before  it ! 

There  was  never  a  more  stiff-necked  people  ;  yet  I  do  not  hear 
any  one  of  them  say,  "  He  is  but  one  man,  We  are  many  ;  how 
easily  may  we  destroy  him,  rather  than  he  our  god  ?  If  his  bro- 
ther durst  not  resist  our  motion  in  making  it,  why  will  we  suffer 
him  to  dare  resist  the  keeping  of  it  ?  It  is  our  act,  and  we  will 
maintain  it."  Here  was  none  of  this  ;  but  an  humble  obeisance  to 
the  basest  and  bloodiest  revenge  that  Moses  shall  impose.  God 
hath  set  such  an  impression  of  majesty  in  the  face  of  lawful  au- 
thority, that  wickedness  is  confounded  in  itself  to  behold  it.  If 
from  hence  visible  powers  were  not  more  feared  than  the  invisible 
God,  the  world  would  be  over-run  with  outrage.  Sin  hath  such  a 
guiltiness  in  itself,  that  when  it  is  seasonably  checked,  it  pulls  in 
his  head,  and  seeks  rather  a  hiding-place  than  a  fort. 

The  idol  is  not  capable  of  a  further  revenge  ;  it  is  not  enough, 
unless  the  idolaters  smart :  the  gold  was  good,  if  the  Israelites  had 
not  been  evil :  so  great  a  sin  cannot  be  expiated  without  blood. 
Behold,  that  meek  spirit,  which  in  his  plea  with  God  would  rather 
perish  himself  than  Israel  should  perish,  arms  the  Levites  against 
their  brethren,  and  rejoices  to  see  thousands  of  the  Israelites  bleed, 
and  blesses  their  executioners. 

It  was  the  mercy  of  Moses  that  made  him  cruel :  he  had  been 
cruel  to  all,  if  some  had  not  found  him  cruel.  They  are  merciless 
hands,  which  are  not  sometimes  imbrued  in  blood  :  there  is  no  less 
charity,  than  justice,  in  punishing  sinners  with  death ;  God  de- 
lights no  less  in  a  killing  mercy,  than  in  a  pitiful  justice  :  some 
tender  hearts  would  be  ready  to  censure  the  rigour  of  Moses. 
"  Might  not  Israel  have  repented  and  lived  ?  Or  if  they  must  die, 
must  their  brethren's  hand  be  upon  them  ?  or,  if  their  throats  must 


110 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


be  cut  by  their  brethren-,  shall  it  be  done  in  the  very  beat  of  their 
sin  ?"  But  they  must  learn  a  difference  betwixt  pity  and  fondness, 
mercy  and  injustice.  Moses  had  a  heart  as  soft  as  theirs,  but 
more  hot ;  as  pitiful,  but  wiser.  He  was  a  good  physician,  and 
saw  that  Israel  could  not  live  unless  he  bled  ;  he  therefore  lets  out 
this  corrupt  blood,  to  save  the  whole  body.  There  cannot  be  a 
better  sacrifice  to  God,  tiian  the  blood  of  malefactors  ;  and  this 
first  sacrifice  so  pleased  God  in  the  hands  of  the  Levites,  that 
be  would  have  none  but  them  sacrifice  to  him  for  ever.  The 
blood  of  'he  idolatrous  Israelites  cleared  that  tribe  from  the  blood 
of  the  innocent  rShechemites.  Exod.  xxxii. 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 

BOOK  VI. 
—  ■     1       i  i  — i 

TO  THE  RIGHT  HONOURABLE 

THOMAS,  LORD  VISCOUNT  FENTON, 

CAPTAIN  OF  THE  ROYAL  GUARD  ; 
ONE  OF  HIS  MAJESTY'S  MOST  HONOURABLE  PRIVY  COUNSELLORS; 
ONE  OF  THE  HAPPY  RESCUERS  OF 
THE  DEAR  LIFE  OF  OUR  GRACIOUS  SOVEREIGN  LORD, 
A  WORTHY  PATTERN  OF  ALL  TRUE  HONOUR  : 
/.  J  I 

DEDICATES  THIS  PART  OF  HIS  MEDITATIONS,  AND  WISHETH  ALL  IN- 
CREASE OF  GRACE  AND  HAPPINESS. 


THE  VEIL  OF  MOSES. 

It  is  a  wonder,  that  neither  Moses  nor  any  Israelite  gathered  Hp  the 
shivers  of  the  former  tables;  every  shred  of  that  stone,  and  every 
letter  of  that  writing,  had"  been  a  relic  worth  laying  up  ;  but  he  well 
tew  how  headlong  the  people  were  to  superstition;  and  how  unsafe 
it  were  to  feed  that  disposition  in  them.  The  same  zeal,  that  burnt 
the  calf  to  ashes,  concealed  the  ruins  of  this  monument.  Holy 
things,  besides  their  use,  challenge  no  further  respect.  The  break- 
ing of  the  tables  did  as  good  as  blot  out  all  the  writing ;  and  the 
writing  defaced,  left  no  virtue  in  the  stone,  no  reverence  to  it. 

If  God  had  not  been  friends  with  Israel,  he  had  not  renewed  his 
law.  As  the  Israelites  were  wilfully  blind,  if  they  did  not  see  God's 
anger  in  the  tables  broken ;  so  could  they  not  but  hold  it  a  good  sign 
of  grace,  that  God  gave  them  his  testimonies. 

There  was  nothing,  wherein  Israel  outstripped  all  the  rest  of  the 
world  ihpre,  than  in  this  privilege ;  the  pledge  of  his  Covenant,  the 
law  written  with  God's  own  hand.  Oh  what  a  favour  then  is  it, 
where  God  bestows  his  Gospel  upon  any  nation.  .  That  was  but  a 
killing  letter ;  this  is  the  power  of  God  to  salvation.  Never  is  God 
thoroughly  displeased  with  any  people,  where  that  continues:  for, 
like  as  those  which  purpose  love,  when  they  fall  off,  call  for  their  to- 
kens back  again ;  so  when  God  begins  once  perfectly  to  mislike, 
the  first  thing  he  withdraws  is  his  Gospel. 

Israel  recovers  this  favour,  but  with  an  abatement ;  Hew  thee  two 
tables.    God  made  the  first  tables  :  the  matter,  the  form  was -his  ; 


112  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

now  Moses  must  hew  the  next :  as  God  created  the  first  man  after 
his  own  image,  but,  that  once  defaced,  Adam  begat  Cain  after  his 
own  ;  or,  as  the  first  temple  raised,  a  second  was  built,  yet  so  far 
short,  that  the  Israelites  wept  at  the  sight  of  it.  The  first"  works  of 
God  are  still  the  purest:  those,  that  he  secondarily  works  by  us,  de- 
cline in  their  perfection.  It  was  reason,  that  though  God  had  for- 
given Israel,  they  should  still  find  they  had  sinned.  They  might 
sec  the  footsteps  of  displeasure  in  the  differences  of  the  agent. 

When  God  had  told  Moses  before,  /  will  not  go  before  Israel, 
but  my  angel  shall  lead  /hem;  Moses  so  noted  the  difference,  that 
he  rested  not  till  God  himself  undertook  their  conduct:  so  might 
the  Israelites  have  noted  some  remainders  of  offence,  while,  instead 
of  that  which  his  own  hand  did  formerly  make,  he  saith  now,  Hew 
thee ;  and  vet  these  second  tables  are  kept  reverently  in  the  ark, 
when  the  other  lay  mouldered  in  shivers  upon  Sinai ;  like  as  the  re- 
paired image  of  God  in  our  regeneration  is  preserved,  perfected,  and 
laid  up  at  last  safe  in  heaven  ;  whereas  the  first  image  of  our  created 
innocence  is  quite  defaced :  so  the  second  temple  liad  the  glory  of 
Christ's  exhibition ,  though  meaner  in  frame.  The  merciful  respects 
of  God  are  not  tied  to  glorious  outsides,  or  the  inward  worthiness  of 
things  or  persons :  he  hath  chosen  the  weak  and  simple,  to  con- 
found the  wise  and  might}". 

Yet  God  did  this  work  by  Moses  ;  Moses  hewed,  and  God  wrote: 
our  true  Moses  repairs  that  law  of  God,  which  we  in  our  nature  had 
broken  ;  he  revives  it  for  us,  and  it  is  accepted  of  God,  no  less  than 
if  the  first  characters  of  his  law  had  been  still  entire.  We  can  give 
nothing  but  the  table  ;  it  is  God  that  must  write  in  it.  Our  hearts 
are  but  a  bare  board,  till  God  by  his  finger  engrave  his  law  in  them  ; 
yea,  Lord,  we  are  a  rough  quarry  ;  hew  thou  us  out,  and  square  us 
fit  for  thee  to  write  upon. 

Well  mav  we  marvel,  to  see  Moses,  after  this  oversight,  admit- 
ted to  this  charge  again:  who  of  us  would  not  have  said,  "  Your 
care  indeed  deserves  trust ;  you  did  so  carefully  keep  the  first  ta- 
bles, that  it  would  do  well  to  trust  you  with  such  another  burden  !" 
It  was  good  for  Moses,  that  he  had  to  do  with  God,  not  with  men  : 
tiie  God  of  mercy  will  not  impute  the  slips  of  our  infirmity  to  the 
prejudice  of  our  faithfulness.  lie,  that  after  the  misuse  of  the 
one  talent,  would  not  trust  the  evil  servant  with  a  second,  because 
he  saw  a  wilful  neglect;  will  trust  Moses  with  his  second  law,  be- 
cause lie  saw  fidelity  in  the  worst  error  of  his  zeal.  Our  charity 
must  learn,  as  to  forgive,  so  to  believe,  where  we  have  been  deceiv- 
ed :  not  that  we  should  wilfully  beguile  ourselves  in  an  unjust  cre- 
dulity, but  that  we  should  search  diligently  into  the  disposition  of 
persons,  and  grounds  of  their  actions ;  perhaps  none  may  be  so  sure 
as  they  that  have  once  disappointed  us.  Yea,  Moses  brake  the  first ; 
therefore  he  must  hew  the  second  :  if  God  had  broken  them,  he 
would  have  repaired  them  ;  the  amends  must  be  where  the  fault  was. 
Both  God  and  iiis  Church  look  for  a  satisfaction  in  that  wherein  we 
have  offended. 

It  was  not  long  since  Moies's  former  fast  of  forty  days.  When 


THE  VEIL  OF  MOSES. 


113 


he  then  came  down  from  the.  hill,  his  first  question  was  not  for  meat; 
and  now  going  up  again  to  Sinai,  he  takes  not  any  repast  with  him. 
That  God,  which  sent  the  quails  to  the  host  of  Israel,  and  manna 
from  Heaven,  could  have  fed  him  with  dainties:  he  goes  up  confi- 
dently in  a  secure  trust  of  God's  provision.  There  is  no  life  to  that 
of  faith ;  man  lives  not  by  bread  only.  The  vision  of  God  did  not  only- 
satiate,  but  feast  him.  What  a  blessed  satiety  shall  there  be,  when 
we  shall  see  him  as  he  is,  and  he  shall  be  all  in  all  to  us ;  since  this 
very  frail  mortality  of  Moses  was  sustained  and  comforted,  but  with 
representations  of  his  presence ! 

I  see  Moses  the  receiver  of  the  Law,  Elias  the  restorer  of  the  Law, 
Christ  the  fulfillcr  of  the  old  Law  and  author  of  the  new,  all  fasting- 
forty  days ;  and  these  three  great  tasters  I  find  together  glorious  in 
Mount  Tabor.  Abstinence  merits  not ;  for  religion  consists  not  in 
the  belly,  either  full  or  empty:  what  are  meats  or  drinks  to  the 
kingdom  of  God,  which  is  like  himself,  spiritual?  but  it  prepares 
best  for  good  duties.  Full  bellies  are  fitter  for  rest :  not  the  body, 
so  much  as  the  soul,  is  more  active  with  emptiness;  hence,  solemn 
prayer  takes  ever  fasting  to  attend  it,  and  so  much  the  rather  speeds 
in  Heaven,  when  it  is  so  accompanied.  It  is  good  so  to  diet  the  bo- 
dy, that  the  soul  may  be  fattened. 

When  Moses  came  down  before,  his  eyes  sparkled  with  anger  ; 
and  his  face  was  both  interchangeably  pale  and  red  with  indignation : 
now  it  is  bright  with  glory.  Before,  there  were  the  flames  of  fury 
in  it,  now  the  beams  of  majesty.  Moses  had  before  spoken  with 
God ;  why  did  not  his  face  shine  before  ?  I  cannot  lay  the  cause  up- 
on the  inward  trouble  of  his  passions,  for  this  brightness  was  exter- 
nal. Whither  shall  we  impute  it,  but  to  his  most  entireness  with 
God  ? 

The  more  familiar  acquaintance  we  have  with  God,  the  more  do 
we  partake  of  him.  He,  that  passes  by  the  fire,  may  have  some 
gleams  of  heat;  but  he,  that  stands  by  it,  hath  his  colour  changed. 
It  is  not  possible  a  man  should  have  any  long  conference  with  God, 
and  be  no  whit  affected.  We  are  strangers  from  God,  it  is  no  won- 
der if  our  faces  be  earthly  ;  but  he,  that  sets  himself  apart  to  God, 
shall  find  a  kind  of  majesty  and  awful  respect  put  upon  him,  in  the 
minds  of  others. 

How  did  the  heart  of  Moses  shine  with  illumination,  when  his  face 
was  thus  lightsome  !  and  if  the  flesh  of  Moses  in  this  base  composi- 
tion, so  sinned  by  conversing  with  God  forty  days  in  Sinai,  what 
shall  our  glory  be,  when,  clothed  with  incorruptible  bodies,  we  shall 
converse  with  him  for  ever  in  the  highest  heaven  ! 

Now  his  face  only  shone  ;  afterwards  the  three  disciples  saw  all 
his  body  shining.  The  nature  of  a  glorified  body,  the  clearer  vi- 
sion, the  immediate  presence  of  that  fountain  of  glory,  challenge  a 
far  greater  resplendence  to  our  faces,  than  his.  O  God,  we  are 
content  that  our  faces  be  blemished  awhile  with  contempt,  an(J 
blubbered  with  tears ;  how  can  we  but  shine  with  Moses,  when  we 
shall  see  thee  more  than  Moses  ! 

vol.  i.  /  i 


114 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


The  brightness  of  Moses's  face  reflected  not  upon  his  own  eres; 
he  shone  bright,  and  knew  not  of  it :  he  saw  God's  face  glorious, 
he  did  not  think  others  had  so  seen  his.  How  many  have  excellent 
graces,  and  perceive  them  not!  Our  own  sense  is  an  ill  judge  of 
God's  favours  to  us  ;  those  that  stand  by  can  convince  us  in  that, 
which  we  deny  to  ourselves.  Here  below,  it  is  enough  if  we  can 
shine  in  the  eyes  of  othei-s  ;  above,  we  shall  shine  and  know  it.  At 
this  instant  Moses  sees  himself  shine:  then  he  needed  not.  God 
meant  not  that  he  should  more  esteem  himself,  but  that  he  should 
be  more  honoured  of  the  Israelites :  that  other  glory  shall  be  for 
our  own  happiness,  and  therefore  requires  our  knowledge. 

They,  that  did  but  stand  still  to  see  anger  in  his  face,  ran  away 
to  see  glory  in  it :  before,  they  had  desired  that  God  would  not 
speak  to  them  any  more  but  by  Moses;  and  now,  that  God  doth  but 
look  upon  them  in  Moses,  they  are  afraid  ;  and  yet  there  was  not 
more  difference  betwixt  the  voices,  than  the  faces  of  God  and  Mo- 
ses. This  should  have  drawn  Israel  to  Moses  so  much  the  more,  to 
have  seen  this  impression  of  divinity  in  his  face. 

That  which  should  have  comforted  affrights  them  ;  yea,  Aaron 
himself,  that  before  went  up  into  the  mount  to  see  and  speak  with 
God,  now  is  afraid  to  see  him  that  had  seen  God :  such  a  fear  there 
is  in  guiltiness,  such  confidence  in  innocency.  When  the  soul  is 
once  cleared  from  sin,  it  shall  run  to  that  glory  with  joy,  the  least 
glimpse  whereof  now  appals  it,  and  sends  it  away  in  terror.  How 
could  the  Israelites  now  choose  but  think  ;  "  How  shall  we  abide  to 
look  God  in  the  face,  since  our  eyes  are  dazzled  with  the  face  of 
Moses?"  And  well  may  we  still  argue,  "If  the  image  of  God, 
which  he  hath  set  in  the  fleshy  forehead  of  authority,  daunt  us;  how 
shall  we  stand  before  the  dreadful  tribunal  of  Heaven  ?" 

Moses  marvels  to  see  Israel  run  away  from  their  guide,  as  from 
their  enemy  ;  and  looks  back  to  see  if  he  could  discern  any  new 
cause  of  fear  ;  and  not  conceiving  how  his  mild  face  could  affray 
them,  calls  them  to  stay  and  retire. 

"  Oh  my  people,  whom  do  ye  flee  :  it  is  for  your  sakes  that  I 
ascended,  staid,  came  down  :  behold,  here  are  no  anned  Levites  to 
strike  you,  no  Amalekites,  no  Egyptians  to  pursue  you,  no  fires 
and  thunders  to  dismay  you.  I  have  not  that  rod  of  God  in  my 
hand,  which  you  have  seen  to  command  the  elements  :  or  if  I  had, 
so  far  am  I  from  purposing  any  rigour  against  you,  that  I  now  late- 
ly have  appeased  God  towards  you  ;  and  lo  here  the  pledges  of  his 
reconciliation.  God  sends  me  to  y on  for  good,  and  do  you  run 
from  your  best  friend  ?  Whither  will  ye  go  from  me,  or  without 
me  ?  Stay  and  hear  the  charge  of  that  God,  from  whom  ye  cannot 
flee." 

They  perceive  his  voice  the  same,  though  his  face  were  changed, 
and  are  persuaded  to  stay,  and  return  and  hear  him,  whom  they 
tlare  not  see  ;  and  now,  after  many  doubtful  paces,  approaching 
nearer,  dare  tell  him  he  was  grown  too  glorious. 

Good  Moses,  finding  that  they  durst  not  look  upon  the  sun  of  his 
face,  clouds  it  with  a  veil ;  choosing  rather  to  hidetke  work  of  God 


NADAB  AND  ABIHU  115 

in  him,  than  to  want  opportunity  of  revealing  God's  will  to  his  peo- 
'  pie.  I  do  not  hear  him  stand  upon  terms  of  reputation  ;  "If  there 
be  glorv  in  my  face,  God  put  it  there  ;  he  would  not  have  placed 
it  so  conspicuously,  if  he  had  meant  it  should  be  hid  :  hide  ye  your 
faces  rather,  which  are  blemished  with  your  sin  ;  and  look  not  that 
I  should  wrong  God  and  myself,  to  seem  less  happy  in  favour  of 
your  weakness."  But  without  all  self  respects,  he  modestly  hides 
his  glorified  face  ;  and  cares  not  their  eyes  should  pierce  so  far,  as 
to  his  skin,  on  condition,  that  his  words  may  pierce  into  their  ears. 
It  is  good  for  a  man  sometimes  to  hide  his  graces  :  some  talents  are 
best  improved  by  being  laid  up  :  Moses  had  more  glory  by  his  veil, 
than  by  his  face.  Christian  modesty  teaches  a  wise  man,  not  to 
expose  himself  to  the  fairest  shew,  and  to  live  at  the  utmost  pitch  of 
his  strength. 

There  is  many  a  rich  stone  laid  up  in  the  bowels  of  the  earth, 
many  a  fair  pearl  laid  up  in  the  bosom  of  the  sea,  that  never  was 
seen,  nor  never  shall  be.  There  is  many  a  goodly  star,  which,  be- 
cause of  height,  comes  not  within  our  account.  How  did  our  true  1 
Moses,  with  the  veil  of  his  flesh,  hide  the  glory  of  his  Deity  ;  and 
put  on  vileness,  besides  the  laying  aside  of  majesty  ;  and  shut  up  his 
great  and  Divine  Miracles,  with,  See  you  tell  no  man  !  How  far  are 
those  spirits  from  this,  which  care  only  to  be  seen  ;  and  wish  only 
to  dazzle  others'  eyes  with  admiration,  not  caring  for  unknown 
riches  !  But  those  yet  more,  which  desire  to  seem  above  themselves, 
whether  in  parts  or  graces,  whose  veil  is  fairer  than  their  skin. 
Modest  faces  shall  shuie  through  their  veils,  when  the  vain-glorious 
shall  bewray  their  shame  through  their  covering. 

That  God,  which  gave  his  law  in  smoke, .delivered  it  again  through 
the  veil  of  Moses.  Israel  could  not  look  to  the  end  of  that,  which 
should  be  abolished ;  for  the  same  cause  had  God  a  veil  upon  his 
own  face,  which  hid  his  presence  in  the  holy  of  holies.  Nowasth? 
veil  of  God  did  rend,  when  he  said,  It  is  finished ;  so  the  veil  of 
Moses  was  then  pulled  off:  we  clearly  see  Christ,  the  end  of  t;he 
law;  pur  Joshua,  that  succeeded  Moses,  speaks  to  us  bare-faced  : 
what  a  shame  is  it  there  should  be  a  veil  upon  our  hearts,  when 
there  is  none  on  his  face! 

When  Moses  went  to  speak  with  God,  he  pulled  off  his  veil:  it 
was  good  reason  he  should  present  to  God  that  face  which  he  had 
made.  There  had  been  more  need  of«his  veil,  to  hide  tiie  glorious 
face  of  God  from  him,  than  to  hide  his  from  God  ;  but  his  faith  and 
thankfulness  servw  for  both  these  uses.  Hypocrites  are  contrary  to 
.  Moses  :  he  shewed  his  worst  to  men,  his  best  to  God  ;  they  shew 
their  best  to  men,  their  worst  to  God  :  but  God  sees  both  their  veil 
and  their  lace  ;  and  I  know  not  whether  he  more  hates  their  veil  of 
dissimulation,  cr  their  face  of  wickedness.  Exod.  xxxiv. 


NADAB  AND  ABIHU. 

Tii.\T*God,  which  shewed  himself  to  men  in  fire  when  he  delivered 
hi:,  law,  would  have  men  present  their  sacrifices  to  hira  in  fire:  and 


116 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


this  fire  he  would  have  his  own,  that  there  might  be  a  just  circulation 
in  this  creature  ;  as  the  water  sends  up  those  vapours,  which  it  re- 
ceives down  again  in  rain.  Hereupon  it  was,  that  fire  came  down 
from  God  unto  the  altar  ;  that,  as  the  charge  of  the  sacrifice  was 
delivered  in  fire  and  smoke,  so  God  might  signify  the  acceptation 
of  it  in  the  like  fashion  wherein  it  was  commanded.  The  Baalites 
might  lay  ready  their  bullock  upon  the  wood,  and  water  in  their 
trench  ;  but  they  might  sooner  fetch  the  blood  out  of  their  bodies 
and  destroy  themselves,  than  one  flash  out  of  heaven  to  consume 
the  sacrifice. 

That  devil  which  can  fetch  down  fire  from  Heaven,  either  mali- 
ciously, or  to  no  purpose  ;  (although  he  abound  with  fire  ;  and  did 
as  fervently  desire  this  fire  in  emulation  to  God,  as  ever  he  desired 
mitigation  of  his  own)  yet  now  he  could  no  more  kindle  a  fire  for 
the  idolatrous  sacrifice,  than  quench  the  flames  of  his  own  torment. 
Herein  God  approves  himself  only  worthy  to  be  sacrificed  unto,  that 
he  creates  the  fire  for  his  own  service  ;  whereas  the  impotent  idols 
of  the  heathen  must  fetch  fire  from  their  neighbour's  kitchen,  and 
themselves  are  fit  matter  for  their  borrowed  fire. 

The  Israelites,  that  were  led  too  much  with  sense,  if  they  had 
seen  the  bullock  consumed  with  a  fire  fetched  from  a  common 
hearth,  could  never  have  acknowledged  what  relation  the  sacrifice 
had  to  God,  had  never  perceived  that  God  took  notice  of  the  sa- 
crifice ;  but  now  they  see  the  fire  coming  out  from  the  presence  of 
God,  they  are  convinced  both  of  the  power  and  acceptation  of  the 
Almighty.  They  are  at  once  amazed  and  satisfied,  to  see  the  same 
God  answer  by  fire,  which  before  had  spoken  by  fire:  God  doth 
not  less  approve  our  evangelical  sacrifices,  than  theirs  under  the 
law  ;  but  as  our  sacrifices  are  spiritual,  so  are  the  signs  of  his  ac- 
ceptation :  faith  is  our  guide,  as  sense  was  theirs.  Yea,  even  still 
doth  God  testify  his  approbation  by  sensible  evidences  :  when  by  a 
lively  faith  and  fervent  zeal  our  hearts  are  consecrated  to  God,  then 
doth  his  heavenly  fire  come  down  upon  our  sacrifices ;  then  are  they 
holy,  living,  acceptable. 

This  flame,  that  God  kindled,  was  not  as  some  momentary  bon- 
fire, for  a  sudden  and  short  triumph ;  nor  as  a  domestic  fire,  to 
Sfo  out  with  a  day  ;  but  is  given  for  a  perpetuity,  and  neither  must 
die,  nor  be  quenched.  God,  as  he  is  himself  eternal,  so  he  loves 
permanency  and  constancy  of  grace  in  us  :  if  we  be  but  a  flash  and 
away,  God  regards  us  not ;  all  promises  are  to  perseverance.  Sure 
it  is  but  an  elementary  fire  that  goes  out ;  that  which  is  celestial 
continues :  it  was  but  some  presumptuous  heat  in  us,  that  decays 
upon  every  occasion. 

But  he,  that  miraculously  sent  down  this  fire  at  first,  will  not  re- 
new the  miracle  every  day,  by  a  like  supply  :  itbegan  immediately 
from  God,  it  must  be  nourished  by  means.  Fuel  must  maintain 
that  fire  which  came  from  heaven :  God  will  not  work  miracles 
every  day  :  if  he  have  kindled  his  Spirit  in  us,  we  may  not  expect 
he  shall  every  day  begin  again  ;  we  have  the  fuel  of  the  word  and 
sacraments,  prayers,  and  meditations,  which  must  keep  it  in  for 


NADAB  AND  ABIHU.  117 

ever.  It  is  from  God  that  these  helps  can  nourish  his  graces  in  us; 
like  as  every  flame  of  our  material  fire  hath  a  concourse  of  provi- 
dence, but  we  may  not  expect  new  infusions :  rather  know,  that 
God  expects  of  us  an  improvement  of  those  habitual  graces  which 
we  have  received. 

While  the  people  with  fear  and  joy  see  God  lighting  his  own  fire, 
fire  from  heaven,  the  two  sons  of  Aaron,  in  a  careless  presumption, 
will  be  serving  him  with  a  common  flame  ;  as  if  he  might  not  have 
leave  to  choose  the  forms  of  his  own  worship.  If  this  had  been  done 
some  ages  after,  when  the  memory  of  the  original  of  this  heavenly 
fire  had  been  worn  out,  it  might  have  been  excused  with  ignorance; 
but  now,  when  God  had  newly  sent  his  fire  from  above,  newly  com- 
manded the  continuance  of  it,  either  to  let  it  go  out,  or  while  it 
still  flamed  to  fetch  profane  coals  to  God's  Altar,  could  savour  of 
no  less  than  presumption  and  sacrilege.  When  we  bring  zeal  with- 
out knowledge,  misconceits  of  faith,  carnal  affections,  the  devices 
of  our  will-worship,  superstitious  devotions,  into  God's  service,  we 
bring  common  fire  to  his  altar  :  these  flames  were  never  of  his  kind- 
ling ;  he  hates  both  altar,  fire,  priest,  and  sacrifice. 

And  now  behold,  the  same  fire,  which  consumed  the  sacrifice  be- 
fore, consumes  the  sacrificers.  It  was  the  sign  of  his  acceptance,  in 
consuming  the  beast ;  but,  while  it  destroyed  men,  the  fearful  sign 
of  his  displeasure.  By  the  same  means  can  God  bewray  both  love 
and  hatred.  We  would  have  pleaded  for  Nadab  and  Abinu  ;  "They 
are  but  young  men,  the  sons  of  Aaron,  not  yet  warm  in  their  func- 
tion ;  let  both  age,  and  blood,  and  inexperience  excuse  them  as 
yet."  No  pretences,  no  privileges,  can  bear  off"  a  sin  with  God  : 
men  think  either  to  patronize  or  mitigate  evils,  by  their  feigned 
reasons.  That  no  man  may  hope  the  plea  either  of  birth,  or  of 
youth,  or  of  the  first  commission  of  evil,  may  challenge  pardon  ;  I 
see  here  young  men,  sons  of  the  ruler  of  Israel,  for  the  first  offence 
struck  dead. 

Yea,  this  made  God  the  more  to  stomach,  and  the  rather  to  re- 
venge this  impiety,  because  the  sons  of  Aaron  did  it.  God  had 
both  pardoned  and  graced  their  father  ;  he  had  honoured  them  ;  of 
the  thousands  of  Israel,  culling  them  out  for  his  altar  :  and  now,  as 
their  father  set  up  a  false  god,  so  they  bring  false  fire  unto  the  true 
God. 

If  the  sons  of  infidels  live  godlessly,  they  do  their  kind:  their 
punishment  shall  be,  though  just,  yet  less  ;  but  if  the  children  of  re- 
ligious parents,  after  all  Christian  nurture,  shall  shame  their  educa- 
tion, God  takes  it  more  heinously,  and  revenges  it  more  sharply. 
The  more  bonds  of  duty,  the  more  plagues  of  neglect. 

If  from  the  agents  we  look  to  the  act  itself,  set  aside  the  original 
descent,  and  what  difference  was  there  betwixt  these  fires  ?  Both 
looked  alike,  heated  alike,  ascended  alike,  consumed  alike ;  both 
were  fed  with  the  same  material  wood,  both  vanished  into  smoke  : 
there  was  no  diftei'cnce,  but  in  the  commandment  of  God. 

If  God  had  enjoined  ordinary  fire,  they  had  sinned  to  look  for  ce- 
lestial :  now  lie  commanded  only  the  fire  which  he  sent ;  they  sinned 


118 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


in  sending  up  incense,  in  that  fire,  which  he  commanded  not.  It 
is  a  dangerous  thing  in  the  service  of  God  to  decline  from  his  own 
institutions  :  we  have  to  do  with  a  power  which  is  wise  to  prescribe 
his  own  worship,  just  to  require  what  he  hath  prescribed,  powerful 
to  revenge  that  which  he  hath  not  required. 

If  God  had  struck  them  with  some  leprosy  in  their  fore-head,  as 
he  did  their  aunt  Miriam  soon  after,  or  with  some  palsy  or  linger- 
ing consumption,  the  punishment  had  been  grievous;  but  he, 
whose  judgments  are  ever  just,  sometimes  secret,  saw  fire  the  fit- 
test revenge  for  a  sin  of  fire  ;  his  own  fire,  fittest  to  punish  strange 
fire  ;  a  sudden  judgment,  fit  for  a  present  and  exemplary  sin  :  he 
saw,  that  if  he  had  winked  at  this,  his  service  had  been  exposed 
to  profanation. 

It  is  wisdom  in  governors  to  take  sin  at  the  first  bound  ;  and  so 
to  revenge  it,  that  their  punishments  may  be  preventions.  Speed 
of  death  is  not  always  a  judgment :  suddenness,  as  it  is  ever  justly 
suspicious,  so  then  certainly  argues  anger,  when  it  finds  us  in  an 
act  of  sin.  Leisure  of  repentance  is  an  argument  of  favour : 
when  God  gives  a  man  law,  it  implies  that  he  would  not  have 
judgment  surprise  him. 

Doubtless,  Aaron  looked  somewhat  heavily  on  this  sad  spectacle. 
It  could  not  but  appal  him,  to  see  his  two  sons  dead  before  him, 
dead  in  displeasure,  dead  suddenly,  dead  bv  the  immediate  hand 
of  God.  And  now  he  could  repent  him  of  his  new  honour,  to  see 
it  succeed  so  ill  with  the  sons  of  his  loins  ;  neither  could  he  chuse 
but  see  himself  stricken  in  them.  But  his  brother  Moses,  that  had 
learned  not  to  know  either  nephews  or  brother,  when  they  stood 
in  his  way  to  God,  wisely  turned  bis  eyes  from  the  dead  carcases 
of  his  sons,  to  his  respect  of  the  living  God  ;  "  My  brother,  this 
event  is  fearful,  but  just;  these  were  thy  sons,  but  they  sinned  ; 
it  was  not  for  God,  it  is  not  for  thee,  to  look  so  much  who  they 
were,  as  what  they  did.  It  was  their  honour  and  thine,  that  they 
were  chosen  to- minister  before  the  Lord  :  he,  that  called  them,  just- 
ly required  their  sanctification  and  obedience.  If  they  have  pro- 
faned God  and  themselves,  can  thy  natural  affection  so  miscarry 
thee,  that  thou  couldest  wish  their  impunity  with  the  blemish  of 
thy  Maker  ?  Our  sons  are  not  ours,  if  they  disobey  our  Father :  to 
pity  their  misery,  is  to  partake  of  their  sin  ;  if  thou  grudge  at  their 
judgment,  take  heed  lest  the  same  fire  of  God  come  forth  upon 
this  strange  fire  of  nature.  Shew  now  whether  thou  more  lovest 
God  or  thy  sons  ;  shew  whether  thou  be  a  better  father  or  a  son." 

Aaron,  weighing  these  things,  holds  his  peace,  not  out  of  an 
amazement  nor  sullecness,  but  out  of  patient  and  humble  submis- 
sion ;  and  seeing  God's  pleasure,  and  their  desert,  is  content  to 
forget  that  he  had  sons.  He  might  have  had  a  silent  tongue,  and 
a  clamorous  heart.  There  is  no  voice  louder  in  the  ears  of  God, 
than  a  speechless  repining  of  the  soul.  Heat  is  more  intended 
with  keeping  in  ;  but  Aaron's  silence  was  no  less  inward  :  he  knew 
how  little  lie  should  get  by  brawling  with  God.  If  he  breathed 
out  discontentment,  he  saw  God  could  speak  fire  to  him  again  j 


OF  AARON  AND  MIRIAM.  119 

and  therefore  he  quietly  submits  to  the  will  of  God,  and  holds  his 
peace  hecause  the  Lord  had  done  it.  There  is  no  greater  proof  of 
grace,  than  to  smart  patiently,  and  humbly  and  contentedly  to 
rest  the  heart  in  the  justice  and  wisdom  of  God's  proceeding,  and 
to  be  so  far  from  chiding  that  we  dispute  not.  Nature  is  froward  ; 
and  though  she  well  knows  we  meddle  not  with  our  match,  when 
we  strive  with  our  Maker,  yet  she  pricks  us  forward  to  this  idle 
quarrel,  and  bids  us,  with  Job's  wife,  Curse  and  die.  If  God  either 
chide  or  smite  (as  servants  are  charged  to  their  masters)  we  may 
not  answer  again  :  when  God's  hand  is  on  our  back,  our  hand 
must  be  on  our  mouth;  else,  as  mothers  do  their  children,  God 
shall  whip  us  so  much  the  more  for  crving. 

It  is  hard  for  a  stander-by,  in  this  case,  to  distinguish  betwixt 
hard-heartedness  and  piety.  There  Aaron  sees  his  sons  lie  :  he 
may  neither  put  his  hand  to  them  to  bury  them,  nor  shed  a  tear 
for  their  death.  Never  parent  can  have  juster  cause  of  mourning, 
than  to  see  his  sons  dead  in  their  sin  ;  if  prepared  and  penitent, 
yet  who  can  but  sorrow  for  their  end  r  But  to  part  with  children 
to  the  danger  of  a  second  death,  is  worthy  of  more  than  tears. 
Yet  Aaron  must  learn  so  far  to  deny  nature,  that  he  must  more 
magnify  the  justice  of  God,  than  lament  the  judgment.  Those, 
whom  God  hath  called  to  his  immediate  service,  must  know,  that 
he  will  not  allow  them  the  common  passions  and  cares  of  others. 
Nothing  is  more  natural  than  sorrow  for  the  death  of  our  own  :  if 
ever  grief  be  seasonable,  it  becomes  a  funeral.  And  if  Nadab 
and  Abihu  had  died  in  their  beds,  this  favour  had  been  allowed 
them,  the  sorrow  of  their  father  and  brethren  ;  for^vhen  God  for- 
bids solemn  mourning  to  his  priests,  over  the  dead,  he  excepts  the 
cases  of  this  nearness  of  blood.  Now  all  Israel  may  mourn  for 
these  two  ;  only  the  father  and  brethren  may  not.  God  is  jealous 
lest  their  sorrow  should  seem  to  countenance  the  sin,  which  he  had 
punished  :  even  the  learfullest  acts  of  God  must  be  applauded  by 
the  heaviest  hearts  of  the  faithful. 

That  which  the  father  and  brother  may  not  do,  the  cousins  are 
commanded  :  dead  carcases  are  not  for  the  presence  of  God  ;  his 
justice  was  shown  sufficiently  in  killing  them  :  they  are  now  fit  for 
the  grave,  not  the  sanctuary  :  neither  are  they  carried  out  naked, 
but  in  their  coats.  It  was  an  unusual  sight  for  Israel  to  see  a  linen 
ephod  upon  the  bier  ;  the  judgment  was  so  much  the  more  remark- 
able, because  they  had  the  badge  of  their  calling  upon  their 
backs. 

Nothing  is  either  more  pleasing  unto  God,  or  more  commodious 
to  men,  than  that  when  he  hath  executed  judgment,  it  should  be 
seen  and  wondered  at ;  for  therefore  he  strikes  some,  that  he  may 
warn  all.  Lev.  x. 


OF  AARON  AND  MIRIAM. 

The  Israelites  are  stayed  seven  days  in  the  station  o  Hazeroth, 
for  the  punishment  of  Miriam.    The  sins  of  the  governors  are 


120 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


a  just  stop  to  the  people  ;  all  of  them  smart  in  one  ;  all  must  stav 
the  leisure  of  Miriam's  recovery.  Whosoever  seeks  the  land  of 
promise,  shall  find  many  lets  :  Amalek,  Og,  Sehon,  and  the  kings 
of  Canaan  meet  with  Israel :  these  resisted,  but  hindered  not  their 
passage ;  their  sins  only  stay  them  from  removing.  Afflictions 
are  not  crosses  to  us,  in  the  way  to  heaven,  in  comparison  to  our 
sins. 

What  is  this  I  see  ?  Is  not  this  Aaron,  that  was  brother  in  nature, 
and  by  office  joint  commissioner  with  Moses  ?  Is  not  tins  Aaron, 
that  made  his  brother  an  intercessor  for  him  to  God,  in  the  case  of 
his  idolatry  ?  Is  not  this  Aaron,  that  climbed  up  the  hill  of  Sinai 
with  Moses?  Is  not  this  Aaron,  whom  the  mouth  and  hand  of 
Moses  consecrated  a  high  priest  unto  God  ?  Is  not  this  Miriam, 
the  elder  sister  of  Moses  ?  Is  not  this  Miriam,  that  led  the  triumph 
of  the  women,  and  sung  gloriously  to  the  Lord  ?  Is  not  this  Mi- 
riam, which  laid  her  brother  Moses  in  the  reeds,  and  fetched  her 
mother  to  be  his  nurse?  Both  prophets  of  God;  both,  the  flesh 
and  blood  of  Moses  :  and  doth  this  Aaron  repine  at  the  honour  of 
him,  which  gave  himself  that  honour,  and  saved  his  life  ?  Doth 
this  Miriam  repine  at  the  prosperity  of  him,  whose  life  she  saved  ? 
Who  \\  ould  not  have  thought  this  should  have  been  their  glory,  to 
have  seen  the  glory  of  their  own  brother  ?  What  could  have  been  j 
a  greater  comfort  to  Miriam,  than  to  think,  "  How  happilv  doth 
he  now  sit  at  the  stern  of  Israel,  whom  I  saved  from  perishing  in 
a  boat  of  bulrushes !  It  is  to  me,  that  Israel  owes  this  command- 
er ?"  but  now  envy  hath  so  blinded  their  eyes,  that  they  can  nei- 
ther see  this  privilege  of  nature,  nor  the  honour  of  God's  choice. 

Miriam  and  Aaron  are  in  mutiny  against  Moses.  Who  is  so 
holy  that  sins  not  ?  What  sin  is  so  unnatural,  that  the  best  can 
avoid  without  God  ?  But  what  weakness  soever  mav  plead  for  Mi- 
riam, who  can  but  grieve  to  see  Aaron  at  the  end  of  somanv  sins? 
Of  late  I  saw  him  carving  the  molten  image,  and  consecrating  an 
altar  to  a  false  god ;  now  I  see  him  seconding  an  unkind  mutiny 
against  his  brother :  both  sins  find  him  accessary  ;  neither,  prin- 
cipal. 

It  was  not  in  the  power  of  the  legal  priesthood  to  perform,  or 
promise  innocency  to  her  ministers :  it  was  necessary  we  should 
have  another  high  priest,  which  could  not  be  tainted.  That  King 
of  Righteousness  was  of  another  order  ;  he  being  without  sin,  hath 
fullv  satisfied  for  the  sins  of  men.  Whom  can  it  now  offend,  to  see 
the  blemishes  of  the  evangelical  priesthood,  when  God's  first  high 
priest  is  thus  miscarried  ? 

Who  can  look  for  love  and  prosperity  at  once,  when  holy  and 
meek  Moses  finds  enmity  in  his  own  flesh  and  blood  ?  Rather  than 
we  shall  want,  A  marts  enemies  shall  be  those  of  his  oxen  house. 
Authority  cannot  fail  of  opposition,  if  it  be  never  so  mildly  sway- 
ed :  that  common  make-bait  will  rather  raise  it  out  of  our  own  bo- 
som.   To  do  well  and  hear  ill,  is'princely. 

The  Midianitish  wife  of  Moses  cost  him  dear.  Before,  she 
hazarded  his  life ;  now,  the  favour  of  his  people :  unequal  matches 


OF  AARON  AND  MIRIAM. 


121 


arc  seldom  prosperous.  Although  now  this  scandal  was  onlv  taken ; 
envy  was  not  wise  enough  to  choose  a  ground  of  the  quarrel. 
Whether  some  secret  and  emulatory  brawls  passed  between  Zip- 
porah  and  Miriam,  as  many  times  these  sparks  or'  private  brawls 
grow  into  a  perilous  and  common  flame  ;  or  whether  now  that 
Jethroandhis  family  were  joined  with  Israel,  there  were  surmises  of 
transporting  the  government  to  strangers ;  or  whether  this  unfit 
choice  of  Moses  is  now  raised  up  to  disparage  God's  gifts  in  him ; 
even  in  sight,  the  exceptions  were  frivolous  :  emulation  is  cu- 
rious, and  out  of  the  best  person  or  act  will  raise  something  to 
cavil  at. 

Seditions  do  not  ever  look  the  same  way  they  move :  wise  men 
can  easily  distinguish  betwixt  the  visor  of  actions,  and  the  face. 
The  wife  of  Moses  is  mentioned  ;  his  superiority  is  shot  at.  Pride 
is  lightly  the  ground  of  all  sedition.  Which  of  their  faces  sinned 
like  Moses  ?  Yea,  let  him  but  have  drawn  his  veil,  which  of  them 
durst  look  on  his  face  ?  Which  of  them  had  fasted  twice  forty 
days  ?  Which  of  them  ascended  up  to  the  top  of  Sinai,  and  was 
hid  with  smoke  and  fire  ?  Which  of  them  received  the  law  twice 
in  two  several  tables,  from  God's  own  hand  ?  And  yet  they  dare 
say,  Hath  God  spoken  only  by  Moses  ?  They  do  not  deny  Moses's 
honour,  but  they  challenge  a  part  with  him  ;  and  as  they  were  the 
elder  in  nature,  so  they  would  be  equal  in  dignity,  equal  in  ad- 
ministration. According  to  her  name,  Miriam  would  be  exalted. 
And  yet  how  unfit  were  they?  One,  a  woman,  whom  her  sex  de- 
barred from  rule  ;  the  other,  a  priest,  whom  his  office  sequestered 
from  earthly  government.  Self-love  makes  men  unreasonable,  and 
teaches  them  to  turn  the  glass  to  see  themselves  bigger,  others  less 
than  they  are.  It  is  a  hard  thing  for  a  man,  willingly  and  gladly  to 
see  his  equals  lifted  over  his  head,  in  worth  and  opinion.  Nothing 
will  more  try  a  man's  grace,  than  questions  of  emulation1.  That 
man  hath  true  light,  which  can  be  content  to  be  a  candle  before  the 
sun  of  others. 

As  no  wrongs  can  escape  God,  so  least  of  all  those  which  are  offer- 
ed to  princes :  he,  that  made  the  car,  needs  no  intelligence  of  our 
tongues.  We  have  to  do  with  a  God,  that  is  light  of  hearing: 
we  cannot  whisper  any  evil  so  secretly,  that  he  should  not  cry  out 
of  noise ;  and  what  need  we  any  further  evidence,  when  our  judge 
is  our  witness  ? 

Without  any  delation  of  Moses,  God  hears  and  challenges  them. 
Because  he  was  meek,  therefore  he  complained  not :  because  he 
was  meek  and  complained  not,  therefore  the  Lord  struck  in  for 
him  the  more.  The  less  a  man  strives  for  himself,  the  more  is  God 
his  champion.  It  is  the  honour  of  great  persons,  to  undertake  the 
patronage  of  their  clients:  how  much  more  will  God  revenge  his 
elect,  which  cry  to  him  day  and  night !  He,  that  said,  /  seek  not 
wine  own  glory,  adds,  But  there  is  one  that  seeks  it,  and  judges. 
God  takes  his  part  ever,  that  fights  not  for  himself. 

No  man  could  have  given  more  proofs  of  his  courage,  than 
Moses.    He  slew  the  Egyptian ;  he  confronted  Pharaoh  in  his  own 


122 


contemplation;. 


court ;  he  beat  the  Midianite.  shepherds  ;  he  feared  not  the  troops 
of  Egypt ;  he  durst  look  God  in  the  face  amidst  all  the  terrors  of 
Sinai  :  and  yet  that  Spirit,  w  hich  made  and  knew  his  heart,  says,, 
Jfe  :c>as  the  mildest  man  upon  earth.  Mildness  and  fortitude  mav 
well  lodge  together  in  one  breast ;  to  correct  the  misconceits  of 
those  men,  that  think  none  valiant,  but  those  that  arc  fierce  and 
cruel. 

No  sooner  is  the  word  out  of  Miriam's  mouth,  than  the  word  of 
God's  reproof  meets  it:  how  he  bestirs  him,  and  will  be  at  once 
seen  and  heard,  when  the  name  of  Moses  is  in  question!  Moses 
was  zealously  careful  for  God's  glory,  and  now  God  is  zealous  for 
his.  The  remunerations  of  the  Almighty  are  infinitely  gracious. 
He  cannot  want  honour  and  patronage,  that  seeks  the  honour  of 
his  Maker.    The  ready  way  to  true  glory  is  goodness. 

God  might  have  spoken  so  loud,  that  heaven  and  earth  should 
have  heard  it,  so  as  they  should  not  have  needed  to  come  forth  for 
audience  ;  but  now,  he  calls  them  out  to  the  bar,  that  they  may- 
be seen  to  hear.  It  did  not  content  him,  to  chide  them  witliin 
doors :  the  shame  of  their  fault  had  been  less  in  a  private  rebuke ; 
but  the  scandal  of  their  repining  was  public.  Where  the  sin  is 
not  afraid  of  the  light,  God  loves  not  the  reproof  should  be  smo- 
thered. 

They  had  depressed  Moses,  God  advances  him;  they  had  equal- 
ed themselves  to  Moses,  God  prefers  him  to  them.  Their  plea 
was,  that  God  had  spoken  by  them,  as  well  as  bv  Moses;  God's 
reply  is,  That  he  hath  in  a  more  entire  fashion  spoken  to  Moses 
than  them.  God  spake  to  the  best  of  them,  but  either  in  their 
dream,  sleeping;  or  in  vision,  waking:  but  to  Moses  he  spake 
with  more  inward  illumination,  with  more  livelv  representation : 
to  others,  as  a  stranger ;  to  Moses",  as  a  friend.  God  had  never  so 
much  magnified  Moses  to  them,  but  for  their  envy.  We  cannot 
devise  to  pleasure  Gcd's  servants,  so  much  as  bv  (respiting  them. 

God  was  angry  when  he  rebuked  them,  but  more  angry  when  he 
departed.  The  withdrawing  of  his  presence,  is  the  presence  of 
his  wrath.  While  he  stays  to  reprove,  there  is  favour  in  his  dis- 
pleasure;  but  when  he  leaves  either  man  or  church,  there  is  no 
hope  but  of  vengeance.  The  final  absence  of  God  is  hell  itself. 
When  he  forsakes  us,  though  for  a  time,  it  is  an  introduction  to  his 
utmost  judgment. 

It  was  time  to  look  for  a  judgment,  when  God  departed :  so 
soon  as  he  is  gone  from  the  eyes  of  Miriam,  the  leprosy  appears 
in  her  face  :  her  foul  tongue  is  punished  with  a  foul  face.  Since 
she  would  acknowledge  no  difference  betwixt  herself  and  her  bro- 
ther Moses,  every  Israelite  now  sees  his  face  glorious,  hers  leprous. 
Deformity  is  a  fit  cure  of  pride.  Because  the  venom  of  her  tongue 
would  have  eaten  into  the  reputation  of  her  brother,  therefore  a 
poisonous  infection  eats  into  her  flesh.  Now  both  Moses  and  Mi- 
riam need  to  wear  a  veil :  the  one  to  hide  his  glory  ;  the  other,  her 
deformity.  That  Midianite,  Zipporah,  whom  she  scorned,  was 
beautiful  in  respect  of  her. 


THE  SEARCHERS  OF  CANAAN. 


123 


Miriam  was  stricken,  Aaron  escaped:  both  sinned;  his  priest- 
hood could  not  rescue  him ;,  the  greatness  of  his  dignity  did  but 
add  to  the  heinousness  of  his  sin  :  his  repentance  freed  him  ;  dlusy 
■my  Lord,  I  beseech  thee  lay  not  this  sin  upon  us,  which  zoe  have 
foolishly  committed.  I  wonder  not  to  see  Aaron  free,  while  I  see 
him  penitent  ;  this  very  confession  saved  him  befoi'e,  from  bleed- 
ing for  idolatry,  which  now  preserves  him  from  leprosy,  for  his  en- 
vious repining.  The  universal  antidote  for  all  the  judgments  of 
God  is  our  humble  repentance.  . 

Yea,  his  sad  deprecation  prevailed,  both  to  clear  himself  and  to 
recover  Miriam  :  the  brother  sues  for  himself  and  his  sister,  to 
that  brother  whom  they  both  emulated:  for  pardon  from  himself, 
and  that  God  which  was  offended  in  him.  Where  now  is  that 
equality  which  was  pretended  ?  Behold,  he,  that  so  lately  made 
his  brother  his  fellow,  now  makes  him  his  God :  Lay  not  this  sin 
upon  us ;  Let  her  not  be  as  one  dead :  as  if  Moses  had  imposed  this 
plague,  and  could  remove  it.  Never  any  opposed  the  servants  of 
God,  but  one  time  or  other  they  have  been  constrained  to  confess 
a  superiority. 

Miriam  would  have  wounded  Moses  with  her  tongue ;  Moses 
would  heal  her  with  his,  0  Lord,  heal  her  voxu :  the  wrong  is  the 
greater,  because  his  sister  did  it.  He  doth  not  say,  "  I  sought 
not  her  shame,  she  sought  mine  ;  if  God  have  revenged  it,  I  have 
no  reason  to  look  on  her,  as  a  sister,  who  looked  at  ine,  as  an  ad- 
versary :"  but,  as  if  her  leprosy  were  his,  he  cries  out  for  her  cure. 

0  admirable  meekness  of  Moses !  His  people  the  Jews  rebelled 
against  him  ;  God  proffers  revenge ;  he  would  rather  die,  than 
they  should  perish :  his  sister  rebels  against  him  ;  God  works  his 
revenge  ;  he  will  not  give  God  peace,  till  she  be  recured.  Behold 
a<  worthy  and  noble  pattern  for  us  to  follow.  How  far  are  they 
from  this  disposition,  who  are  not  only  content  God  should  re- 
venge, but  arc  ready  to  prevent  God's  revenge  with  their  own  ! 

God's  love  to  Moses  suffers  him  not  to  obtain  presently  his  suit 
for  Miriam  :  his  goodnature  to  his  sister  made  him  pray  against 
himself.  If  the  judgment  had  been  at  once  infiictedand  removed, 
there  had  been  no  example  of  terror  for  others :  God  either  de- 
nies or  defers  the  grant  of  our  requests,  for  our  good  :  it  were 
wide  for  us,  if  our  suits  should  be  ever  heard.  It  was  fit  for  all 
parts,  Miriam  should  continue  some  while  leprous.  There  is  no 
policy  in  a  sudden  removal  of  just  punishment:  unless  the  rain 
so  fall  that  it  lie,  and  soak  into  the  earth,  it  profits  nothing.  If 
the  judgments  of  God  should  be  only  as  passengers,  and  not  so- 
journers at  least,  they  would  be  no  whit  regarded.  Num.xii. 

THE  SEARCHERS  OF  CANAAN. 

1  can  but  wonder  at  the  counsel  of  God.  If  the  Israelites  had 
gone  on  to  Canaan  without  inquiry,  their  confidence  had  possess- 
ed it ;  now  they  send  to  espy  the  land,  six  hundred  thousand  ot 
them  never  lived  to  see  it :  and  yet  I  see  God  enjoining  them  to 


124 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


send  ;  but  enjoining  it,  upon  their  instance.  Some  things  God 
allows  in  judgment ;  their  importunity  and  distrust  extorted  from 
God  this  occasion  of  their  overthrow.  That,  which  the  Lord 
moves  unto,  prospers  ;  but  that,  which  we  move  him  to  first,  sel- 
dom succeedeth.  What  needed  they  doubt  of  the  goodness  of 
that  land,  which  God  told  them  did  flow  with  milk  and  honey  ? 
What  needed  they  to  doubt  of  obtaining  that,  which  God  pro- 
mised to  give  ?  When  we  will  send  forth  our  senses,  to  be  our 
scouts  in  the  matters  of  faith,  and  rather  dare  trust  men  than  God, 
we  are  worthy  to  be  deceived. 

The  basest  sort  of  men  are  commonly  held  fit  enough  for  in- 
telligencers ;  but  Moses,  to  make  sure  work,  chooseth  forth  the 
best  of  Israel,  such  as  were  like  to  be  most  judicious  in  their  in- 
quiry, and  most  credible  in  their  report.  Those,  that  ruled  Israel 
at  home,  could  best  descry  for  them  abroad  :  what  should  direct 
the  body,  but  the  head  ?  Men  can  judge  but  by  appearance  :  it  is 
for  him  only  that  sees  the  event,  ere  be  appoint  the  means,  not  to 
be  deceived.  It  had  been  better  for  Israel  to  have  sent  the  offal 
of  the  multitude  :  by  how  much  less  the  credit  of  their  persons  is, 
by  so  much  less  is  the  danger  of  seducement.  The  error  of  the 
mighty  is  armed  with  authority,  and  in  a  sort  commands  assent : 
whether  in  good  or  evil,  greatness  hath  ever  a  train  to  follow  it  at 
the  heels. 

Forty  days  they  spent  in  this  search  ;  and  this  cowardly  unbe- 
lief in  the  search  shall  cost  them  forty  years  delay  of  the  fruition. 
Who  can  abide  to  see  the  rulers  of  Israel  so  basely  timorous  ? 
They  commend  the  land,  the  fruit  commends  itself,  and  yet  they 
plead  difficulty  :  We  be  not  able  to  go  up.  Their  shoulders  ai-e  laden 
with  the  grapes,  and  yet  their  hearts  are  overlaid  with  unbelief :  it 
is  an  unworthy  thing  to  plead  hardness  of  achieving,  where  the 
benefit  will  more  than  requite  the  endeavour.  Our  land  of  pro- 
mise is  above ;  we  know,  the  fruit  thereof  is  sweet  and  glorious, 
the  passage  difficult.  The  gigantic  sons  of  Anak  (the  powers  of 
darkness)  stand  in  our  way  :  if  we  sit  down  and  complain,  we  shall 
once  know,  that  without  shall  be  the  fearful. 

See  the  idle  pleas  of  distrust ;  We  arenot  able :  they  are  stronger. 
Could  not  God  enable  them?  Was  he  not  stronger  than  their 
giants  ?  Had  he  not  promised  to  displace  the  Canaanites,  to  settle 
them  in  their  stead  ?  How  much  more  easy  is  it  for  us  to  spy  their 
weakness,  than  for  them  to  espy  the  strength  of  their  adversaries  ? 
When  we  measure  our  spiritual  success  by  our  own  power,  we  are 
vanquished  before  we  fight.  He,  that  would  overcome,  must  nei- 
ther look  upon  his  own  arm,  nor  the  arm  of  his  enemy,  but  the 
mouth  and  hand  of  him  that  hath  promised,  and  can  perform. 
Who  are  we  flesh  and  blood,  with  our  breath  in  our  nostrils,  that 
we  should  fight  with  principalities,  powers,  spiritual  wickednesses 
in  heavenly  places  ?  The  match  is  too  unequal:  we  are  but  like 
grasshoppers  to  these  giants ;  when  we  compare  ourselves  with 
them,  how  can  we  but  despair?  when  we  compare  them  with 
God,  how  can  we  be  discouraged?  He,  that  hath  brought  us  into 


THE  SEARCHERS  OF  CANAAN. 


125 


this  field,  hath  promised  us  victory.  God  knew  their  strength,  be- 
fore he  offered  to  commit  us. 

Well  might  they  have  thought,  "  Were  not  the  Amalckites 
stronger  than  we  ?  Were  not  they  armed,  we  naked  ?  Did  not  the 
only  hand  of  Moses,  by  lifting  up,  beat  them  down  ?  Were  not 
the  Egyptians  no  less  our  masters  ?  Did  not  death  come  running 
after  us  in  their  chariots  ?  Did  we  not  leave  these  buried  in  the 
sea,  the  other  unburied  in  the  wilderness  ?  Whence  had  the  Ana- 
kims  their  strength,  but  from  him  that  bids  us  go  up  against  them? 
Why  have  the  bodies  of  our  forefathers  taken  possession  of  their 
Hebron,  but  for  us?"  But  now,  their  fear  hath  not  left  them  so 
much  reason,  as  to  compare  their  adversaries  with  others,  but  only 
with  themselves :  doubtless,  these  giants  were  mighty,  but  their 
fear  hath  stretched  them  out  some  cubits  beyond  their  stature. 
Distrust  makes  our  dangers  greater,  and  our  helps  less  than  they 
are,  and  forecasts  ever  worse  than  shall  be  ;  and  if  evils  be  possible, 
it  makes  them  certain. 

Amongst  those  twelve  messengers,  whom  our  second  Moses  sent 
through  the  land  of  promise,  there  was  but  one  Judas ;  but 
amongst  those  twelve,  which  the  former  Moses  addressed  through 
the  same  land,  there  is  but  one  Caleb  ;  and  yet  those  were  chosen 
out  of  the  meanest,  these  out  of  the  heads  of  Israel.  As  there  is 
no  society  free  from  some  corruption,  so  it  is  hard,  if,  in  a  com- 
munity of  men,  there  be  not  some  faithfulness. 

We  shall  wrong  God,  if  we  fear  lest  good  causes  shall  be  quite 
forsaken  :  he  knows  how  to  serve  himself  of  the  best,  if  the  fewest; 
and  could  as  easily  be  attended  with  a  multitude,  if  he  did  not  seek 
his  own  glory,  in  unlikelihoods. 

Joshua  was  silent,  and  wisely  spared  his  tongue  for  a  further  ad- 
vantage :  only  Caleb  spake.  I  do  not  hear  hiin  say,  "  Who  am  I 
to  strive  with  a  multitude  ?  What  can  Joshua  and  I  do  against  ten 
rulers?  It  is  better  to  sit  still,  than  to  rise  and  fall:"  but  he  re- 
solves to  swim  against  this  stream,  and  will  either  draw  friends  to 
the  truth,  or  enemies  upon  himself.  True  Christian  fortitude 
teaches  us  not  to  regard  the  number  or  quality  of  the  opponents, 
but  the  equity  of  the  cause;  and  cares  not  to  stand  alone,  and  chal- 
lenge aJl  comers ;  and  if  it  could  be  opposed  by  as  many  worlds 
as  men,  it  may  be  overborne,  but  it  cannot  be  daunted  :  whereas 
popularity  carries  weak  minds,  and  teaches  them  the  safety  of  err- 
ing with  a  multitude. 

Caleb  saw  the  gigantic  Anakims  and  the  walled  cities,  as  well  as 
the  rest ;  and  yet  he  says,  Let  us  g'o  up  and  possess  it :  as  if  it 
were  no  more,  but  to  go,  and  see,  and  conquer.  Faith  is  cou- 
rageous, and  makes  nothing  of  those  dangers,  wherewith  others 
are  quailed.  It  is  very  material  with  what  eyes  we  look  upon  all 
objects.  Fear  doth  not  more  multiply  evils,  than  faith  diminish- 
eth  them  ;  which  is  therefore  bold,  because  either  it  sees  not,  or 
contemns  that  terror,  which  fear  represents  to  the  weak.  There 
is  none  so  valiant  as  the  believer. 

It  hud  been  happy  for  Israel,  if  Caleb's  counsel  had  been  as 


126 


CONTEMPLATION'S. 


effectual  as  good.  But  how  easily  have  these  rulers  discouraged 
a  faint-hearted  people !  Instead  of  lifting  up  their  ensigns  and 
marching  towards  Canaan,  they  sit  them  down  and  lift  up  their 
voice  and  cry.  The  rods  of  their  Egyptian  task-masters  had  never 
been  so  fit  for  them,  as  now,  for  crying.  They  had  cause  indeed 
to  weep  for  the  sin  of  their  infidelity  ;  but  now  they  weep  for  fear 
of  those  enemies  they  saw  not.  I  fear  if  there  had  been  ten  Calebs 
to  persuade,  and  but  two  faint  spies  to  discourage  them,  those  two 
cowards  would  have  prevailed  against  those  ten  solicitors :  how 
much  more  now  ten  oppose,  and  but  two  encourage  \  An  easy 
rhetoric  draws  us  to  the  worse  part ;  yea,  it  is  hard  not  to.  run 
down  the  hill.  The  faction  of  evil  is  so  much  stronger  in  our  na- 
ture than  that  of  good,  that  every  least  motion  prevails  for  the  one, 
scarce  any  suit  for  the  other. 

Now  is  Moses  in  danger  of  losing  all  the  cost  and  care,  that  ever 
he  bestowed  upon  Israel  :  his  people  are  already  gone  back  to 
Egypt,  in  their  hearts  ;  and  their  bodies  are  returning.  O  ye  re- 
bellious Hebrews,  where  shall  God  have  you  at  last  ?  Did  ever 
Moses  promise  to  bring  you  to  a  fruitful  land,  without  inhabitants  ? 
to  give  you  a  rich  country,  without  resistance  ?  Are  not  the  graves 
of  Canaan  as  good  as  those  of  Egypt  ?  What  can  ye  but  die  at 
the  hands  of  the  Anakims  ?  Can  ye  hope  for  less  from  the  Egyp- 
tians r  What  madness  is  this  to  wish  to  die,  for  fear  of  death  ?  Is 
there  less  hope  from  your  enemies  that  shall  be,  when  ye  go  under 
strong  and  expert  leaders,  than  from  the  enemies  that  were,  when 
ye  shall  return  masterless  ?  Can  those  cruel  Egyptians  so  soon  have 
forgotten  the  blood  of  their  fathers,  children,  brothers,  husbands, 
which  perished  in  pursuing  you  ?  Would  ye  rather  trust  the  mer- 
cy of  known  enemies,  than  the  promise  of  a  faithful  God  5  Which 
way  will  ve  return  ?  Who  shall  divide  the  sea  for  you  ?  Who  shall 
fetch  you  water  out  of  the  i*ock  ?  Or  can  ye  hope  that  the  manna 
of  God  will  follow  you,  while  ye  run  from  him  ?  Feeble  minds, 
when  they  meet  with  crosses  they  looked  not  for,  repent  of  their 
good  beginnings,  and  wish  any  difficulty  rather  than  that  they  find. 
How  many  have  pulled  back  their  foot  from  the  narrow  way,  for 
the  troubles  of  a  good  profession  ! 

It  had  been  time  for  the  Israelites  to  have  fallen  down  on  their 
faces  before  Moses  and  Aaron,  and  to  have  said,  "  Ye  led  us 
through  the  sea,  make  way  for  us  into  Canaan.  Those  giants  are 
strong,  but  not  so  strong  as  the  rock  of  Bephidim:  ye  struck  that, 
and  it  yielded.  If  they  be  tall,  the  pillar  of  God  is  higher  than 
they  :  when  we  look  on  ourselves,  we  see  cause  of  fear  ;  but  when 
v.e  "consider  the  miraculous  power  of  you  our  leaders,  we  can- 
not but  contemn  those  men  of  measures.  Leave  us  not  therefore, 
but  go  before  us  in  your  directions ;  go  to  God  for  us  in  your 
prayers." 

But  now  contrarily  Moses  and  Aaron  fall  on  their  faces  to  them, 
and  sue  to  them,  that  they  would  be  content  to  be  conducted. 
Had  they  been  suffered  to  depart,  they  had  perished  ;  Moses  and 
his  few  had  been,  victorious  I  and  yet,  as  if  he  could  not  be  happy 


corah's  conspiracy.  127 
without  them,  he  falls  on  his  face  to  them,  that  they  would  stay. 
We  have  never  so  much  need  to  be  importuned,  as  in  those  things 
whose  beneht  should  make  us  most  importunate.  The  sweetness 
of  God's  law  and  our  promised  glory  is  such,  as  should  draw  all 
hearts  after  it ;  and  yet  if  we  did  not  sue  to  men,  as  for  life,  that 
they  would  be  reconciled  to  God  and  be  saved,  I  doubt  whether 
they  would  obey  ;  yea,  it  were  well,  if  our  suit  were  sumcient  to 
prevail. 

Though  Moses  and  Aaron  intreat  upon  their  faces,  and  Joshua 
and  Caleb  persuade  and  rend  their  garments,  yet  they  move  no- 
thing. The  obstinate  multitude,  grown  more  violent  with  oppo- 
sing, is  ready  to  return  them  stones  for  their  prayers.  Such  have 
been  ever  the  thanks  of  fidelity  and  truth ;  crossed  wickedness 
proves  desperate,  and  instead  of  yielding,  seeks  for  revenge.  No- 
thing is  so  hateful  to  a  resolute  sinner,  as  good  counsel ;  we  are  be- 
come enemies  to  the  world,  because  we  tell  them  truth. 

That  God  which  was  invisibly  present  while  they  sinned,  vhon 
they  have  sinned  shews  himself  glorious.  They  might  have  seen 
him  before,  that  they  should  not  sin  ;  now  they  cannot  chuse  but 
see  him,  in  the  height  of  their  sin.  They  saw  before  the  pillar  of 
his  ordinary  presence,  now  they  see  him  unusually  terrible :  that 
they  may  with  shame  and  horror  confess  him  able  to  defend,  able 
to  revenge.  The  help  of  God  uses  to  shew  itself  in  extremity. 
He,  that  can  prevent  evils,  conceals  his  aid,  till  danger  be  ripe  ;  and 
then  he  is  as  fearful,  as  before  he  seemed  conniving.    Num.  xiii. 

CORAH'S  CONSPIRACY. 

The  tears  of  Israel  were  scarce  dry,  since  the  smait  of  their  last 
mutiny,  and  now  they  begin  another.  The  multitude  is  like  a 
raging  sea,  full  of  unquiet  billows,  of  discontent,  whereof  one 
rises  in  the  fall  of  another.  They  saw  God  did  but  threaten,  and 
therefore  are  they  bold  to  sin  :  it  was  now  high  time  thfy  should 
know  what  it  is  for  God  to  be  angry.  There  was  never  mch  a  re- 
venge taken  of  Israel  \  never  any  better  deserved.  When  lesser 
warnings  will  not  serve,  God  looks  into  his  quiver  for  deadly  ar- 
rows. 

In  the  mean  time,  what  a  weary  life  did  Moses  lead,  in  these  con- 
tinual successions  of  conspiracies  !  What  did  he  gain  by  this  trou- 
blesome government,  but  danger  and  despight  r  Who  but  he 
would  not  have  wished  himself  rather  with  the  shero  of  Jethro, 
than  with  these  wolves  of  Israel  ?  But,  as  he  durst  not  quit  his 
hook,  without  the  calling  of  God  ;  so  now  he  dare  not  his  sceptre, 
except  he  be  dismissed  of  him  that  called  him  ;  no  troubles,  np; 
oppositions  can  drive  him  from  his  place  :  we  are  too  weak,  if  we 
suiler  men  to  chase  us  from  that  station  where  God  lath  set  us. 
•  I  see  the  Levites,  not  long  since,  drawing  their  sA'ords  for  God 
and  Moses,  against,  the  rest  of  Israel ;  and  that  fact  wins  them  both 
praise  and  blessing.  Now  they  are  the  forwardest  in  the  rebellion 
against  Moses  and  Aaron,  men  of  their  own  tri.be.    There  is  no  as- 


128  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

surance  of  a  man  for  one  act :  whom  one  sin  cannot  fasten  upon, 
another  may.  Yea,  the  same  sin  may  find  a  repulse  one  while  from 
the  same  hand ,  which  another,  time  gives  it  entertainment;  and 
that  yielding  loses  the  thank  of  all  the  former  resistance.  It  is  no 
praise  to  have  done  once  well,  unless  we  continue. 

Outward  privileges  of  blood  can  avail  nothing,  against  a  parti- 
cular calling  of  God.  These  Reubenites  had  the  right  of  the  na- 
tural primogeniture  ;  yet  do  they  vainly  challenge  pre-eminence, 
where  God  hath  subjected  them.  If  all  civil  honour  flow  from  the 
king,  how  much  more  from  the  God  of  kings  !  His  hand  exalts 
the  poor,  and  casts  down  the  mighty  from  their  throne.  The  man, 
tha:  will  be  lifting  up  himself,  in  the  pride  of  his  heart,  from  under 
the  foot  of  God,  is  justly  trodden  in  the  dust. 

Moses  is  the  prince  of  Israel,  Aaron  the  priest;  Moses  was  mild, 
Aaron  popular ;  yet  both  are  conspired  against  :  their  places  are 
no  hss  brothers,  than  their  persons.  Both  are  opposed  at  once. 
He.  that  is  a  traitor  to  the  Church,  is  a  traitor  to  the  king. 

Any  superiority  is  a  mark  of  envy.  Had  Moses  and  Aaron  been 
but  fellows  with  the  Israelites,  none  had  been  better  beloved  ;  their 
dispositions  were  such,  as  must  needs  have  forced  favour  from  the 
indifferent;  now  they  were  advanced,  their  malice  is  not  inferior 
to  their  honour.  High  towers  must  look  for  lightnings ;  we  offer 
not  to  undermine  but  those  walls,  which  we  cannot  scale.  Nature 
in  every  man  is  both  envious  and  disdainful ;  and  never  loves  to 
honoui  another,  but  where  it  may  be  an  honour  to  itself. 

There  cannot  be  conceived  an  honour  less  worth  emulation,  than 
this  principality  of  Israel ;  a  people  that  coidd  give  nothing ;  a 
people  that  had  nothing,  but  in  hope  ;  a  people  whom  their  leader 
was  fain  to  feed  with  bread  and  water  ;  which  paid  him  no  tribute 
but  of  ill  words  ;  whose  command  was  nothing  but  a  burden  ;  and 
yet  this  cignity  was  an  eye-sore  to  these  Levites  and  these  Reu- 
benites, Ye  take  too  much  upon  you,  ye  sons  of'  Levi. 

And  this  challenge,  though  thus  unseasonable,  hath  drawn  in 
twohundied  and  fifty  captains  of  Israel.  What  wonder  is  it,  that 
the  ten  rucrs  prevailed  so  much  with  the  multitude  to  dissuade  them 
from  Canaan,  when  three  traitors  prevailed  thus  with  two  hundred 
and  fifty  rulers,  famous  in  the  congregation,  and  men  of  renown  ? 
One  man  may  kindle  such  a  fire,  as  all  the  world  cannot  quench. 
One  plaguc-sore  may  infect  a  whole  kingdom :  the  infection  of 
evil  is  much  worse  than  the  act. 

It  is  not  lik?,  these  leaders  of  Israel  could  err  without  followers  : 
he  is  a  mean  man  that  draws  not  some  clients  after  him.  It  hath 
been  ever  a  dangerous  policy  of  Satan,  to  assault  the  best :  he  knows, 
that  the  multitude,  as  we  say  of  bees,  will  follow  their  master. 

Nothing  car:  be  more  pleasing  to  the  vulgar  sort,  than  to  hear 
their  governors  taxed  and  themselves  flattered.  All  the  congrega- 
tion is  holy,  every  one  of  them  :  Wherefore  lift  ye  up  yourselves  ? 
Every  word  is  a  falsehood.  For  Moses  dejected  himself,  Who  am  I? 
God  lifted  him  up  over  Israel  ;  and  so  was  Israel  holy,  as  Moses 
was  ambitious.    What  holiness  was  there  in  so  much  infidelity, 


corah's  conspiracy. 


129 


fear,  idolatry,  mutiny,  disobedience  ?  What  could  make  them" 
unclean,  if  this  were  holiness  ?  They  had  scarce  wiped  their 
mouths,  or  washed  their  hands,  since  their  last  obstinacy  ;  and  yet 
these  pick-thanks  say,  All  Israel  is  holy. 

I  would  never  desire  a  better  proof  of  a  false  teacher,  than  flat- 
tery ;  true  meaning  need  not  uphold  itself  by  soothing.  There  is 
nothing  easier  than  to  persuade  men  well  of  themselves  :  when  a 
man's  self-love  meets  with  another's  flattery,  it  is  a  high  praise  that 
will  not  be  believed.  It  was  more  out  of  opposition  than  belief, 
that  these  men  plead  the  holiness  of  Israel.  Violent  adversaries,  to 
uphold  a  side,  will  maintain  those  things  they  believe  not. 

Moses  argues  not  for  himself,  but  appeals  to  God ;  neither 
speaks  for  his  own  right,  but  his  brother  Aaron's.  He  knew  that 
God's  immediate  service  was  worthy  to  be  more  precious  than  his 
government ;  that  his  princedom  served  but  to  the  glory  of  his 
Master.  Good  magistrates  are  more  tender  over  God's  honour  than 
their  own  ;  and  more  sensible  of  the  wrongs  offered  to  religion  than 
to  themselves. 

It  is  safest  to  trust  God  with  his  own  causes.  If  Aaron  had 
been  chosen  by  Israel,  Moses  would  have  sheltered  him  under  their 
authority ;  now,  that  God  did  immediately  appoint  him,  his  patron- 
age is  sought,  whose  the  election  was.  We  may  easily  fault  in  the 
managing  of  divine  affairs,  and  so  our  want  of  success  cannot  want 
sin  ;  he  knows  how  to  use,  how  to  bless  his  own  means. 

As  there  was  a  difference  betwixt  the  people  and  Levites,  so  be- 
twixt the  Levites  and  priests.  The  God  of  order  loves  to  have  our 
degrees  kept.  While  the  Levites  would  be  looking  up  to  the 
priests,  Moses  sends  down  their  eyes  to  the  people.  The  way  not 
to  repine  at  those  above  us,  is  to  look  at  those  below  us.  There  is 
no  better  remedy  for  ambition,  than  to  cast  up  our  former  receipts, 
and  to  compare  them  with  our  deservirigs,  and  to  confer  our  own 
estate  with  inferiors  ;  so  shall  we  find  cause  to  be  thankful  that  we 
are  above  any,  rather  than  of  envy  that  any  is  above  us. 

Moses  hath  chid  the  sons  of  Levi,  for  mutinying  against  Aaron  ; 
and  so  much  the  more,  because  they  were  of  his  own  tribe  :  now  he 
sends  for  the  Reubenites,  which  rose  against  himself.  They  come 
not,  and  their  message  is  worse  than  their  absence.  Moses  is  ac- 
cused of  injustice,  cruelty,  falsehood,  treachery,  usurpation;  and 
Egypt  itself  must  be  commended,  rather  than  Moses  shall  want  re- 
proach. Innocency  is  no  shelter  from  ill  tongues  :  malice  never 
regards  how  true  any  accusation  is,  but  how  spiteful. 

Now  it  was  time  for  Moses  to  be  angry.  They  durst  not  have 
been  thus  bold,  if  they  had  not  seen  his  mildness.  Lenity  is  ill  be- 
stowed upon  stubborn  natures  :  it  is  an  injurious  senselessness,  not  to 
feel  the  wounds  of  our  reputation.  It  well  appears  he  is  angry, 
when  he  prays  against  them.  He  was  displeased  before ;  but  when 
he  was  most  bitter  against  them,  he  still  prayed  for  them  :  but  now 
he  bends  his  very  prayers  against  them  ;  Look  not  to  their  offering. 
There  can  be  no  greater  revenge,  than  the  imprseation  of  the 

vol.  i.  K 


130  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

righteous  ;  there  can  be  no  greater  judgment,  than  God's  rejection 
or  their  services.  With  us  men,  what  more  argues  dislike  of  the 
person,  than  the  turning  back  of  his  present  ?  What  will  God  ac- 
cept from  us,  if  not  prayers  ? 

The  innocence  of  Moses  calls  for  revenge  on  his  adversaries.  If 
he  had  wronged  them  in  his  government,  in  vain  should  he  have 
looked  to  God's  hand  for  right.  Our  sins  exclude  us  from  God's 
protection  ;  whereas  uprightness  challenges  and  finds  his  patron- 
age. An  ass  taken  had  made  him  incapable  of  favour.  Corrupt 
governors  lose  the  comfort  of  their  own  breast,  and  the  tuition  of 
God. 

The  same  tongue,  that  pra}Ted  against  the  conspirators,  prays  for 
the  people.  As  lewd  men  think  to  carry  it  with  number,  Corah 
had  so  far  prevailed,  that  he  had  drawn  the  multitude  to  his  side. 
God,  the  avenger  of  treasons,  would  have  consumed  them  all  at 
once ;  Moses  and  Aaron  pray  for  their  rebels.  Although  they 
were  worthy  of  death,  and  nothing  but  death  could  stop  their 
mouths  ;  yet  their  merciful  leaders  will  not  buy  their  own  peace, 
with  the  loss  of  such  enemies.  O  rare  and  iniitable  mercy  !  The 
people  rise  up  against  their  governors ;  their  governors  fall  on 
their  faces  to  God  for  the  people  ;  so  far  are  they  from  plotting  re- 
venge, that  they  will  not  endure  God  should  revenge  for  them. 

Moses  knew  well  enough  that  all  those  Israelites  must  perish  in 
the  wilderness  ;  God  had  vowed  it  for  their  former  insurrection  ; 
yet  how  earnestly  doth  he  sue  to  God,  not  to  consume  them  at 
once  !    The  very  respite  of  evils  is  a  favour  next  to  the  removal. 

Corah  kindled  the  fire ;  the  two  hundred  and  fifty  captains 
brought  sticks  to  it ;  all  Israel  warmed  themselves  by  it ;  only  the 
incendiaries  perish.  Now  do  the  Israelites  owe  their  life  to  them, 
whose  death  they  intended.  God  and  Moses  knew  to  distinguish 
betwixt  the  heads  of  the  faction  and  the  train  ;  though  neither  be 
faultless,  yet  the  one' is  plagued,  the  other  forgiven.  God's  ven- 
geance, when  it  is  at  the  hottest,  makes  differences  of  men  ;  Get 
you  away  from  about  the  tabernacles  oj  Corah.  Ever  before  com- 
mon judgment  there  is  a  separation.  In  the  universal  judgment 
of  all  the  earth,  the  Judge  himself  will  separate  ;  in  these  particu- 
lar executions,  we  must  separate  ourselves.  The  society  of  wicked 
men,  especially  in  their  sins,  is  mortally  dangerous  :  while  we  will 
not  be  parted,  how  can  we  complain,  if  we  be  enwrapped  in  their 
condemnation  I  Our  very  company  sins  with  them,  why  should 
we  not  smart  with  them  also  ? 

Moses  had  well  hoped,  that  when  these  rebels  should  see  all  the 
Israelites  run  from  them  as  from  monsters  and  looking  affrighted- 
ly  upon  their  tents,  and  should  hear  that  fearful  proclamation  of 
vengeance  against  them,  howsoever  thev  did  before  set  a  face  on 
their  conspiracy,  yet  now  their  hearts  would  have  misgiven  :  but 
lo,  these  hold  traitors  stand  impudently  staring  in  the  door  of  their 
tents,  as  if  the}-  would  out-face  the  revenge  of  God  ;  as  if  Moses 
had  never  v\rought  miracle  before  them  ;  as  if  no  one  Israelite  had 
ever  hied  for  rebelling.    Those-  that  shall  perish  are  bunded.., 


corah's  conspiracy.  131 
Pride  and  infidelity  obdure  the  heart,  and  make  even  cowards 
fearless. 

So  soon  as  the  innocent  are  severed,  the  guilty  perish  :  (he 
earth  cleaves  and  swallows  up  the  rebels.  This  element  was  not 
used  to  such  morsels.  It  devours  the  carcases  of  men  ;  but  bodies 
informed  with  living  souls,  never  before.  To  have  seen  them, 
struck  dead  upon  the  earth  had  been  fearful ;  but  to  see  the  earth 
at  once  their  executioner  and  grave  was  more  horrible.  Neither 
the  sea,  nor  the  earth  is  fit  to  give  passage:  the  sea  is  moist  and 
flowing,  and  will  not  be  divided,  for  the  continuity  of  it ;  the  earth 
is  dry  and  massy,  and  will  neither  yield  naturally,  nor  meet  again 
when  it  hath  yielded  :  yet  the  waters  did  cleave  to  give  way  unto 
Israel,  for  their  preservation  ;  the  earth  did  cleave,  to  give  wa)"to 
the  conspirators,  in  judgment :  both  sea  and  earth  did  shut  their 
jaws  again  upon  the  adversaries  of  God. 

There  was  more  wonder  in  this  latter.  It  was  a  marvel  that  the 
waters  opened :  it  was  no  w  onder  that  they  shut  again  ;  for  the 
retiring  and  flowing  was  natural.  It  was  no  less  marvel,  that  the 
earth  opened  ;  but  more  marvel  that  it  did  shut  again,  because  it 
had  no  natural  disposition  to  meet  when  it  was  divided.  Now 
might  Israel  see  they  had  to  do  with  a  God,  that  could  revenge  with 
ease. 

There  were  two  sorts  of  traitors  ;  the  earth  swallowed  up  the  one, 
the  fire  the  other.  All  the  elements  agree  to  serve  the  vengeance 
of  their  Maker.  Nadab  and  ^bihu  brought  fit  persons,  but  unfit 
fire  to  God ;  these  Levites  bring  the  right  fire,  but  unwarranted 
persons  before  him  ;  fire  from  God  consumes  both.  It  is  a  dan- 
gerous thing  to  usurp  sacred  functions.  The  ministry  will  not 
grace  the  man ;  the  man  may  disgrace  the  ministry. 

The  common  people  were  not  so  fast  gathered  to  Corah's  flat- 
tering persuasion  before,  as  now  they  ran  from  the  sight  and  fear 
of  his  judgment.  I  marvel  not  if  they  could  not  trust  that  earth 
whereon  they  stood,  while  they  knew  their  hearts  had  been  false. 
It  is  u  madness  to  run  away  from  punishment,  and  not  from  sin. 

Numb,  xmu 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


BOOK  VII. 


TO  MY  RIGHT  HONOURABLE 
RELIGIOUS   AND   BOUNTIFUL  PATRON, 

EDWARD,  LORD  DENNY, 

BARON  OF  WALTHAM, 
THE  CHIEF  COMFORT  OF  MY  LABOURS: 

/.  H. 

WISHETH  ALL  TRUE  HAPPINESS, 
AND  DEDICATES  THIS  PART  OF  HIS  MEDITATIONS. 


AARON'S  CENSER  AND  ROD. 

"When  shall  we  see  an  end  of  these  murmuvings  and  these  judg- 
ments ?    Because  these  men  rose  up  against  Moses  and  Aaron, 
therefore  God  consumed  them  ;  and  because  God  consumed  them, 
therefore  the  people  rise  up  against  Moses  and  Aaron  ;  and  now, 
because  the  people  thus  murmur,  God  hath  again  begun  to  con- 
sume them.    What  a  circle  is  here  of  sins  and  judgments  !  Wrath 
is  gone  out  from  God  ;  Moses  is  quick-sighted,  and  spies  it  at  the 
setting  out.    By  how  much  more  faithful  and  familiar  we  are  with 
God,  so  much  earlier  do  we  discern  his  judgments  ;  as  those,  which 
are  well  acquainted  with  men,  know  by  their  looks  and  gestures 
that  which  strangers  understand  but  by  their  actions  ;  as  finer  tem- 
pers are  more  sensible  of  the  changes  of  weather.    Hence  the  seers 
of  God  have  ever  from  their  watch-tower  descried  the  judgments  of 
God  afar  off".    If  another  man  had  seen  from  Carmel  a  cloud  of  a 
hand-breadth,  he  could  not  have  told  Ahab  he  should  be  wet.    It  is 
enough  for  God's  messengers,  out  of  their  acquaintance  with  their 
Master's  proceedings,  to  foresee  punishment :  no  marvel  if  those 
see  it  not,  which  are  wilfully  sinful :  we  men  reveal  not  our  secret 
purposes  either  to  enemies  or  strangers  :  all  their  favour  is  to  fee] 
the  plague,  ere  they  can  espy  it. 

Moses,  though  he  were  great  with  God,  yet  he  takes  not  upon 
him  this  reconciliation  :  he  may  advise  Aaron  what  to  do,  himself 
undertakes  not  to  act  it ;  it  is  the  work  of  the  priesthood  to  make 
an  atonement  for  the  people.  Aaron  was  first  his  brothel's  tongue 


aaron's  censer  and  rod,  133 

lo  Pharaoh,  now  he  is  the  people's  tongue  to  God:  he  only  must 
offer  up  the  incense  of  the  public  prayers  to  God.  Who  would 
not  think  it  a  small  thing  to  hold  a  censer  in  his  hand  ?  yet  if  any 
other  had  done  it,  he  had  fallen  with  the  dead,  and  not  stood  be- 
twixt the  living  and  dead ;  instead  of  the  smoke  ascending,  the 
fire  had  descended  upon  him  ;  and  shall  there  be  less  use,  or  less 
regard,  of  the  evangelical  ministry,  than  the  legal  ?  When  the 
world  hath  poured  out  all  his  contempt,  we  are  they  that  must  re- 
concile men  to  God,  and  without  us  they  perish. 

I  know  not  whether  more  to  marvel  at  the  courage  or  mercy  of 
Aaron  ;  his  mercy,  that  he  would  yet  save  so  rebellious  a  people  ; 
his  courage,  that  he  would  save  them  with  so  great  a  danger  of 
himself :  for,  as  one  that  would  part  a  fray,  he  thrusts  himself 
under  the  strokes  of  God  ;  and  puts  it  to  the  choice  of  the  revenger, 
whether  he  will  smite  him  or  forbear  the  rest.  He  stands  boldly 
betwixt  the  living  and  the  dead,  as  one  that  will  either  die  with 
them,  or  have  them  live  with  him.  The  sight  of  fourteen  hundred 
carcases  dismayed  him  not.  He  that  before  feared  the  threats  of  the 
people,  now  fears  not  the  strokes  of  God.  It  is  not  for  God's  mi- 
nisters, to  stand  upon  their  own  perils  in  the  common  causes  of 
the  Church :  their  prayers  must  oppose  the  judgments  of  the  Al- 
mighty :  when  the  fire  of  God's  anger  is  kindled,  their  censers 
must  smoke  with  fire  from  the  altar.  Every  Christian  must  pray 
the  removal  of  vengeance  ;  how  much  more  they  whom  God  hath 
appointed  to  mediate  for  his  people !  Every  man's  mouth  is  his 
own  ;  but  they  are  the  mouths  of  all. 

Had  Aaron  thrust  in  himself  with  empty  hands,  I  doubt  whether 
he  had  prevailed  j  now  his  censer  was  his  protection :  when  we 
eome  with  supplications  in  our  hands,  we  need  not  fear  the  strokes 
of  God.  We  have  leave  to  resist  the  divine  judgments  by  our 
prayers,  with  favour  and  success.  So  soon  as  the  incense  of  Aaron 
ascended  up  unto  God,  he  smelt  a  savour  of  rest :  he  will  rathor 
spare  the  offenders,  than  strike  their  intercessor.  How  hardly  can 
any  people  miscarry,  that  have  faithful  ministers  to  sue  for  their 
safety  :  nothing  but  the  smoke  of  hearty  prayers  can  cleanse  the 
air  from  the  plagues  of  God. 

If  Aaron's  sacrifice  were  thus  accepted,  how  much  more  shall 
the  High  Priest  of  the  New  Testament,  by  interposing  himself  to 
.the  wrath  of  his  Father,  deliver  the  offenders  from  death  !  The 
plague  was  entered  upon  all  the  sons  of  men :  O  Saviour,  thou 
stoodst  betwixt  the  living  and  the  dead,  that  all,  which  believe  in 
thee,  should  not  perish.  Aaron  offered  and  was  not  stricken  ;  but 
thou,  O  Redeemer,  wouldst  offer  and  be  struck,  that  by  thy  stripes 
we  might  be  healed  :  so  stoodst  thou  betwixt  the  dead  and  living, 
that  thou  wert  both  alive  and  dead  ;  and  all  this  that  we,  when  we 
were  dead,  might  live  for  ever. 

Nothing  more  troubled  Israel,  than  a  fear  lest  the  two  brethren 
houJd  cunningly  engross  the  government  to  themselves;  If  they 
had  done  so,  what  wise  man  would  have  envied  them  an  office  so 
little  worth,  so  dearly  purchased  ?  But  because  this  conceit  was 


134 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


ever  apt  to  stir  them  to  rebellion,  and  to  hinder  the  benefit  of  this 
holv  sovereignty,  therefore  God  hath  endeavoured  nothing  more, 
than  to  let  them  see  that  these  officers,  whom  they  so  much  envied, 
were  of  his  own  proper  institution.  They  had  scarce  shut  their  eves, 
since  they  saw  the  confusion  of  those  two  hundred  and  fiftv  usurp- 
ing sacrificers,  and  Aaron's  effectual  intercession  for  staving  the 
plague  of  Israel.  In  the  one,  the  execution  of  God's  vengeance 
upon  the  competitors  of  Aaron  for  his  sake,  in  the  other,  the  for- 
bearance of  vengeance  upon  the  people  for  Aaron's  mediation, 
might  have  challenged  their  voluntary  acknowledgment  of  his  just 
calling  from  God  :  if  there  had  been  in  them  either  awe  or  thank- 
fulness, they  could  not  have  doubted  of  his  lawful  supremacy. 
How  could  they  choose  but  argue  thus :  "  Why  would  God  so 
fearfully  have  destroyed  the  rivals  that  durst  contest  with  Aaron, 
if  he  would  have  allowed  him  any  equal  ?  Wherefore  serve  those 
plates  of  the  altar,  which  we  see  made  of  those  usurped  censers, 
but  to  warn  all  posterity  of  Such  presumption  ?  Why  should  God 
cease  striking,  while  Aaron  interposed  betwixt  the  living  and  the 
dead,  if  he  were  but  as  one  of  us  ?  Which  of  us,  if  we  had  stood 
in  the  plague,  had  net  added  to  the  heap  ?" 

Incredulous  minds  will  not  be  persuaded  with  an}-  evidence. 
These  two  brothers  had  lived  asunder  forty  years ;  God  makes 
them  both  meet  in  one  office  of  delivering >Israel.  One  half  of 
the  miracles  were  wrought  by  Aaron  ;  he  struck  with  the  rod, 
while  it  brought  those  plagues  on  Egypt.  The  Israelites  heard 
God  call  him  up  by  name  to  Mount  Sinai ;  they  saw  him  anointed 
from  God  ;  and,  lest  they  should  think  this  a  set  match  betwixt 
the  brethren,  they  saw  the  earth  opening,  the  fire  issuing  from  God 
upon  their  emulous  opposites  ;  they  saw  his  smoke  a  sufficient  an- 
tidote for  the  plague  of  God ;  and  yet  still  Aaron's  calling  is  ques- 
tioned. Nothing  is  more  natural  to  every  man  than  unbelief; 
but  the  earth  never  yielded  a  people  so  strongly  incredulous  as 
these ;  and  after  so  many  thousand  generations,  their  children  do 
inherit  their  obstinacy  ;  still  do  they  oppose  the  true  High  Priest, 
the  Anointed  of  God  :  sixteen  hundred  years  desolation  hath  not 
drawn  from  them  to  confess  him  whom  God  hath  chosen. 

How  desirous  was  God  to  give  satisfaction  even  to  the  obstinate ! 
There  is  nothing  more  material,  than  that  men  should  be  assured 
their  spiritual  guides  have  their  commission  and  calling  from  God : 
the  want  whereof  is  a  prejudice  to  our  success.  It  should  not  be 
so;  but  the  corruption  of  men  will  not  receive  good,  but  from  due 
messengers. 

Before,  God  wrought  miracles  in  the  rod  of  Moses ;  now,  in 
the  rod  of  Aaron.  As  Pharaoh  might  see  himself  in  Moses's  rod  ; 
which,  of  a  rod  of  defence  and  protection,  was  turned  into  a 
venomous  serpent :  so  Israel  might  see  themselves  in  the  rod  of 
Aaron.  Every  tribe  and  every  Israelite  was,  of  himself,  as  a  sere 
stick,  without  life,  without  sap  ;  and  if  any  one  of  them  had  power 
to  live  and  flourish,  he  must  acknowledge  it  from  the  immediate 
power  and  gift  of  God. 


aaron's  censer  and  rod.  135 

Before  God's  calling  all  men  are  alike  :  every  name  is  alike  writ- 
ten in  their  rod  ;  there  is  no  difference  in  the  letters,  in  the  wood  ; 
neither  the  characters  of  Aaron  are  fairer,  nor  the  staff  more  pre- 
cious ;  it  is  the  choice  of  GoJ  that  makes  the  distinction  :  so  it  is 
in  our  calling  of  Christianity  ;  all  are  equally  devoid  of  the  possi- 
bility of  grace :  all  equally  lifeless ;  by  nature  we  all  arc  sons  of 
wrath :  if  we  be  now  better  than  others,  who  separated  us  ?  We 
are  all  crab  stocks  in  this  orchard  of  God  ;  he  may  graft  what  fruit 
he  pleases  upon  us,  only  the  grace  and  effectual  calling  of  God 
make  the  difference. 

These  twelve  heads  of  Israel  would  never  have  written  their 
names  in  their  rods,  but  in  hope  they  might  be  chosen  to  this  dig- 
nity. What  an  honour  was  this  priesthood,  whereof  all  the  princes 
of  Israel  are  ambitious  !  If  they  had  not  thought  it  a  high  prefer- 
ment, they  had  never  so  much  envied  the  office  of  Aaron.  What 
shall  we  think  of  this  change  ?  Is  the  evangelical  ministration  of 
less  worth  than  the  levitical  ?  While  the  testament  is  better,  is  the 
service  worse  ?  How  is  it,  that  the  great  think  themselves  too  good 
for  this  employment  ?  How  is  it,  that  under  the  Gospel  men  are 
disparaged  with  that  which  honoured  them  under  the  law ;  that 
their  ambition  and  our  scorn  meet  in  one  subject  ? 

These  twelve  rods  are  not  laid  up  in  the  several  cabinefs  of  their 
owners,  but  are  brought  forth  and  laid  before  the  Lord.  It  is  fit 
God  should  make  choice  of  his  own  attendants.  Even  we  men 
hold  it  injurious  to  have  servants  obtruded  upon  us  by  others  i 
never  shall  that  man  have  comfort  in  his  ministry  whom  God  hath 
not  chosen.  The  great  Commander  of  the  world  hath  set  every 
man  in  his  station  ;  to  one  he  hath  said,  "  Stand  thou  in  this  tower 
and  watch  ;"  to  another,  "  Make  thou  good  these  trenches  ;"  to  a 
third,  "  Dig  thou  in  this  mine."  He  that  gives  and  knows  our 
abilities  can  best  set  us  on  work. 

This  rod  was  the  pastoral  staff  of  Aaron,  the  great  shepherd  of 
Israel,  God  testifies  his  approbation  of  his  charge  by  the  fruit. 
That  a  rod  cut  off  from  the  tree  should  blossom,  it  was  strange  ; 
but  that  in  one  night  it  should  bear  buds,  blossoms,  fruit,  and  that 
both  ripe  and  hard,  it  was  highly  miraculous.  The  same  power  that 
revives  the  dead  plants  of  winter,  in  the  spring,  doth  it  here  with, 
out  earth,  without  time,  without  sun  ;  that  Israel  might  see  and 
grant,  it  was  no  reason  his  choice  should  be  limited,  whose  power 
is  unlimited. 

Fruitfulness  is  the  best  argument  of  the  calling  of  God  :  not 
only  all  the  plants  of  his  setting,  but  the  very  boughs  cut  off  from 
the  body  of  them,  will  flourish.  And  that  there  may  not  want  a 
succession  of  increase,  here  are  fruit,  blossoms,  buds ;  both  proof 
and  hope  inseparably  mixed. 

It  could  not  but  be  a  great  comfort,  unto  Aaron,  to  see  his  rod 
thus  miraculously  flourishing  ;  to  see  this  wonderful  testimony  of 
God's  favour  and  election  :  sure  he  could  not  but  think, ,"  Who 
am  I,  O  God,  that  thou  shouldst  thus  choose  me  out  of  all  the 
tribes  of  Israel  ?   My  weakness  hath  been  more  worthy  of  thy  rod 


135  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

of  correction,  than  my  rod  hath  been  worthy  of  these  blossoms. 
How  hast  thou  magnified  me  in  the  sight  of  ail  thy  people  !  How- 
able  art  thou  to  uphold  my  imbecility  with  the  rod  of  thy  support, 
how  able  to  defend  me  with  the  rod  of  thy  power,  who  hast  thus 
brought  fruit  out  of  the  sapless  rod  of  my  profession  !"  That  ser- 
vant of  God  is  worthy  to  faint,  that  holds  it  not  a  sufficient  en- 
couragement, to  see  the  evident  proofs  of  his  Master's  favour. 

Commonly,  those  fruits,  which  are  soon  ripe,  soon  wither  ;  but 
these  almonds  of  Aaron's  rod  are  not  more  early,  than  lasting : 
the  same  hand,  which  brought  them  out  before  their  time,  pre- 
served them  beyond  their  time  ;  and  for  perpetual  memory,  both 
rod  and  fruit  must  be  kept  in  the  ark  of  God.  The  tables  of 
Moses,  the  rod  of  Aaron,  the  manna  of  God,  are  monuments  fit 
for  so  holy  a  shrine.  The  Doctrine,  Sacraments,  and  Government 
of  God's  people,  are  precious  to  him,  and  must  be  so  to  men. 
All  times  shall  see  and  wonder,  how  his  ancient  Church  was  fed, 
taught,  ruled.  Moses's  rod  did  great  miracles,  yet  I  find  it  not 
in  the  ark.  The  rod  of  Aaron  hath  this  privilege,  because  it  car- 
ried the  miracle  still  in  itself ;  whereas  the  wonders  of  that  other 
rod  were  passed.  Those  monuments  would  God  have  continued 
in  his  Church,  which  carry  in  them  the  most  manifest  evidences 
of  that  wnich  they  import. 

The  same  God,  which  by  many  transient  demonstrations  had 
approved  the  calling  of  Aaron  to  Israel,  will  now  have  a  permanent 
memorial  of  their  conviction  ;  that  whensoever  they  should  see 
this  relic,  they  should  be  ashamed  of  their  presumption  and  infi- 
delity. The  name  of  Aaron  was  not  more  plainly  written  in  that 
rod,  than  the  sin  of  Israel  was  in  the  fruit  of  it ;  and  how  much 
Israel  finds  their  rebellion  beaten  with  this  rod,  appears  in  their 
present  relenting  and  complaint ;  Behold,  v:e  are  dead,  we  perish. 
God  knows  how  to  pull  down  the  biggest  stomach,  and  can  extort 
glory  to  his  own  name  from  the  most  obstinate  gainsay ers. 

Num.  xvi.  xvii. 


THE  BRAZEN  SERPENT. 

Seven  times  already  hath  Israel  mutinied  against  Moses,  and  seven 
times  hath  either  been  threatened  or  punished  ;  yet  now  they  fall 
to  it  afresh.  As  a  testy  man  finds  occasion  to  chafe  at  every  trifle, 
so  this  discontented  people  either  find  or  make  all  things  trouble- 
some. One  while  they  have  no  water  ;  then  bitter  :  one  while  no 
God  ;  then  one  too  many :  one  while  no  bread  ;  then  bread  enough, 
but  too  light :  one  while  they  will  not  abide  their  governors  ;  then 
they  cannot  abide  their  loss,  Aaron  and  Miriam  were  never  so 
grudged  alive,  as  they  are  bewailed  dead.  Before,  they  wanted 
onions,  garlick,  flesh-pots  ;  now  they  want  figs,  vines,  pomegra- 
nates, corn.  And  as  crabbed  children  that  cry  for  every  thing 
they  can  think  of,  are  whipped  by  their  wise  mother,  so  God  justly 
serves  these  fond  Israelites. 

It  was  first  their  way  that  makes  them  repine,    They  were  fain 


THE  BRAZEN  SERPENT. 


137 


to  go  round  about  Idumea ;  the  journey  was  long  and  trouble- 
some. They  had  sent  entreaties  to  Edom  for  licence  of  passage 
the  next  way,  reasonably,  submissively  ;  it  was  churlishly  denied 
them.  Esau  lives  still  in  his  posterity  ;  Jacob,  in  Israel :  the  com- 
bat which  they  began  in  Rebecca's  belly  is  not  yet  ended.  Ama- 
lek,  which  was  one  limb  of  Esau,  follows  them  at  the  heels ;  the 
Edomite,  which  was  another,  meets  them  in  the  face :  so  long  as 
there  is  a  world,  there  will  be  opposition  to  the  chosen  of  God. 
They  may  come  at  their  peril ;  the  way  had  been  nearer,  but 
bloody  ;  they  dare  not  go  it,  and  yet  complain  of  length. 

If  they  were  afraid  to  purchase  their  resting  place  with  war, 
how  much  less  would  they  their  passage  !  What  should  God  do 
with  impatient  men  ?  They  will  not  go  the  nearest  way,  and  yet 
complain  to  go  about.  He,  that  will  pass  to  the  promised  land, 
must  neither  stand  upon  length  of  way  nor  difficulty.  Every  way 
hath  its  inconveniencies ;  the  nearest  hath  more  danger,  the  far- 
thest hath  more  pain  ;  cither  or  both  must  be  oA'ercome,  if  ever 
we  will  enter  the  rest  of  God. 

Aaron  and  Miriam  were  now  past  the  danger  of  their  mutinies  ; 
for  want  of  another  match,  they  join  God  with  Moses,  in  their 
murmurings  :  though  they  had  not  mentioned  him,  they  could  not 
sever  him  in  their  insurrection  ;  for,  in  the  causes  of  his  own  ser- 
vants, he  challenges  even  when  lie  is  not  challenged.  What  will 
become  of  thee,  O  Israel,  when  thou  makest  thy  Maker  thine  ene- 
my ?  Impatience  is  the  cousin  to  frenzy  ;  this  causes  men  not  to 
care  upon  whom  they  run,  so  they  may  breathe  out  some  revenge. 
How  often  have  we  heard  men  that  have  been  displeased  by  others, 
tear  the  name  of  their  Maker  in  pieces  !  He,  that  will  judge,  and 
can  confound,  is  fetched  into  the  quarrel  without  cause.  But  if 
to  strive  with  a  mighty  man  be  unwise  and  unsafe,  what  shall  it  be 
to  strive  with  the  mighty  God  ? 

As  an  angry  child  casts  away  that  which  is  given  him,  because 
he  hath  not  that  he  would,  so  do  these  foolish  Israelites  :  their 
bread  is  light  and  their  water  unsatisfying,  because  their  way  dis- 
pleased them.  Was  ever  people  fed  with  such  bread  or  water  ? 
Twice  hath  the  very  rock  yielded  them  water,  and  every  day  the 
heaven  affords  them  bread.  Did  any  one  soul  amongst  them  mis- 
carry, cither  for  hunger  or  thirst  ?  But  no  bread  will  down  with 
them,  save  that  which  the  earth  yields  ;  no  water  but  from  the  na- 
tural wells  or  rivers.  Unless  nature  may  be  allowed  to  be  her  own 
carver,  she  is  never  contented. 

Manna  had  no  fault,  but  that  it  was  too  good  and  too  frequent : 
the  pulse  of  Egypt  had  been  fitter  for  these  coarse  mouths.  This 
heavenly  bread  was  unspeakably  delicious  ;  it  tasted  like  wafers  of 
honey;  and  yet  even  this  angels'  food  is  contemned.  He  that  is 
full  despiscth  a  honeycomb.  How  sweet  and  delicate  is  the  Gos- 
pel !  Not  only  the  fathers  of  the  Old  Testament,  but  the  angels, 
desired  to  look  into  the  glorious  mysteries  of  it ;  and  yet  we  are 
cloyed.  This  supernatural  food  is  too  light:  the  bread-corn  of  our 
human  reason,  and  profound  discourse,  would  better  content  us. 


13S  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

Moses  will  not  revenge  this  wrong,  God  will ;  yet  will  he  not  deal 
with  them  himself,  but  he  sends  the  fiery  serpents  to  answer  for  him : 
how  fitly  I  Thev  had  carried  themselves  like  serpents  to  their  gover- 
nors ;  how  often  had  thev  stung  Moses  and  Aaron,  near  to  death  ! 
If  the  serpent  bite  when  he  is  not  charmed,  no  better  is  a  slanderer. 
Now  these  venomous  adders  revenge  it,  which  are  therefore  called 
fiery  because  their  poison  scalded  to  death  :  God  hath  a  hand  in 
the  annovance  and  hurt  of  the  basest  creature  ;  how  much  less  can 
the  sting  of  an  ill  tongue,  or  the  malice  of  an  ill  spirit,  strike  us 
without  him!  While  they  were  in  Goshen,  the  frogs,  lice,  cater- 
pillars spared  them,  and  plagued  the  Egyptians  ;  now  they  are  re- 
bellious in  the  desert,  the  serpents  find  them  out  and  sting  them 
to  death.  He,  that  brought  the  quails  thither  to  feed  them,  fetches 
these  serpents  thither  to  punish  them.  While  we  are  at  war  with 
God,  we  can  look  for  no  peace  with  his  creatures :  every  thing 
rejoices  to  execute  the  vengeance  of  his  Maker.  The  stones  of 
the  field  will  not  be  in  league  with  us,  while  we  are  not  in  league 
with  Go d. 

These  men,  when  the  spies  liad  told  them  news  of  the  giants  of 
Canaan,  a  little  before  had  wished,  l\  oidd  God  -ce  were  dead  in 
this  wilderness :  now  God  hath  heard  their  prayers,  what  with  the 
plague,  what  with  the  serpents,  many  thousands  of  them  died. 
The  ill  wishes  of  our  impatience  are  many  times  heard.  As  those 
good  things  are  not  granted  us,  which  we  pray  for  (without  care  ;  so 
those  evds,  which  we  prav  for  and  would  not  have,  are  often  granted. 
The  ears  of  God  are  not  onlv  open  to  the  prayers  of  faith,  but  to 
the  imprecations  of  infidelity.  It  is  dangerous  wishing  evil  to 
ourselves  or  ours:  it  is  just  with  God  to  take  us  at  our  word,  and 
to  effect  that  which  our  lips  speak  against  our  heart. 

Before,  God  hath  ever  consulted  with  Moses,  and  threatened 
eie  he  punished  ;  now  he  strikes,  and  says  nothing.  The  anger 
is  so  much  more,  bv  how  much  less  notified.  When  God  is  not 
heard  before  he  is  felt,  (as  in  the  hewing  of  wood,  the  blow  is  not 
heard  till  the  axe  be  seen  to  have  struck)  it  is  a  fearful  sign  of  dis- 
pleasure :  it  is  with  God  as  with  us  men,  that  still  revenges  are 
ever  most  dangerous.  Till  now  all  was  well  enough  with  Israel, 
and  yet  thev  grudged:  those,  that  will  complain  without  a  cause, 
shall  have  cause  to  complain  lor  something.  Discontented  hu- 
mours seldom  escape  unpunished,  but  receive  that  most  justly 
whereat  they  repined  unjustly. 

Now  the  people  are  glad  to  seek  to  Moses  unbidden.  Ever 
heretofore  they  have  been  wont  to  be  sued  to,  and  entreated  for 
without  their  own  entreaty  ;  now  their  misery  makes  them  impor- 
tunate :  there  needs  no  solicitor,  where  there  is  sense  of  smart. 
It  were  pity  men  should  want  affliction,  since  it  sends  them  to 
their  pravers  and  confesMons.  All  the  persuasions  of  Moses  could 
not  do  that,  which  the  serpents  have  done  for  him.  O  God,  thou 
seest  how  neccssarv  it  is  we  should  be  stung  sometimes,  else  we 
should  run  wild,  and  never  come  to  a  sound  humiliation  :  we  should 
never  seek  thee,  if  thy  hand  did  not  find  us  out. 


OF  BALAAM. 


139 


They  had  spoken  against  God  and  Moses,  and  now  they  hum- 
bly speak  to  Moses  that  he  would  pray  to  God  for  them.  He,  that 
so  often  prayed  for  them  unbidden,  cannot  but  much  more  do  it 
requested ;  and  now  obtains  the  means  of  their  cure.  It  was 
equally  in  the  power  of  God  to  remove  the  serpents,  and  to  heal 
their  stinging  ;  to  have  cured  the  Israelites  by  his  word,  and  by 
his  sign  :  but  he  finds  it  best  for  his  people  (to  exercise  their 
faith)  that  the  serpents  may  bite,  and  their  bitings  may  envenom, 
and  that  this  venom  may  endanger  the  Israelites ;  and  that  they, 
thus  affected,  may  seek  to  him  for  remedy,  and  seeking  may  find 
it  from  such  means  as  should  have  no  power  but  in  signification ; 
that  while  their  bodies  were  cured  by  the  sign,  their  souls  might 
be  confirmed  by  the  matter  signified.  A  serpent  of  brass  could 
no  more  heal  than  sting  them.  What  remedy  could  their  eyes 
give  to  their  legs  ?  Or  what  could  a  serpent  of  cold  brass  prevail 
against  a  living  and  fiery  serpent  ?  In  this  troublesome  desert  we 
are  all  stung  by  that  fiery  and  old  serpent :  O  Saviour,  it  is  to  theo 
we  must  look,  and  be  cured  ;  it  is  thou  that  wert  their  paschal 
lamb,  their  manna,  their  rock,  their  serpent.  To  all  purposes 
dost  thou  vary  thyself  to  thy  Church,  that  we  may  find  thee 
every  where  :  thou  art  for  our  nourishment,  refreshing,  cure  ;  as 
hereafter,  so  even  now,  all  in  all. 

This  serpent,  whicli  was  appointed  for  cure  to  Israel,  at  last 
stings  them  to  death,  by  idolatrous  abuse.  What  poison  there  is 
in  idolatry,  that  makes  even  antidotes  deadly  !  As  Moses  therefore 
raised  this  serpent,  so  Hezekiah  pulled  it  down  :  God  commanded 
the  raising  of  it,  God  approved  the  demolishing  of  it.  Super- 
stitious use  can  mar  the  very  institutions  of  God  ;  how  much  more 
the  most  wise  and  well-'>rounded  dev  ices  of  men  !       jVww.  xci. 


OF  BALAAM. 

Moab  and  Midian  had  been  all  this  while  standers  by  and  lookers 
on.  If  they  had  not  seen  the  pattern  of  their  own  ruin  in  these 
neighbours,  it  had  never  troubled  them,  to  see  the  kings  of  the 
Amorites  and  Bashan  to  fall  before  Israel.  Had  not  the  Israelites 
camped  in  the  plains  of  Moab,  their  victories  had  been  no  eye- 
sore to  Balac.  Wicked  men  never  care  to  observe  God's  judg- 
ments till  themselves  be  touched  :  the  fire  of  a  neighbour's  house 
would  not  so  affect  us,  if  it  were  not  with  the  danger  of  our  own  : 
secure  minds  never  startle  till  God  come  home  to  their  very  senses. 

Balac  and  his  Moabites  had  wit  enough  to  fear,  not  wit  enough 
to  prevent  judgment :  they  see  an  enemy  in  then;  borders,  and  yet 
take  no  right  course  for  their  safety.  Who  would  not  have  looked, 
that  they  should  have  come  to  Israel  with  conditions  of  peace  I 
Or  why  did  they  not  think,  "  Either  Israel's  God  is  stronger  than 
ours,  or  he  is  not.  If  he  be  not,  why  are  we  afraid  of  him  ?  If 
he  be,  why  do  we  not  serve  him  ?  The  same  hand,  which  gives 
them  victory,  can  give  us  protection."  Carnal  men,  that  are  se- 
cure of  the  vengeance  of  God  ere  it  do  come,  are  mastered  with 


I4d 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


it  when  it  doth  come  ;  and  not  knowing  which  way  to  turn  them, 

run  forth  at  the  wrong-  door. 

The  Midianites  join  with  the  Moabites  in  consultation,  in  action, 
against  Israel :  one  would  have  thought,  they  should  have  looked 
for  favour  from  Moses  for  .Tethro's  sake,  which  was  both  a  prince 
of  their  country,  and  father-in-law  to  Moses  ;  and  either  now,  or 
not  long  before,  was  with  Israel  in  the  wilderness.  Neither  is  it  like, 
but  that  Moses  having  found  forty  years  harbour  amongst  them, 
would  have  been  (what  he  might)  inclinable  to  favourable  treaties 
with  them  ;  but  now  they  are  so  fast  linked  to  Moab,  that  they  will 
either  sink  or  swim  together.  Entireness  with  wicked  consorts  is 
one  of  the  strongest  cnains  of  hell,  and  binds  us  to  a  participation 
both  of  sin  and  punishment :  an  easy  occasion  will  knit  wicked 
hearts  together  in  conspiracy  against  the  Church  of  God. 

Their  errand  is  devilish,  Come,  curse  Israel:  that  which  Satan 
could  not  do  by  the  swords  of  Og  and  Sehon,  he  will  now  try  to 
effect  by  the  tongue  of  Balaam.  If  either  strength  or  policy  would 
prevail  against  God's  Church,  it  could  not  stand.  And  why  should 
not  we  be  as  industrious  to  promote  the  glory  of  God,  and  bend 
both  our  hands  and  heads  to  the  causes  of  the  Almighty  ?  When 
all  helps  fail  Moab,  the  magician  is  sought  to.  It  is  a  sign  of 
a  desperate  cause,  to  make  Satan  either  our  counsellor,  or  our 
refuge. 

Why  did  they  not  send  to  Balaam  to  bless  themselves,  rather 
than  to  curse  Israel  ?  It  had  been  more  easy  to  be  defended  from 
the  hurt  of  their  enemies,  than  to  have  their  enemies  laid  open  to  be 
hurt  by  them.  Pride  and  malice  did  not  care  so  much  for  safety, 
as  for  conquest ;  it  would  not  content  them  to  escape  Israel,  if  Is- 
rael mav  escape  them  ;  it  was  not  thank-worthy  to  save  their  own 
blood,  if  they  did  not  spill  the  blood  of  others  ;  as  if  their  own 
prosperity  had  been  nothing,  if  Israel  also  prospered.  If  there 
be  one  project  worse  than  another,  a  wicked  heart  will  find  it  out : 
nothing  but  destruction  will  content  the  malicious. 

I  know  not  whether  Balaam  were  more  famous,  or  Balac  more 
confident.  If  the  king  had  not  been  persuaded  of  the  strength  of 
his  charm,  he  had  not  sent  so  far,  and  paid  so  dear  for  it :  now  he 
trusts  more  to  his  enchantment,  than  to  the  forces  of  Moab  and 
Midian  ;  and,  as  if  heaven  and  earth  were  in  the  power  of  a  charm- 
er's tongue,  he  saith,  He  that  thou  blessest  is  blessed;  and  he 
whom  thou  cursest  is  cursed.  Magic,  through  the  permission  of 
God,  is  powerful  ;  for  whatsoever  the  devil  can  do,  the  magician 
may  do  ;  but  it  is  madness  to  think  either  of  them  omnipotent. 
If  either  the  curses  of  men,  or  the  endeavours  of  the  powers  of 
darkness,  should  be  effectual,  all  would  be  hell.  No,  Balac  :  so 
short  is  the  power  of  thy  Balaam,  that  neither  thou,  nor  thy  pro- 
phet himself  can  avoid  that  curse,  which  thou  wouldst  have  brought 
upon  Israel.  Had  Balaam  been  a  true  prophet  of  God,  this  bold 
assurance  had  been  but  just.  Both  those  ancient  seers  and  the 
prophets  of  the  Gospel,  have  the  ratification  of  God  in  heaven  to 
their  sentences  on  earth.    Why  have  wc  less  care  of  the  bless- 


OF  BALAAM.  141 

ings,  and  less  fear  of  the  curses  and  censures  of  God's  ministers  ? 
Who  would  not  rather  have  Elisha's  guard,  than  both  the  kings  of 
Israel  and  Assyria  ?  Me  himself,  as  he  had  the  angelical  chariots 
and  horsemen  about  him,  so  was  he  the  chariots  and  horsemen  of 
Israel.  Why  should  our  faith  be  less  strong  than  superstition  ? 
Or  why  should  God's  agents  have  less  virtue  than  Satan's  ? 

I  should  wonder  to  hear  God  speak  with  a  false  prophet,  if  I 
did  not  know,  it  hath  been  no  rare  thing  with  him  (as  with  men) 
to  bestow  words,  even  where  he  will  not  hestow  favour.  Pharaoh, 
Abimelcch,  Nebuchadnezzar,  receive  visions  from  God  :  neither 
can  I  think  this  strange,  when  I  hear  God  speaking  to  Satan  in  a 
question  no  less  familiar  than  this  of  Balaam,  Whence  contest  thout 
Satan  ?  Not  the  sound  of  the  voice  of  God,  but  the  matter  which 
he  speaks  argues  love :  he  may  speak  to  an  enemy ;  he  speaks 
peace  to  none  but  his  own.  It  is  a  vain  brag,  "  God  hath  spoken 
to  me  ;"  so  may  he  do  to  reprobates  or  devils.  But  what  said  he  ? 
Did  he  ?ay  to  my  soul,  I  am  thy  salvation?  Hath  he  indented 
with  me  that  he  will  be  my  God,  and  I  shall  be  his  I  I  cannot  hear 
this  voice,  and  not  live. 

God  heard  all  the  consultation  and  message  of  these  Moabites  : 
these  messengers  could  not  have  moved  their  foot  or  their  tongue 
but  in  him  ;  and  yet  he,  which  asked  Adam  where  he  was,  asks 
Balaam,  What  men  arc  these  t  I  have  ever  seen,  that  God  loves 
to  take  occasion  of  proceeding  with  us  from  ourselves,  rather  than 
from  his  own  immediate  prescience.  Hence  it  is,  that  we  lay 
open  our  wants,  and  confess  our  sins,  to  him  that  knows  both 
better  than  our  own  hearts,  because  he  will  deal  with  us  from  our 
own  mouths. 

The  prevention  of  God  forbids  both  his  journey  and  his  curse : 
and  what  if  he  had  been  sull'ered  to  go  and  curse  ?  What  corn  had 
this  wind  shaken,  when  God  meant  to  bless  them  ?  How  many 
bulls  have  bellowed  out  execrations  against  this  Church  of  God  ? 
What  are  we  the  worse  ?  Yet  I  doubt,  if  we  had  been  so  much 
blessed,  had  not  those  Balaamitish  curses  been  spent  upon  us. 
He  that  knows  what  waste  wind  the  causeless  curses  of  wicked  men 
are,  yet  will  not  have  Balaam  curse  Israel ;  bec  ause  he  will  not  allow 
Balac  so  much  encouragement  in  his  opposition,  as  the  conceit 
of  this  help.  Or  perhaps,  if  Balac:  thought  this  sorcerer  a  true 
prophet,  God  would  not  have  his  name,  so  much  as  in  the  opinion 
of  the  heathen,  scandalized,  in  usurping  it  to  a  purpose  which  he 
meant  not  should  succeed. 

The  hand  of  God  is  in  the  restraint  of  many  evils,  which  we 
never  knew  to  be  towards  us.  The  Israelites  sat  still  in  their  tents  ; 
they  little  thought  what  mischief  was  brewing  against  them  :  with- 
out ever  making  them  of  counsel,  God  crosses  the  designs  of  their 
enemies.  He,  that  keepeth  Israel,  is  both  a  sure  and  a  secret 
friend. 

The  reward  of  the  divination  had  easily  commanded  the  jour- 
ney and  curse  of  the  covetous  prophet,  if  God  had  not  stayed 
him.    Hosy  oft  are  wicked  men  curbed  by  a  divine  hand,  even 


142 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


in  those  sins  which  their  heart  stands  to  !  It  is  no  thank  to  lewd 
men,  that  their  wickedness  is  not  prosperous.  Whence  is  it,  that 
the  world  is  not  over-run  with  evil,  hut  from  this  ;  that  men  can- 
not be  so  ill  as  they  would  ? 

The  first  entertainment  of  this  message  would  make  a  stranger 
think  Balaam  wise  and  honest ;  he  will  not  give  a  sudden  answer, 
but  craves  leisure  to  consult  with  God,  and  promises  to  return 
the  answer  he  shall  receive.  Who  would  not  sav,  "  This  man  is 
free  from  rashness,  from  partiality  ?"  Dissimulation  is  craft}-, 
and  able  to  deceive  thousands.  The  words  arc  good  :  when  he 
comes  to  action,  the  fraud  bewrays  itself;  for,  both  he  insinuates 
his  own  forwardness,  and  casts  the  blame  of  the  prohibition  upon 
God,  and,  which  is  worse,  delivers  but  halt  his  answer:  he  savs 
indeed,  God  refuses  to  give  me  leave  to  go ;  he  says  not,  as  it  was, 
He  charges  me  not  to  curse  them,  for  thay  are  blessed.  So  did 
Balaam  deny,  as  one  that  wished  to  be  sent  for  again.  Perhaps  a 
peremptory  refusal  had  hindered  his  further  solicitation.  Con- 
cealment of  some  truths  is  sometimes  as  faulty  as  a  denial.  True 
fidelity  is  not  niggardly  in  her  relations. 

Where  wickedness  meets  with  power,  it  thinks  to  command 
all  the  world,  and  takes  great  scorn  of  anv  repulse.  So  little  is 
Balac  discouraged  with  one  refusal,  that  he  sends  so  much  the 
stronger  message;  More  princes,  and  more  honourable.  Oh  that 
we  could  be  so  importunate  for  our  good,  as  wicked  men  are  for 
the  compassing  of  their  own  designs  !  A  denial  doth  but  whet 
the  desires  of  vehement  suitors.  Why  are  we  faint  in  spiritual 
things,  when  we  are  not  denied,  but  delayed  ? 

Those,  which  are  themselves  transported  with  vanity  and  am- 
bition, think  that  no  heart  hath  power  to  resist  these  offers. 
Balac's  princes  thought  they  had  struck  it  dead,  when  they  had 
once  mentioned  promotion  to  great  honour.  Self-love  makes 
them  think  they  cannot  be  slaves,  while  others  may  be  free  ;  and 
that  all  the  world  would  be  glad  to  run  on  madding  after  their  bait. 
Nature  thinks  it  impossible  to  contemn  honour  and  wealth  ;  and 
because  too  many  souls  are  thus  taken,  cannot  believe  that  any 
would  escape.  But  let  carnal  hearts  know,  that  there  are  those 
who  can  spit  the  world  in  the  face,  and  say,  Thy  gold  and  silver 
perish  with  thee ;  and  that,  in  comparison  of  a  good  conscience, 
can  tread  under  foot  his  best  proffers,  like  shadows,  as  they  are ; 
and  that  can  do  as  Balaam  said. 

How  near  truth  and  falsehood  can  lodge  together  !  Here  was 
piety  in  the  lips",  and  covetousness  in  the  heart.  Who  can  any 
more  regard  good  words,  that  hears  Balaam  speak  so  like  a  saint  ? 
A  houseful  of  gold  and  silver  may  not  pervert  his  tongue,  his 
heart  is  won  with  less  ;  for  if  he  had  not  already  swallowed  the 
reward,  and  found  it  sweet,  why  did  he  again  solicit  God,  in  that 
which  was  peremptorily  denied  him  ?  If  his  mind  had  not  been 
bribed  already,  why  did  he  stay  the  messengers  ?  why  did  he 
expect  a  change  in  God?  why  was  he  willing  to  feed  them  with 
Lope  of  success,  which  hud  fed  him  with  hope  of  rccoinpence  ? 


OF  BALAAM.  143 

One  prohibition  is  enough  for  a  good  man.  While  the  delay  of 
God  doth  but  hold  us  in  suspense,  importunity  is  holy  and  sea- 
sonable ;  but  when  once  he  gives  a  resolute  denial,  it  is  profane 
sauciness  to  solicit  him.  When  we  ask  what  we  are  bidden,  our 
suits  are  not  more  vehement  than  welcome;  but  when  we  beg 
prohibited  favours,  our  presumption  is  troublesome  and  abomi- 
nable :  no  good  heart  will  endure  to  be  twice  forbidden. 

Yet  this  importunity  hath  obtained  a  permission  ;  but  a  per- 
mission worse  than  a  denial.  I  heard  God  say  before,  Go  not,  nor 
curse  them;  now  he  says,  Go,  but  curse  not ;  anon,  he  is  angry 
that  he  did  go.  Why  did  he  permit  that  which  he  forbad,  if  he 
be  angry  for  doing  that  which  he  permitted  ?  Some  things  God 
permits  with  an  indignation  ;  not  for  that  he  gives  leave  to  the 
act,  but  that  he  gives  a  man  over  to  his  sin  in  the  act ;  this  suf- 
ferance implies  not  favour,  but  judgment :  so  did  God  bid  Balaam 
to  go,  as  Solomon  bids  the  young  man  follow  the  ways  of  his  own 
heart.  It  is  one  thing  to  like,  another  thing  to  suffer  :  Moses 
never  approved  those  legal  divorces,  yet  he  tolerated  them  :  God 
never  liked  Balaam's  journey,  yet  he  displeasedly  gives  way  to  it ; 
as  if  he  said,  "Well,  since  thou  art  so  hot,  set  on  this  journey, 
be  gone."  And  thus  Balaam  took  it ;  else,  when  God  after  pro- 
fessed his  displeasure  for  the  journey,  it  had  been  a  ready  answer, 
"  Thou  commandedst  me  ;"  but  herein  his  confession  argues  his 
guilt.  Balaam's  suit  and  Israel's  quails  had  both  one  fashion  of 
grant ;  in  .  nger.  How  much  better  is  it,  to  have  gracious  denials, 
than  angry  yieldings ! 

A  small  persuasion  heartens  the  willing  :  it  booted  not  to  bid  the 
covetous  prophet  hasten  to  his  way.  Now  he  makes  himself  sure  of 
success.  His  corrupt  heart  tells  him,  that,  as  God  had  relented  in 
his  licence  to  go,  so  he  might  perhaps  in  his  licence  to  curse; 
and  he  saw  how  this  curse  might  bless  him  with  abundance  of 
wealth :  he  rose  up  early  therefore,  and  saddled  his  ass.  The 
night  seemed  long  to  his  forwardness.  Covetous  men  need  neither 
clock  nor  bell  to  awaken  them;  their  desires  make  them  restless. 
Oh  that  we  could  with  as  much  eagerness  seek  the  true  riches, 
which  only  can  make  us  happy  ! 

We,  that  see  only  the  outside  of  Balaam,  may  marvel,  why  he 
that  permitted  him  to  go,  afterward  opposes  his  going  ;  but  God, 
that  saw  his  heart,  perceived  what  corrupt  affections  carried  him: 
he  saw,  that  his  covetous  desires  and  wicked  hopes  grew  the 
strong;-!-,  the  nearer  he  came  to  his  end:  an  angel  is  therefore  stmt 
to  with-hold  the  hasty  sorcerer.  Our  inward  disposition  is  the 
life  of  our  actions  ;  according  to  that  doth  the  God  of  Spirits 
judge  us,  while  men  censure  according  to  our  external  motions. 
To  go  at  all,  when  God  had  commanded  to  stay,  was  presumptu- 
ous;  but  to  go  with  a  desire  to  curse,  made  the  act  doubly  sinful, 
and  hitched  an  angel  to  resist  it.  It  is  one  of  the  worthy  employ- 
ments of  good  angels,  to  make  secret  opposition  to  evil  designs  : 
many  a  wicked  act  have  they  hindered,  without  the  knowledge  of 
the  agent.    It  is  all  one  with  the  Almighty,  to  work  by  spirits"  and 


144 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


men  ;  it  is  therefore  our  glory  to  be  thus  set  on  work  :  to  stop  the 
course  of  evil,  either  by  dissuasion  or  violence,  is  an  angelical 
service. 

In  what  danger  are  wicked  men  that  have  God's  angels  their 
opposites  I  The  devil  moved  him  to  go  ;  a  good  angel  resists 
him.  If  a  heavenly  spirit  stand  in  the  way  of  a  sorcerer's  sin, 
how  much  more  ready  are  all  those  spiritual  powers,  to  stop  the 
miscarriages  of  God's  dear  children  !  How  often  had  we  fallen 
yet  more,  if  these  guardians  had  not  upheld  us ;  whether  by  re- 
moving occasions,  or  by  casting  in  good  instincts  !  As  our  good 
endeavours  are  often  hindered  by  Satan,  so  are  our  evil  by  good 
angels  ;  else  were  not  our  protection  equal  to  our  danger,  and  we 
could  neither  stand  nor  rise. 

It  had  been  as  easy  for  the  angel  to  strike  Balaam,  as  to  stand  in 
nis  way  ;  and  to  have  followed  him  in  his  starting  aside,  as  to  stop 
him  in  a  narrow  path  :  but  even  the  good  angels  have  their  stints  in 
their  executions.  God  had  somewhat  more  to  do  with  the  tongue 
of  Balaam,  and  therefore  he  will  not  have  him  slain,  but  withstood  ; 
and  so  withstood,  that  he  shall  pass.  It  is  not  so  much  glory  to 
God,  to  take  away  wicked  men,  as  to  use  their  evil  to  his  own  holy 
purposes.  How  soon  could  the  Commander  of  heaven  and  earth 
rid  the  world  of  bad  members  !  But  so  should  he  lose  the  praise  of 
working  good  by  evil  instruments.  It  sufficeth  that  the  angels  of 
God  resist  their  actions,  while  their  persons  continue. 

That  no  man  may  marvel  to  see  Balaam  have  visions  from  God 
and  utter  prophecies  from  him,  his  very  ass  hath  his  eyes  opened 
to  see  the  angel,  whicli  his  master  could  not,  and  his  mouth  opened 
to  speak  more  reasonably  than  his  master.  There  is  no  beast  de- 
serves so  much  wonder  as  this  of  Balaam,  whose  common  sense  is 
advanced  above  the  reason  of  his  rider  ;  so  as  for  the  time  the  pro- 
phet is  brutish,  and  the  beast  prophetical.  Who  can  but  stand 
amazed  at  the  eye,  at  the  tongue  of  this  silly  creature  ?  For  so 
dull  a  sight,  it  was  much  to  see  a  bodily  object  that  were  not  too 
apparent,  but  to  see  that  spirit  which  his  rider  discerned  not  was 
far  beyond  nature.  To  hear  a  voice  come  from  that  mouth,  which 
was  used  only  to  bray,  it  was  strange  and  uncouth  ;  but  to  hear  a 
beast,  whose  nature  is  noted  for  incapacity,  to  outreason  his  master, 
a  professed  prophet,  is  in  the  very  height  of  miracles  :  yet  can  no 
heart  stick  at  these,  that  considers  the  dispensation  of  the  Almighty 
in  both.  Our  eve  could  no  more  see  a  beast,  than  a  beast  can  sec 
an  angel,  if  he  had  not  given  this  power  to  it.  How  easy  is  it  for 
him  that  made  the  eye  of  man  and  beast,  to  dim  or  enlighten  it  at 
his  pleasure  !  and  if  his  power  can  make  the  very  stones  to  speak, 
how  much  more  a  creature  of  sense  !  That  evil  spirit  spake  in  the 
serpent  to  our  first  parents ;  why  is  it  more  that  a  spirit  should 
speak  in  the  mouth  of  a  beast  r  How  ordinarily  did  the  heathen 
receive  their  oracles  out  of  stones  and  trees  !  Do  not  we  ourselves 
teach  birds  to  speak  those  sentences  they  understand  not  ?  We 
may  wonder,  we  cannot  distrust,  when  we  compare  the  act  with 
the  Author  ;  which  can  as  easily  create  a  voice  without  a  body,  as 


OF  BALAAM. 


145 


a  body  without  a  voice.  Who  now  can  hereafter  plead  his  simpli- 
city and  dulness  of  apprehending  spiritual  things,  when  he  sees 
how  God  exalts  the  eyes  of  a  beast,  to  see  a  spirit  ?  Who  can  be 
proud  of  seeing  visions,  since  an  angel  appeared  to  a  beast  ?  Nei- 
ther was  his  skin  better  after  it  than  others  of  his  kind.  Who  can 
complain  of  his  own  rudeness  and  inability  to  reply  in  a  good 
cause,  when  the  very  beast  is  enabled  by  God  to  convince  his 
master  ?  There  is  no  mouth  into  which  God  cannot  put  words ; 
and  how  often  doth  he  choose  the  weak  and  unwise  to  confound 
the  learned  and  mighty  ! 

What  had  it  been  better  for  the  ass  to  see  the  angel,  if  he  had 
rushed  still  upon  his  sword  ?  Evils  were  as  good  not  seen,  as  not 
avoided ;  but  now  he  declines  the  way,  and  saves  his  burthen.  It 
were  happy  for  perverse  sinners,  if  they  could  learn  of  this  beast, 
to  run  away  from  foreseen  judgments.  The  revenging  angel 
stands  before  us  ;  and  though  we  know  we  shall  as  sure  die  as  sin, 
yet  we  have  not  the  wit  or  grace  to  give  back ;  though  it  be  with 
the  hurt  of  a  foot  to  save  the  body  ;  with  the  pain  of  the  body  to 
save  the  soul. 

I  see,  what  fury  and  stripes  the  impatient  prophet  bestows  upon 
this  poor  beast,  because  he  will  not  go  on  ;  yet  if  he  had  gone  on, 
himself  had  perished.  How  often  do  we  wish  those  things,  the 
not  obtaining  whereof  is  mercy  !  We  grudge  to  be  staid  in  the 
way  to  death,  and  fly  upon  those  which  oppose  our  perdition. 

I  do  not  (as  who  would  not  expect)  see  Balaam's  hair  stand  up- 
right, nor  himself  alighting,  and  appalled  at  this  monster  of  mira- 
cles ;  but,  as  if  no  new  thing  had  happened,  he  returns  words  to 
the  beast,  full  of  anger,  void  of  admiration ;  whether  his  trade  of 
sorcering  had  so  inured  him  to  receive  voices  from  his  familiars,  in 
shape  of  beasts,  that  this  event  seemed  not  strange  to  him ;  or, 
whether  his  rage  and  covetousness  had  so  transported  him,  that  he 
had  no  leisure  to  observe  the  unnatural  unusualness  of  the  event. 
Some  men  make  nothing  of  those  things,  which  overcome  others 
with  horror  and  astonishment. 

I  hear  the  angel  of  God  taking  notice  of  the  cruelty  of  Balaam  to 
his  beast :  his  first  words  to  the  unmerciful  prophet  are  in  expos- 
tulating of  his  wrong.  We  little  think  it,  but  God  shall  call  us  to 
an  account  for  the  unkind  and  cruel  usages  of  his  poor  mute  crea- 
tures. He  hath  made  us  lords,  not  tyrants ;  owners,  not  tormen- 
ters  :  he,  that  hath  given  us  leave  to  kill  them  for  our  use,  hath  not 
given  us  leave  to  abuse  them  at  our  pleasure ;  they  are  so  our 
drudges,  that  they  are  our  fellows  by  creation.  It  was  a  sign  the 
magician  would  easily  wish  to  strike  Israel  with  a  curse,  when  he 
wished  a  sword  to  strike  his  harmless  beast.  It  is  ill  falling  into 
those  hands,  whom  beasts  find  unmerciful. 

Notwithstanding  these  rubs  Balaam  goes  on,  and  is  not  afraid  to 
ride  on  that  beast,  whose  voice  he  had  heard  ;  and  now,  posts  are 
sped  to  Balac  with  the  news  of  so  welcome  a  yuest.  He,  that  sent 

VOL.  I.  l 


146 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


princes  to  fetch  him,  comes  himself  on  the  way  to  meet  him :  al- 
though he  can  say,  Am  not  I  able  to  promote  thee  ?  yet  he  gives 
tli is  high  respect  to  him  as  his  better,  from  whom  he  expected  the 
promotion  of  himself  and  his  people.  Oh  the  honour  that  hath 
been  formerly  done  by  heathens,  to  them  that  have  borne  but  the 
face  of  prophets  !  I  shame  ard  grieve  to  compare  the  times  and 
men  :  only,  O  God,  be  thou  merciful  to  the  contempt  of  thy  ser- 
vants. 

As  if  nothing  needed  but  the  presence  of  Balaam,  the  supersti- 
tious king  (out  of  the  joy  of  his  hope)  feasts  his  gods,  his  prophet, 
his  princes  •,  and  on  the  morrow  carries  him  up  to  the  high  places 
of  his  idol.  Who  can  doubt  whether  Balaam  were  a  false  prophet, 
that  sees  him  sacrificing  in  the  mount  of  Baal  ?  Had  he  been  from 
the  true  God,  he  would  rather  have  said,  "  Pull  me  down  these 
altars  of  Baal,"  than  "  Build  me  here  seven  others."  The  very 
place  convinces  him  of  falshood  and  idolatry  ;  and  why  seven  al- 
tars ?  What  needs  all  this  pomp  ?  When  the  true  God  never  re- 
quired but  one  at  once,  as  himself  is  one  ;  why  doth  the  false  pro- 
phet call  for  no  less  than  seven  ?  as  if  God  stood  upon  numbers  ? 
as  if  the  Almighty  would  have  his  power  either  divided  or  limited  ? 
Here  is  nothing  but  a  glorious  and  magnificent  pretence  of  devo- 
tion. It  hath  been  ever  seen,  that  the  false  worshippers  of  God 
have  made  more  pompous  shews,  and  fairer  flourishes  of  their 
piety  and  religion,  than  the  true. 

Now  when  Balaam  sees  his  seven  bullocks  and  seven  rams 
smoking  upon  his  seven  altars,  he  goes  up  higher  into  the  mount 
(as  some  counterfeit  Moses),  to  receive  the  answer  of  God.  But 
will  God  meet  with  a  sorcerer  ?  Will  he  make  a  prophet  of  a 
magician  ?  O  man,  who  shall  prescribe  God  what  instruments  to 
use  ?  he  knows  how  to  employ,  not  only  saints  and  angels,  but 
wicked  men,  beasts,  devils,  to  his  own  glory:  he,  that  put  words 
into  the  mouth  of  the  ass,  puts  words  into  the  mouth  of  Balaam  : 
the  words  do  but  pass  from  him;  they  are  not  polluted,  because 
they  are  not  his  ;  as  the  trunk,  through  which  a  man  speaks,  is  not 
more  eloquent  for  the  speech  that  is  uttered  through  it.  What  a 
notable  proclamation  had  the  infidels  wanted  of  God's  favour  to 
his  people,  if  Balaam's  tongue  had  not  been  used  !  How  many 
ahall  once  say,  Lord,  zee  have  prophesied  in  thy  name,  that  shall 
hear,  Verily  I  know  you  not  ! 

What  madness  is  this  in  Balaam?  He,  that  found  himself  con- 
stant in  soliciting,  thinks  to  find  God  not  constant  in  denying  ;  and, 
as  if  that  infinite  Deity  were  not  the  same  everywhere,  hopes  to 
change  success  with  places.  Neither  is  that  bold  forehead  ashamed 
to  importune  God  again  in  that,  wherein  his  own  mouth  had  testi- 
fied an  assurance  of  denial.  The  reward  was  in  one  of  his  eyes, 
the  revenrnnsr  angel  in  the  other :  I  know  not  whether,  for  the 
time,  he  more  loved  the  bribe,  or  feared  the  angel.  And  whilst  he 
is  in  this  distraction,  his  tongue  blesses  against  his  heart,  and  his 
heart  curses  against  his  tongue.    It  angers  him  that  he  dare  not 


OF  PHINEAS.  147 

speak  what  he  would  ;  and  now  at  last  rather  than  lose  his  hopes, 
lie  resolves  to  speak  worse  than  curses.  The  fear  of  God's  judg- 
ments in  a  worldly  heart  is  at  length  overcome  with  the  love  of 
gain.  •  Numb,  xxii,  xxw,  xxiv. 


OF  PHINEAS. 

Balaam  pretended  a  haste  homeward;  but  he  lingered  so  long 
that  he  left  his  bones  in  Midian.  How  justly  did  he  perish  with 
the  sword  of  Israel,  whose  tongue  had  insensibly  slain  so  many 
thousands  of  them  !  As  it  is  usually  said  of  the  devil,  that  he  goes 
away  in  a  stench,  so  may  it  be  truly  said  of  this  prophet  of  his  : 
according  to  the  fashion  of  all  hypocrites,  his  words  were  good,  his 
actions  abominable  :  he  would  not  curse,  but  he  would  advise,  and 
his  counsel  is  worse  than  a  curse  ;  for  his  curse  had  hurt  none  but 
himself,  his  counsel  cost  the  blood  of  twenty-four  thousand  Is- 
raelites. 

He,  that  had  heard  God  speak  by  Balaam,  would  not  look  for 
the  devil  in  the  same  mouth  ;  and  if  God  himself  had  not  wit- 
nessed against  him,  who  could  believe  that  the  same  tongue  which 
uttered  so  divine  prophecies,  should  utter  so  villanous  and  cursed 
advice  ?  Hypocrisy  gains  this  of  men,  that  it  may  do  evil  unsus- 
pected :  but  now  he,  that  heard  what  he  spake  in  Balac's  ear,  hath 
bewrayed  and  condemned  his  counsel  and  himself. 

This  policy  was  fetched  from  the  bottom  of  hell.  "  It  is  not 
for  lack  of  desire  that  I  curse  not  Israel :  thou  dost  not  more  wish 
their  destruction,  than  I  do  thy  wealth  and  honour ;  but  so  long  as 
they  hold  firm  with  God,  there  is  no  sorcery  against  Jacob  ;  with- 
draw God  from  them,  and  they  shall  fall  alone,  and  curse  them- 
selves ;  draw  them  into  sin,  and  thou  shalt  withdraw  God  from 
them.  There  is  no  sin  more  plausible  than  wantonness.  One  forni- 
cation shall  draw  in  another,  and  both  shall  fetch  the  anger  of  God 
after  them  :  send  your  fairest  women  into  their  tents,  their  sight 
shall  draw  them  to  lust,  their  lust  to  folly,  their  folly  to  idolatry  ; 
and  now  God  shall  curse  them  for  thee,  unasked."  Where  Balaam 
did  speak  well,  there  was  never  any  prophet  spake  more  divinely; 
where  he  spake  ill,  there  was  never  any  devil  spake  more  despe- 
rately. 

Ill  counsel  seldom  succeedeth  not :  good  seed  falls  often  out  of 
the  way,  and  roots  not,  but  the  tares  never  light  amiss.  This  pro- 
ject of  the  wicked  magician  was  too  prosperous.  Tire  daughters 
of  Moab  come  into  the  tents  of  Israel,  and  have  captived  those 
whom  the  Amorites  and  Amalckitcs  could  not  resist.  Our  first 
mother  Eve  bequeathed  this  dowry  to  her  daughters,  that  they 
should  be  our  helpers  to  sin :  the  weaker  sex  is  the  stronger  in  this 
conquest:  had  the  Moabites  sent  their  subtlest  counsellors,  to  per- 
suade the  Israelites  to  their  idol  sacritices,  they  had  been  repelled, 
with  scorn  ;  but  now  the  beauty  of  their  women  is  over-eloquent 
and  successful.  That  which  in  the  first  world  betrayed  the  sons  of 
God,  hath  now  ensnared  God's  people :  it  had  been  happy  for 


148  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

Israel,  if  Balaam  had  used  any  charms  but  these.  As  it  is  the  use 
of  God  to  fetch  glory  to  himself  out  of  the  worst  actions  of  Satan, 
so  it  is  the  guise  of  that  evil  one  (through  the  just  permission  of  the 
Almighty)  to  raise  advantage  to  himself  from  the  fairest  pieces  of 
the  workmanship  of  God :  no  one  means  hath  so  much  enriched 
hell,  as  beautiful  faces. 

All  idols  are  abominable  ;  but  this  of  Baal-peor  was,  besides  the 
superstition  of  it,  beastly  ;  neither  did  Baal  ever  put  on  a  form  of 
so  much  shame,  as  this ;  yet  very  Israelites  are  drawn  to  adore  it. 
When  lust  hath  blinded  the  eyes,  it  carries  a  man  whither  it  lists  ; 
even  beyond  all  differences  of  sin.  A  man  besotted  with  filthy  de- 
sires is  fit  for  any  villany. 

Sin  is  no  less  crafty  than  Satan  himself :  give  him  but  room  in 
fhe  eye,  and  he  will  soon  be  possessed  of  body  and  soul.  These 
Israelites  first  saw  the  faces  of  these  Moabites  and  Midianites  ; 
then  they  grew  to  like  their  presence ;  from  thence  to  take  plea- 
sure in  their  feasts :  from  their  boards  they  are  drawn  to  their 
beds,  from  their  beds  to  their  idols,  and  now  they  are  joined  to 
Baal-peor,  and  separated  from  God.  Bodily  fornication  is  the 
way  to  spiritual :  if  we  have  made  idols  of  flesh,  it  is  just  to  be 
given  up  to  idols  of  wood  and  stones.  If  we  have  not  grace  to  re- 
sist the  beginnings  of  sin,  where  shall  we  stay  ?  If  our  foot  slip 
into  the  mouth  of  hell,  it  is  a  miracle  to  stop  ere  we  come  to  the 
bottom. 

Well  might  God  be  angry,  to  see  his  people  go  a  whoring  in  this 
doiible  fornication  ;  neither  doth  he  smother  his  wrath,  but  himself 
strikes  with  his  plague,  and  bids  Moses  strike  with  the  sword.  He 
strikes  the  body,  and  bids  Moses  strike  the  head.  It  had  been 
as  easy  for  him  to  plague  the  rulers  as  the  vulgar,  and  one  would 
think  these  should  be  more  properly  reserved  for  his  immediate 
hand  ;  but  these  he  leaves  to  the  sword  of  human  authority,  that 
he  might  win  awe  to  his  own  ordinances.  As  the  sins  of  great  men 
are  exemplary,  so  are  their  punishments.  Nothing  procures  so 
much  credit  to  government,  as  strict  and  impartial  executions  of 
great  and  noble  offenders.  Those  whom  their  sins  have  embased 
deserve  no  favour  in  the  punishment.  As  God  knows  no  honour, 
no  royalty  in  matter  of  sin,  no  more  may  his  deputies.  Contrarily, 
connivance  at  the  outrages  of  the  mighty  cuts  the  sinews  of  any 
*tate  ;  neither  doth  any  thing  make  good  laws  more  contemptible, 
than  the  making  difference  of  offenders ;  that  small  sacrileges 
should  be  punisned,  when  great  ones  ride  in  triumph.  If  good 
ordinations  turn  once  to  spiders'  webs,  which  are  broken  through  by 
•  the  bigger  flies,  no  hand  will  fear  to  sweep  them  down. 

God  was  angry;  Moses  and  all  good  Israelites  grieved;  the 
heads  hanged  up ;  the  people  plagued :  yet  behold,  one  of  the 
princes  of  Israel  fears  not  to  brave  God  and  his  ministers,  in  that 
sin  which  he  sees  so  grievously  revenged  in  others.  I  can  never 
wonder  enough  at  the  impudence  of  this  Israelite.  Here  is  forni- 
cation, an  odious  crime,  and  that  of  an  Israelite,  whose  name  chal- 
lenges holiness ;  yea,  of  a  prince  of  Israel,  whose  practice  is  a  rule 


OF  PHINEAS.    !  149 

to  Inferiors ;  and  that  with  a  woman  of  Midian,  with  whom  even  a 
chaste  contract  had  been  unlawful ;  and  that  with  contempt  of  all 
government ;  and  that  in  the  face  of  Moses  and  all  Israel ;  and 
that  in  a  time  of  mourning,  and  judgment  for  that  same  offence. 
Those  that  have  once  passed  the  bounds  of  modesty  soon  grow 
shameless  in  their  sins.  While  sin  hides  itself  in  corners,  there  is 
yet  hope  ;  for,  where  there  is  shame,  there  is  a  possibility  of  grace ; 
but  when  once  it  dare  look  upon  the  sun,  and  send  challenges  to 
authority,  the  case  is  desperate,  and  ripe  for  judgment. 

This  great  Simeonite  thought  he  might  sin  by  privilege ;  he 
goes,  as  if  he  said,  "  Who  dares  control  me  f"  His  nobility  hath 
raised  him  above  the  reach  of  correction.  Commonly,  the  sins  of 
the  mighty  are  not  without  presumption,  and  therefore  their  vetir 
geance  is  no  less  than  their  security  ;  and  their  punishment  is  so 
much  greater,  as  their  conceit  of  impunity  is  greater. 

All  Israel  saw  this  bold  lewdness  of  Zimri,  but  their  hearts  and 
eyes  were  so  full  of  grief,  that  they  had  not  room  enough  for  in- 
dignation. Phineas  looked  on  with  the  rest,  but  with  other  affec- 
tions. When  he  saw  this  defiance  bidden  to  God,  and  this  insulta- 
tion  upon  the  sorrow  of  his  people,  that  while  they  were  wringing 
their  hands,  a  proud  miscreant  durst  outface  their  humiliation  with 
his  wicked  dalliance ;  his  heart  boils  with  a  desire  of  a  holy  re- 
venge ;  and  now  that  hand,  which  was  used  to  a  censer  and  sacri- 
ficing knife,  takes  up  his  javelin,  and  with  one  stroke  ioins  these 
two  bodies  in  their  death,  which  were  joined  in  their  sin  ;  and,  in 
the  very  flagrance  of  their  lust,  makes  a  new  way  for  their  souls  to 
their  own  place. 

O  noble  and  hcroical  courage  of  Phineas  !  which,  as  it  was  re, 
warded  of  God,  so  is  worthy  to  be  admired  of  men.  He  doth  not 
stand  casting  of  scruples  :  "  Who  am  I  to  do  this  ?  the  son  of  the 
high  priest ;  my  place  is  all  for  peace  and  mercy  ;  it  is  for  me  to 
sacrifice,  and  pray  for  the  sin  of  the  people,  not  to  sacrifice  any  of 
the  people  for  their  sin,  My  duty  calls  me  to  appease  the  anger  of 
God,  what  I  may,  not  to  revenge  the  sins  of  men  ;  to  pray  for  their 
conversion,  not  to  work  the  confusion  of  any  sinner.  And  who  aro 
these  ?  Is  not  the  one  a  great  prince  in  Israel,  the  other  a  princess 
of  Midian  ?  Can  the  death  of  two  so  famous  persons  go  unre- 
versed ?  Or  if  it  be  safe  and  fit,  why  doth  my  uncle  Moses  rather 
shed  his  own  tears,  than  their  blood  ?  I  will  mourn  with  the  rest ; 
let  them  revenge  whom  it  concerneth."  But  the  zeal  of  God  hath 
barred  out  all  weak  deliberations  ;  and  he  holds  it  now  both  his 
duty  and  his  glory,  to  be  an  executioner  of  so  shameless  a  pair  of 
offenders. 

God  loves  this  heat  of  zeal,  in  all  the  carriages  of  his  servants ; 
and  if  it  transport  us  too  far,  he  pardoneth  the  errors  of  our  fer- 
vency, rather  than  the  indifferences  of  lukewarmness.  A  these  two 
were  more  beasts,  than  any  that  ever  he  sacrificed,  so  the  shedding 
of  their  blood  was  the  acceptablest  sacrifice,  that  ever  he  offered 
unto  God  ;  for  both  all  Israel  is  freed  from  the  plague,  and  all  his 
posterity  have  the  priesthood  entailed  to  them,  so  long  as  the  Je\ya 


150 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


were  a  people.  Next  to  our  prayers,  there  is  no  better  sacrifice 
than  the  blood  of  malefactors ;  not  as  it  is  theirs,  but  as  it  is  shed 
by  authority.  Governors  are  faulty  of  those  sins  they  punish  not. 
There  can  be  no  better  sight  in  any  state,  than  to  see  a  malefactor 
at  the  gallows.  It  is  not  enough  for  us  to  stand  gazing  upon  the 
wickedness  of  the  times  (yea,  although  with  tears)  unless  we  endea- 
vour to  redress  it :  especially  public  persons  carry  not  their  javelin 
in  their  hand  for  nought. 

Every  one  is  ready  to  ask  Phineas  for  his  commission ;  and  those, 
that  are  willing  to  salve  up  the  act,  plead  extraordinary  instinct 
from  God,  who,  no  doubt,  would  not  have  accepted  that  which 
himself  wrought  not.  But  what  need  I  run  so  far  for  this  warrant, 
when  I  hear  God  say  to  Moses,  Hang  up  all  the  heads  of  Israel  ; 
and  Moses  say  to  the  under-rulers,  every  one  slay  his  men  that  are 
joined  to  Baal-Peor  ?  Every  Israelite  is  now  made  a  magistrate 
for  his  execution  ;  and  why  not  Phineas  amongst  the  rest  ?  Doth  his 
priesthood  exempt  him  from  the  blood  of  sinners  ?  How  then  doth 
Samuel  hew  Agag  in  pieces  ?  Even  those  may  make  a  carcase,  which 
may  not  touch  it.  And  if  Levi  got  the  priesthood,  by  shedding  the 
blood  of  idolaters,  why  may  it  not  stand  with  that  priesthood,  to 
spill  the  blood  of  a  fornicator  and  idolater?  Ordinary  justice  will 
bear  out  Phineas  in  this  act :  it  is  not  for  every  man  to  challenge 
this  office,  which  this  double  proclamation  allowed  to  Phineas.  All 
that  private  persons  can  do,  is  either  to  lift  up  their  hands  to  heaven 
for  redress  of  sin,  or  to  lift  up  their  hands  against  the  sin,  not  against 
the  person.  Who  made  thee  a  judge  ?  is  a  lawful  question,  if  it 
meet  with  a  person  unwarranted. 

Now  the  sin  is  punished  the  plague  ceaseth.  The  revenge  of 
God  sets  out  ever  after  the  sin  ;  but  if  the  revenge  of  men,  which 
commonly  comes  later,  can  overtake  it,  God  gives  over  the  chase. 
How  oft  hath  the  infliction  of  a  less  punishment  avoided  a  greater. 
There  are  none  so  good  friends  to  the  state,  as  courageous  and  im- 
partial ministers  of  justice.  These  are  the  reconcilers  of  God  and 
the  people,  more  than  the  prayers  of  them  that  sit  still  and  do  no- 
thing. Num.  xxv. 


THE  DEATH  OF  MOSES. 

After  many  painful  and  perilous  enterprises,  now  is  Moses  drawing 
to  his  rest.  He  hath  brought  his  Israelites  from  Egypt,  through 
the  sea  and  wilderness,  within  the  sight  of  their  promised  land  ;  and 
now  himself  must  take  possession  of  that  land  whereof  Canaan  was 
but  a  type.  When  we  have  done  that  we  came  for,  it  is  time  for  us 
to  be  gone.  This  earth  is  only  made  for  action,  not  for  fruition  : 
the  services  of  God's  children  should  be  ill  rewarded,  if  they  must 
stay  here  always.  Let  no  man  think  much  that  those  are  fetched 
away  which  are  faithft.l  to  God  ;  they  should  not  change,  if  it 
were  not  to  their  preferment.  It  is  our  folly  that  we  would  have 
good  men  live  for  ever,  and  account  it  a  hard  measure,  that  they 
Were.    He,  that  lends  them  to  the  world,  owes  them  a  better  turn 


THE  DEATH  QF  MOSES. 


151 


than  this  earth  can  pay  them.  It  were  injurious  to  wish,  that 
goodness  should  hinder  any  man  from  glory.  So  is  the  death  of 
God's  saints  precious,  that  it  is  certain. 

Moses  must  go  up  to  mount  Nebo,  and  die.  The  time,  the 
place,  and  every  circumstance  of  his  dissolution  is  determined. 
That  one  dies  in  the  field,  another  in  his  bed,  another  in  the 
water,  one  in  a  foreign  nation,  another  in  his  own,  is  fore-decreed 
in  heaven.  And,  though  we  hear  it  not  vocally,  yet  God  hath 
called  every  man  by  his  name,  and  saith,  "  Die  thou  there." 
One  man  seems  to  die  casually,  another  by  an  unexpected  vio- 
lence ;  both  fall  by  a  destiny,  and  all  is  set  down  to  us  by  an  eter- 
nal decree.  He,  that  brought  us  into  the  world,  will  carry  us  out 
according  to  his  own  purposes. 

Moses  must  ascend  up  to  the  hill  to  die.  He  received  his  charge 
for  Israel  upon  the  hill  of  Sinai,  and  now  he  delivers  up  his  charge 
on  the  hill  of  Nebo.  His  brother  Aaron  died  on  one  hill,  he  on 
another.  As  Christ  was  transfigured  on  a  hill,  so  was  this  excel- 
lent type  of  his ;  neither  doubt  I,  but  that  these  hills  were  types 
to  them  of  that  heaven  whither  they  were  aspiring.  It  is  the  good- 
ness of  our  God,  that  he  will  not  have  his  children  die  any  where, 
but  where  they  may  see  the  Land  of  Promise  before  them  ;  neither 
can  they  depart  without  much  comfort,  to  have  seen  it :  contra- 
rily,  a  wicked  man  that  look;;  down,  and  sees  hell  before  him, 
how  can  he  choose  but  find  more  horror  in  the  end  of  death,  than 
in  the  way  ! 

How  familiarly  doth  Moses  hear  of  his  end  !  It  is  no  more  be- 
twixt God  and  Moses,  but,  Go  up  and  die.  If  he  had  invited  him 
to  a  meal,  it  could  not  have  been  in  a  more  sociable  compcllation  ; 
no  otherwise  than  he  said  to  his  other  prophet,  Up  and  cat.  It  is 
neither  harsh,  nor  news  to  God's  children,  to  hear  or  think  of  their 
departure  :  to  them  death  hath  lost  his  horror,  through  acquaint- 
ance :  those  faces  which  at  first  sight  seemed  ill-favoured,  by  often 
viewing,  grow  out  of  dislike  :  they  have  so  often  thought  and  re- 
solved of  the  necessity,  and  of  the  issue  of  their  dissolution,  that 
they  cannot  hold  it  either  strange  or  unwelcome :  he,  that  hath 
had  such  entire  conversation  with  God,  cannot  fear  to  go  to  him. 
Those  that  know  him  not,  or  know  that  he  will  not  know  them, 
no  marvel  if  they  tremble. 

This  is  no  small  favour,  that  God  warns  Moses  of  his  end  :  he, 
that  had  so  often  made  Moses  of  his  counsel,  what  he  meant  to  do 
With  Israel,  would  not  now  do  ought  with  himself,  without  his 
knowledge.  Expectation  of  any  main  event  is  a  great  advantage 
to  a  wise  heart :  if  the  fiery  chariot  had  fetched  away  Elijah  un- 
looked  for,  we  should  have  doubted  of  the  favour  of  his  trans- 
portation :  it  is  a  token  of  judgment,  to  come  as  a  thief  in  the 
night.  God  forewarns  one  by  sickness,  another  by  age,  another 
by  his  secret  instincts,  to  prepare  for  their  end:  if  our  hearts  be 
.not  now  in  a  readiness,  we  are  worthy  to  be  surprised. 

But  what  is  this  1  hear  ?  Displeasure  mixed  with  love  ?  and  that 
to  so  faithful  a  servant  as  Moses  ?  He  must  but  see  the  Lund  of 


152  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

Promise,  he  shall  not  tread  upon  it ;  because  he  once,  long  ago, 
sinned  in  distrusting.  Death,  though  it  were  to  him  an  entrance 
into  glory,  yet  shall  be  also  a  chastisement  of  his  infidelity.  How 
many  noble  proofs  had  Moses  given  of  his  courage  and  strength  of, 
faith!  How  many  gracious  services  had  lie  done  to  his  master! 
Yet  for  one  act  of  distrust  he  must  be  gathered  to  his  fathers.  All 
our  obediences  cannot  bear  out  one  sin  against  God  :  how  vainly 
shall  we  hope  to  make  amends  to  God  for  our  former  trespasses, 
by  our  better  behaviour,  when  Moses  hath  this  one  sin  laid  in  his 
dish,  after  so  many  and  worthy  testimonies  of  his  fidelity  !  When 
we  have  forgotten  our  sins,  yet  God  remembers  them  ;  and,  al- 
though not  in  anger,  yet,  he  calls  for  our  arrearages.  Alas,  what 
shall  become  of  them,  with  whom  God  hath  ten  thousand  greater 
quarrels  ;  that  amongst  many  millions  of  sins,  have  scattered  some 
few  acts  of  formal  services  !  If  Moses  must  die  the  first  death  for 
one  fault,  how  shall  they  escape  the  second  for  sinning  always! 
Even  where  God  loves,  he  will  not  wink  at  sin  ;  and  if  he  do  not 
punish,  yet  he  will  chastise  :  how  much  less  can  it  stand  with  that 
eternal  Justice,  to  let  wilful  sinners  escape  judgment ! 

It  might  have  been  just  with  God,  to  have  reserved  the  cause  to 
himself ;  and  in  a  generality,  to  have  told  Moses,  that  his  sin  must 
shorten  his  journey :  but  it  is  more  of  mercy,  than  justice,  that 
his  children  shall  know  why  they  smart ;  that  God  may  at  once 
both  justify  himself,  and  humble  them  for  their  particular  offences  : 
those,  to  whom  he  means  vengeance,  have  not  the  sight  of  their 
sins  till  they  be  past  repentance.  Complain  not  that  God  upbraids 
thee  with  thy  old  sins,  whosoever  thou  art ;  but  know,  it  is  an  ar- 

tument  of  love  ;  whereas  concealment  is  a  fearful  sign  of  a  secret 
islike  from  God. 
But  what  was  that  noted  sin,  which  deserves  this  late  exprobra- 
tion,  and  shall  carry  so  sharp  a  chastisement  ?  Israel  murmured 
for  water ;  God  bids  Moses  take  the  rod  in  his  hand,  and  speak  to 
the  rock  to  give  water ;  Moses  instead  of  speaking,  and  striking 
the  rock  with  his  voice,  strikes  it  with  the  rod  :  here  was  his  sin  ; 
an  over-reaching  of  his  commission  ;  a  fearfulness  and  distrust  of 
the  effect.  The  rod,  he  knew,  was  approved  for  miracles ;  he 
knew  not  how  powerful  his  voice  might  be  ;  therefore  he  did  not 
speak,  but  strike,  and  he  struck  twice  for  failing  ;  and  now,  after 
these  many  years,  he  is  stricken  for  it  of  God.  It  is  a  dangerous 
thing  in  divine  matters,  to  go  beyond  our  warrant:  those  sins, 
which  seem  trivial  to  men,  are  heinous  in  the  account  of  God  ; 
any  thing  that  savours  of  infidelity,  displeases  him  more  than 
some  other  crimes  of  morality.  Yet  the  moving  of  the  rod  was 
but  a  diverse  thing  from  the  moving  of  the  tongue ;  it  was  not 
contrary ;  he  did  not  forbid  the  one,  but  he  commanded  the  other  : 
this  was  but  across  the  stream,  not  against  it ;  where  shall  they 
appear,  whose  whole  courses  are  quite  contrary  to  the  command- 
ments of  God  ? 

Upon  the  act  done,  God  passed  the  sentence  of  restraining 
Moses  with  the  rest,  from  the  promised  laiid  :  now  he  performs  it, 


THE  DEATH  OF  MOSES,  153 

Since  that  time,  Moses  had  many  favours  from  God  ;  all  which 
could  not  reverse  this  decreed  castigation  ;  that  everlasting  rale  is 
grounded  upon  the  very  essence  of  God,  /  am  Jehovah,  1  change 
not.  Our  purposes  are  as  om-selves,  fickle  and  uncertain  ;  his  are 
certain  and  immutable :  some  things  which  he  reveals  he  alters ; 
nothing  that  lie  hath  decreed. 

Besides  the  soul  of  Moses  (to  the  glory  whereof  God  principally 
intended  this  change)  I  rind  him  careful  of  two  things;  his  suc- 
cessor, and  his  body  i  Moses  moves  for  the  one ;  the  other  God 
doth  unasked.  He,  that  was  so  tender  over  the  welfare  of  Israel 
in  his  life,  would  not  slacken  his  care  in  death  :  he  takes  no  thought 
for  himself,  for  he  knew  how  gainful  an  exchange  he  must  make  ; 
all  his  care  is  for  his  charge.  Some  envious  natures  desire  to  be 
missed,  when  they  must  go  ;  and  wish  that  the  weakness,  or  want 
of  a  successor,  may  be  the  foil  of  their  memory  and  honour : 
Moses  is  in  a  contrary  disposition  ;  it  sufficcth  him  not,  to  find 
contentment  in  his  own  happiness,  unless  he  mav  have  an  assur- 
ance, that  Israel  shall  prosper  after  him.  Carnal  minds  are  all  for 
themselves,  and  make  use  of  government,  only  for  their  own  ad- 
vantages ;  but  good  hearts  look  ever  to  the  future  good  of  the 
Church,  above  their  own,  against  their  own. 

Moses  did  well,  to  shew  his  good  affection  to  his  people  ;  but 
in  his  silence  God  would  have  provided  for  his  own  :  he,  that  called 
him  from  the  sheep  of  Jethro,  will  not  want  a  governor  for  his 
chosen,  to  succeed  him  ;  God  hath  fitted  him,  whom  lie  will  choose. 
Who  can  be  more  meet,  than  he  whose  name,  whose  experience, 
whose  graces  might  supply,  vea  revive  Moses  to  the  people  ?  He 
that  searched  the  land  before  was  fittest  to  guide  Israel  into  it ;  he 
that  was  endued  with  the  Spirit  of  God  was  the  fittest  deputy  for 
God  ;  he  that  abode  still  in  the  tabernacle  of  Ohel-moed,  as  God's 
attendant,  was  fittest  to  be  sent  forth  from  him,  as  his  lieutenant : 
but,  oh  the  unsearchable  counsel  of  the  Almighty  !  Aged  Caleb 
and  all  the  princes  of  Israel  arc  passed  over,  ami  Joshua  the  ser- 
vant of  Moses  is  chosen  to  succeed  his  master :  the  eye  of  God  is 
not  blinded  either  with  gifts,  or  with  blood,  or  with  beauty,  or 
with  strength  ;  but,  as  in  his  eternal  elections,  so  in  his  temporary, 
lie  will  have  mercy  on  whom  he  will. 

And  well  doth  Joshua  succeed  Moses.  The  very  acts  of  God 
of  old  were  allegories :  where  the  law  ends,  there  the  Saviour  be- 
gins ;  we  may  see  the  land  of  promise  in  the  law  ;  only  Jesus  the 
mediator  of  the  New  Testament  can  brim?  us  into  it.  So  was  he 
a  servant  of  the  law,  that  he  supplies  all  the  defects  of  the  law  to 
us:  he  hath  taken  possession  of  the  promised  kind  for  us  ;  he  shall 
carry  us  from  this  wilderness,  to  our  rest. 

It  is  no  small  happiness  to  any  state,  when  their  governors  are 
chosen  by  worthiness,  and  such  elections  are  ever  from  God  ; 
whereas  the  intrusions  of  bribery  and  unjust  favour  or  violence, 
as  they  make  the  commonwealth  miserable,  so  they  come  from  him 
which  is  the  author  of  confusion  :  woe  be  to  that  state  that  suffers 


154  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

it ;  woe  be  to  that  person  that  works  it ;  for  both  of  them  have 
sold  themselves,  the  one  to  servitude,  the  other  to  sin. 

I  do  not  hear  Moses  repine  at  God's  choice,  and  grudge  that 
this  sceptre  of  his  is  not  hereditary ;  but  he  willingly  lays  hands 
upon  his  servant,  to  consecrate  him  for  his  successor.  Joshua  was 
a  good  man,  yet  he  had  some  sparks  of  envy ;  for  when  Eldad  and 
Medau  prophesied,  he  stomached  it;  My  lord  Moses,  forbid  them. 
He  that  would  not  abide  two  of  the  elders  of  Israel  to  prophesy, 
how  would  he  have  allowed  his  servant  to  sit  in  his  throne  !  What 
an  example  of  meekness  (besides  all  the  rest)  doth  he  here  see  in 
this  last  act  of  his  master,  who  without  all  murmuring  resigns  his 
chair  of  state  to  his  page  !  It  is  all  one  to  a  gracious  heart,  whom 
God  will  please  to  advance  :  emulation  and  discontentment  are  the 
affections  of  carnal  minds.  Humility  goes  ever  with  regeneration  ; 
which  teaches  a  man  to  think,  whatever  honour  be  put  upon  others, 
•*  I  have  more  than  J  am  worth}'  of." 

The  same  God,  that  by  the  hands  of  his  angels  carried  up  the 
soul  of  Moses  to  his  glory,  doth  also  by  the  hand  of  his  angels 
carry  his  body  down  into  the  valley  of  Moab,  to  his  sepulture. 
Those  hands  which  had  taken  the  law  from  him,  those  eves  that 
had  seen  his  presence,  those  lips  that  had  conferred  so  often  with 
him,  that  face  that  did  so  shine  with  the  beams  of  his  glory,  may 
not  be  neglected  when  the  soul  is  gone  :  he,  that  took  charge  of  his 
birth  and  preservation  in  the  reeds,  takes  charge  of  his  carriage 
out  of  the  world  :  the  care  of  God  ceaseth  not  over  his  own,  either 
in  death  or  after  it.  How  justly  do  we  take  care  of  the  comely 
burials  of  our  friends,  when  God  himself  gives  us  this  example  ! 

If  the  ministry  of  man  had  been  used  in  this  grave  of  Moses, 
the  place  might  have  been  known  to  the  Israelites  :  but  God  pur- 
posely conceals  this  treasure,  both  from  men  and  devils, '  that  so 
he  might  both  cross  their  curiosity,  and  prevent  their  superstition. 
If  God  had  loved  the  adoration  of  his  servants'  reliques,  he  could 
never  have  had  a  fitter  opportunity  for  this  devotion,  than  in  the 
bod\'  of  Moses.  It  is  folly  to  place  religion  in  those  things,  which 
God  hides  on  purpose  from  us  ;  it  is  not  the  property  of  the  Al- 
mighty, to  restrain  us  from  good. 

Yet  that  divine  hand,  which  locked  up  this  treasure,  and  kept 
the  key  of  it,  brought  it  forth  afterwards,  glorious.  In  the  trans- 
figuration, this  body,  which  was  hid  in  the  valley  of  Moab,  ap- 
peared in  the  hill  of  Tabor ;  that  we  may  know,  these  bodies  of 
ours  are  not  lost,  but  laid  up  ;  and  shall  as  sure  be  raised  in  glorv, 
as  they  are  laid  down  in  corruption.  We  know  that  when  he  shall 
appear,  we  shall  also  appear  with  him  in  glory. 

Num.  xxvii,  Deut.  xxxiv. 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 

BOOK  VIII. 


TO  THE  TRULY  NOBLE,  AND  WORTHILY  HONOURED 
GENTLEMAN, 

MASTER  ROBERT  HAY, 

ONE  OF  THE  ATTENDANTS  OF  HIS  MAJESTY 's  BEDCHAMBER, 

A  SINCERE  FRIEND  OF  VIRTUE,  AND  LOVER 
OF  LEARNING  J 

/.  II. 

WITH  APPRECATION  OF  ALL  HAPPINESS, 
DEDICATES  THIS  PART  OF  HIS  MEDITATIONS. 


RAHAB. 

Joshua  was  one  of  those  twelve  searchers  which  were  sent  to 
view  the  land  of  Canaan  ;  yet  now  he  addresses  two  spies,  for  a 
more  particular  survey  :  those  twelve  were  only  to  inquire  of  the 
general  condition  of  the  people  and  land ;  these  two,  to  find  out 
the  best  entrance  into  the  next  part  of  the  country,  and  into  their 
greatest  city.  Joshua  himself  was  full  of  God's  Spirit,  and  had  the 
oracle  of  God  ready  for  his  direction  ;  yet  now  he  goes  not  to  the 
propitiatory  for  consultation,  but  to  the  spies.  Except  where 
ordinary  means  fail  us,  it  is  no  appealing  to  the  immediate  help  of 
God  :  we  may  not  seek  to  the  postern,  but  where  the  common  gate 
is  shut.  It  was  promised  Joshua,  that  he  should  lead  Israel  into 
the  promised  land  ;  yet  he  knew  it  was  unsafe  to  presume.  The 
condition  of  his  provident  care  was  included  in  that  assurance  of 
success.  Heaven  is  promised  to  us,  but  not  to  our  carelessness, 
infidelity,  disobedience.  He,  that  hath  set  this  blessed  inheritance 
before  us,  presupposes  our  wisdom,  faith,  holiness. 

Either  force  or  policy  is  fit  to  be  used  unto  Canaanites.  He, 
that  would  be  happy  in  this  spiritual  warfare,  must  know  where 
the  strength  of  his  enemy  lieth,  and  must  frame  his  guard  accord- 
ing to  the  other's  assaidt.  It  is  a  great  advantage  to  a  Christian, 
to  know  the  fashion  of  Satan's  onsets,  that  he. may  the  more  easily 
compose  himself  to  resist.  Many  a  soul  hath  miscarried,  through 
the  ignorance  of  his  enemy,  winch  had  not  perished,  if  it  had  well 
known  that  the  weakness  of  Satan  stands  in  our  faith. 


156  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

The  spies  can  find  no  other  lodging  but  Rahab"  s  house.  She  was 
a  victualler  by  profession,  and  (as  those  persons  and  trades,  by- 
reason  of  the  commonness  of  entertainment,  were  amongst  the  Jews 
infamous  by  name  and  note)  she  was  Rahab  the  harlot :  I  will  not 
think  she  professed  filthiness :  only  her  public  trade,  through  the 
corruption  of  those  times,  hath  cast  upon  her  this  name  of  reproach ; 
yea,  rather  will  I  admire  her  faith,  than  make  excuses  for  her  call- 
ing. How  man}'  women  in  Israel,  now  Miriam  was  dead,  have  given 
such  proofs  of  their  knowledge  and  faith  !  How  noble  is  that  con- 
fession, which  she  makes  of  the  power  and  truth  of  God  !  Yea,  I 
see  here,  not  only  a  disciple  of  God,  but  a  prophetess.  Or  if  she 
had  once  been  public,  as  her  house  was  ;  now  she  is  a  chaste  and 
worthy  convert ;  and  so  approved  herself  for  honest  and  wise  be- 
haviour, that  she  is  thought  worthy  to  be  the  great  grandmother 
of  David's  father ;  and  the  holy  line  of  the  Mcssias  is  not  ashamed 
to  admit  her  into  that  happy  pedigree.  The  mercy  of  our  God 
doth  not  measure  us  by  what  we  were.  It  would  be  wide  with  the 
best  of  us,  if  the  eye  of  God  should  look  backward  to  our  former 
estate :  there  he  should  see  Abraham  an  idolater,  Paul  a  persecu- 
tor, Manasses  a  necromancer,  Mary  Magdalen  a  courtesan,  and 
the  best  vile  enough  to  be  ashamed  of  himself.  Who  can  despair 
of  mercy,  that  sees  even  Rahab  fetched  into  the  blood  of  Israel 
and  line  of  Christ? 

If  Rahab  had  not  received  these  spies,  but  as  unknown  passen- 
gers, with  respect  to  their  money  and  not  to  their  errand,  it  had 
been  no  praise  ;  for  in  such  cases,  the  thank  is  rather  to  the  guest, 
than  to  the  host ;  but  now  she  knew  their  purpose :  she  knew  that 
the  harbour  of  them  was  the  danger  of  her  own  life,  and  yet  she 
hazards  this  entertainment.  Either  faith  or  friendship  is  never 
tried,  but  in  extremities.  To  shew  countenance  to  the  messengers 
of  God,  while  the  public  face  of  the  state  smiles  upon  them,  is  but 
a  courtesy  of  course  ;  but  to  hide,  our  own  lives  in  theirs,  when 
they  are  persecuted,  is  an  act  that  looks  for  a  reward.  These  times 
need  not  our  favour;  we  know  not  what  may  come:  alas!  how 
likely  is  it  they  would  shelter  them  in  danger,  which  respect  them 
not  in  prosperity  ? 

All  intelligences  of  state  come  first  to  the  court:  it  most  con-, 
cerns  princes,  to  hearken  after  the  affairs  of  each  other.  If  this 
poor  innholder  knew  of  the  sea  dried  up  before  Israel,  and  of  the 
discomfiture  of  Og  and  Schon ;  surely  this  rumour  was  stale  with 
the  king  of  Jericho  :  he  had  heard  it  and  feared  ;  and  yet,  instead 
of  sending  ambassadors  for  peace,  he  sends  pursuivants  for  the 
spies.  The  spirit  of  Rahab  melted  with  that  same  report,  where- 
with the  king  of  Jericho  was  hardened :  all  make  not  one  use  of 
the  messages  of  the  proceedings  of  God. 

The  king  sends  to  tell  her  what  she  knew  :  she  had  not  hid  them, 
if  she  had  not  known  their  errand.  I  know  not  whether  first  to 
wonder  at  the  gracious  provision  of  God  for  the  spies,  or  at  the 
strong  faith  which  he  hath  wrought  in  the  heart  of  a  weak  woman  : 
two  strangers,  Israelites,  spies  (and  noted  for  all  these)  in  a  foreign, 


OF  RAHAB.  157 

in  a  hostile  land,  have  a  safe  harbour  provided  them,  even  amongst 
their  enemies;  in  Jericho,  at  the  very  court-gate,  against  the  pro- 
clamation of  a  king,  against  the  endeavours  of  the  people.  Where 
cannot  the  God  of  heaven  either  find  or  raise  up  friends  to  his  own 
causes  and  servants  ? 

Who  could  have  hoped  for  such  faith  in  Rahab  ?  which  con-, 
temned  her  life  for  the  present,  that  she  might  save  it  for  the  future ; 
neglected  her  own  king  and  country,  for  strangers  which  she  never 
saw ;  and  more  feared  the  destruction  of  that  city,  before  it  knew 
that  it  had  an  adversary,  than  the  displeasure  of  her  king,  in  the 
mortal  revenge  of  that,  which  he  would  have  accounted  treachery. 
She  brings  them  up  to  the  roof  of  her  house,  and  hides  tliem  with 
stalks  of  flax  :  that  plant  which  was  made  to  hide  the  body  from 
nakedness  and  shame,  now  is  used  to  hide  the  spies  from  death. 
Never  could  these  stalks  have  been  improved  so  well  with  all  her 
housewifery,  after  they  were  bruised,  as  now  before  they  were  fitted 
to  her  wheel :  of  these  she  hath  woven  an  everlasting  web,  both  of 
life  and  propagation.  And  now  her  tongue  hides  them  no  less 
than  her  hand  :  her  charity  was  good,  her  excuse  was  not  good. 
Evil  may  not  be  done,  that  good  way  come  of  it :  we  may  do  any 
thing  but  sin,  for  promoting  a  good  cause ;  and  if  not  in  so  main 
occasions,  how  shall  God  take  it,  that  we  are  not  dainty  of  false- 
hoods in  trifles  ? 

No  man  will  look  that  these  spies  could  take  any  sound  sleep  in 
these  beds  of  stalks :  it  is  enough  for  them  that  they  live,  though 
they  rest  not.  And  now  when  they  hear  Kaliab  coining  up  the 
stairs,  doubtless  they  looked  for  an  executioner;  but  behold,  she 
comes  up  with  a  message  better  than  their  sleep,  adding  to  their 
protection  advice  for  their  future  safely;  whereto  she  makes  way 
by  a  faithful  report  of  God's  former  wonders,  and  the  present  dis- 
position of  her  people,  and  by  wise  capitulations  for  the  life  and 
security  of  her  family.  The  news  of  God's  miraculous  proceed- 
ings for  Israel,  have  made  her  resolve  of  their  success  and  the 
ruins  of  Jericho.  Then  only  do  we  make  a  right  use  of  the  works 
of  God,  when  by  his  judgments  upon  others  we  are  warned  to 
avoid  our  own.    He  intends  his  acts  for  precedents  of  justice. 

The  parents  and  brethren  of  Rahab  take  their  rest :  thev  are  not 
troubled  with  the  fear  and  care  of  the  success  of  Israel,  but  securely 
go  with  the  current  of  the  present  condition.  She  watches  for 
them  all,  and  breaks  her  midnight  sleep  to  prevent  their  last.  One 
wite  and  faithful  person  does  well  in  a  house  :  where  all  are  careless 
there  is  no  comfort,  but  in  perishing  together.  It  had  been  an  ill 
nature  in  Rahab,  if  she  had  been  content  to  be  saved  alone  :  that 
her  love  might  be  a  match  to  her  faith,  she  covenants  for  all  her  fa- 
mily ;  and  so  returns  life  to  those,  of  whom  she  received  it.  Both 
the  bond  of  nature  and  of  grace  vviil  draw  all  ours,  to  the  partici- 
pation of  the  same  good  with  ourselves. 

It  had  been  never  the  better  for  the  spies,  if  after  this  night's 
lodging  they  had  been  turned  out  of  doors  to  the  hazard  of  the 
way ;  for  so  the  pur:. tiers  had  lighted  upon  them,  and  prevented  their 
return  with  their  death.    Rahab's  counsel  therefore  was  better  (hajn 


158 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


her  harbour  ;  which  sent  them  (no  doubt,  with  victuals  in  then- 
hands)  to  seek  safety  in  the  mountains,  till  the  heat  of  that  search 
were  past.  He,  that  hath  given  us  charge  of  our  lives,  will  not  suffer 
us  to  cast  them  upon  wilful  adventures.  Had  not  these  spies  hid 
themselves  in  those  desert  hills,  Israel  had  wanted  directors  for  their 
enterprises.  There  is  nothing  more  expedient  for  the  Church, 
than  that  some  of  God's  faithful  messengers  should  withdraw  them- 
selves, and  give  way  to  persecutions.  Courage  in  those  that  must 
die  is  not  a  greater  advantage  to  the  Gospel,  than  a  prudent  retir- 
ing of  those  which  may  survive  to  maintain  and  propagate  it. 

It  was  a  just  and  reasonable  transaction  between  them,  that  her 
life  should  be  saved  by  them  which  had  saved  theirs :  they  owe 
no  less  to  her,  to  whom  they  were  not  so  much  guests  as  prisoners. 
And  now  they  pass  not  their  promise  only,  but  their  oath.  They 
were  strangers  to  Rahab,  and  for  ought  she  knew,  might  have  been 
godless  ;  yet  she  dares  trust  her  life  upon  their  oath.  So  sacred 
and  inviolable  hath  this  bond  ever  been,  that  a  Heathen  woman 
thought  herself  secure  upon  the  oath  of  an  Israelite. 

Neither  is  she  more  confident  of  their  oath  taken,  than  they  are 
careful  both  of  taking  and  performing  it.  So  far  are  they  from  de- 
siring to  salve  up  any  breach  of  promise  by  equivocation,  that  they 
explain  all  conditions,  and  would  prevent  all  possibilities  of  viola- 
tion. All  Rahab's  family  must  be  gathered  into  her  house  ;  and 
that  red  cord,  which  was  an  instrument  of  their  delivery,  must  be  a 
sign  of  hers.  Behold,  this  is  the  saving  colour :  the  destroying 
angel  sees  the  door-cheeks  of  the  Israelites  sprinkled  with  red,  and 
passes  them  over  :  the  warriors  of  Israel  see  the  window  of  Rahab 
dyed  with  red,  and  save  her  family  from  the  common  destruction. 
If  our  souls  have  this  tincture  of  the  precious  blood  of  our  Saviour, 
upon  our  doors  or  windows,  we  are  safe. 

But  if  any  one  of  the  brethren  of  Rahab  shall  fly  from  this  red 
flag,  and  rove  about  the  city,  and  not  contain  himself  under  that 
roof  which  hid  the  spies,  it  is  in  vain  for  him  to  tell  the  avengers 
that  he  is  Rahab's  brother :  that  title  will  not  save  him  in  the 
street ;  within  doors  it  will.  If  we  will  wander  out  of  the  li- 
mits that  God  hath  set  us,  we  cast  ourselves  out  of  his  protection  ; 
we  cannot  challenge  the  benefit  of  his  gracious  preservation,  and 
our  most  precious  redemption,  when  we  fly  out  into  the  bye- ways 
of  our  own  hearts,  not  for  innocence,  but  for  safety  and  harbour. 
The  Church  is  that  house  of  Rahab,  which  is  saved  when  all  Jeri- 
cho shall  perish.  While  we  keep  us  in  the  lists  thereof,  we  cannot 
miscarry,  through  mis-opinion  ;  but  when  once  we  run  out  of  it, 
let  us  look  for  judgment  from  God,  and  error  in  our  own  judgment. 

Jos.  ii. 


JORDAN  DIVIDED. 
The  two  spies  returned  with  news  of  the  victory  that  should  be.  I 
do  not  hear  them  say,  "  The  land  is  unpeopled,  or  the  people  are 
unfurnished  with  arms;  unskilful  in  the  discipline  of  war  ;  but, 
7'hey  faint  because  of  us;  therefore  their  land  is  ours.  Either 


JORDAN  DIVIDED. 


159 


success  or  discomfiture  begins  ever  at  the  heart.  A  man's  inward 
disposition  doth  more  than  presage  the  event.  As  a  man  raises  up  his 
own  heart  before  his  fall,  and  depresses  it  before  his  glory  5  so  God 
raises  it  up  before  his  exaltation,  and  casts  it  down  before  his  ruin. 
It  is  no  otherwise  in  our  spiritual  conflicts  :  if  Satan  see  us  once 
faint,  he  gives  himself  the  day.  There  is  no  way  to  safety,  but 
that  our  hearts  be  the  last  that  shall  yield.  That  which  the  hea- 
thens attributed  to  fortune,  we  may  justly  to  the  hand  of  God ; 
that  he  speedeth  those  that  are  forward.  All  the  ground  that  we 
lose  is  given  to  our  adversaries. 

This  news  is  brought  but  over-night :  Joshua  is  on  his  way  by 
morning,  and  prevents  the  sun  for  haste.  Delays,  whether  in  the 
business  of  God  or  our  own,  arc  hateful  and  prejudicial.  Many  a 
one  loses  the  land  of  promise  by  lingering  :  if  we  neglect  God's 
time,  it  is  just  with  him  to  cross  us  in  ours. 

Joshua  hastens  till  he  has  brought  Israel  to  the  verge  of  the 
promised  land.  Nothing  parts  them  now  but  the  river  of  Jordan. 
There  he  stays  a  time  ;  that  the  Israelites  might  feed  themselves 
awhile  with  the  sight  of  that,  which  they  should  afterwards  enjoy- 
That  which  they  had  been  forty  years  in  seeking  may  not  be 
seized  upon  too  suddenly  :  God  loves  to  give  us  cools  and  heats 
in  our  desires  ;  and  will  so  allay  our  joys,  that  their  fruition  hurt 
us  not.  He  knows,  that,  as  it  is  in  meats,  the  long  forbearance 
whereof  causes  a  surfeit  when  we  come  to  full  feed,  so  it  fares  in 
the  contentments  of  the  mind  ;  therefore  he  feeds  us  not  with  the 
dish,  but  with  the  spoon  ;  and  will  have  us  neither  cloyed  nor  fa- 
mished. If  the  mercy  of  God  have  brought  us  within  sight  of 
heaven,  let  us  be  content  to  pause  awhile,  and  upon  the  banks  of 
Jordan  fit  ourselves  for  our  entrance. 

Now  that  Israel  is  brought  to  the  brim  of  Canaan,  the  cloud  is 
vanished  which  led  them  all  the  way  ;  and  as  soon  as  they  have  but 
crossed  Jordan,  the  manna  ceaseth  which  nourished  them  all  the  way. 
The  cloud  and  manna  were  for  their  passage,  not  for  their  rest ;  for 
the  wilderness,  not  for  Canaan.  It  were  as  easy  for  God  to  work 
miracles  always  ;  but  he  knows,  that  custom  were  the  way  to  make 
them  no  miracles.  He  goes  by-ways  but  till  he  have  brought  us 
into  the  road,  and  then  he  refers  us  to  his  ordinary  proceedings. 
That  Israelite  should  have  been  very  foolish,  that  would  still  have 
said,  "  I  will  not  stir  till  I  see  the  cloud  ;  I  will  not  eat  unless  I  may 
have  that  food  of  angels."  Wherefore  serves  the  ark  but  for  their 
direction  ?  Wherefore  serves  the  wheat  of  Canaan  but  for  bread  ? 
So,  fond  is  that  Christian  that  will  still  depend  upon  expectation  of 
miracles,  after  the  fulness  of  God's  kingdom.  If  God  bear  us  in 
his  arms  when  we  are  children,  yet  when  we  are  well  grown  he 
looks  w  e  should  go  on  our  own  feet :  it  is  enough  that  he  upholds 
us,  though  he  carry  us  not. 

He,  that  hitherto  had  gone  before  them  in  the  cloud,  doth  now 
go  before  them  in  the  ark  ;  the  same  guide,  in  two  divers  signs  of 
his  presence.  The  cloud  was  for  Moses',  the  ark  for  Joshua's  time  : 
the  cloud  was  fit  for  Moses  ;  the  law  offered  us  Christ,  but  enwrap- 


160  CONTE.NfPLATlONS 

ed  in  many  obscurities.  If  he  were  seen  in  the  clond,  lie  was 
card  from  the  cover  of  the  ark.  Why  was  it  the  ark  of  the  testi- 
mony, but  because  it  witnessed  both  his  presence  and  love?  And 
within  it,  were  his  word,  the  Law;  and  his  sacrament,  the  Manna, 
Who  can  wish  a  better  guide,  than  the  God  of  heaven,  in  his  word 
and  sacraments  ?  Who  can  know  the  way  into  the  land  of  pro- 
mise, so  well  as  he  that  owns  it  ?  And  what  means  can  better  direct 
us  thither,  than  those  of  his  institution  ? 

That  ark  which  before  was  as  the  heart  is  now  as  the  head  ;  it  was 
in  the  midst  of  Israel,  while  they  encamped  in  the  desert  ;  now 
when  the  cloud  is  removed,  it  is  in  the  front  of  the  army  ;  that  as 
before  they  depended  upon  it  for  life,  so  now  they  should  for  di- 
rection. It  must  go  before  them  on  the  shoulders  of  the  sons  of 
Levi :  they  must  follow  it,  but  within  sight,  not  within  breathing. 
The  Levitesmay  not  touch  the  ark,  but  only  the  bars  :  the  Israel- 
ites mav  not  approach  nearer  than  a  thousand  paces  to  it.  What 
awful  respects  doth  God  require  to  be  given  unto  the  testimonies  of 
his  presence  !  Uzzah  paid  dear  for  touching  it;  the  men  of  Beth- 
shemesh  for  looking  into  it.  It  is  a  dangerous  thing  to  be  too  bold 
with  the  ordinances  of  God.  Though  the  Israelites  were  sanctified, 
vet  they  might  not  come  near  either  the  Mount  of  Sinai,  when  the 
taw  was  delivered,  or  the  ark  of  the  covenant,  wherein  the  law 
was  written.  How  fearful  shall  their  estate  be,  that  come  with  un- 
hallowed hearts  and  hands  to  the  word  of  the  Gospel,  and  the  true 
manna  of  the  evangelical  sacrament  ?  As  we  used  to  say  of  the  courtand 
of  fire,  so  may  we  of  these  divine  institutions,  W  e  freeze  if  we  be  far 
off  from  them;  and  if  we  be  more  near  than  befits  us,  we  burn.  Un- 
der the  Law  we  might  look  at  Christ  aloof,  now  under  the  Gospel 
we  may  come  near  him  :  he  calls  us  to  him  ;  yea,  he  enters  into  us. 

Neither  was  it  only  for  reverence  that  the  ark  must  be,  not  stum- 
bled at,  but  waited  on,  afar;  but  also  for  convenience,  both  of 
sight  and  passage  :  those  things  that  are  near  us,  though  they  be 
less,  fill  our  eye ;  neither  could  so  many  thousand  eyes  see  the 
same  object  upon  a  level,  but  by  distance.  It  would  not  content 
God,  that  one  Israelite  should  tell  another,  "  Now  the  ark  goes, 
now  it  turns,  now  it  stands  ;"  but  he  would  have  every  one  his  own 
witness.  What  can  be  so  comfortable  to  a  good  heart,  as  to  see 
the  pledges  of  God's  presence  and  favour  ?  To  hear  of  the  loving 
kindnesses  of  God  is  pleasant,  but  to  behold  and  feel  the  evidences 
of  his  mercy  is  unspeakably  delectable:  hence  the  saints  of  God, 
not  contenting  themselves  with  faith,  have  still  prayed  for  sight  and 
fruition,  and  mourned  when  they  have  wanted  it.  What  a  happy 
prospect  hath  God  set  before  us,  of  Christ  Jesus  crucified  for  us, 
and  offered  unto  us  ! 

•Ere  God  will  work  a  miracle  before  Israel,  they  have  charge  to 
be  sanctified  There  is  a  holiness  required,  to  make  us  either 
patients  or  beholders  of  the  great  works  of  God  ;  how  much  more 
when  we  should  be  actors  in  his  sacred  services !  There  is  more 
use  of  tanctification,  when  we  must  present  something  to  God, 
than  wh©p  he  must  do  aught  to  us. 


JORDAN  DIVIDED. 


161 


The  same  power,  that  divided  the  Red-Sea  before  Moses,  divides 
Jordan  before  Joshua ;  that  they  might  see  the  ark  no  less  effec- 
tual than  the  cloud,  and  the  hand  of  God  as  present  with  Joshua 
to  bring  them  into  Canaan,  as  it  was  with  Moses  to  bring  them  out 
of  Egypt. 

The  bearers  of  the  ark  had  need  be  faithful ;  they  must  first  set 
their  foot  into  the  streams  of  Jordan,  and  believe  that  it  will  give 
way  :  the  same  faith  that  led  Peter  upon  the  water  must  carry  them 
into  it.  There  can  be  no  Christian  without  belief  in  God  ;  but 
those,  that  are  near  to  God  in  his  immediate  services,  must  go  be- 
fore others  no  less  in  believing,  than  they  do  in  example. 

The  waters  know  their  Maker  :  that  Jordan  that  flowed  with  full 
streams  when  Christ  went  into  it  to  be  baptized,  now  gives  way 
when  the  same  God  must  pass  through  it  in  state :  then  there  was 
use  of  his  water,  now  of  his  sand. 

I  hear  no  news  of  any  rod  to  strike  the  waters  :  the  presence  of 
the  ark  of  the  Lord  God,  the  Lord  of  all  the  world,  is  sign  enough 
to  these  waves ;  which  now,  as  if  a  sinew  were  broken,  run  back 
to  their  issues,  and  dare  not  so  much  as  wet  the  feet  of  the  priests 
that  bear  it ;  What  aileth  thee,  O  sea,  that  thou  Jleddest,  and 
thou  Jordan,  that  thou  wert  driven  back  ?  Ye  mountains,  that  ye 
leaped  like  rams,  and  ye  little  hills,  like  lambs  ?  The  earth  trem~ 
bled  at  the  presence  of  the  Lord ;  at  the  presence  of  the  God  of 
Jacob. 

How  observant  are  all  the  creatures  to  the  God  that  made  them  ! 
How  glorious  a  God  do  we  serve  ;  whom  all  the  powers  of  the 
heavens  and  elements  are  willingly  subject  unto,  and  gladly  take 
that  nature  whicli  he  pleases  to  give  them.  He  could  have  made 
Jordan  like  some  solid  pavement  of  crystal  for  the  Israelites'  feet 
to  have  trod  upon,  but  this  work  had  not  been  so  magnificent. 
Every  strong  frost  congeals  the  water  in  a  natural  course  ;  but  for 
the  river  to  stand  still,  and  run  on  heaps,  and  to  be  made  a  liquid 
wall  for  the  passage  of  God's  people,  is,  for  nature  to  run  out  of 
itself,  to  do  homage  to  her  Creator. 

Now  must  the  Israelites  needs  think  ;  "  How  can  the  Canaanites 
stand  out  against  us,  when  the  seas  and  rivers  give  us  way  ?"  With 
what  joy  did  they  now  trample  upon  the  dry  channel  ot  Jordan, 
while  they  might  see  the  dry  deserts  overcome ;  the  promised  land 
before  them ;  the  very  waters  so  glad  of  them,  that  they  ran  back 
to  welcome  them  into  Canaan !  The  passages  into  our  promised 
land  are  troublesome  and  perilous  ;  and,  even  at  last,  offer  them- 
selves to  us  the  main  hindrances  of  our  salvation ;  which,  after  all  our 
hopes,  threaten  to  defeat  us  :  for  what  will  it  avail  us  to  have  passed  a 
wilderness,  if  the  waves  of  Jordan  should  swallow  us  up  ?  Butthesame 
hand  that  hath  made  the  way  hard  hath  made  it  sure :  he  that  made  the 
wilderness  comfortable  will  make  Jordan  dry  ;  he  will  master  all 
difficulties  for  us  ;  and  those  things  which  we  most  feared,  will  he 
make  most  sovereign  and  beneficial  to  us.  O  God,  as  we  have 
trusted  thee  with  the  beginning,  so  will  we  with  the  finishing  of 

VOL.   I.  M 


162 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


our  glory.  Faithful  art  thou  that  hast  promised,  which  wilt  also 
do  it. 

He  that  led  them  about,  in  forty  years'  journey,  through  the  wil- 
derness, yet  now  leads  them  the  nearest  cut  to  Jericho  :  he  will  not 
so  much  as  seek  for  a  ford  for  their  passage,  but  divides  the  waters. 
What  a  sight  was  this  to  their  heathen  adversaries,  to  see  the  waters- 
make  both  a  lane  and  a  wall  for  Israel  !  Their  hearts  could  not 
druse  but  be  broken,  to  see  the  streams  broken  off  for  a  way  to 
their  enemies.  I  do  not  see  Joshua  hasting  through  this  channel, 
as  if  he  feared  lest  the  tide  of  Jordan  should  return  ;  but,  as  know- 
ing that  watery  wall  stronger  than  the  walls  of  Jericho,  he  paces 
slowly  :  and  lest  this  miracle  should  pass  away  with  themselves,  he 
commands  twelve  stones  to  be  taken  out  of  the  channel  of  Jordan, 
by  twelve  selected  men  from  every  tribe,  which  shall  be  pitched 
in  Gilgal ;  and  twelve  other  stones  to  be  set  in  the  midst  of  Jor- 
dan, where  the  feet  of  the  priests  had  stood  with  the  ark  ;  that  so 
both  land  and  water  might  testify  the  miraculous  way  of  Israel, 
while  it  should  be  said  of  the  one,  "  These  stones  were  fetched  out 
of  the  pavement  of  Jordan  ;"  of  the  other,  "  There  did  the  ark 
rest  while  we  walked  dry-shod  through  the  deeps  of  Jordan:"  of 
the  one,  "  Jordan  was  once  as  dry  as  this  Gilgal;"  of  the  other, 
"  Those  waves  which  drown  these  stones  had  so  drowned  us,  if  the 
power  of  the  Almighty  had  not  restrained  them."  Many  a  great 
work  had  God  done  for  Israel,  which  was  now  forgotten  ;  Joshua 
therefore  will  have  monuments  of  God's  mercy,  that  future  ages 
might  be  both  witnesses  and  applauders  of  the  great  works  of  their 
God.  Josh.  Hi,  iv. 


THE  SIEGE  OF  JERICHO. 

Joshua  begins  his  wars  with  the  Circumcision  and  Passover.  He 
knew  that  the  way  to  keep  the  blood  of  his  people  from  shedding, 
was  to  let  out  that  Paganish  blood  of  their  uncircumcision.  The 
person  must  be  in  favour,  ere  the  work  can  hope  to  prosper  \  his 
predecessor  Moses  had  like  to  have  been  slain  for  neglect  of  this 
sacrament,  when  he  went  to  call  the  people  out  of  Egypt;  he  just- 
ly fears  his  own  safety,  if  now  he  omit  it,  when  they  are  brought 
into  Canaan  :  we  have  no  right  of  inheritance  in  the  spiritual  Ca- 
naan, the  Church  of  God,  till  we  have  received  the  sacrament  of 
our  matriculation  :  so  soon  as  our  covenants  are  renewed  with  our 
Creator,  we  may  well  look  for  the  vision  of  God  for  the  assurance 
of  victory. 

What  sure  work  did  the  king  of  Jericho  think  he  had  made  ! 
He  blocked  up  the  passages,  barred  up  the  gates,  defended  the 
walls,  and  did  enough  to  keep  out  a  common  enemy  :  if  we  could 
do  but  this  to  our  spiritual  adversaries,  it  were  as  impossible  for 
us  to  be  surprised,  as  for  Jericho  to  be  safe.  Methinks  I  see 
-how  they  called  their  council  of  war,  debated  of  all  means 
of  defence,  gathered  their   forces,  trained  their  soldiers,  set 


THE  SIECE  OF  JERICHO.  16% 

Strong  guards  to  the  gates  and  walls;  and  now  would  persuade  one 
another,  that  unless  Israel  could  fly  into  their  city,  the  siege  was 
Vain.  Vain  worldlings  think  their  ramparts  and  barricadoes  can 
keep  out  the  vengeance  of  God  :  their  blindness  suffers  them  to 
look  no  further  than  the  means  :  the  supreme  hand  of  the  Almighty 
comes  not  within  the  compass  of  their  fears.  Every  carnal  heart 
is  a  Jericho  shut  up  :  God  sits  down  before  it,  and  displays  mercy 
and  judgment  in  sight  of  the  walls  thereof ;  it  hardens  itself  in  a 
wilful  security,  and  saith,  Tush,  I  shall  never  be  moved. 

Yet  their  courage  and  fear  fight  together  within  their  walls,  with- 
in their  bosoms  :  their  courage  tells  them  of  their  own  strength  ; 
heir  fear  suggests  the  miraculous  success  of  this  (as  they  could 
not  but  think)  enchanted  generation  ;  and  now  while  they  have 
shut  out  their  enemy,  they  have  shut  in  their  own  terror.  The, 
most  secure  heart  in  the  world  hath  some  flashes  of  fear  ;  for  it  can- 
not but  sometimes  look  out  of  itself,  and  see  what  it  would  not; 
Rahab  had  notified  that  their  hearts  fainted  ;  and  yet  now  their  faces 
bewray  nothing  but  resolution.  I  know  not  whether  the  heart  or 
the  face  of  a  hypocrite  be  more  false  ;  and  as  each  of  them  seeks  to 
beguile  the  other,  so  both  of  them  agree  to  deceive  the  beholders. 
In  the  midst  of  laughter  their  heart  is  heavy  :  who  would  not  think 
him  merry  that  laughs  ?  yet  their  rejoicing  is  but  in  the  face.  Who 
would  not  think  a  blasphemer  or  profane  man  resolutely  careless  ? 
If  thou  hadst  a  window  into  his  heart,  thou  shouldst  see  him  tor- 
mented with  horrors  of  conscience. 

Now  the  Israelites  see  those  walled  cities  and  towers,  whose 
height  was  reported  to  reach  to  heaven  ;  the  fame  whereof  had  so 
affrighted  them  ere  they  saw  them  ;  and  were  ready  doubtless 
to  say  in  their  distrust,  "  Which  way  shall  we  scale  these  invincible 
fortifications  ?  What  ladders,  what  engines  shall  we  use  to  so  great 
a  work  r"  God  prevents  their  infidelity  ;  Behold,  I  have  given 
Jericho  into  thine  hand.  If  their  walls  had  their  foundations  laid 
in  the  centre  of  the  earth ;  if  the  battlements  had  been  so  high 
built  that  an  eagle  could  not  soar  over  them;  this  is  enough,  / 
have  given  it  thee.  For  on  whose  earth  have  they  raised  these  cas- 
tles ?  Out  of  whose  treasure  did  they  dig  those  piles  of  stone  ? 
Whence  had  they  their  strength  and  time  to  build  ?  Cannot  he  that 
gave  recal  his  own  ?  O  yc  fools  of  Jericho,  what  if  your  walls  be 
strong,  your  men  valiant,  your  leaders  skilful,  your  king  wise, 
when  God  hath  said,  /  have  given  thee  the  city  ? 

What  can  swords  or  spears  do  against  the  Lord  of  Hosts  r  With- 
out him  means  can  do  nothing  ;  how  much  less  against  him  !  How 
vain  and  idle  is  that  reckoning,  wherein  God  is  left  out!  Had  the 
captain  of  the  Lord's  host  drawn  his  sword  for  Jericho,  the  gates 
might  have  been  opened  :  Israel  could  no  more  have  entered,  than 
they  can  now  be  kept  from  entering,  when  the  walls  were  fallen.  What 
courses  soever  we  take  for  our  safety,  it  is  good  making  God  of  our 
side  :  neither  men  nor  devils  can  hurt  us  against  him  ;  neither  men, 
nor  angels  can  secure  us  from  him. 

There  was  never  so  strange  a- siege  as  this  of  Jericho  :  here  was 


164 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


no  mount  raised,  no  sword  drawn,  no  engine  planted,  no  pioneers 
undermining ;  here  were  trumpets  sounded,  but  no  enemy  seen  ; 
here  were  armed  men,  but  no  stroke  given  :  they  must  walk  and  not 
fight ;  seven  several  days  must  they  pace  about  the  walls,  which 
they  may  not  once  look  over  to  see  what  was  within.  Doubtless, 
these  inhabitants  of  Jericho  made  themselves  merry  with  this  sight; 
when  they  had  stood  six  days  upon  their  walls,  and  beheld  none  but 
a  walking  enemy  ;  "  What,"  say  they,  "  could  Israel  find  no  walk 
to  breathe  them  with,  but  about  our  walls?  Have  they  not  tra- 
velled enough  in  their  forty  years'  pilgrimage,  but  they  must 
stretch  their  limbs  in  this  circle  ?  Surely  if  their  eyes  were  en- 
gines, our  walls  could  not  stand  :  we  see  they  are  good  footmen, 
but  when  shall  wc  try  their  hands  ?  What,  do  these  vain  men  think 
Jericho  will  be  won  with  looking  at?  or,  do  they  only  come  to 
count  how  many  paces  it  is  about  our  city  ?  If  this  be  their  man, 
ner  of  siege  we  shall  have  no  great  cause  to  fear  the  sword  of  Is- 
rael." Wicked  men  think  God  in  jest,  when  he  is  preparing  for 
their  judgment.  The  Almighty  hath  ways  and  counsels  of  his  own, 
utterly  unlike  to  ours;  which,  because  our  reason  cannot  reach,  we 
are  ready  to  condemn  of  foolishness  and  impossibility.  With  us, 
there  is  no  w  ay  to  vic  tory  but  fighting,  and  the  strongest  carries  the 
spoil:  God  can  give  victory  to  the  feet  as  well  as  to  the  hands;  and, 
when  he  will,  makes  weakness  no  disadvantage.  What  should  we 
do,  but  follow  God  through  bye-ways ;  and  know,  that  he  will,  in 
spite  of  nature,  lead  us  to  our  end  ? 

All  the  men  of  war  must  compass  the  city ;  yet  it  was  not  the 
presence  of  the  great  warriors  of  Israel,  that  threw  down  the  walls  of 
Jericho.  Those  foundations  were  not  so  slightly  laid,  as  that  they 
could  not  endure  either  a  look,  or  a  march,  or  a  battery  :  it  was  the 
Ark  of  God,  whose  presence  demolished  the  walls  of  that  wicked 
city.  The  same  power,  that  drave  back  the  waters  of  Jordan  be- 
fore, and  afterwards  laid  Dagon  on  the  floor,  cast  down  all  those 
forts.  The  priests  bare  on  their  shoulders  that  mighty  engine  of 
God,  before  which  those  walls,  if  they  had  been  of  molten  brass, 
could  not  stand.  Those  spiritual  wickednesses,  yea,  those  gates  of 
hell,  which  to  nature  are  utterly  invincible,  by  the  power  of  the 
word  of  God,  which  he  hath  committed  to  the  carriage  of  his  weak 
servants,  arc  overthrown  and  triumphed  over.  Thy  Ark,  O  God, 
hath  been  long  amongst  us  ;  how  is  it  that  the  walls  of  our  corrup- 
tions stand  still  unruined  ?  It  hath  gone  before  us ;  his  priests 
have  carried  it,  we  have  not  followed  it,  our  hearts  have  not  at- 
tended upon  it ;  and  therefore  how  mighty  soever  it  is  in  itself, 
yet  to  us  it  hath  not  been  so  powerful  as  it  would. 

Seven  days  together  they  walk  this  round  ;  they  made  this  there- 
fore their  sabbath-day's  journey  ;  and  who  knows  whether  the  last 
and  longest  walk,  which  brought  victory  to  Israel,  were  not  on  this 
clay  ?  Not  long  before,  an  Israelite  is  stoned  to  death  for  but 
gathering  a  few  sticks  that  day  ;  now  all  the  host  of  Israel  must 
walk  about  the  walls  of  a  large  and  populous  city,  and  yet  do  not 
violate  the  day.    God's  precept  is  the  rule  of  the  justice  and  holi- 


THE  SIEGE  OF  JERICHO. 


IG5 


ness  of  all  our  actions.  Or  was  it,  for  that  revenge  upon  God's 
enemies  is  a  holy  work,  and  such  as  God  vouchsafes  to  privilege 
with  his  own  day  ?  or,  because  when  we  have  undertaken  the  ex- 
ploits of  God,  he  will  abide  no  intermission  till  we  have  fulfilled 
them  ?  He  allows  us  to  breathe,  not  to  break  off"  till  we  have 
finished.  # 

It  had  been  as  easy  for  God  to  have  given  this  success  to  their 
first  day's  walk,  yea  to  their  first  pace,  or  their  first  sight  of  Jeri- 
cho ;  yet  he  will  not  give  it  until  the  end  of  their  seven  days'  toil : 
it  is  the  pleasure  of  God,  to  hold  us  both  in  work.£tid  in  expecta- 
tion ;  and  though  he  require  our  continual  endeavours  for  the  sub- 
duing of  our  corruptions,  during  the  six  days  of  our  life,  yet  we 
shall  never  find  it  perfectly  effected  till  the  very  evening  of  our  last 
day  :  in  the  mean  time  it  must  content  us,  that  we  are  in  our  walk, 
and  that  these  walls  cannot  stand,  when  we  come  to  the  measure 
and  number  of  our  perfection.  A  good  heart  groans  under  the  sense 
of  its  infirmities,  fain  would  be  rid  of  them,  and  strives  and  prays; 
but  when  he  hath  all  done,  until  the  end  of  the  seventh  day  it  can- 
not be  :  if  a  stone  or  two  moulder  off  from  these  walls  in  the  mean 
time,  that  is  all;  but  the  foundations  will  not  be  removed  till  then. 

When  we  hear  of  so  great  a  design  as  the  miraculous  winning  of 
a  mighty  city,  who  would  not  look  for  some  glorious  means  to  work 
it  ?  When  we  hear  that  the  ark  of  God  must  besiege  Jericho,  who 
would  not  look  for  some  royal  equipage  ?  But  behold,  here  seven 
priests  must  go  before  it,  with  seven  trumpets  of  rams'  horns.  The 
Israelites  had  trumpets  of  silver,  which  God  had  appointed  for  the 
use  of  assembling  and  dissolving  the  congregation,  for  war,  and  for 
peace.  Now  I  do  not  hear  them  called  for ;  but,  instead  thereof 
trumpets  of  rams'  horns ;  base  for  the  matter,  and  not  loud  for 
sound,  the  shortness  and  equal  measure  of  those  instruments  could 
not  afford,  either  shrillness  of  noise,  or  variety.  How  mean  and 
homely  are  those  means,  which  God  commonly  uses  in  the  most 
glorious  works  !  No  doubt,  the  citizens  of  Jericho  answered  this 
dull  alarum  of  theirs  from  their  walls,  with  other  instruments  of 
louder  report,  and  more  martial  ostentation  ;  and  the  vulvar  Is- 
raelites thought,  "We  have  as  clear  and  as  costly  trumpets  as 
theirs  ; '  yet  no  man  dares  offer  to  sound  the  better,  when  the  worse 
are  commanded.  If  we  find  the  ordinances  of  God  poor  and  weak 
let  it  content  us  that  they  are  of  his  own  chusing;  and  such  as 
whereby  he  will  so  much  more  honour  himself,  as  they  in  themselves 
are  more  inglorious.  Not  the  outside,  but  the  efiicacy,  is  it  that 
God  cares  for. 

No  ram  of  iron  could  have  been  so  forcible  for  battery,  as  these 
rams'  horns ;  for  when  they  sounded  long,  and  were  seconded  with 
the  shout  of  the  Israelites,  all  the  walls  of  Jericho  fell  down  at  once. 
They  made  the  heaven  ring  with  their  shout;  but  the  ruin  of  those 
walls  drowned  their  voice,  and  gave  a  pleasant  kind  of  horror  to 
the  Israelites.  The  earth  shook  under  them  with  the  fail  ■  but 
the  h  carts  ot  the  inhabitants  shook  yet  more  :  many  of  them  doubt- 
less were  slam  with  those  walls,  wherein  they  had  trusted :  a  man 


166 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


might  see  death  in  the  faces  of  all  the  rest  that  remained  ;  who 
now,  being  half  dead  with  astonishment,  expected  the  other  half 
from  the  sword  of  their  enemies.  They  had  now  neither  means, 
nor  will  to  resist  ;  for  if  only  one  breach  had  been  made,  as  it  uses 
in  other  sieges,  for  the  entrance  of  the  enemy,  perhaps  new  sup- 
plies of  defendants  might  have  made  it  up  with  their  carcases  ; 
but  now  that  at  once  Jericho  is  turned  to  a  plain  field,  every  Is- 
raelite, without  resistance,  might  run  to  the  next  booty,  and  the 
throats  of  their  enemies  seemed  to  invite  their  swords  to  a  dis- 
patch. 

If  but  one  Israelite  had  knocked  at  the  gates  of  Jericho,  it  might 
have,  been  thouglit  their  hand  had  helped  to  the  victory  ;  now,  that 
God  may  have  all  the  glory,  without  the  show  of  any  rival,  yea  of 
any  means,  they  do  but  walk  and  shout,  and  the  walls  give  way. 
He  cannot  abide  to  part  with  any  honour,  from  himself :  as  he  doth 
all  things,  so  he  would  be  acknowledged. 

They  shout  all  at  once.  It  is  the  presence  of  God's  ark  and 
our  conjoining  prayers,  that  are  effectual  to  the  beating  down  of 
wickedness.  They  may  not  shout,  till  they  be  bidden  :  if  we  will 
be  unseasonable  in  our  good  actions,  we  may  hurt,  and  not  benefit 
ourselves. 

Every  living  thing  in  Jericho,  man,  woman,  child,  cattle,  must 
die :  our  folly  would  think  this  merciless  ;  but  there  can  be  no 
mercy  in  injustice,  and  nothing  but  injustice  in  not  fulfilling  the 
charge  of  God.  The  death  of  malefactors,  the  condemnation  of 
wicked  men,  seem  harsh  to  us  ;  but  we  must  learn  of  God,  that 
there  is  a  punishing  mercy.  Cursed  be  that  mercy,  that  opposes 
the  God  of  mercy. 

Yet  was  not  Joshua  so  intent  upon  the  slaughter,  as  not  to  be 
mindful  of  God's  part,  and  Rahab's :  first,  he  gives  charge  (under 
a  curse)  of  reserving  all  the  treasure  for  God  ;  then,  of  preserv- 
ing the  family  of  Rahab.  Those  two  spies,  that  received  life  from 
her,  now  return  it  to  her,  and  hers  :  they  call  at  the  window  with 
the  red  cord  ;  and  send  up  news  of  life  to  her,  the  same  way  which 
they  received  theirs  :  her  house  is  no  part  of  Jericho ;  neither 
may  fire  be  set  to  any  building  of  that  city,  till  Rahab  and  her  fa- 
mily be  set  safe  without  the  host.  The  actions  of  our  faith  and 
charity  will  be  sure  to  pay  us ;  if  late,  yet  surely.  Now  Rahab 
finds  what  it  is  to  believe  God  ;  while,  out  of  an  impure  idolatrous 
city,  she  is  transplanted  into  the  Church  of  God,  and  made  a  mo- 
ther of  a  royal  and  holy  posterity.  Jos.  vi. 


OF  ACHAN. 

When  the  walls  of  Jericho  were  fallen,  Joshua  charged  the  Israel- 
ites but  with  two  precepts  ;  of  sparing  Rahab's  house,  and  of  ab- 
staining from  that  treasure  which  was  anathematized  to  God  ;  and 
one  of  them  is  broken  :  as  in  the  entrance  to  Paradise',  but  one  tree 
was  forbidden,  and  that  was  eaten  of.  God  hath  provided  for  our 
veakness  in  the  paucity  of  commands;  but  our  innocence  stands 


OF  ACHAN.  167 

not  so  much  in  having  few  precepts,  as  in  keeping  those  we  have. 
So  much  more  guilty  are  we  in  the  breach  of  one,  as  we  are  more 
favoured  in  the  number. 

They  needed  no  command,  to  spare  no  living  thing  in  Jericho  ; 
but  to  spare  the  treasure,  no  command  was  enough.  Impartiality 
of  execution  is  easier  to  perform,  than  contempt  of  these  worldly 
things ;  because  we  are  more  prone  to  covet  for  ourselves,  than  to 
pity  others.  Had  Joshua  bidden  save  the  men  and  divide  the 
treasure,  his  charge  had  been  more  plausible,  than  now  to  kill  the 
men  and  save  the  treasure;  or,  if  they  must  kill,  earthly  minds 
would  more  gladly  shed  their  enemies'  blood  for  a  booty,  than  out 
of  obedience  for  the  glory  of  their  Maker,  But  now,  it  is  good 
reason,  since  God  threw  down  those  walls  and  not  they,  that  both 
the  blood  of  that  wicked  city  should  be  spilt  to  him,  not  to  their 
own  revenge  ;  and  that  the  treasure  should  be  reserved  for  his  use, 
not  for  theirs.  Who  but  a  miscreant  can  grudge,  that  God  should 
serve  himself  of  his  own  ?  I  cannot  blame  the  rest  of  Israel,  if 
they  were  well  pleased  with  their  conditions ;  only  one  Achan 
troubles  the  peace,  and  his  sin  is  imputed  to  Israel:  the  innocence 
of  so  many  thousand  Israelites,  is  not  so  forcible  to  excuse  his  one 
sin,  as  his  one  sin  is  to  taint  all  Israel. 

A  lewd  man  is  a  pernicious  creature :  that  he  damns  his  own 
soul,  is  the  least  part  of  his  mischief;  he  commonly  draws  ven- 
geance upon  a  thousand,  either  by  the  desert  of  his  sin,  or  by  the 
infection.  Who  would  not  have  hoped,  that  the  same  God,  which 
for  ten  righteous  men  would  have  spared  the  five  wicked  cities, 
should  not  have  been  content  to  drown  one  sin  in  the  obedience  of 
so  many  righteous?  But  so  venomous  is  sin,  especially  when  it 
lights  among  God's  people,  that  one  dram  of  it  is  able  to  infect 
the  whole;  mass  of  Israel. 

O  righteous  people  of  Israel,  that  had  but  one  Achan  !  How 
had  their  late  circumcision  cut  away  the  unclean  foreskin  of  their 
disobedience!  How  had  the  blood  of  their  paschal  lamb  scoured 
their  souls  from  covetous  desires  !  The  world  was  well  mended  with 
them,  since  their  stubborn  murmurings  in  the  desert.  Since  the 
death  of  Moses,  and  the  government  of  Joshua,  I  do  not  find  them, 
in  any  disorder.  After  that  the  Law  hath  brought  us  under  the  con- 
duct of  the  true  Jesus,  our  sins  are  more  rare  and  ourselves  are 
more  conscionable.  While  we  are  under  the  Law,  we  do  not  so 
keep  it,  as  when  we  are  delivered  from  it :  our  Christian  freedom 
is  more  holy  than  our  servitude.  Then  have  the  sacraments  of 
God  their  due  effect,  when  their  receipt  purgeth  us  from  our  old 
sins,  and  makes  our  conversation  clean  and  spiritual. 

Little  did  Joshua  know,  that  there  was  any  sacrilege  committed 
by  Israel :  that  sin  is  not  half  cunning  enough,  that  hath  not  learn- 
ed secrecy.  Joshua  .was  a  vigilant  leader,  yet  some  sins  will  escape 
him  :  only  that  eye  which  is  every  where,  finds  us  out  in  our  close 
wickedness.  It  is  no  blame  to  authority,  that  some  sins  arc  secret- 
ly committed.  The  holiest  coiit^ region,  or  family,  may  be  ble- 
mished with  some  malductors.    It  is  just  blam<;(  that 'open  sins  are 


168 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


not  punished  :  we  shall  wrong  government,  if  we  shall  expect  the 
reach  of  it  should  be  infinite. 

He  therefore,  which  if  he  had  known  the  offence,  would  have 
sent  up  prayers  and  tears  to  God,  now  sends  spies  for  a  further 
discovery  of  Ai:  they  return,  with  news  of  the  weakness  of  their 
adversaries;  and,  as  contemning  their  paucity,  persuade  Joshua, 
that  a  wing  of  Israel  is  enough  to  overshadow  this  city  of  Ai.  The 
Israelites  were  so  flushed  with  their  former  victory,  that  now  they 
think  no  walls  or  men  can  stand  before  them.  Good  success  lifts 
up  the  heart  with  too  much  confidence ;  and  while  it  dissuades 
men  from  doing  their  best,  oft-times  disappoints  them.  With  God, 
the  means  can  never  be  too  weak;  without  him,  never  strong 
enough. 

It  is  not  good  to  contemn  an  impotent  enemy.  In  this  second 
battle  the  Israelites  are  beaten :  it  was  not  the  fewness  of  their  as- 
sailants that  overthrew  them,  but  the  sin  that  lay  lurking  at  home. 
If  all  the  host  of  Israel  had  set  upon  this  poor  village  of  Ai,  they 
had  been  all  equally  discomfited :  the  wedge  of  Achan  did  more 
fight  against  them,  than  all  the  swords  of  the  Canaanites.  The  vic- 
tories of  God  go  not  by  strength,  but  by  innocence. 

Doubtless,  these  men  of  Ai  insulted  in  this  foil  of  Israel,  and 
said  ;  <(  Lo,  these  are  the  men,  from  whose  presence  the  waters  of 
Jordan  ran  back  ;  now  they  run  as  fast  away  from  ours :  these  are 
they,  before  whom  the  walls  of  Jericho  fell  down ;  now  they  are 
fallen  as  fast  before  us."  And  all  their  neighbours  took  heart  from 
this  victory  :  wherein,  I  doubt  not  but  besides  the  punishment  of 
Israel's  sin,  God  intended  the  further  obduration  of  the  Canaanites; 
like  as  some  skilful  player  loses  on  purpose  at  the  beginning  of  the 
game,  to  draw  on  the  more  abetments.  The  news  of  their  over- 
throw spread  as  far  as  the  fame  of  their  speed  ;  and  every  city  of 
Canaan  could  say,  "  Why  not  we  as  well  as  Ai  ?" 

But  good  Joshua,  that  succeeded  Moses,  no  less  in  the  care  of 
God's  glory  than  in  his  government,  is  much  dejected  with  this 
event,  He  rends  his  clothes,  falls  on  his  face,  casts  dust  upon  his 
head,  and,  as  if  he  had  learned  of  his  master  how  to  expostulate 
with  God,  says,  What  wilt  thou  do  to  thy  mighty  name  ? 

That  Joshua  might  see,  God  took  no  pleasure  to  let  the  Israelites 
lie  dead  upon  the  earth,  before  their  enemies ;  himself  is  taxed 
for  but  lying  all  day,  upon  his  face,  before  the  ark.  All  his  ex- 
postulations are  answered  in  one  word ;  Get  thee  up,  Israel  hath 
sinned,  I  do  not  hear  God  say,  "  Lie  still,  and  mourn  for  the 
sin  of  Israel."  It  is  to  no  purpose  to  pray  against  punishment, 
while  the  sin  continues.  And  though  God  loves  to  be  sued  to,  yet 
he  holds  our  requests  unseasonable,  till  there  be  care  had  of  satis- 
faction. When  we  have  risen,  and  redressed  sin,  then  may  we  fall 
down  for  pardon. 

Victory  is  in  the  free  hand  of  God,  to  dispose  where  he  will ; 
and  no  man  can  marvel  that  the  dice  of  war  run  ever  with  hazard, 
on  both  sides,  so  as  God  needed  not  to  have  given  any  other  reason 
of  this  discomfiture  of  Israel,  but  his  own  pleasure :  yet  Joshua 


OF  ACHAN. 


169 


must  now  know,  that  Israel,  which  before  prevailed  for  their  faith, 
is  beaten  for  their  sin.  When  we  are  crossed  in  just  and  holy- 
quarrels,  we  may  well  think  there  is  some  secret  evil  unrepented 
of,  which  God  would  punish  in  us ;  which  though  we  see  not,  yet 
he  so  hates,  that  he  will  rather  be  wanting  to  his  own  cause,  than 
not  revenge  it.  When  we  go  about  any  enterprise  of  God,  it  is 
good  to  see  that  our  hearts  be  clear  from  any  pollution  of  sin  ;  and 
when  we  are  thwarted  in  our  bopes,  it  is  our  best  course  to  ransack 
ourselves,  and  to  search  for  some  sin  hid  from  us  in  our  bosom,  but 
open  to  the  view  of  God. 

The  oracle  of  God,  which  told  him  a  great  offence  was  commit- 
ted, yet  reveals  not  the  person.  It  had  been  as  easy  for  him,  to 
have  named  the  man  as  the  crime.  Neither  doth  Joshua  request 
it ;  but  refers  that  discovery  to  such  a  means,  as  whereby  the  of- 
fender, finding  himself  singled  out  by  the  lot,  might  be  most  con- 
vinced. Achau  thought  he  might  have  lain  as  close  in  all  that 
throng  of  Israel,  as  the  wedge  of  gold  lay  in  his  tent.  The  same 
hope  of  secrecy,  which  moved  him  to  sin,  moved  him  to  confidence 
in  his  sin  :  but  now,  when  he  saw  the  lot  fall  upon  his  tribe,  he  be- 
gan to  start  a  little;  when  upon  his  family,  he  began  to  change 
countenance  ;  when  upon  his  household,  to  tremble  and  fear ;.  when 
upon  his  person,  to  be  utterly  confounded  in  himself,  foolish  men 
think  to  run  away  with  their  privy  sins;  and  say,  Tush,  no  eye 
shall  see  me ;  but  when  they  think  themselves  safest,  God  pulls 
them  out  with  shame.  The  man,  that  hath  escaped  justice,  and 
now  is  lying  down  in  death,  would  think,  "  My  shame  shall  never 
be  disclosed ;"  but  before  men  and  angels  shall  he  be  brought  on  the 
scaffold,  and  find  confusion,  as  sure  as  late. 

What  needed  any  other  evidence,  when  God  had  accused  Achan  ? 
Yet  Joshua  will  have  the  sin  out  of  his  mouth,  in  whose  heart  it 
was  hatched ;  My  soft,  I  beseech  thee  give  glory  to  God.  Wnom 
God  had  convinced  as  a  malefactor,  Joshua  beseeches  as  a  son. 
Some  hot  spirit  would  have  said,  **  Thou  wretched  traitor,  how 
hast  thou  pilfered  from  thy  God,  and  shed  the  blood  of  so  many- 
Israelites,  and  caused  the  host  of  Israel  to  shew  their  backs,  with 
dishonour,  to  the  heathen  !  Now  shall  we  fetch  this  sin  out  of  thee 
with  tortures;  and  plague  thee  with  a  condign  death."  But,  like 
the  disciple  of  him  whose  servant  he  was,  he  meekly  entreats  that, 
which  he  might  have  extorted  by  violence ;  My  son,  I  beseech  thee. 
Sweetness  of  compensation  is  a  great  help  towards  the  good  enter- 
tainment of  an  admonition  :  roughness  and  rigour  many  times  har- 
den those  hearts,  which  meekness  would  have  melted  to  repent- 
ance: whether  we  sue,  or  convince,  or  reprove,  little  good  is  got- 
ten by  bitterness.  Detestation  of  the  sin  may  well  stand  with  fa- 
vour to  the  person ;  and  these  two  not  distinguished  cause  great 
wrong,  either  in  our  charity  or  justice ;  for,  either  we  uncharita- 
bly hate  the  creature  of  God,  or  unjustly  affect  the  evil  of  men. 
Subjects  are,  as  they  are  called,  sons  to  the  magistrate:  all  Israel 
was  not  only  of  the  family,  but  as  of  the  loins  of  Joshua.  Such 
must  be  the  corrections,  such  the  provisions  of  governors,  as  for 


170 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


their  children ;  as  again,  the  obedience  and  love  of  subjects  must 
be  filial. 

God  had  glorified  himself  sufficiently,  in  finding  out  the  wick- 
edness of  Achan;  neither  need  he  honour  from  men,  much  less 
from  sinners :  they  can  dishonour  him  by  their  iniquities,  but 
what  recompence  can  they  give  him  for  their  wrongs  ?  Yet  Joshua 
says,  My  son,  give  glory  to  God.  Israel  should  now  see,  that  the 
tongue  of  Achan  did  justify  God  in  his  lot.  The  confession  of  our 
sins  doth  no  less  honour  God,  than  his  glory  is  blemished  by  their 
commission.  Who  would  not  be  glad  to  redeem  the  honour  of  his 
Redeemer,  with  his  own  shame  ? 

The  lot  of  God  and  the  mild  words  of  Joshua  won  Achan  to  ac- 
cuse himself,  ingenuously,  impartially :  a  storm  perhaps  would 
not  have  done  that,  which  a  sunshine  had  done.  If  Achan  had 
come  in,  uncalled  ;  and  before  any  question  made,  out  of  an  honest 
remorse,  had  brought  in  his  sacrilegious  booty,  and  cast  himself  and 
it  at  the  foot  of  Joshua ;  doubtless,  Israel  had  prospered,  and  his 
sin  had  carried  away  pardon :  now  he  hath  gotten  thus  much 
thank,  that  he  is  not  a  desperate  sinner.  God  will  once  wring 
from  the  conscience  of  w  icked  men  their  own  indictments :  they 
have  not  more  carefully  hid  their  sin,  than  they  shall  one  day  freely 
proclaim  their  own  shame. 

Achan's  confession,  though  it  were  late,  yet  was  it  free  and  full ; 
for  he  doth  not-  only  acknowledge  the  act,  but  the  ground  of  his 
sin  ;  /  saw,  and  coveted,  and  took.  The  eye  betrayed  the  heart ; 
and  that,  the  hand  ;  and  now  all  conspire  in  the  offence.  If  we 
list  not  to  flatter  ourselves,  this  hath  been  the  order  of  our  crimes. 
Evil  is  uniform;  and,  beginning  at  the  senses,  takes  the  inmost 
fort  of  the  soul,  and  then  arms  our  own  outward  forces  against  us. 
This  shall  once  be  the  lascivious  man's  song,  "  I  saw,  and  covet- 
ed, and  took:"  this  the  thief;  this  the  idolater's;  this  the  glut- 
ton's, and  drunkard's :  all  these  receive  their  death  by  the  eye. 
But,  O  foolish  Achan  !  with  what  eyes  didst  thou  look  upon  that 
spoil,  which  thy  fellows  saw  and  contemned?  Why  couldest  thou 
not  before,  as  well  as  now,  see  shame  hid  under  that  gay  Babylo- 
nish garment  ?  and  a  heap  of  stones  covered  with  those  shekels 
of  silver?  The  over-prizing  and  over-desiring  of  these  earthly 
things  carries  us  into  all  mischief,  and  hides  from  us  the  sight  of 
God's  judgments  :  whosoever  desires  the  glory  of  metals,  or  of  gay 
clothes,  or  honour,  cannot  be  innocent. 

Well  might  Joshua  have  proceeded  to  the  execution  of  him, 
whom  God  and  his  own  mouth  accused  ;  but  as  one  that  thought 
no  evidence  could  be  too  strong  in  a  case  that  was  capital,  he  sends 
to  see,  whether  there  was  as  much  truth  in  the  confession,  as  there 
was  falshood  in  the  stealth.  Magistrates  and  judges  must  pace 
slowly  and  sure  in  the  punishment  of  offenders.  Presumptions 
are  not  ground  enough  for  the  sentence  of  death;  no,  not  in  some 
cases  the  confessions  of  the  guilty :  it  is  no  warrant  for  the  law  to 
wrong  a  man,  that  he  hath  before  wronged  himself.  There  is  less 
ill  in  sparing  an  offender,  than  in  punishing  the  innocent. 


OF  THE  CIBEONITES.  171 

Who  would  not  have  expected,  since  the  confession  of  Achan 
was  ingenuous,  and  his  pillage  still  found  entire,  that  his  life  should 
have  been  pardoned  ?  But  here  was,  "  Confess  and  die."  He 
«  had  been  too  long  sick  of  this  disease,  to  be  recovered.  Had  his 
confession  been  speedy  and  free,  it  had  saved  him.  How  dan- 
gerous it  is,  to  suffer  sin  to  lie  fretting  into  tho  soul  ;  which,  if  it 
were  washed  off  betimes  with  our  repentance,  could  not  kill  us  ! 
In  mortal  offences,  the  course  of  human  justice  is  not  stayed  by 
our  penitence  :  it  is  well  for  our  souls  that  we  have  repented ,  but 
the  laws  of  men  take  not  notice  of  our  sorrow.  I  know  not  whe- 
ther the  death  or  the  tears  of  a  malefactor  be  a  better  sight.  The 
censures  of  the  Church  are  wiped  off  with  weeping,  not  the  pe- 
nalties of  Laws. 

Neither  is  Achan  alone  called  forth  to  death,  but  all  his  family, 
all  his  substance.  The  actor  alone  doth  not  smart  with  sacrilege  ; 
all  that  concerns  him  is  enwrapped  in  the  judgment.  Those,  that 
defile  their  hands  with  holy  goods,  are  enemies  to  their  own  flesh 
and  blood.  God's  first  revenges  are  so  much  the  more  fearful,  be- 
cause they  must  be  exemplary.  Jos.  zu. 


OF  THE  GIBEONITES. 

The  news  of  Israel's  victory  had  flown  over  all  the  mountains  and 
valliesof  Canaan  ;  and  yet  those  heathenish  kings  and  people  are 
mustered  together  against  them.  They  might  have  seen  them- 
selves in  Jericho  and  Ai,  and  have  well  perceived,  it  was  not  an  arm 
of  flesh  that  they  must  resist ;  yet  they  gather  their  forces,  and 
say,  "  Tush,  we  shall  speed  better."  It  is  madness  in  a  man,  not 
to  be  warned,  but  to  run  upon  the  point  of  those  judgments,  where- 
with he  sees  others  miscarry,  and  not  to  believe,  till  he  cannot  re- 
cover. Our  assent  is  purchased  too  late,  when  we  have  overstay- 
ed prevention  ;  and  trust  to  that  experience  which  we  cannot  live 
to  redeem. 

Only  the  Hivites  are  wiser  than  their  fellows,  and  will  rather 
yield  and  live.  Their  intelligence  was  not  diverse  from  the  rest : 
all  had  equally  heard  of  the  miraculous  conduct,  and  success  of 
Israel  ;  but  their  resolution  was  diverse.  As  Rahab  saved  her  fa- 
mily in  the  midst  of  Jericho,  so  these  four  cities  preserved  them- 
selves in  the  midst  of'  Canaan  ;  and  both  of  them,  by  believing 
what  God  would  do.  The  efficacy  of  God's  marvellous  works  is 
not  in  the  acts  themselves,  but  in  our  apprehension :  some  are 
overcome  with  those  motives,  which  others  have  contemned  for 
weak . 

Had  these  Gibeonites  joined  with  the  forces  of  all  their  neigh- 
bours, they  had  perished  in  their  common  slaughter;  if  they  had 
not  gone  a  way  by  themselves,  death  bad  met  them  :  it,  may  have 
more  pleasure,  it  cannot  have  so  much  safety-,  to  follow  tiie  multi- 
tude. If  examples  may  lead  us,  the  greatest  part  shuts  out  God 
upon  earth;  and  is  excluded  from  God  elsewhere.    Some  lew  poor 


172 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


Hivites  3Tield  to  the  Church  of  God,  and  escape  the  condemnation 
of  the  world.  It  is  very  like  their  neighbours  flouted  at  this  base 
submission  of  the  Gibeonites,  and  out  of  their  terms  of  honour, 
scorned  to  beg  life  of  an  enemy,  while  they  were  out  of  the  com- 
pass of  mercy ;  but  when  the  bodies  of  these  proud  Jebusites  and 
Perizzites  lay  strewed  upon  the  earth,  and  the  Gibeonites  survived, 
whether  was  more  worthy  of  scorn  and  insult  ? 

If  the  Gibeonites  had  stayed  till  Israel  had  besieged  their  cities, 
their  yielding  had  been  fruitless  ;  now  they  make  an  early  peace, 
and  are  preserved.  There  is  no  wisdom  in  staying  till  a  judgment 
come  home  to  us :  the  only  way  to  avoid  it,  is  to  meet  it  half  way. 
There  is  the  same  remedy  of  war,  and  of  danger :  to  provoke  an 
enemy  in  his  own  borders,  is  the  best  stay  of  invasion  ;  and  to  so- 
licit God  betimes  in  a  manifest  danger,  is  the  best  antidote  for 
death. 

I  commend  their  wisdom,  in  seeking  peace;  I  do  not  commend 
their  falshood,  in  the  manner  of  seeking  it.  Who  can  look  for  any 
better  of  Pagans  ?  But  as  the  faith  of  Rahab  is  so  rewarded  that 
her  lie  is  not  punished,  so  the  fraud  of  these  Gibeonites  is  not  an 
equal  match  of  their  belief,  since  the  name  of  the  Lord  God  of 
Israel  brought  them  to  this  suit  of  peace. 

Nothing  is  found  fitter  to  deceive  God's  people,  than  a  counter- 
feit copy  of  age :  here  are  old  sacks,  old  bottles,  old  shoes,  old 
garments,  old  bread.  The  Israelites,  that  had  worn  one  suit  forty 
years,  seemed  new  clad  in  comparison  pf  them.  It  is  no  new  po- 
licy, that  Satan  would  beguile  us  with  a  vain  colour  of  antiquity, 
clothing  falshood  in  ra^s.  Errors  are  never  the  older  for  their 
patching :  corruption  can  do  the  same  that  time  would  do :  we 
may  make  age,  as  well  as  sufler  it.  These  Gibeonites  did  tear  their 
bottles,  and  shoes,  and  clothes,  and  made  them  naught,  that  they 
might  seem  old  :  so  do  the  false  patrons  of  new  errors.  If  we  be 
caught  with  this  Gibeonitish  stratagem,  it  is  a  sign  we  have  not 
consulted  with  God. 

The  sentence  of  death  was  gone  out  against  all  the  inhabitants 
of  Canaan.  These  Hivites  acknowledge  the  truth  and  judgments 
of  God,  and  yet  seek  to  escape  by  a  league  with  Israel.  The  ge- 
neral denunciations  of  the  vengeance  of  God  enwrap  all  sinners ; 
yet  may  we  not  despair  of  mercy.  If  the  secret  counsel  of  the 
Almighty  had  not  designed  these  men  to  life,  Joshua  could  not 
have  been  deceived  with  their  league.  In  the  generality  there  is 
no  hope.  Let  us  come  in  old  rags  of  our  vileness  to  the  true  Joshua, 
and  make  our  truce  with  him  ;  we  may  live,  yea,  we  shall  live. 

Some  of  the  Israelites  suspect  the  fraud  ;  and,  notwithstanding 
all  their  old  garments  and  provisions,  can  say,  //  may  be  thou 
d:rellest  amongst  us  :  if  Joshua  had  continued  this  doubt,  the  Gi- 
beonites had  torn  their  bottles  in  A^ain.  In  cases  and  persons  un- 
known, it  is  safe  not  to  be  too  credulous  :  charity  itself  will  allow 
suspicion,  where  we  have  seen  no  cause  to  trust. 

If  these  Hivites  had  not  put  on  new  faces  with  their  old  clothes, 
they  had  surely  changed  countenance,  when  they  heard  this  argu- 


OF  THE  GIBEONITES.  175 

ment  of  the  Israelites,  It  may  be  thou  dwellest  amongst  us ;  how 
then  can  I  make  a  league  with  thee  ?  They  had  perhaps  hoped 
their  submission  would  not  have  been  refused,  wheresoever  they 
had  dwelt;  but,  lest  their  neighbourhood  might  be  a  prejudice, 
- '  they  come  disguised  ;  and  now  hear,  that  their  nearness  of  abode 
was  an  irremoveable  bar  of  peace.  It  was  quarrel  enough,  that 
'  they  were  Canaanites  :  God  had  forbidden  both  the  league  and  the 
life  of  the  native  inhabitants.  He,  that  calls  himself  the  God  of 
Peace,  proclaims  himself  the  God  of  Hosts  ;  and  not  to  fight  where 
he  hath  commanded,  is  to  break  the  peace  with  God,  while  we 
nourish  it  with  men.  Contention  with  brethren  is  not  more  hateful 
to  him,  than  leagues  with  idolaters.  The  condition  that  he  hath 
set  to  our  peace,  is  our  possibility  and  power.  That  falls  not 
within  the  possibility  of  our  power,  which  we  cannot  do  lawfully. 

What  a  smooth  tale  did  these  Gibeonites  tell  for  themselves,  of 
the  remoteness  of  their  country,  the  motives  of  their  journey,  the 
consultation  of  their  elders,  the  ageing  of  their  provisions  by  the 
way  !  that  it  might  seem  not  only  safe,  but  deserved  on  their  parts, 
that  they  should  be  admitted  to  a  peace,  so  far  sought  and  pur- 
chased with  so  much  toil  and  importunity.  Their  clothes  and  their 
tongues  agreed  together,  and  both  disagree  from  the  truth.  De- 
ceit is  ever  lightly  wrapped  up  in  plausibility  of  words  ;  as  fair 
faces  oftentimes  hide  much  unchastity.  But  this  guile  sped  the 
better,  because  it  was  clad  with  much  plainness ;  for  who  would 
have  suspected,  that  clouted  shoes  and  ragged  coats  could  have 
covered  so  much  subtlety  ?  The  case  seemed  so  clear,  that  the  Is- 
raelites thought  it  needless  to  consult  with  the  mouth  of  the  Lord. 
Their  own  eyes  and  ears  were  called  only  to  council ;  and  now 
their  credulity  hath  drawn  them  into  inconvenience. 

There  is  no  way  to  convince  the  Gibeonitish  pretences  of  anti- 
quity, but  to  have  recourse  to  the  oracle  of  God.  Had  this  been 
advised  with,  none  of  these  false  rags  had  shamed  the  Church  of 
God:  whether  in  our  practice  or  judgment,  this  direction  cannot 
fail  us  ;  whereas  what  we  take  upon  the  words  of  men,  proves  ever 
either  light  or  false  wares. 

The  facility  of  Israel  had  led  them  into  a  league,  to  an  oath,  for 
the  safety  of  the  Gibeonites  ;  and  now,  within  three  days,  they  find 
both  their  neighbourhood  and  deceit.  Those  old  shoes  of  theirs 
would  easily  hold  to  carry  them  back  to  their  home.  The  march 
of  a  great  army  is  easy  ;  yet  within  three  days  the  Israelites  were 
before  their  cities.  Joshua  might  now  have  taken  advantage  of 
their  own  words  to  dissolve  his  league,  and  have  said,  "  Ye  are 
come  from  a  far  country  ;  these  cities  are  near ;  these  are  not 
therefore  the  people,  to  whom  we  are  engaged  by  our  promise  and 
oath  :  and  if  these  cities  be  yours,  yet  ye  are  not  yourselves.  Ere- 
while,  ye  were  strangers,  now  you  are  Hivites  born,  and  dwelling 
in  the  midst  of  Canaan  ;  we  will  therefore  destroy  these  cities  near 
hand,  and  do  you  save  your  people  afar  off."  It  would  seein  very 
questionable,  whether  Joshua  needed  to  hold  himself  bound  to  this 
oath ;  for  fraudulent  conventions  oblige  not,  and  Israel  had  put  in 


174 


CONTEMPLATION?. 


a  direct  caveat  of  their  vicinity  ;  yet  dare  not  Joshua  and  thi? 
princes  trust  to  shifts  for  the  eluding  their  oath,  but  must  faith- 
fullv  perform  what  they  have  rashly  promised. 

Joshua's  heart  was  clear  from  any  intention  of  a  league  with  a 
Canaanite,  when  he  gave  his  oath  to  these  disguised  strangers ; 
yet  he  durst  neither  repeal  it  himself,  neither  do  I  hear  him  sue  to 
Kleazar  the  High  Priest  to  dispense  with  it,  but  takes  himself  tied 
to  the  very  strict  words  of  his  oath,  not  to  his  own  purpose.  His 
tongue  had  bound  his  heart  and  hands,  so  as  neither  might  stir ; 
lest  while  he  was  curious  of  fulfilling  the  will  of  God,  he  should 
violate  the  oath  of  God.  And  if  the  Gibconites  had  not  known 
these  holv  bonds  indissoluble,  the}-  neither  had  been  so  importunate 
to  obtain  their  vow,  nor  durst  they  have  trusted  it  being  obtained. 
If  either  dispensation  with  oaths,  or  equivocation  in  oaths,  had  been 
known  in  the  world,  or  at  least  approved,  these  Gibeonites  had  not 
lived,  and  Israel  had  slam  them  without  sin  :  either  Israel  wanted 
skill,  or  our  reservers  honesty. 

The  multitude  of  Israel,  when  they  came  to  the  walls  of  these 
four  exempted  cities,  itched  to  be  at  the  spoil.  Not  out  of  a  de- 
sire to  fulfil  God's  commandment,  but  to  enrich  themselves,  would 
they  have  fallen  upon  these  Hivites.  They  thought  all  lost  that 
fell  beside  their  fingers.  The  wealthy  citv  of  Jericho  was  first 
altogether  interdicted  them  :  the  walls  and  houses  either  fell,  or 
must  be  burnt ;  the  men  and  cattle  killed  ;  the  goods  and  treasure 
confiscate  to  God.  Achan's  booty  shews  that  city  was  both  rich 
and  proud  ;  yet  Israel  might  be  no  whit  the  better  for  them,  car- 
rying away  nothing  but  empty  victory  :  and  now  four  other  cities 
must  be  exempted  from  their  pillage.  Many  an  envious  look  did 
Israel  therefore  cast  upon  these  walls,  and  many  bitter  words  did 
they  cast  out  against  their  princes,  the  enemies  of  their  gain ; 
whether  for  swearing,  or  for  tliat  they  would  not  forswear:  but 
howsoever,  the  princes  might  have  said  in  a  return  to  their  fraud, 
"  We  swore  indeed  to  vou,  but  not  the  people  ;"  yet,  if  any  Is- 
raelite had  but  pulled  down  one  stone  from  their  walls,  or  shed  one 
drop  of  Gibecnitish  blood,  he  had  no  less  plagued  all  Israel  for 
pcrjurv,  than  Achan  had  before  plagued  them  for  sacrilege.  The 
sequel  shews  how  God  would  have  taken  it ;  for  when,  three  hun- 
dred years  after,  Saul,  perhaps  forgetting  the  vowr  of  his  forefathers, 
slew  some  of  these  Gibeonites,  although  out  of  a  well-meant  zeal, 
all  Israel  smarted  for  the  fact  with  a  three  years'  famine,  and  tliat 
in  David's  reign,  who  received  this  oracle  from  God,  It  is  for  Saul, 
and  for  his  bloody  house,  because  he  slew  the  Gibeonites.  Neither 
could  this  wrong  be  expiated,  but  by  the  blood  of  Saul's  seven 
sons,  hanged  up  at  the  very  court-gates  of  their  father. 

Joshua  and  the  princes  had  promised  them  life  ;  they  promised 
them  not  liberty  :  no  covenant  was  past  against  their  servitude. 
It  was  just  therefore  with  the  rulers  of  Israel,  to  make  slavery  the 
price  both  of  their  lives  and  their  deceit.  The  Israelites  had  them- 
selves been  druJges,  if  the  Gibeonites  had  not  beguiled  them,  and 
lived.    The  oi  l  rags  therefore  wherewith  they  came  disguised, 


OF  THE  GIBEONITES. 


175 


must  now  be  their  best  suits ;  and  their  life  must  be  toilsomely 
spent  in  hewing  of  wood,  and  drawing  of  water  for  all  Israel. 
How  dear  is  life  to  our  nature,  that  men  can  be  content  to  pur- 
chase it  with  servitude  !  It  is  the  wisdom  of  God's  children,  to  make 
good  use  of  their  oversights.  The  rash  oath  of  Israel  proves  their 
advantage  :  even  wicked  men  gain  by  the  outside  of  good  actions  : 
good  men  make  a  benefit  of  their  sins.  Jos.  ix. 


CONTEMPLATIONS 

BOOK  IX. 


TO  THE  RIGHT  HONOURABLE,  MY  SINGULAR  GOOD  LORD, 

SIR  THOMAS  EGERTON,  KNIGHT, 

LORD  ELLESMERE, 
LORD  CHANCELLOR  OF  ENGLAND, 
CHANCELLOR  OF  THE  UNIVERSITY  OF  OXFORD, 
THE    SINCERE    AND    GRAVE    ORACLE    OF  EQUITY, 
THE  GREAT  AND  SURE  FRIEND  OF  THE  CHURCH, 
THE  SANCTUARY  OF  THE  CLERGY, 
THE  BOUNTIFUL  ENCOURAGER  OF  LEARNING  J 
/.  //. 

WITH  THANKFUL  ACKNOWLEDGMENT  OF  GOD's  BLESSING  UPON  THIS 
STATE,  IN  SO  WORTHY  AN  INSTRUMENT, 
AND  HUMBLE  PRAYERS  FOR  HIS  HAPPY  CONTINUANCE, 
DEDICATES  THIS  POOR  AND  UNWORTHY  PART  OF  HIS  LABOURS. 


THE  RESCUE  OF  GIBEON. 

The  life  of  the  Gibeonites  must  cost  them  servitude  from  Israel, 
and  dangers  from  their  neighbours,  if  Joshua  will  but  sit  still,  the 
deceit  of  the  Gibeonites  shall  be  revenged  by  his  enemies.  Five 
kings  are  up  in  arms  against  them,  and  are  ready  to  pay  their 
fraud  with  violence.  What  should  these  poor  men  do  ?  If  they 
make  not  their  peace,  they  die  by  strangers;  if '  they  do  make 
their  peace  with  foreigners,  they  must  die  by  neighbours.  There 
is  no  course  that  threatens  not  some  danger :  we  have  sped  well, 
if  our  choice  hath  lighted  upon  the  easiest  inconvenience. 

If  these  Hivites  have  sinned  against  God,  against  Israel ;  yet 
what  have  they  done  to  their  neighbours  ?  I  hear  of  no  treachery, 
no  secret  information,  no  attempt.  I  see  no  sin  but  their  league 
with  Israel,  and  their  life :  yet,  for  aught  we  find,  they  were  free- 
men ;  no  way  either  obliged,  or  obnoxious.  As  Satan,  so  wicked 
men,  cannot  abide  to  lose  any  of  their  community  :  if  a  convert 
come  home,  the  angels  welcome  him  with  songs,  the  devils  follow 
him  with  uproar  and  fury,  his  old  partners  with  scorn  and  obloquy. 


THE  RESCUE  OF  GIBEON. 


177 


I  find  these  neighbour  princes  half  dead  with  fear,  and  yet  they 
can  find  time  to  be  sick  of  envy.  Malice  in  a  wicked  heart  is  the 
king  of  passions  ;  all  other  vail  and  bow  when  it  comes  in  place  ; 
even  their  own  life  was  not  so  dear  to  them  as  revenge.  Who 
would  not  rather  have  looked,  that  these  kings  should  have  tried 
to  have  followed  the  copy  of  this  league  ?  Or  if  their  fingers  did 
itch  to  fight,  why  did  they  not  rather  think  of  a  defensive  war 
against  Israel,  than  an  offensive  against  the  Gibeonites  ?  Gibeon 
was  strong,  and  would  not  be  won  without  blood  ;  yet  these  Amo- 
rites,  which  at  their  best  were  too  weak  for  Israel,  would  spend 
their  forces  before-hand  on  their  neighbours.  Here  was  a  strong 
hatred  in  weak  breasts  :  they  feared,  and  yet  began  to  fight ;  they 
feared  Israel,  yet  began  to  fight  with  Gibeon.  If  they  had  sat 
still,  their  destruction  had  not  been  so  sudden :  the  malice  of  the 
wicked  hastens  the  pace  of  their  own  judgment.  No  i-od  is  so  fit 
for  a  mischievous  man  as  his  own. 

Gibeon,  and  these  other  cities  of  the  Hivites,  had  no  king  ;  and 
none  yielded  and  escaped,  but  they.  Their  elders  consulted  be- 
fore for  their  league ;  neither  is  there  any  challenge  sent  to  the 
king,  but  to  the  city :  and  now  these  five  kings  of  the  Amorites 
have  unjustly  compacted  against  them.  Sovereignty  abused  is  a 
great  spur  to  courage  :  the  conceit  of  authority  in  great  persons 
many  times  lies  in  the  way  of  their  own  safety,  while  it  will  not  let 
them  stoop  to  the  ordinary  courses  of  inferiors.  Hence  it  is,  that 
heaven  is  peopled  with  so  few  great-ones :  hence  it  is,  that  true 
contentment  seldom  dwells  high ;  while  meaner  men  of  humble 
spirits  enjoy  both  earth  and  heaven. 

The  Gibeonites  had  well  proved,  that  though  they  wanted  a 
head,  yet  they  wanted  not  wit ;  and  now  the  same  wit,  that  won 
Joshua  and  Israel  to  their  friendship  and  protection,  teacheth  them 
to  make  use  of  those  they  had  won.  If  they  had  not  more  trusted 
Joshua  than  their  walls,  they  had  never  stolen  that  league;  and 
when  should  they  have  use  of  their  new  protectors,  but  now  that 
they  were  assailed?  Whither  should  we  fly,  but  to  our  Joshua, 
when  the  powers  of  darkness,  like  mighty  Amorites,  have  besieged 
us  ?  If  ever  we  will  send  up  our  prayers  to  him,  it  will  be  when 
we  are  beleagured  with  evils.  If  we  trust  to  our  own  resistance, 
we  cannot  stand  ;  we  cannot  miscarry,  if  we  trust  to  his  :  in  vain 
shall  we  send  to  our  Joshua  in  these  straits,  if  we  have  not  before 
come  to  him  in  our  freedom. 

Which  of  us  would  not  have  thought  Joshua  had  a  good  pre- 
tence for  his  forbearance,  and  have  said,  "  You  have  stolen  your 
league  with  me :  why  do  you  expect  help  from  him  whom  ye  have 
deceived  ?  All  that  we  promised  you  was  a  sufferance  to  live :  en- 
joy what  we  promised  ;  we  will  not  take  your  life  from  you.  Hath 
our  faithfulness  deserved  to  expect  more  than  our  covenant? 
Ve  never  promised  to  hazard  our  lives  for  you  ;  to  give  you  life 
with  the  loss  of  our  own."  But  that  good  man  durst  not  construe 
his  own  covenant  to  such  an  advantage  :  he  knew  little  difference 
betwixt  killing  them  with  hi?  own  sword,  and  the  sword  of  an  Amo- 


178 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


rite :  whosoever  should  give  the  blow,  the  murder  Would  be  his. 
Even  permission  in  those  things  we  may  remedy,  makes  us  no  less 
actors  than  consent :  some  men  kill  as  much  by  looking  on,  as 
others  by  smiting.    We  are  guilty  of  all  the  evil  we  might  have  ' 
hindered. 

The  noble  disposition  of  Joshua,  besides  his  engagement,  will 
not  let  him  forsake  his  new  vassals.  Their  confidence  in  him  is 
argument  enough  to  draw  him  into  the  field.  The  greatest  obliga- 
tion to  a  good  mind,  is  another's  trust;  which  to  disappoint  were 
mercilessly  perfidiows.  How  much  less  shall  our  true  Joshua  fail 
the  confidence  of  our  faith !  O  my  Saviour,  if  we  send  the  mes- 
sengers of  our  prayers  to  thee  into  thy  Gilgal,  thy  mercy  binds 
thee  to  relief :  never  any  soul  miscarried  that  trusted  thee :  we 
may  be  wanting  in  our  trust ;  our  trust  can  never  want  success. 

Speed  in  bestowing  doubles  a  gift :  a  benefit  deferred  loses  the 
thanks,  and  proves  unprofitable.  Joshua  marches  all  night,  and 
fights  all  day  for  the  Gibeonites :  they  took  not  so  much  pains  in 
coming  to  deceive  him,  as  he  in  going  to  deliver  them.  It  is  the 
noblest  victory  to  overcome  evil  with  good.  If  his  very  Israelites 
had  been  in  danger,  he  could  have  done  no  more :  God  and  his 
Joshua  make  no  difference,  betwixt  Gibeonites  Israelited  and  his 
own  natural  people.  All  are  Israelites  whom  he  hath  taken  to  league. 
We,  strangers  of  the  Gentiles,  are  now  the  true  Jews :  God  never 
did  more  for  the  natural  olive,  than  for  that  wild  imp  which  he 
hath  grafted  in.  And  as  these  Hivites  could  never  be  thankful 
enough  to  such  a  Joshua,  no  more  can  we  to  so  gracious  a  Re- 
deemer ;  who,  forgetting  our  unworthiness,  descended  to  our  Gi- 
beon,  and  rescued  us  from  the  powers  of  hell  and  death. 

Joshua  fought,  but  God  discomfited  the  Amorites.  The  praise 
is  to  the  workman,  not  the  instrument.  Neither  did  God  slay 
them  only  with  Joshua's  sword,  but  with  his  own  hail-stones;  that 
now  the  Amorites  may  see  both  these  revenges  come  from  one 
hand.  These  bullets  of  God  do  not  wound,  but  kill.  It  is  no 
wonder  that  these  five  kings  fly :  they  may  soon  run  away  from 
their  hope ;  never  from  their  horror.  If  they  look  behind,  there 
is  the  sword  of  Israel,  which  they  dare  not  turn  upon,  because 
God  had  taken  their  heart  from  them  before  their  life :  if  they 
look  upwards,  there  is  the  hail-shot  of  God  fighting  against  them 
out  of  heaven,  which  they  can  neither  resist  nor  avoid. 

If  they  had  no  enemy  but  Israel,  they  might  hope  to  run  away 
from  death,  since  fear  is  a  better  footman  than  desire  of  revenge ; 
but  now  whithersoever  they  run,  heaven  will  be  about  their  heads: 
and  now,  all  the  reason  that  is  left  them  in  this  confusion  of  their 
thoughts,  is  to  wish  themselves  well  dead :  there  is  no  evasion, 
where  God  intends  a  revenge.  We  men  have  devised  to  imitate 
these  instruments  of  death,  and  send  forth  deadly  bullets  out  of  a 
cloud  of  smoke,  wherein  yet  as  there  is  much  danger,  so  much  un- 
certainty ;  but  this  God,  that  discharges  his  ordnance  from  heaven, 
directs  every  shot  to  a  head,  and  can  as  easily  kill  as  shoot.  is 
a- fearful  thing  t  to  fall  into  the  hands  of  the  living  God:  he  hatb 


THE  RESCUE  OF  GIBEON.  179 

more  ways  of  vengeance  than  he  hath  creatures.  The  same  hea- 
ven, that  sent  forth  water  to  the  old  world,  fire  to  the  Sodomites, 
lightning  and  thunderbolts  to  the  Egyptians,  sends  out  hail-stones 
to  the  Amorites.  It  is  a  good  care  how  we  may  not  anger  God : 
it  is  a  vain  study  how  we  may  fly  from  his  judgments,  when  we 
have  angered  him  ;  if  we  could  run  out  of  the  world,  even  there 
shall  we  find  his  revenges  far  greater. 

Was  it  not  miracle  enough  that  God  did  brain  their  adversaries 
from  heaven,  but  that  the  sun  and  moon  must  stand  still  in  heaven  ? 
It  is  not  enough  that  the  Amoiites  fly,  but  that  the  greatest  planets 
of  heaven  must  stay  their  own  course,  to  witness  and  wonder  at  the 
discomfiture.  For.  him  which  gave  them  both  being  and  motion 
to  bid  them  stand  still,  it  seems  no  difficulty,  although  the  rareness 
would  deserve  admiration  ;  but  for  a  man  to  command  the  chief 
stars  of  heaven,  by  whose  influence  he  liveth,  as  the  Centurion 
would  do  his  servant,  Sun,  stay  in  Gibeon,  and  moon,  stand  still  in 
jijalon,  it  is  more  than  a  wonder.  It  was  not  Joshua,  but  his  faith 
that  did  this  ;  not  by  way  of  precept,  but  of  prayer  ;  if  I  may  not 
say,  that  the  request  of  a  faithful  man  (as  we  say  of  the  great) 
commands.  God's  glory  was  that  which  Joshua  aimed  at :  he 
knew  that  all  the  world  must  needs  be  witnesses  of  that,  which  the 
eye  of  the  world  stood  still  to  see.  Had  he  respected  but  the 
slaughter  of  the  Amorites,  he  knew  the  hail-stones  could  do  that 
alone :  the  sun  needed  not  stand  still  to  direct  that  cloud  to  perse- 
cute them ;  but  the  glory  of  the  slaughter  was  sought  by  Joshua, 
that  he  might  send  that  up,  whence  those  hail-stones  and  that  vic- 
tory came.  All  the  earth  might  see  the  sun  and  moon  ;  all  could 
not  see  the  cloud  of  hail,  which  because  of  that  heavy  burthen 
flew  but  low.  That  all  nations  might  know,  the  same  hand  com- 
mands both  in  earth,  in  the  clouds,  in  heaven,  Joshua  now  prays, 
that  he,  which  disheartened  his  enemies  upon  earth,  and  smote 
them  from  the  cloud,  would  stay  the  sun  and  moon  in  heaven.  God 
never  got  himself  so  much  honour  by  one  day's  work  amongst  the 
heathen ;  and  when  was  it  more  fit  than  now,  when  five  heathen 
kings  are  banded  against  him  ? 

The  sun  and  the  moon  were  the  ordinary  gods  of  the  world; 
and  who  would  not  but  think,  that  their  standing  still  but  one 
hour  should  be  the  ruin  of  nature  ?  And  now  all  nations  shall 
well  see,  that  there  is  a  higher  than  their  highest ;  that  their  gods 
are  but  servants  to  the  God  whom  themselves  should  serve,  at 
whose  pleasure  both  they  and  nature  shall  stand  at  once.  If  that 
God  which  meant  to  work  this  miracle  had  not  raised  up  his 
thoughts  to  desire  it,  it  had  been  a  blameable  presumption,  which 
now  is  a  faith  worthy  of  admiration.  To  desire  a  miracle  without 
cause  is  a  tempting  of  God.  O  powerful  God  that  can  effect 
this  !  O  power  of  faith  that  can  obtain  it !  What  is  there  that 
God  cannot  do  ?  And  what  is  there  which  God  can  do,  that  faith 
cannot  do  ?  Joshua  x. 


180 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


THE  ALTAR  OF  THE  REUBENITES. 
Reuben  and  Gad  were  the  first  that  had  an  inheritance  assigned 
them  ;  yet  they  must  enjoy  it  last :  so  it  falls  out  often  in  the  hea- 
venly Canaan  ;  the  first  in  title  are  last  in  possession.  They  had 
their  lot  assigned  them  beyond  Jordan  ;  which,  though  it  were  al- 
lotted them  in  peace,  must  be  purchased  with  their  war:  that  must 
be  done  for  their  brethren,  which  needed  not  be  done  for  them- 
selves :  they  must  yet  still  fight,  and  fight  foremost ;  that,  as  they 
had  the  first  patrimony,  they  might  endure  the  first  encounter. 

I  do  not  hear  them  say,  "  This  is  our  share;  let  us  sit  down, 
and  enjoy  it  quietly  ;  fight  who  will  for  the  rest:"  but  when  they 
knew  their  own  portion,  they  leave  wives  and  children  to  take  pos- 
session, and  march  armed  before  their  brethren,  till  they  had  con- 
quered all  Canaan. 

Whether  should  we  more  commend,  their  courage,  or  their  cha- 
rity ?  Others  were  moved  to  fight  with  hope  ;  they  only  with  love : 
they  could  not  win  more,  they  might  lose  themselves  ;  yet  they  will 
fight,  both  for  that  they  had  something,  and  that  their  brethren 
might  have.  Thankfulness  and  love  can  do  more  with  God's  chil- 
dren, than  desire  to  merit,  or  necessity  :  no  true  Israelite  can,  if  he 
might  choose,  abide  to  sit  still  beyond  Jordan,  when  all  his  brethren 
are  in  the  field. 

Now,  when  all  this  war  of  God  was  ended,  and  all  Canaan  is  both 
won  and  divided,  they  return  to  their  own  ;  yet  not  till  they  were 
dismissed  by  Joshua:  all  the  sweet  attractives  of  their  private  love 
cannot  hasten  their  peace.  If  heaven  be  never  so  sweet  to  us,  yet 
may  we  not  run  from  this  earthly  warfare,  till  our  great  captain 
shall  please  to  discharge  us.  If  these  Reubenites  had  departed 
sooner,  they  had  been  recalled,  if  not  as  cowards,  surely  as  fugi- 
tives ;  now,  they  are  sent  back  with  victory  and  blessing.  How 
safe  and  happy  it  is,  to  attend  both  the  call  and  the  dispatch  of  God ! 

Being  returned  in  peace  to  their  home,  their  first  care  is,  not 
for  trophies,  nor  for  houses,  but  for  an  altar  to  God  ;  an  altar,  not 
for  sacrifice,  which  had  been  abominable,  but  for  a  memorial  what 
God  they  serve.  The  first  care  of  true  Israelites  must  be  the  safety 
of  religion :  the  world,  as  it  is  inferior  in  worth,  so  must  it  be  in 
respect:  he  never  knew  God  aright,  that  can  abide  any  competi- 
tion with  his  Maker. 

The  rest  of  the  tribes  no  sooner  hear  news  of  their  new  al- 
tar, but  they  gather  to  Shiloh  to  fight  against  them:  they  had 
scarce  breathing  from  the  Canaauitish  war,  and  now  they  will  go 
fight  with  their  brethren  :  if  their  brethren  will,  as  they  suspected, 
turn  idolaters,  they  cannot  hold  them  any  other  than  Canaanitcs. 
The  Reubenites  and  their  fellows  had  newly  settled  the  rest  of  Is- 
rael in  their  possessions;  and  now  ere  they  can  be  warm  in  their 
.seats,  Israel  is  up  in  arms  to  thrust  them  out  of  their  own.  The 
hatred  of  their  suspected  idolatry,  makes  them  forget  either  their 
blood,  or  their  benefits.  Israel  says,  "  These  men  were  the. 
first  in  our  battles,  and  shall  be  the  first  in  our  revenge :  they 


THE  ALTAR  OF  THE  REUBENITES.  181 

fought  well  for  us  ;  we  will  try  how  they  can  fight  for  themselves. 
What  if  they  were  our  champions  !  Their  revolt  from  God  hath 
lost  them  the  thank  of  their  former  labours :  their  idolatry  shall 
make  them  of  brethren,  adversaries  ;  their  own  blood  shall  give 
handsel  to  their  new  altar."  O  noble  and  religious  zeal  of  Israel  ! 
Who  would  think  these  men  the  sons  of  them,  that  danced  about  the 
molten  calf?  that  consecrated  an  altar  to  that  idol?  Now  they  are 
ready  to  die  or  kill,  rather  than  endure  an  altar  without  an  idol. 
Every  overture  in  matter  of  religion  is  worthy  of  suspicion,  wor- 
thy of  our  speedy  opposition.  God  looks  for  an  early  redress  of 
the  first  beginnings  of  impiety.  As  in  treasons  or  mutinies,  wise 
statesmen  find  it  safest  to  kill  the  serpent  in  the  egg  ;  so  in  motions 
of  spiritual  alterations,  one  spoonful  of  water  will  quench  that  fire 
at  the  first,  which  afterwards  whole  buckets  cannot  abate. 

Yet  do  not  these  zealous  Isi-aelites  run  rashly  and  furiously  upon 
their  brethren;  nor  sav,  "  What  need  we  expostulate?  The  tact 
is  clear  :  what  care  we  for  words,  when  we  see  their  altar  ?  What 
can  this  mean,  but  either  service  to  a  false  god,  or  division  in  the 
service  of  the  true  ?  There  can  be  no  excuse  for  so  manifest  a 
crime :  why  do  we  not  rather  think  of  punishment,  than  satisfac- 
tion ?"  But  they  send  ere  they  go,  and  consult  ere  they  execute. 
Phineas  the  son  of  Eleazar  the  priest,  and  ten  princes,  for  every 
tribe  one,  arc  addressed  both  to  inquire  and  dissuade  ;  to  inquire 
of  the  purpose  of  the  fact ;  to  dissuade  from  that  which  they 
imagined  was  purposed.  Wisdom  is  a  good  guide  to  zeal,  and 
only  can  keep  it  from  running  out  into  fury.  If  discretion  do  not 
hold  in  the  reins,  good  intentions  will  both  break  their  own  necks 
and  the  riders'  ;  yea,  which  is  strange,  without  this,  the  zeal  of 
God  may  lead  us  from  God. 

Not  only  wisdom  but  charity  moved  them  to  this  message ;  for, 
grant  tfiey  had  been  guilty,  must  they  perish  unwarned  ?  Peace- 
able means  must  first  be  used  to  recal  them,  ere  violence  be  sent  to 
persecute  them.  The  old  rule  of  Israel  hath  been  still  to  inquire 
of  Abel.  No  good  shepherd  sends  his  dog  to  pull  out  the  throat  of 
his  strayed  sheep,  but  rather  fetches  it  on  his  shoulders  to  the  fold, 
Sudden  cruelty  stands  not  with  religion:  he  which  will  not*  himself 
break  the  bruised  reed,  how  will  he  allow  us,  either  to  bruise  the 
whole,  or  to  break  the  bruised,  ov  to  burn  the  broken  ? 

Neither  yet  was  here  more  charity  in  sending,  than  uncharita- 
bleness  in  the  misconstruction.  They  begin  with  a  challenge ; 
and  charge  their  brethren  deeply  with  transgression,  apostacy,  re- 
bellion. I  know  not  how  two  contrary  qualities  fall  into  love  :  it  is 
not  naturally  suspicious,  and  yet  many  times  suggests  jealous  fears 
of  those  we  affect.  If  these  Israelites  had  not  loved  their  brethren, 
they  would  never  have  sent  so  far  to  restrain  them  ;  they  had  never 
offered  them  part  of  their  own  patrimony  :  if  they  had  not  been 
excessively  jealous,  they  had  not  censured  a  doubtful  action  so 
sharply.  They  met  at  Sbiloh,  where  the  tabernacle  was  ;  but  if 
they  had  consulted  with  the  ark  of  God,  they  had  saved  both  this 
labour  and  this  challenge.    This  ca<e  seemed  so  plain,  that  they 


132  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

thought  advice  needless ;  their  inconsiderateness  therefore  brands 
their  brethren  with  crimes  whereof  they  were  innocent,  and  makes 
themselves  the  only  offenders.  In  cases  which  are  doubtful  and 
uncertain,  it  is  safe  either  to  suspend  the  judgment,  or  to  pass  it  in 
favour  ;  otherwise,  a  plain  breach  of  charity  in  us  shall  be  worse 
than  a  questionable  breach  of  justice  in  another. 

Yet  this  little  gleam  of  their  uncharitable  love  began  at  them- 
selves :  if  they  had  not  feared  their  own  judgments  in  the  offence 
of  Reuben,  I  know  not  whether  they  had  been  so  vehement :  the 
fearful  revenges  of  their  bretiiren's  sin  are  still  in  their  eye.  The 
wickedness  of  Peor  stretched  not  so  far  as  the  plague  :  Achan 
sinned,  and  Israel  was  beaten  ;  therefore,  by  just  induction,  they 
argue,  "  Ye  rebel  to-day  against  the  Lord ;  to-morrow  will  the 
Lord  be  wroth  with  all  the  congi'egation."  They  still  tremble  at 
the  vengeance  passed ;  and  find  it  time  to  prevent  then-  own  pu- 
nishment in  punishing  their  brethren.  God's  proceedings  have 
then  their  right  use,  when  they  are  both  carefully  remembered, 
and  made  patterns  of  what  he  may  do. 

Had  these  Reubenites  been  as  hot  in  their  answer,  as  the  Israel- 
ites were  in  their  charge,  here  had  grown  a  bloody  war  out  of  mis- 
prision ;  but  now,  their  answer  is  mild  and  moderate,  and  such  as 
well  shewed,  that  though  they  were  further  from  the  ark,  yet  no 
less  near  to  God.  They  thought  in  themselves,  *f  This  act  of  ours, 
though  it  were  well  meant  by  us,  yet  might  well  be  by  interpreta- 
tion scandalous :  it  is  reason  our  mildness  should  give  satisfaction 
for  that  offence,  which  we  have  not  prevented."  Hereupon  their 
answer  was  as  pleasing,  as  their  act  was  dangerous.  Even  in  those 
actions,  whereby  an  offence  may  be  occasioned,  though  not  given, 
charity  binds  us  to  clear  both  our  own  name  and  the  conscience  of 
Others. 

Little  did  the  Israelites  look  for  so  good  a  ground  of  an  action 
so  suspicious.  An  altar  without  a  sacrifice !  an  altar,  and  no  ta- 
bernacle !  an  altar  without  a  precept,  and  yet  not  against  God  1 
It  is  not  safe  to  measure  all  men's  actions  by  our  own  conceit ;  but 
rather  to  think  there  may  be  a  further  drift  and  warrant  of  their 
act,  than  we  can  attain  to  see. 

By  that  time  the  Reubenites  have  commented  upon  their  own 
work,  it  appears  as  justifiable,  as  before  offensive.  What  wisdom 
and  religion  is  found  in  that  altar,  which  before  shewed  nothing 
but  idolatry  !  This  discourse  of  theirs  is  full  both  of  reason  and 
piety  ;  M  We  are  severed  by  the  river  Jordan  from  the  other  tribes ; 
perhaps,  hereafter,  our  choice  may  exclude  us  from  Israel :  poste- 
rity may  peradventure  say,  '  Jordan  is  the  bounds  of  all  natural 
Israelites  ;  the  streams  whereof  never  gave  way  to  those  beyond 
the  river :  if  they  had  been  ours,  either  in  blood  or  religion,  they 
would  not  have  been  sequestered  in  habitation.  Doubtless  there- 
fore these  men  are  the  offspring  of  some  strangers,  which,  by  vici- 
nity of  abode,  have  gotten  some  tincture  of  our  language,  man- 
ners, religion  ;  what  have  we  to  do  with  them,  what  have  they  to 
do  with  the  tabernacle  of  God  ?'    Since  therefore  we  may  not  ei- 


EHUD  AND  EGLON. 


183 


thcr  remove  God's  altar  to  us,  or  remove  our  patrimony  to  the 
altar,  the  pattern  of  the  altar  shall  go  with  us,  not  for  sacrifice,  but 
for  memorial ;  that  both  the  posterity  of  the  other  Israelites  may 
know  we  are  no  less  derived  from  them  than  this  altar  from  theirs, 
and  that  our  posterity  may  know  they  pertain  to  that  altar  whereof 
this  is  the  resemblance."  There  was  no  danger  of  the  present  ; 
but  posterity  might  both  offer  and  receive  prejudice,  if  this  monu- 
ment were  not.  It  is  a  wise  and  holy  care  to  prevent  the  dangers 
of  ensuing  times,  and  to  settle  religion  upon  the  succeeding  gene- 
rations. As  we  affect  to  leave  a  perpetuity  of  our  bodily  issue,  so 
much  more  to  traduce  piety  with  them.  Do  we  not  see  good  hus- 
bands set  and  plant  those  trees,  whereof  their  grand-children  shall 
receive  the  first  fruit,  and  shade  ?  Why  are  we  less  thrifty  in  leav- 
ing true  religion  entire  to  our  children's  children  ?        Jos.  xxii. 

EHUD  AND  EGLON. 
As  every  man  is  guilty  of  his  own  sorrow,  these  Israelites  bred  mis- 
chief to  themselves.  It  was  their  mercy  that  plagued  them  with 
those  Canaanites,  which  their  obedience  should  have,  rooted  out. 
If  foolish  pity  be  a  more  humane  sin,  yet  it  is  no  less  dangerous 
than  cruelty:  cruelty  kills  others,  unjust  pity  kills  ourselves.  They 
had  been  lords  alone  of  the  promised  land,  if  their  commiseration 
had  not  over-swayed  their  justice  ;  and  now,  their  enemies  are  too 
cruel  to  them,  in  the  just  revenge  of  God,  because  they  were  too 
merciful. 

That  God,  which  in  his  revealed  will  had  commanded  all  the 
Canaanites  to  the  slaughter,  yet  secretly  gives  over  Israel  to  a  to- 
leration of  some  Canaanites  for  their  own  punishment.  He  hath 
bidden  us  cleanse  our  hearts  of  all  our  corruptions;  yet  he  will 
permit  some  of  these  thorns  still  in  our  sides,  for  exercise,  for  hu- 
miliation. If  we  could  lay  violent  hands  upon  our  sins,  our  souls 
should  have  peace  ;  now,  our  indulgence  costs  us  many  stripes  and 
many  tears.  What  a  continued  circle  is  here  of  sins,  judgments, 
repentance,  deliverances  !  The  conversation  with  idolaters  taints 
them  with  sin  ;  their  sin  draws  on  judgment ;  the  smart  of  the 
judgment  moves  them  to  repentance ;  upon  their  repentance  fol- 
lows speedy  deliverance  ;  upon  their  peace  and  deliverance  they 
sin  again. 

Othnicl,  Caleb's  nephew,  had  rescued  them  from  idolatry  and 
servitude  :  his  life  and  their  innocence  and  peace  ended  together. 
How  powerful  the  presence  of  one  good  man  is  in  a  church  or 
state,  is  best  found  in  his  loss.  A  man,  that  is  at  once  eminent  in 
place  and  goodness,  is  like  a  stake  in  a  hedge  ;  pull  that  up,  and 
all  the  rest  are  but  loose  and  rotten  sticks,  easily  removed  :  or  like 
the  pillar  of  a  vaulted  roof,  which  either  supports  or  ruins  the 
building. 

Who  would  not  think  idolatry  an  absurd  and  unnatural  sin  ? 
which,  as  it  hath  the  fewest  inducements,  so  had  also  the  most  di- 
rect inhibitions  from  God  :  and  yet  after  all  these  warnings.  Israel 


184 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


falls  into  it  again :  neither  affliction  nor  repentance  can  secure  an 
Israelite,  from  redoubling  the  worst  sin,  if  he  be  left  to  his  own 
frailty.  It  is  no  censuring  of  the  truth  of  our  present  sorrow,  by 
the  event  of  a  following  miscarriage.  The  former  cries  of  Israel  to 
God  were  unfeigned,  yet  their  present  wickedness  is  abominable  : 
let  him  thai  thinks  he  stands,  take  heed  lest  he  fall. 

No  sooner  had  he  said  Israel  had  rest,  but  he  adds,  They  com~ 
Viitted  wickedness.  The  security  of  any  people  is  the  cause  of 
their  corruption  :  standing  waters  soon  grow  noisome.  While  they 
were  exercised  with  war,  how  scrupulous  were  they  of  the  least 
intimation  of  idolatry  !  the  news  of  a  bare  altar  beyond  Jordan 
drew  them  together  for  a  revenge  :  now  they  are  at  peace  with 
their  enemies,  they  are  at  variance  with  God.  It  is  both  hard  and 
happy,  not  to  be  the  worse  with  liberty.  The  sedentary  life  is 
most  subject  to  diseases. 

Rather  than  Israel  shall  want  a  scourge  for  their  sin,  God  himself 
shall  raise  them  up  an  enemy.  Moab  bad  no  quarrel  but  his  own 
ambition  ;  but  God  meant  by  the  ambition  of  the  one  part,  to  pu- 
nish the  idolatry  of  the  other :  his  justice  can  make  one  sin  the 
executioner  of  another,  whilst  neither  shall  look  for  any  other  mea- 
sure from  him  but  judgment :  the  evil  of  the  city  is  so  his,  that  the 
instrument  is  not  guiltless.  Before,  God  had  stirred  up  the  king 
of  Syria  against  Israel ;  now,  the  king  of  Moab  ;  afterwards,  the 
king  of  Canaan  :  he  hath  more  variety  of  judgments,  than  there 
can  be  offences  :  if  we  have  once  made  him  our  adversary,  he  shall 
be  sure  to  make  us  adversaries  enough  ;  which  shall  revenge  his 
quarrel,  whilst  they  prosecute  their  own. 

Even  those  were  idolaters,  by  whose  hands  God  plagued  the 
idolatries  of  Israel.  In  Moab  the  same  wickedness  prospers,  which 
in  God's  own  people  is  punished  :  the  justice  of  the  Almighty  can 
least  brook  evil  in  his  own  :  the  same  heathen,  which  provoked 
Israel  to  sin,  shall  scourge  them  for  sinning.  Our  very  profession 
hurts  us,  if  we  be  not  innocent. 

No  less  than  eighteen  years  did  the  rod  of  Moab  rest  upon  the 
inheritance  of  God.  Israel  seems  as  born  to  servitude  ;  they  came 
from  their  bondage  in  the  Land  of  Egypt,  to  serve  in  the  Land  of 
Promise.  They  had  neglected  God;  now  they  are  neglected  of 
God.  Their  sins  have  made  them  servants,  whom  the  choice  of 
God  had  made  free,  yea,  his  first-born.  Worthy  are  they  to 
serve  those  men,  whose  false  gods  they  had  served  ;  and  to  serve 
them  always  in  thraldom,  whom  they  have  once  served  in  idolatry. 
We  may  not  measure  the  continuance  of  punishment,  bv  the  time 
of  the  commission  of  sin  :  one  minute's  sin  deserves  a  torment  be- 
yond all  time. 

Doubtless,  Israel  was  not  so  insensible  of  their  own  misery,  as 
not  to  complain  sooner  than  the  end  of  eighteen  years.  The  first 
hour  they  sighed  for  themselves,  but  now  they  cried  unto  God. 
The  very  purpose  of  affliction  is,  to  make  us  importunate  :  he  that 
hears  the  secret  murmurs  of  our  grief,  yet  will  not  seem  to  hear  us, 
till  our  cries  be  loud  and  strong.    God  sees  it  best,  to  let  the  peni- 


EHUD  AND  EGLON,  185 

tent  dwell  for  the  time  under  their  sorrows  :  he  sees  us  sinking  all 
the  while,  yet  he  lets  us  alone,  till  we  be  at  the  bottom  ;  and  when 
once  we  can  say,  Out  of  the  depths  have  I  tried  to  thee,  instantly 
follows,  The  Lord  heard  me.  A  vehement  suitor  cannot  but  be 
heard  of  God,  whatsoever  he  asks.  If  our  prayers  want  success, 
they  want  heart ;  their  blessing  is  according  to  their  vigour.  We 
live  in  bondage  to  these  spiritual  Moabites,  our  own  corruptions: 
it  discontents  us  ;  but  where  are  our  strong  cries  unto  the  God  of 
heaven  ?  Where  are  our  tears  ?  If  we  could  passionately  bemoan 
ourselves  to  him,  how  soon  should  we  be  more  than  conquerors' 
Some  good  motions  we  have  to  send  up  to  him,  but  they  faint  in 
the  way.    We  may  call  long  enough,  if  we  cry  not  to  him. 

The  same  hand,  that  raised  up  Eglon  against  Israel,  raised  up  also 
Ehud  for  Israel  against  Eglon.  When  that  tyrant  had  revenged 
God  of  his  people,  God  will  revenge  his  people  of  him.  It  is  no 
privilege,  to  be  an  instrument  of  God's  vengeance  by  evil  means. 
Though  Eglon  were  an  usurper,  yet  had  Ehud  been  a  traitor,  if 
God  had  not  sent  him  :  it  is  only  in  the  power  of  him  that  makes 
kings,  when  they  are  once  settled,  to  depose  them.  It  is  no  more 
possible  for  our  modern  butchers  of  princes,  to  shew  they  are  em- 
ployed by  God,  than  to  escape  the  revenge  of  God,  in  offering 
to  do  this  violence,  not  being  employed. 

What  a  strange  choice  doth  God  make  of  an  executioner !  A 
man  shut  of  his  right-hand  !  Either  he  had  but  one  hand,  or 
used  but  one,  and  that  the  worse,  and  the  more  unready.  Who 
would  not  have  thought  both  hands  too  little  for  such  a  work  ; 
or,  if  either  might  have  been  spared,  how  much  rather  the  left? 
God  sceth  not  as  man  seeth :  it  is  the  ordinary  wont  of  the  Almighty, 
to  make  choice  of  the  unlikeliest  means. 

The  instruments  of  God  must  not  be  measured  by  their  own 
power  or  aptitude,  but  by  the  will  of  the  agent.  Though  Ehud 
had  no  hands,  he  that  employed  him  had  enabled  him  to  this 
slaughter.  In  human  things,  it  is  good  to  look  to  the  means  ;  in 
divine,  to  the  worker :  no  means  are  to  be  contemned  that  God 
will  use,  no  means  to  be  trusted  that  man  will  use  without  him. 

It  is  good  to  be  suspicious  where  is  least  shew  of  danger,  and 
most  appearance  of  favour.  This  left-handed  man  comes  with  a 
present  in  his  hand,  but  a  dagger  under  his  skirt.  The  tyrant,  be- 
sides service,  looked  for  gifts  ;  and  now  receives  death  in\his  bribe: 
neither  God  nor  men  do  always  give  where  they  love.  How  oft 
doth  God  give  extraordinary  illumination,  power  of  miracles,  be- 
sides wealth  and  honour,  where  he  hates  !  So  do  men  too  oft  ac- 
company their  curses  with  presents ;  either  lest  an  enemy  should 
hurt  us,  or  that  we  may  hurt  them.  The  intention,  is  the  favour  in 
gifts,  and  not  the  substance. 

Ehud's  faith  supplies  the  want  of  his  hand.  Where  God  intends 
success,  he  lifts  up  the  heart  with  resolutions  of  courage  and  con- 
tempt of  danger.  What  indifferent  beholder  of  this  project  would 
not  have  condemned  it,  as  unlikely  to  speed  ;  to  see  a  maimed 
man  go  alone  to  a  great  king,  in  the  midst  of  all  his  troops ;  to 


186  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

single  him  out  from  all  witnesses  ;  to  set  upon  him  with  one  hand  in 
his  own  parlour,  where  his  courtiers  might  have  heard  the  least  ex- 
clamation,  and  have  come  in,  if  not  to  the  rescue,  yet  to  the  revenge  ? 
Every  circumstance  is  full  of  improbabilities.  Faith  evermore 
overlooks  the  difficulties  of  the  way,  and  bends  her  eyes  only  to  the 
certainty  of  the  end.  In  this  intestine  slaughter  of  our  tyrannical 
corruptions,  when  we  cast  our  eyes  upon  ourselves,  we  might  well 
despair :  alas,  what  can  our  left  hands  do  against  these  spiritual 
wickednesses  ?  But  when  we  see  who  hath  both  commanded,  and 
undertaken  to  prosper  these  holy  designs,  how  can  we  misdoubt 
the  success  ?  lean  do  all  things  through  him  that  strengthens  me. 

When  Ehud  had  obtained  the  convenient  secrecy  both  of  the 
weapon  and  place,  new  with  a  confident  forehead  he  approaches 
the  tyrant,  and  salutes  him  with  a  true  and  awful  preface  to  so  im- 
portant an  act :  /  have  a  message  io  thee  from  God.  Even  Ehud's 
poniard  was  God's  message :  not  only  the  vocal  admonitions,  but 
also  the  real  judgments  of  God,  are  his  errands  to  the  world.  He 
speaks  to  us  in  rain  and  waters,  in  sicknesses  and  famine,  in  unsea- 
sonable times  and  inundations  :  these  are  the  secondary  messages  of 
God  ;  if  we  will  not  hear  the  first,  we  must  hear  these  to  our  cost. 

I  cannot  but  wonder  at  the  devout  reverence  of  this  heathen 
prince :  he  sat  in  his  chair  of  state  ;  the  unwieldiness  of  his  fat 
body  was  such,  that  he  could  not  rise  with  readiness  and  ease;  yet 
no  sooner  dotn  he  hear  news  of  a  message  from  God,  but  he  rises 
up  from  his  throne,  and  reverently  attends  the  tenor  thereof. 
Though  lie  had  no  superior  to  control  him,  yet  he  cannot  abide 
to  be  unmannerly  in  the  business  of  God. 

.  This  man  was  an  idolater,  a  tyrant ;  yet  what  outward  respects 
doth  he  give  to  the  true  God  !  External  ceremonies  of  piety,  and 
compliments  of  devotion,  may  well  ba  found  with  falshood  in  re- 
ligion. They  are  a  good  shadow  of  truth  where  it  is  ;  but  where 
it  is  not,  they  are  the  very  body  of  hypocrisy.  He,  that  had  risen 
up  in  arms  against  God's  people  and  the  true  worship  of  God,  now 
rises  up  in  reverence  to  his  name.  God  would  have  liked  well,  to 
have  had  less  of  his  courtesy,  more  of  his  obedience. 

He  looked  to  have  heard  the  message  with  his  ears,  and  he  feels 
it  in  his  guts :  so  sharp  a  message,  that  it  pierced  the  body,  and  let 
out  the  soul  through  that  unclean  passage  :  neither  did  it  admit  of 
any  answer,  but  silence  and  death.  In  that  part  had  lie  offended  by 
pampering  it,  and  making  it  bis  god  ;  and  now  his  bane  finds  the 
same  wray  with  his  sin. 

This  one  hard  and  cold  morsel,  which  he  cannot  digest,  pays  for 
all  those  gluttonous  delicates,  whereof  he  had  formerly  surfeited. 
It  is  the  manner  of  God,  to  take  fearful  revenges  of  the  professed 
enemies  of  his  Church. 

It  is  a  marvel,  that  neither  any  noise  in  his  dying,  nor  the  fall  of 
so  gross  a  body,  called  in  some  of  his  attendants ;  but  that  God, 
which  hath  intended  to  bring  about  any  design,  disposes  of  all  cir- 
cumstances to  his  own  purpose.  If  Ehud  had  not  come  forth  with 
a  calm  and  settled  countenance,  and  shut  the  doors  after  him,  all 


JAEt  AND  STSERA.  1S7 

his  project  had  heen  in  the  dust.  What  had  it  heen  better  that  the 
king  of  Moab  was  slain,  if  Israel  had  neither  had  a  messenger  to 
inform,  nor  a  captain  to  guide  them  ?  Now  he  departs  peaceably, 
and  blows  a  trumpet  in  Mount  Ephraim ;  gathers  Israel,  and  falls 
upon  the  body  of  Moab,  as  well  as  he  had  done  upon  the  head  ; 
and  procures  freedom  to  his  people.  He,  that  would  undertake 
great  enterprizes,  had  need  of  wisdom  and  courage  ;  wisdom  to  con- 
trive, and  courage  to  execute  ;  wisdom  to  guide  his  courage,  and 
courage  to  second  his  wisdom  ;  both  which,  if  they  meet  with  a 
good  cause,  cannot  but  succeed.  Judges  Hi. 


JAEL  AND  SISERA. 

It  is  no  wonder  if  they,  who  ere  fourscore  days  after  the  law 
delivered,  fell  to  idolatry  alone,  now  after  fourscore  years  since 
the  law  restored,  fell  to  idolatry  among  the  Canaanites.  Peace 
could,  in  a  shorter  time,  work  looseness  in  any  people.  And  if 
forty  years  after  OthjueVs  deliverance  they  relapsed,  what  mar- 
vel is  it  that  in  twice  forty  after  Ehud  they  thus  miscarried  ?  What 
are  they  the  better  to  have  killed  Eglon  the  king  of  Moab,  if  the 
idolatry  of  Moab  have  killed  them  ?  The  sin  of  Moab  shall  be 
found  a  worse  tyrant  than  their  Eglon.  Israel  is  for  every  market: 
they  sold  themselves  to  idolatry,  God  sells  them  to  the  Canaanites: 
it  is  no  marvel  the}'  are  slaves,,  if  they  will  be  idolaters.  After 
their  longest  intermission,  they  have  now  the  sorest  bondage. 
None  of  their  tyrants  were  so  potent,  as  Jabin  with  his  nine  hun- 
dred chariots  of  iron.  The  longer  the  reckoning  is  deferred,  the 
greater  is  the  sum  :  God  provides  on  purpose  mighty  adversaries 
for  his  Church,  that  their  humiliation  may  be  the  greater  in  sus- 
taining, and  his  glory  may  be  greater  in  deliverance. 

I  do  not  find  any  prophet  in  Israel,  during  their  sin  ;  but  so 
soon  as  I  hear  news  of  their  repentance,  mention  is  made  of  a  pro- 
phetess, and  judge  of  Israel.  There  is  no  better  sign  of  God's  re- 
conciliation, than  the  sending  of  his  holy  messengers  to  any  peo- 
ple :  he  is  not  utterly  fallen  out  with  those,  whom  he  blesses  with 
prophecy.  Whom  yet  do  I  see  raised  to  this  honour  ?  Not  any 
of  the  princes  of  Israel  ;  not  Barak  the  captain  ;  not  Lapidoth  the 
husband;  but  a  woman,  for  the  honour  of  her  sex;  a  wile,  for 
the  honour  of  wedlock  :  Deborah,  the  wife  of  Lapidoth. 

He,  that  had  choice  of  all  the  millions  of  Israel,  calls  out  two 
weak  women,  to  deliver  his  people  :  Deborah  shall  judge,  Jael 
shall  execute.  All  the  palaces  of  Israel  must  yield  to  the  palm- 
tree  of  Deborah.  The  weakness  of  the  instruments  redounds  to 
the  greater  honour  of  the  workman.  Who  shall  ask  God  any  rea- 
son of  his  elections,  but  his  own  pleasure  ?  Deborah  was  to  sen- 
tence, not  to  strike  ;  to  command,  not  to  execute  :  this  act  is  mas- 
culine, fit  for  some  captain  of  Israel.  She  was  the  head  of  Israel ; 
it  was  meet  some  other  should  be  the  hand.  It  is  an  imperfect  and 
titular  government,  where  there  is  a  commanding  power,  without 


18$ 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


correction,  without  execution.  The  message  of  Deborah  find** 
out  Barak  the  son  of  Abinoam  in  his  obscure  secrecy  ;  and  calls 
him  from  a  corner  of  Napthali,to  the  honour  of  this  exploit.  He 
is  sent  for,  not  to  get  the  victory,  but  to  take  it  ;  not  to  overcome, 
but  to  kill  ;  to  pursue,  and  not  to  beat  Sisera.  Who  could  not 
have  done  this  work,  whereto  not  much  courage,  no  skill  belong- 
ed r  Yet  even  for  this,  will  God  have  an  instrument  of  his  own 
choice  :  it  is  most  fit,  that  God  should  serve  himself  where  he  list, 
of  his  own  ;  neither  is  it  to  be  inquired,  whom  we  think  meet  for 
any  employment,  but  whom  God  barb  called. 

Deborah  had  been  no  prophetess,  if  she  durst  have  sent  in  her 
own  name.  Her  message  is  from  him  that  sent  herself ;  Hath  not 
the  Lord  God  of  Israel  commanded  ?  Barak's  answer  is  faithful, 
though  conditionate  ;  and  doth  not  so  much  intend  a  refusal  to  go 
without  her,  as  a  necessary  bond  of  her  presence  with  him.  Who 
can  blame  him,  that  he  would  have  a  prophetess  in  his  company  ? 
If  the  man  had  not  been  as  holy  as  valiant,  he  would  not  have 
wished  such  society.  How  manv  think  it  a  perpetual  bondage,  to 
have  a  prophet  of  God  at  their  elbow  !  God  had  never  sent  for 
him  so  far,  if  he  could  have  been  content  to  go  up  without  Debo- 
rah :  he  knew,  that  there  was  both  a  blessing  and  encouragement 
in  that  presence.  It  is  no  putting  any  trust  in  the  success  of  those 
men,  that  neglect  the  messengers  of  God. 

To  prescribe  that  to  others,  which  we  draw  back  from  doing  our- 
selves, is  an  argument  of  hollowness  and  falsity.  Barak  shall  see, 
that  Deborah  doth  not  offer  him  that  cup  whereof  she  dare  not  be- 
gin :  without  regard  of  her  sex,  she  marches  with  him  to  Mount 
Tabor,  and  rejoices  to  be  seen  of  the  ten  thousand  of  Israel.  With 
what  scorn  did  Sisera  look  at  these  gleanings  of  Israel  !  How  une- 
qual did  this  match  seem  of  ten  thousand  Israelites  against,  his  three 
hundred  thousand  foot,  ten  thousand  horse,  nine  hundred  chariots 
of  iron  !  And  now  in  a  bravery  he  calls  for  his  troops,  and  means 
to  kill  this  handful  of  Israel  with  the  very  sight  of  his  piked  cha- 
riots ;  and  only  feared  it  would  be  no  victory  to  cut  the  throats  of 
so  few.  The  faith  of  Deborah  and  Barak  was  not  appalled  with 
this  world  of  adversaries,  which  from  Mount  Tabor  they  saw  hiding 
all  the  valley  below  them  :  they  knew  whom  thev  had  believed, 
and  how  little  an  arm  of  flesh  could  do  against  the  God  of  Hosts. 

Barak  went  down  against  Sisera,  but  it  was  God  that  destroyed 
him.  The  Israelites  did  not  this  dav  wield  their  own  swords,  lest 
they  should  arrogate  any  thing.  God  told  them  before- hand  it 
should  be  his  own  act.  I  hear  not  of  one  stroke  that  any  Canaanite 
gave  in  this  fight ;  as  if  they  were  called  hither  only  to  suffer.  And 
now  proud  Sisera,  after  many  curses  of  the  heaviness  of  that  iron 
carriage,  is  glad  to  quit  his  chariot  and  betake  himself  to  his  heels. 
Who  ever  yet  knew  any  earthly  thing  trusted  in,  without  disap- 
pointment ?  It  is  wonder  if  God  make  us  not  at  last,  as  weary 
of  whatsoever  hath  stolen  our  hearts  from  him,  as  ever  we  were 
fond. 

Yet  Sisera  hopes  to  have  sped  better  than  his  followers,  in  so  sea- 


JAEL  AND  SISERA.  189 

sonablc  a  harbour  of  Jael.  If  Heber  and  Jael  had  not  been  great 
persons,  there  had  been  no  note  taken  of  their  tents  ;  there  had 
been  no  league  betwixt  king  Jabin  and  them  :  now,  their  great- 
ness makes  them  known,  their 'league  makes  them  trusted.  The 
distress  of  Sisera  might  have  made  him  importunate  ;  but  Jael  be- 
gins the  courtesy,  and  exceeds  the  desire  of  her  guest :  he  asks 
water  to  drink,  she  gives  him  milk ;  he  wishes  but  shelter,  she  makes 
him  a  bed  ;  he  desires  the  protection  of  her  tent,  she  covers  him 
with  a  mantle.  And  now  Sisera  pleases  himself  with  his  happy 
change,  and  thinks  how  much  better  it  is  to  be  here,  than  in  that 
whirling  of  chariots,  in  that  horror  of  flight,  amongst  those  shrieks, 
those  wounds,  those  carcases.  While  he  is  in  these  thoughts,  his 
weariness  and  easy  r.-posal  hath  brought  him  asleep.  Who  would 
have  looked,  that  in  this  tumult  and  danger,  even  betwixt  the  very 
jaws  of  death,  Sisera  should  find  time  to  sleep  ?  How  many  world- 
ly hearts  do  so,  in  the  midst  of  their  spiritual  perils  ! 

Now,  while  he  was  dreaming  doubtless  of  the  clashing  of  ar- 
mours, rattling  of  chariots,  neighing  of  horses,  the  clamour  of  the 
conquered,  the  furious  pursuit  of  Israel,  Jael,  seeing  his  temples 
lie  so  fair,  as  if  they  invited  the  nail  and  hammer,  entered  into  the 
thought  of  this  noble  execution  ;  certainly  not  without  some  checks 
of  doubt,  and  pleas  of  fear:  "  What  if  I  strike  him  !  And  yet 
w  ho  am  I,  that  I  should  dare  to  think  of  such  an  act  ?  Is  not  this 
Sisera,  the  most  famous  captain  of  the  world,  whose  name  hath 
wont  to  be  fearful  to  whole  nations  ?  What  if  my  hand  should 
swerve  in  the  stroke  !  What  if  he  should  awake,  while  I  am  lilt- 
ing up  this  instrument  of  death  !  What  if  I  should  be  surprised 
by  some  of  his  followers,  while  the  fact  is  green  and  yet  bleeding! 
Can  the  murder  of  so  great  a  leader  be  hid  or  unrevenged  ?  Or 
if  I  might  hope  .so,  yet  can  my  heart  allow  me  to  be  secretly  trea- 
cherous ?  Is  there  not  peace  betwixt  my  house  and  him  ?  Did  not 
I  invite  him  to  my  tent  ?  Doth  he  not  trust  to  my  friendship  and 
hospitality  ?  But  what  do  these  weak  fears,  these  idle  fancies  of 
civility  ?  If  Sisera  be  in  league  with  us,  yet  is  he  not  at  defiance 
with  God  ?  Is  he  not  a  tyrant  to  Israel  ?  Is  it  for  nothing  that  God 
hath  brought  him  into  my  tent  ?  May  I  not  now  find  means  to  re- 
pay unto  Israel  all  their  kindness  to  my  grandfather  Jcthro  ?  Doth 
not  God  offer  me  this  day,  the  honour  to  be  the  rescuer  of  his  peo- 
ple ?  Hath  God  bidden  me  strike,  and  shall  I  hold  my  hand  ?  No, 
Sisera,  sleep  now  thy  last,  and  take  here  this  fatal  reward  of  all  thy 
cruelty  and  oppression." 

He,  that  put  this  instinct  into  her  heart,  did  put  also  strength  into 
her  hand  :  he,  that  guided  Sisera  to  her  tent,  guided  the  nail 
through  his  temples  ;  which  hath  made  a  speedy  way  for  his  soul 
through  those  parts,  and  now  hath  fastened  his  ear  so  close  to  the 
earth,  as  if  the  body  had  been  listening  what  was  become  of  the 
soul.  There  lies  now  the  great  terror  of  Israel,  at  the  foot  of  a 
woman.  He,  that  brought  so  many  hundred  thousands  into  the 
field,  hath  not  now  one  page  left,  either  to  avert  Ins  death,  or  to  ac- 


190 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


company  it,  or  bewail  it.  He,  that  had  vaunted  of  his  iron  cha- 
riots, is  slain  by  one  nail  of  iron  ;  wanting  only  this  one  point 
of  his  infelicity,  that  he  knows  not  by  whose  hand  he  perished. 

Judges  iv. 


GIDEON'S  CALLING. 

The  judgments  of  God,  still  the  further  they  go,  the  sorer  they 
are  :  the  bondage  of  Israel  under  Jabin  was  great,  but  it  was  free- 
dom in  comparison  of  the  yoke  of  the  Miclianites.  During  the 
former  tyranny,  Deborah  was  permitted  to  judge  Israel  under  a 
palm-tree  ;  under  this,  not  so  much  as  private  habitations  will  be 
allowed  to  Israel.  Then,  the  seat  of  judgment  was  in  sight  of  the 
sun  ;  now,  their  very  dwellings  must  be  secret  under  the  earth. 
The}',  that  rejected  the  protection  of  God,  are  glad  to  seek  to  the 
mountains  for  shelter  ;  and  as  they  had  savagely  abused  themselves, 
so  they  are  fain  to  creep  into  dens  and  caves  of  the  rocks,  like 
wild  creatures,  for  safeguard.  God  had  sown  spiritual  seed  a- 
mongst  them,  and  they  suffered  their  heathenish  neighbours  to  pull 
it  up  by  the  roots  ;  and  now,  no  sooner  can  they  sow  their  mate- 
rial seed,  but  Midianites  and  Amalekites  are  ready  by  force  to  de- 
stroy it.  As  they  inwardly  dealt  with  God,  so  God  deals  outwardly 
by  them.  Their  eyes  may  tell  them  what  their  souls  have  done ; 
yet  that  God,  whose  mercy  is  above  the  worst  of  our  sins,  sends 
first  his  prophet  with  a  message  of  reproof,  and  then  his  angel 
with  a  message  of  deliverance.  The  Israelites  had  smarted  enough 
with  their  servitude,  yet  God  sends  them  a  sharp  rebuke.  It  is  a 
good  sign  when  God  chides  us  ;  his  round  reprehensions  are  ever 
gracious  forerunners  of  mercy  ;  whereas  his  silent  connivance  at 
the  wicked,  argues  deep  and  secret  displeasure.  The  prophet 
made  way  for  the  angel,  reproof  for  deliverance,  humiliation  for 
comfort. 

Gideon  was  thrashing  wheat  by  the  wine-press.  Yet,  Israel  hath 
both  wheat  and  wine,  for  all  the  incux'sions  of  their  enemies.  The 
worst  estate  out  of  hell  hath  either  some  comfort,  or  at  least  some 
mitigation.  In  spite  of  the  malice  of  the  world,  God  makes  se- 
cret provision  for  his  own.  How  should  it  be,  but  he,  that  owns  the 
earth  and  all  creatures,  should  reserve  ever  a  sufficiency  from  fo- 
reigners (such  the  wicked  are)  for  his  houshold  ?  In  the  worst  of 
the  Midianitish  tyranny,  Gideon's  field  and  barn  are  privileged  ; 
as  his  fleece  was  afterwards  from  the  shower. 

Why  did  Gideon  thrash  out  his  corn  ?  To  hide  it ;  not  from  his 
neighbours,  but  his  enemies  :  his  granary  might  easily  be  more 
close  than  his  barn.  As  then,  Israelites  thrashed  out  their  corn,  to 
hide  it  from  the  Midianites  ;  but  now,  Midianites  thrash  out  corn, 
to  hide  it  from  the  Israelites.  These  rural  tyrants  of  our  time  do 
not  more  lay  up  corn  than  curses  :  He  that  xrithdrait'cih  com,  (he 
people  will  curse  him ;  yea,  God  will  curse  him,  with  tliem,  and 
for  them. 


Gideon's  calling.  191 
What  shifts  nature  will  make  to  live  !   Oh  that  we  could  be  so 
careful  to  lay  up  spiritual  food  for  our  souls,  out  of  the  reach  of 
those  spiritual  Midianites  !  We  could  not  but  live,  in  despite  of  all 
adversaries. 

The  angels,  that  have  ever  God  in  their  face,  and  in  their  thoughts, 
have  him  also  in  their  mouths  :  The  Lord  is  with  thee.  But  this, 
which  appeared  unto  Gideon,  was  the  Angel  of  the  Covenant,  the 
Lord  of  angels.  While  he  was  with  Gideon,  he  might  well  say, 
The  Lord  is  with  thee.  He  that  sent  the  Comforter  was  also  tha 
true  comforter  of  his  Church  :  he  well  knew,  how  to  lay  a  sure 
ground  of  consolation  ;  and  that  the  only  remedy  of  sorrow,  and 
beginning  of  true  joy,  is  the  presence  of  God.  The  grief  of  the 
Apostles  for  the  expected  loss  of  their  master,  could  never  be  cured 
by  any  receipt  but  this,  of  the  same  angel,  Behold  I  am  with  you 
to  the  end  of  the  world.  What  is  our  glory,  but  the  fruition  of 
God's  presence  ?  The  punishment  of  the  damned  is  a  separation 
from  the  beatifical  face  of  God  ;  needs  must  therefore  his  absence 
in  this  life  be  a  great  torment  to  a  good  heart :  and  no  cross  can 
be  equivalent  to  this  beginning  of  heaven  in  the  elect,  'I'he  Lord 
is  with  thee. 

Who  can  complain  cither  of  solitariness  or  opposition,  that  hath 
God  with  him  ?  With  him,  nut  only  as  a  witness,  but  as  a  party. 
Even  wicked  men  and  devils  cannot  exclude  God  :  not  the  bars 
of  hell  can  shut  him  out:  he  is  with  them  perforce,  but  to  judge, 
to  punish  them  ;  yea,  God  will  be  ever  with  them  to  their  cost ; 
but  to  protect,  comfort,  save,  he  is  with  none  but  his. 

While  he  calls  Gideon  valiant,  he  makes  him  so.  How  could 
he  be  but  valiant,  that  had  God  with  him  !  The  godless  man  may 
be  careless,  but  cannot  be  other  than  cowardly.  It  pleases  God  to 
acknowledge  his  own  graces  in  men,  that  he  may  interchange  his 
own  glory  with  their  comfort ;  how  much  more  should  we  confess 
the  graces  of  one  another  !  An  envious  nature  is  prejudicial  to  God : 
he  is  a  strange  man  in  whom  there  is  not  some  visible  good  ;  yea, 
in  the  devils  themselves  we  may  easily  note  some  commendable 
parts,  of  knowledge,  strength,  agility  :  let  God  have  his  own  in 
the  worst  creature  ;  vea,  let  the  worst  creature  have  that  praise 
which  God  would  put  upon  it. 

Gideon  cannot  pass  over  this  salutation,  as  some  fashionable 
compliment  j  but  lays  hold  on  that  part,  which  was  most  impor- 
tant ;  the  tenure  of  all  his  comfort  ;  and,  as  not  regarding  the 
praise  of  his  valour,  inquires  after  that  which  should  be  the  ground 
of  his  valour,  the  presence  of  God.  God  had  spoken  particularly 
to  him  ;  lie  expostulates  for  all.  It  had  been  possible  God  should 
be  present  with  him,  not  with  the  rest;  as  he  promised  to  have  been 
with  Moses,  Israel :  and  yet  when  God  says  The  Lord  is  with  thee, 
he  answers,  Alas,  Lord,  if  the  Lord  be  with  us.  Gideon  cannot 
conceive  of  himself  as  an  exempt  person  ;  but  puts  himself  among 
the  throng  of  Israel,  as  one  that  could  not  be  sensible  of  any  par- 
ticular comfort,  while  the  common  case  of  Israel  laboured.  The 
main-care  of  a  good  heart  is  still  for  the  public ;  neither  can  it  en  - 


192  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

joy  itself,  while  the  Church  of  God  is  distressed.  As  faith  draws 
home  generalities,  so  charity  diffuses  generalities  from  itself  to  all. 

Yet  the  valiant  man  was  here  weak  ;  weak  in  faith,  weak  in  dis- 
course ;  while  he  argues  God's  absence  by  affliction,  his  presence 
by  deliverances,  and  the  unlikelihood  of  success  by  his  own  dis- 
ability ;  all  gross  inconsequences.  Rather  should  he  have  inferred 
God's  presence  upon  their  correction  ;  for  wheresoever  God  chas- 
tises, there  he  is,  yea,  there  he  is  in  mercy  :  nothing  more  proves 
us  his,  than  his  stripes  ;  he  will  not  bestow  whipping  where  he  loves 
not.  Fond  nature  thinks  God  should  not  suffer  the  wind  to  blow 
upon  his  dear  ones,  because  herself  makes  this  use  of  her  own  in- 
dulgence ;  but  none  out  of  the  place  of  torment  have  suffered  so 
much  as  his  dearest  children.  He  says  not,  "  We  are  idolaters  ; 
therefore  the  Lord  hath  forsaken  us,  because  we  have  forsaken 
him."  This  sequel  had  been  as  good,  as  the  other  was  faulty ; 
"  The  Lord  hath  delivered  us  unto  the  Midianites,  therefore  he 
hath  forsaken  us."    Sins,  not  afflictions,  argue  God  absent. 

While  Gideon  bewrayeth  weakness,  God  both  gives  him  might 
and  employs  it;  Go  in  this  thy  might,  and  save  Israel.  Who 
would  not  nave  looked,  that  God  should  have  looked  angrily  on 
him,  and  chid  him  for  his  unbelief?  But  he,  whose  mercy  will  not 
quench  the  weakest  fire  of  grace  though  it  be  but  in  flax,  looks 
upon  him  with  compassionate  eyes ;  and  to  make  good  his  own 
word,  gives  him  that  valour  he  had  acknowledged. 

Gideon  had  not  yet  said,  "  Lord,  deliver  Israel:"  much  less 
had  he  said,  "  Lord,  deliver  Israel  by  my  hand."  The  mercy  of 
God  prevents  the  desire  of  Gideon.  If  God  should  not  begin  with 
us,  we  should  be  ever  miserable.  If  he  should  not  give  us  till 
we  ask,  yet  who  should  give  us  to  ask  ?  If  his  Spirit  did  not  work 
those  holy  groans  and  sighs  in  us,  we  should  never  make  suit  to 
God.  He,  that  commonly  gives  us  power  to  crave,  sometimes  gives 
us  without  craving;  that  the  benefit  might  be  so  much  more  wel- 
come, by  how  much  less  it  was  expected  ;  and  we  so  much  more 
thankful,  as  he  is  more  forward.  When  he  bids  us  ask,  it  is  not  for 
that  he  needs  to  be  entreated,  but  that  he  may  make  us  more  capable 
of  blessings  by  desiring  them  ;  and  where  he  sees  fervent  desires,  he 
stays  not  for  words;  and  he  that  gives  ere  we  ask,  how  much 
more  will  he  give  when  we  ask  ? 

He  that  hath  might  enough  to  deliver  Israel,  yet  hath  not  might 
enough  to  keep  himself  from  doubting.  The  strongest  faith  will 
ever  have  some  touch  of  infidelity.  And  yet  this  was  not  so  much 
a  distrust  of  the  possibilitv  of  delivering  Israel,  as  an  inquiry  after 
the  means  ;  Whereby  shall  I  save  Israel  ?  The  salutation  of  the 
angel  to  Gideon  was  as  like  Gabriel's  salutation  of  the  blessed  Vir- 
gin, as  their  answers  were  like  :  both  angels  brought  news  of  deli- 
verance ;  both  were  answered  with  a  question  of  the  means  of  per- 
formance, with  a  report  of  the  difficulties  in  performing  :  Ah,  my 
Lord,  whereby  shall  I  save  Israel  ?  How  the  good  man  dispa- 
rages himself  f  "  It  is  a  great  matter,  O  Lord,  that  thou  speaker 
of ;  and  great  actions  require  mighty  agents  :  as.  for  me,  who  am  1  ? 


Gideon's  calling.  3  93 

My  tribe  is  none  of  the  greatest  in  Israel ;  my  father's  family  is 
one  of  tlie  meanest  in  his  tribe,  and  I  the  meanest  in  his  family  : 
poverty  is  a  sufficient  bar  to  great  enterprizcs." 

Whereby  shall  1 ?  Humility  is  both  a  sign  of  following  glory, 
and  a  way  to  it,  and  an  occasion  of  it.  Bragging  and  height  of 
spirit  will  not  carry  it  with  God :  none  have  ever  been  raised  by 
him,  but  those  which  have  formerly  dejected  themselves  ;  none  have 
been  confounded  by  him,  that  have  been  abased  in  themselves. 
Thereupon  it  is  that  he  adds  ;  /  will  there/ore  be  with  thee;  as  if 
he  had  answered,  "  Hadst  thou  not  been  so  poor  in  thyself,  I  would 
not  have  wrought  by  thee."  How  should  God  be  magnified  in  his 
mercies,  if  we  were  not  unworthy  ?  how  should  he  be  strong,  if 
not  in  our  weakness  ? 

All  this  while,  Gideon  knew  not  it  was  an  angel  that  spake  with 
him.  He  saw  a  man  stand  before  him  like  a  traveller,  with  his  staff 
in  his  hand.  The  unusualness  of  those  revelations  in  those  cor- 
rupted times  was  such,  that  Gideon  might  think  of  any  thing  ra- 
ther than  an  angel.  No  marvel  if  so  strange  a  promise  from  an  un- 
known messenger,  found  not  a  perfect  assent.  Fain  would  he  be- 
lieve, but  fain  would  he  have  good  warrant  for  his  faith.  In  mat- 
ters of  faith,  we  cannot  go  upon  too  sure  grounds.  As  Moses 
therefore,  being  sent  upon  the  same  errand,  desired  a  sign,  whereby 
Israel  might  know  that  God  sent  him ;  so  Gideon  desires  a  sign 
from  this  bearer,  to  know  that  his  news  is  from  God. 

Yet  the  very  hope  of  so  happy  news,  not  yet  ratified,  stirs  Tip 
in  Gideon  both  joy  and  thankfulness.  After  all  the  injury  of  the 
Midianites,  he  was  not  so  poor  but  he  could  bestow  a  kid  and 
cakes  upon  the  reporter  of  such  tidings.  Those,  which  are  rightly 
affected  with  the  glad  news  of  our  spiritual  deliverance,  study  to 
shew  their  loving  respects  to  the  messengers'. 

The  angel  stays  for  the  preparing  of  Gideon's  feast.  Such  pica- 
sure  doth  God  take  in  the  thankful  endeavours  of  his  servants,  that 
he  patiently  waits  upon  the  leisure  of  our  performances.  Gideon 
intended  a  dinner  ;  the  angel  turned  it  into  a  sacrifice.  He,  whose 
meat  and  drink  it  was  to  do  his  Father's  will,  calls  for  the  broth  and 
flesh  to  be  poured  out  upon  the  stone;  and  when  Gideon  looked  he 
should  have  blessed  and  eaten,  he  touches  the  feast  with  his  staff, 
and  consumes  it  with  fire  from  the  stone,  and  departs.  He  did  not 
strike  the  stone  with  his  staff,  for  the  attrition  of  two  hard  bodies 
would  naturally  beget  fire,  but  he  touched  the  meat,  and  brought 
fire  from  the  stone  ;  and  now,  while  Gideon  saw  and  wondered  at 
the  spiritual  act,  he  lost  the  sight  of  the  agent. 

He,  that  came  without  intreating,  would  not  have  departed  with- 
out taking  leave,  but  that  he  might  increase  Gideon's  wonder,  and 
that  his  wonder  might  increase  his  faith.  His  salutation  therefore 
"waenot  so  strange,  as  his  farewell.  Moses  touched  the  rock  with  his 
staff,  and  brought  forth  water,  and  yet  a  man,  and  yet  continued 
with  the  Israelites.  This  messenger  touches  the  stone  with  his 
staff,  and  brings  forth  fire,  and  presently  vanishes,  that  he  may  ap- 
prove himself  a  spirit.    And  now  Gideon,  when  he  had  gathered 

vol., I.  o 


19*  CONTEMPtATrpNJ, 

up  himself,  must  needs  think  ;  "  He,  that  can  raise  fire  out  of  a 
stone,  can  raise  courage  and  power  out  of  my  dead  breast :  he,  that 
by  this  fire  hath  consumed  the  broth  and  flesh,  can  by  the  feeble 
flame  of  my  fortitude  consume  Midian." 

Gideon  did  not  so  much  doubt  before,  as  now  he  feared.  We, 
that  shall  once  live  with  and  belike  the  angels,  in  the  estate  of  our 
impotency  think  we  cannot  see  an  angel  and  live.  Gideon  was  ac- 
knowledged for  mighty  in  valour,  yet  he  trembles  at  the  sight  of 
an  angel.  Peter,  that  durst  draw  his  sword  upon  Malchus  and  all 
the  train  of  Judas,  yet  fears  when  he  thought  he  had  seen  a  spirit. 
Our  natural  courage  cannot  bear  us  out  against  spiritual  objects. 
This  angel  was  homely  and  familiar,  taking  upon  him  for  the  time 
a  resemblance  of  that  Mesh  whereof  he  would  afterwards  take  the 
substance  ;  yet  even  the  valiant  Gideon  quakes  to  have  seen  him. 
How  awful  and  glorious  is  the  God  of  angels,  when  he  will  be  seen 
in  the  state  of  heaven  ! 

The  angel  that  departed  for  the  wonder,  yet  returns  for  the  com- 
fort of  Gideon.  It  is  not  the  wont  of  God  to  leave  his  children  in  a 
maze  ;  but  he  brings  them  out  in  the  same  mercy  which  led  them 
in,  and  will  magnify  his  grace  in  the  one,  no  less  than  his  power 
in  the  other. 

Now  Gideon  grows  acquainted  with  God,  and  interchanges 
pledges  of  familiarity.  He  builds  an  altar  to  God,  and  God  confers 
with  him  ;  and,  as  he  uses  where  he  loves,  employs  him.  His  first 
task  must  be,  to  destroy  the  god  of  the  Midianites  ;  then  the  idol- 
aters themselves.  While  Baal's  altar  and  grove  stood  in  the  hill  of 
Ophrah,  Israel  should  in  vain  hope  to  prevail.  It  is  most  just  with 
God,  that  judgment  should  continue  with  the  sin  ;  and  no  less 
mercy,  if  it  may  remove  after  it.  Wouldst  thou  fain  be  rid  of  any 
judgment  r  inquire  what  false  altars  and  groves  thou  hast  in  thy 
heart.    Down  with  them  first. 

First  must  Baal's  altar  be  ruined,  ere  God's  be  built ;  both  may 
not  stand  together  :  the  true  God  will  have  no  society  with  idols, 
neither  will  allow  it  us.  I  do  not  hear  him  say,  "  That  altar  and 
grove  which  were  abused  to  Baal,  consecrate  now  to  me  ;"  but,  as 
one  whose  holy  jealousy  will  abide  no  worship  till  there  be  no 
idolatry,  he  first  commands  down  the  monuments  of  superstition, 
and  then  enjoins  his  own  service ;  yet  the  wood  of  Baal's  grove 
must  be  used  to  burn  a  sacrifice  unto  God  :  when  it  was  once  cut 
down,  God's  detestation  and  their  danger  ceased.  The  good  crea- 
tures of  God,  that  have  been  profaned  to  idolatry,  may,  in  a  change 
of  their  use,  be  employed  to  the  holy  service  of"  their  Maker. 

Though  some  Israelites  were  penitent  under  this  humiliation, 
yet  still  many  of  them  persisted  in  their  wonted  idolatry :  the  very 
household  of  Gideon's  father  were  still  Baalites,  and  his  neigh- 
bours of  Ophrah  were  in  the  same  sin  ;  yea,  if  his  father  had  been 
free,  what  did  he  with  Baal's  grove  and  altar  ?  He  dares  not  there- 
fore take  his  father's  servants,  though  he  took  his  bullocks,  but 
commands  his  own.  The  master  is  best  seen  in  the  servants: 
Qideon's  servants,  amongst  the  idolatrous  retinue  of  Joash,  are  re- 


Gideon's  preparation  and  victory.  195 

ligious,  like  their  master  ;  yet  the  mis-devotion  of  Joash  and  the 
Ophrathites  was  not  obstinate.  Joash  is  easily  persuaded  by  his 
sons,  and  easily  persuades  his  neighbours,  how  unreasonable  it  is 
to  plead  for  such  a  god  as  cannot  speak  for  himself  ;  to  revenge  his 
cause,  that  could  not  defend  himself.  Let  Baal  plead  for  himself. 
One  example  of  a  resolute  onset  in  a  noted  person,  may  do  more 
good  than  a  thousand  seconds  in  the  proceeding  of  an  action. 

Soon  are  all  the  Midianites  in  an  uproar  to  lose  their  god.  They 
need  not  now  be  bidden  to  muster  themselves  for  revenge.  He 
hath  no  religion,  that  can  suffer  an  indignity  offered  to  his  god. 

Judges  vi. 


GIDEON'S  PREPARATION  AND  VICTORY. 
Of  all  the  instruments  that  God  did  use  in  so  great  a  work,  I  find 
none  so  weak  as  Gideon  ;  who  yet,  of  all  others,  was  styled  va- 
liant :  natural  valour  may  well  stand  with  spiritual  cowardice.  Be- 
fore he  knew  that  he  spake  with  a  God,  he  might  have  just  colours 
for  his  distrust ;  but  after  God  had  approved  his  presence  and  al- 
mighty power,  by  fetching  fire  out  of  the  stone,  then  to  call  for  a 
watery  sign  of  his  promised  deliverance,  was  no  other  than  to  pour 
water  upon  the  fire  of  the  Spirit.  The  former  trial  God  gave,  va- 
nished ;  this,  upon  Gideon's  choice  and  intreaty.  The  former  mi- 
racle was  strong  enough,  to  carry  Gideon  through  his  first  exploit 
of  ruining  the  idolatrous  grove  and  altar  ;  but  now,  when  he  saw  the 
swarm  of  the  Midianites  and  Amalekites  about  his  ears,  he  calls  for 
new  aid  ;  and  not  trusting  to  his  Abiezrites  and  his  other  thousands 
of  Israel,  he  runs  to  God  for  a  further  assurance  of  victory. 

The  refuge  was  good,  but  the  manner  of  seeking  it  savours  of 
distrust.  There  is  nothing  more  easy,  than  to  be  valiant  when  no 
peril  appcareth  ;  but  when  evils  assail  us  upon  equal  terms,  it  is 
hard  and  commendable  not  to  be  dismayed.  If  God  had  made  that 
proclamation  now,  which  afterwards  was  commanded  to  be  made  by 
Gideon,  Let  the  timorous  depart,  I  doubt  whether  Israel  had  not 
wanted  a  guide :  yet  how  willing  is  the  Almighty  to  satisfy  our 
weak  desires ! 

What  tasks  is  he  content  to  be  set  by  our  infirmity  !  The  fleece 
must  be  wet,  and  the  ground  dry  ;  the  ground  must  be  wet,  and 
the  fleece  dry  :  both  are  done  :  that  now  Gideon  may  see  whether 
he  would  make  himself  hard  earth,  or  yielding  wool.  God  could 
at  pleasure  distinguish  betwixt  him  and  the  Midianites;  and  pour 
down  cither  mercies  or  judgment  where  he  lists ;  and  that  he  was  set 
on  work  by  that  God,  which  can  command  all  the  elements,  and 
they  obey  him.  Fire,  water,  earth,  serve  both  him,  and,  when  he 
will,  his. 

And  now,  when  Gideon  had  his  reciprocal  proof  of  his  ensuing 
success,  he  goes  on,  as  he  well  may,  harnessed  with  resolution,  and 
is  seen  in  the  head  of  his  troops,  and  in  the  face  of  the  Midianites, 
If  we  cannot  make  up  the  match  with  God,  when  we  have  our  own 
asking,  we  are  worthy  to  sit  out. 


I§£  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

Gideon  had  but  thirty  two  thousand  soldiers  at  his  heels ;  the 
Midianites  covered  all  the  valley,  like  grasshoppers :  and  now, 
while  the  Israelites  think,  "We  are  too  few;"  God  says,  The 
people  are  too  many.  If  the  Israelites  must  have  looked  for  vic- 
tory from  their  fingers,  they  might  well  have  said,  "  The  Midian- 
ites are  too  many  for  us  ;"  but  that  God,  whose  thoughts  and  words 
are  unlike  to  men's,  says,  They  are  too  many  for  me  to  give  the 
Midianites  into  their  hands.  If  human  strength  were  to  be  op- 
posed, there  should  have  needed  an  equality  ;  but  now  God  meant 
to  give  the  victory,  his  care  is  not  how  to  get  it,  but  how  not  to  lose 
or  blemish  the  glory  of  it  gotten.  How  jealous  God  is  of  his  ho- 
nour !  He  is  willing  to  give  deliverance  to  Israel,  but  the  praise  of 
the  deliverance  he  will  keep  to  himself;  and  will  shorten  the  means, 
that  he  may  have  the  full  measure  of  the  glory.  And  if  he  will  not 
allow  lawful  means  to  stand  in  the  light  of  his  honour,  how  will 
he  endure  it  to  be  crossed  so  much  as  indirectly:  it  is  less  danger  to 
steal  an}-  tiling  from  God,  than  his  glory.  As  a  prince,  which  if  we 
steal  or  clip  his  coin,  may  pardon  it ;  but  if  we  go  about  to  rob 
him  of  his  crown,  will  not  be  appeased. 

There  is  nothing  that  we  can  give  to  God,  of  whom  we  receive 
all  things:  that  which  he  is  content  to  part  with,  he  gives  us  ;  but  he 
will  not  abide  we  should  take  ought  from  him,  which  he  would  re- 
serve for  himself.  It  is  all  one  with  him  to  save  with  many,  as  with 
few ;  but  he  rather  chuscs  to  save  by  few,  that  all  the  victory  may 
redound  to  himself.  O  God,  what  art  thou  the  better  for  praises, 
to  whom,  because  thou  art  infinite,  nothing  can  be  added  ?  It  is 
for  our  good  that  thou  wouldst  be  magnified  of  us.  Oh  teach  us 
to  receive  the  benefit  of  thy  merciful  favours,  and  to  return  thee 
the  thanks. 

Gideon's  army  must  he  lessened.  Who  are  so  fit  to  be  cashiered 
as  the  fearful  ?  God  bids  him  therefore  proclaim  licence  for  all 
faint  hearts  to  leave  the  field.  An  ill  instrument  may  shame  a  good 
work  :  God  will  not  glorify  himself  by  cowards.  As  the  timorous 
shall  be  without  the  gates  of  heaven,  so  shall  they  be  without  the 
lists  of  God's  field.  Although  it  was  not  their  courage  that  should 
save  Israel,  yet  without  their  courage  God  would  not  serve  himself 
of  them.  Christianity  requires  men  ;  for  if  our  spiritual  difficul- 
ties meet  not  with  high  spirits,  instead  of  whetting  our  fortitude, 
they  quell  it.  David's  royal  band  of  worthies  was  the  type  of  the 
forces  of  the  Church  ;  all  Valiant  men,  and  able  to  encounter  with 
thousands. 

Neither  must  we  be  strong  onlv,  but  acquainted  with  our  own  re- 
solutions; not  out  of  any  carnal  presumption,  but  out  of  a  faithful 
reliance  upon  the  strength  of  God,  in  whom  when  we  are  weak, 
then  we  are  strong.  O  thou  white-liver  !  doth  but  a  foul  word  or 
a  frown  scare  thee  from  Christ  ?  Doth  the  loss  of  a  little  land  or 
silver  disquiet  thee  ?  Doth  but  the  sight  of  the  Midianites  in  the 
valley  strike  thee  ?  Home  then,  home  to  the  world  ;  thou  art  not 
then  "for  the  conquering  band  of  Christ :  if  thou  canst  not  resolve 


gideon's  preparation  and  victory.  197 

to  follow  him  through  infamy,  prisons,  racks,  gibbets,  flames,  de- 
part to  thine  house,  and  save  thy  life  to  thy  loss. 

Methinks  now,  Israel  should  have  complained  of  indignity,  and 
have  said,  "  Why  shouldest  thou  think,  O  Gideon,  that  there  can 
be  a  cowardly*  Israelite  ?  And  if  the  experience  of  the  power  and 
mercy  of  God  be  not  enough  to  make  us  fearless,  yet  the  sense  of 
servitude  must  needs  have  made  us  resolute  ;  for  who  would  not 
rather  to  be  buried  dead,  than  quick  ?  Are  we  not  fain  to  hide  our 
heads  in  the  caves  of  the  earth,  and  to  make  our  graves  our 
houses  t  Not  so  much  as  the  very  light  that  we  can  freely  enjoy; 
thetvranny  of  deatb  is  but  short  and  easv,  to  this  of  Midian  ;  and 
yet  what  danger  can  there  be  of  that,  since  thou  hast  so  certainly 
assured  us  of  God's  promise  of  victory,  and  his  miraculous  con- 
firmation ?  No,  Gideon,  those  hearts,  that  have  brought  us  hither 
after  thy  colours,  can  as  well  keep  ns  {rem  retiring." 

But  now,  who  can  but  bless  himself,  to  find,  of  two  and  thirty 
thousand  Israelites,  two  and  twenty  thousand  cowards?  Yet  all 
these  in  Gideon's  march  made  as  fair  a  flourish  of  courage  as  the 
boldest.  Who  can  trust  the  faces  of  men,  that  sees  in  the  army  of 
Israel  above  two  for  one  timorous  ?  How  many  make  a  glorious 
shew  in  the  warfaring  church,  which,  when  they  shall  see  danger 
of  persecution,  shall  shrink  from  the  standard  of  God  !  Hope  of 
safety,  examples  of  neighbours,  desire  of  praise,  fear  of  censures, 
coaction  of  laws,  fellowship  of  friends,  draw  many  into  the  field ; 
which,  so  soon  as  ever  they  see  the  adversary,  repent  of  their  con- 
ditions ;  and  if  they  may  cleanly  escape,  will  be  gone  early  from 
Mount  Gilead.  Can  any  man  be  offended  at  the  number  of  these 
shriiikers,  when  he  sees  but  ten  thousand  Israelites  left  of  two  and 
thirty  thousand,  in  a  morning? 

These  men,  that  would  have  been  ashamed  to  go  away  by  day, 
now  drop  away  by  night ;  and  if  Gideon  should  have  called  any 
one  of  them  back,  and  said,  "  Wilt  thou  fly  ?"  would  have  made 
an  excuse.  The  darkness  is  a  fit  veil  for  their  paleness,  or  blush- 
ing  :  fearfulness  cannot  abide  the  light.  None  of  these  thousands 
of  Israel,  but  would  have  been  loth  Gideon,  should  have  seen  his 
face,  while  he  said,  "  I  am  fearful ;"  very  shame  holds  some  in 
their  station,  whose  hearts  are  already  fled.  And  if  we  cannot  en- 
dure that  men  should  be  witnesses  of  that  fear  which  we  might 
live  to  correct,  how  shall  we  abide  once  to  shew  our  fearful  heads 
before  that  terrible  Judge,  when  he  calls  us  forth  to  the  punish- 
ment of  our  fear  ?  Oh  the  vanity  of  foolish  hypocrites,  that  run  upon 
the  terrors  of  God,  while  they  would  avoid  the  shame  of  men  .' 

Mow  do  we  think  the  small  remainder  of  Israel  looked,  when,  in 
the  next  morning-muster,  they  found  themselves  but  ten  thousand 
left  J  How  did  they  accuse  their  timorous  countrymen,  that  had 
left  but  this  handful  to  encounter  the  millions  of  Midian  !  And 
yet  still  God  complains  of  too  many  ;  and  upon  his  trial  dismisses 
nine  thousand  seven  hundred  more.  His  first  trial  was  of  the  va- 
lour of  their  minds;  his  next  is  of  the  ability  of  their  bodies. 
Those,  which,  besides  boldness,  are  not  strong,  patient  of  labour 


19S  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

and  thirst,  willing  to  stoop,  content  with  a  little  (such  were  those 
that  took  up  water  with  their  hands)  are  not  for  the  select  band  of 
God.  The  Lord  of  Hosts  will  serve  himself  of  none  but  able  cham- 
pions :  if  ^he  have  therefore  singled  us  into  his  combat,  this  very 
choice  argues  that  he  finds  that  strength  in  us,  which  we  cannot 
confess  in  ourselves.  How  can  it  but  comfort  us  in  our  great 
trials,  that  if  the  Searcher  of  hearts  did  not  find  us '  fit,  he  would 
never  honour  us  with  so  hard  an  employment  ? 

Now,  when  there  is  not  scarce  left  one  Israelite  to  every  thousand 
of  the  Midianites,  it  is  seasonable  with  God  to  join  battle.  When  God 
hath  stripped  us  of  all  our  earthly  confidence,  then  doth  he  find 
time  to  give  us  victory  ;  and  not  till  then,  lest  he  should  be  a  loser 
in  our  gain  :  like  as  at  last  he  unclothes  us  of  our  body,  that  he  may 
clothe  us  upon  with  glory. 

If  Gideon  feared  when  he  had  two  and  thirty  thousand  Israelites  at 
his  heels,  is  it  in  any  wonder  if  he  feared  when  all  these  were  shrunk 
into  three  hundred  ?  Though  his  confirmation  were  more,  yet  his 
means  were  abated.  Why  was  not  Gideon  rather  the  leader  of 
those  two  and  twenty  thousand  runaways,  than  of  these  three  hun- 
dred soldiers  ?  O  infinite  mercy  and  forbearance  of  God,  that 
takes  not  vantage  of  so  strong  an  infirmity  ;  but  instead  of  cast- 
ing, encourages  him  I  That  wise  Providence  hath  prepared  a 
dream  in  the  liead  of  one  Midianite,  an  interpretation  in  the  mouth 
of  another,  and  hath  brought  Gideon  to  be  an  auditor  of  both,  and 
hath  made  his  enemies  prophets  of  his  victory,  encouragers  of  the 
attempt,  proclaimers  of  their  own  confusion.  A  Midianite  dreams; 
a  Midianite  interprets.  Our  very  dreams  many  times  are  not  with- 
out God  :  there  is  a  providence  in  our  sleeping  fancies  :  even  the 
enemies  of  God  may  have  visions,  and  power  to  construe  them 
aright.  How  usually  are  wicked  men  forewarned  of  their  own  de- 
struction !  To  foreknow  and  not  avoid,  is  but  an  aggravation  of 
judgment. 

When  Gideon  heard  good  news,  though  from  an  enemy,  he  fell 
down  and  worshipped.  To  hear  himself  but  a  barley  cake  troubled 
him  not,  when  he  heard  withal,  that  his  rolling  down  the  hill 
should  break  the  tents  of  Midian.  It  matters  not  how  base  we  be 
thought,  so  we  may  be  victorious.  The  soul,  that  hath  received  full 
confirmation  from  God  in  the  assurance  of  his  salvation,  cannot  but 
bow  the  knee,  and  by  all  gestures  of  body  tell  how  it  is  ravished. 

I  would  have  thought,  Gideon  should  rather  have  found  full  con- 
firmation in  the  promise  and  act  of  God,  than  in  the  dream  of  the 
Midianite.  Dreams  may  be  full  of  uncertainty  ;  God's  undertak- 
ings are  infallible  :  well  therefore  might  the  miracle  of  God  give 
strength  to  the  dream  of  a  Midianite  ;  but  what  strength  could  a 
Pagan's  dream  give  to  the  miraculous  act  of  Cod  r  yet  by  this  is 
Gideon  thoroughly  settled.  When  we  are  going,  a  little  thing 
drives  us  on  ;  when  we  are  come  near  to  the  shore,  the  very  tide 
without  sails  is  enough  to  put  us  into  the  harbour. 

We  shall  now  hear  no  more  of  Gideon's  doubts,  but  of  his  at- 
chievements ;  and  though  God  had  promised  by  these  three  hun- 


THE  REVENGE  OF  SUCCOTH  AND  PENUEL.  199 

dred  to  chase  the  Midianites,  yet  he  neglects  not  wise  stratagems  to 
effect  it.  To  wait  for  God's  performance  in  doing  nothing,  is  to 
abuse  that  divine  Providence,  which  will  so  work,  that  will  not  al- 
low us  idle. 

Now,  when  we  would  look  that  Gideon  should  give  charge  of 
whetting  their  swords,  and  sharpening  their  spears,  and  fitting  their 
armour,  fie  only  gives  order  for  empty  pitchers,  and  lights,  and 
trumpets.  The  ciacking  of  these  pitchers  shall  break  in  pieces 
this  Midianitish  clay:  the  kindling  of  these  lights  shall  extinguish 
the  light  of  Midian  :  these  trumpets  sound  no  other  than  a  soul-peal 
to  all  the  host  of  Midian :  there  shall  need  nothing  but  noise  and 
light,  to  confound  this  innumerable  army. 

And  if  the  pitchers,  and  brands,  and  trumpets  of  Gideon,  did  so 
daunt  and  dismay  the  proud  troops  of  Midian  and  Amalck,  who  can 
we  think  shall  be  able  to  stand  before  the  last  terror,  wherein  the 
trumpet  of  the  archangel  shall  sound,  and  the  heavens  shall  pass 
away  with  a  noise,  and  the  elements  shall  be  on  a  flame  about  our 
«ars  ? 

Any  of  the  weakest  Israelites  would  have  served  to  have  broken 
an  empty  pitcher,  to  have  carried  a  light,  and  to  have  sounded  a 
trumpet,  and  to  strike  a  flying  adversary.  Not  to  the  basest  use 
will  God  employ  an  unworthy  agent :  he  will  not  allow  so  much  as 
a  cowardly  torch-bearer. 

Those  two  and  twenty  thousand  Israelites,  that  slipped  away  for 
fear,  when  the  fearful  Midianites  fled,  can  pursue  and  kill  them  ; 
and  can  follow  them  at  the  heels,  whom  they  durst  not  look  in  the 
face.  Our  flight  gives  advantage  to  the  feeblest  adversary,  where- 
as our  resistance  foileth  the  greatest :  how  much  more,  if  we  have 
once  turned  our  backs  upon  a  temptation,  shall  our  spiritual  ene- 
mies, which  are  ever  strong,  trample  us  in  the  dust !  Resist,  and 
they  shall  flee :  stand  still,  and  we  shall  see  the  salvation  of  the 
Lord.  Judges  rii. 


THE  REVENGE  OF  SUCCOTH  AND  PENUEL. 
Gideon  was  of  Manasseh  :  Ephraim  and  he  were  brothers,  sons  of 
Joseph :  none  of  all  the  tribes  of  Israel  fall  out  with  their  victorious 
leader,  but  he.  The  agreement  of  brothers  is  rare :  by  how  much 
nature  hath  more  endeared  them,  by  so  much  are  their  quarrels  more 
frequent  and  dangerous. 

I  did  not  hear  the  Ephraimites  offering  themselves  into  the  front 
of  the  army,  before  they  fight ;  and  now  they  are  ready  to 
fight  with  Gideon,  because  they  were  not  called  to  fight  with 
Midian  :  I  hear  them  expostulating  after  it ;  after  the  exploit  done, 
cowards  are  valiant.  Their  quarrel  was,  that  they  were,  not  called 
it  had  been  a  greater  praise  of  their  valour,  to  have  gone  unbidden. 
What  need  was  there  to  call  them,  when  God  complained  of  multi- 
tude, and  sent  away  those  which  were  called  ?  None  speak  so  big 
in  the  end  of  the  fray,  as  the  fearfullest. 

Ephraim  Hies  upon  Gideon,  whilst  the  Midianites  fly  from  him. 
W  hen  Gideon  should  be  pursuing  his  enemies,  he  is  pursued  by 


200  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

brethren  ;  and  now  is  glad  to  spend  that  wind  in  pacifying  of  his 
own,  which  should  have  been  bestowed  in  the  slaughter  of  a  com- 
mon adversary.  It  is  a  wonder,  if  Satan  suffer  us  to  be  quiet  at 
home,  while  we  are  exercised  with  wars  abroad.  Had  not  Gideon 
learned  to  speak  fair,  as  well  as  to  smite,  be  had  found  work  enough 
from  the  swords  of  Joseph's  sons  :  his  good  words  are  as  victorious 
as  his  sword  ;  his  pacification  of  friends,  better  than  his  execution 
of  enemies. 

For  ought  I  see,  the  envy  of  Israelites  was  not  more  troublesome 
to  Gideon,  than  the  opposition  of  Midian.  He  hath  left  the  envy 
of  Ephraim  behind  him  ;  before  him,  he  finds  the  envy  of  Suc- 
coth  and  Penuel.  The  one  envies  that  he  should  overcome  with- 
out them  ;  the  other,  that  he  should  say,  he  had  overcome.  His 
pursuit  leads  him  to  Succoth  ;  there  he  craves  relief,  and  is  repel- 
led. Had  he  said,  "  Come  forth  and  draw  your  sword  with  me 
against  Z<;ba  and  Zalmunna,"  the  motion  had  been  but  equal  :  a 
common  interest  challenges  an  universal  aid  :  now  he  says  but, 
Give  morsels  of  bread  to  my  followers,  he  is  turned  off  with  a 
scorn  ;  he  asks  bread  and  they  give  him  a  stone.  Could  he  ask  a 
more  slender  recompence  of  their  deliverance,  or  a  less  reward  of 
his  victory  ?  Give  morsels  of  bread.  Before  this  act,  all  their  sub- 
stance had  been  too  small  a  hire  for  their  freedom  from  Midian  ; 
now,  when  it  is  done,  a  morsel  of  bread  is  too  much :  well  might 
he  challenge  bread,  where  lie  gave  liberty  and  life.  It  is  hard,  if 
those  which  fight  the  wars  of  God  may  not  have  necessary  relief ; 
that  while  the  enemy  dies  by  them,  they  should  die  by  famine.  If 
they  had  laboured  for  God  at  home  in  peace,  they  had  been  worthy 
of  maintenance ;  how  much  more  now,  that  danger  is  added  to  their 
toil  t  Even  very  executioners  look  for  fees  •,  but  here  were  not 
malefactors,  but  adversaries  to  be  slain  :  the  sword  of  power  and 
revenge  was  now  to  be  wielded,  not  of  quiet  justice.  Those,  that 
fight  for  our  souls  against  spiritual  powers,  may  challenge  bread 
from  us  ;  and  it  is  shameless  unthankfulness  to  deny  it.  When 
Abraham  had  vanquished  the  five  kings,  and  delivered  Lot  and  his 
family,  the  king  of  Salem  met  him  with  bread  and  wine  ;  and  now 
these  sons  of  Abraham,  after  an  equal  victory ,  ask  dry  bread,  and 
are  denied  by  their  brethren  :  craftily  yet,  and  \inder  pretence  of  a 
false  title  ;  had  they  acknowledged  the  victory  of  Gideon,  with 
what  forehead  could  they  have  denied  him  bread  ? 

Now,  I  kno\y  not  whether  their  faithlessness  or  envy  lie  in  their 
way.  Are  the  bands  of  Zcba  and  Zalmunna,  in  thy  hands  ?  There 
were  none  of  these  princes  of  Succoth  and  Penuel,  but  thought 
themselvesibetter  men  than  Gideon:  that  he  therefore  alone  should  do 
that,  which  all  the  princes  of  Israel  durst  not  attempt,  they  hated 
and  scorned  to  hear.  It  is  never  safe  to  measure  events  by  the 
power  of  the  instrument;  nor,  in  the  causes  of  God,  whose  calling 
makes  the  difference,  to  measure  others  by  themselves  :  there  is  no- 
thing more  dangerous,  than  in  holy  businesses  to  stand  upon  com- 
parisons and  our  own  reputation  ;  since  it  is  reason,  God  should 
both  cliuse  and  bless  where  he  lists. 


THE  REVENGE  OF  SUCCOTH  AND  PENUEL.  201 

To  have  questioned  so  sudden  a  victory,  had  been  pardonable; 
but  to  deny  it  scornfiiily,  was  unworthy  of  Israelites.  Carnal  men 
think  that  impossible  to  others,  which  themselves  cannot  do ;  from 
hence  are  their  censures,  hence  their  exclamations. 

Gideon  hath  vowed  a  fearful  revenge,  and  now  performs  it.  The 
taunts  of  his  brethren  may  not  stay  him  from  the  pursuit  of  the 
Midianites  :  common  enmities  must  first  be  opposed  ;  domestical, 
at  more  leisure.  The  princes  of  Succoth  feared  the  tyranny  of  the 
Midianitish  kings,  but  they  more  feared  Gideon's  victory.  What 
a  condition  hath  their  envy  drawn  them  into  !  That  they  are  sorry 
to  see  God's  enemies  captive  ;  that  Israel's  freedom  must  be  their 
death  ;  that  the  Midianites  and  they  must  tremble  at  one  and  the 
same  revenger  I  To  see  themselves  prisoners  to  Zeba  and  Zal- 
munna,  had  not  been  so  fearful,  as  to  see  Zeba  and  Zalmunna  pri- 
soners to  Gideon.  Nothing  is  more  terrible  to  evil  minds,  than 
to  i-ead  their  own  condemnation  in  the  happy  success  of  others. 
Hell  itself  would  want  one  piece  of  his  torment,  if  the  wicked 
did  not  know  those  whom  they  contemned,  glorious. 

I  know  not  whether  more  to  commend  Gideon's  wisdom  and  mo- 
deration in  the  proceedings,  than  his  resolution  and  justice  in  the 
execution  of  this  business.  I  do  not  see  him  run  furiously  into  the 
city,  and  kill  the  next :  his  sword  had  not  been  so  drunken  with 
blood,  that  it  should  know  no  difference  :  but  he  writes  down  the 
names  of  the  princes,  and  singles  them  forth  for  revenge. 

When  the  leaders  of  God  came  to  Jericho  or  Ai,  their  slaughter 
was  impartial :  not  a  woman  or  child  might  live  to  tell  news  :  but 
now  that  Gideon  comes  to  a  Succoth,  a  city  of  Israelites,  the  rulers 
are  called  forth  to  death  ;  the  people  are  frighted  with  the  example, 
not  hurt  with  the  judgment.  To  enwrap  the  innocent  in  any  ven- 
geance, is  a  murderous  injustice  ;  indeed  where  all  join  in  the  sin, 
all  are  worthy  to  meet  in  the  punishment.  It  is  like,  the  citizens 
of  Succoth  could  have  been  glad  to  succour  Gideon,  if  their  rulers 
had  not  forbidden  ;  they  must  therefore  escape,  while  their  princes 
perish. 

I  cannot  think  of  Gideon's  revenge  without  horror ;  that  the 
rulers  of  Succoth  should  have  their  flesh  torn  from  their  backs  with 
thorns  and  briers  ;  that  they  should  be  at  once  beaten  and  scratch- 
ed to  death:  what  a  spectacle  it  was  to  sec  their  bare  bones  looking 
somewhere  through  the  bloody  rags  of  their  flesh  and  skin,  and 
every  stroke  worse  than  the  last ;  death  multiplied  by  torment ! 
Justice  is  sometimes  so  severe,  that  a  tender  beholder  can  scarce 
discern  it  from  cruelty. 

I  see  the  Midianites  fare  less  ill :  the  edge  of  the  sword  makes  a 
speedy  and  easy  passage  for  their  lives,  while  these  rebellious  Is- 
raelites die  lingering  under  thorns  and  briers ;  envying  those  in 
their  death,  whom  their  life  abhorred.  Howsoever  men  live  or  die 
without  the  pale  of  the  Church,  a  wicked  Israelite  .shall  be  sure  of 
plagues.  How  many  shall  unwish  themselves  Christians,  when  God's 
revenges  have  found  them  out ! 

The  place  (Peniel)  where  Jacob  wrestled  with  God  and  prevail- 


202  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

ed,  now  hath  wrestled  against  God  and  takes  a  fall :  they  see  God 
avenged,  which  would  not  believe  him  delivering. 

It  was  now  time  for  Zeba  and  Zalmunua,  to  follow  those  their 
troops  to  the  grave,  whom  they  had  led  in  the  field.  Those,  which 
the  day  before  were  attended  with  a  hundred  and  thirty  five  thou- 
sand followers,  have  not  so  much  as  a  page  now  left  to  weep  for 
their  death  ;  and  have  lived  only  to  see  all  their  friends,  and  some 
enemies  die  for  their  sakes. 

Who  can  regard  earthly  greatness,  that  sees  one  night  change 
two  of  the  greatest  kings  of  the  world  into  captives  ?  It  had  been 
both  pity  and  sin,  that  the  heads  of  that  Midianitish  tyranny,  into 
which  they  had  drawn  so  many  thousands,  should  have  escaped 
that  death.  And  yet,  if  private  revenge  had  not  made  Gideon 
just,  I  doubt  whether  they  had  died.  The  blood  of  his  brothers 
calls  for  theirs,  and  awakes  his  sword  to  their  execution.  He  both 
knew  and  complained  of  the  Midianitish  oppression,  under  which 
Israel  groaned  ;  yet  the  cruelty  offered  to  all  the  thousands  of  his 
father's  sons,  had  not  drawn  the  blood  of  Zeba  and  Zalmunna,  if 
his  own  mother's  sons  had  not  bled  by  their  hands. 

He,  that  slew  the  rulers  of  Succoth  and  Penuel  and  spared  the 
people,  now  hath  slain  the  people  of  Midian  and  would  have  spared 
their  rulers  ;  but  that  God,  which  will  find  occasionsto  wind  wick- 
ed men  into  judgment,  will  have  them  slain  in  a  private  quarrel, 
which  had  more  deserved  it  for  the  public  ;  if  we  may  not  rather 
say,  that  Gideon  revenged  these  as  a  magistrate,  not  as  a  brother. 
For  governors  to  respect  their  own  ends  in  public  actions,  and  to 
wear  the  sword  of  justice  in  their  own  sheath,  it  is  a  wrongful  abuse 
of  authority.  The  slaughter  of  Gideon's  brethren  was  not  the 
greatest  sin  of  the  Midianitish  kings  :  this  alone  shall  kill  them, 
when  the  rest  expected  an  unjust  remission. 

How  many  lewd  men  hath  God  paid  with  someone  sin  for' all  the 
rest  !  Some,  that  have  gone  aw-2y  with  unnatural  filthiness  and  ca- 
pital thefts,  have  clipped  off  their  own  days  with  their  coin ;  others, 
whose  bloody  murders  have  been  punished  in  a  mutinous  word  ; 
others,  whose  suspected  felony  hath  paid  the  price  of  their  un- 
known rape.  O  God,  thy  judgments  are  just,  even  when  men's 
are  unjust ! 

Gideon's  young  son  is  bidden  to  revenge  the  death  of  his  uncles. 
His  sword  had  not  yet  learned  the  way  to  blood,  especially  of 
kings,  though  in  irons.  Deadly  executions  require  strength  both 
of  heart  and  face.  How  are  those  aged  in  evil,  that  can  draw 
their  swords  upon  the  lawfully  anointed  of  God  '. 

These  tyrants  plead  not  now  for  continuance  of  life,  but  for  the 
haste  of  their  death  ;  Fall  thou  upon  us.  Death  is  ever  accompa- 
nied with  pain,  which  it  is  no  marvel  if  we  wish  short.  We  do 
not  more  affect  protraction  of  an  easeful  life,  than  speed  in  our 
dissolution  ;  for  here  every  pang  that  tends  towaixls  death,  renews 
it.  To  lie  a  hour  under  death,  is  tedious  ;  but  to  be  dying  a  whole 
day,  we  think  above  the  strength  of  human  patience.  Oh,  what 
shall  we  then  conceive  of  that  death,  which  knows  no  end  ?  As 


abimelech's  USURPATION.  203 
this  life  is  no  less  frail  than  the  body  which  it  animates,  so  that 
death  is  no  less  eternal  than  the  soul  which  must  endure  it. 

For  us  to  be  dying  so  long  as  we  now  have  leave  to  live,  is  in- 
tolerable ;  and  yet  one  only  minute  of  that  other  tormenting  death, 
is  worse  than  an  age  of  this.  Oh  the  desperate  infidelity  of  care- 
less men,  that  shrink  at  the  thought  of  a  momentary  death,  and 
fear  not  eternal !  This  is  but  a  killing  of  the  body  ;  that  is  a  destruc- 
tion of  body  and  soul. 

Who  is  so  worthy  to  wear  the  crown  of  Israel,  as  he  that  won 
the  crown  from  Midian  ?  Their  usurpers  were  gone  ;  now  they 
are  headless.  It  is  a  doubt  whether  they  were  better  to  have  had 
no  kings,  or  tyrants.  They  sue  to  Gideon  to  accept  of  the  king- 
dom, and  are  repulsed  :  there  is  no  greater  example  of  modesty 
than  Gideon.  When  the  angel  spake  to  him,  he  abased  himself 
below  all  Israel ;  when  the  Ephraimites contended  with  him,  he  pre- 
fers their  gleanings  to  his  vintage,  and  casts  his  honour  at  their 
feet ;  and  now,  w  hen  Israel  proffers  him  that  kingdom  which  he 
had  merited,  he  refuses  it.  He,  that  in  overcoming  would  allow 
them  to  cry,  The  sword  of  the  Lord  and  of  Gideon,  in  governing^ 
will  have  none  but  the  sword  of  the  Lord. 

That  which  others  plot,  and  sue,  and  swear,  and  bribe  for,  Dig- 
nity and  Superioritv,  he  seriously  rejects;  whether  it  were,  for  that 
he  knew  God  had  not  yet  called  them  to  a  monarchy ;  or  rather, 
for  that  he  saw  the  crown  among  thorns.  What  do  we  ambitiously 
affect  the  command  of  these  mole-hills  of  earth,  when  wise  men 
have  refused  the  proffers  of  kingdoms?  Why  do  not  we  rather  la- 
bour for  that  kingdom,  which  is  free  from  all  cares,  from  all  uncer- 
tainty ? 

Yet  he,  that  refuses  their  crown,  calls  for  their  ear-rings;  al- 
though not  to  enrich  himself,  but  religion.  So  long  had  God  been 
a  stranger  to  Israel,  that  now  superstition  goes  current  for  devout 
worship.  It  were  pity  that  good  intentions  should  make  any  man 
wicked  ;  here  they  did  so.  Never  man  meant  better  than  Gideon 
in  his  rich  ephod  ;  yet  this  very  act  set  all  Israel  on  whoring  :  God 
had  chosen  a  place  and  a  service  of  his  own.  When  the  wit  of 
man  will  be  overpleasing  God  with  better  devices  than  his  own,  it 
turns  to  madness,  and  ends  in  mischief.  Judges  viii. 


ABIMELECH'S  USURPATION. 

Gideon  refused  the  kingdom  of  Israel  when  it  was  offered.  His 
seventy  sons  offered  not  to  obtain  that  sceptre,  which  their  father's 
victory  had  deserved  to  make  hereditary:  only  Abimclcch,  the  con- 
cubine's son,  sues  and  ambitiously  plots  for  it.  What  could  Abi- 
melech  see  in  himself,  that  he  should  overlook  all  his  brethren  ?  If 
he  look  to  his  father,  they  were  his  equals  ;  if  to  his  mother,  they 
were  his  betters.  Those,  that  are  most  unworthy  of  honour,  are 
hottest  in  the  chase  of  it ;  whilst  the  conscience  of  better  deserts 
bids  men  sit  still,  and  stay  to  be  either  importuned  or  neglected. 


204  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

There  can  be  no  greater  sign  of  unfitness,  than  vehement  suit. 
It  is  hard  to  say,  whether  there  be  more  pride  or  ignorance  in  am- 
bition. I  have  noted  this  difference  betwixt  spiritual  and  earthly 
honour,  and  the  clients  of  both  ;  we  cannot  be  worthy  of  the  one 
without  earnest  prosecution,  nor  with  earnest  prosecution  worthy 
of  the  other  :  the  violent  obtain  heaven  ;  only  the  meek  are  worthy 
to  inherit  the  earth. 

That  which  an  aspiring  heart  hath  projected,  it  will  find  both  ar- 
gument and  means  to  effect.  If  either  bribes  or  favour  will  carry 
i;,  the  proud  man  will  not  sit  out.  The  Shechemites  are  fit  bro- 
kers for  Abimelech  :  that  city,  which  once  betrayed  itself  to  utter 
depoipulatiaB  in  j'ielding  to  the  suit  of  Hamor,  now  betrays  itself 
arid  all  Israel  in  yielding  to  the  request  of  Abimelech.  By  them 
bin!;  this  usurper  made  himself  a  fairway  to  the  throne. 

It  was  an  easy  question,  "  Whether  will  ye  admit  of  the  sons  of 
Gideon  for  your  rulers,  or  of  strangers?  If  of  the  sons  of  Gideon, 
whet  of  all  or  one  ?  If  of  one,  whether  of  your  own  flesh  and 
blood,  or  of  others  unknown  ?"  To  cast  off  the  sons  of  Gideon  for 
strangers,  were  unthankful ;  to  admit  of  seventy  kings  in  one  small 
country,  were  unreasonable  ;  to  admit  of  any  other  rather  than 
their  own  kinsman,  were  unnatural.  Gideon's  sons  therefore  must 
rule  amongst  all  Israel ;  one  of  his  sons  amongst  those  seventy  } 
ana  who  should  be  that  one  but  Abimelech  ?  Natural  respects  are 
the  most  dangerous  corrupters  of  all  elections.  What  hope  can 
there  be  of  worthy  superiors  in  any  free  people,  where  nearness  of 
blood  carries  it  from  fitness  of  disposition  r  Whilst  they  say,  He  is 
our  brother,  they  arc  enemies  to  themselves  and  Israel, 

Fair  words  have  won  his  brethren  ;  they,  the  Shechemites :  the 
Shechemites  furnish  him  with  money  ;  money  with  men  :  his  men 
begin  with  murder;  and  now  Abimelech  reigns  alone:  flattery, 
bribes,  and  blood,  are  the  usual  stairs  of  the  ambitious.  The 
money  of  Baal  is  a  fit  hire  for  murderers  :  that,  which  idolatry  hath 
gathered,  is  fitly  spent  upon  treason  :  one  devil  is  ready  to  help 
another  in  mischief:  seldom  ever  are  ill  gotten  riches  better  employ- 
ed. It  is  no  wonder  if  he  that  hath  Baal  his  idol,  now  make  an 
idol  of  honour.  There  was  never  any  man  that  worshipped  but 
one  idol. 

Woe  be  to  them  that  lie.  in  the  way  of  the  aspiring  :  though 
they  be  brothers,  they  shall  bleed  ;  yea,  the  nearer  they  are,  the 
more  sure  is  their  ruin.  Who  would  not  now  think  that  Abimelech 
should  find  a  hell  in  his  breast,  after  so  barbarous  and  unnatural  a 
massacre  ?  and  yet  behold,  he  is  as  senseless  as  the  stone,  upon 
which  the  blood  of  his  seventy  brethren  was  spilt.  Where  ambi- 
tion hath  possest  itself  thoroughly  of  the  soul,  it  turns  the  heart  in- 
to steel,  and  makes  it  incapable  of  a  conscience  :  all  sins  will  easily 
down  with  the  man  that  is  resolved  to  rise. 

Only  Jotham  fell  not  at  that  fatal  stone  with  his  brethren.  It  is 
a  hard  battle  where  none  escapes.  He  escapes,  not  to  reign,  nor  to 
revenue;  but  to  be  a  prophet,  and  a  witness  of  the  vengeance  of 
God  upon  the  usurper,  upon  the  abettors;  he  lives  to  tell  Abimelech 


abimelech's  usurpation. 


205 


that  he  was  but  a  bramble ;  a  weed,  rather  than  a  tree:  a  right 
bramble  indeed,  that  grew  but  out  of  the  base  hedgerow  of  a  con- 
cubine ;  that  could  not  lift  up  his  head  from  the  earth,  unless  ho 
were  supported  by  some  bush  or  pale  of  Shechem  ;  that  had  laid 
hold  of  the  fleece  of  Israel,  and  had  drawn  blood  of  all  his  bre- 
thren ;  and  lastly,  that  had  no  substance  in  him,  but  the  sap  of 
vain-glory  and  the  pricks  of  cruelty,  it  was  better  than  a  kingdom 
to  him,  out  of  his  obscure  bier,  to  see  the  tire  out  of  this  bramble 
to  consiime  those  trees:  the  view  of  God's  revenge,  is  so  much 
more  pleasing  to  a  good  heart  than  his  own,  by  how  much  it  is  more 
just  and  full. 

There  was  never  such  a  pattern  of  unthankfulness,  as  these  Is- 
raelites: they,  which  lately  thought  a  kingdom  too  small  recompence 
for  Gideon  and  his  sons,  now  think  it  too  muchfor  his  seed  to  live; 
and  take  life  away  from  the  sons  of  him,  that  gave  them  hoi  h  Me 
and  liberty.  Yet  if  this  had  been  some  hundred  of  years  after, 
when  time  had  worn  out  the  memory  of  Jerubbaal,  it  might  have 
borne  a  better  excuse.  No  man  can  hope  to  hold  pace  with  time  : 
the  best  names  may  not  think  scorn,  to  be  unknown  to  following 
generations;  but,  ere  their  deliverer  was  cold  in  his  coffin,  to  pay 
his  benefits,  which  deserved  to  be  everlasting,  with  the  extirpation 
of  his  posterity,  it  was  more  than  savage.  What  can  be  looked 
for  from  idolaters  ?  If  a  man  have  cast  off  his  God,  he  will  easily 
cast  off  his  friends  :  when  religion  is  once  gone,  humanity  will  not 
stay  long  after. 

That  which  the  people  were  punished  afterwards  for  but  desir- 
ing, he  en  joys.  Now  is  Abimelech  seated  in  the  throne  which  his  fa- 
ther refused,  and  no  rival  is  seen  to  envy  his  peace.  But  how  Jong 
will  this  glorv  last  ?  Stay  but  three  years,  and  ve  shall  see  this  bram- 
ble withered  and  burnt.  The  prosperity  of  the  Wicked  is  short 
and  fickle.  A  stolen  crown,  though  it  may  look  fair,  cannot  be 
made  of  any  but  brittle  stuff.  All  life  is  uncurtain;  but  wicked- 
ness overruns  nature. 

The  evil  spirit  thrust  himself  into  the  plot  of  Abimelech's  usur- 
pation and  murder,  and  wrought  witli  the  Shechemites  for  both  ; 
and  now  God  sends  the  evil  spirit  betwixt  Abimelech  and  the  She- 
chemites, to  work  the  ruin  of  each  other.  The  first  could  not 
have  been  without  God  ;  but  in  the  second,  God  challenges  a  part  : 
revenge  is  his,  where  the  sin  is  ours.  It  had  been  pity  that  the 
Shechemites  should  have  been  plagued  by  any  other  hand  than 
Abimelech's:  they  raised  him  unjustly  to  the  throne  ;  they  arc  the 
first  that  feel  the  weight  of  his  sceptre.  The  foolish  bird  limes 
herself  with  that  which  grew  from  her  own  excretion  :  who  won- 
ders to  see  the  kind  peasant  stung  with  his  own  snake  ? 

The  breach  begins  at  Shechem:  his  own  countrymen  fly  off 
from  their  promised  allegiance.  Though  all  Israel  should  have 
fallen  off  from  Abimelech,  yet  they  of  Shechem  should  have  stuck 
close  :  it  was  their  act,  they  ought  to  have  made  it  good.  How 
should  good  princes  be  honoured,  when  even  Abimelcchs  once  set- 
tled, cannot  be  opposed  with  safety  !  Now  they  begin  to  revolt  to 


206 


CONTEMPLATIONS, 


the  rest  of  Israel :  yet,  if  tins  had  been  done  out  of  repentance, 
it  had  been  praiseworthy  ;  but  to  be  done  out  of  a  treacherous  incon- 
stancy, was  unworthy  oi'  Israelites. 

How  could  Abimelech  hope  for  fidelity  of  them,  whom  he  had 
made  and  found  traitors  to  his  father^  blood  ?  No  man  knows  how 
to  be  .sure  of  him  that  is  unconscionable:  he,  that  hath  been  un- 
faithful to  one,  knows  the  waj-  to  be  perfidious  ;  and  is  only  fit  for 
his  trust,  that  is  worthy  to  be  deceived  ;  whereas  faithfulness,  be- 
sides the  present  good,  lays  a  ground  of  further  assurance.  The 
friendship  that  is  begun  in  evil  cannot  stand  :  wickedness,  both  of 
its  own  nature,  and  through  the  curse  of  God,  is  ever  unsteady  ; 
and  though  there  be  not  a  disagreement  in  hell  (being  but  the 
place  of  retribution,  not  of  action)  yet  on  earth  there  is  no  peace 
among  the  wicked  ;  whereas  that  affection  which  is  knit  in  God  is 
indissoluble. 

If  the  men  of  Shechem  had  abandoned  their  false  god  with  their 
false  king,  and,  out  of  a  serious  remorse  and  desire  of  satisfaction 
for  their  idolatry  and  blood,  had  opposed  this  tvrant  and  preferred 
Jotham  to  his  throne,  there  might  have  been  both  warrant  for  their 
quarrel  and  hope  of  success  ;  but  now,  if  Abimelech  be  a  wicked 
usurper,  yet  the  Shechemites  are  idolatrous  traitors.  How  could 
they  think,  that  God  would  rather  revenge  Abimelech's  bloody  in- 
trusion by  them,  than  their  treachery  and  idolatry  by  Abimelech  ? 
When  the  quarrel  is  betwixt  God  and  Satan,  there  is  no  doubt  of 
the  issue  ;  but  when  one  devil  fights  with  another,  what  certainty 
is  there  of  the  victory  r  Though  the  cause  of  God  had  been  good, 
yet  it  had  been  safe  for  them  to  look  to  themselves  :  the  unworthi- 
uess  of  the  agent  many  times  curses  a  good  enterprize. 

No  sooner  is  a  secret  dislike  kindled  in  any  people  against  their 
governors,  than  there  is  a  Gaal  ready  to  blow  the  coals.  It  were 
a  wonder  if  ever  any  faction  should  want  a  head  ;  as  contrarily, 
never  any  man  was  so  ill,  as  not  to  have  some  favourers.  Abime- 
lech hath  a  Zebul  in  the  midst  of  Shechem  :  lightly,  all  treasons 
are  betrayed  even  with  some  of  their  own  :  his  intelligence  brings 
the  sword  of  Abimelech  upon  Shechem,  who  now  hath  demolished 
the  city  and  sown  it  with  salt.  Oh  the  just  successions  of  the  re- 
venges of  God  !  Gideon's  ephod  is  punished  with  the  blood  of  his 
sons  ;  the  blood  of  his  sons  is  shed  by  the  procurement  of  the 
Shechemites  ;  the  blood  of  the  Shechemites  is  shed  by  Abimelech  ; 
the  blood  of  Abimelech  is  spilt  by  a  woman.  The  retaliations  of 
God  are  sure  and  just,  and  make  a  more  due  pedigree  than  de- 
scent of  nature. 

The  pursued  Shechemites  fly  to  the  house  of  their  god  Berith  : 
now  they  are  safe  :  that  place  is  at  once  a  fort  and  a  sanctuary. 
Whither  should  we  fly  in  our  distress  but  to  our  God  ?  And  now 
this  refuge  shall  teach  them  what  a  God  they  have  served.  The 
jealous  God  whom  they  had  forsaken  hath  them  now  where  he 
would,  and  rejoices  at  once  to  be  avenged  of  their  god  and  them. 
Had  they  not  made  the  house  of  Baal  their  shelter,  they  had  not 
died  so  "fearfully.    Now,  according  to  the  prophecy  of  Jotham,  a 


abimelech's  usurpation. 


207 


fife  goes  out  of  the  bramble  and  consumes  these  cedars,  and  their 
eternal  flames  begin  in  the  house  of  their  Berith  :  the  confusion 
of  wicked  men  rises  out  of  the  false  deities  which  they  have  doted  on. 

Of  all  the  conspirators  against  Gideon's  sons,  only  Abimelech  yet 
survives,  and  his  dav  is  now  coming.  His  success  against  Shechera 
hath  filled  his  heart  with  thoughts  of  victory.  He  hath  caged  up 
the  inhabitants  of  Thebez  within  their"  tower  also;  and  what  re- 
mains for  them,  but  the  same  end  with  their  neighbours  ?  And  be- 
hold, while  his  hand  is  busy  in  putting  fire  to  the  door  of  their 
tower,  which  yet  was  not  high  (for  then  he  could  not  have  dis- 
cerned a  woman  to  be  his  executioner)  a  stone  from  a  woman's 
hand  strikes  his  head.  His  pain  in  dying  was  not  so  much,  as  his 
indignation  to  know  bv  whom  he  died  ;  and  rather  will  he  die 
twice,  than  a  woman  shall  kill  him.  If  God  had  not  known  his  sto- 
mach so  big,  he  had  not  vexed  him  with  the  impotency  of  his  vic- 
tor :  God  finds  a  time  to  reckon  with  wicked  men,  for  all  the  ar- 
rearages of  their  sins.  Our  sins  are  not  more  our  debts  to  God, 
than  his  judgments  are  his  debts  to  our  sins  ;  which  at  last  he  will 
be  sure  to  pay  home. 

There  now  lies  the  greatness  of  Abimelech ;  upon  one  stone  had 
he  slain  his  seventy  brethren,  and  now  a  stone  slays  hint ;  his  head 
had  stolen  the  crown  of  Israel,  and  now  his  head  is  smitten  :  and 
what  is  Abimelech  better  that  he  was  a  king  ?  What  difference  is 
there  between  him  and  any  of  his  seventy  brethren  whom  he  mur- 
dered, save  only  in  guiltiness  ?  They  bear  but  their  own  blood; 
he,  the  weight  of  all  theirs.  How  happy  a  thing  is  it  to  live  well ! 
that  our  death,  as  it  is  certain,  so  may  be  comfortable:  what  a 
vanity  is  it  to  insult  in  the  death  of  them,  whom  we  must  follow 
the  same  way ! 

The  tyrant  hath  his  payment ;  and  that  time,  which  he  should 
have  bestowed  in  calling  for  mercy  to  God,  and  washing  his  soul 
with  the  last  tears  of  contrition,  he  vainly  spends  in  deprecating 
an  idle  reproach  ;  Kill  me,  that  it  may  not  be  said  he  died  by  a  uh>- 
man:  a  fit  conclusion  for  such  a  life.  The  expectation  of  true 
and  endless  torment  doth  not  so  much  vex  him,  as  the  frivolous  re- 
port of  a  dishonour  ;  neither  is  he  so  much  troubled  with  "  Abi- 
melech is  frying  in  hell,'1  as  "Abimelech  is  slain  by  a  woman."  So, 
vain  fools  are  niggardly  of  their  reputation,  and  prodigal  of  their 
souls :  do  we  not  see  them  run  wilfully  into  the  field,  into  the  grave, 
into  hell  ?  and  all,  lest  it  should  be  said,  "  They  have  but  as 
much  fear  as  wit."  Judges  ix. 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 

BOOK  X. 


TO  THE  RIGHT  HONOURABLE,  MY  SINGULAR  GOOD  LORD, 

SIR  HENRY  DANVERS,  KNT. 

BARON  OF  DANTESEY, 
A  WORTHY  PATTERN  OF  ALL  TRUE  NOBILITY* 

ACCOMPLISHED    BOTH  FOR  WAR  AND  PEACE, 
A  MUNIFICENT  FAVOURER  OF  ALL  TRUE  LEARNING  AND  VIRTUE; 

J.  H. 

WITH  HUMBLE  APPRECATION  OF  ALL  TRUE  HAPPINESS, 
DEDICATES  THIS  PART  OF  HIS  POOR  LABOURS. 


JEPHTHAH. 

Israel,  that  had  now  long  gone  a  whoring  from  God,  hath  been 
punished  by  the  regiment  of  the  concubine's  son,  and  at  last  seeks 
protection  from  the  son  of  a  harlot :  it  is  no  small  misery  to  be 
obliged  unto  the  unworthy.  The  concubine's  son  made  suit  to 
them ;  they  make  suit  to  the  son  of  the  harlot.  It  was  no  fault  of 
Jephthah  that  he  had  an  ill  mother,  yet  is  he  branded  with  the  indig- 
nity of  his  bastardy  ;  neither  would  God  conceal  this  blemish  of  na- 
ture, which  Jephthah  could  neither  avoid  nor  remedy.  God,  to  shew 
his  detestation  of  whoredom,  revenges  it  not  only  upon  the  actors, 
but  upon  their  issue:  hence  he  hath  shut  out  the  base  son  from  the 
congregation  of  Israel  to  the  tenth  generation,  that  a  transient  evil 
might  have  a  during  reproach  attending  it ;  and  that  after  the 
death  of  the  adulterer,  yet  his  shame  might  live.  But,  that  God, 
who  justly  ties  men  to  his  laws,  will  not  abide  that  we  should  tie 
him  to  our  laws,  or  his  own  :  he  can  both  rectify  and  ennoble  the 
blood  of  Jephthah.  That  no  man  should  be  too  much  discouraged 
with  the  errors  of  his  propagation,  even  the  base  son  of  man  may  be 
the  lawfully  begotten  of  God  ;  and  though  he  be  cast  out  from  the 
inheritance  of  his  brethren  upon  earth,  may  be  admitted  to  the 
kingdom  of  Israel. 

I  hear  no  praise  of  the  lawful  issue  of  Gilead  ;  only  this  mis-be 
gotten  son  is  commended  for  his  valour,  and  set  at  the  stern  of  Is- 


JEPHTHAH. 


209 


rael :  the  common  gifts  of  God  respect  not  the  parentage  of  blood, 
but  are  indifferently  scattered  where  lie  pleases  to  let  them  fall. 
Tht\  choice  of  the  Almighty  is  not  guided  by  our  rules  ;  as  in  spi- 
ritual, so  in  earthly  things,  it  is  not  in  him  that  willeth.  If  God 
would  have  men  glory  in  these  outward  privileges,  he  would  be- 
stow them  upon  none  but  the  worthy. 

Now,  who  can  be  proud  of  strength  or  greatness,  when  he  see3 
him  that  is  not  so  honest,  yet  is  more  valiant,  and  more  advanced? 
Had  not  Jephthah  been  base,  he  had  not  been  thrust  out ;  and  if  he 
had  not  been  thrust  out  from  his  brethren,  he  had  never  been  the 
captain  of  Israel.  By  contrary  paces  to  ours,  it  pleaseth  God  to 
come  to  his  own  ends  :  and  how  usually  doth  he  look  the  contrary 
way,  to  that  he  moves  ?  No  man  can  measure  the  conclusion  of 
God's  act  by  his  beginning:  he,  that  fetches  good  out  of  evil,  raises 
the  glory  of  men  out  of  their  ruin.  Men  love  to  go  the  nearest 
way,  and  often  fail ;  God  commonly  goes  about,  and  in  his  own 
time  conies  surely  home. 

The  Gileaclites  were  not  so  forward  to  ex  pel  Jephthah,  as  glad  to 
recalhim:  no  Ammonite  threatened  them  when  they  parted  with 
such  a  helper  ;  now,  whom  they  cast  out  in  their  peacc^they  fetch 
home  in  their  danger  and  misery.  That  God,  who  never  gave 
aught  in  vain,  will  find  a  time  to  make  use  of  any  gift  that  he  hath 
bestowed  upon  men  :  the  valour  of  Jephthah  shall  not  rust  in  his  se- 
crecy, but  be  employed  to  the  common  preservation  of  Israel.  Ne- 
cessity will  drive  us  to  seek  up  all  our  helps,  even  those  whom  our 
wantonness  hath  despised. 

How  justly  are  the  suits  of  our  need,  upbraided  with  the  errors 
of  our  prosperity  !  The  elders  of  Gilead  now  hear  of  their  ancient 
wrong,  and  dare  not  find  fault  with  their  eKprobration  ;  Didye  not 
hate  me,  and  expel  vie  out  of  my  father's  house  %  How  then  come 
ye  now  to  vie,  in  time  of  tribulation  ?  The  same  expostulation 
that  Jephthah  makes  with  Gilead,  God  also  at  the  same  time  makes 
with  Israel  ;  Ye  have  forsaken  vie,  and  served  other  gods ;  where- 
fore should  /deliver you  any  more?  Go  and  cry  unto  the  gods  whom 
ye  have  served.  As  we,  so  God  also  rinds  it  seasonable,  to  tell  his 
children  of  their  faults,  while  he  is  whipping  them.  It  is  a  safe  and 
wise  course,  to  make  much  of  those  in  our  peace,  whom  we  must 
make  use  of  in  our  extremity;  else  it  is  but  just,  that  we  should 
be  rejected  of  those,  whom  we  have  rejected. 

Can  we  look  for  an y  other  answer  from  God  than  this  ?  "  Did 
ye  not  drive  me  out  of  your  houses,  out  of  your  hearts,  in  the  time 
of  your  health  and  jollity  ?  Did  ye  not  plead  the  strictness  of  my 
charge,  and  the  weight  of  my  yoke  ?  Did  not  your  wilful  sins  ex- 
pel me  from  your  souls  }  What  do  you  now  crouching  and  creep- 
ing to  me  in  the  evil  day  ?'!  Surely,  O  God,  it  is  but  justice,  if 
thou  be  not  found  of  those  which  were  glad  to  lose  thee  ;  it  is  thy 
mercy,  if,  after  many  checks  and  delays,  thou  wilt  be  found  at 
last.  Where  an  act  cannot  be  reversed,  there  is  no  amends  but 
confession  ;  and  if  God  himself  take  up  with  this  satisfaction, 
He  that  confesses  shall  find  mercy ;  how  much  more  should  men 

VOL.  I.  p 


210  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

hold  themselves  well  paid  with  words  of  humility  and  depreca- 
tion !  i 

Jephthah's  wisdom  had  not  been  answerable  to  his  valour,  ifhehad 
not  made  his  match  before-hand.  He  could  not  but  know  how 
treacherously  Israel  had  dealt  with  Gideon.  We  cannot  make  too 
sure  work,  when  we  have  to  do  with  unfaithful  men.  It  hath  been 
an  old  policy,  to  serve  ourselves  of  men  ;  and  after  our  advantage, 
to  turn  them  up.  He  bargains  therefore  for  his  sovereignty,  ere 
he  win  it  ;  Shall  I  be  your  head  ?  We  are  all  naturally  ambitious, 
and  are  ready  to  buy  honour  even  with  hazard.  And  if  the  hope 
of  a  troublesome  Superiority  encouraged  Jephthah  to  fight  against  the 
forces  of  Amnion,  what  heart  should  we  take  in  the  battles  of  God 
against  spiritual  wickednesses,  when  the  God  of  heaven  hath  said, 
2o  him  that  overcomes,  will  I  give  power  over  nations,  and  to  sit 
•with  vie  on  my  throne  ?  Oh  that  we  could  bend  our  eyes  upon 
the  rccompcnce  of  our  reward ;  how  willingly  should  we  march 
forward  against  these  mighty  Ammonites!  Jephthah  is  noted  for  his 
valour;  and  yet  he  intreats  with  Ammon,  ere  he  fights.  To  make 
war  any  other  than  our  last  remedy,  is  not  courage,  but  cruelty  and 
rashness  :  and  now,  when  reason  will  not  prevail,  he  betakes  him- 
self to  his  sword. 

As  God  began  the  war  with  Jephthah,  in  raising  up  his  heart  to  that 
pitch  of  fortitude  ;  so  Jephthah  began  his  war  at  God,  in  craving 
victory  from  him,  and  pouring  out  his  vow  to  him  :  his  hand  took 
hold  of  his  sword  ;  his  heart  of  God  :  therefore  he,  whom  the  Old 
Testament  styles  valiant,  the  New  styles  faithful ;  he,  who  is  com- 
mended for  his  strength,  dares  trust  in  none,  but  the  arm  of  God; 
If  thou  wilt  give  the  Ammonites  into  my  hand.  If  Jephthah  had  not 
looked  upward  for  his  victory,  in  vain  had  the  Gileadites  looked  up 
to  him.  This  is  the  disposition  of  all  good  hearts  ;  they  look  to 
their  sword  or  their  bow,  as  servants,  not  as  patrons  ;  and  whilst 
they  use  them,  trust  to  God.  If  we  could  do  so  in  all  our  busi- 
nesses, we  should  have  both  more  joy  in  their  success,  and  less  dis- 
comfort in  their  miscarriage. 

It  was  his  zeal  to  vow  ;  it  was  his  sin  to  vow  rashly.  Jacob,  his 
forefather,  of  whom  he  learned  to  vow,  might  have  taught  him  a 
better  form  ;  If  God  will  be  with  me,  then  shall  the  Lord  be  my 
God.  It  is  well  wit;h  vows,  when  the  thing  promised  makes  the 
promise  good  ;  but  when  Jephthah  says,  Whatsoever  thing  comelh 
out  of  the  doors  of  my  house,  shall  be  the  Lord's,  or  I  will  offer  it 
for  a  burnt  sacrifice;  his  devotion  is  blind,  and  his  good  affection 
overruns  his  judgment ;  for  what  if  a  dog,  or  a  swine,  or  an  ass  had 
met  him  ?  where  had  been  the  promise  of  his  consecration  ? 

Vows  are  as  they  are  made.  Like  unto  scents,  if  they  be  of  ill 
composition,  nothing  offends  more  ;  if  well  tempered,  nothing 
is  more  pleasant.  Either  certainty  of  evil,  or  uncertainty  of  good, 
or  impossibility  of  performance,  makes  vows  no  service  to  God. 
When  we  vow  what  We  cannot,  or  what  we  ought  not  to  do,  we  mock 
God  instead  of  honouring  him.  It  is  a  vain  thing  for  to  go  about 
to  catch  God  hoodwinked.  The  conscience  shall  never  find  peace 
in  any  way,  but  that  which  we  see  before  us,  and  which  we  know 


Jephthah.  211 

safe,  both  in  the  kind  and  circumstances.  There  is  no  comfort  in 
"  Peradventure,  I  may  please  God." 

What  good  child  will  not  take  part  of  the  parent's  joy  ?  If  Jeph- 
than  return  with  trophies,  it  is  no  marvel  if  his  daughter  meet  him 
with  timbrels  :  Oh  that  we  could  be  so  affected  with  the  glorious 
acts  of  our  heavenly  Father !  Thou  subduest  thine  enemies,  and 
mightily  dcliverest  thy  people,  O  God  ;  a  song  waiteth  for  thee 
in  Sion. 

Who  would  have  suspected  danger  in  a  dutiful  triumph  ?  Well 
might  Jephthah's  daughter  have  thought  ;  "  My  sex  forbade  me  to 
do  any  thing  towards  the  help  of  my  father's  victory  ;  I  can  do  lit- 
tle, if  I  cannot  applaud  it  :  if  nature  have  made  me  weak,  yet 
not  unthankful ;  nothing  forbids  my  joy  to  be  as  strong  as  the  vic- 
tor's :  though  I  might  not  go  out  with  my  father  to  fight,  yet  I 
may  meet  him  with  gratulations ;  a  timbrel  may  become  these  hands 
which  were  unfit  for  a  sword;  this  day  hath  made  me  the  daugh- 
ter of  the  head  of  Israel;  this  day  hath  made  both  Israel  free,  my  fa- 
ther a  conqueror,  and  myself  in  him  noble  :  and  shall  my  affection 
make  no  difference  i ?  What  must  my  father  needs  think,  if  he  shall 
find  me  sitting  sullenly  at  home,  while  all  Israel  strives  who  shall 
run  first  to  bless  him  with  their  acclamations  ?  Should  I  only  be 
insensible  of  his  and  the  common  happiness  ? 

And  now,  behold  when  she  looks  most  for  thanks,  her  father  an- 
swers the  measures  of  her  feet  with  the  knockings  of  his  breast, 
and  weeps  at  her  music,  and  tears  his  clothes,  to  look  upon  her 
whom  he  best  loved  ;  and  gives  no  answer  to  her  timbrels,  but  Alast 
my  daughter,  thou  art  one  of  them  that  trouble  me  :  her  joy  alone 
hath  changed  tiie  day,  and  lost  the  comfort  of  that  victorv,  which 
she  enjoyed  to  see  won.  It  falls  out  often,  that  those  times  and 
occasions  which  promise  most  contentment,  prove  most  dole- 
ful in  the  issue  :  the  heart  of  this  virgin  was  never  lifted  up  so  high 
as  now,  neither  did  any  day  of  her  life  seem  happy  but  this  ;  and 
this  only  proves  the  day  of  her  solemn  and  pex-petual  mourning  : 
as  contrarily,  the  times  and  events  which  we  have  most  distrusted, 
prove  most  beneficial.  It  is  good,  in  a  fair  morning  to  think  of 
that  storm  that  may  arise  ere  night,  and  to  enjoy  both  good  and 
evil  fearfully. 

Miserable  is  that  devotion  which  troubles  us  in  the  performance  ; 
nothing  is  more  pleasant  than  the  acts  of  true  piety  ;  Jephthahmight 
well  see  the  wrong  of  this  religion,  in  the  distaste  of  it ;  yet,  while 
himself  had  troubled  his  daughter,  he  says,  Alas,  my  daughter, 
thou  art  of  them  that  trouble  vie  :  she  did  but  her  dutv ;  he  did 
what  he  should  not ;  yet  he  would  be  rid  of  the  blame,  though  he 
cannot  of  the  smart.  No  man  is  willing  to  own  a  sin  ;  the  first  man 
shifted  it  from  himself  to  his  wife  ;  this,  from  himself  to  his  daugh- 
ter :  he  was  ready  to  accuse  another,  which  only  committed  it 
himself.  It  were  happy,  if  we  could  be  as  loath  to  commit  sin,  as 
to  acknowledge  it. 

The  inconsideration  of  this  vow  was  very  rough,  and  settled  ;  I 
have  opened  my  mouth,  and  cannot  go  back.  If  there  were  just 
cause  to  repent,  it  was  the  weakness  of  his  zeal,  to  think  that  avenv 


212  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

could  bind  liim  to  evil  :  an  unlawful  vow  is  ill  made,  but  worse 
performed.  It  wore  pity  this  constancy  should  light  upon  any  but 
a  holy  object.  No  loan  can  make  a  truer  debt  than  our  vow  ; 
which  if  we  pay  not  in  our  performance,  God  will  pay  us  with 
judgment.  We  have  all  opened  our  mouths  to  God  in  that  initial 
and  solemn  vow  of  Christianity  ;  Oh  that  we  could  not  go  back  ! 
So  much  more  is  our  vow  obligatory,  by  how  much  the  thing  vow- 
ed is  more  necessary. 

Why  was  the  soul  of  Jephthah  thus  troubled,  but  because  he  saw 
the  entail  of  his  new  honour  thus  suddenly  cut  off?  He  saw  the 
hope  of  posterity  extinguished,  in  the  virginity  of  his  daughter. 
It  is  natural  to  us,  to  affect  that  perpetuity  in  our  succession, 
which  is  denied  us  in  our  persons  :  our  very  bodies  would  emu- 
late the  eternity  of  the  soul.  And  if  God  have  built  any  of  us  a 
house  on  earth,  as  well  ns  prepared  us  a  house  in  heaven,  it  must 
be  confessed  a  favour  worth  our  thankfulness;  but  as  the  perpe- 
tuity of  our  earthly  houses  is  uncertain,  so  let  us  not  rest  our 
hearts  upon  that,  but  make  sure  of  the  house  which  is  eternal  in 
the  heavens. 

Doubtless,  the  goodness  of  the  daughter  added  to  the  father's 
sorrow  She  was  not  more  loving  than  religious  ;  neither  is  she 
less  willing  to  be  the  Lord's,  than  her  father's :  and  as  provoking 
her  father  to  that  which  he  thought  piety,  though  to  her  own 
wrong,  she  says,  If  thou  hast  opened  thy  mouth  tnito  the  Lord,  do 
with  vie  as  thou  hast  promised.  Many  a  daughter  would  have  dis- 
suaded her  father  with  tears,  and  would  have  wished  rather  her  fa- 
ther's impiety  than  her  own  prejudice  ;  she  sues  for  the  smart  of 
her  father's  vow.  How  obsequious  should  children  be  to  the  will 
of  their  careful  parents,  even  in  their  final  disposition  in  the  world, 
when  they  see  this  holy  maid  willing  to  abandon  the  world  upon 
the  rash  vow  of  a  father  !  They  are  the  living  goods  of  their  pa- 
rents, and  must  therefore  wait  upon  the  bestowing  of  their  owners. 
They  mistake  themselves,  which  think  they  are  their  own  :  if  this 
maid  had  vowed  herself  to  God  without  her  father,  it  had  been  in 
his  power  to  abrogate  it  ;  but  now  that  he  vowed  her  to  God  with- 
out herself,  it  stands  in  force.  lint  what  shall  we  say  to  those  chil- 
dren, whom  their  parents' vow  and  care  cannot  make  so  much  as 
honest;  that  will  be  no  other  than  godless,  in  spite  of  their  bap- 
tism and  education  ?  what,  but  that  they  are  given  their  parents  for 
a  curse,  and  shall  one  day  find  what  it  is  to  be  rebellious  ? 

All  her  desire  is,  that  she  may  have  leave  to  bewail  that  which 
she  must  be  forced  to  keep,  her  virginity  :  if  she  had  not  held  it 
an  affliction,  there  had  been  no  cause  to  bewail  it ;  it  had  been  no 
thank  to  undergo  it,  if  she  had  not  known  it  to  be  a  cross.  Tears 
are  no  argument  of  impatience  ;  we  may  mourn  for  that  we  repine 
not  to  bear.  How  comes  that  to  be  a  meritorious  virtue  under  the 
Gospel,  which  was  but  a  punishment  under  the  Law  P  The  daugh- 
ters of  Israel  had  been  too  lavish  of  their  tears,  if  virginity  hod 
T)een  absolutely  good :  what  injury  should  it  have  been  to  lament 
that  spiritual  preferment,  which  they  should  rather  have  emulated? 

While  Jephthah/ s  daughter  was  two  months  in  the  mountains,  she 


SAMSON  CONCEIVED. 


213 


might  have  had  good  opportunity  to  escape  her  father's  vow  ;  but 
as  one,  whom  her  obedience  tied  as  close  to  her  father,  as  his  vow 
tied  him  to  God,  she  returns  to  take  up  that  burden,  which  she  had 
bew  ailed  to  foresee  :  if  we  be  truly  dutiful  to  our  Father  in  hea- 
ven, we  would  not  slip  our  necks  out  of  the  yoke  though  we 
might;  nor  fly  from  his  commands  though  the  door  were  open. 

Judges  xt. 

SAMSON  CONCEIVED. 

Of  extraordinary  persons,  the  very  birth  and  conception  is  extra- 
ordinarv.  God  begins  his  wonders  betimes,  in  those  whom  he  will 
make  wonderful.  There  was  never  any  of  those  which  were  mira- 
culously conceived,  whose  lives  were  not  notable  and  singular. 
The  presages  of  the  womb  and  the  cradle  are  commonly  answered 
in  the  life  :  it  is  not  the  use  of  God  to  cast  away  strange  begin- 
nings. If  Manoah's  wife  had  not  been  barren,  the  angel  had  not 
been  sent  to  her  :  afflictions  have  this  advantage,  that  they  occa» 
sion  God  to  shew  that  mercy  to  us,  whereof  the  prosperous  are 
incapable  ;  it  would  not  beseem  a  mother  to  be  so  indulgent  to 
a  healthful  child,  as  to  a  sick.  It  was  to  the  woman  that  the  an- 
gel appeared,  not  to  the  husband  ;  whether  for  that  the  reproach 
of  barrenness  lay  upon  her  more  heavily  than  on  the  father,  or  for 
that  the  birth  of  the  child  should  cost  her  more  dear  than  her  hus- 
band, or  lastly  for  that  the  difficulty  of  this  news  was  more  in  her 
conception  than  in  his  generation  :  as  Satan  lays  his  batteries  ever 
to  the  weakest,  so  contrarily,  God  addressed)  his  comforts  to  those 
hearts  that  have  most  need  ;  as  at  the  first,  because  Eve  had  most 
reason  to  be  dejected,  for  that  her  sin  had  drawn  man  into  the 
transgression,  therefore  the  cordial  of  God  most  respecteth  her  ; 
The  seed  of  the  woman  shall  break  the  serpcnCs  head. 

As  a  physician  first  tells  the  state  of  the  disease  with  his  symp- 
toms, and  then  prescribes  ;  so  doth  the  angel  of  God,  first  tell  the 
wife  of  Manoah  her  complaint,  then  her  remedy;  Thou  art  barren. 
All  our  afflictions  are  more  noted  of  that  God  which  sends  them, 
than  of  the  patient  that  suffers  them:  how  can  it  be  but  less  possi- 
ble to  endure  any  thing  that  he  knows  not,  than  that  he  inflicteth 
-it  not?  He  saitU  to  one,  "  Thou  art  sick  ;"  to  another,  "  Thou 
art  poor  j"  to  a  third,  "  Thou  art  defamed  ;"  "  Thou  art  oppress- 
ed," to  another  :  that  all-seeing  eve  bikes  notice  from  heaven  of 
every  man's  condition,  no  less  than  if  lie  should  send  an  angel  to 
tell  us  he  knew  it :  his  knowledge  compared  with  his  mercy,  is  the 
just  comfort  of  all  our  sufferings.  O  God,  we  are  many  times  mi- 
serable, and  feel  it  not ;  thou  knowest  even  those  sorrows  which 
we  might  have  ;  thou  knowest  what  thou  hast  done  :  do  what  thou 
wilt. 

Thou  art  barren.  Not  that  the  angel  would  upbraid  the  poor 
woman  with  her  affliction  ;  but  therefore  he  names  her  pain,  that 
the  mention  of  her  cure  might  be  so  much  more  welcome  :  com- 
fort shall  come  un-  asfuiably  to  that  heart,  which  is  not  apprehen- 


214 


CONTEMPLATION. 


sive  of  his  own  sorrow  :  we  must  first  know  our  evils,  ere  we  can 
quit  them.  It  is  the  just  method  of  every  true  angel  of  God,  first 
to  let  us  see  that  whereof  either  we  do  or  should  complain,  and 
then  to  apply  comforts ;  like  as  a  good  physician  first  pulls  down 
the  body,  and  then  raises  it  with  cordials.  If  we  cannot  abide  to 
hear  of  our  faults,  we  are  not  capable  of  amendment, 

If  the  angel  had  first  said,  Thou  shalt.  conceive,  and  not  pre- 
mised, Thou  art  barren,  I  doubt  whether  she  had  conceived  faith 
in  her  soul,  of  that  infant  which  her  bod)'  should  conceive  ;  now, 
his  knowledge  of  her  present  estate,  makes  way  for  the  assurance 
of  the  future.  Thus  ever  it  pleases  our  good  God,  to  leave  a 
pawn  of  his  fidelity  with  us ;  that  we  should  not  distrust  him  in 
what  he  will  do,  when  we  find  him  faithful  in  that  which  we  see 
done. 

It  is  good  reason,  that  he,  which  gives  the  son  to  the  barren  mo- 
ther, should  dispose  of  him  and  diet  him,  both  in  the  womb  first 
and  after  in  the  world.  The  mother  must  first  be  a  Nazarite,  that 
her  son  may  be  so.  While  she  was  barren,  she  might  drink  what 
she  would  ;  but  now,  that  she  shall  conceive  a  Samson,  her  choice 
must  be  limited.  There  is  a  holy  austerity  that  ever  follows  the 
special  calling  of  God  :  the  worldling  may  take  his  full  scope,  and 
deny  his  back  and  belly  nothing  ;  but  he,  that  hath  once  conceived 
that  blessed  burthen,  whereof  Samson  was  a  type,  must  be  strict 
and  severe  to  himself ;  neither  his  tongue,  nor  his  palate,  nor  his 
hand,  may  run  riot :  those  pleasures,  which  seemed  not  unseemly 
for  the  multitude,  are  now  debarred  him. 

We  borrow  more  names  of  our  Saviour  than  one  ;  as  we  are 
Christians,  so  we  are  Nazarites  ;  the  consecration  of  our  God  is 
upon  our  heads,  and  therefore  our  very  hair  should  be  holy.  Our 
appetite  must  be  curbed,  our  passions  moderated,  and  so  estranged 
from  the  world,  that  in  the  loss  of  parents  or  children,  nature  may 
not  make  us  forget  grace.  What  doth  the  looseness  of  vain  men 
persuade  them  that  God  is  not  curious,  when  the)'  see  him  thus 
precisely  ordering  the  very  diet  of  his  Nazarites  ? 

Nature  pleads  for  liberty  ;  religion  for  restraint :  not  that  there 
is  more  uncleanness  in  the  grape,  than  in  the  fountain ;  but  that 
wine  finds  more  uncleanness  in  us  than  water  ;  and  that  the  high 
feed  is  not  so  fit  for  devotion  as  abstinence.  Who  sees  not  a  cere- 
mony in  this  command  ?  Which  yet  carries  with  it  this  substance 
of  everlasting  use,  that  God  and  the  belly  will  not  admit  of  one 
servant ;  that  quaffing  and  cramming  is  not  the  way  to  heaven  :  a 
drunken  Nazarite  is  a  monster  among  men. 

We  have  now  more  scope  than  the  ancient :  not  drinking  of  wine 
but  drunkenness  with  wine  is  forbidden  to  the  evangelical  Naza- 
rite;  Wine,  wherein  is  excess.  Oh  that  ever  Christians  should 
quench  the  Spirit  of  God,  with  a  liquor  of  God's  own  making! 
That  they  should  suffer  their  hearts  to  be  drowned  with  wine,  and 
should  so  live,  as  if  the  practice  of  the  Gospel  were  quite  contrary 
to  the  rule  of  the  Lavy  ! 

The  mother  must  conceive  the  only  giant  of  Israel,  and  yet 


SAMSON  CONCEIVED. 


215 


must  drink  but  water  ;  neither  must  the  child  touch  any  other  cup. 
Never  wine  made  so  strong  a  champion  as  water  did  here.  The 
power  of  nourishment  is  not  in  the  creatures,  but  in  their  Maker, 
Daniel  and  his  three  companions  kept  their  complexion,  with  the 
same  diet  wherewith  Samson  got  his  strength  :  he,  that  gave  that 
power  to  the  grape,  can  give  it  to  the  stream.  O  God,  how  justly 
do  we  raise  our  eyes  from  our  tables  unto  thee,  which  canst  make 
water  nourish,  and  wine  enfeeble  us  ! 

Samson  had  not  a  better  mother,  than  Manoah  had  a  wife ;  she 
hides  not  the  good  news  in  her  own  bosom,  but  imparts  it  to  her 
husband  :  that  wife  hath  learned  to  make  a  true  use  of  her  head, 
which  is  ever  ready  to  consult  with  him  about  the  messages  of  God. 
If  she  were  made  for  his  helper,  he  is  much  more  hers.  Thus 
should  good  women  make  amends  for  their  first  offence  ;  that,  as 
Eve  no  sooner  had  received  an  ill  motion  but  she  delivered  it  to 
her  husband,  so  they  should  no  sooner  receive  good  than  they 
.should  impart  it. 

Manoah,  (like  one  which  in  those  lewd  times  had  not  lost  his  ac- 
quaintance with  God,  so  soon  as  he  hears  the  news,  falls  down 
upon  his  knees.  I  do  not  hear  him  call  forth  and  address  his  ser- 
vants to  all  the  coasts  of  heaven,  as  the  children  of  the  prophets 
did  in  the  search  of  Elias,  to  find  out  the  messenger  ;  but  1  see 
him  rather  look  straight  up,  to  that  God  which  sent  him  ;  My  Lord, 
I  pray  thee  let  that  man  of  God  come  again  .  As  a  straight  line  is 
the  shortest,  the  nearest  cut  to  any  blessing  is  to  go  by  heaven  :  as 
we  may  not  sue  to  God,  and  neglect  means,  so  we  must  sue  to  God 
for  those  means  which  we  shall  use. 

When  I  seethe  strength  of  Manoah's  faith,  I  marvel  not  that  he 
had  a  Samson  to  his  son.  He  saw  not  the  messenger,  he  heard  not 
the  errand,  he  examined  not  the  circumstances  ;  yet  now  he  takes 
thought,  not  whether  he  shall  have  a  son,  but  how  he  shall  order 
the  son  which  he  must  have ;  and  sues  to  God,  not  for  the  son 
which  as  yet  lie  had  not,  but  for  the  direction  of  governing  him 
when  he  should  be.  Zachariah  had  the  same  message  ;  and  cra- 
ving a  sign,  lost  that  voice  wherewith  he  craved  it :  Manoah  seeks 
no  sign  for  the  promise,  but  counsel  for  himself ;  and  yet,  that  an- 
£el  spake  to  Zachariah  himself,  this  only  to  the  wife  of  Manoah  ; 
that,  in  the  temple,  like  a  glorious  spirit;  this,  in  the  house  or 
field,  like  some  prophet  or  traveller  ;  that  to  a  priest,  this  to  a  wo- 
man. All  good  men  have  not  equal  measures  of  faith.  The  bo- 
dies of  men  have  not  more  differences  of  stature,  than  their  graces. 
Credulity  to  men  is  faulty  and  dangerous  ;  but  in  the  matters  of 
God,  is  the  greatest  virtue  of  a  Christian.  Happy  are  they  that 
have  not  seen,  yet  believed.  True  faith  takes  all  for  granted,  yea 
lor  performed,  which  is  once  promised. 

He,  that  before  sent  his  angel  unasked,  will  much  more  send  him 
a^ain  upon  intreaty.  Those  heavenly  messengers  are  ready,  both 
to  obey  their  Maker  and  to  relieve  his  children.  Never  any  man 
prayed  for  direction  in  his  duties  to  God  and  was  repulsed  ;  rather 


216 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


will  God  send  an  angel  from  heaven  to  instruct  us,  than  our  good 
desires  shall  be  frustrate. 

Manoah  prayed,  the  angel  appeared  again  ;  not  to  him,  but  to 
his  wife.  It  had  been  the  shorter  way  to  have  come  first  to  the 
man,  whose  prayers  procured  his  presence:  but  as  Manoah  went 
directly  and  immediately  to  God,  so  God  comes  mediately  and 
about  to  him  ;  and  will  make  her  the  means  to  bear  the  message  to 
her  husband,  who  must  bear  him  the  son.  Both  the  blessing  and 
the  charge  are  chiefly  meant  to  her. 

It  was  a  good  care  of  Manoah,  when  the  angel  had  given  order 
to  his  wife  alone  for  the  governing  of  the  child's  diet,  to  proffer 
himself  to  his  charge  ;  How  shall  we  order  the  child  ?  As  both  the 
parents  have  their  part  in  the  being  of  their  children,  so  should 
they  have  in  their  education.  It  is  both  unreasonable  and  unna- 
tural in  husbands,  to  cast  this  burden  upon  the  weaker  vessel  alone: 
it  is  no  reason,  that  she,  which  alone  hath  had  the  pain  of  their  birth, 
should  have  the  pain  of  their  breeding. 

Though  the  charge  be  renewed  to  the  wife,  yet  the  speech  is 
directed  to  the  husband :  the  act  must  be  hers,  his  must  be  the 
oversight ;  Let  her  observe  all  I  commanded  her.  The  head  must 
overlook  the  bodv  :  it  is  the  duty  of  the  husband,  to  be  careful 
that  the  wife  do  her  duty  to  God. 

As  yet  Maiioah  saw  nothing  but  the  outside  of  a  man,  and 
therefore  offers  the  angel  an  answerable  entertainment,  wherein 
there  is  at  once  hospitality  and  thankfulness.  No  man  shall  bring 
him  good  news  from  God,  and  go  away  unrecompensed.  How 
forward  he  is  to  feast  him,  whom  he  took  for  a  prophet !  Their 
feet  should  be  so  much  more  beautiful,  that  bring  us  news  of  sal- 
vation, by  how  much  their  errand  is  better. 

That  Manoah  might  learn  to  acknowledge  God  in  this  man,  he 
sets  off  the  proffer  of  his  thankfulness,  from  himself  to  God ;  and 
(as  the  same  angel  which  appeared  to  Gideon)  turns  his  feast  into 
a  sacrifice.  And  now  he  is  Manoah's  solicitor  to  better  thanks 
than  he  offered.  How  forward  the  good  angels  are  to  incite  us 
unto  piety.  Either  this  was  the  Son  himself,  which  said  it  was  his 
meat  and  drink  to  do  his  Father's  will,  or  else  one  of  his  spiritual 
attendants  of  the  same  diet.  We  can  never  feast  the  angels  better, 
than  with  our  hearty  sacrifices  to  God.  Why  do  not  we  learn  this 
lesson  of  them,  whom  we  propound  to  ourselves  as  patterns  of  our 
obedience  ?  We  shall  be  once  like  the  angels  in  condition  ;  why 
are  we  not  in  the  meantime  in  our  dispositions  s  If  we  do  not  pro- 
voke and  exhort  one  another  to  godliness,  and  do  care  more  for  a 
feast  than  a  sacrifice,  our  appetite  is  not  angelical  but  brutish. 

It  was  an  honest  mind  in  Manoah,  while  he  was  addressing  a  sa- 
crifice to  God,  yet  not  to  neglect  his  messenger :  fain  would  he 
know  whom  to  honour.  True  piety  is  not  uncivil  ;  but,  while  it 
magnifies  the  Author  of  ali  blessings,  is  thankful  to  the  means^ 
Secondary  causes  are  worthy  of  regard  ;  neither  need  it  detract  any 
thing  from  the  praise  of  the  agent,  to  honour  the  instrument.  It 


SAMSON  CONCEIVED. 


217 


is  not  only  rudeness,  but  injustice,  in  those,  which  can  be  content 
to  hear  good  news  from  God,  with  contempt  of  the  bearers. 

The  angel  will  neither  take  nor  give ;  but  conceals  his  very  name 
from  Manoah.  All  honest  motions  arc  not  fit  to  be  yielded  to : 
good  intentions  are  not  always  sufficient  grounds  of  condescension. 
If  we  do  sometimes  ask  what  we  know  not,  it  is  no  marvel  if  we 
receive  not  what  we  ask.  In  some  cases,  the  angel  of  God  tells  lius 
name  unasked,  as  Gabriel  to  the  virgin  ;  here,  not  by  intreaty.  If 
it  were  the  Angel  of  the  Covenant,  he  had  as  yet  no  name  but  Jeho- 
vah :  if  a  created  angel,  he  had  no  commission  to  tell  his  name; 
and  a  faithful  messenger  hath  not  a  word  beyond  his  charge.  Be- 
sides that,  he  saw  it  would  be  of  more  use  for  Manoah,  to  know 
him  really  than  by  words.  Oh  the  bold  presumption  of  those 
men,  which  (as  if  they  had  long  sojourned  in  heaven,  and  been 
acquainted  with  all  the  holy  legions  of  spirits)  discourse  of  their 
orders,  of  their  titles,  when  this  one  angel  stops  the  mouth  of  a 
better  man  than  they,  with  Why  dost  thou  ask  after  my  name, 
which  is  secret?  Secret  things  to  God;  revealed,  to  us  and  our 
children. 

No  word  can  be  so  significant  as  actions :  the  act  of  the  angel 
tells  best  who  he  was  ;  he  did  wonderfully :  wondeuful  therefore 
was  his  name.  So  soon  as  ever  the  flame  of  the  sacrifice  ascended, 
he  mounted  up  in  the  smoke  of  it ;  that  Manoah  might  see  the  sa- 
crifice and  the  messenger  belonged  both  to  one  God  ;  and  might 
know,  both  whence  to  acknowledge  the  message,  and  whence  to 
expect  the  performance. 

Gideon's  angel  vanished  at  his  sacrifice,  but  this  in  the  sacrifice; 
that  Manoah  might  at  once  see,  both  the  confirmation  of  his  pro- 
mise, and  the  acceptation  of  his  obedience ;  while  the  angel  of 
God  vouchsafed  to  perfume  himself  with  that  holy  smoke,  and 
carry  the  scent  of  it  up  into  heaven.  Manoah  believed  before,  and 
craved  no  sign  to  assure  him  ;  God  voluntarily  confirms  it  to  hiiu 
above  his  desire  ;  To  him  that  hath  shall  be  given  !  where  there 
arc  beginnings  of  faith,  the  mercy  of  God  will  add  perfection. 

How  do  we  think  Manoah  and  his  wife  looked  to  see  this  spec- 
tacle !  They  had  not  spirit  enough  left  to  look  one  upon  another  ; 
but  instead  of  looking  up  cheerfully  to  heaven,  they  fall  down  to 
the  earth  upon  their  faces  ;  as'  weak  eyes  are  dazzled  with  that 
winch  should  comfort  them.  This  is  the  infirmity  of  our  nature, 
to  be  afflicted  with  the  causes  of  our  jov  ;  to  be  astonished  with 
our  confirmations  ;  to  conceive  death  in  that  vision  of  God,  wherein 
our  life  and  happiness  consist.  If  this  homely  sight  of  the  angel 
did  so  confound  good  Manoah,  what  shall  hecome  of  the  enemies 
of  God)  when  they  shall  be  brought  before  the  glorious  tribunal  of 
the  God  of  angels? 

I  marvel  not  now,  that  the  angel  appeared  both  times  rather  to 
the  wife  of  Manoah  :  her  faith  was  the  stronger  of  the  two.  It 
falls  out  sometimes,  that  the  weaker  vessel  is  fuller,  and  that  of 
more  precious  liquor :  that  wife  is  no  helper,  which  is  not  ready 
to  give  spiritual  comfort  to  her  husband.    The  reason  was  good, 


218  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

and  irrefragable  ;  If  the  Lord  were  pleased  to  kill  us,  he.  would 
not  have  received  a  burnt  offering  from  us.  God  will  not  accept 
gifts,  where  he  intends  punishment,  and  professes  hatred.  The 
sacrifice  of  the  wicked  is  an  abomination  to  the  Lord.  If  we  can  find 
assurance  of  God's  acceptation  of  our  sacrifices,  we  may  be  sure 
he  loves  our  persons.  If  I  incline  to  wickedness  in  my  heart,  the 
Lord  will  not  hear  me ;  but  the  Lord  hath  heard  me.    Judges  xiii. 


SAMSON'S  MARRIAGE. 
Of  all  the  deliverers  of  Israel,  there  is  none  of  whom  are  reported 
so  many  weaknesses,  or  so  many  miracles,  as  of  Samson.  The 
news,  which  the  angel  told  of  his  conception  and  education,  was 
not  more  strange,  than  the  news  of  his  own  choice :  he  but  sees  a 
daughter  of  the  Philistines,  and  falls  in  love.  All  this  strength  be- 
gins in  infirmity :  one  maid  of  the  Philistines  overcomes  that  cham- 
pion, which  was  given  to  overcome  the  Philistines. 

Even  he,  that  was  dieted  with  water,  found  heat  of  unfit  desires. 
As  his  body  was  strong,  notwithstanding  that  fare,  so  were  his  pas- 
sions. Without  the  gift,  of  continency,  a  low  feed  may  impair  na- 
ture, but  not  inordination.  To  follow  nothing  but  the  eye  in  the 
choice  of  his  wife,  was  a  lust  unworthy  of  a  .Nazante  :  this  is  to 
make  the  sense  not  a  counsellor,  but  a  tyrant. 

Yet  was  Samson  in  this  very  impotency,  dutiful :  he  did  not,  in 
the  presumption  of  his  strength,  ravish  her  forcibly  ;  he  did  not 
make  up  a  clandestine  match  without  consulting  with  his  parents, 
but  he  makes  suit  to  them  for  consent ;  Give  me  her  to  wife :  as 
one  that  could  be  master  of  his  own  act,  though  not  of  his  passion  ; 
and  as  one  that  had  learned  so  to  be  a  suitor,  as  not  to  forget  him- 
self to  be  a  son,  Even  in  this  deplored  state  of  Israel,  childrcu 
durst  not  presume  to  be  their  own  carvers  ;  how  much  less  is  this 
tolerable  in  a  well-guided  and  Christian  commonwealth  \  Whosoever 
now  dispose  of  themselves  withoot  their  parents,  they  do  wilfully 
unchild  themselves,  and  change  natural  affection  for  violent. 

It  is  no  marvel,  if  Manoah  and  his  wife  were  astonished  at  this 
unequal  motion  of  their  son.  "  Did  not  the  angel,"  thought  the}', 
"  tell  us,  that  this  child  should  be  consecrated  to  God  ;  and  must  he 
begin  his  youth  in  unholy  wedlock  r  Did  not  the  angel  say,  that 
our  son  should  begin  to  save  Isracj  from  the  Philistines ;  and  is  he 
now  captivated  in  his  affections  bv  a  daughter  of  the  Philistines  r 
Shall  our  deliverance  from  the  Philistines  begin  in  an  alliance  ? 
Have  we  been  so  scrupulously  careful,  that  he  should  eat  no  un- 
clean thing,  and  shall  we  now  consent  to  a  heathenish  match  f " 
Now  therefore,  they  gravely  endeavour,  to  cool  this  intemperate 
heat  of  his  passion  with  good  counsel ;  as  those  which  well  knew 
the  inconveniencies  of  an  unequal  yoke  ;  corruption  in  religion, 
alienation  of  affections,  distraction  of  thoughts,  connivance  at  ido- 
latry, death  of  zeal,  dangerous  underminings,  and  lastly,  an  unholy 
seed.  Who  can  blame  them,  if  they  were  unwilling  to  call  a  Phi- 
listine daughter  ? 


samson's  marriage,  2t9 

I  wish  Manoah  could  speak  so  loud,  that  all  our  Israelites  might 
hear  him ;  Is  there  never  a  woman  among  the  daughters  of  thy 
brethren,  or  among  all  God's  people,  that  thou  goest  to  take  a  wife 
of  the  uncircumcised  Philistines  ?  If  religion  be  any  other  than  a 
cypher,  how  dare  we  not  regard  it  in  our  most  important  choice  ? 
Is  she  a  fair  Philistine  ?  Why  is  not  this  deformity  of  the  soul  more 
powerful  to  dissuade  us,  than  the  beauty  of  the  face  or  of  metal  to 
allure  us  ?  To  dote  upon  a  fair  skin,  when  we  see  a  Philistine 
under  it,  is  sensual  and  brutish. 

Affection  is  not  more  blind  than  deaf.  In  vain  do  the  parents 
seek  to  alter  a  young  man,  not  more  strong  in  body  than  in  will. 
Though  he  cannot  defend  his  desires,  yet  he  pursues  them ;  Get 
her,  for  she  pleases  vie.  And  although  it  must  needs  be  a  weak 
motion,  that  can  plead  no  reason  but  appetite  ;  yet  the  good  pa- 
rents, since  they  cannot  bow  the  affection  of  their  son  with  persua- 
sion, dare  not  break  it  with  violence.  As  it  becomes  not  children 
to  be  forward  in  their  choice ;  so  parents  may  not  be  too  peremp- 
tory in  their  denial.  It  is  not  safe  for  children  to  over-run  parents 
in  settling  their  affections ;  nor  for  parents,  where  the  impedi- 
ments are  not  very  material,  to  come  short  of  their  children,  when 
the  affections  are  once  settled  :  the  one  is  disobedience  ;  the  other 
may  be  tyranny. 

I  know  not  whether  I  may  excuse  either  Samson  in  making  this 
suit,  or  his  parents  in  yielding  to  it,  by  a  divine  dispensation  in 
both  ;  for  on  the  one  side,  while  the  Spirit  of  God  notes,  that  as 
yet  his  parents  knew  not  this  was  of  the  Lord,  it  may  seem  that  he 
knew  it ;  and  is  it  likely  he  would  know  and  not  impart  it  ?  This 
alone  was  enough  to  win,  yea  to  command  his  parents ;  "  It  is  not 
mine  eye  only,  but  the  counsel  of  God,  that  leads  me  to  this  choice  : 
the  way  to  quarrel  with  the  Philistines  is  to  match  with  them  ;  if  I 
follow  mine  affection,  mine  affection  follows  God,  in  this  project. " 
Surely,  he,  that  commanded  his  prophet  afterwards  to  marry  a  har- 
lot, may  have  appointed  his  Nazarite  to  marry  with  a  Philistine. 
On  the  other  side,  whether  it  were  of  God's  permitting  or  allow- 
ing, I  find  not :  it  might  so  be  of  God,  as  all  the  evil  in  the  city  ; 
and  then  the  interposition  of  God's  deeree,  shall  be  no  excuse  of 
Samson's  infirmity.  I  would  rather  think,  that  God  meant  only  to 
make  a  treacle  of  a  viper ;  and  rather  appointed  to  fetch  good  out 
of  Samson's  evil,  than  to  approve  that  for  good  in  Samson,  which 
in  itself  was  evil. 

When  Samson  went  on  wooing,  he  might  have  made  the  slug- 
gard's excuse,  There  is  a  lion  in  the  way ;  but  he,  that  could  not  be 
staid  by  persuasion,  will  not  by  fear.  A  lion,  young,  wild,  fierce, 
hungry,  comes  roaring  upon  him,  when  he  had  no  weapon  but  his 
hand,  no  fence  but  his  strength  :  the  same  Providence,  that  carried 
him  toTimnath,  brought  the  lion  to  him.  It  hath  been  ever  the 
fashion  of  God,  to  exercise  his  champions  with  some  initiatory  en- 
counters :  both  Samson  and  David  must  first  fight  with  lions,  then 
with  Philistines  ;  and  he,  whose  type  they  bore,  meets  with  that 
roaring  lion  of  the  wilderness,  in  the  very' threshold  of  his  public 


220 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


charge.  The  same  hand,  that  prepared  a  lion  for  Samson,  hath 
proportionable  matches  for  every  Christian :  God  never  gives 
strength,  but  he  employs  it :  Poverty  meets  one,  like  an  armed 
man  ;  infamy,  like  some  furious  mastiff,  comes  flying  in  the  face  of 
another ;  the  wild  boar  out  of  the  forest,  or  the  bloody  tiger  of 
persecution,  sets  upon  one  ;  the  brawling  curs  of  heretical  pra- 
vity  or  contentious  neighbourhood,  are  ready  to  bait  another :- 
and  by  all  these  meaner  and  brutish  adversaries,  will  God  fit  us  for 
greater  conflicts.  It  is  a  pledge  of  our  future  victory  over  the 
spiritual  Philistines,  if  we  can  say,  My  soul  hath  been  among  lions. 
Come  forth  now,  thou  weak  Christian,  and  behold  this  preparatory 
battle  of  Samson.  Dost  thou  think  God  deals  hardly  with  thee,  in 
matching  thee  so  hard,  and  calling  thee  forth  to  so  many  frays  ? 
What  dost  thou  but  repine  at  thine  own  glory  ?  How  shouldst 
thou  be  victorious  without  resistance  ? 

If  the  parents  of  Samson  had  now  stood  behind  the  hedge  and 
seen  this  encounter,  they  would  have  taken  no  further  care  of 
matching  their  son  with  a  Philistine;  for  who,  that  should  see  a 
strong  lion  ramping  upon  an  unarmed  man,  would  hope  for  his 
Jile  and  victory  ?  The  beast  came  bristling  up  his  fearful  mane, 
waiting  his  raised  stern  ;  his  eyes  sparkling  with  fury,  his  mouth 
roaring  out  knells  of  his  last  passage,  and  breathing  death  from  his 
nostrils,  and  now  rejoiced  at  so  fair  a  prey.  Surely,  if  the  lion  had 
bad  no  other  adversary  than  he  whom  he  saw,  he  had  not  lost  his 
hope ;  but  now  he  could  not  see  that  his  Maker  was  his  enemy  : 
The  Spirit  (if  the  Lord  came  upon  Samson  :  what  is  a  beast  in  the 
hand  of  the  Creator?  He i  that  struck  the  lions  with  the  awe  of 
Adam,  Noah,  and  Daniel,  subdued  this  rebellions  beast  to  Samson: 
what  marvel  is  it,  if  Samson  now  tore  him,  as  if  it.  hail  been  a  young 
kid  ?  If  his  bones  had  been  brass,  and  lus  skin  plates  of  iron,  all 
had  been  one :  The  right-hand  of  the  Lord  bringeih  mighty  things 
to  pass. 

If  that  roaring  lion,  that  goes  about  continually,  seeking  whom 
he  may  devour,  find  us  alone  among  the  vineyards  of  the  Philis- 
tines, where  is  our  hope  ?  Not  in  our  heejs  ;  he  is  swifter  than  we  : 
not  in  our  weapons  ;  we  are  naturally  unarmed  :  not  in  our  hands, 
which  are  weak  and  languishing  ;  but  in  the  Spirit  of  that  God,  by 
whom  we  can  do  all  things  :  if  God  fight  in  us,,  who  can  resist  us  ? 
there  is  a  stronger  lion  in  us,  than  that  against  us. 

Samson  was  not  more  valiant  than  modest :  he  made  no  words  of 
this  great  exploit.  The  greatest  performers  ever  make  the  least 
noise  :  he,  that  works  wonders  alone,  could  say,  S'ee  thou  tell  no 
man  ;  whereas  those,  whose  hands  are  most  impotent,  are  busiest 
of  their  tongues.  Great  talkers  shew  that  they  desire  only  to  be 
thqught  eminent,  whereas  the  deepest  waters  are  least  heard. 

Put  while  he  concealed  this  event  from  others,  he  pondered  it  in 
himself ;  and  when  he  returned  to  Timnath,  went  out  of  the  way  to 
s»  e  his  dead  adversary,  and  could  not  but  recal  to  himself  his 
danger  and  deliverance;  "  Here  the  beast  met  me,  thus  he  fought, 
thus  I  slew  him."    The  very  dead  lion  taught  Samson  thankful-* 


samson's  marriage.  £21 
ness :  there  was  more  honey  in  this  thought  than  in  the  carcass. 
The  mercies  of  God  are  ill  hestowed  upon  us,  if  we  cannot  step 
aside  to  view  the  monuments  of  his  deliverances :  dangers  mav  be 
at  once  past,  and  forgotten.  As  Samson  lrad  not  found  his  honey- 
comb, if  he  had  not  turned  aside  to  see  his  lion  ;  so  we  shall  lose 
the  comfort  of  God's  benefits,  if  we  do  not  renew  our  perils  by  me- 
ditation. 

Lest  anything  should  befal  Samson  wherein  is  not  some  wonder, 
his  lion  doth  more  amaze  him  dead  than  alive :  for  lo,  tlv.t  carcass 
is  matte  a  hive ;  and  the  bitterness  of  death  is  turned  into  the  sweet- 
ness of  honey.  The  bee,  a  nice  and  dainty  creature,  builds  her 
cells  in  an  unsavoury  carcass ;  the  carcass,  that  promised  nothing 
but  strength  and  annoyance,  now  offers  comfort  and  refreshing; 
and,  in  a  sort,  pays  Samson  for  the  wrong  offered.  Oh  the  won- 
derful goodness  of  our  God,  that  can  change  our  terrors  into  plea- 
sure, and  can  make  the  greatest  evils  beneficial !  Is  any  man,  by 
his  humiliation  under  the  hand  of  God,  grown  more  faithful  and 
conscionablc  ?  there  is  honey  out  of  the  lion.  Is  any  man,  by  his 
temptation  or  fall,  become  more  circumspect?  there  is  also  honey 
out  of  the  lion.  There  is  no  Samson,  to  whom  every  lion  doth  not 
yield  honey:  every  Christian  is  the  better  for  his  evils;  yea,  Satan 
himself,  in  his  exercise  of  God's  children,  advantageth  them. 

Samson  doth  not  disdain  these  sweets,  because  he  finds  them 
uncleanly  laid.  His  diet  was  strict,  and  forbad  him  any  thing  that 
savoured  of  legal  impurity  ;  yet  he  eats  the  honeycomb  out  of  the 
belly  of  a  deatl  beast:  good  may  not  be  refused,  because  the 
means  are  accidentally  evil:  honey  is  honey  still,  though  in  a  dead 
lion.  Those  are  less  wise  and  more  scrupulous  than  Samson, 
which  abhor  the  graces  of  God,  because  they  find  them  in  ill  ves- 
sels: one  cares  not  for  the  preacher's  true  doctrine,  because  his 
life  is  evil ;  another  will  not  take  a  good  receipt  from  the  hand  of 
a  physician,  because  lie  is  given  to  unlawful  studies;  a  third  will 
not  receive  a  deserved  contribution  from  the  hands  of  a  usurer.  It 
is  a  weak  neglect  not  to  take  the  honey,  because  we  hate  the  lion. 
God's  children  have  right  to  their  father's  blessings,-  wheresoever 
they  find  them. 

The  match  is  now  made  :  Samson,  though  a  Nazarite,  hath  both 
a  wedding  and  a  feast :  God  never  disliked  moderate  solemnities  in  ' 
the  severest  life;  and  yet  this  bridal  feast  was  long,  the  space  of 
seven  days.  If  Samson  had  matched  with  the  best  Israelite,  this 
celebration  had  been  no  greater;  neither  had  this,  perhaps,  been 
so  long,  if  tlie  custom  of  the  place  had  not  required  it.  Now  I  do 
not  hear  him  plead  his  Nazaritism,  for  a  colour  of  singularity  :  it  is 
hot!)  lawful  and  fit,  in  things  not  prohibited,  to  conform  ourselves 
to  the  manners  and  rites  of  those  with  whom  we  live. 

That  Samson  might  think  it  an  honour  to  match  with  the  Phi- 
listines, he,  whom  before  the  lion  found  alone,  is  now  accompanied 
with  thirty  attendants:  they  called  them  companions,  but  they 
meant  them  for  spies.  The  courtesies  of  the  world  are  hollow  and 
thankless ,  neither  doth  it  ever  purpose  so  ill,  as  when  it  shews 


222 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


fairest.  None  are  so  near  to  danger,  as  those  whom  it  entertains 
with  smiles :  while  it  frowns,  we  know  what  to  trust  to ;  hut  the1 
favours  of  it  are  worthy  of  nothing  but  fears  and  suspicion :  open 
defiance  is  better  than  false  love. 

.  Austerity  had  not  made  Samson  uncivil :  he  knows  how  to  enter- 
tain Philistines  with  a  formal  familiarity.  And  that  his  intellectual 
parts  might  be  approved  answerable  to  his  arms,  he  will  first  try 
masteries  of  wit,  and  set  their  brains  on  work  with  harmless  thoughts  : 
his  riddle  shall  oppose  them,  and  a  deep  wager  shall  bind  the  solu- 
tion ;  thirty  shirts,  and  thirty  suits  of  raiment.  Neither  their  loss 
nor  their  gain  could  be  much,  besides  the  victory,  being  divided 
unto  thirty  partners ;  but  Samson's  must  needs  be  both  ways  very 
large,  who  must  give  or  receive  thirty  alone.  The  seven  days  of 
the  feast  are  expiring,  and  yet  they,  which  had  been  all  this  while 
devouring  Samson's  meat,  cannot  tell  who  that  eater  should  be 
from  whence  meat  should  come.  In  course  of  nature,  the  strong 
feeder  takes  in  meat  and  sends  out  filthiness  ;  but,  that  meat  and 
sweetness  should  come  from  a  devouring  stomach,  was  beyond  their 
apprehension. 

And  us  fools  and  dogs  use  to  begin  in  jest  and  end  in  earnest,  so 
did  these  Philistines ;  and  therefore  they  force  the  bride  to  entice 
her  husband  to  betray  himself.  Covetousness  and  pride  have  made 
them  impatient  of  loss ;  and  now  the}7  threat  to  fire  her,  and  her 
father's  house,  for  recompence  of  their  entertainment,  rather  than 
they  will  lose  a  small  wager  to  an  Israelite.  Somewhat  of  kin  to 
these  savage  Philistines,  are  those  choleric  gamesters,  which,  if  the 
dice  be  not  their  friend,  fall  out  with  God,  curse  (that  which  is  not) 
fortune,  strike  their  fellows,  and  are  ready  to  take  vengeance  upon 
themselves  :  those  men  are  unlit  for  sport,  that  lose  their  patience 
together  with  their  wager. 

I  do  not  wonder,  that  a  Philistine  woman  loved  herself  and  her 
father's  family,  more  than  an  Israelitish  bridegroom;  and  if  she 
bestowed  tears  upon  her  husband,  for  the  ransom  of  them.  Sam- 
son himself  taught  her  this  difference ;  1  have  not  told  it  my  father 
or  vuj  mother,  and  should  I  tell  it  thee  f  If  she  had  not  been  as 
she  was,  she  had  neither  done  this  to  Samson,  nor  heard  this  from 
him.  Matrimonial  respects  are  dearer  than  natural :  it  was  the  law 
of  him  that  ordained  marriage,  before  ever  parents  were,  that  pa- 
rents should  be  forsaken  for  the  husband  or  wife.  But  now,  Isra- 
elitish parents  are  worthy  of  more  entireness,  than  a  wife  of  the 
Philistines ;  and  yet,  whom  the  lion  could  not  conquer,  the  tears 
of  a  woman  have  conquered.  Samson  never  bewrayed  infirmity 
but  in  uxoriousness.  What  assurance  can  there  be  of  him,  that 
hath  a  Philistine  in  his  bosom?  Adam  the  pcrfectest  man,  Samson 
the  strongest  man,  Solomon  the  wisest  man,  were  betrayed  with 
the  flattery  of  their  helpers.  As  there  is  no  comfort  comparable 
to  a  faithful  yoke-fellow,  so  woe  be  to  him  who  is  matched  with  a 
Philistine. 

It  could  not  but  much  discontent  Samson,  to  see  that  his  adver- 
saries had  ploughed  with  his  heifer,  and  that  upon  his  own  back  j 


samson's  victory.  223 
now  therefore  tie  pays  his  wager  to  their  cost.  Ascalon,  the  city 
of  the  Philistines,  is  his  wardrobe :  he  fetches  thence  thirty  suits, 
lined  with  the  lives  of  the  owners.  He  might  with  as  much  ease 
have  slain  these  thirty  companions,  which  were  the  authors  of  this 
evil;  but  his  promise  forbad  him,  while  he  was  to  clothe  their 
bodies,  to  unclothe  their  souls;  and  that  Spirit  of  God,  which 
stirred  him  up  to  revenge,  directed  him  in  the  choice  of  the  sub- 
jects. If  we  wonder  to  see  thirty  throats  cut  for  their  suits,  we 
may  easily  know,  that  this  was  but  the  occasion  of  that  slaughter, 
whereof  the  cause  was  their  oppression  and  tyranny.  David  slew 
two  hundred  Philistines  for  their  fore-skins  ;  but  the  ground  of  this 
act  was  their  hostility.  It  is  just  with  God,  to  destine  what  ene- 
mies he  pleases  to  execution.  It  is  not  to  be  expostulated  why  this 
man  is  stricken  rather  than  another,  when  both  are  Philistines. 

Judges  xiv, 

SAMSON'S  VICTORY. 

I  can  no  more  justify  Samson,  in  the  leaving  of  his  wife,  than  in 
the  choosing  her :  he  chose  her,  because  she  pleased  him  ;  and  be- 
cause she  despised  him,  he  left  her.  Though  her  fear  made  her 
false  to  him  in  his  riddle,  yet  she  was  true  to  his  bed  :  that  weak 
treachery  was  worthy  of  a  check,  not  a  desertion.  All  the  passions 
of  Samson  were  strong,  like  himself;  but,  as  vehement  motions  are 
not  lasting,  this  vehement  wind  is  soon  allayed ;  and  he  is  now  re- 
turning with  a  kid,  to  win  her  that  had  offended  him,  and  to  renew 
that  feast  which  ended  in  her  unkindness.  Slight  occasions  may 
not  break  the  knot  of  matrimonial  love ;  and  if  any  just  offence 
have  slackened  it,  on  either  part,  it  must  be  fastened  again  by 
speedy  reconciliation. 

Now  Samson's  father-in-law  shews  himself  a  Philistine,  the  true 
parent  of  her  that  betrayed  her  husband ;  for  no  sooner  is  the 
bridegroom  departed,  than  he  changes  his  son.  What  pretence  of 
friendship  soever  he  made,  a  true  Philistine  will  soon  be  weary  of 
an  Israelite.  Samson  hath  not  so  many  days'  liberty  to  enjoy  his 
wedding,  as  he  spent  in  celebrating  it.  Marriage  hath  been  ever 
a  sacred  institution,  and  who  but  a  Philistine  would  so  easily  vio- 
late it?  One  of  his  thirty  companions  enjoys  his  wife,  together 
with  his  suit ;  and  now  laughs  to  be  a  partner  of  that  bed,  whereon 
he  was  an  attendant.  The  good-nature  of  Samson,  having  forgot- 
ten the  first  wrong,  carried  him  to  a  proffer  of  familiarity,  and  is 
repulsed  ;  but  with  a  gentle  violence,  /  had  thought  thou  hadst 
hated  her.  Lawful  wedlock  may  not  be  dissolved  by  imaginations, 
but  by  proofs. 

Who  shall  stay  Samson  from  his  own  wife  ?  lie,  that  slew  the 
lion  in  the  way  of  his  wooing,  and  before  whom  thousands  of  the 
Philistines  could  not  stand,  yet  suffers  himself  to  be  resisted  by 
him  who  was  ouce  his  father-in-law,  without  any  return  of  private 
violence.  Great  is  the  force  of  duty  once  conceived,  even  to  the  1 
most  unworthy.    This  thought,  "  I  was  his  son,"  binds  the  handi 


221 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


of  Samson ;  else  how  easily  might  he,  that  slew  those  thirty  Phi- 
listines for  their  suits,  have  destroyed-  this  family  for  his  wife  ! 
How  unnatural  are  those  mouths,  that  can  curse  the  loins  from 
which  they  are  proceeded  ;  and  those  hands,  that  dare  lift  up  them- 
selves against  the  means  of  their  life  and  being  ! 

I  never  read  that  Samson  slew  any,  but  by  the  motion  and  as- 
sistance of  the  Spirit  of  God  ;  and  the  divine  wisdom  hath  reserved 
these  offenders  to  another  revenge.  Judgment  must  descend  from 
others  to  them,  since  the  wrong  proceeded  from  others  by  them. 
In  the  very  marriage,  God  foresaw  and  intended  this  parting  ;  and, 
in  the  parting,  this  punishment  upon  the  Philistines.  If  the  Phi- 
listines had  not  been  as  much  enemies  to  God  as  to  Samson,  ene- 
mies to  Israel  in  their  oppression  no  less  than  to  Samson  in  this 
particular  iftjury,  that  purpose  and  execution  of  revenge  had  been 
no  better  than  wicked  ;  now  he,  to  whom  vengeance  belongs,  sets 
him  on  work,  and  makes  the  act  justice  :  when  he  commands,  even 
very  cruelty  is  obedience.  , 

It  was  a  busy  and  troublesome  project  of  Samson,  to  use  the 
foxes  for  his  revenge  ;  for  riot  without  great  labour  and  many  hands 
could  so  many  wild  creatures  be  got  together,  neither  could  the 
wit  of  Samson  want  other  devices  of  hostility :  but  he  meant  to 
find  out  such  a  punishment,  as  might  in  some  sort  answer  the  of- 
fence, and  might  imply  as  much  contempt  as  trespass.  By  wiles, 
seconded  with  violence,  had  thev  wronged  Samson,  in  extorting 
his  secret  and  taking  away  his  wife  ;  and  what  other  emblem  could 
these  foxes  tied  together  present  unto  them,  than  wiliness  combined 
by  force  to  work  mischief? 

These  foxes  destroy  their  corn,  before  he  which  sent  them  de- 
stroys their  persons.  Those  judgments  which  begin  in  outward 
things  end  in  the  owners.  A  stranger  that  had  been  of  neither 
side  would  have  said,  "  What  pity  is  it,  to  see  good  corn  thus 
spoiled  !"  If  the  creature  be  considered  apart  from  the  owners,  it 
is  good  ;  and  therefore  if  it  be  mis-spent,  the  abuse  reflects  upon 
the  maker  of  it ;  but  if  it  be  looked  upon  with  respect  to  an  ill 
master,  the  best  use  of  it  is  to  perish.  He  therefore  that  slew  the 
Egyptian  cattle  with  murrain,  and  smote  their  fruit  with  hail- 
stones, he  that  consumed  the  vines  of  Israel  with  the  palmer-worm, 
and  caterpillar,  and  canker-worm,  sent  also  foxes  by  the  hand  of 
Samson,  into  the  fields  of  the  Philistines.  Their  corn  was  too 
good  for  them  to  enjoy,  not  too  good  for  the  foxes  to  burn  up. 
God  would  rather  his  creatures  should  perish  any  way,  than  serve 
for  the  lust  of  the  wicked. 

There  could  not  be  such  secrecy  in  the  catching  of  three  hun- 
dred foxes,  but  it  might  well  be  known  who  had  procured  them. 
Rumour  will  swiftly  fly  of  things  not  done ;  but  of  a  thing  so  no- 
toriously executed,  it  is  no  marvel  if  Fame  be  a  blab.  The  men- 
tion of  the  offence  draws  in  the  provocation  ;  and  now  the  wrong 
to  Samson  is  scanned  and  revenged :  because  the  fields  of  the  Phi- 
listines are  burned  for  the  wrong  done  to  Samson  by  the  Timnite 
in  his  daughter,  therefore  the  Philistines  burn  the  Timnite  and  his 


samson's  victory. 


225 


daughter.  The  tying  of  the  fire-brand  between  two  foxes  was  not 
so  witty  a  policy,  as  the  setting  of  a  fire  of  dissension  betwixt  the 
Philistines.  What  need  Samson  be  his  own  executioner,  when  his 
enemies  will  undertake  that  charge  ?  There  can  be  no  more  pleas- 
ing prospect  to  an  Israelite,  than  to  see  the  Philistines  together  by 
the  ears. 

If  the  wife  of  Samson  had  not  feared  the  fire  for  herself  and  her 
father's  house,  she  had  not  betrayed  her  husband,  her  husband  had 
not  thus  plagued  the  Philistines,  the  Philistines  had  not  consumed 
her  and  her  father  with  fire  :  now  she  leaps  into  that  flame  which 
she  meant  to  avoid.  That  evil  which  the  wicked  feared  meets  them 
in  their  flight.  How  many,  in  a  fear  of  poverty,  seek  to  gain  un- 
conscionably, and  die  beggars !  How  many,  to  shun  pain  and 
danger,  have  yielded  to  evil,  and,  in  the  long  run,  have  been  met 
in  the  teeth  with  that  mischief  which  they  had  hoped  to  have  left 
behind  them  !  How  manv,  in  a  desire  to  eschew  the  shame  of  men, 
have  fallen  into  the  confusion  of  God  !  Both  good  and  evil  are  sure 
paymasters  at  the  last. 

He,  that  was  so  soon  pacified  towards  his  wife,  could  not  but 
have  thought  this  revenge  more  than  enough,  if  he  had  not  rather 
wielded  God's  quarrel  than  his  own.  He  knew  that  God  had  raised 
him  up  on  purpose  to  be  a  scourge  to  the  Philistines,  whom  as  yet 
he  had  angered  more  than  punished  ;  as  if  these  therefore  had  been 
but  flourishes  before  the  fray,  he  stirs  up  his  courage,  and  strikes 
them  both  hip  and  thigh  with  a  mighty  plague.  That  God  which 
can  do  nothing  imperfectly,  where  he  begins  either  mercy  or  judg- 
ment will  not  leave  till  he  have  happily  finished :  as  it  is  in  his  fa- 
vours, so  in  his  punishments ;  one  stroke  draws  on  another. 

The  Israelites  were  but  slaves,  and  the  Philistines  were  their 
masters  ;  so  much  more  indignantly  therefore  must  they  needs  take 
it,  to  be  thus  affronted  by  one  of  their  own  vassals :  yet  shall  we 
commend  the  moderation  of  these  pagans.  Samson,  being  not 
mortally  wronged  by  one  Philistine,  falls  foul  upon  the  whole  na- 
tion;  the  Philistines,  heinously  offended  by  Samson,  do  not  fall 
upon  the  whole  tribe  of  Judah,  but  being  mustered  together,  call 
to  them  for  satisfaction  from  the  person  oriending  :  the  same  hand 
of  God,  which  wrought  Samson  to  revenge,  restrained  them  from 
it :  it  is  no  thanks  to  themselves,  that  sometimes  wicked  men  can- 
not be  cruel. 

The  men  of  Judah  are  by  their  fear  made  friends  to  their  tyrants, 
and  traitors  to  their  friend.  It  was  in  their  cause  that  Samson  had 
shed  blood,  and  yet  they  conspire  with  the  Philistines  to  destroy 
their  own  flesh  and  blood.  So  shall  the  Philistines  be  quit  with 
Israel,  that  as  Samson  by  Philistines  revenged  himself  of  Philistines, 
so  they  of  an  Israelite  by  the  hand  of  Israelites.  Tiiat  which  open 
enemies  dare  not  attempt,  they  work  by  false  brethren  ;  and  these 
are  so  much  more  perilous,  as  they  are  more  entire. 

It  had  been  no  less  easy  for  Samson  to  have  slain  those  thousands 
of  Judah  that  came  to  bind  him,  than  those  other  of  the  Philistines 
that  meant  to  kill  him  bound  :  and  what  if  he  had  said,  "  Are  ye 

vol..  I.  Q 

I 


"226  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

turned  traitors  to  your  deliverer  ?  your  blood  be  upon  your  own 
heads ;"  but  the  Spirit  of  God,  without  whom  he  could  not  kill 
either  beast  or  man,  would  never  stir  him  up  to  kill  his  brethren, 
though  degenerated  into  Philistines.  They  have  more  power  to 
bind  him,  than  he  to  kill  them:  Israelitish  blood  was  precious  to 
him,  that  made  no  more  scruple  of  killing  a  Philistine  than  a  lion. 
That  bondage  and  usury,  that  was  allowed  to  a  Jew  from  a  Pagan, 
might  not  be  exacted  from  a  Jew. 

The  Philistines,  that  had  before  ploughed  with  Samson's  heifer 
in  the  case  of  the  riddle,  are  now  ploughing  a  worse  furrow  with 
a  heifer  more  his  own.  I  am  ashamed  to  hear  these  cowardly  Jews 
say,  Knowest  thou  not  that  the  Philistines  are  Lords  over  us  f 
Why  hast  thou  done  thus  unto  us?  We  are  therefore  come  to  bind 
thee;  whereas  they  should  have  said,  "  We  find  these  tyrannical 
Philistines  to  usurp  dominion  over  us  ;  thou  hast  happily  begun  to 
shake  off  their  yoke,  and  now  we  are  come  to  second  thee  with 
our  service.  The  valour  of  such  a  captain  shall  easily  lead  us 
forth  to  liberty.  We  are  ready  either  to  die  with  thee,  or  be  freed 
by  thee."  A  fearful  man  can  never  be  a  true  friend  :  rather  than 
incur  any  danger,  he  will  be  false  to  his  own  soul.  Oh  cruel 
mercy  of  these  men  of  Judah  !  We  will  not  kill  thee,  but  we  will 
bind  thee,  and  deliver  thee  to  the  hands  of  the  Philistines,  that 
they  maij  kill  thee. :  as  if  it  had  not  been  much  worse  to  die  an 
ignominious  and  tormenting  death,  by  the  hands  of  the  Philistines, 
than  to  be  at  once  dispatched  by  them,  which  wished  either  his 
life  safe  or  his  death  easy. 

When  Saul  was  pursued  by  the  Philistines  upon  the  mountains 
of  Gilboa,  he  could  say  to  his  armour-bearer,  Draw  forth  tin/ 
sword  and  kill  me,  lest  the  uncircumcised  come  and  thrust  vie 
through,  and  mock  me ;  and  at  last  would  rather  fall  upon  his  own 
sword  than  theirs :  and  yet  these  cousins  of  Samson  can  say,  W t 
will  not  kill  thee,  but  we  wilt  bind  thee  and  deliver  thec.  It  was 
no  excuse  to  these  Israelites,  that  Samson's  binding  had  more  hope 
than  his  death.  It  was  more  in  the  extraordinary  mercy  of  God 
than  their  will,  that  he  was  not  tied  with  his  last  bonds.  Such  is 
the  goodness  of  the  Almighty,  that  he  turns  the  cruel  intentions  of 
wicked  men  to  an  advantage. 

Now  these  Jews,  that  might  have  let  themselves  loose  from  their 
own  bondage,  are  binding  their  deliverer,  whom  yet  they  knew 
able  to  have  resisted.  In  the  greatest  strength,  there  is  use  of  pa- 
tience: there  was  more  fortitude  in  this  suffering,  than  in  his  for- 
mer actions:  Samson  abides  to  be  tied  by  his  own  countrymen, 
that  he  may  have  the  glory  of  freeing  himself  victoriously.  Even 
so,  O  Saviour,  our  better  Nazarite,  thou,  which  couldst  have  called 
to  thy  Father,  ami  have  bad  twelve  legions  of  angels  for  thy  res- 
cue, wouklst  be  bound  voluntarily,  that  thou  mightcst  triumph  : 
so  the  blessed  martyrs  were  racked,  and  would  not  be  loosed,  be- 
cause they  expected  a  better  resurrection.  If  we  be  not  as  well 
ready  to  sutler  ill  as  to  do  good,  wc  are  not  fit  for  the  consecration 
of  God. 


samson's  victory.  227 

To  see  Samson  thus  strongly  manacled,  and  exposed  to  then- 
full  revenge,  could  not  but  be  a  glad  spectacle  to  these  Philistines  j 
and  their  joy  was  so  full,  that  it  could  not  but  fly  forth  of  their 
mouths  in  shouting  and  laughter :  whom  they  saw  loose  with  ter- 
ror, it  is  pleasure  to  see  bound.  It  is  the  sport  of  the  spiritual 
Philistines,  to  see  any  of  God's  Nazarites  fettered  with  the  cords 
of  iniquity  ;  and  their  imps  are  ready  to  say,  Aha,  so  would  we 
have  it :  but  the  event  answers  their  false  joy  with  that  clause  of 
triumph^  Rejoice  not  over  me,  0  mine  enemy  :  though  I  fall,  yet 
I  shall  rise  again. 

How  soon  was  the  countenance  of  these  Philistines  changed, 
and  their  shouts  turned  into  shriekings !  The  Spirit  of  the  Lord 
came  upon  Samson  ;  and  then,  what  are  cords  to  the  Almighty  ? 
His  new  bonds  are  as  flax  burnt  with  fire  ;  and  he  rouses  up  him- 
self like  that  young  lion  whom  he  first  encountered,  and  flies  upon 
those  cowardly  adversaries,  who  if  they  had  not  seen  his  cords 
durst  not  have  seen  his  face.  If  they  had  been  so  many  devils  as 
men,  they  could  not  have  stood  before  the  Spirit,  which  lifted  up 
the  heart  and  hand  of  Samson.  Wicked  men  never  see  fairer  pro- 
spect, than  when  they  are  upon  the  very  threshold  of  destruction. 
Security  and  ruin  are  so  close  bordering  upon  each  other,  that 
where  we  see  the  face  of  the  one,  we  may  be  sure  the  other  is  at 
his  back.  Thus  didst  thou,  O  blessed  Saviour,  when  thou  wert 
fastened  to  the  cross,  when  thou  layest  bound  in  the  grave  with 
the  cords  of  death,  thus  didst  thou  miraculously  raise  up  thyself, 
vanquish  thine  enemies,  and  lead  captivity  captive  :  thus  do  all 
thy  holy  ones,  when  they  seem  most  forsaken,  and  laid  open  to 
the  insults  of  the  world,  find  thy  Spirit  mighty  to  their  deliver- 
ance, and  the  discomfiture  of  their  malicious  adversaries. 

Those  three  thousand  Israelites  were  not  so  ill  advised,  as  to 
come  up  into  the  rock  unweaponed,  to  apprehend  Samson.  Sam- 
son therefore  might  have  had  his  choice  of  swords  or  spears,  for 
his  skirmish  with  the  Philistines ;  yet  he  leaves  all  the  munition  of 
Israel  ;  and  finding  the  new  jaw-bone  of  an  ass,  takes  that  up  in 
his  hand,  and  with  that  base  instrument  of  death,  sends  a  thousand 
Philistines  to  their  place.  All  the  swords  and  shields  of  the  armed 
Philistines  cannot  resist  that  contemptible  engine,  which  hath  now 
left  a  thousand  bodies  as  dead  as  the  carcase  of  that  beast  whose 
bone  it  was.  This  victory  was  not  in  the  weapon,  was  not  in  the 
arm  ;  it  was  in  the  Spirit  of  God,  which  moved  the  weapon  in  the 
arm.  O  God,  if  the  means  be  weak,  yet  thou  art  strong  :  through 
God  we  shall  do  great  acts ;  yea,  I  can  do  all  things  through  him 
that  strengtheneth  me.  Seest  thou  a  poor  Christian,  which  by 
weak  counsel  hath  obtained  to  overcome  a  temptation  ?  there  is  the 
Philistine  vanquished  with  a  sorry  jaw-bone. 

It  is  no  marvel,  if  he  were  thus  admirably  strong  and  victorious, 
whose  bodily  strength  God  meant  to  make  a  tvpe  of  the  spiritual 
power  of  Christ:  and  behold,  as  the'  three  thousands  of  Judah 
stood  still,  gazing  with  their  weapons  in  their  hands^  while  Samson 
alone  subdued  the  Phdistines ;  so  did  men  and  angels  stand  look- 


22S 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


ing  upon  the  glorious  achievements  of  the  Son  of  God,  who  might 
justly  say,  I  have  trod  the  wine-press  alone. 

Both  the  Samsons  complained  of  thirst.  The  same  God,  which 
gave  this  champion  victorv,  gave  him  also  refreshing ;  and  by  the 
same  means  :  the  same  bone  yields  him  both  conquest  and  life,  and 
is  of  a  weapon  of  offence  turned  into  a  well  of  water :  he,  that 
fetched  water  out  of  the  flint  for  Israel,  fetches  it  out  of  a  bone 
for  Samson.  What  is  not  possible  to  the  infinite  power  of  that 
Almighty  Creator,  that  made  all  things  of  nothing  ?  He  can  give 
Samson  honey  from  the  mouth  of  the  lion,  and  water  from  the 
mouth  of  the  ass.  Who  would  not  cheerfully  depend  upon  that 
God,  which  can  fetch  moisture  out  of  dryness,  and  life  out  of 
death  ?  Judges  xv. 


SAMSON'S  END. 

I  cannot  wonder  more  at  Samson's  strength  than  his  weakness : 
he,  that  began  .to  cast  away  his  love  upon  a  wife  of  the  Philistines, 
goes  on  to  mis-spend  himself  upon  the  harlots  of  the  Philistines ; 
he  that  did  not  so  much  overcome  the  men,  as  the  women  over- 
came him.  His  affections  blinded  him  first,  ere  the  Philistines 
could  do  it ;  would  he  else,  after  the  effusion  of  so  much  of  their 
blood,  have  suffered  his  lust  to  carry  him  within  their  walls,  as  one 
that  cared  more  for  his  pleasure  than  his  life  ? 

Oh  strange  debauchedness  and  presumption  of  a  Nazarite  ! 
The  Philistines  are  up  in  arms  to  kill  him ;  he  offers  himself  to 
their  city,  to  their  stews,  and  dares  expose  his  life  to  one  of  their 
harlots,  whom  he  had  slaughtered.  I  would  have  looked  to  have 
seen  him  betake  himself  to  his  stronger  rock  than  that  of  Etam ; 
and  by  his  austere  devotion,  to  seek  protection  of  him,  of  whom 
he  received  strength  :  but  now,  as  if  he  had  forgotten  his  consecra- 
tion, I  find  him  turned  Philistine  for  his  bed,  and  of  a  Nazarite 
scarce  a  man.  In  vain  doth  he  nourish  his  hair,  while  he  feeds  these 
passions.  How  easily  do  vigour  of  body  and  infirmity  of  mind 
lodge  under  one  roof!  On  the  contrary,  a  weakish  outside  is  a 
strong  motive  to  mortification.  Samson's  victories  have  subdued 
him ;  and  have  made  him  first  a  slave  to  lewd  desires,  and  then  to 
the  Philistines.  I  may  safely  say,  that  more  vessels  miscarry  with 
a  fair  gale  than  with  a  tempest. 

Yet  was  not  Samson  so  blinded  with  lust,  as  not  at  all  to  look 
before  him.  He  foresaw  the  morning  would  be  dangerous  ;  the 
bed  of  his  fornication  therefore  could  hold  him  no  longer  than 
midnight :  then  he  rises  ;  and  in  a  mock  of  those  ambushes  which 
the  Azzahites  laid  for  him,  he  carries  away  the  gates  wherein  they 
thought  to  have  encaged  him.  If  a  temptation  lias  drawn  us  aside 
to  lie  down  to  sin,  it  is  happy  for  us  if  we  can  rise  ere  we  be  sur- 
prised with  judgment.  Samson  had  not  left  his  strength  in  the 
bed  of  a  harlot ;  neither  had  that  God,  which  gave  it  him,  stripped 
him  of  it  with  his  clothes,  when  he  laid  ham  down  in  uncleanness. 
His  mercy  uses  not  to  take  advantage  of  our  unworthiness ;  but 


SAMSON'S  END. 


229 


even  when  we  cast  him  off,  holds  us  fast.  That  hountiful  hand 
leaves  us  rich  of  common  graces,  when  we  have  mis-spent  our 
better  store ;  like  as  our  first  parents,  when  they  had  spoiled 
themselves  of  the  image  of  their  Creator,  yet  were  left  wealthy  of 
noble  faculties  of  the  soul. 

I  find  Samson  come  off  from  his  sin  with  safety.  He  runs  away 
lightly  with  a  heavier  weight  than  the  gates  of  Azzah,  the  burden 
of  an  ill  act.  Present  impunity  argues  not  an  abatement  of  the 
wickedness  of  his  sin,  or  of  the  dislike  of  God.  Nothing  is  so 
worthy  of  pity,  as  sinners'  peace  :  good  is  not  therefore  good,  be- 
cause it  prospers,  but  because  it  is  commanded :  evil  is  not  evil, 
because  it  is  punished,  but  because  it  is  forbidden. 

If  the  holy  parents  of  Samson  lived  to  see  these  outrages  of  their 
Nazarite,  I  doubt  whether  they  did  not  repent  of  their  joy,  to  hear 
the  news  of  a  son.  It  is  a  shame  to  see  how  he  that  might  not 
drink  wine,  is  drunk  with  the  cup  of  fornications.  His  lust  carries 
him  from  Azzah,  to  the  plain  of  Sorek  ;  and  now  hath  found  a 
Delilah,  that  shall  pay  him  for  all  his  former  uncleanness.  Sin  is 
steep  and  slippery  ;  and  if  after  one  fall,  we  have  found  where  to 
stand,  it  is  the  praise,  not  of  our  footing,  but  of  the  hand  of  God. 

The  princes  of  the  Philistines  knew  already  where  Samson's 
weakness  lay,  though  not  his  strength  ;  and  therefore  they  would 
entice  his  harlot  by  gifts,  to  entice  him  by  her  dalliance  to  betray 
himself.  It  is  no  marvel,  if  she  that  would  be  filthy,  would  be  also 
perfidious.  How  could  Samson  choose  but  think,  if  lust  had  not 
bewitched  him,  "  she,  whose  body  is  mercenary  to  me,  will  easily 
sell  me  to  others ;  she  will  be  false,  if  she  will  be  a  harlot."  A  wide 
conscience  will  swallow  any  sin.  Those,  that  have  once  thralled 
themselves  to  a  known  evil,  can  make  no  other  difference  of  sins, 
but  their  own  loss,  or  advantage :  a  liar  can  steal ;  a  thief  can  kill ; 
a  cruel  man  can  be  a  traitor  ;  a  drunkard  can  falsify  :  wickedness 
once  entertained  can  put  on  any  shape :  trust  him  in  nothing,  that 
makes  not  a  conscience  of  every  thing. 

Was  there  ever  such  another  motion  made  to  a  reasonable  man  ? 
Tell  vie  wherein  thy  great  strength  lieth,  and  wherewith  thou 
maijcst  be  bound  to  do  thee  hurt.  Who  would  not  have  spurned 
such  a  suitor  out  of  doors?  What  will  not  impudence  ask,  or 
stupidity  receive  ?  He,  that  killed  the  thousand  Philistines  for 
coming  to  bind  him,  endures  this  harlot  of  the  Philistines  to  con- 
sult with  himself  of  binding  him;  and  when  upon  the  trial  of  a 
false  answer  he  saw  so  apparent  treachery,  yet  wilfully  betrays 
his  life  by  her  to  his  enemies.  All  sins,  all  passions  have  power  to 
infatuate  a  man,  but  lust  most  of  all.  Never  man  that  had  drunk 
flaggons  of  wine  had  less  reason  than  this  Nazarite  :  many  a  one 
loses  his  life,  but  this  casts  it  away  ;  not  in  hatred  of  himself >(,but 
in  love  to  a  strumpet. 

We  wonder  that  a  man  could  possibly  be  so  sottish,  and  yet  we 
ourselves  by  temptation  become  no  less  insensate:  sinful  pleasures, 
like  a  common  Delilah,  lodge  in  our  bosoms  ;  we  know  they  aim  at 
nothing  but  the  death  of  our  soul ;  we  will  yitld  to  them  and  die. 


230  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

Every  willing  sinner  is  a  Samson :  let  us  not  inveigh  against  his 
senselessness,  but  our  own.  Nothing  is  so  gross  and  unreasonable 
to  a  well-disposed  mind,  which  temptation  will  not  represent  fit 
and  plausible.  No  soul  can  out  of  his  own  strength,  secure  him- 
self from  that  sin  which  he  most  detesteth. 

As  a  hoodwinked  man  sees  some  little  glimmering  of  light,  but  i 
not  enough  to  guide  him  ;  so  did  Samson,  who  had  reason  enough 
left  him  to  make  trial  of  Delilah  by  a  crafty  misinformation,  but 
not  enough  upon  that  trial  -to  distrust  and  hate  her :  he  had  not  wit 
enough  to  deceive  her  thrice  :  not  enough  to  keen  himself  from 
being  deceived  by  her.  It  is  not  so  great  wisdom  to  prove  them 
whom  we  distrust,  as  it  is  folly  to  trust  them  whom  we  have  found 
treacherous  :  thrice  had  he  seen  the  Philistines  in  her  chamber, 
ready  to  surprise  him,  upon  her  bonds;  and  yet  will  needs  be  a 
slave  to  his  traitor.  Warning  not  taken  is  a  certain  presage  of  de- 
structions;  and  if  once  neglected  it  receive  pardon,  yet  thrice  is 
desperate. 

What  man  would  ever  play  thus  with  his  own  ruin  ?  His  harlot 
binds  him,  and  calls  in  her  executioners  to  cut  his  throat  ;  he  rises 
to  save  his  own  life,  and  suffers  them  to  carry  away  theirs  in  peace. 
W'here  is  the  courage  of  Samson  ?  where  his  zeal  ?  He  that  killed 
the  Philistines  for  their  clothes  ;  he  that  slew  a  thousand  of  them 
in  the  field  at  once  ;  in  this  quarrel,  now  suffers  them  in  his  cham- 
ber unrevenged.  Whence  is  this  ?  His  hands  were  strong,  but  his 
heart  was  effeminate:  his  harlot  had  diverted  his  affection.  Who- 
soever slackens  the  reins  to  his  sensual  appetite,  shall  soon  grow  un- 
fit for  the  calling  of  God. 

Samson  hath  broke  the  green  withes,  the  new  ropes,  the  woof  of 
his  hair ;  and  yet  still  suffers  himself  fettered  with  those  invisible 
bonds  of  a  bailors  love,  and  can  endure  her  to  say,  How  canst  thou 
say  I  love  thee,  when  thy  heart  is  not  with  me  ?  Thou  hast  mocked 
vie  these  three  times  :  whereas  he  should  rather  have  said  vinto  her, 
How  canst  thou  challenge  any  love  from  me,  that  hast  this  thrice 
sought  my  life  ?  Oh  !  canst  thou  think  my  mocks  a  sufficient  re- 
venge of  this  treachery  ?"  But  contrarily,  he  melts  at  this  fire; 
and  by  her  importunate  insinuations  is  wrought  against  himself. 
Weariness  of  solicitation  hath  won  some  to  those  actions,  which  at 
the  first  motion  they  despised  :  like  as  we  see  some  suitors  are  dis- 
patched, not  for  the  equity  of  the  cause,  but  the  trouble  of  the 
prosecution  ;  because  it  is  more  easy  to  yield,  not  more  reasona- 
ble. It  is  more  safe  to  keep  ourselves  out  of  the  noise  of  sugges- 
tions, than  to  stand  upon  our  power  of  denial. 

Who  can  pity  the  loss  of  that  strength  which  was  so  abused  ? 
Who  can  pity  him  the  loss  of  his  locks,  which  after  so  many  warn- 
ings can  sleep  in  the  lap  of  Delilah  ?  It  is  but  just,  that  he  should 
rise  up  from  thence  shaven  and  feeble  ;  not  a  Nazarite  ;  scarce  a 
man.  If  his  strength  had  lain  in  his  hair,  it  had  been  out  of  him- 
self; it  was  not  therefore  in  his  locks  ;  it  was  in  his  consecration, 
whereof  that  hair  was  a  sign.  If  the  razor  had  come  sooner  upon 
his  head,  he  had  ceased  to  be  a  Nazarite  ;  and  the  gift  of  God  had 


samson's  end. 


231 


at  once  ceased,  with  the  calling  of  God  ;  not  for  the  want  of  that 
excretion,  bat  for  want  of  obedience.  If  God  withdraw  his 
graces,  when  he  is  too  much  provoked,  who  can  complain  of  his 
mercy  ? 

He  that  sleeps  in  sin  must  look  to  wake  in  loss  and  weakness. 
Could  Samson  think,  "  Though  I  tell  her  my  strength  lies  in  my 
hair,  yet  she  will  not  cut  it ;  or  though  she  do  cut  my  hair,  yet 
shall  I  not  lose  my  strengtn  that  now  he  rises  and  si  lakes  himself 
in  hope  of  his  former  vigour  ?  Custom  of  success  makes  men  con- 
fident in  their  sins  ;  and  causes  them  to  mistake  an  arbitrary  tenure 
for  a  perpetuity. 

His  eyes  were  the  first  offenders,  which  betrayed  him  to  lust ; 
and  now  they  are  first  pulled  out,  and  he  is  led  a  blind  captive  to 
Azzah,  vrhere  he  was  first  captived  to  his  lust.  The  Azzahites, 
which  lately  saw  him  not  without  terror,  running  lightly  away  with 
their  gates  at  midnight,  see  him  now  in  his  own  perpetual  night 
struggling  with  his  chains  ;  and  that  he  may  not  want  pain  toge- 
ther with  his  bondage,  he  must  grind  in  his  prison. 

As  he  passed  the  street,  every  boy  among  the  Philistines  could 
throw  stones  at  him  ;  every  woman  could  laugh  and  shout  at  him  ; 
and  what  one  Philistine  doth  not  say,  while  he  lashes  him  unto 
blood,  "  There"  is  for  my  brother,  or  my  kinsman,  whom  thou 
slewest  ?"  Who  can  look  to  run  away  with  a  sin,  when  Samson,  a 
Nazaritc,  is  thus  plagued  ?  This  great  heart  could  not  but  have 
broken  with  indignation,  if  it  had  not  pacified  itself,  with  the  con- 
science of  the  just  desert  of  all  this  vengeance. 

It  is  better  for  Samson  to  be  blind  in  prison,  than  to  abuse  his 
eves  in  Sorek  ;  yea,  I  may  safely  say,  he  was  more  blind  when  he 
saw  licentiously,  than  now  that  he  sees  not.  He  was  a  greater 
slave  when  he  served  his  affections,  than  now  in  grinding  for  the 
Philistines.  The  loss  of  his  eyes  shews  him  his  sin  ;  neither  could 
he  see  how  ill  he  had  done,  till  he  saw  not. 

Even  yet,  still  the  God  of  mercy  looked  upon  the  blindness  of 
Samson  ;  and  in  these  fetters  enlargeth  his  heart  front  the  worse 
prison  of  his  sin.  His  hair  grew  together  with  bis  repentance, 
and  his  strength  with  his  hair.  God's  merciful  humiliations  of  his 
own  are  sometimes  so  severe,  that  they  seem  to  differ  little  from 
desertions;  yet  at  the  worst,  he  loves  us  bleeding;  and  when  we 
have  smarted  enough,  we  shall  feel  it. 

What  thankful  idolaters  were  these  Philistines  !  They  could  not 
but  know,  that  their  bribes  and  their  Delilah  had  delivered  Sam- 
son to  them,  and  yet  they  sacrifice  to  their  Dagon  ;  and,  as  those, 
that  would  be  liberal  in  casting  favours  upon  a  senseless  idol,  of 
whom  they  could  receive  none,  they  cry  out,  Our  god  hath  deli\ 
•vered  our  enemy  into  our  hands.  Wfaflre  was  their  Dagon,  when 
a  thousand  of  his  clients  were  slain  with  an  ass's  jaw  ?  There  was 
more  strength  in  that  bone,  than  in  all  the  makers  of  this  god  ;  and 
yet  these  vain  pagans  say,  Our  god.  It  is  the  quality  of  supersti- 
tion to  misinterpret  all  events,  and  to  feed  itself  with  the  conceit 
of  those  favours,  which  arc  so  far  from  being  done,  that  their  au- 


232 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


thors  never  were.  Why  do  not  we  learn  zeal  of  idolaters  ?  And 
if  they  be  so  forward  in  acknowledgment  of  their  deliverances  to 
a  false  deity,  how  cheerfully  shoulcl  we  ascribe  ours  to  the  true  ? 
O  God,  whatsoever  be  the  means,  thou  art  the  author  of  all  our 
success.  Oh  that  men  would  praise  the  Lord  for  his  goodness,  and 
tell  the  wonders  that  he  doth  for  the  sons  of  men  ! 

No  musician  would  serve  for  this  feast  but  Samson.  He  must 
now  be  their  sport,  which  was  once  their  terror.  That  he  might 
want  no  sorrow,  scorn  is  added  to  his  misery  :  every  wit  and  hand 
plays  upon  him  :  who  is  not  ready  to  cast  his  bone  and  his  jest  at 
such  a  captive  ?  So  as  doubtless  he  wished  himself  no  less  deaf  than 
blind,  and  that  his  soul  might  have  gone  out  with  his  eyes.  Op- 
pression is  able  to  make  a  wise  man  mad  ;  and  the  greater  the  cou- 
rage is,  the  more  painful  the  insult. 

Now  Samson  is  punished,  shall  the  Philistines  escape  ?  If  the 
judgment  of  God  begin  at  his  own,  what  shall  become  of  his  ene- 
mies ?  This  advantage  shall  Samson  make  of  their  tyranny,  that 
now  death  is  no  punishment  to  him  ;  his  soul  shall  fly  forth  jn  this 
bitterness  without  pain  ;  and  that  his  dying  revenge  shall  be  no 
less  sweet  to  him,  than  the  liberty  of  his  former  life.  He  could 
not  but  feel  God  mocked  through  him  ;  and  therefore,  while  they 
are  scoffing  he  prays  :  his  seriousness  hopes  to  pay  them  forall  those 
jests.  If  he  could  have  been  thus  earnest  with  God  in  his  prospe- 
rity, the  Philistines  had  wanted  this  laughing  stock.  No  devotion 
is  so  fervent,  as  that  which  arises  from  extremity  :  0  Lord  God,  I 
pray  thee  think  upon  me  ;  0  God,  I  beseech  thee  strengthen  me  at 
this  time  only. 

Though  Samson's  hair  were  shorter,  yet  he  knew  God's  hand 
was  not ,  as  one  therefore  that  had  yet  eyes  enough  to  see  him  that 
was  invisible,  and  whose  faith  was  recovered  before  his  strength,  he 
sues  to  that  God,  which  was  a  party  in  this  indignity,  for  power  to 
revenge  his  wrongs  more  than  his  own.  It  is  zeal  that  moves  him, 
and  not  malice  :  his  renewed  faith  tells  him,  that  he  was  destined 
to  plague  the  Philistines  ;  and  reason  tells  him,  that  his  blindness 
puts  him  out  of  the  hope  of  such  another  opportunity :  knowing 
therefore,  that  this  play  of  the  Philistines  must  end  in  his  death,  he 
recollects  all  the  forces  of  his  soul  and  body,  that  his  death  may 
be  a  punishment  instead  of  a  disport ;  and  that  his  soul  may  be 
more  victorious  in  the  parting,  than  in  the  animation  :  and  so  ad- 
dresses himself  both  to  die  and  kill  ;  asone  whose  soul  shall  not  feel 
his  own  dissolution,  while  it  shall  carry  so  many  thousand  Philis- 
tine? with  it  to  the  pit.  All  the  acts  of  Samson  are  for  wonder,  not 
for  imitation  :  so  didst  thou,  O  blessed  Saviour,  our  better  Samson, 
conquer  in  dying  ;  and  triumphing  upon  the  chariot  of  the  cross, 
didst  lead  captivity  captive  :  the  law,  sin,  death,  hell,  had  never 
been  vanquished,  but  by  thy  death  :  all  our  life,  liberty,  and  glory, 
springs  out  of  thy  most  precious  blood.  Judges  xvi. 


233 


MICAH'S  IDOLATRY. 

The  mother  of  Micah  hath  lost  her  silver,  and  now  she  falls  to 
cursing  :  she  did  afterwards  but  change  the  form  of  her  god  :  ier 
silver  was  her  god,  ere  it  did  put  on  the  fashion  of  an  image ;  dse 
she  had  not  so  much  cursed  to  lose  it,  if  it  had  not  too  much  pos- 
sessed her  in  the  keeping.  A  carnal  heart  cannot  forego  tiiat 
wherein  it  delights,  without  impatience ;  cannot  be  impatieit, 
without  curses:  whereas  the  man,  that  hath  learned  to  enjoy  God 
and  use  the  world,  smiles  at  a  shipwreck,  and  pities  a  thief;  and 
cannot  curse,  but  pray. 

Micah  had  so  little  grace  as  to  steal  from  his  mother,  and  that 
out  of  wantonness,  not  out  of  necessity  ;  for  if  she  had  not  been 
rich,  so  much  could  not  have  been  stolen  from  her :  and  now,  he 
hath  so  much  grace  as  to  restore  it :  her  curses  have  fetched  again 
her  treasures.  He  cannot  so  much  love  the  money,  as  he  fears  her 
imprecations.  Wealth  seems  too  dear,  bought  with  a  curse. 
Though  his  fingers  were  false,  yet  his  heart  was  tender.  Many, 
that  make  not  conscience  of  committing  sin,  yet  make  conscience  of 
facing  it :  it  is  well  for  them,  that  they  arc  but  novices  in  evil. 
Those",  whom  custom  hath  fleshed  in  sin,  can  either  deny  and  for- 
swear, or  excuse  and  defend  it :  their  seared  hearts  cannot  feel  the 
gnawing  of  any  remorse  ;  and  their  forehead  hath  learned  to  be  as 
impudent,  as  their  heart  is  senseless. 

I  see  no  argument  of  any  holiness  in  the  mother  of  Micah  :  her 
curses  were  sin  to  herself;  yet  Micah  dares  not  but  fear  them.  I 
know  not  whether  the  causeless  curse  be  more  worthy  of  pity,  or 
derision  ;  it  hurts  the  author,  not  his  adversary :  but  the  deserved 
curses,  that  fall  even  from  unholy  mouths,  are  worthy  to  be  feared. 
Plow  much  more  should  a  man  hold  himself  blasted  with  the  just  im- 
precations of  the  godly  !  What  metal  are  those  made  of,  that  can 
applaud  themselves  in  the  bitter  curses  which  their  oppressions 
have  wrung  from  the  poor,  and  rejoice  in  these  signs  of  their 
prosperity  f 

Neither  yet  was  Micah  more  stricken  with  his  mother's  curses, 
than  with  the  conscience  of  sacrilege :  so  soon  as  he  finds  there 
was  a  purpose  of  devotion  in  this  treasure,  he  dares  not  conceal  it, 
to  the  prejudice,  as  he  thought,  of  God,  more  than  of  his  mother. 
AVhat  shall  we  say  to  the  palate  of  those  men,  which  as  they  find  no 
good  relish  but  in  stolen  waters,  so  best  in  those  which  are  stolen, 
from  the  fountain  of  God  ? 

How  soon  hath  the  old  woman  changed  her  note !  Even  now  she 
passed  an  indefinite  curse  upon  her  son  for  stealing,  and  now  she 
blesses  him  absolutely  for  restoring;  Blessed  be  mi/  son  of  the 
Lord.  She  hatli  forgotten  the  theft,  when  she  sees  the  restitution  : 
how  much  more  shall  the  God  of  mercies  be  more  pleased  with  our 
confession,  than  provoked  with  our  sin  ! 

*  I  doubt  not  but  this  silver  and  this  superstition  came  out  of 
Egypt,  together  with  the  mother  of  Micah.  This  history  is  not  so 
late  in  time,  as  in  place  ;  for  the  tribe  of  Dan  was  not  yet  settled 


23 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


in  that  first  division  of  the  promised  land  ;  so  as  this  old  woman 
hal  seen  both  the  idolatry  of  Egypt,  and  the  golden  calf  in  the 
Wilderness;  and  no  doubt,  contributed  some  of  her  ear-rings  to 
thjt  deity  ;  and  after  all  the  plagues  which  she  saw  inflicted  upon 
he-  brethren  for  that  idol  of  Horeb,  and  Baal-peor,  she  still  re- 
serves a  secret  love  to  superstition,  and  now  shews  it.  Where 
mis-religion  hath  once  possessed  itself  of  the  heart,  it  is  very  hardly 
cleansed  out;  but;  like  the  plague,  will  hang  in  the  very  clothes, 
and,  after  long  lurking,  break  forth  in  an  unexpected  infection  ; 
and  old  wood  is  the  aptest  to  take  this  fire:  after  ail  the  airing  iu 
the  desert,  Micah's  mother  will  smell  of  Egypt. 

It  had  been  better  the  silver  had  been  stolen,  than  thus  bestowed  ; 
for  now  they  have  so  employed  it,  that  it  hath  stolen  away  their 
hearts  from  God  ;  and  yet  white  it  is  molten  into  an  image,  they 
think  it  dedicated  to  the  Lord.  If  religion  might  be  judged  ac- 
cording to  the  intention,  there  should  scarce  be  any  idolatry  in  the 
world.  This  woman  loved  her  silver  enough ;  and  if  she  had  not 
thought  this  costlv  piety  worth  thanks,  she  knew  which  way  to  have 
employed  her  stock  to  advantage.  Even  evil  actions  have  oft- 
times  good  meanings,  and  those  good  meanings  are  answered  with 
evil  recompences.  Many  a  one  bestows  their  cost,  their  labour, 
their  blood,  and  receives  torment  instead  of  thanks. 

Behold  a  superstitious  son  of  a  superstitious  mother  !  She  makes 
a  god,  and  he  harbours  it ;  yea,  as  the  strcamis  commonly  broader 
than  the  head,  he  exceeds  his  mother  in  evil :  he  hath  a  house  of 
gods,  an  ephod,  teraphin  ;  and,  that  he  might  be  complete  in  his 
devotion,  he  makes  his  son  his  priest,  and  feoffs  that  sin  upon  his 
son,  which  he  received  from  his  mother.  Those  sins,  which  nature 
conveys  not  to  us,  we  have  by  imitation.  Every  action  and  ges- 
ture of  the  parents  is  an  example  to  the  child  ;  and  the  mother,  as 
she  is  more  tender  over  her  son,  so  by  the  power  of  a  reciprocal 
love,  she  can  work  most  upon  his  inclination.  Whence  it  is,  that 
in  the  history  of  the  Israelitish  kings,  the  mother's  name  is  com- 
monly noted  :  and  as  civilly,  so  also  morally }  <{  the  birth  follows 
the  belly."  Those  sons  may  bless  their  second  birth,  that  are  de- 
livered from  the  sins  of  their  education. 

Who  cannot  but  think  how  far  Micah  overlooked  all  his  fellow 
Israelites,  and  thought  them  profane  and  godless  in  comparison 
of  himself!  How  did  he  secretly  clap  himself  on  the  breast,  as  the 
man  whose  happiness  it  was  to  engross  religion  from  all  the  tribes 
of  Israel ;  and  little  can  imagine,  that  the  further  he  runs,  the  more 
out  of  the  way  !  Can  an  Israelite  be  thus  paganish  ?  O  Micah  ! 
how  hath  superstition  bewitched  thee,  that  thou  canst  not  see  re- 
bellion in  every  of  these  actions,  yea,  in  every  circumstance  re- 
bellion !  What,  more  gods  than  one  !  A  house  of  gods,  beside 
God's  house !  An  image  of  silver  to  the  invisible  God  !  An  ephod, 
and  no  priest  !  A  priest,  besides  the  family  of  Levi  !  A  priest  of 
thine  own  begetting,  of  thine  own  consecration  !  What  mousteqp 
doth  man's  imagination  produce,  when  it  is  forsaken  of  God  !  It  is 
well  seen  there  is  no  king  in  Israel:  if  God  had  been  their  king,  his 


micah's  idolatry.  235 
laws  had  ruled  them  :  if  Moses  or  Joshua  had  heen  their  king,  their 
sword  had  awed  them  :  if  any  other,  the  courses  of  Israel  could  not 
have  been  so  heedless.  We  arc  beholden  to  government  for  order, 
for  peace,  for  religion,  Where  there  is  no  king,  every  one  will  be 
a  king,  yea,  a  God  to  himself.  We  are  worthy  of  nothing  but 
confusion,  if  we  bless  not  God  for  authority. 

It  is  no  marvel,  if  Levites  wandered  for  maintenance,  while  there 
was  no  king  in  Israel.  The  tithes  and  offerings  were  their  due:  if 
these  had  been  paid,  none  of  the  holy  tribe  needed  to  shift  his 
station.  Even  where  royal  power  seconds  the  claim  of  the  Levite, 
the  injustice  of  men  shortens  his  right.  What  should  become  of 
the  Levites,  if  there  were  no  king  ?  And  what  of  the  church,  if  no 
Levites  ?  No  King  therefore,  no  Church.  How  could  the  impo- 
tent, child  live  without  a  nurse  ?  Kings  shall  be  thy  nursing  fa- 
thers, and  queens  thy  nurses,  saith  God.  Nothing  more  argues 
the  disorder  of  any  Church,  or  the  decay  of  religion,  than  the 
forced  straggling  of  the  Levites.  There  is  hope  of  growth,  when 
Micah  rides  to  seek  a  Levite  ;  but  when  the  Levite  comes  to  seek  a 
service  of  Micah,  it  is  a  sign  of  gasping  devotion. 

Micah  was  no  obscure  man  :  all  Mount  Ephraim  could  not  but 
take  notice  of  his  domestic  gods.  This  Levite  could  not  but 
hear  of  his  disposition,  of  his  mis-devotion ;  yet  want  of  mainte- 
nance, no  less  than  conscience,  draws  him  on  to  the  danger  of  an 
idolatrous  patronage.  Holiness  is  not  tied  to  any  profession. 
Happy  were  it  for  the  Church,  if  the  clergy  could  be  a  privilege 
from  lewdness.  When  need  meets  with  unconscionableness,  all 
conditions  are  easily  swallowed  of  unlawful  entrances,  of  wicked 
executions.  Ten  shekels,  and  a  suit  of  apparel,  and  his  diet,  are 
good  wages  for  a  needv  Levite.  He,  that  could  bestow  eleven 
hundred  shekels  upon  his  puppets,  can  afford  but  ten  to  his 
priest  ;  so  hath  he  at  once  a  rich  idol,  and  a  beggarly  priest. 
Whosoever  affects  to  serve  God  good  cheap,  shews,  that  he  makes 
God  but  a  stale  to  Mammon. 

Yet  was  Micah  a  kind  patron,  though  not  liberal.  He  calls  the 
young  Levite  his  father,  and  uses  him  as  his  son  ;  and  what  he 
wants  in  means,  supplies  in  affection.  It  were  happy,  if  Chris- 
tians could  imitate  the  love  of  idolaters  towards  them  which  serve 
at  the  altar.  Micah  made  a  shift  with  the  priesthood  of  his  own 
son  ;  yet  that  his  heart  checks  him  in  it,  appears  both  by  the 
change  and  his  contentment  in  the  change  ;  Now  I  know  that  the 
Lord  will  be  good  to  me,  seeing  I  have  a  Levite  to  viy  priest : 
therefore,  while  his  priest  was  no  Levite,  he  sees  there  was  cause 
why  God  should  not  be  good  to  him.  If  the  Levite  had  not  come 
to  offer  his  service,  Micah's  son  had  been  a  lawful  priest.  Many 
times  the  conscience  runs  away  smoothly  with  an  unwarrantable 
action,  and  rests  itself  upon  those  grounds,  which  afterward  it 
sees  cause  to  condemn.  It  is  a  sure  way  therefore,  to  inform  our- 
selves thoroughly  ere  we  settle  our  choice,  that  we  be  not  driven 
to  reverse  our  acis,  with  late  shame  and  unprofitable  repentance. 


236 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


Now  did  Micah  begin  to  see  some  little  glimpse  of  his  own 
error  :  be  saw  his  priesthood  faulty  ;  he  saw  not  the  faults  of  his 
cphod,  of  bis  images,  of  his  gods  :  and  yet,  as  if  he  thought  all 
had  been  well  when  he  had  amended  one,  he  says,  Now  I  know 
the  Lord  will  be  good  to  me.  The  carnal  heart  pleases  itself  with 
an  outward  formality  ;  and  so  delights  to  flatter  itself,  as  that  it 
thinks,  if  one. circumstance  be  right,  nothing  can  be  amiss. 

Israel  was  at.  this  time  extremely  corrupted  ;  yet  the  spies  of 
the  Danites  had  taken  notice  even  of  this  young  Levite,  and  are 
glad  to  make  use  of  his  priesthood.  If  they  had  but  gone  up  to 
Shiloh,  they  might  have  consulted  with  the  ark  of  God  ;  but 
worldly  minds  are  not  curious  in  their  holy  services  :  if  they  have 
a  god,  an  ephod,  a  priest,  it  suffices  them  :  they  would  rather  en- 
joy a  false  worship  with  ease,  than  to  take  pains  for  the  true. 
Those,  that  are  curious  in  their  diet,  in  their  purchases,  in  their 
attire,  in  their  contracts,  yet  in  God's  business  are  very  indif- 
ferent. 

The  author  of  lies  sometimes  speaks  truth  for  an  advantage  ; 
and  from  his  mouth  this  flattering  Levite  speaks  what  he  knew 
would  please,  not  what  he  knew  would  fall  out :  the  event  answers 
his  prediction,  and  now  the  spies  magnify  him  to  their  fellows. 
Micah's  idol  is  a  god,  and  the  Levite  is  his  oracle.  In  matter  of 
judgment,  to  be  guided  only  by  the  event,  is  the  way  to  error : 
falsehood  shall  be  truth,  and  Satan  an  angel  of  light,  if  we  follow 
this  rule.  Even  very  conjectures  sometimes  happen  right :  a  pro- 
phet, or  a  dreamer,  may  give  a  true  sign  or  wonder,  and  yet  him- 
self say,  Let  tis  go  af  ter  other  gods.  A  small  thing  can  win  credit 
with  weak  minds,  which,  where  they  have  once  sped,  cannot 
distrust. 

The  idolatrous  Danites  are  so  besotted  with  this  success,  that 
they  will  rather  steal  than  want  the  gods  of  Micah ;  and  because 
the  gods  without  the  priests  can  do  them  less  service  than  the 
priest  without  the  gods,  therefore  they  steal  the  priest  with  the 
gods.  Oh  miserable  Israelites  !  that  could  think  that  a  god,  which 
could  be  stolen ;  that  could  look  for  protection  from  that,  which 
could  not  keep  itself  from  stealing  ;  which  was  won  by  their  theft, 
not  their  devotion  !  Could  they  worship  those  idols  more  devoutly 
than  Micah  that  made  them  ?  And  if  they  could  not  protect  their 
maker  from  robbery,  how  shall  they  protect  their  thieves  ?  If  it 
had  been  the  holv  ark  of  the  true  God,  how  could  they  think  it 
would  bless  their  violence  ;  or  that  it  would  abide  to  be  translated 
by  rapine  arid  extortion  ?  Now  their  superstition  hath  made  them 
mad  upon  a  god,  they  must  have  him  ;  by  what  means  they  care 
not,  though  they  offend  the  true  God,  by  stealing  a  false, 

Sacrilege  is  fit  to  be  the  first  service  of  an  idol,    The  spies  of 
Dan  had  been  courteously  entertained  by  Micah  ;  thus  they  re- 
warded his  hospitality.    It  is  no  trusting  the  honesty  of  idolaters  : 
if  they  have  once  cast  off"  the  true  God,  whom  will  they  respect  ? 
It  seems  Levitcs  did  not  more  want  maintenance,  than  Israel 


micah's  idolatry.  231 
wanted  Levkes :  here  was  a  tribe  of  Israel  without  a  spiritual 
guide.  The  withdrawing  of  due  means  is  the  way  to  the  utter  de- 
solation of  the  Church  :  rare  offerings  make  cold  altars. 

There  needed  small  force  to  draw  this  Levite  to  change  his 
charge  ;  Hold  thy  peace,  and  come,  and  be  our  father  and  priest ; 
whether  is  it  better,  Mc.  Here  is  no  patience,  but  joy :  he  that 
was  won  with  ten  shekels  may  be  lost  with  eleven :  when  mainte- 
nance and  honour  calls  him,  he  goes  utidrrven  ;  and  rather  steals 
himself  away,  than  is  stolen.  The  Levite  had  too  many  gods,  to 
make  conscience  of  pleasing  one  :  there  is  nothing  more  incon- 
stant, than  a  Levite  that  seeks  nothing  but  himself. 

Thus  the  wildfire  of  idolatry,  which  lay  before  couched  in  the. 
private  hall  of  Micah,  now  flies  furiously  through  all  the  tribe  of 
Dan  ;  who,  like  to  thieves  that  have  carried  away  plague-clothes, 
have  insensibly  infected  themselves  and  their  posterity  to  death. 
Heresy  and  superstition  have  small  beginnings,  dangerous  pro- 
ceedings, pernicious  conclusions.  This  contagion  is  like  a  canker, 
which  at  the  first  is  scarce  visible  ;  afterwards  it  eats  away  the 
flesh,  and  consumes  the  body.  Judges  xvii,  rviii. 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 

BOOK  XI. 


TO  THE  RIGHT  HONOURABLE 

SIR  FULKE  GREVILLE,  KNT. 

CHANCELLOR  OF  THE  EXCHEQUER, 
ONE  OF  HIS  MAJESTY'S  MOST  HONOURABLE  PRIVY  COUNSELLORS; 
A  MOST   WISE,  LEARNED,  JUDICIOUS,  INGENUOUS 
CENSOR  OF  SCHOLARSHIP  ; 
A -WORTHY  EXAMPLE  OF  BENEFACTORS  TO  LEARNING  J 

/.  //. 

WITH  HIS  UNFEIGNED  PRAYERS  FOR  THE  HAPPY  SUCCESS  OF  ALL  HIS 
HONOURABLE  DESIGN  ME  NTS, 
HUMBLY  DEDICATES  THIS  MEAN  PIECE  OF  HIS  STUDIES. 


THE  LEVITE'S  CONCUBINE. 

There  is  no  complaint  of  a  publicly  disordered  state,  where  a  Le- 
vite  is  not  at  one  end  of  it,  either  as  an  agent  or  a  patient.  In  the 
idolatry  of  Micah  and  the  Danitcs,  a  Levite  was  an  actor  ;  in 
the  violent  uncleanness  of  Gibeah,  a  Levite  suffers.  No  tribe  shall 
sooner  feel  the  want  of  government,  than  that  of  Levi. 

The  law  of  God  allowed  the  Levite  a  wife  ;  human  connivance,  a 
concubine:  neither  did  the  Jewish  concubine  differ  from  a  wife, 
but  in  some  outward  compliments :  both  might  challenge  all  the 
true  essence  of  marriage  ;  so  little  was  the  difference,  that  the  fa- 
ther of  the  concubine  is  called  the  father-in-law  to  the  Levite. 

She,  whom  ill  custom  had  of  a  wife  made  a  concubine,  is  now 
by  her  lust  of  a  concubine  made  a  harlot :  her  fornication,  to- 
gether with  the  chapge  of  her  bed,  hath  changed  her  abode.  Per- 
haps her  own  conscience  thrust  her  out  of  doors ;  perhaps  the  just 
severity  of  her  husband.  Dismission  was  too  easy  a  penalty  for 
that,  which  God  had  sentenced  with  death. 

She,  that  had  deserved  to  be  abhorred  of  her  husband,  seeks 
shelter  from  her  father.  Why  would  her  father  suffer  his  house  to 
be  defiled  with  an  adulteress,  thoogh  out  of  his  own  loins  ?  Why  did 


THE  LEVITE's  CONCUBINE. 


2.19 


he  not  rather  say,  "  What !  dost  thou  think  to  find  my  house  % 
harbour  for  thy  sin  ?  While  thou  vvert  a  wife  to  thy  hushund, 
thou  wert  a  daughter  to  me  ;  now,  thou  art  neither.  Thou  art  not 
mine;  I  gave  tiiee  to  thy  husband:  thou  art  not  thy  husband's; 
thou  hast  betrayed  his  bed.  Thy  fikhiness  hath  made  thee  thne, 
own,  and  thine  adulterer's  :  go  seek  thine  entertainment,  where  thou 
hast  lost  thine  honesty.  Thy  lewdness  hath  brought  a  necessity  of 
shame  upon  thine  abettors:  how  can  I  countenance  thy  person, 
and  abandon  thy  sin  ?  I  would  rather  be  a  just  man,  than  a  kind 
father.  Get  thee  home  therefore  to  thy  husband  ;  crave  his  for- 
giveness upon  thy  knees  ;  redeem  his  love  with  thy  modesty  and 
obedience.  When  his  heart  is  once  open  to  thee,  my  doors  shall 
riot  be  shut :  in  the  mean  time,  know,  I  can  be  no  father  to  a  har- 
lot." Indulgence  of  parents  is  the  refuge  of  vanity,  the  bawd  of 
wickedness,  the  bane  of  children.  How  easily  is  that  thief  induced 
to  steal,  that  knows  his  receiver  !  When  the  lawlessness  of  youth 
knows  where  to  find  pity  and  toleration,  what  mischief  can  it  for- 
bear ? 

By  how  much  better  this  Levitc  was,  so  much  more  injurious  was 
the  concubine's  sin.  What  husband  would  not  have  said,  U  She  is 
gone,  let  shame  and  grief  go  with  her.  I  shall  find  one  no  less 
pleasing,  and  more  faithful :  or,  if  it  be  not  too  much  mercv  in 
me  to  y;eld  to  a  return,  let  her,  that  hath  offended,  seek  me  :  what 
more  direct,  way  is  there  to  a  resolved  looseness,  than  to  let  her  see 
I  cannot  want  her  r" 

The  good  nature  of  this  Lcvite  casts  off  all  these  terms ;  and 
now,  after  four  month's  absence,  sends  him  to  seek  for  her,  that 
had  run  away  from  her  fidelity  :  and  now  he  thinks,  "  She  sinned 
against  me ;  perhaps  she  hath  repented  ;  perhaps,  shame  and  fear 
have  withheld  her  from  returning  ;  perhaps  she  will  be  more  loyal, 
for  her  sin:  if  her  importunity  should  win  me,  half  the  thanks 
were  lost ;  but  now,  my  voluntary  offer  of  favour  shall  oblige  her 
for  ever."  Love  procures  truer  servitude  than  necessity  :  mercy 
becomes  well  the  heart  of  any  man,  but  most  of  a  Levite.  He, 
that  had  helped  to  offer  so  many  sacrifices  to  God  for  the  multitude 
of  every  Israelite's  sins,  saw  how  proportionable  it  was,  that  man 
should  not  hold  one  sin  unpardonable  :  he  had  served  at  the  altar 
to  no  purpose,  if  he,  whose  trade  was  to  sue  for  mercy,  had  not  at 
all  learned  to  practise  it. 

And  if  the  reflection  of  mercy  wrought  this  in  a  servant,  what 
shall  we  expect  from  him  whose  essence  is  mercy  ?  O  God,  we 
do  every  day  break  the  holy  covenant  of  our  love.  We  prosti- 
tute ourselves  to  every  filthy  temptation;  and  then  run,  and  hide 
ourselves  in  our  father's  house,  the  world.  If  thou  didst  not  seek 
us  up,  we  should  never  return  :  if  thy  gracious  prolfer  did  not  pre- 
vent us,  we  should  be  incapable  of  forgiveness.  It  were  abun- 
dant goodness  in  thee  to  receive  us,  when  we  should  intreat  tlu\-  ; 
but  lo,  thou  intreatest  us  that  we  would  receive  thee  !  How  should 
we  now  adore,  and  imitate  thy  mercy  :  since  there  is  more  reason, 


240 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


we  should  sue  to  each  other,  than  that  thou  shouldcst  sue  to  us ; 
because  we  may  as  well  offend,  as  be  offended  ! 

I  do  not  see  the  woman's  father  make  any  means  for  reconcilia- 
tion ;  but  when  remission  came  home  to  his  doors,  no  man  could 
entertain  it  more  thankfully.  The  nature  of  many  men  is  forward 
to  accept,  and  negligent  to  sue  for :  they  can  spend  secret  wishes 
upon  that,  which  shall  cost  them  no  endeavour. 

Great  is  the  power  of  love,  which  can  in  a  sort  undo  evils  past ; 
if  not  for  the  act,  yet  for  the  remembrance.  Where  true  affec- 
tion was  once  conceived,  it  is  easily  pieced  again,  after  the  strong- 
est interruption.  Here  needs  no  tedious  recapitulation  of  wrongs, 
no  importunity  of  suit.  The  unkindnesses  are  forgotten,  their 
love  is  renewed  ;  and  now  the  Levite  is  not  a  stranger,  but  a  son. 
By  how  much  more  willingly  he  came,  by  so  much  more  unwill- 
ingly he  is  dismissed.  The  four  months'  absence  of  his  daughter 
is  answered  with  four  days'  feasting.  Neither  was  there  so  much 
joy  in  the  former  wedding  feast,  as  in  this  ;  because  then  he  deliver- 
ed his  daughter  entire  ;  now,  desperate  :  then  he  found  a  son  ;  but 
now,  that  son  hath  found  his  lost  daughter,  and  he  found  both. 
The  recovery  of  any  good  is  far  more  pleasant  than  the  continu- 
ance. 

Little  do  we  know  what  evil  is  towards  us.  Now  did  this  old 
man  and  this  restored  couple,  promise  themselves  all  joy  and  con- 
tentment, after  this  unkind  storm;  and  said  in  themselves,  "  Now 
we  begin  to  live."  And  now  this  feast,  which  was  meant  for  their 
new  nuptials,  proves  her  funeral.  Even  when  we  let  ourselves 
loosest  to  our  pleasures,  the  hand  of  God,  though  invisibly,  is 
writing  bitter  things  against  us.  Since  we  are  not  worthy  to  know, 
it  is  wisdom  to  suspect  the  worst,  while  it  is  least  seen. 

Sometimes  it  falls  out,  that  nothing  is  more  injurious  than  courte- 
sy. If  this  old  man  had  thrust  his  son  and  daughter  early  out  of 
doors,  they  had  avoided  this  mischief ;  now,  his  loving  importu- 
nity detains  them  to  their  hurt,  and  his  own  repentance.  Such 
contentment  doth  sincere  affection  find  in  the  presence  of  those  we 
love,  that  death  itself  hath  no  other  name  but  departing.  The 
greatest  comfort  of  our  life  is  the  fruition  of  friendship  ;  the  dis- 
solution whereof,  is  the  greatest  pain  of  death.  As  all  earthly 
pleasures,  so  this  of  love,  is  distasted  with  a  necessity  of  leaving. 
How  worthy  is  that  only  love  to  take  up  our  hearts,  which  is  not 
open  to  any  danger  of  interruption  ;  which  shall  outlive  the  date 
even  of  faith  and  hope,  and  is  as  eternal,  as  that  God  and  those 
blessed  spirits  whom  we  love  !  If  we  hang  never  so  importunately 
upon  one  another's  sleeves,  and  shed  floods  of  tears  to  stop  their 
way,  yet  we  must  be  gone  hence  :  no  occasion,  no  force,  shall 
then  remove  us  from  our  father's  house. 

The  Levite  is  stayed  beyond  his  time  by  importunity,  the  mo- 
tions whereof  are  boundless  and  infinite :  one  day  draws  on  ano- 
ther ;  neither  is  there  any  reason  of  this  day's  stay,  which  may  not 
serve  still  for  to-morrow.    His  resolution  at  last  breaks  through  all 


THE  LEVITE's  CONCUBINE.  241 

those  kind  hindrances:  rather  will  he  venture  a  benighting,  than  an 
unnecessary  delay.  It  is  a  good  hearing  that  the  Levite  makes 
haste  home.  An  honest  man's  heart  is  where  his  calling  is  :  such 
a  one,  when  he  is  abroad,  is  like  a  fish  in  the  air;  whereinto  if  it 
leap  for  recreation  or  necessity,  yet  it  soon  returns  to  his  own  ele- 
ment. This  charge,  by  how  much  more  sacred  it  is,  so  much 
more  attendance  it  expecteth.  Even  a  day  breaks  square  with  the 
conscionable. 

The  sun  is  ready  to  lodge  before  them.  His  servant  advises 
him  to  shorten  his  journey  ;  holding  it  more  fit  to  trust  an  early 
inn  of  the  Jebusites,  than  to  the  mercy  of  the  night.  And  if  that 
counsel  had  been  followed,  perhaps  they,  which  found  Jebusites  in 
Israel,  might  have  found  Israelites  in  Jehus.  No  wise  man  can  hold 
good  counsel  disparaged,  by  the  meanness  of  the  author  :  if  we  be 
glad  to  receive  any  treasure  from  our  servant,  why  not  precious 
admonitions  ? 

It  was  the  zeal  of  this  Levite,  that  shut  him  out  of  Jehus ;  We 
will  not  lodge  in  the  city  of  strangers.  The  Jebusites  were  strangers 
in  religion,  not  strangers  enough  in  their  habitation  :  the  Levite 
will  not  receive  common  courtesy  from  those  which  were  aliens 
from  God,  though  home-born  in  the  heart  of  Israel.  It  is  lawful 
enough  in  terms  of  civility  to  deal  with  infidels :  the  earth  is  the 
Lord's ;  and  we  may  enjoy  it  in  the  right  of  the  owner,  while  we 
protest  against  the  wrong  of  the  usurper  :  yet  the  less  communion 
with  God's  enemies,  the  more  safety.  If  tiiere  were  another  air  to 
breathe  in  from  theirs,  another  earth  to  tread  upon,  they  should 
have  their  own.  Those,  that  affect  a  familiar  entireness  with  Jebu- 
sites, in  conversation,  in  leagues  of  amity,  in  matrimonial  con- 
tracts, bewray  either  too  much  boldness  or  too  little  conscience. 

He  hath  no  blood  of  an  Israelite,  that  delights  to  lodge  in  Jebus. 
It  was  the  fault  of  Israel,  that  a  heathenish  town  stood  yet  in  the 
navel  of  the  tribes,  and  that  Jebus  was  no  sooner  turned  to  Jeru- 
salem. Their  lenity  and  neglect  were  guilty  of  this  neighbour- 
hood, that  now  no  man  can  pass  from  Bethlehem-Judah  to  Mount 
Ephraim,  but  by  the  city  of  the  Jebusites.  Seasonable  justice 
might  prevent  a  thousand  evils,  which  afterwards  know  no  remedy 
but  patience. 

The  way  was  not  long  betwixt  Jebus  and  Gibeah  ;  for  the  sun 
was  stooping  when  the  Levite  was  over  against  the  first,  and  is  but 
now  declined  when  he  comes  to  the  other.  How  his  heart  was 
lightened,  when  be  entered  into  an  Israelitish  city  !  and  can  think 
of  nothing  hut  hospitality,  rest,  security.  There  is  no  perfume  so 
sweet  to  a  traveller,  as  his  own  smoke.  Both  expectation  and  fear 
do  commonly  disappoint  us  ;  for  seldom  ever  do  we  enjoy  the 
good  we  look  for,  or  smart  with  a  feared  evil. 

The  poor  Levite  could  have  found  but  such  entertainment  with 
the  Jebusites.  Whither  are  the  posterity  of  Benjamin  degene- 
rated, that  their  Gibeah  should  be  no  less  wicked  than  populous  ? 

The  first  sign  of  a  settled  godlessncss,  is,  that  a  Levite  is  suffered, 

VOL.  I.  R 


212  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

to  lie  without  doors.  If  God  had  been  in  any  of  their  houses,  his; 
servant  had  not  been  excluded.  Where  no  respect  is  given  to 
God's  messengers,  there  can  be  no  religion. 

Gibeah  was  a  second  Sodom :  even  there  also  is  another  Lot ; 
which  is  therefore  so  much  more  hospitable  to  strangers,  because 
himself  was  a  stranger.  The  host,  as  well  as  the  Levite,  is  of 
Mount  Ephraim  :  each  man  knows  best  to  commiserate  that  evil  in 
others,  which  himself  hath  passed  through.  All  that  profess  the 
name  of  Christ  are  countrymen,  and  yet  strangers  here  below. 
How  cheerfully  should  we  entertain  each  other,  when  we  meet  in 
the  Gibeah  of  this  inhospitable  world  ! 

This  good  old  man  of  Gibeah  came  home  late  from  his  work  in 
the  fields  :  the  sun  was  set  ere  he  gave  over  ;  and  now,  seeing  this 
man  a  stranger,  an  Israelite,  a  Levite,  an  Ephraimite,  and  that  in 
his  way  to  the  house  of  God,  to  take  up  his  lodging  in  the  street, 
he  proffers  him  the  kindness  of  his  house-room.  Industrious  spirits 
are  the  fittest  receptacles  of  all  good  motions ;  whereas  those, 
which  give  themselves  to  idle  and  loose  courses,  do  nbt  care  so 
much  as  for  themselves.  I  hear  of  but  one  man  at  his  work  in  all 
Gibeah  ;  the  rest  were  quaffing  and  revelling.  That  one  man  ends 
his  work  with  a  charitable  entertainment ;  the  other  end  their  play 
in  a  brutish  beastliness  and  violence. 

These  villains  had  learned  both  the  actions  and  the  language  of 
the  Sodomites:  one  unclean  devil  was  the  prompter  to  both;  and 
this  honest  Ephraimite  had  learned  of  righteous  Lot,  both  to  en- 
treat and  to  proffer.  As  a  perplexed  mariner,  that  in  a  storm 
must  cast  away  something,  although  ptfeciotis  ;  so  this  good  host, 
rather  will  prostitute  his  daughter  a  virgin,  together  with  the  con- 
cubine, than  this  prodigious  villany  should  be  offered  to  a  man, 
much  more  to  a  man  of  God.  - 

The  detestation  of  a  fouler  sin  drew  him  to  over-reach  in  the 
motion  of  a  lesser;  which  if  it  had  been  accepted,  how  could  he 
have  escaped  the  partnership  of  their  uncleanness,  and  the  guilt  of 
his  daughter's  ravishment  ?  No  man  can  wash  his  hands  of  that 
sin,  to  which  his  will  hath  yielded.  Bodily  violence  maybe  inof- 
fensive in  the  patient ;  voluntary  inclination  to  evil,  though  out  of 
fear,  can  never  be  excuseable  :  yet  behold,  this  wickedness  is  too 
little  to  satisfy  these  monsters. 

Who  would  have  looked  for  so  extreme  abomination  from  the 
loms  of  Jacob,  the  womb  of  Rachel,  the  sons  of  Benjamin  ?  Could 
the  very  Jebusites,  their  neighbours,  be  ever  accused  of  such  un- 
natural outrage  ?  I  am  ashamed  to  say  it,  even  the  worst  pagans 
were  saints  to  Israel.  What  avails  it,  that  they  have  the  ark  of  God 
in  Shiloh,  while  they  have  Sodom  in  their  streets?  that  the  law  of 
God  is  in  their  fringes,  while  the  devil  is  in  their  hearts  ?  Nothing 
but  hell  itself  can  yield  a  worse  creature  than  a  depraved  Israelite  : 
the  very  means  of  his  reformation  are  the  fuel  of  his  wickedness. 

Yet  Lot  sped  so  much  better  in  Sodom  than  this  Ephraimite  did 
in  Gibeah,  by  how  much  more  holy  guests  he  entertained  :  there,  the 
guests  were  angels ;  here,  a  sinful  man :  there,  the  guests  saved 


THE  DESOLATION  OF  BENJAMIN.  243 

the  host ;  here,  the  host  could  not  save  the  guest  from  brutish  vio- 
lence :  those  Sodomites  were  stricken  with  outward  blindness,  and 
defeated  ;  these  Benjamites are  only  blinded  with  lust,  and  prevail. 

The  Levite  comes  forth :  perhaps,  his  coat  saved  his  person  from 
this  villany  ;  who  now  thinks  himself  well,  that  he  may  have  leave 
to  redeem  his  own  dishonour  with  his  concubine's.  If  he  had  not 
loved  her  dearly,  he  had  never  sought  her  so  far,  after  so  foul  a  sin  ; 
yet  now  his  hate  of  that  unnatural  wickedness  overcame  his  love  to 
her:  she  is  exposed  to  the  furious  lust  of  ruffians,  and  (which  he 
misdoubteth)  abused  to  death. 

Oh  the  just  and  even  course  which  the  Almighty  Judge  of  the 
world  holds  in  all  his  retributions  !  This  woman  had  shamed  the 
bed  of  a  Levite,  by  her  former  wantonness  :  she  had  thus  far  gone 
smoothly  awav  with  her  sin  ;  her  father  harboured  her;  her  husband 
forgave  her ;  her  own  heart  found  no  cause  to  complain,  because 
she  smarted  not :  now,  when  the  world  had  forgotten  her  offence, 
God  calls  her  to  reckoning,  and  punishes  her  with  her  own  sin. 
She  had  voluntarily  exposed  herself  to  lust ;  now  is  exposed  for- 
cibly. Adultery  was  her  sin,  adultery  was  her  death.  What  smiles 
soever  wickedness  casts  upon  the  heart,  while  it  solicits  ;  it  will  owe 
us  a  displeasure,  and  prove  itself  a  faithful  debtor. 

The,  Levite  looked  to  find  her  humbled  with  this  violence,  not 
murdered  ;  and  now  indignation  moves  him  to  add  horror  to  the 
fact.  Had  not  his  heart  been  raised  up  with  an  excess  of  desire, 
to  make  the  crime  as  odious  as  it  was  sinful,  his  action  could  not  be 
excused.  Those  hands,  that  might  not  touch  a  caixase,  now  carve 
the  corpse  of  his  own  dead  wife  into  morsels,  and  send  these  tokens 
to  all  the  tribes  of  Israel  ;  that  when  they  should  see  these  gobbets 
of  the  body  murdered,  the  more  they  might  detest  the  murderers. 
Himself  puts  on  cruelty  to  the  dead,  that  he  might  draw  them  to  a 
just  revenge  of  her  death.  Actions  notoriously  villanous  may 
justly  countenance  an  extraordinary  means  of  prosecution.  Every 
Israelite  hath  a  part  in  a  Levite's  wrong.  No  tribe  hath  not  his 
share  in  the  carcase  and  the  revenge.  Judges  xix. 


THE  DESOLATION  OF  BKNJ.UHX. 

These  morsels  could  not  choose  but  cut  the  hearts  of  Israel  with 
horror  and  compassion  ;  horror  of  the  act,  and  compassion  of  the 
sufferer :  and  now  their  zeal  draws  thein  together,  either  for  satis- 
faction or  revenge.  Who  would  not  have  looked,  that  the  hands 
of  Benjamin  should  have  been  first  upon  Gibeah  ;  and  that  they 
should  have  readily  sent  the  heads  of  the  offenders,  for  a  second 
service  after  the  gobbets  of  the  concubine  ?  But  now,  instead  of 
punishing  the  sin,  they  patronise  the  actors ;  and  will  rather  die  in 
resisting  justice,  than  live  and  prosper  in  furthering  it. 

Surely,  Israel  had  one  tribe  too  many  :  all  Benjamin  is  turned 
into  Gibeah  ;  the  sons,  not  of  Benjamin  but  of  Belial.  The  abet- 
ting of  evil  is  worse  than  the  commission  ;  this  may  be  upon  in- 
firmity, but  that  must  be  upon  resolution.   Easy  punishment  is  too 


244  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

much  favour  to  sin  ;  connivance  is  much  worse  ;  but  the  defence 
of  it,  and  that  unto  blood,  is  intolerable. 

Had  not  these  men  been  both  wicked  and  quarrelsome,  they  had 
not  drawn  their  swords  in  so  foul  a  cause.  Peaceable  dispositions 
are  hardly  drawn  to  fight  for  innocence  ;  yet  these  Benjaminites, 
as  if  they  were  in  love  with  villany  and  out  of  charity  with  God, 
will  be  the  wilful  champions  of  lewdness.  How  can  Gibeah  repent 
them  of  that  wickedness,  which  all  Benjamin  will  make  good,  in 
spite  of  their  consciences  ?  Even  where  sin  is  suppressed,  it  will 
rise  ;  but  where  it  is  encouraged,  it  insults  and  tyrannizes. 

It  was  more  just  that  Israel  should  rise  against  Benjamin,  than 
that  Benjamin  should  rise  for  Gibeah,  by  how  much  it  is  better  to 
punish  offenders,  than  to  shelter  the  offenders  from  punishment ;  and 
yet  the  wickedness  of  Benjamin  sped  better  for  the  time,  than  the 
honesty  of  Israel.  Twice  was  the  better  part  foiled  by  the  less 
and  worse  :  the  good  cause  was  sent  back  with  shame  ;  the  evil  re- 
turned with  victory  and  triumph.  O  God,  their  hand  was  for  thee 
in  the  fight,  and  thy  hand  was  with  them  in  their  fall :  they  had  not 
fought  for  thee,  but  by  thee ;  neither  could  they  have  miscarried 
in  the  fight,  if  thou  hadst  not  fought  against  them  :  thou  art  just 
and  holy  in  both.  The  cause  was  thine  ;  the  sin  in  managing  of  it 
was  their  own.  They  fought  in  a  holy  quarrel,  but  with  confi- 
dence in  themselves ;  for,  as  presuming  of  victory,  they  ask  of 
God,  not  what  should  be  their  success,  but  who  should  be  their 
captain.  Number  and  innocence  made  them  too  secure  :  it  was 
just  therefore  with  God,  to  let  them  feel,  that  even  good  zeal  can- 
not bear  our  presumption  ;  and  that  victory  lies  not  in  the  cause, 
but  in  the  God  that  owns  it. 

Who  cannot  imagine,  how  much  the  Benjaminites  insulted  in 
their  double  field  and  day  ;  and  now  began  to  think  God  was  on 
their  side  ?  Those  swords,  which  had  been  taught  the  way  into 
forty  thousand  bodies  of  their  brethren,  cannot  fear  a  nevy  encoun- 
ter. Wicked  men  cannot  see  their  prosperity  a  piece  of  their 
curse;  neither  can  examine  their  actions,  but  the  events:  soon 
after,  they  shall  find  what  it  was,  to  add  blood  unto  filthiness ;  and 
that  the  victory  of  an  evil  cause  is  the  way  to  ruin  and  confusion. 

I  should  have  feared,  lest  this  double  discomfiture  should  have 
made  Israel  either  distrustful  or  weary  of  a  good  cause  ;  but  still  I 
find  them  no  less  courageous,  with  more  humility.  Now,  they 
fast,  and  weep,  and  sacrifice.  These  weapons  had  been  victorious 
in  their  first  assault ;  Benjamin  had  never  been  in  danger  of  pride 
for  overcoming,  if  this  humiliation  of  Israel  had  prevented  the 
fight.  It  is  seldom  seen,  but  that,  which  we  do  with  fear,  prosper- 
eth  ;  whereas  confidence  in  undertaking  lays  even  good  endeavour* 
in  the  dust. 

Wickedness  could  never  brag  of  any  long  prosperity,  nor  com- 
plain of  the  lack  of  payment :  still  God  is  even  with  it  at  last. 
Now  he  pays  the  Benjaminites,  both  that  death  which  they  had 
lent  to  the  Israelite-;,  and  that  wherein  they  stood  indebted  to  their 
brotherhood  of  Gibeah:  and  now,  that  both  are  met  in  death,  thcra 


THE  DESOLATION  OF  BENJAMIN; 


245 


is  as  much  difference  betwixt  those  Israelites  and  these  Benjamin- 
ires,  as  betwixt  martyrs  and  malefactors.  To  die  in  a  sin,  is  a 
fearful  revenge  of  giving  patronage  to  sin  :  the  sword  consumes 
their  bodies,  another  fire  their  cities,  whatsoever  became  of  their 
souls. 

Now  might  Rachel  have  justly  wept  for  her  children,  because 
they  were  not ;  for,  behold,  the  men,  women,  and  children  of  her 
wicked  tribe  are  cut  oft':  only  some  few  scattered  remainders  ran 
away  from  this  vengeance,  and  lurked  in  caves  and  rocks,  both  for 
fear  and  shame.  There  was  no  difference,  but  life,  betwixt  their 
brethren  and  them  :  the  earth  covered  them  both  :  yet  unto  them 
doth  the  revenge  of  Israel  stretch  itself,  and  vows  to  destroy,  if  not 
their  persons,  yet  their  succession  ;  as  holding  them  unworthy  to 
receive  any  comfort  by  that  sex,  to  which  they  had  been  so  crucl^ 
both  in  act  and  maintenance.  If  the  Israelites  had  not  held  mar- 
riage and  issue  a  very  great  blessing,  they  had  not  thus  revenged 
themselves  of  Benjamin  :  now,  they  accounted  the  with-holding  of 
their  wives,  a  punishment  second  unto  death.  The  hope  of  life  in 
our  posterity,  is  the  next  contentment  to  an  enjoying  of  life  in 
ourselves. 

They  have  sworn,  and  now  upon  cold  blood  repent  them.  If 
the  oath  were  not  just,  why  would  they  take  it  ?  and  if  it  were  just, 
why  did  they  recant  it  ?  If  the  act  were  justifiable,  what  needed 
these  tears?  Even  a  just  oath  may  be  rashly  taken:  not  only  in- 
justice, but  temerity  of  swearing  ends  in  lamentation.  In  our  very 
civil  actions,  it  is  a  weakness  to  do  that  which  we  would  after  re- 
verse ;  but  in  our  affairs  with  God,  to  check  ourselves  too  late,  and 
to  steep  our  oaths  in  tears,  is  a  dangerous  folly.  He  doth  not 
command  us  to  take  voluntary  oaths ;  he  commands  us  to  keep> 
them.  If  we  bind  ourselves  to  inconvenience,  we  may  justly  com- 
plain of  our  own  fetters.  Oaths  do  not  only  require  justice,  but 
judgment ;  wise  deliberation,  no  less  than  equity. 

Not  conscience  of  their  fact,  but  commiseration  of  their  bre- 
thren, led  them  to  this  public  repentance.  O  God,  why  is  this 
come  to  pass,  that  this  day  one  tribe  of  Israel  shall  want  ?  Even 
the  justest  revenge  of  men  is  capable  of  pity.  Insult  in  the  ri- 
gour of  justice  argues  cruelty.  Charitable  minds  are  grieved  to  see 
that  done,  which  they  would  not  wish  undone :  the  smart  of  the; 
offender  doth  not  please  them,  which  yet  are  thoroughly  displeased 
with  the  sin, and  have  given  their  hands  to  punish  it.  God  himself 
takes  no  pleasure  in  the  death  of  a  sinner,  yet  loves  the  punishment 
of  sin  ;  as  a  good  parent  whips  his  child,  yet  weeps  himself.  There 
is  a  measure  in  victory  and  revenge,  if  never  so  just ;  which  to  ex- 
ceed, loses  mercy  in  the  suit  of  justice. 

If  there  were  no  fault  in  their  severity,  it  needed  no  excuse ;  and 
if  there  were  a  fault,  it  will  admit  of  no  excuse :  yet,  as  if  they 
meant  to  shift  off  the  sin,  they  expostulate  with  God  ;  0  Lord  God 
of  Israel,  why  is  this  come  to  pass  this  day  ?  God  gave  them  no 
command  ot  this  rigour  ;  yea,  he  twice  crossed  them  in  the  exe- 
cution, and  now  in  that  which  they  entreated  of  God  with  tears, 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 

they  challenge  him.  It  is  a  dangerous  injustice,  to  lay  the  burthen 
of  our  sins  upon  him  which  tempteth  no  man,  nor  can  be  tempted 
with  evil :  while  we  would  so  remove  our  sin,  we  double  it. 

A  man,  that  knew  not  the  power  of  an  oath,  would  wonder  at 
this  contrariety  in  the  affections  of  Israel :  they  are  sorry  for  the 
slaughter  of  Benjamin  ;  and  yet  they  slay  those  that  did  not  help 
them  in  the  slaughter.  Their  oath  calls  them  to  more  blood.  The 
excess  of  their  revenge  upon  Benjamin  may  not  excuse  the  men 
of  Gilead.    If  ever  oath  might  look  for  a  dispensation,  this  might 

f)lead  it ;  now,  they  dare  not  but  kill  the  men  of  Jabesh-Gilead, 
est  they  should  have  left  upon  themselves  a  greater  sin  of  sparing 
than  punishing. 

Jabesh-Gilead  came  not  up  to  aid  Israel,  therefore  all  the  inha- 
bitants must  die.  To  exempt  ourselves,  whether  out  of  singularity 
or  stubbornness,  from  the  common  actions  of  the  Church,  when 
we  are  lawfully  called  to  them,  is  an  offence  worthy  of  judgment. 
In  the  main  quarrels  of  the  Church,  neutrals  are  punished. 

This  execution  shall  make  amends  for  the  former  :  of  the  spoil 
of  Jabesh-Gilead,  shall  the  Benjaminites  be  stored  with  wives  :  that 
no  man  may  think  these  men  slain  for  their  daughters,  they  plainly 
die  for  their  sin  ;  and  these  Gileadites  might  not  have  lived,  with- 
out the  perjury  of  Israel :  and  now,  since  they  must  die,  it  is  good 
to  make  benefit  of  necessity.  I  inquire  not  into  the  rigour  of  the 
oath.  If  their  solemn  vow  did  not  bind  them  to  kill  all  of  both 
sexes  in  Benjamin,  why  did  they  not  spare  their  virgins  ?  And  if 
it  did  so  bind  them,  why  did  they  spare  the  virgins  of  Gilead  ? 
Favours  must  be  enlarged  in  all  these  religious  restrictions  :  where 
breath  may  be  taken  in  them,  it  is  not  fit  nor  safe  they  should  be 
straitened. 

Four  hundred  virgins  of  Gilead  have  lost  parents,  and  brethren, 
and  kindred^  and  now  find  husbands  in  lieu  of  them.  An  enforced 
marriage  was  but  a  miserable  comfort  for  such  a  loss  :  like  wards 
or  captives,  they  are  taken,  and  chuse  not.  These  suffice  not: 
their  friendly  adversaries  consult  for  more  upon  worse  conditions. 
Into  what  troublesome  and  dangerous  straits  do  men  thrust  them- 
selves, by  either  unjust  or  inconsiderate  Vows  ! 

In  the  midst  of  ail  this  common  lawlessness  of  Israel,  here  was 
conscience  made  on  both  sides,  of  matching  with  infidels  :  the 
Israelites  can  rather  be  content  their  daughters  should  be  stolen  by 
their  own,  than  that  the  daughters  of  aliens  should  be  given  them. 
These  men  which  had  not  grace  enough  to  detest  and  punish  the 
beastliness  of  their  Gileadites,  yet  are  not  so  graceless,  as  to  chuse 
them  wives  of  the  heathen.  All  but  atheists,  howsoever  they  let 
themselves  loose,  yet  in  some  things  find  themselves  restrained, 
and  shew  to  others  that  they  have  a  conscience.  If  there  were  not 
much  danger  and  much  sin  in  this  unequal  yoke,  they  would  never 
have  persuaded  to  so  heavy  an  inconvenience :  disparity  of  religion 
in  matrimonial  contracts  hath  so  many  mischiefs,  that  it  is  worthy 
to  be  redeemed  with  much  prejudice. 

They,  which  might  nctgive  their  own  daughters  to  Benjamin,  yet 


NAOMI  AND  RUTH. 


247 


give  others,  while  they  give  leave  to  steal  them.  Stolen  marriages  are 
both  unnatural  and  full  of  hazard  ;  for  love,  whereof  marriage  is 
the  knot,  cannot  be  forced.  This  was  rather  rape,  than  wedlock. 
What  unlikeness,  perhaps  contrariety,  of  disposition,  what  averse- 
ness  of  affection,  may  there  be  in  not  only  a  sudden,  but  a  force- 
able  meeting  !  If  these  Benjaminites  had  not  taken  liberty  of  giv- 
ing themselves  ease  by  divorcement,  they  would  have  often  found 
leisure  to  rue  this  stolen  booty.  This  act  may  not  be  drawn  to  ex- 
ample ;  and  yet  here  was  a  kind  of  indefinite  consent:  both  delibe- 
ration and  good  liking  are  little  enough  for  a  during  estate,  and 
that  which  is  once  done  for  ever. 

These  virgins  come  up  to  the  feast  of  the  Lord  ;  and  now,  out 
of  the  midst  of  their  dances,  are  carried  to  a  double  captivity. 
How  many  virgins  have  lost  themselves  in  dances  !  And  yet  this 
sport  was  not  immodest.  These  virgins  danced  by  themselves, 
without  the  company  of  those  which  might  move  towards  unchas- 
tity  ;  for,  if  any  men  had  been  with  them,  they  had  found  so  many 
rescuers,  as  they  had  assaulters  ;  now,  the  exposing  of  their  weak 
sex  to  this  injury  proves  their  innocence.  Our  usual  dances  are 
guilty  of  more  sin  :  wanton  gestures,  and  unchaste  touches,  looks, 
motions,  draw  the  heart  to  folly  :  the  ambushes  of  evil  spirits  carry 
away  many  a  soul  from  dances  to  a  fearful  desolation. 

It  is  supposed,  that  the  parents  thus  robbed  of  their  daughters 
will  take  it  heavily.  There  cannot  be  a  greater  cross,  than  the 
miscarriage  of  children:  they  are  not  only  the  living  goods,  but 
pieces  of  their  parents ;  that  they  should  therefore  be  torn  from 
thein  by  violence,  is  no  less  injury,  than  the  dismembering  of  their 
own  bodies.  Judges  s.r,  xxi. 


NAOMI  AND  RUTH. 

Betwixt  the  reign  of  the  Judges,  Israel  was  plagued  with  tyran- 
ny ;  and  while  some  of  them  reigned,  with  famine.  Seldom  did 
that  rebellious  people  want  somewhat  to  humble  them  :  one  rod  is 
not  enough  for  a  stubborn  child. 

The  famine  must  needs  be  great,  that  makes  the  inhabitants  to 
run  their  country.  The  name  of  home  is  so  sweet,  that  we  tan- 
not  leave  it  for  a  little.  Behold,  that  land  which  had  wont  to  flow 
with  milk  and  honey,  now  abounds  with  want  and  penury  ;  and 
Bethlehem,  instead  of  a  house  of  bread,  is  a  house  of  famine.  A 
fruitful  land  doth  God  make  barren,  for  the  wickedness  of  them 
that  dwell  therein.  The  earth  bears  not  for  itself,  but  for  us;  .God 
is  not  angry  with  it,  but  with  men.  For  our  sakes,  it  was  first 
cursed  to  thorns  and  thistles ;  after  that,  to  moisture ;  and  since 
that,  not  seldom,  to  drought ;  and  by  all  these,  to  barrenuess.  We 
may  not  look  always  for  plenty.  It  is  a  wonder,  while  there  is 
such  superfluity  of  wickedness,  that  our  earth  is  no  more  sparing 
of  her  fruits. 

The  whole  earth  is  the  Lord's,  and  in  him.  ours,    It  is  lawful  fojr 


248  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

the  owners,  to  change  their  houses  at  pleasure.  Why  should  we 
not  make  tree  use  of  any  part  of  our  own  possessions  ?  P^limelcch 
and  his  family  remove  from  Bethlehem- J udah  unto  Moab.  No- 
thing but  necessity  can  dispense  with  a  loc  al  relinquishing  of  God's 
Church ;  not  pleasure,  nor  profit,  nor  curiosity.  Those,  which 
are  famished  out,  God  calls,  yea,  drives  from  thence.  The  Crea- 
tor and  Possessor  of  the  earth  hath  not  confined  any  man  to  his  ne- 
cessary destruction. 

It  was  lawful  for  Elimelech  to  make  use  of  pagans  and  idolaters, 
for  the  supply  of  all  needful  helps.  There  cannot  be  a  better  em- 
ployment of  Moabites,  than  to  be  the  treasurers  and  purveyors  of 
God's  children  :  wherefore  serve  they,  but  to  gather  for  the  true 
owners  ?  It  is  too  much  niceness  in  them,  which  forbear  the  bene- 
fit they  mightmake  of  the  faculties  of  profane  or  heretical  persons: 
they  consider  not,  that  they  have  more  right  to  the  good  such  men 
can  do,  than  they  that  do  it  and  challenge  that  good  for  their  own. 

But  I  cannot  see  how  it  could  be  lawful,  for  his  sons  to  match 
with  the  daughters  of  Moab.  Hail  these  men  heard  how  far,  and 
under  how  solemn  an  oath,  their  father  Abraham  sent  for  a  wife  of 
his  own  tribe  for  his  son  Isaac  ?  Had  they  heard  the  earnest  charge 
of  holy  Isaac  to  the  son  he  blessed,  Thou  shall  not  take  a  wife  of 
the  daughters  of  Canaan?  Had  they  forgotten  the  plagues  of  Is- 
rael, for  but  a  short  conversation  with  the  Moabitish  women  ?  If 
they  plead  remoteness  from  their  own  people ;  did  they  not  re- 
member how  far  Jacob  walked  to  Padan-Arain  ?  Was  it  further 
from  Moab  to  Bethlehem,  than  from  Bethlehem  to  Moab  ?  And  if 
the  care  of  themselves  led  them  from  Bethlehem  to  Moab,  should 
not  their  care  of  obedience  to  God  have  as  well  carried  them  back 
from  Moab  to  Bethlehem  ?  Yet  if  their  wives  would  have  left  their 
idolatry  with  their  maidenhead,  the  match  had  been  more  safe  ;  but 
now,  even  at  the  last  farewell,  Naomi  can  say  of  Orpah,  that  she 
is  returned  to  her  gods. 

These  men  have  sinned  in  their  choice,  and  it  speeds  with  them 
accordingly.  Where  did  ever  one  of  these  unequal  matches  pro- 
sper ?  The  two  sons  of  Elimelech  are  swept  away  childless,  in  the 
prime  of  their  age  ;  and,  instead  of  their  seed,  they  leave  their 
carcases  in  Moab,  their  wives  widows,  their  mother  childless,  and 
helpless  among  infidels,  in  that  age  which  most  needed  comfort. 

How  miserable  do  we  now  find  poor  Naomi !  which  is  left  desti- 
tute of  her  country,  her  husband,  her  children,  her  friends ;  and 
turned  loose  and  solitary  to  the  mercy  of  the  world  :  yet  even  out 
of  these  hopeless  ruins,  will  God  raise  comfort  to  his  servant.  The 
first  good  news  is,  that  God  hath  visited  his  people  with  bread  ; 
now  therefore,  since  her  husband  and  sons  were  irrecoverable,  she 
will  try  to  recover  her  country  and  kindred.  If  we  can  have  the 
same  conditions  in  Judah  that  we  have  in  Moab,  we  are  no  Israel- 
ites, if  we  return  not.  While  her  husband  and  sons  lived,  I  hear 
no  motion  of  retiring  home :  now  these  her  earthly  stays  are  re- 
moved, she  thinks  presently  of  removing  to  her  country.  Neither 
can  we  so  heartily  think  of  our  home  above,  while  we  are  furnished 


NAOMI  AND  RUTH.  249 
with  these  worldly  contentments:  when  God  strips  us  of  them, 
straightwavs  our  mind  is  homeward. 

She,  that  came  from  Bethlehem,  under  the  protection  of  a  hus- 
band, attended  with  her  sons,  stored  with  substance,  resolves  now 
to  measure  all  that  way  alone.  Her  adversity  had  stripped  her  of 
all,  but  a  good  heart ;  that  remains  with  her,  and  bears  up  her  head 
in  the  deepest  of  her  extremity.  True  Christian  fortitude  wades 
through  all  evils  ;  and  though  we  be  up  to  the  chin,  yet  keeps  firm 
footing  against  the  stream :  where  this  is,  the  sex  is  not  discerned ; 
neither  is  the  quantity  of  the  evil  read  in  the  face.  How  well  doth 
this  courage  become  Israelites,  when  we  are  left  comfortless  in  the 
midst  of  the  Moab  of  this  world,  to  resolve  the  contempt  of  all  dan- 
gers, in  the  way  to  our  home!  As  contrarily,  nothing  doth  more 
mis-beseem  a  Christian,  than  that  his  spirit  should  Hag  with  his 
estate  ;  and  that  any  difficulty  should  make  him  despair  of  attain- 
ing his  best  ends. 

Goodness  is  of  a  winning  quality,  wheresoever  it  is  ;  and  even 
amongst  infidels  will  make  itself  friends.  The  good  disposition  of 
Naomi  carries  away  the  hearts  of  her  daughters-in-law  with  her  ; 
so  as  they  are  readv  to  forsake  their  kindred,  their  country,  yea 
their  own  mother,  for  a  stranger,  whose  affinity  died  with  her  sons. 
Those  men  arc  worse  than  infidels,  and  next  to  devils,  that  hate 
the  virtues  of  God's  saints ;  and  could  love  their  persons  well,  if 
they  were  not  conscionable. 

How  earnestly  do  these  two  daughters  of  Moab  plead  for  their 
continuance  with  Naomi ;  and  how  hardly  is  either  of  them  dis- 
suaded from  partaking  of  the  misery  of  her  society  !  There  are 
good  natures  even  among  infidels ;  and  such  as,  for  moral  disposition 
and  civil  respects,  cannot  be  exceeded  by  the  best  professors. 
Who  can  suffer  his  heart  to  rest  in  those  qualities,  which  are  com- 
mon to  them  that  are  without  God  ? 

Naomi  could  not  lie  so  insensible  of  her  own  good,  as  not  to 
know  how  much  comfort  she  might  reap  to  the  solitariness,  both  of 
her  voyage  and  her  widowhood,  bv  the  society  of  these  two  younger 
widows,  whose  affections  she  had  so  well  tried  ;  even  very  part- 
nership is  a  mitigation  of  evils  ;  yet  so  earnestly  doth  she  dissuade 
them  from  accompanying  her,  as  that  she  could  not  have  said  more, 
it  she  thought  their  presence  irksome  and  burdensome.  Good  dis- 
positions love  not  to  pleasure  themselves  with  the  disadvantage  of 
others,  and  would  rather  be  miserable  alone,  than  to  draw  in  partners 
to  their  sorrow ;  for  the  sight  of  another's  calamity  doth  rather  double 
their  own  ;  and  if  themselves  were  free  would  affect  them  with 
compassion  :  as  contrarily,  ill  minds  care  not  how  many  companions 
they  have  in  misery,  nor  how  few  consorts  in  good;  if  themselves 
miscarry,  they  could  be  content  all  the  world  were  enwrapped 
with  them  in  the  same  distress. 

I  marvel  not  that  Orpah  is  by  this  seasonable  importunity  per- 
suaded to  return  ;  from  a  mother-in-law,  to  a  mother  in  nature ; 
from  a  toilsome  journey,  to  rest ;  from  strangers,  to  her  kindred  ; 
Jioni  a  hopeless  condition,  to  likelihoods  of  contentment.    A  little 


250 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


entreaty  will  serve  to  move  nature  to  be  good  unto  itself.  Every 
one  is  rather  a  Naomi  to  bis  own  soul,  to  persuade  it.  to  stay  still, 
and  enjoy  the  delights  of  Moab,  rather  than  to  hazard  our  entertain- 
ment in  Bethlehem.  Will  religion  allow  me  this  wild  liberty  of  my 
actions,  this  loose  mirth,  these  carnal  pleasures  ?  Can  I  be  a  Chris- 
tian, and  not  live  sullenly  ?  None  but  a  regenerate  heart  can  chuse 
rather  to  suffer  adversity  with  God's  people,  than  to  enjoy  the  plea- 
sures of  sin  for  a  season.  ' 

The  one  sister  takes  an  unwilling  farewell,  and  moistens  her_last 
kisses  with  many  tears:  the  other  cannot  be  driven  back,  but  re- 
pels one  entreaty  with  another  ;  Entreat  mc  not  to  leave  thee  ;  for 
whither  thou  goest,  I  will  go ;  where  thou  dwellcst,  I  will  dwell  j 
thy  people  shall  be  my  people ;  thy  God  ray  God ;  where  thou  diest, 
I  will  die,  and  there  will  I  be  buried,  Ruth  saw  so  much  upon  ten 
years'  trial  in  Naomi,  as  was  more  worth  than  all  Moab  ;  and  in 
comparison  whereof,  all  worldly  respects  deserved  nothing  but  con- 
tempt: the  next  degree  unto  godliness  is  the  love  of  goodness  :  he 
is  in  a  fair  way  to  grace,  that  can  value  it ;  if  she  had  not  been  al- 
ready a  proselyte,  she  could  not  have  set  this  price  upon  Naomi's 
virtue.  Love  cannot  be  separated  from  a  desire  of  fruition  :  in 
vain  had  Ruth  protested  her  affection  to  Naomi,  if  she  could  have 
turned  her  out  to  her  journey  alone  :  love  to  the  saints  doth  not 
more  argue  our  interest  in  God,  than  society  argues  the  truth  of 
our  love. 

As  some  tight  vessel  that  holds  out  against  wind  and  water,  so 
did  Ruth  against  all  tiie  powers  of  a  mother's  persuasions.  The  im- 
possibility of  the  comfort  of  marriage  in  following  her,  which, 
drew  back  her  sister-in-law,  cannot  move  her.  She  hears  her  mo- 
ther, like  a  modest  matron,  contrary  to  the  fashion  of  these  times, 
say,  I  am  too  old  to  have  a  husband ;  -and  yet  she  thinks  not  on 
the  contrary,  "  I  am  too  young  to  want  a  husband." 

It  should  seem,  the  Moabites  had  learned  this  fashion  of  Israel,  to 
expect  the  brother's  raising  of  seed  to  the  deceased:  the  widowhood 
and  age  of  Naomi  cuts  off  that  hope  ;  neither  could  Ruth  then 
dream  of  a  Boaz  that  might  advance  her :  it  is  no  love,  that  can- 
not make  us  willing  to  be  miserable  for  those  we  affect :  the  hol- 
lowest  heart  can  be  content  to  follow  one  that  prospereth  :  adver- 
sity is  the  only  furnace  of  friendship :  if  love  will  not  abide  both 
fire  and  anvil,  it  is  but  counterfeit ;  so  in  our  love  to  God,  we 
do  but  crack  and  vaunt  in  vain,  if  we  cannot  be  willing  to  suffer 
for  him. 

But  if  any  motive  might  hope  to  speed,  that  which  was  drawn 
from  example  was  most  likely  ;  Behold,  tbty  sister-in-law  is  gone 
back  unto  her  people,  and  to  her  gods ;  return  thou  after  her. 
This  one  artless  persuasion  hath  prevailed  more  with  the  world, 
than  all  the  places  of  reason:  how  many  millions  miscarry  upon 
this  ground  ;  "  Thus  did  my  forefathers  ;  thus  do  the  most :  I  am 
neither  the  first,  nor  the  last !"  Do  any  of  the  riders?  We  strait 
think  that  either  safe  or  pardonable,  for  which  we  can  plead  a  pre- 
cedent.   This  good  woman  hath  more  warrant  for  her  resolution, 


KOAZ  AND  RUTH.  251 

than  another's  practice.  The  mind  can  never  be  steady,  while  it 
stands  upon  others'  feet,  and  till  it  be  settled  upon  such  grounds  of 
assurance,  that  it  will  rather  lead  than  follow  ;  and  can  say  with 
Joshua,  whatsoever  become  of  the  world,  /  and  my  house  will 
serve  the  Lord. 

If  Naomi  had  not  been  a  person  of  eminent  note,  no  knowledge 
had  been  taken  at  Bethlehem  of  her  return.  Poverty  is  ever  ob- 
scure ;  and  those  that  have  little  may  go  and  come  without  noise. 
If  the  streets  of  Bethlehem  had  not  before  used  to  say,  "  There 
goes  Naomi:1'  they  had  not  now  asked,  Is  not  this  Naomi?  She, 
that  had  lost  all  things  but  her  name,  is  willing  to  part  with  that 
also;  Call  me  not  Naomi,  but  call  me  Marah.  Her  humility  cares 
little  for  a  glorious  name,  in  a  dejected  estate.  Many  a  one  would 
have  set  faces  upon  their  want ;  and,  in  the  bitterness  of  their  con- 
dition, have  affected  the  name  of  beauty.  In  all  forms  of  good, 
there  are  more  that,  care  to  seem,  than  to  be  :  Naomi  hates  this  hy- 
pocrisy ;  and,  since  God  hath  humbled  her,  desires  not  to  be  re- 
spected of  men.  Those,  which  arc  truly  brought  down,  make  it 
not  dainty  that  the  world  should  think  them  so  ;  but  are  ready  to 
be  the  first  proclaimers  of  their  own  viieness. 

Naomi  went  full  out  of  Bethlehem,  to  prevent  want  ;  and  now 
she  brings  that  want  home  with  her,  which  she  desired  to  avoid. 
Our  blindness  oft-times  carries  us  into  the  perils  we  seek  to  eschew  : 
God  finds  it  best  many  times,  to  cross  the  likely  projects  of  his 
dearest  children  ;  and  to  multiply  those  afflictions,  which  they 
feared  single. 

Ten  years  have  turned  Naomi  into  Marah :  what  assurance  is 
there  of  these  earthly  things,  whereof  one  hour  may  strip  us  ? 
What  man  can  say  of  the  years  to  come,  "  Thus  I  will  be  ?"  How 
justly  do  we  contemn  this  uncertainty,  and  look  up  to  those  riches 
thatcannotbutendure, when lieavenandeartharedissolved !  Iiuthi. 

BOAZ  AND  RUTH. 

WHlLfi  Elimelech  shifted  to  Moab  to  avoid  the  famine,  Boaz  abode 
still  at  Bethlehem,  and  continued  rich  and  powerful:  he  staid  at 
home  ;  and  found  that,  which  Elimelech  went  to  seek  au.l  missed. 
The  judgment  of  famine  doth  not  lightlv  extend  itself  to  all :  pes- 
tilence and  the  sword  spare  none;  but  dearth  commonly  plagueth 
the  meaner  sort,  and  balketh  t  he  mighty.  When  Boaz's  storehouse 
was  empty,  his  fields  were  full,  and  maintained  the  name  of  Bethle^- 
hem. 

I  do  not  hear  Ruth  stand  upon  the  terms  of  her  better  education 
or  wealthy  parentage  ;  but  now,  that  God  hath  called  her  to  want, 
sRc  scorns  not  to  lay  her  hand  unto  all  homely  services  ;  and  thinks 
it  no  disparagement,  to  find  her  bread  in  other  men's  fields :  there 
is  no  harder  lesson  to  a  generous  mind,  nor  that  more  beseems  it, 
than  either  to  bear  want,  or  to  prevent  it :  base  spirits  give  them- 
selves over  to  idleness  and  misery ;  and  because  they  are  crossed, 
will  sullenly  perish. 


25-2      .  CO  NT£M  PL  AXIOM'S. 

Tliat  good  woman  hath  not  been  for  nothing  in  the  schoi?! 
of  patience  ;  she  hath  learned  obedience  to  a  poor  step-mother  : 
she  was  now  a  widow,  past  reach  of  any  danger  of  correction ; 
besides,  that  penury  might  seem  to  dispense  with  awe.  Even 
children  do  easily  learn  to  contemn  the  poverty  of  their  own 
parents  Yet  hath  she  inured  herself  to  obedience,  that  she  will 
not  so  much  as  go  forth  into  the  field  to  glean,  without  the  leave 
of  her  mother-in-law ;  and  is  no  less  obsequious  to  Marah,  than 
she  was  to  Naomi.  What  shall  we  say  to  those  children,  that  in 
the  main  action.-;  of  their  life  forget  they  have  natural  parents  ?  It 
is  a  shame  to  see,  that  in  mean  families  want  of  substance  causeth 
want  of  duty ;  and  that  children  should  think  themselves  privi- 
leged for  irreverence,  because  the  parent  is  poor. 

Little  do  we  know  when  we  go  forth  in  the  morning,  what  God 
means  to  do  with  us  ere  night.  There  is  a  providence  that  attends 
on  us  in  all  our  ways,  and  guides  us  insensibly  to  his  own  ends. 
That  divine  hand  leads  Ruth  blind-fold  to  the  field  of  Boaz.  That 
she  meets  with  his  reapers,  and  falls  upon  his  land  amongst  all  the 
fields  of  Bethlehem,  it  was  no  praise  to  her  election,  but  the  gra- 
cious disposition  of  him,  in  whom  we  move:  his  thoughts  are 
above  ours,  and  do  so  order  our  actions,  as  we,  if  we  had  known, 
should  have  wished. 

No  sooner  is  she  come  into  the  field,  but  the  reapers  are  friendly 
to  her ;  no  sooner  is  Boaz  come  into  his  field,  but  he  invites  her  to 
more  bounty  than  she  could  have  desired  :  now,  God  begins  to  re- 
pay into  her  bosom  her  love  and  duty  to  her  mother-in-law.  Re- 
verence and  loving  respects  to  parents  never  yet  went  away  uni'e- 
compensed :  God  will  surely  raise  up  friends  amongst  strangers, 
to  those  that  have  been  officious  at  home. 

It  was  worth  Ruth's  journey  from  Moab,  to  meet  with  such  a 
man  as  Boaz  ;  whom  we  find  thrifty,  religious,  charitable.  Though 
he  were  rich,  yet  lie  was  not  careless  :  he  comes  into  the  field  to 
oversee  his  reapers.  Even  the  best  estate  requires  careful  manag- 
ing of  the  owner.  He  wanted  no  officers  to  take  charge  of  his 
husbandry,  yet  he  would  rather  be  his  own  witness :  after  all  the 
trust  of  others,  the  master's  eye  feeds  the  horse.  The  master  of 
the  great  household  of  the  world  gives  us  an  example  of  this  care, 
whose  eye  is  in  every  corner  of  his  large  possession.  Not  civility 
only,  but  religion,  binds  us  to  good  husbandry.  We'are  all  stew- 
ards ;  and  what  account  can  we  give  to  our  Master,  if  we  never 
look  after  our  estate  ? 

I  doubt  whether  Boaz  had  been  so  rich,  if  he  had  not  been  so 
frugal ;  yet  was  he  not  more  thrifty  than  religious :  he  comes  not 
to  his  reapers,  but  with  a  blessing  in  his  mouth  :  The  Lord  be  with 
you,  as  one  that  knew,  if  he  were  with  them,  and  not  the  Lord, 
his  presence  could  avail  nothing.  All  the  business  of  the  family 
speeds  the  better  for  the  master's  benediction.  Those  affairs  are 
likely  to  succeed,  that  take  their  beginning  at  God. 

Charity  was  well  matched  with  his  religion  ;  without  which, 
good  works  are  but  hypocrisy  :  no  sooner  doth  he  hear  the  name 
of  the  Moabitess,  but  he  seconds  the  kindness  of  his  reapers  ;  and 


BOAZ  AND  RUTH. 


253 


still  he  rises  in  his  favours  :  first,  she  may  glean  in  his  field  ;  then, 
6he  may  drink  of  his  vessels  ;  then,  she  shall  take  her  meal  with  his 
reapers,  and  part  of  it  from  his  own  hand  ;  lastly,  his  workmen 
must  let  fall  sheaves  for  her  gathering. 

A  small  thing  helps  the  needy  :  a  handful  of  gleanings,  a  lap- 
full  of  parched  corn,  a  draught  of  the  servants'  bottles,  a  loose 
sheaf,  was  such  a  favour  to  Ruth,  as  she  thought  was  above  all  re- 
compence  :  this  was  not  seen  in  the  estate  of  Boaz,  which  yet 
makes  her  for  the  time  happy.  If  we  mav  refresh  the  soul  of  the 
poor  with  the  very  offals  of  our  estate,  and  not  hurt  ourselves,  woe 
be  to  us  if  we  do  it  not.  Our  barns  shall  be  as  full  of  curses  as 
of  corn,  if  we  grudge  the  scattered  ears  of  our  field  to  the  hands 
of  the  needv. 

How  thankful  doth  Ruth  take  these  small  favours  from  Boaz ! 
Perhaps  some  rich  jewel  in  Moab  would  not  have  been  so  welcome. 
Even  this  was  a  presage  of  her  better  estate.  Those,  which  shall 
receive  great  blessings,  are  ever  thankful  for  little ;  and  if  poor 
souls  be  so  thankful  to  us,  for  but  a  handful  or  a  sheaf,  how  should 
we  be  affected  to  our  God,  for  whole  fields  full,  for  full  barns,  full 
garners ! 

Doubtless,  Boaz,  having  taken  notice  of  the  good  nature,  duti- 
ful carriage,  and  the  near  affinity  of  Ruth,  could  not  but  purchase 
some  greater  beneficence  and  higher  respects  to  her  :  yet  now  on- 
wards he  fits  his  kindness  to  her  condition  ;  and  gives  her  that,  which 
to  her  meanness  seemed  much,  though  he  thought  it  little.  Thus 
doth  the  bounty  of  our  God  deal  with  us :  it  is  not  for  want  of 
love,  that  he  gives  us  no  greater  measure  of  grace,  but  for  want  of 
our  fitness  and  capacity :  he  hath  reserved  greater  preferments  for 
us,  when  it  shall  be  seasonable  for  us  to  receive  them. 

Ruth  returns  home  wealthy,  with  her  ephah  of  barley  ;  and 
thankfully  magnifies  the  liberality  of*  Boaz,  her  new  benefactor: 
Naomi  repays  his  beneficence  with  her  blessing  ;  Blessed  be  he  of 
the  Lord.  If"  the  rich  can  exchange  their  alms  with  the  poor  for 
blessings,  they  have  no  cause  to  complain  of  an  ill  bargain.  Our 
gifts  cannot  be  worth  their  faithful  prayers :  therefore  it  is  better 
to  give  titan  to  receive  ;  because  he  that  receives,  hath  but  a  worth- 
less alms ;  he  that  gives,  receives  an  invaluable  blessing. 

I  cannot  but  admire  thcmodesty  and  silence  of  thesctwo  women: 
Naomi  had  not  so  much  as  talked  of  her  kindred  in  Bethlehem, 
nor  till  now  had  she  told  Ruth  that  she  had  a  wealthy  kinsman ; 
neither  had  Ruth  inquired  of  her  husband's  great  alliance;  but 
both  sat  down  meekly  with  their  own  wants,  and  cared  not  to  know 
any  thing  else,  save  that  themselves  were  poor.  Humility  is  ever 
the  way  to  honour. 

It  is  a  discourtesy,  where  we  are  beholden,  to  alter  our  depen- 
dancy  :  like  as  men  of  trade  take  it  ill,  if  customers  which  are  in 
their  books  go  for  their  wares  to  another  shop.  Wisely  doth 
Naomi  advise  Ruth,  not  to  be  seen  in  any  other  field,  while  the 
harvest  lasted.  The  very  taking  of  their  favours  is  a  contentment 
to  those,  which  have  already  well  deserved;  and  it  is  quarrel 


2bi  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

enough,  that  their  courtesy  is  not  received.  How  shall  the  God 
of  heaven  tyke  it,  that,  while  he  gives  and  proffers  large,  we  run 
to  the  world,  that  can  afford  us  nothing  hut  vanity  and  vexation  ? 

Those,  that  can  least  act,  are  oft-times  the  best  to  advise.  Good 
old  Naomi  sits  still  at  home,  and  by  her  counsel  pays  Ruth  all  the 
Jove  she  owes  her. 

The  face  of  that  action,  to  which  she  directs  her,  is  the  worst 
piece  of  it;  the  heart  was  sound.  Perhaps,  the  assurance,  which 
long  trial  had  given  her  of  the  good  government  and  firm  chastity 
of  her  daughter-in-law,  together  with  her  persuasion  of  the  reli- 
gious gravity  of  Boaz^  made  her  think  that  design  safe,  which  to 
others  had  been  perilous,  if  not  desperate.  But  besides  that,  hold- 
ing Boaz  next  of  blood  to  Elimelech,  she  made  account  of  him  as 
the  lawful  husband  of  Ruth ;  so  as  there  wanted  nothing  but  a 
challenge  and  consummation.  Nothing  was  abated,  but.  some  out- 
ward solemnities,  which,  though  expedient  for  the  satisfaction  of 
others,  yet  were  not  essential,  to  marriage. 

And  if  there  were  not  these  colours  for  a  project  so  suspicious,  it 
would  not  follow,  that  the  action  were  warrantable  because  Naomi's. 
Why  should  her  example  be  more  safe  in  this,  than  in  matching 
her  sons  with  infidels  ;  than  in  sending  back  Orpah  to  her  father's 
gods  ?  If  every  act  of  a  holy  person  should  be  our  rule,  we 
should  have  crooked  lives  :  every  action,  that  is  reported,  is  not 
straightways  allowed.  Our  courses  were  very  uncertain,  if  God 
had  not  given  us  rules,  whereby  we  may  examine  the  examples  of 
the  best  saints ;  and  as  well  censure,  as  follow  them.  Let  them, 
that  stumble  at  the  boldness  of  Ruth,  imitate  the  continence  of 
Boaz. 

These  times  were  not  delicate.  This  man,  though  great  in  Beth- 
lehem, lavs  him  down  to  rest  upon  a  pallat,  in  the  Moor  of  his 
barn.  When  he  awakes  at  midnight,  no  marvel  if  he  were  ama- 
zed to  find  himself  accompanied ;  yet,  though  his  heart  were 
cheered  with  wine,  the  place  solitary,  the  night  silent,  the  person 
comely,  the  invitation  plausible,  could  he  not  be  drawn  to  a  rash 
act  of  lust :  his  appetite  could  not  get  the  victory  of  reason, 
though  it  had  wine  and  opportunity  to  help  it.  Herein  Boaz 
shewed  himself  a  great  master  of  his  affections,  that  he  was  able 
to  re*ist  a  fit  temptation.  It  is  no  thank  to  many,  that  they  are 
free  of  some  evils  :  perhaps  they  wanted  not  will,  but  convenience. 
But  if  a  man,  when  he  is  fitted  with  all  helps  to  his  sin,  can  repel 
the  pleasure  of  sin  out.  of  conscience,  this  is  true  fortitude. 

Instead  of  touching  her  as  a  wanton,  he  blesses  her  as  a  father, 
encourageth  her  as  a  friend,  promiseth  her  as  a  kinsman,  rewards 
her  as  a  patron,  and  sends  her  away  laden  with  hopes  and  gilts ; 
no  less  chaste,  more  happy  than  she  came.  Oh  admirable  temper- 
ance, worthy  the  progenitor  of  him,  in  whose  hps  and  heart  was 
no  guile  ! 

If  Boaz  had  been  the  next  kinsman,  the  marriage  had  needed 
no  protraction  ;  but  now  that  his  conscience  told  him,  that  Ruth 
was  the  right  of  another,  it  had  not  been  more  sensuality  than  in- 


BOAZ  AND  RUTH.  255 

just  ice,  to  have  touched  his  kinswoman.  It  was  not  any  bodily  im- 
potency,  but  honesty  and  conscience,  that  restrained  Boaz  ;  for 
the  very  next  night  she  conceived  by  hinij  That  good  man  wish- 
ed his  marriage-bed  holy,  and  durst  not  lie  down  in  the  doubt  of  a 
sin.  Many  a  man  is  honest  out  of  necessity,  and  affects  the  praise 
of  that,  which  he  could  not  avoid  ;  but  that  man's  mind  is  still  an 
adulterer,  in  the  forced  continence  of  his  body.  No  action  can 
give  us  true  comfort,  but  that  which  we  do  out  of  the  grounds  of 
obedience. 

Those,  which  are  fearful  of  sinning,  are  careful  not  to  be  thought 
to  sin.    Boaz,  though  he  knew  himself  to  be.  clear,  would  not 

"  have  occasion  of  suspicion  given  to  others  ;  Let  no  man  knoxi\ 
that  a  woman  came  into  the  floor  :  a  good  heart  is  no  less  afraid  of 
a  scandal,  than  of  a  sin  ;  whereas  those,  that  are  resolved  not  to 
make  any  scruple  of  sin,  despise  others'  constructions,  not  caring 
whom  they  offend,  so  that  they  may  please  themselves. 

That  Naomi  might  see  her  daughter-in-law  was  not  sent  back  in 
dislike,  she  comes  home  laden  with  corn.  Puith  hath  gleaned  more 
this  night,  than  in  half  the  harvest.  The  care  of  Boaz  was,  that  she 
would  not  return  to  her  mother  empty  :  love,  wheresoever  it  is, 
cannot  be  niggardly.  We  measure,  the  love  of  God  by  his  gifts: 
how  shall  he  abide  to  send  us  away  empty  from  those  treasures  of 

"  goodness  ! 

Boaz  is  restless  in  the  prosecution  of  this  suit ;  and  hies  him  from 
his  thrashing  floor  to  the  gate,  and  there  convenes  the  nearer  kins- 
man before  the  elders  of  the  city.  What  was  it  that  made  Boaz 
so  ready  to  entertain,  so  forward  to  urge  this  match  r  Wealth  she 
had  none,  not  so  much  as  bread,  but  what  she  gleaned  out  of  the 
field  ;  friends  she  had  none,  and  those  she  had  elsewhere,  Moab- 
ites  ;  beauty  she  could  not  have  much,  after  that  scorching  in  her 
travel,  in  her  gleanings :  himself  tells  her  what  drew  his  heart  to 
her  ;  All  the  city  of  my  people  doth  know  that  thou  art  a  virtuous 
woman.  Virtue,  in  whomsoever  it  is  found,  is  a  great  dowry; 
and  where  it  meets  with  a  heart  that  knows  how  to  value  it,  is  ac- 
counted greater  riches  than  all  that  is  hid  in  the  bowels  of  the 
earth.  The  corn  heap  of  Boaz  was  but  chaff  to  this,  and  his  money 
dross. 

As  a  man  that  had  learned  to  square  his  actions  to  the  Law  of 
God,  Boaz  proceeds  legally  with  his  rival  ;  and  tells  him  of  a  par- 
cel of  Elimelech's  land  (which,  it  is  like,  upon  his  removal  to 
Moab,  he  had  alienated  ;)  which  he,  as  the  next  kinsman,  might 
have  power  to  redeem  ;  yet  so  as  he  must  purchase  the  wife  of  the 
deceased,  with  the  land.  Every  kinsman  is  not  a  Boaz  :  the  man 
could  listen  to  the  land,  if  it  hadi  been  free  from  the  clog  of  a  ne- 
cessary marriage  ;  but  now  he  will  rather  leave  the  land,  than  take 
the  wife,  lest,  while  he  should  preserve  Elimelech's  inheritance,  he 
should  destroy  his  own  ;  for  the  next  seed,  which  he  should  have 
by  Ruth,  should  not  be  his  heir,  but  his  deceased  kinsman's.  How 
knew  he,  whether  God  might  not  by  that  wife  send  heirs  enough, 
for  both  their  estates  ?   Bather  would  he  therefore  incur  a  manifest 


256 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


injustice,  than  hazard  the  danger  of  his  inheritance.  The  law  of 
God  bound  him  to  raise  up  seed  to  the  next  in  blood  ;  the  care  of 
his  inheritance  draws  him  to  a  neglect  of  his  duty,  though  with  in- 
famy and  reproach  j  and  now,  he  would  rather  his  face  should  be 
spit  upon,  and  his  name  should  be  called,  The  house  of  him  whose 
shoe  was  pulled  off,  than  to  reserve  the  honour  of  him,  that  did  his 
brother  right  to  his  own  prejudice. 

How  many  are  there,  that  do  so  ovcrlove  their  issue,  as  that  they 
regard  neither  sin  nor  shame  in  advancing  it ;  and  that  will  rather 
endanger  their  soul,  than  lose  their  name  !  It  is  a  woeful  inheri- 
tance, that  makes  men  heirs  of  the  vengeance  of  God.  Boaz  is 
glad  to  take  the  advantage  of  his  refusal ;  and  holds  that  shoe, 
which  was  the  sign  of  his  tenure,  more  worth  than  all  the  land  of 
Elimelech.  And  whereas  other  wives  purchase  their  husbands  with 
a  large  dowry,  this  man  purchaseth  his  wife  at  a  dear  rate,  and 
thinks  his  bargain  happy.  All  the  substance  of  the  earth  is  not 
worth  a  virtuous  and  prudent  wife ;  which  Boaz  doth  now  so  re- 
joice in,  as  if  he  this  day  only  began  to  be  wealthy. 

Now  is  Ruth  taken  into  the  house  of  Boaz  :  she,  that  before  had 
said  she  was  not  like  one  of  his  maidens,  is  now  become  their  mis- 
tress. This  day  she  hath  gleaned  all  the  fields  and  barns  of  a  rich 
husband  ;  and,  that  there  might  be  no  want  in  her  happiness,  by  a 
gracious  husband  she  hath  gained  a  happy  seed  ;  and  hath  the  ho- 
nour, above  all  the  dames  of  Israel,  to  be  the  great  grandmother  of 
a  king,  of  David,  of  the  Messiah. 

Now  is  Marah  turned  back  again  to  Naomi ;  and  Orpah,  if  she 
hear  of  this  in  Moab,  cannot  but  envy  at  her  sister's  happiness.  Oh 
the  sure  and  bountiful  payments  of  the  Almighty  !  Who  ever  came 
under  his  wing  in  vain  ?  Who  ever  lost  by  trusting  him  ?  Who 
ever  forsook  the  Moab  of  this  world  for  the  true  Israel,  and  did 
not  at  last  rejoice  in  the  change  f  Ruth  ii^  jV. 


HANNAH  AND  PENINNAH. 

Ill  customs,  where  they  ai"e  once  entertained,  are  not  easily  dis- 
charged. Polygamy,  besides  carnal  delight,  might  now  plead  age 
and  example  ;  so  as  even  Elkanah,  though  a  Levite,  is  tainted  with 
the  sin  of*  Lamech  :  like  as  fashions  of  attire,  which  at  the  first 
were  disliked  as  uncomely,  yet  when  they  are  once  grown  com- 
mon are  taken  up  of  the  gravest. 

Yet  this  sin,  as  then  current  with  the  time,  could  not  make  El- 
kanah not  religious.  The  house  of  God  in  Shiloh  was  duly  fre- 
quented of  him  ;  often  tunes,  alone,  in  his  ordinary  course  of  at- 
tendance ;  with  all  his  males,  thrice  a  year  ;  and  once  a  year,  with 
all  his  family.  The  continuance  of  an  unknown  sin  cannot  hinder 
the  uprightness  of  a  man's  heart  with  God  ;  as  a  man  may  have  a 
mole  upon  his  back,  and  yet  think  his  skin  clear:  the  least  touch  of 
knowledge  or  wilfulness  mars  his  sincerity. 

He,  that  by  virtue  of  his  place  was  employed  about  the  sacri- 


HANNAH  AND  PENINNAH.  25T 

ficcs  of  others,  would  much  less  neglect  his  own.  It  is  a  shame 
for  him,  that  teaches  God's  people  that  they  should  not  appear 
before  the  Lord  empty,  to  bring  no  sacrifice  for  himself.  If  Le- 
vites  be  profane,  who  should  be  religious  ? 

It  was  the  fashion,  when  they  sacrificed,  to  feast;  so  did  Elka- 
nah.  The  day  of  his  devotion  is  the  day  of  his  triumph:  he 
makes  great  cheer  for  his  whole  family,  even  for  that  wife  which 
he  loved  less.  There  is  nothing  more  comely,  than  cheerfulness 
in  the  services  of  God.  What  is  there  in  all  the  world,  where- 
with the  heart  of  man  should  be  so  lifted  up,  as  with  the  conscience 
of  his  duty  done  to  his  Maker  ?  While  we  do  so,  God  doth  to  us 
as  our  glass,  smile  upon  us,  while  we  smile  on  him. 

Love  will  be  seen  by  entertainment :  Peninnah  and  her  children 
shall  not  complain  of  want,  but  Hannah  shall  find  her  husband's 
affection  in  her  portion  :  as  his  love  to  her  was  double,  so  was  her 
part. 

She  fared  not  the  worse,  because  she  was  childless :  no  good 
husband  will  dislike  his  wife,  for  a  fault  out  of  the  power  of  her 
redress  ;  yea,  rather,  that,  which  might  seem  to  lose  the  love  of 
her  husband,  wins  it,  her  barrenness.  The  good-nature  of  Elkanah 
laboured  by  his  dear  respects  to  recompense  this  affliction,  that  so 
she  might  find  no  less  contentment  in  the  fruit  of  his  hearty 
love,  than  she  had  grief  from  her  own  fruitlessness.  It  is  the  pro- 
perty of  true  mercy,  to  be  most  favourable  to  the  weakest :  thus 
doth  the  gracious  spouse  of  the  Christian  soul  pity  the  barrenness 
of  his  servants.  O  Saviour,  we  should  not  find  thee  so  indulgent 
to  us,  if  we  did  not  complain  of  our  own  unworthiness.  Peninnah 
may  have  the  more  children,  but  barren  Hannah  hath  the  most  love. 
How  much  rather  could  Elkanah  have  wished  Peninnah  barren, 
and  Hannah  fruitful  ?  but  if  she  should  have  had  both  issue  and 
love,  she  had  been  proud,  and  her  rival  despised.  God  knows 
how  to  disperse  his  favours  so,  that  every  one  may  have  cause 
both  of  thankfulness  and  humiliation  ;  while  there  is  no  one  tiiat 
hath  all,  no  one  but  hath  some.  If  envy  and  contempt  were  not 
thus  equally  tempered,  some  would  be  over  haughty  and  others 
too  miserable  ;  but  now,  every  man  sees  that  in  himself  which  is 
worthy  of  contempt,  and  matter  of  emulation  in  others  ;  and  con- 
trarily,  sees  what  to  pity  and  dislike  in  the  most  eminent,  and 
what  to  applaud  in  himself;  and  out  of  this  contrariety,  arises  a 
sweet  mean  of  contentation. 

The  love  of  Elkanah  is  so  unable  to  free  Hannah  from  the  wrongs 
of  her  rival,  that  it  procures  them  rather.  The  iinfruitfulness  of 
Hannah  had  never  with  so  much  despite  been  laid  in  her  disii,  if 
her  husband's  heart  had  been  as  barren  of  love  to  her.  Envy, 
though  it  take  advantage  of  our  weaknesses,  yet  is  ever  raised 
upon  some  grounds  of  happiness  in  them  whom  it  emulates :  it  is 
ever  an  ill  effect  of  a  good  cause.  If  Abel's  sacrifice  had  not  been 
accepted,  and  if  the  acceptation  of  his  sacrifice  had  not  been  a 
blessing,  no  envy  had  followed  upon  it. 

There  is  no  evil  of  another,  wherein  it  is  fit  to  rejoice,  but  his 
vol.  i.  s 


25S 


CONTEMPLATION?. 


envy  ;  and  tins  is  worthy  of  our  joy  and  thankfulness,  because  it 
shews  us  the  price  of  that  good,  which  we  had  and  valued  not. 
The  malignity  of  envy  is  thus  well  answered,  when  it  is  made  the 
evil  cause  of  a  good  effect  to  us  ;  when  God  and  our  souls  may 
gain  by  another's  sin.  I  do  not  find  that  Hannah  insulted  upon 
Peninnah,  for  the  greater  measure  of  her  husband's  love,  as  Peflin- 
nah  did  upon  her,  for  her  fruitfulness.  Those,  that  are  truly  gra- 
cious, know  how  to  receive  the  blessings  of  God,  without  contempt 
of  them  that  want ;  and  have  learned  to  be  thankful,  without  over- 
liness. 

Envy,  when  it  is  once  conceived  in  a  malicious  heart,  is  like  fire 
in  billets  of  juniper,  which,  they  sav,  continues  more  years  than 
one.  Every  year  was  Hannah  thus  vexed  witli  her  emulous  part- 
ner, and  troubled  both  in  her  prayers  and  meals.  Amidst  all  their 
feastings,  she  fed  on  nothing  but  tears.  Some  dispositions  are  less 
sensible,  and  more  careless  of  the  despite  and  injuries  of  others, 
and  can  turn  over  unkind  usages  with  contempt.  By  how  much 
more  tender  the  heai't  is,  so  much  more  deeply  is  it  ever  affected 
with  discourtesies :  as  wax  receives  and  retains  that  impression, 
which  in  the  hard  clay  cannot  be  seen  ;  or  as  the  eye  feels  that 
mote,  which  the  skin  of  the  eye-lid  could  not  complain  of. 

Yet  the  husband  of  Hannah,  as  one  that  knew  his  duty,  labours 
by  his  love,  to  comfort  her  against  these  discontentments  ;  Jl  hy 
-deepest  thou  ?  Am  not  I  better  to  thee  than  ten  sons  ?  It  is  the 
weakness  of  good  natures,  to  give  so  much  advantage  to  an  ene- 
my :  what  would  malice  rather  have,  than  the  vexation  of  them 
whom  it  persecutes  ?  We  cannot  better  please  an  adversary,  than 
by  hurting  ourselves  :  this  is  no  other  than  to  humour  envy,  to 
serve  the  turn  of  those  that  malign  us,  and  to  draw  on  that  malice 
whereof  we  are  weary  ;  whereas  carelessness  puts  ill-will  out  ot 
countenance,  and  makes  it  withdraw  itself  in  a  rage,  as  that  which 
doth  but  shame  the  author,  without  the  hurt  of  the  patient.  Iu 
causeless  wrongs,  the  best  remedy  is  contempt. 

She,  that  could  not  find  comfort  in  the  loving  persuasions  of 
her  husband,  seeks  it  in  her  prayers :  she  rises  up  hungry  from 
the  feast,  and  hies  her  to  the  temple  ;  there  she  pours  out  her  tears 
and  supplications.  Whatsoever  the  complaint  be,  here  is  the 
remedy.  There  is  one  universal  receipt  for  all  evils,  prayer: 
when  all  helps  fail  us,  this  remains  ;  and  while  we  have  a  heart, 
comforts  it. 

Here  was  not  more  bitterness  in  the  soul  of  Hannah,  than  fer- 
vency:  she  did  not  only  weep  and  pray,  but  vow  unto  God.  If 
God  will  give  her  a  son,  she  will  give  her  son  to  God  back  again. 
Even  nature  itself  had  consecrated  her  son  to  God  ;  for  he  could 
not  but  be  born  a  Levite :  but  if  his  birth  make  him  a  Levite,  her 
vow  shall  make  him  a  Nazarite,  and  dedicate  his  minority  to  the 
tabernacle.  The  way  to  obtain  any  benefit,  is,  to  devote  it  in 
our  hearts,  to  the  glory  of  that  God  of  whom  we  ask  it:  by  this 
means,  shall  God  both  pleasure  his  servant  and  honour  himself  ; 
whereas,  if  the  scope  of  our  desires  be  carnal,  we  may  be  sure, 
either  to  fail  of  our  suit,  or  of  a.  blessing.  1  Sam.  I. 


259 


ELI  AND  HANNAH. 

Old  Eli  sits  on  a  stool,  by  one  of  the  posts  of  the  tabernacle : 
where  should  the  priests  of  God  be,  but  in  the  temple ;  whether 
for  action  or  oversight  ?  Their  very  presence  keeps  God's  house  in 
order  ;  and  the  presence  of  God  keeps  their  hearts  in  order. 

It  is  often  found,  that  those,  which  arc  themselves  conscionable, 
arc  too  forward  to  the  censuring  of  others :  good  Eh,  because  he 
marks  the  lips  of  Hannah  to  move  without  noise,  chicles  her  as 
drunken  ;  and  uncharitably  misconstrues  her  devotion.  It  was  a 
weak  ground  whereon  to  build  so  heavy  a  sentence.  If  she  had 
spoken  too  loud,  and  incomposedly,  he  might  have  had  some  just 
colour  for  his  conceit ;  but  now  to  accuse  her  silence,  notwith- 
standing all  her  tears  which  he  saw,  of  drunkenness,  it  was  a  zea- 
lous breach  of  charity. 

Some  spirits  would  have  been  enraged  with  so  rash  a  censure  : 
when  anger  meets  with  grief,  both  turn  into  fury  ;  but  this  good 
woman  bad  been  inured  to  reproaches,  and  besides,  did  well  see 
the  reproof  arose  from  misprision,  and  the  misprision  from  zeal ; 
and  therefore  answers  meekly,  as  one  that  would  rather  satisfy 
than  expostulate  ;  Nay,  my  L  >rdt  but  I  am  a  woman  troubled  in 
spirit. 

Eli  may  now  learn  charity  of  Hannah  :  if  she  had  been  in  that 
distemper  whereof  he  accused  her,  his  just  reproof  had  not  been 
so  easily  digested  :  guiltiness  is  commonly  clamorous  and  impa- 
tient, whereas  innocence  is  silent,  and  careless  of  mis-reports.  It 
is  natural  to  all  men,  to  wipe  off  from  their,  name  all  aspersions  of 
evil ;  but  none  do  it  with  such  violence,  as  they  which  are  faulty. 
It  is  a  sign  the  horse  is  galled,  that  stirs  too  much  when  he  is 
touched. 

She,  that  was  censured  for  drunken,  censures  drunkenness  more 
deeply  than  her  reprover  ;  Count  not  thine  hand-maid  for  a  daugh- 
ter of  Belial.  The  drunkard's  style  begins  in  lawlessness,  proceeds 
in  unprofitableness,  ends  in  miserv  ;  and  all  shut  up  in  the  deno- 
mination of  this  pedigree,  A  son  of  Belial. 

If  Hannah  had  been  tainted  with  this  sin,  she  would  have  denied 
it  with  more  favour,  and  have  disclaimed  it  with  an  extenuation  ; 
"  What  if  I  should  have  been  merry  with  wine  ?  yet  I  might  be 
devout :  if  I  should  have  overjoyed  in  my  sacrifice  to  God,  one 
cup  of  excess  had  not  been  so  heinous :"  now  her  freedom  is  seen 
in  her  severity.  Those,  which  have  clear  hearts  from  any  sin, 
prosecute  it  with  rigour  ;  whereas  the  guilty  are  ever  partial :  their 
conscience  holds  their  hand,  and  tells  them  that  they  beat  them- 
selves while  they  punish  others. 

Now  Eli  sees  his  error,  and  recants  it ;  and,  to  make  amends  for 
his  rash  censure,  prays  for  her.  Even  the  best  may  err,  but  not 
persist  in  it  :  when  good  natures  have  offended,  they  are  unquiet, 
till  they  have  hastened  satisfaction.  This  was  within  his  office,  to 
pray  for  the  distressed  :  wherefore  serves  the  priest,  but  to  sacri- 
fice lor  the  people  ?  and  the  best  sacrifices  are  the  prayers  of 
faith. 


260 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


She,  that  began  her  prayers  with  fasting  and  heaviness,  rises  up 
from  them  with  cheerfulness  and  repast.  It  cannot  be  spoken,  how 
much  ease  and  joy  the  heart  of  man  finds  in  having  unloaded  his 
cares,  and  poured  out  his  supplications  into  the  ears  of  God  ;  since 
it  is  well  assured,  that  the  suit  which  is  faithfully  asked  is  already 
granted  in  heaven.  The  conscience  may  well  rest,  when  it  tells  us, 
that  we  have  neglected  no  means  of  redressing  our  affliction  ;  for 
then  it  may  resolve  to  look,  either  for  amendment  or  patience. 

The  sacrifice  is  ended  ;  and  now  Elkanah  and  his  family  rise  up 
early  to  return  unto  Ramah :  but  they  dare  not  set  forward,  till 
they  have  worshipped  before  the  Lord.  That  journey  cannot 
hope  to  prosper,  that  takes  not  God  with  it.  The  way  to  receive 
blessings  at  home  is,  to  be  devout  at  the  temple. 

She,  that  before  conceived  faith  in  her  heart,  now  conceives  a 
son  in  her  womb :  God  will  rather  work  miracles,  than  faithful 
prayers  shall  return  empty.  I  do  not  find  that  Peninnah  asked 
any  son  of  God,  yet  she  had  store  ;  Hannah  begged  hard  for  this 
one,  and  could  not  till  now  obtain  him.  The}-,  which  are  dearest 
to  God,  do  oft-times  with  great  difficulty  work  out  those  blessings, 
which  fall  into  the  mouths  of  the  careless.  That  wise  disposer  of 
all  things  knows  it  fit  to  hold  us  short  of  those  favours,  which  we 
sue  for ;  whether  for  the  trial  of  our  patience,  or  the  exercise  of 
our  faith,  or  the  increase  of  our  importunity,  or  the  doubling  of 
our  obligation. 

Those  children  are  most  like  to  prove  blessings,  which  the  pa- 
rents have  begged  of  God  ;  and  which  are  no  less  the  fruit  of  our 
supplications,  than  of  our  body.  As  this  child  was  the  son  of  his 
mother's  prayers,  and  was  consecrated  to  God  ere  his  possibility 
of  being ;  so  now  himself  shall  know,  both  how  he  came  and 
whereto  he  was  ordained ;  and  lest  he  should  forget  it,  his  very 
name  shall  teach  him  both  ;  She  called  his  vame  Samuel,  He  can- 
not so  much  as  hear  himself  named,  but  he  must  needs  remember, 
both  the  extraordinary  mercy  of  God,  in  giving  him  to  a  barren 
mother  ;  and  the  vow  of  his  mother,  in  restoring  him  back  to  God 
by  her  zealous  dedication  ;  and  by  both  of  them  learn  holiness  and 
obedience.  There  is  no  necessity  of  significant  names ;  but  we 
cannot  have  too  many  monitors  to  put  us  in  mind  of  our  duty. 

It  is  wont  to  be  the  father's  privilege,  to  name  his  child  ;  but, 
because  this  was  his  mother's  son,  begotten  more  by  her  prayers 
than  the  seed  of  Elkanah,  it  was  but  reason,  that  she  should  have 
the  chief  hand,  both  in  his  name  and  disposing.  It  had  been  in- 
deed in  the  power  of  Elkanah,  to  have  changed  both  his  name  and 
profession,  and  abrogate  the  vow  of  his  wife;  that  wives  might 
know,  they  were  not  their  own ;  and  that  the  rib  might  learn  to 
know  the  head  :  but  husbands  shall  abuse  their  authority,  if  they 
shall  wilfully  cross  the  holy  purposes  and  religious  endeavours  of 
their  yoke-fellows.  How  much  more  fit  is  it  for  them,  to  cherish 
all  good  desires  in  the  weaker  vessels !  and  as  we  use,  when  we 
carry  a  small  light  in  a  wind,  to  hide  it  with  our  lap  or  hand,  that 
it  may  not  go  out.    If  the  wife  be  a  vine,  the  husband  should  be 


ELI  AND  HANNAH.    •  26! 

an  elm  to  uphold  her  in  all  worthy  enterprises ;  else  she  falls  to 
the  ground,  and  proves  fruitless. 

The  year  is  now  come  about ;  and  Elkanah  calls  his  family  to 
their  holy  journey,  to  go  up  to  Jerusalem,  for  the  anniversary  so- 
lemnity of  their  sacrifice.  Hannah's  heart  is  with  them  ;  but  she 
hath  a  good  excuse  to  stay  at  home,  the  charge  of  her  Samuel. 
Her  success  in  the  temple  keeps  her  happily  from  the  temple  ; 
that  her  devotion  may  be  doubled,  because  it  was  respited.  God 
knows  how  to  dispense  with  necessities  ;  but  if  we  surfer  idle  and 
needless  occasions  to  hold  us  from  the  tabernacle  of  God,  our 
hearts  are  but  hollow  to  religion. 

Now,  at  last,  when  the  child  was  weaned  from  her  hand,  she 
goes  up  and  pays  her  vow  ;  and,  with  it  pays  the  interest  of  her 
intermission.  Never  did  Hannah  go  up  with  so  glad  a  heart  to 
Shiloh,  as  now  that  she  carries  God  this  reasonable  present,  which 
himself  gave  to  her,  and  she  vowed  to  him  ;  accompanied  with  the 
bounty  of  other  sacrifices,  more  in  number  and  measure  than  the 
law  of  God  required  of  her  ;  and  all  this  is  too  little  for  her  God, 
that  so  mercifully  remembered  her  affliction  and  miraculously 
remedied  it.  Those  hearts,  which  are  truly  thankful,  do  no  less 
rejoice  in  their  repayment,  than  in  their  receipt ;  and  do  as  much 
study,  how  to  shew  their  humble  and  fervent  affections,  for  what 
they  have,  as  how  to  compass  favours  when  they  want  them  :  their 
debt  is  their  burthen,  which  when  they  have  discharged,  they  are 
at  ease. 

If  Hannah  had  repented  of  her  vow,  and  not  presented  her  son 
to  the  tabernacle,  Eli  could  not  have  challenged  him.  He  had 
only  seen  her  lips  stir,  not  hearing  the  promise  of  her  heart.  It 
was  enough,  that  her  own  soul  knew  her  vow,  and  God  which  was 
greater  than  it.  The  obligation  of  a  secret  vow  is  no  less,  than  if 
it  had  ten  thousand  witnesses. 

Old  Eli  could  not  chuse  but  much  rejoice,  to  see  this  fruit  of 
those  lips,  which  he  thought  moved  with  wine  ;  and  this  good  proof, 
both  of  the  merciful  audience  of  God,  and  the  thankful  fidelitv  of 
his  handmaid.  This  sight  calls  him  down  to  his  knees  ;  he  wor- 
shipped the  Lord.  We  are  unprofitable  w  itnesses  of  the  mercies 
of  God  and  the  graces  of  men,  if  we  do  not  glorify  him  for  others' 
sakes,  no  less  than  for  our  own. 

I'.ii  and  Hannah  grew  now  better  acquainted  :  neither  hcA  he  so 
much  cause  to  praise  God  for  her,  as  she  afterwards  for  him  ;  for 
if  her  own  prayers  obtained  her  first  child,  his  blessing  enriched 
her  with  five  more.  If  she  had  not  given  her  first  son  to  God  ere 
She  bad  him,  I  doubt  whether  she  had  not  been  ever  barren;  or  if 
she  had  kept  her  Samuel  at  home,  whether*ever  she  had  conceived 
again :  now,  that  piety,  which  stripped  her  of  her  only  child  for 
the  service  of  her  God,  hath  multiplied  the  fruit  of  her  womb, 
and  gave  her  five  for  that  one ;  which  was  still  no  less  hers,  be- 
cause he  was  God's.  There  is  no  so  certain  way  of  increase,  as 
to  lend  or  give  unto  the  owner  of  all  things.  1  Sam.  i. 


262 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


ELI  AND  HIS  SONS. 
If  the  conveyance  of  grace  were  natural,  holy  parents  w  ould  not 
be  so  ill  suited  with  children.  What  good  man  would  not  rather 
wish  his  loins  dry,  than  fruitful  of  wickedness  ?  Now,  wo  can  nei- 
ther traduce  goodness,  nor  chuse  but  traduce  sin.  If  virtue  were 
as  well  entailed  upon  us  as  sin,  one  might  serve  to  check  the  other 
in  our  children  ;  but  now,  since  grace  is  derived  from  heaven  on 
whomsoever  it  pleases  the  Giver,  and  that  evil  which  ours  receive 
hereditarily  from  us  is  multiplied  by  their  own  corruption,  it  can 
be  no  wonder,  that  good  men  have  ill  children  ;  it  is  rather  a  won- 
der, that  any  children  are  not  evil. 

The  sons  of  Eli  are  as  lewd,  as  himself  was  holy.  If  the  good- 
ness of  examples,  precepts,  education,  profession,  could  have  been 
preservatives  from  extremity  of  sin,  these  sons  of  a  holy  father 
had  not  been  wicked  ;  now,  neither  parentage,  nor  breeding,  nor 
priesthood,  can  keep  the  sons  of  Eli  from  the  sons  of  Belial.  If 
our  children  be  good,  let  us  thank  God  for  it ;  this  was  more  than 
we  could  give  them  :  if  evil,  they  may  thank  us  and  themselves  ; 
us,  for  their  birth-sin ;  themselves,  for  the  improvement  of  it  to 
that  height  of  wickedness. 

If  they  had  not  been  sons  of  Eli,  yet  being  priests  of  God,  who 
would  not  have  hoped  their  very  calling  should  have  infused  some 
holiness  into  them  ?  But  now  even  their  white  ephod  covers  our 
foul  sins  :  yea  rather,  if  they  which  serve  at  the  altar  degenerate, 
then-  wickedness  is  so  much  more  above  others  as  their  places  are 
Holier*  A  wicked  priest  is  the  worst  creature  upon  earth.  Who  are 
devils,  but  they  which  were  once  angels  of  light  ?  Who  can  stum- 
ble at  the  sins  of  the  evangelical  Levites,  that  sees  such  impurity 
before  the  ark  of  God  ? 

That  God,  which  promised  to  be  the  Levites'  portion,  had  set 
forth  the  portion  of  his  ministers.  He  will  feast  thein  at  his  own 
altar:  the  breast  and  the  right  shoulder  of  the  peace-offering  was 
their  morsel.  These  bold  and  covetous  priests  will  rather  have 
the  flesh-hook  their  arbiter,  than  God  :  whatsoever  those  three 
teeth  fasten  upon  shall  be  for  their  tooth.  They  were  weary  of 
one  joint;  and  now  their  delicacy  affects  variety.  God  is  not  wor- 
th}- to  carve  for  these  men,  but  their  own  hands ;  and  this  they  do 
not  receive,  but  take  ;  and  take  violently,  unseasonably.  It  had 
been  fit,  God  should  be  first  served :  their  presumption  will  not 
stay  his  leisure :  ere  the  fat  be  burned,  ere  the  flesh  be  boiled,  they 
snatch  more  than  their  share  from  the  altar  ;  as  if  the  God  of  hea- 
ven should  wait  on  their  palate  ;  as  if  the  Israelites  had  come  thither 
to  sacrifice  to  their  bellies :  and,  as  commonly  a  wanton  tooth  is 
the  harbinger  to  luxurious  wantonness,  they  are  no  sooner  fed, 
than  they  neigh  after  the  dames  of  Israel.  Holy  women  assemble 
to  the  door  of  the  tabernacle:  these  varlets  tempt  them  to  lust, 
that  came  thither  for  devotion  :  they  had  wives  of  their  own,  yet 
their  unbridled  desires  rove  after  strangers,  and  fear  not  to  pollute 
even  that  holy  place  with  abominable  filthiness. 


ELI  AND  HIS  SONS. 


263 


Oli  sins,  too  shameful  for  men  ;  much  more  for  the  spiritual 
guides  of  Israel !  He,  that  makes  himself  a  servant  to  his  tooth, 
shall  easily  become  a  slave  to  all  inordinate  affections.  That  ark, 
which  expiated  other  men's  sins,  added  to  the  sins  of  the  sacrificers  : 
doubtless,  many  a  soul  was  the  cleaner  for  the  blood  of  the  sacri- 
fices which  they  shed,  while  their  own  were  more  impure  ;  and  as 
the  altar  cannot  sanctify  the  priest,  so  the  uncleanness  of  the  mi- 
nister cannot  pollute  the  offering  ;  because  the  virtue  thereof  is  not 
in  the  agent,  but  in  the  institution  :  in  the  representation,  his  sin 
is  his  own  ;  the  comfort  of  the  sacrament  is  from  God.  Our  clergy 
is  no  charter  for  heaven.  Even  those,  whose  trade  is  devotion, 
may  at  once  shew  the  way  to  heaven  by  their  tongue,  and  by  their 
foot  lead  the  way  to  hell.  It  is  neither  a  cowl,  nor  an  ephod,  that 
can  privilege  the  soul. 

The  sin  of  these  men  was  worthy  of  contempt,  yea,  perhaps, 
their  persons ;  but  for  the  people  therefore  to  abhor  the  offerings 
of  the  Lord,  was  to  add  their  evil  unto  the  priests',  and  to  offend 
God  because  he  was  offended.  There  can  no  offence  be  justly 
taken,  even  at  men  ;  much  less  at  God,  for  the  sake  of  men.  No 
man's  sins  should  bring  the  service  of  God  into  dislike:  this  is  to 
make  holy  tilings  guilty  of  our  profaneness.  It  is  a  dangerous  ig- 
norance, not  to  distinguish  betwixt  the  work  and  the  instrument: 
whereupon  it  often  comes  to  pass,  that  we  fall  out  with  God  be- 
cause we  find  cause  of  offence  from  men  ;  and  give  God  just  cause 
to  abhor  us,  because  we  abhor  his  service  unjustly. 

Although  it  be  true,  of  great  men  especially,  that  they  are  the 
last  that  know  the  evils  of  their  own  house,  yet  either  it  could  not 
be,  when  all  Israel  rung  of  the  lewdness  of  Eli's  sons,  that  he  only 
should  not  know  it ;  or  if  he  knew  it  not,  his  ignorance  cannot  be 
excused  ;  for  a  seasonable  restraint  might  have  prevented  this  ex- 
tremity of  debauchedness.  Complaints  are  long  muttered  of  the 
great,  ere  they  dare  break  forth  to  open  contestation:  public  ac- 
cusations of  authority,  argue  intolerable  extremities  of  evil. 

Nothing  but  age  can  plead  for  Eli,  that  he  was  not  the  first  ac- 
cuser of  his  sons  ;  now,  when  their  enormities  came  to  be  the  voice 
of  the  multitude,  he  must  hear  it  perforce  ;  and  doubtless,  he  heard 
it  with  grief  enough,  but  not  with  anger  enough.  He,  that  was 
the  judge  of  Israel,  should  have  impartially  judged  his  own  flesh 
and  blood  :  never  could  he  have  offered  a  more  pleasing  sacrifice, 
than  the  depraved  blood  of  so  wicked  sons.  In  vain  do  we  rebuke 
those  sins  abroad,  which  we  tolerate  at  home.  That  man  makes 
hunself  but  ridiculous,  that,  leaving  his  own  house  on  fire,  runs 
to  quench  his  neighbour's.  - 

I  heard  Eli  sharp  enough  to  Hannah,  upon  but  a  suspicion  of 
•sin  ;  and  now,  how  mild  I  find  him  to  the  notorious  crimes  of  his 
own  !  W/iij  do  you  so,  my  sons  ?  It  is  no  good  report ;  my  sons,  do 
no  more  so;  the  case  is  altered  with  the  persons.  If  nature  may 
be  allowed  to  speak  in  judgment,  and  to  make  difference,  not  of 
sins  but  offenders,  the  sentence  must  needs  savour  of  partiality. 
Had  these  men  but  some  little  slackened  their  duty,  or  heedlessly 


264  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

omitted  some  rite  of  the  sacrifice,  this  censure  had  not  been  unfit ; 

but  to  punish  the  thefts,  rapines,  sacrileges,  adulteries,  incests  of 
his  sons,  with  Why  do  ye  so  ?  was  no  other  than  to  shave  that  head, 
which  had  deserved  cutting  off.  As  it  is  with  ill  humours,  that  a 
weak  dose  doth  but  stir  and  anger  them,  not  purge  them  out ;  so 
it  fareth  with  sins :  an  easy  reproof  doth  but  encourage  wicked- 
ness, and  makes  it  think  itself  so  slight,  as  that  censure  importeth. 
A  vehement  rebuke  to  a  capital  evil,  is  but  like  a  strong  shower  to 
a  ripe  field,  which  lays  that  corn  which  were  worthy  of  a  sickle. 
It  is  u  breach  of  justice,  not  to  proportionate  the  punishment  to 
the  offence:  to  whip  a  man  for  a  murder,  or  to  punish  the  purse 
for  incest,  or  to  burn  treason  in  the  hand,  or  to  award  the  stocks 
to  burglary,  it  is  to  patronize  evil,  instead  of  avenging  it :  of  the 
two  extremes,  rigour  is  more  safe  for  the  public  weal ;  because 
the  over-punishing  of  one  offender  frights  many  from  sinning.  It 
is  better  to  live  in  a  commonwealth  where  nothing  is  lawful,  than 
where  every  thing. 

Indulgent  parents  are  cruel  to  themselves  and  their  posterity. 
Eli  could  not  have  devised  which  way  to  have  plagued  himself 
and  his  house  so  much,  as  by  his  kindness  to  his  children's  sins. 
What  variety  of  judgments  doth  he  now  hear  of  from  the  messen- 
ger of  God  !  First,  because  his  old  age,  which  uses  to  be  subject 
to  choler ,  inclined  now  to  misfavour  his  sons,  therefore  there  shall 
not  be  an  old  man  left  of  his  house  for  ever  ;  and,  because  it  vexed 
him  not  enough  to  see  his  sons  enemies  to  God  in  their  profession, 
therefore  he  shall  see  his  enemy  in  the  habitation  of  the  Lord  ; 
and,  because  himself  forbore  to  take  vengeance  of  his  sons,  and 
esteemed  the'r  life  above  the  glory  of  his  Master,  therefore  God 
will  revenge  himself,  by  killing  them  both  in  one  day;  and,  be- 
cause he  abused  his  sovereignty  by  connivance  at  sin,  therefore 
shall  his  house  be  stripped  of  this  honour,  and  see  it  translated  to 
another;  and  lastly,  because  he  suffered  his  sons  to  please  their 
own  wanton  appetite,  in  taking  meat  oft*  from  God's  trencher, 
therefore  those  which  remain  of  his  house  shall  come  to  his  suc- 
cessors, to  beg  a  piece  of  silver  and  a  morsel  of  bread  :  in  a  word, 
because  he  was  partial  to  his  sons,  God  shall  execute  all  this  se- 
vere]}- upon  him  and  them.  I  do  not  read  of  any  fault  Eli  had, 
but  indulgence  ;  and  which  of  the  notorious  offenders  were  plagued 
more  ?  Barents  need  no  other  means  to  make  them  miserable,  than 
sparing  the  rod. 

Who  should  be  the  bearer  of  these  fearful  tidings  to  Eli,  but 
young  Samuel,  whom  himself  had  trained  up  ?  He  was  now  grown 
p  ist  ;  i'  mother's  coats  ;  fit  for  the  message  of  God.  Old  Eli  re- 
buked not  bis  young  sons,  therefore  young  Samuel  is  sent  to  rebuke 
him  •  marvel  not,  while  the  priesthood  was  so  corrupted,  if  the 
f  God  were  precious  ;  if  there  were  no  public  vision.  It  is 
n  tb<  manner  of  God,  to  grace  the  unworthy.  The  ordinary 
ministration  in  the  temple  was  too  much  honour  for  those  that 
r  ibb'ed  the  altar,  though  they  had  no  extraordinary  revelations. 
Hereupon  it  was,  that  God  lets  old  Eli  sleep  (who  slept  in  his  sin), 


ELI  AND  HIS  SONS. 


255 


and  awakes  Samuel,  to  tell  him  what  he  would  do  with  his  master. 
He,  which  was  wont  to  be  the  mouth  of  God  to  the  people,  must 
now  receive  the  message  of  God  from  the  mouth  of  another  ;  as 
great  persons  will  not  speak  to  those  with  whom  they  are  highly 
offended,  hut  send  them  their  checks  by  others. 

The  limits  of  the  temple  were  now  dim,  and  almost  ready  to 
give  place  to  the  morning,  when  God  called  Samuel ;  to  signify, 
perhaps,  that  those,  which  should  have  been  the  lights  of  Israel, 
burned  no  less  dimly,  and  were  near  their  going  out,  and  should 
be  succeeded  with  one  so  much  more  lightsome  than  they  as  the 
sun  was  more  bright  than  the  lamps. 

God  had  good  leisure  to  have  delivered  this  message  by  day  ; 
but  he  meant  to  make  use  of  Samuel's  mistaking  ;  and  therefore 
so  speaks,  that  Eli  may  be  asked  for  an  answer,  and  perceive  him- 
self both  omitted  and  censured.  He,  that  meant  to  use  Samuel's 
voice  to  Eli,  imitates  the  voice  of  Eli  to  Samuel.  Samuel  had  so 
accustomed  himself  to  obedience,  and  to  answer  the  call  of  Eli, 
that,  lying  in  the  further  cells  of  the  Levites,  he  is  easily  raised 
from  his  sleep ;  and  even  in  the  night  runs  for  his  message  to  him, 
who  was  rather  to  receive  it  from  him.  Thrice  is  the  old  man  dis- 
quieted with  the  diligence  of  his  servant ;  and,  though  visions  were 
rare  in  his  days,  yet  is  he  not  so  unacquainted  with  God,  as  not  to 
attribute  that  voice  to  him,  which  himself  heard  not :  wherefore, 
like  a  hetter  tutor  than  a  parent,  he  teaches  Samuel  what  he  shall 
answer  ;  Speak,  Lord,  for  thy  servant  heareth. 

It  migfat  have  pleased  God,  at  the  first  call  to  have  delivered  his 
message  to  Samuel,  not  expecting  the  answer  of  a  novice  unseen 
in  the  visions  of  a  God  ;  yet  doth  he  rather  defer  it  till  the  fourth 
summons,  and  will  not  speak  till  Samuel  confessed  his  audience. 
God  loves  ever  to  prepare  his  servants  for  his  employments ;  and 
will  not  commit  his  errands,  but  to  those,  whom  he  addresseth  both 
by  wonder,  and  attention,  and  humility. 

Eli  knew  well  the  gracious  fashion  of  God,  that,  where  he  in- 
tended a  favour,  prorogation  could  be  no  hindrance ;  and  there- 
fore, after  the  call  of  God  thrice  answered  with  silence,  he  instructs 
Samuel  to  be  ready  for  the  fourth.  If  Samuel's  silence  had  been 
wilful,  I  doubt  whether  he  had  been  again  solicited  ;  now  God  doth 
both  pity  his  error  and  requite  his  diligence,  by  redoubling  his 
name  at  last. 

Samuel  had  now  many  years  ministered  before  the  Lord,  but 
never  till  now  heard  his  voice,  and  now  hears  it  with  much  terror ; 
for,  the  first  word  that  he  hears  God  speak,  is  threatening,  and 
that  of  vengeance  to  his  master.  What  were  these  menaces,  but 
so  many  premonitions  to  himself,  that  should  succeed  Eii  ?  God 
begins  early  to  season  their  hearts  with  fear,  whom  he  means  to 
make  eminent  instruments  of  his  glory.  It  is  his  mercy,  to  make 
us  witnesses  of  the  judgments  of  others,  that  we  may  be  fore- 
warned, ere  we  have  the  occasions  of  sinning. 

I  do  not  hear  God  bid  Samuel  deliver  his  message  to  Eli.  He, 
that  was  but  now  made  a  prophet,  knows  that  the  errands  of  God 


266  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

intend  not  silence  ;  and  that  God  would  not  have  spoken  to  him  of 
another,  if  he  had  meant  the  news  should  he  reserved  to  himself. 
Neither  yet  did  he  run  with  open  mouth  unto  Eli,  to  tell  him  this 
vision  unasked  :  no  wise  man  will  be  hasty  to  bring-  ill  tidings  to  the 
great ;  rather  doth  he  stay,  till  the  importunity  of  his  master  should 
wring  it  from  his  unwillingness;  and  then,  as  his  concealment 
shewed  his  love,  so  his  full  relation  shall  approve  his  fidelity. 

If  the  heart  of  Eli  had  not  told  him  this  news,  before  God  told  it. 
Samuel,  he  had  never  been  so  instant  with  Samuel,  not  no  conceal 
it ;  his  conscience  did  well  presage  that  it  concerned  himself :  guil- 
tiness needs  no  prophet,  to  assure  it  of  punishment.  The  mind  that 
is  troubled  projecteth  terrible  things  ;  and  though  it  cannot  single 
out  the  judgment  allotted  to  it,  yet  it  is  in  a  confused  expectation 
of  some  grievous  evil.  Surely,  Eli  could  not  think  it  worse  than  itwas. 

The  sentence  was  fearful;  and  such  as  I  wonder  the  neck  or  the 
heart  of  'old  Eli  could  hold  out  the  report  of ;  that  God  swears  he 
will  judge  Eli's  house,  and  that  with  beggary,  with  death,  with 
desolation,  and  that  the  wickedness  of  his  house  shall  not  be  purged 
with  sacrifice  or  offerings  for  ever:  and  yet  this,  which  every  Isra- 
elite's ear  should  tingle  to  hear  of  when  it  should  be  done,  old  Eli 
hears  with  an  unmoved  patience  and  humble  submission,  It  is  the 
Lord ;  let  him  do  what  seemeth  him  good. 

Oh  admirable  faith,  and  more  than  human  constancy  and  resolu- 
tion ;  worthy  of  the  aged  president  of  Shilofa  ;  worthy  of  a  heart 
sacrificed  to  that  God,  whose  justice  had  refused  to  expiate  his  sin 
by  sacrifice !  If  EL'  have  been  an  ill  father  to  his  sons,  yet  he  is  a 
good  son  to  God,  and  is  readv  to  kiss  the  very  rod  he  shall  smart 
withal.  "  It  is  the  Lord  whom  I  have  ever  found  holv,  and  just,  and 
religious;  and  he  cannot  but  be  himself.  Let  him  do  what  seemeth 
him  good  ;  for  whatever  seemeth  good  to  him  cannot  but  be  good, 
howsoever  it  seems  tome."  Every  man  can  open  his  hand  to  God, 
while  he  blesses  ;  but  to  expose  ourselves  willingly  to  the  afflicting 
hand  of  our  Maker,  and  to  kneel  to  him  while  he  scourges  us,  is 
peculiar  only  to  the  faithful. 

If  ever  a  good  heart  could  have  freed  a  man  from  temporal  pu- 
nishments, Eli  must  needs  have  escaped.  God's  anger  was  appeased 
by  his  humble  repentance,  but  his  justice  must  be  satisfied  :  Eli's 
sin  and  his  sons'  was  in  the  eve  and  mouth  of  all  Israel;  his  there- 
fore should  have  been  much  wronged  by  their  impunity.  Who 
would  not  have  made  these  spiritual  guides  an  example  of  lawless- 
ness ;  and  have  said,  "  What  care  I  how  I  live,  if  Eli's  sons  go  away 
unpunished  ?" 

As  not  the  tears  of  Eli,  so  not  the  words  of  Samuel  may  fall  to 
the  ground.  We  may  not  measure  the  displeasure  of  God  by  his 
stripes  :  many  times,  after  the  remission  of  the  sin,  the  very  chas- 
tisements of  the  Almighty  are  deadly.  No  repentance  can  assure 
us,  that  we  shall  not  smart  with  outward  afflictions :  that  can  pre- 
vent the  eternal  displeasure  of  God,  but  still  it  may  be  necessary 
and  good  we  should  be  corrected.  Our  care  and  suit  must  be,  that 
the  evils  which  shall  not  be  averted  may  be  sanctified. 


ELI  AND  HIS  SONS.  267 

If  the  prediction  of  these  evils  were  fearful,  what  shall  the  execu- 
tion be?  the  presumption  of  the  ill-taught  Israelites  shall  give  oc-i 
casion  to  this  judgment ;  for  being  smitten  before  the  Philistines, 
they  send  for  the  ark  into  the  field.  Who  gave  them  authority  to 
command  the  ark  of  God  at  their  pleasure  ?  Here  was  no  consulting 
with  the  ark,  w  hich  they  would  fetch  ;  no  inquiry  of  Samuel,  whe- 
ther they  should  fetch  it ;  but  a  heady  resolution  of  presumptuous 
elders,  to  force  God  into  the  field,  and  to  challenge  success.  If  God 
were  not  with  the  ark,  why  did  they  send  for  it,  and  rejoice  in  the 
coming  of  it  ?  If  God  were  with  it,  why  was  not  his  allowance  asked, 
that  it  should  come  ?  How  can  the  people  be  good,  where  the  priests 
are  wicked  ? 

When  the  ark  of  the  covenant  of  the  Lord  of  Hosts  that  dwells 
between  the  cherubims,  was  brought  into  the  host,  though  with 
mean  and  wicked  attendance,  Isi-aeldoth,  as  it  were,  fill  the  heaven 
and  shake  the  earth  with  shouts ;  as  if  the  ark  and  victory  were  no 
less  inseparable,  than  they  and  their  sins.  Even  the  lewdest  men 
will  be  looking  for  favour  from  that  God,  whom  they  cared  not  to 
displease,  contrary  to  the  conscience  of  their  deservings.  Presump- 
tion doth  the  same  in  w  icked  men,  which  faith  doth  in  the  holiest. 
Those,  that  regarded  not  the  God  of  the  ark,  think  themselves  safe 
and  happy  in  the  ark  of  God  :  vain  men  are  transported  with  a  con- 
fidence in  the  outside  of  religion,  not  regarding  the  substance  and 
soul  of  it,  which  only  can  give  them  true  peace. 

But  rather  than  God  wilt  humour  superstition  in  Israelites,  he  will 
suffer  his  ow  n  ark  to  fall  into  the  hands  of  Philistines  :  rather  will  he 
seem  to  slacken  his  hand  of  protection,  than  he  will  be  thought  to 
have  his  hands  bound  by  a  formal  misconfidence.  The  slaughter 
of  the  Israelites  was  no  plague  to  this.  It  was  a  greater  plague  ra- 
ther, to  them  that  should  survive  and  behold  it. 

The  tw  o  sons  of  Eli,  which  had  helped  to  corrupt  their  brethren, 
die  by  the  hands  of  the  uneircumcised  ;  and  are  now  too  late  sepa- 
rated from  the  ark  of  God  by  Philistines,  which  should  have  been 
before  separated  by  their  father.  They  had  lived  formerly  to  bring 
God's  altar  into  contempt,  and  now  live  to  carry  his  ark  into  cap- 
tivity ;  and  at  last,  as  those,  that  had  made  up  the  measure  of  their 
wickedness,  are  slain  in  their  sin. 

Ill  news  doth  ever  either  run  or  fly.  The  man  of  Benjamin, 
which  ran  from  the  host,  hath  soon  filled  the  city  with  outcries, 
and  Eli's  ears  with  the  cry  of  the  city.  The  good  old  man,  after 
ninety  and  eight  years,  sits  in  the  gate,  as  one  that  never  thought 
himself  too  aged  to  do  God  service  ;  and  hears  the  news  of  Israel's 
discomfiture  and  his  son's  death,  though  w  ith  sorrow,  yet  with  pa- 
tience ;  but  when  the  messenger  tells  him  of  the  ark  of  God  taken, 
he  can  live  no  longer:  that  word  strikes  him  down  backward  from 
his  throne,  and  kills  him  in  the  fall :  no  sword  of  a  Philistine  could 
have  slain  him  more  painfully  ;  neither  know  I  whether  his  neck  or 
his  heart  were  first  broken. 

Oh  fearful  judgment,  that  ever  any  Israelite's  ear  could  tingle 
withal!  The  ark  lost!  What  good  man  would  wish  to  live  without 


268 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


God  ?  Who  can  choose  but  think  lie  hath  lived  too  long,  that  hath 
Dyer-lived  the  testimonies  of  God's  presence  with  his  Church  ? 

Yea,  the  very  daughter-in-law  of  Eli,  a  woman,  the  wife  of  a 
lewd  husband;  when  she  was  at  once  travailing  (upon  that  tidings), 
and  in  that  travail  dying  (to  make  up  the  full  sum  of  God's  judg- 
ment upon  that  wicked  house),  as  one  insensible  of  the  death  of 
her  father,  of  her  husband,  of  herself,  in  comparison  of  this  loss, 
calls  her  (then  unseasonable)  son  Ichabod ;  and  with  her  last 
breath,  says,  The  glory  is  departed  from  Israel ;  the  ark  is  taken. 
What  cares  she  for  a  posterity,  which  should  want  the  ark  ?  What 
cares  she  for  a  son  come  into  the  world  of  Israel,  when  God  was 
gone  from  it  ?  And  how  willingly  doth  she  depart  from  them,  from 
whom  God  was  departed !  Not  outward  magnificence,  not  state,  not 
wealth,  not  favour  of  the  mighty,  but  the  presence  of  God  in  his 
ordinances,  is  the  glory  of  Israel ;  the  subducing  whereof  is  a  greater 
judgment  than  destruction. 

Oh  Israel,  worse  now  than  no  people  !  a  thousand  times  more 
miserable  than  Philistines :  those  pagans  went  away  triumphing 
with  the  ark  of  God,  and  victory  ;  and  leave  the  remnants  of  the 
chosen  people  to  lament,  that  they  once  had  a  God. 

Oh  cruel  and  wicked  indulgence,  that  is  now  found  guilty  of  the 
death,  not  only  of  the  priests  and  people,  but  of  religion  !  Unjust 
mercy  can  never  end  in  less  than  blood  ;  and  it  were  well,  if  only 
the  body  should  have  cause  to  complain  of  that  kind  cruelty. 

I  Sum.  ii}  iii}  iv. 


i 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 

BOOK  XII. 


TO  THE  RIGHT  HONOURABLE,  MY  SINGULAR  GOOD  LORD, 

THE  LORD  HAY, 

J5ARON  OF  SALEY,  ONE  OF  HIS  MAJESTY'S  MOST  HONOURABLE 
PRIVY  COUNCIL. 


RIGHT  HONOURABLE  : 

ON  how  just  reason  these  my  Contemplations  go  forth  so  late 
after  their fell<m>s,it  were  needless  to  give  account  to  your  Lordship, 
in  whose  train  I  had  the  honour,  since  my  last,  to  pass  both  the  Sea. 
and  the  Tweed.  All  my  private  studies  have  gladly  vailed  to  the 
public  services  of  my  sovereign  master.  No  sooner  could  I  recover 
the  happiness  of  my  quiet  thoughts,  than  I  renewed  this  my  divine 
task ;  wherein  I  cannot  but  profess  to  place  so  much  contentment,  as 
that  I  wish  not  any  other  measure  of  my  life  than  it.  What  is  this, 
other  than  the  exaltation  of  Isaac's  delight,  to  walk  forth  into  the 
pleasant  fields  of  the  Scriptures,  and  to  meditate  of  nothing  under 
heaven  ?  Yea,  what  other  than  Jacob's  sweet  vision  of  angels,  climb- 
ing up  and  down  that  sacred  ladder,  which  God  hath  set  between 
heaven  and  earth  f  Yea,  to  rise  yet  higher,  what  other  than  an  imi- 
tation of  holy  Moses,  in  his  conversing  with  God  himself,  on  the 
Jloreb  of  both  Testaments?  And  if  I  may  call  your  Lordship  forth  a 
little  from  your  great  affairs  of  court  and  state,  to  bless  your  eyes 
with  this  prospect,  how  happy  shall  you  confess  this  change,  of  objects  ! 
and  how  unwillingly  shall  you  obtain  leave  of  your  thoughts,  tore- 
turn  unto  these  sublunary  employments  ! 

Our  last  discourse  left  God's  ark  amongst  the  Philistines ;  now  we 
return  to  see  what  it  doth  there,  and  to  fetch  it  thence  :  wherein  your 
Lordship  shall  find  the  revenges  of  God  never  so  deadly,  as  when  he 
gives  most  way  unto  men;  the  vain  confidence  of  wickedness  ending 
in  a  late  repentance ;  the  fearful  plagues  of  a  presumptuous  saueu 
ness  with  God,  not  prevented  with  the  honesty  of  good  intentions  ; 
the  mercy  of  God  accepting  the  services  of  an  humble  faithfulness  in 
a  meaner  dress.  From  thence  you  shall  see  the  dangerous  issue  of 
an  affected  innovation,  although  to  the  better ;  the  errors  of  credu- 
lity and  blind  affection  in  the  holiest  governors,  guilty  of  the  people's 
discontentment ;  the  stubborn  headiness  of  a  multitude  that  once 
finds  the  reins  slack  in  their  necks,  not  capable  of  any  pause,  but  their 
own  fall ;  the  untrusty  promises  of  a  fair  outside,  and  a  plausible 
entrance,  shutting  up  in,  a  woeful  disappointment.    What  do  I fore- 


270  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

stall  a  discourse  so  full  of  choice  f  Your  Lordship  shall  find  every 
line  useful;  and  shall  willingly  confess  that  the  story  of  God  can 
make  a  man  not  less  wise  than  good. 

Mine  humble  than/fulness  knows  not  how  to  express  itself  other- 
wise, than  in  these  kind  of  presents,  and  in  my  hearty  prayers  for 
the  increase  of  your  honour  and  happiness,  which  shall  never  be 
wanting  from 

Your  Lordship's  sincerely  and 

thankfully  devoted, 

JOSEPH  HALL. 


THE  ARK  AND  DAG  ON. 

If  men  did  not  mistake  God,  they  could  not  arise  to  such  height 
of  impiety.  The  acts  of  his  just  judgment  arc  imputed  to  impo- 
tence: that  God  Would  send  his  ark  captive  to  the  Philistines,  is  so 
construed  bv  them,  as  if  he  could  not  keep  it.  The  wife  of  Phi- 
neas  cried  out,  that  glory  was  departed  from  Israel;  the  Philistines 
dare  say  in  triumph,  that  glory  is  departed  from  the  God  of  Israel. 

The  ark  was  not  Israel's,  but  God's:  this  victory  reaches  higher 
than  to  men.  Dagon  had  never  so  great  a  (.lay,  so  many  sacrifices, 
as  now,  that  lie  seems  to  take  the  God  of  Israel  prisoner :  where 
should  the  captive  be  bestowed,  but  in  custody  of  the  victor  ?  It  is 
not  love,  but  insult,  that  lodges  the  ark  close  beside  Dagon. 
What  a  spectacle  was  this,  to  see  un circumcised  Philistines  laying 
their  profane  hands  upon  the  testimony  of  God's  presence  !  to  see 
the  glorious  mercy-seat  under  the  roof  of  an  idol  !  to  see  the  two 
cherubims  spreading  their  wings  under  a  false  god  ! 

Oh  the  deep  and  holy  wisdom  of  the  Almighty,  which  over- 
reaches all  the  finite  conceits  of  his  creatures;  who,  while  he  seems 
most  to  neglect  himself,  fetches  about  most  glory  to  his  own  name. 
He  winks  and  sits  still  on  purpose,  to  see  what  men  would  do,  and 
is  content  to  suffer  indignity  from  his  creature  for  a  time,  that  lie 
may  be  everlastingly  magnified  in  his  justice  and  power  :  that  ho- 
nour pleascth  God  and  men  best,  which  is  raised  out  of  contempt. 

The  ark  of  God  was  not  used  to  such  porters.  The  Philistines 
carry  it  unto  Ashdod,  that  the  victory  of  Dagon  may  be  more  glo- 
rious. What  pains  superstition  puts  men  unto,  for  the  triumph  of 
a  false  cause !  And  if  profane  Philistines  can  think  it  no  toil  to  carry 
the  ark  where  they  should  not,  what  a  shame  is  it  for  us,  if  we  do 
not  gladly  attend  it  where  we  should  !  I  low  justly  may  God's  truth 
scorn  the  imparity  of  our  zeal  ! 

If  the  Israelites  did  put  confidence  in  the  ark,  can  we  marvel  that 
the  Philistines  did  put  confidence  in  that  power,  which,  as  they 
thought,  had  conquered  the  ark  r  The  less  is  ever  subject  unto  the 
greater  :  whal  cuukl  they  now  think,  but  that  heaven  and  earth  were 


THE  ARK  AND  DAGON.  271 

theirs?  Who  shall  stand  out  against  them,  when  the  God  of  Israel 
hath  yielded  ?  Security  and  presumption  attend  ever  at  the  threshold 
of  ruin. 

God  will  let  them  sleep  in  this  confidence  ;  in  the  morning  they 
shall  find  how  vainly  they  have  dreamed.  Now  they  begin  to  find 
they  have  but  gloried  in  their  own  plague,  and  overthrown  nothing 
but  their  own  peace.  Dagon  hath  a  house:,  when  God  hath  but  a 
tabernacle :  it  is  no  measuring  of  religion  by  outward  glory. 
Into  this  house  the  proud  Philistines  come,  the  next  morning,,  to 
congratulate  unto  their  god,  so  great  a  captive,  such  divine  spoils; 
and  in  their  early  devotions,  to  fall  down  before  him,  under  whom 
the  God  of  Israel  was  fallen;  and  lo,  where  they  find  their  god, 
fallen  down  on  the  ground  upon  his  face,  before  whom  they  thought 
both  his  prisoner  and  theirs  :  their  god  is  forced  to  do  that,  which 
they  should  have  done  voluntarily  ;  although  God  cast  down  that 
dumb  rival  of  his  for  scorn,  not  for  adoration.  O  ye  foolish 
Philistines,  could  ve  think  that  the  same  house  could  hold  God 
and  Dagon  ?  Could  ye  think  a  senseless  stone  a  fit  companion 
and  guardian  for  the  livingGod  ?  Had  ye  laid  your  Dagon  upon 
his  face  prostrate  before  the  ark,  vet  would  not  God  have  endured 
the  indignity  of  such  a  lodging;  but  now  that  ye  presume  to  set 
up  your  carved  stone,  equal  to  his  cberubims,  go  read  your  folly 
in  the  floor  of  your  temple,  and  know  that  he,  which  cast  your  god 
so  low,  can  cast  you  lower. 

The  true  God  owes  a  shame  to  those,  which  will  be  making 
matches  betwixt  himself  and  Belial. 

But  this  perhaps  was  only  a  mischance,  or  a  neglect  of  attend- 
ance ;  lay  10  your  hands,  O  ye  Philistines,  and  raise  up  Dagon  into 
his  place;  It  is  a  miserable  god  that  needs  helping  up  :  had  ye 
not  been  more  senseless  than  that  stone,  how  could  you  choose 
but  ti link,  "  How  shall  he  raise  us  above  our  enemies,  that  cannot 
rise  alone  ?  How  shall  he  establish  us  in  the  station  of  our  peace, 
that  cannot  hold  his  own  foot?  If  Dagon  did  give  the  foil  unto 
the  God  of  Israel,  what  power  is  it,  that  hath  cast  him  upon  his 
face,  in  his  own  temple  ?,"  ,  It  is  just  with  God,  that  those  which 
want  grace  shall  want  wit  too  :  it  is  the  power  of  superstition,  to 
turn  men  into  those  stocks  and  stones  which  they  worship  :  They 
that  make  them,  are  like  unto  them. 

Doubtless,  this  first  fall  of  Dagon  was  kept  as  secret,  and  ex- 
cused as  well  as  it  might,  and  served  rather  for  astonishment  than 
conviction.  There  was  more  strangeness  than  horror  in  that  acci- 
dent ;  that  whereas  Dagon  had  wont  to  stand  and  the  Philistines 
fall  down,  now  Dagon  fell  down  and  the  Philistines  stood,  and 
must  become  the  patrons  of  their  own  god.  Their  god  worships 
them  upon  his  face,  and  craves  more  help  from  them,  than  ever 
he  could  give  :  but  if  their  sottishness  can  digest  thisj  all  is  well. 

Dagon  is  set  in  his  place  ;  and  now  those  hands  are  lift  up  to 
him,  which  helped  to  lift  him  up  ;  and  tliose  faces  are  prostrate 
unto  him,  before  whom  he  lay  prostrate.  Idolatry  and  superstition 
are  not  easily  put  out  of  countenance  ;  but  will  the  jealousy  of  the 


272  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

true  God  put  it  up  thus  ?  Shall  Dagon  escape  with  a  harmless  fall  ? 
Surely,  if  they  had  let  him  lie  still  upon  the  pavement,  perhaps 
that  insensible  statue  had  found  no  other  revenge  ;  but  now,  they 
will  be  advancing  it  to  the  rood-loft  again,  and  affront  God's  ark 
with  it,  the  event  will  shame  them,  and  let  them  know  how  much 
God  scorns  a  partner,  either  of  his  own  making  or  theirs. 

The  morning  is  fittest  for  devotion  ;  then  do  the  Philistines  flock 
to  the  temple  of  their  god.  What  a  shame  is  it  for  us  to  come 
late  to  ours  !  Although  not  so  much  piety  as  curiosity  did  now 
hasten  their  speed,  to  see  what  rest  their  Dagon  was  allowed  to  get 
in  his  own  roof;  and  now  behold  their  kind  god  is  come  to  meet 
them  in  the  way :  some  pieces  of  him  salute  their  eyes  upon  the 
threshold.  Dagon's  head  and  hands  over-run  their  fellows,  to  tell 
the  Philistines  how  much  they  were  mistaken  in  a  god. 

This  second  fall  breaks  the  idol  in  pieces,  and  threats  the  same 
confusion  to  the  worshippers  of  it.  Lasy  warnings  neglected  end 
ever  in  destruction. 

The  head  is  for  devising,  the  hand  for  execution  :  in  these  two 
powers  of  their  god,  did  the  Philistines  chiefly  trust ;  these  are 
therefore  laid  under  their  feet,  upon  the  threshold,  that  they  might 
afar  off  see  their  vanity,  and  that,  if  they  would,  they  might  set 
their  foot  on  that  best  piece  of  their  god,  whereon  their  heart 
was  set. 

There  was  nothing  wherein  that  idol  resembled  a  man,  but  in  his 
head  and  hands ;  the  rest  was  but  a  scaly  portraiture  of  a  fish ; 
God  would  therefore  separate  from  this  stone,  that  part  which  had 
mocked  man,  with  the  counterfeit  of  himself,  that  man  might  see 
what  an  unworthy  lump  he  had  matched  with  himself,  and  set  up 
above  himself.  The  just  quarrel  of  God  is  bent  upon  those  means 
and  that  parcel,  which  have  dared  to  rob  him  of  his  glory. 

How  can  the  Philistines  now  miss  the  sight  of  their  own  folly  ? 
How  can  they  be  but  enough  convicted  of  their  mad  idolatry,  to 
see  their  god  lie  broken  to  morsels,  under  their  feet ;  every  piece 
whereof  proclaims  the  power  of  him  that  brake  it,  and  the  stupi- 
dity of  those  that  adored  it  ?  Who  would  expect  any  other  issue 
of  this  act,  but  to  hear  the  Philistines  say,  "  We  now  see  how  su- 
perstition hath  blinded  us: — Dagon  is  no  god  for  us;  our  hearts 
shall  never  more  rest  upon  a  broken  statue  :  that  only  true  God, 
which  hath  beaten  ours,  shall  challenge  us  by  the  right  of  conquest." 
< — But  here  was  none  of  this ;  rather  a  further  degree  of  their  dotage 
follows  upon  this  palpable  conviction  :  they  cannot  yet  suspect 
that  god  whose  head  they  may  trample  upon ;  but,  instead  of  hating 
their  Dagon,  that  lay  broken  upon  their  threshold,  they  honour  the 
threshold,  on  which  Dagon  lay,  and  dare  not  set  their  foot  on  that 
place  which  was  hallowed  by  the  broken  head  and  hands  of  their 
deity.  Oh  the  obstinacy  of  idolatry  ;  which,  where  it  hath  got 
hold  of  the  heart,  knows  neither  to  blush  nor  yield,  but  rather  ga- 
thers strength  from  that  which  might  justly  confound  it! 

The  hand  of  the  Almighty,  which  moved  them  not  in  falling 
upon  their  god,  falls  now  nearer  them  upon  their  persons,  ana 


THE  ARK  AND  DAGON.  273 

strikes  them  in  their  bodies,  which  would  not  feel  themselves 
stricken  in  their  idol.  Pain  shall  humble  them  whom  shame  can- 
not. Those,  which  had  entertained  the  secret  thoughts  of  abomi- 
nable idolatry  within  them,  are  now  plagued  in  the  inwardest  and 
mosf  secret  part  of  their  bodies,  with  a  loathsome  disease  ;  and  now 
grow  weary  of  themselves,  instead  of  their  idolatry. 

I  do  not  hear  them  acknowledge  it  was  God's  hand  which  had 
stricken  Dagon  their  god,  till  now,  they  find  themselves  stricken. 
God's  judgments  are  the  rack  of  godless  men:  if  one  strain  make 
them  not  confess,  let  them  be  stretched  but  one  wrench  higher,  and 
they  cannot  be  silent.  The  just  avenger  of  sin  will  not  lose  the 
glory  of  his  executions,  but  will  have  men  know  from  whom  they 
smart. 

The  emerods  were  not  a  disease  beyond  the  compass  of  natural 
causes  ;  neither  was  it  hard  for  the  wiser  sort,  to  give  a  reason  of 
their  complaint,  yet  they  ascribe  it  to  the  hand  of  God.  The 
knowledge  and  operation  of  secondary  causes  should  be  no  pre- 
judice to  the  first :  they  are  worse  than  the  Philistines,  who, 
when  they  see  the  means,  do  not  acknowledge  the  first  Mover  ; 
whose  active  and  just  power  is  no  less  seen  in  employing  ordinary 
agents,  than  in  raising  up  extraordinary;  neither  doth  he  less  smite 
by  a  common  fever,  than  a  revenging  angel. 

They  judge  right  of  the  cause ;  what  do  they  resolve  for  the 
cure  ?  Let  not  the  ark  of  the  God  of  Israel  abide  with  us ;  where 
they  should  have  said,  "  Let  us  cast  out  Dagon,  that  we  may  pa- 
cify and  retain  the  God  of  Israel."  They  determine  to  thrust  out 
the  ark  of  God,  that  they  might  peaceably  enjoy  themselves  and 
Dagon.  Wicked  men  arc  upon  all  occasions  glad  to  be  rid  of  God, 
but  they  can  with  no  patience  endure  to  part  with  their  sins  ;  and 
while  they  are  weary  of  the  hand  that  punisheth  them,  they  hold 
fast  the  cause  of  their  punishment. 

Their  first  and  only  care  is  to  put  away  him,  who,  as  lie  hath 
corrected,  so  can  ease  them.  Folly  is  never  separated  from  wick- 
edness. 

Their  heart  told  them,  that  they  had  no  right  to  the  ark.  A  coun- 
cil is  called  of  their  princes  and  priests.  If  they  had  resolved  to 
send  it  home,  they  had  done  wisely ;  now  they  do  not  carry  it  away, 
but  they  carry  it  about  from  Ebenezer  to  Ashdod,  from  Ashdod  to 
Gath,  from  Gath  to  Ekron.  Their  stomach  was  greater  than  their 
conscience.  The  ark  was  too  sore  for  them,  yet  it  was  too  good 
for  Israel ;  and  they  wiJl  rather  die  than  make  Israel  happy. 

Their  conceit,  that  the  change  of  air  could  appease  the  ark, 
God  useth  to  his  own  advantage  ;  for  by  this  means  his  power  is 
known,  and  his  judgment  spread  over  all  the  country  of  the  Phi- 
listines. What  do  these  men  now,  but  send  the  plague  of  God  to 
their  fellows  ?  The  justice  of  God  can  make  the  sins  of  men  their 
mutual  executioners.  It  is  the  fashion  of  wicked  men,  to  draw 
their  neighbours  into  the  partnership  of  their  condemnation. 

Wheresoever  the  ark  goes,  there  is  destruction.    The  best  of 

VOL.  I.  T 


S74  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

God's  ordinances,  if  they  be  not  proper  to  us,  are  deadly.  The 
Israelites  did  not  more  shout  for  joy  when  they  saw  the  ark  come 
to  them,  than  the  Ekronites  cry  out  for  grief  to  see  it  brought 
amongst  them :  spiritual  things  are  either  sovereign  or  hurtful,  ac- 
cording to  the  disposition  of  the  receivers.  The  ark  doth  either 
save  or  kill,  as  it  is  entertained. 

At  last,  when  the  Philistines  are  well  weary  of  pain  and  death, 
they  are  glad  to  be  quit  of  their  sin  :  the  voice  of  the  princes  and 
people  is  changed  to  the  better  ;  Send  away  the  ark  of  the  God  of 
Jsraely  and  let  it  return  to  his  own  place.  God  knows  how  to  bring 
the  stubbornest  enemy  upon  his  knees  ;  and  makes  him  do  that  out 
of  fear,  which  his  best  child  would  do  out  of  love  and  duty. 

How  miserable  was  the  estate  of  these  Philistines  !  Every  man 
was  either  dead,  or  sick  :  those  that  were  left  living,  through  their 
extremity  of  pain  envied  the  dead  ;  and  the  cry  of  their  whole 
cities  went  up  to  heaven.  It  is  happy  that  God  hath  such  store  of 
plagues  and  thunderbolts  for  the  wicked :  if  he  had  not  a  fire  of 
judgment,  wherewith  the  iron  hearts  of  men  might  be  made  flex- 
ible, he  would  want  obedience,  and  the  world  peace.    1  Sam.  v. 

THE  ARK'S  REVENGE  AND  RETURN. 

It  had  wont  to  be  a  sure  rule,  "  Wheresoever  God  is  among  men, 
there  is  the  Church  :"  here  only  it  failed.  The  testimony  of  God's 
presence  was  many  months  amongst  the  Philistines ;  for  a  punish- 
ment to  his  own  people  whom  he  left ;  for  a  cui'se  to  those  fo- 
reigners which  entertained  it. 

Israel  was  seven  months  without  God.  How  do  we  think  faith- 
ful Samuel  took  this  absence  ?  How  desolate  and  forlorn  did  the 
tabernacle  of  God  look,  without  the  ark  !  There  were  still  the  al- 
tars of  God  ;  his  priests,  Levitcs,  tables,  veils,  censers,  with  all  the 
legal  accoutrements.  These  without  the  ark,  were  as  the  sun  with- 
out light,  in  the  midst  of  an  eclipse.  If  all  these  had  been  taken 
away,  and  only  the  ark  had  been  remaining,  the  loss  had  been  no- 
thing to  this,  that  the  ark  should  be  gone  and  they  left ;  for  what 
are  all  these  without  God,  and  how  all-sufficient  is  God  without 
these ! 

There  are  times  wherein  God  withdraws  himself  from  his  Church, 
and  seems  to  leave  her  without  comfort,  without  protection. 
Sometimes  we  shall  find  Israel  taken  from  the  ark  ;  otherwhiles  the 
ark  is  taken  from  Israel :  in  either,  there  is  a  separation  betwixt 
the  ark  and  Israel :  heavy  times  to  every  true  Israelite,  yet  such  as 
whose  example  may  relieve  us  in  our  desertions. 

Still  was  this  people,  Israel ;  the  seed  of  him,  that  would  not  be 
left  of  God  without  a  blessing  ;  and  therefore  without  the  testi- 
mony of  his  presence,  was  God  present  with  them  :  it  were  wide 
with  the  faithful,  if  God  were  not  oftentimes  with  them,  when  there 
is  no  witness  of  his  presence. 

One  act  was  a  mutual  penance  to  the  Israelites  and  Philis- 
tines ;  I  know  not  to  whether  more.    Israel  grieved  for  the  loss  of 


THE  ARK's  REVENGE  AND  RETURN. 


275 


that,  whose  presence  grieved  the  Philistines  ;  their  pain  was  there- 
fore no  other  than  voluntary. 

It  is  strange  that  the  Philistines  would  endure  seven  months'' 
smart  with  the  ark,  since  they  saw  that  the  presence  of  the  pri- 
soner would  not  requite,  no  nor  mitigate  to  them,  one  hour's  mi- 
sery :  foolish  men  will  be  struggling  with  God,  till  they  be  utterly 
either  breathless  or  impotent.  Their  hope  was,  that  time  might 
abate  displeasure,  even  while  they  persisted  to  offend  :  the  false 
hopes  of  worldly  men  cost  them  dear  ;  they  could  not  be  so  miser- 
able, if  their  own  hearts  did  not  deceive  them,  with  mis-expecta- 
tions of  impossible  favour. 

In  matters  that  concern  a  God,  who  is  so  fit  to  be  consulted  with, 
as  the  priests  ?  The  princes  of  the  Philistines  had  before  given 
their  voices  ;  yet  nothing  is  determined,  nothing  is  done,  without 
the  direction  and  assent  of  those  whom  they  accounted  sacred.  Na- 
ture itself  sends  us  in  divine  things,  to  those  persons  whose  calling 
is  divine.  It  is  either  distrust,  or  presumption,  or  contempt,  that 
carries  us  our  own  ways  in  spiritual  matters,  without  advising  with 
them  whose  lips  God  hath  appointed  to  preserve  knowledge.  There 
cannot  but  arise  many  difficulties  in  us  about  the  ark  of  God  : 
whom  should  we  consult  with,  but  those  which  have  the  tongue  of 
the  learned  ? 

Doubtless,  this  question  of  the  ark  did  abide  much  debating. 
There  wanted  not  fair  probabilities  on  both  sides.  A  wise  Philis- 
tine might  well  plead,  "  If  God  had  either  so  great  care  of  the 
ark,  or  power  to  retain  it,  how  is  it  become  ours  ?"  A  wiser  than 
he  would  reply,  "If  the  God  of  Israel  had  wanted  either  care  or 
power,  Dagon  and  we  had  been  still  whole  :  why  do  we  thus  groan 
and  die,  all  that  are  but  within  the  air  of  the  ark,  if  a  divine  hand 
do  not  attend  it  ?"  Their  smart  pleads  enough  for  the  dismission 
of  the  ark. 

The  next  demand  of  their  priests  and  soothsayers,  is,  how  it 
should  be  sent  home.  Affliction  had  made  them  so  wise  as  to 
know,  that  every  fashion  of  parting  with  the  ark  would  not  satisfy 
the  owner.  Oftentimes  the  circumstance  of  an  action  mars  the 
substance.  In  divine  matters,  we  must  not  only  look,  that  the  body 
of  our  service  be  sound,  but  that  the  clothes  be  fit. 

Nothing  hinders,  but  that  sometimes  good  advice  may  fall  from 
the  mouth  of  wicked  men.  These  superstitious  priests  can  coun- 
sel them,  not  to  send  away  the  ark  of  God  empty,  but  to  give  it  a 
sin-offering.  They  had  not  lived  so  far  from  the  smoke  of  the 
Jewish  altars,  but  that  they  knew  God  was  accustomed  to  manifold 
oblations,  and  chiefly  to  those  of  expiation.  No  Israelite  could 
have  said  better.  Superstition  is  the  ape  of  true  devotion  ;  and  if 
we  look  not  to  the  ground  of  both,  many  times  it  is  hard  by  the  very 
outward  acts  to  distinguish  them. 

Nature  itself  teacheth  us,  that  God  loves  a  full  hand.  He,  that 
hath  been  so  bountiful  to  us  as  to  give  us  all,  looks  for  a  return  of 
some  offering  from  us :  if  we  present  him  with  nothing  but  our  sins, 
how  can  we  look  to  be  accepted?    Th«  sacrifices  under  the  Gos. 


276 


contemplations. 


pel  are  spiritual ;  with  these  must  Ave  come  into  the  presence  of 
God,  if  we  desire  to  carry  away  remission  and  favour. 

The  Philistines  knew  well,  that  it  were  bootless  for  them  to  of- 
fer what  they  listed  :  their  next  suit  is  to  be  directed  in  the  matter 
of  their  oblation.  Pagans  can  teach  us  how  unsafe  it  is  to  walk  in 
the  ways  of  religion  without  a  guide  ;  yet  here  their  best  teachers 
can  but  guess  at  their  duty,  and  must  devise  for  the  people,  that 
which  the  people  durst  not  impose  upon  themselves :  the  golden 
emerods  and  mice  were  but  conjectural  prescripts :  with  what  secu- 
rit}-  may  we  consult  with  them,  which  have  their  directions  from 
the  mouth  and  hand  of  the  Almighty! 

God  struck  the  Philistines  at  once,  in  their  god,  in  their  bodies, 
in  their  land:  in  their  god,  by  his  ruining  and  dismembering ;  in 
their  bodies,  by  the  emerods;  in  their  land,  by  the  mice:  that 
base  vermin  did  God  send  among  them  on  purpose  to  shame  their 
Dagon  and  them,  that  they  might  see  how  unable  their  god  was 
(which  they  thought  the  victor  of  the  ark)  to  subdue  the  least 
mouse,  which  the  true  God  did  create,  and  command  to  plague 
them. 

This  plague  upon  their  fields  began  together  with  that  upon 
their  bodies:  it  was  mentioned,  not  complained  of,  till  they  think 
of  dismissing  the  ark.  Greater  crosses  do  commonly  swallow  up 
the  less  :  at  least,  lesser  evils  are  either  silent  or  unheard,  while  the 
ear  is  filled  with  the  clamour  of  greater. 

Their  very  princes  were  punished  with  the  mice,  as  well  as  with 
the  emerods :  God  knows  no  persons  in  the  execution  of  judg- 
ments :  the  least  and  meanest  of  all  God's  creatures  is  sufficient  to 
be  the  revenger  of  his  Creator. 

God  sent  them  mice  and  emerods  of  flesh  and  blood :  they  re- 
turn him  both  these  of  gold,  to  imply,  both,  that  these  judgments 
came  out  from  God  and  that  they  did  gladly  give  him  the  glory  of 
that  whereof  he  gave  them  pain  and  sorrow,  and  that  they  would 
willingly  buy  off  their  pain  with  the  best  of  their  substance  :  the 
proportion  betwixt  the  complaint  and  satisfaction  is  more  precious 
to  him  than  the  metal.  There  was  a  public  confession  in  this  re- 
semblance, which  is  so  pleasing  unto  God,  that  he  rewards  it,  even 
in  wicked  men,  with  a  relaxation  of  outward  punishment. 

The  number  was  no  less  significant,  than  the  form  :  five  golden 
emerods  and  mice,  for  the  five  princes  and  divisions  of  Philistines. 
As  God  made  no  difference  in  punishing,  so  they  make  none  in 
their  oblation :  the  people  are  comprised  in  them,  in  whom  they 
are  united,  their  several  princes  :  they  were  one  with  their  prince, 
their  offering  is  one  with  his  ;  as  they  were  ringleaders  in  their  sin, 
go  they  must  be  in  the  satisfaction.  In  a  multitude  it  is  ever  seen, 
as  in  a  beast,  that  the  body  follows  the  head.  Of  all  others,  great 
men  had  need  to  look  to  their  ways  ;  it  is  in  them,  as  in  figures, 
one  stands  for  a  thousand.  One  offering  serves  not  all ;  there  must 
be  five,  according  to  the  five  heads  of  the  offence.  Generalities 
will  not  content  God  ;  every  man  must  make  his  several  peace,  if 
not  in  himself,  yet  in  hi*  head.    Nature  taught  them  a  shadow  of 


THE  ARK*S  REVENGE  AND  RETURN.  277 

that,  the  substance  arid  perfection  whereof  is  taught  us  by  the  grace 
of  the  Gospel.  Every  soul  must  satisfy  God  ;  if  not  in  itself,  yet 
in  him,  in  whom  we  are  both  one  and  absolute.  We  are  the  body, 
whereof  Christ  is  the  head  :  our  sin  is  in  ourselves  ;  our  satisfac- 
tion must  be  in  him. 

Samuel  himself  could  not  have  spoken  more  divinely,  than  these 
priests  of  Dagon.  They  do  not  only  talk  of  giving  glory  to  the 
God  of  Israel,  but  fall  into  a  holy  and  grave  expostulation  ;  Where- 
fore then  should  ye  harden  your  hearts,  as  the  Egyptians  and  Pha- 
raoh hardened  their  hearts,  when  he  wrought  wonderfully  amongst 
them  ?  S(c.  They  confess  a  supereminent  and  revenging  hand  of 
God  over  their  gods  ;  they  parallel  their  plagues  with  the  Egyp- 
tian ;  they  make  use  of  Pharaoh's  sin  and  judgment :  what  could 
be  better  said  ?  All  religions  have  afforded  them  that  could  speak 
well. 

These  good  words  left  them  still  both  Philistines  and  supersti- 
tious. How  should  men  be  hypocrites,  if  they  had  not  good 
tongues  ?  yet,  as  wickedness  can  hardly  hide  itself,  these  holy 
speeches  are  not  without  a  tincture  of  that  idolatry,  wherewith  the 
heart  was  infected  ;  for  they  profess  care,  not  only  of  the  persons 
and  lands  of  the  Philistines,  but  of  their  gods  :  That  he  may  take 
his  hand  from  you,  and  from  your  gods.  Who  would  think  that 
wisdom  and  folly  could  lodge  so  near  together  ?  that  the  same  men 
should  have  care  both  of  the  glory  of  the  true  God,  and  preserva- 
tion of  the  false  ?  that  they  should  be  so  vain,  as  to  take  thought 
for  those  gods  winch  they  granted  to  be  obnoxious  unto  a  higher 
Deity  ?  Oft-times  even  one  word  bewrayeth  a  whole  pack  of 
falsehood  ;  and  though  superstition  be  a  cleanly  counterfeit,  yet 
some  one  slip  of  the  tongue  discovers  it;  as  we  say  of  devils, 
which,  though  they  put  on  fair  forms,  yet  are  they  known  by  their 
cloven  feet. 

What  other  warrant  these  superstitious  priests  had  for  the  main 
substance  of  their  advice,  1  know  not ;  sure  I  am,  the  probability 
of  the  event  was  fair.  That  two  kine  never  used  to  any  yoke, 
should  run  from  their  calves,  which  were  newly  shut  up  from 
them,  to  draw  the  ark  home  into  a  contrary  way,  must  needs 
argue  a  hand  above  nature.  "What  else  should  overrule  brute 
creatures  to  prefer  a  forced  carriage  unto  a  natural  burden  ? 
what  should  carry  them  from  their  own  home,  towards  the  home 
of  the  ark  ?  what  else  should  guide  an  untamed  and  untaught 
team,  in  as  right  a  path  toward  Israel,  as  their  teachers  could  have 
gone?  what  else  could  make  very  beasts  more  wise  than  their  mas- 
ters ?  There  is  a  special  providence  of  God,  in  the  very  motions 
of  brute  creatures.  Neither  the  Philistines  nor  Israel  saw  aught 
that  drove  them  ;  yet  they  saw  them  so  run,  as  those  that  were  led 
by  the  divine  conduct.  The  reasonless  creatures  also  do  the  will  of 
their  Maker:  every  act  that  is  done,  either  by  them,  or  to  them, 
makes  up  the  decree  of  the  Almighty  ;  and  if  in  extraordinary 
actions  and  events  his  hand  it  more  visible,  yet  it  is  no  less  certain- 
ly  present  in  the  common. 


278  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

Little  did  the  Israelites  of  Bethshemesh  look  for  such  a  sight, 
while  they  were  reaping  their  wheat  in  the  valley,  as  to  see  the  ark 
of  God  come  running  to  them  without  a  convoy  ;  neither  can  it  be 
said,  whether  they  were  more  affected  with  joy,  or  with  astonish- 
ment ;  with  joy  at  the  presence  of  the  ark,  with  astonishment  at  the 
miracle  of  the  transportation.  Don  n  went  their  sickles  ;  and  now 
every  man  runs  to  reap  the  comfort  of  this  better  harvest,  to  meet 
that  bread  of  angels,  to  salute  those  cherubims,  to  welcome  that 
God  whose  absence  had  been  their  death :  but,  as  it  is  hard  not  to 
overjoy  in  a  sudden  prosperity,  and  to  use  happiness  is  no  less  dif- 
ficult than  to  forbear  it,  these  glad  Israelites  cannot  see  but  they 
must  gaze ;  they  cannot  gaze  on  the  glorious  outside,  but  thev 
must  be  (whether  out  of  rude  jollity,  or  curiosity,  or  suspicion  of 
the  purloining  some  of  those  sacred  implements)  prving  into  the 
secrets  of  God's  ark  :  nature  is  too  subject  to  extremities,  and  is 
ever  either  too  dull  in  want,  or  wanton  in  fruition.  It  is  no  easy 
matter  to  keep  a  mean,  whether  in  good  or  evil. 

Bethshemesh  was  a  city  of  priests  :  they  should  have  known  bet- 
ter how  to  demean  themselves  towards  the  ark  :  this  privilege  dou- 
bled their  offence.  There  was  no  malice  in  this  curious  inquisi- 
tion :  the  same  eves,  that  looked  into  the  ark,  looked  also  up  to 
heaven  in  their  offerings  ;  and  the  same  hands,  that  touched  it,  of- 
fered sacrifice  to  the  God  that  brought  it. 

Who  could  expect  any  thing  now  but  acceptation?  Who  could 
suspect  any  danger  ?  It  is  not  a  following  act  of  devotion,  that  can 
make  amends  for  a  former  sin  :  there  was  a  death  owing  them, 
immediately  upon  their  offence ;  God  will  take  his  own  time  for 
the  execution  ;  in  the  mean  while,  they  may  sacrifice,  but  they 
cannot  satisfy  ;  they  cannot  escape. 

The  kine  are  sacrificed  ;  the  cart  burns  them  that  drew  it :  here 
was  an  offering  of  praise,  when  they  had  more  need  of  a  trespass 
offering  :  many  a  heart  is  lifted  up  in  a  conceit  of  joy,  when  it 
hath  just  cause  of  humiliation. 

God  lets  them  alone  with  their  sacrifice,  but  when  that  is  done, 
he  comes  over  them  with  a  back-reckoning  for  their  sin  :  fifty 
thousand  and  seventy  Israelites  are  struck  dead  for  this  irreverence 
to  the  ark  :  a  woeful  welcome  for  the  ark  of  God  into  the  borders 
of  Israel.  It  killed  them  for  looking  into  it,  who  thought  it  their 
life  to  see  it :  it  dealt  blows  and  death  on  both  hands ;  to  Philis- 
tines, to  Israelites  ;  to  both  of  them  for  profaning  it,  the  one  with 
their  idol,  the  other  with  their  eyes.  It  is  a  fearful  thing  to  use 
the  holy  ordinances  of  God  with  an  irreverent  boldness.  Fear  and 
trembling  become  us  in  our  access  to  the  majesty  of  the  Al- 
mighty. 

Neither  was  there  more  state  than  secrecy  in  God's  ark  :  some 
things  the  wisdom  of  God  desh'es  to  conceal.  The  irreverence  of 
the  Israelites  was  no  more  faulty  than  their  curiosity  ;  Secret  things 
to  God ;  things  revealed  to  as  and  to  ou;  children.         1  Sam.  ii. 


2l§ 


THE  REMOVAL  OF  THE  ARK. 

I  hear  of  the  Bethshemites'  lamentation,  I  hear  not  of  their  repen- 
tance :  they  complain  of  their  smart,  they  complain  not  of  their 
sin  ;  and,  for  aught  I  can  perceive,  speak,  as  if  God  were  curious, 
rather  than  they  faulty  ;  Who  is  able  to  stand  before  this  holy  Lord 
God ;  and  to  whom  shall  he  go from  its  ?  As  if  none  could  please 
that  God  which  misliked  them.  It  is  the  fashion  of  natural  men,  to 
justify  themselves  in  their  own  courses ;  if  they  cannot  charge  any 
earthly  thing  with  the  blame  of  tlleir  suffering,  they  will  cast  it 
upon  Heaven  :  that  a  man  pleads  himself  guilty  of  his  own  wrong, 
is  no  common  work  of  God's  Spirit. 

Bethshemesh  bordered  too  near  upon  the  Philistines.  If  these 
men  thought  the  very  presence  of  the  ark  hurtful,  why  do  they  send 
to  their  neighbours  of  Kirjath-jearim,  that  they  might  make  them- 
selves miserable  ?  Where  there  is  a  misconceit  of  God,  it  is  no 
marvel  if  there  be  a  defect  of  charity. 

How  cunningly  do  they  send  their  message  to  their  neighbours  ! 
They  do  not  say,  "  The  ark  of  God  is  come  to  us  of  its  own  ac- 
cord," lest  the  men  of  Kirjath-jearim  should  reply,  "  It  is  come 
to  you,  let  it  stay  with  you :"  they  say  only,  "  The  Philistines 
have  brought  it."  They  tell  of  the  presence  of  the  ark ;  they  do 
not  tell  of  the  success,  lest  the  example  of  their  judgment  should 
have  discouraged  the  forwardness  of  their  relief :  and  after  all, 
the  offer  was  plausible;  Come  ye  down,  and  take  it  up  to  you  ;  as 
if  the  honour  had  been  too  great  for  themselves  ;  as  if  their  mo- 
desty had  been  such,  that  they  would  not  forestall  an  I  engross  hap- 
piness from  the  rest  of  Israel.  It  is  no  boot  to  teach  nature  how 
to  tell  her  own  tale  :  smart  and  danger  will  make  a  man  witty.  He 
is  rarely  constant,  that  will  not  dissemble  for  case.  It  is  good  to  be 
suspicious  of  the  evasions  of  those,  which  would  put  off  misery. 

Those  of  Bethshemesh  were  not  more  crafty,  than  these  of  Kir- 
jath-jearim (which  was  the  ground  of  their  boldness)  faithful.  So 
many  thousand  Bethshemites  could  not  be  dead,  and  no  part  of  the 
rumour  fly  to  them  :  they  heard  how  thick,  not  only  the  Philis- 
tines, but  the  bordering  Israelites  fell  down  dead  before  the  ark; 
yet  they  durst  adventure  to  come  and  fetch  it,  even  from  amongst 
the  carcases  of  their  brethren. 

They  had  been  formerly  acquainted  with  the  ark  ;  they  knew  it 
was  holy  ;  it  could  not  be  changeable  ;  and  therefore  they  well 
conceived  this  slaughter  to  arise  from  the  unholiness  of  men,  not 
from  the  rigour  of  God  ;  and  thereupon  can  seek  comfort  in  that, 
which  others  found  deadly  :  God's  children  cannot  by  any  means 
be  discouraged  from  their  honour  and  love  to  his  ordinances :  if 
they  see  thousands  struck  down  to  Hell  by  the  sceptre  of  God's 
kingdom,  yet  they  will  kiss  it  upon  their  knees  ;  and  if  their  Sa- 
viour be  a  rock  of  offence,  and  the  occasion  of  the  fall  of  millions 
in  Israel,  they  can  love  him  no  less :  they  can  warm  them  at  the 


280 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


fire,  wherewith  they  see  others  burned;  they  can  feed  temperately 
of  that  ,  whereof  others  have  surfeited  to  death. 

Bethshemesh  was  a  city  of  priests  and  Levites :  Kirjath-jearim 
a  city  of  Judah,  where  we  hear  but  of  one  Levite,  Abinadab  ;  yet 
this  city  was  more  zealous  of  God,  more  reverent  and  consciona- 
ble  in  the  entertainment  of  the  ark,  than  the  other.  We  heard  of 
the  taking  down  of  the  ark  by  the  Bethshemites,  when  it  came  mi-, 
raculonsly  to  them;  we  do  not  hear  of  any  man  sanctified  for  the 
attendance  of  it,  as  was  done  in  this  second  lodging  of  the  ark  ; 
grace  is  not  tied  either  to  number  or  means.  It  is  in  spiritual  mat- 
ters as  in  the  estate  ;  small  helps  with  good  thrift  enrich  us,  when 
great  patrimonies  lose  themselves  in  the  neglect, 

Shifoh  was  wont  to  be  the  place,  which  was  honoured  with  the 
presence  of  the  ark.  Ever  since  the  wickedness  of  Eli's  sons,  that 
was  forlorn  and  desolate ;  and  now  Kirjath-jearim  succeeds  into 
this  privilege.  It  did  not  stand  with  the  royal  liberty  of  God,  no 
not  under  the  Law,  to  tie  himself  unto  places  and  persons.  Unwor- 
thiness  was  ever  a  sufficient  cause  of  exchange.  It  was  not  yet  his 
time  to  stir  from  the  Jews,  yet  he  removed  from  one  province  to  ano- 
ther :  less  reason  have  we  to  think,  that  so  God  will  reside  amongst 
vis,  that  none  of  our  provocations  can  drive  him  from  us. 

Israel,  which  had  found  the  misery  of  God's  absence,  is  now  re- 
solved into  tears  of  contrition  and  thankfulness  upon  his  return. 
There  is  no  mention  of  their  lamenting  after  the  Lord,  while  he 
was  gone  ;  but  when  he  was  returned,  and  settled  in  Kirjath-jear- 
im. The  mercies  of  God  draw  more  tears  from  his  children,  than 
his  judgments  do  from  his  enemies.  There  is  no  better  sign  of 
good  nature  or  grace,  than  to  be  won  to  repentance  with  kindness. 
Notto  think  of  God,  exceptwe  be  beaten  unto  it,  is  servile:  because 
God  was  come  again  to  Israel,  therefore  Israel  is  returned  to  God  : 
if  God  had  not  come  first,  they  had  never  come  :  if  he  that  came 
to  them  had  not  made  them  come  to  him,  they  had  been  ever  part- 
ed. They  were  cloyed  with  God,  while  he  was  perpetually  resi- 
dent with  them  ;  now  that  his  absence  had  made  him  dainty,  they 
cleave  to  him  fervently  and  penitently  in  his  return :  this  was  it 
that  God  meant  in  his  departure,  a  better  welcome  at  his  coming 
back. 

I  heard  no  news  of  Samuel  all  this  while  the  ark  was  gone  ;  now 
when  the  ark  is  returned  and  placed  in  Kirjath-jearim,  I  hear  him 
treat  with  the  people.  It  is  not  like  he  was  silent  in  this  sad  de- 
sertion of  God  :  but  now  he  takes  full  advantage  of  the  professed 
contrition  of  Israel,  to  deal  with  them  effectually,  for  their  perfect 
conversion  unto  God.  It  is  great  wisdom  in  spiritual  matters,  to 
take  occasion  by  the  forelock,  and  to  strike  while  the  iron  is  hot : 
we  may  beat  long  enough  at  the  door,  but  till  God  have  opened,  it 
is  no  going  in ;  and  when  he  hath  opened,  it  is  no  delaying  to 
enter. 

The  trial  of  sincerity  is  the  abandoning  of  our  wonted  sins. 
This  Samuel  urgeth  ;  If  ye  be  come  again  unto  the  Lord  with  all 
your  heart,  put  away  the  strange  gods  from  among  you,  and  Ash- 


THE  REMOVAL  OF  THE  ARK.  281 

taroth.  In  vain  had  it  been  to  profess  repentance,  whilst  they  con- 
tinued in  idolatry.  God  will  never  acknowledge  any  convert  that 
stays  in  a  known  sin.  Graces  and  virtues  are  so  linked  together, 
that  he  which  hath  one  hath  all :  the  partial  conversion  of  men  unto 
God  is  but  hateful  hypocrisy. 

How  happily  effectual  is  a  word  spoken  in  season  !  Samuel's 
exhortation  wrought  upon  the  hearts  of  Israel,  and  fetched  water 
out  of  their  eyes,  suits  and,  confessions  and  vows  out  of  their 
hps,  and  their  false  gods  out  of— their  hands  ;  yet  it  was  not  merely 
remorse,  but  fear  also,  that  moved  Israel  to  this  humble  sub- 
mission. 

The  Philistines  stood  over  them  still,  and  threatened  them  with 
new  assaults ;  the  memory  of  their  late  slaughter  and  spoil  was  yet 
fresh  in  their  minds  :  sorrow  for  the  evils  past  and  fear  of  the  future 
fetched  them  down  upon  their  knees.  It  is  not  more  necessary  for 
men  to  be  cheered  with  hopes,  than  to  be  awed  with  dangers:  where 
God  intends  the  humiliation  of  his  servants,  there  shall  not  want 
means  of  their  dejection  :  it  was  happy  for  Israel,  that  they  had  an 
enemy. 

Is  it  possible  that  the  Philistines,  after  those  deadly  plagues, 
which  they  sustained  from  the  God  of  Israel,  should  think  of  in- 
vading Israel  ?  Those  that  were  so  mated  with  the  presence  of  the 
ark,  that  they  never  thought  themselves  safe  till  it  was  out  of  sight, 
do  they  now  dare  to  thrust  themselves  upon  the  new  revenge  of  the 
ark  ?  It  slew  them  while  they  thought  to  honour  it,  and  do  they 
think  to  escape  while  they  resist  it  ?  It  slew  them  in  their  own 
coasts,  and  do  they  come  to  it  to  seek  death  ?  Yet  behold,  no  sooner 
do  the  Philistines  hear  that  the  Israelites  are  gathered  to  Mizpeh, 
but  the  princes  of  the  Philistines  gather  themselves  against  them. 
No  warnings  will  serve  obdurate  hearts.  Wicked  men  are  even 
ambitious  of  destruction  :  judgments  need  not  to  go  find  them 
out ;  they  run  to  meet  their  bane. 

The  Philistines  come  up,  and  the  Israelites  fear  >  they,  that  had 
not  the  wit  to  fear,  whilst  they  were  not  friends  with  God,  have  not 
now  the  grace  of  fearlessness,  when  they  were  reconciled  to  God  : 
boldness  and  fear  are  commonly  misplaced  in  the  best  hearts:  when 
we  should  tremble,  we'are  confident ;  and  when  we  should  be  as- 
sured, we  tremble.  Why  should  Israel  have  feared,  since  they  had 
made  their  peace  with  the  God  of  Hosts  ?  Nothing  should  affright 
those,  which  are  upright  with  God. 

The  peace,  which  Israel  had  made  with  God,  was  true,  but  ten- 
der. They  durst  not  trust  their  own  innocency,  so  much  as  the 
prayers  of  Samuel ;  Cease  not  to  cry  to  the  Lord  our  God  for  us. 
In  temporal  things,  nothing  hinders  but  we  may  fare  better  for 
otlier  men's  faith,  than  for  our  own.  It  is  no  small  happiness,  to  be 
interested  in  them  which  are  favourites  in  the  court  of  Heaven  :  one 
faithful  man  in  these  occasions  is  more  worth,  than  millions  of  the 
wavering  and  uncertain. 

A  good  heart  is  easily  won  to  devotion.  Samuel  cries,  and  sa- 
criiiceth  to  God  ;  he  had  done  so,  though  they  had  entreated  his 


282 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


silence,  yea  his  forbearance.  While  he  is  offering,  the  Philistines 
fight  with  Israel,  and  God  fights  with  the  Philistines ;  The  Lord 
thundered  with  a  great  thunder  that  day  upon  the  Philistines,  and 
scattered  them.  Samuel  fought  more  upon  his  knees,  than  all  Is- 
rael did  besides.  The  voice  of  God  answered  the  voice  of  Samuel, 
and  speaks  confusion  and  death  to  the  Philistines.  How  were  the 
proud  Philistines  dead  with  fear,  ere  they  died,  to  hear  the  fearful 
thunder-claps  of  an  angry  God  against  them  !  to  see,  that  heaven 
itself  fought  against  them  !  He,  that  slew  them  secretly  in  the  re- 
venges of  his  ark,  now  kills  them  with  open  horror  in  the  fields. 
If  presumption  did  not  make  wicked  men  mad,  they  would  never 
lift  their  hand  against  the  Almighty  :  what  are  they  in  his  hands, 
when  he  is  disposed  to  vengeance  ?  1  Samuel  vii. 


THE  MEETING  OF  SAUL  AND  SAMUEL. 

Samuel  began  his  acquaintance  with  God  early,  and  continued  it 
long  :  he  began  it  inhislong  coats,  and  continued  to  his  grey  hairs. 
He  judged  Israel  all  the  days  of  his  life.  God  doth  not  use  to 
cast  off  his  old  servants  ;  their  age  endeareth  them  to  him  the  more: 
if  we  be  not  unfaithful  to  him,  he  cannot  be  inconstant  tons. 

At  last,  his  decayed  age  met  with  ill  partners  ;  his  sons  for  depu- 
ties, and  Saul  for  a  king.  The  wickedness  of  his  sons  gave  the 
occasion  of  a  change  :  perhaps  Israe  l  had  never  thought  ot  a  king, 
if  Samuel's  sons  had  not  been  unlike  their  father:  who  can  pro- 
mise himself  holy  children,  when  the  loins  of  a  Samuel  and  the 
education  in  the  temple  yielded  monsters?  It  is  not  likely,  that 
good  Samuel  was  faulty  in  that  indulgence,  for  which  his  own 
mouth  had  denounced  God's  judgments  against  Eli :  yet  this  holy 
man  succeeds  Eli  in  his  cross,  as  well  as  his  place,  though  not  in 
his  sin  ;  and  is  afflicted  with  a  wicked  succession  :  God  will  let  us 
find,  that  grace  is  by  gift,  not  by  inheritance. 

I  fear  Samuel  was  too  partial  to  nature  in  the  surrogation  of  his 
sons.  I  do  not  hear  of  God's  allowance  to  this  act.  If  this  had 
been  God's  choice  as  well  as  his,  it  had  been  like  to  have  received 
more  blessing.  Now  all  Israel  had  cause  to  rue,  that  these  were 
the  sons  of  Samuel ;  for  now  the  question  was  not  of  their  virtues, 
but  of  their  blood  ;  not  of  their  worthiness,  but  their  birth  :  even 
the  best  heart  may  be  blinded  with  affection.  Who  can  marvel  at 
these  errors  of  parents'  love,  when  he  that  so  holily  judged  Israel 
all  his  life,  misjudged  of  his  own  sons  ? 

It  was  God's  ancient  purpose,  to  raise  up  a  king  to  his  people  : 
how  doth  he  take  occasion  to  perform  it,  but  by  the  unruly  desires 
of  Israel  ?  Even  as  we  say  of  human  proceedings,  that  ill  manners 
beget  good  laws.  That  monarchy  is  the  best  form  of  government, 
there  is  no  question.  Good  things  may  be  ill  desired  ;  so  was  this 
of  Israel.  If  an  itching  desire  of  alteration  had  not  possessed 
them,  why  did  they  not  rather  sue  for  a  reformation  of  their  go- 
vernors, than  for  a  change  of  government  ?    W ere  Samuel's  sons 


THE  MEETING  OF  SAUL  AND  SAMUEL.  583 

so  desperately  evil,  that  there  was  no  possibility  of  amendment  ? 
or  if  they  were  past  hope,  were  there  not  some  others  to  have  suc- 
ceeded the  justice  of  Samuel,  no  less  than  these  did  his  person? 
What  needed  Samuel  to  be  thrust  out  of  place  ?  What  needed  the 
ancient  form  of  administration  to  be  altered  ?  He  that  raised  up 
their  judges  would  have  found  time  to  raise  them  up  kings  :  their 
curious  and  inconstant  new-fangledness  will  not  abide  to  stayit, 
but  with  a  heady  importunity  labours  to  over -hasten  the  pace  of 
God.  Where  there  is  a  settled  course  of  good  government,  how- 
soever blemished  with  some  weaknesses,  it  is  not  safe  to  be  over- 
forward  to  a  change,  though  it  should  be  to  the  better.  He,  by 
whom  kings  reign,  says,  They  have  cast  him  away  that  he  should 
not  reign  over  them  because  they  desire  a  king  to  reign  over  them. 
J udges  were  his  own  institution  to  his  people  ;  as  yet  kings  were 
not :  after  that  kings  were  settled,  to  desire  the  government  of 
judges  had  been  a  much  more  seditious  inconstancv.  God  hath  not 
appointed  to  every  time  and  place,  those  forms  which  are  simply 
best  in  themselves,  but  those  which  are  best  to  them  unto  whom 
they  are  appointed  ;  which  we  may  neither  alter  till  he  begin,  nor 
recal  when  he  hath  altered. 

This  business  seemed  personally  to  concern  Samuel ;  yet  he  so 
deals  in  it,  not  as  a  party,  not  as  a  judge  of  his  own  case,  but  as 
a  prophet  of  God,  as  a  friend  of  his  opposite:  he  prays  to  God  for 
advice  ;  he  foretels  the  state  and  courses  of  their  future  king.  Wil- 
ful men  are  blind  to  all  dangers,  are  deaf  to  all  good  counsels.  Israel 
must  have  a  king,  though  they  pay  never  so  dear  for  their  longing. 
The  vain  affectation  of  conformity  to  other  nations  overcomes  all  dis- 
couragements :  there  is  no  readier  way  to  error,  than  to  make 
others'  examples  the  rule  of  our  desires  or  actions.  If  every  man 
have  not  grounds  of  his  own  whereon  to  stand,  there  can  be  no 
stability  in  his  resolutions  or  proceedings. 

Since  then  they  chuse  to  have  a  king,  God  himself  will  chuse 
and  appoint  the  king  which  they  shall  have.  The  kingdom  shall 
begin  in  Benjamin,  which  was  to  endure  in  .Tudah.  It  was  no  pro- 
bability or  reason,  this  first  king  should  prove  well,  because  he  was 
abortive  :  their  humour  of  innovation  deserved  to  be  punished 
with  their  own  choice.  Kish,  the  father  of  Saul,  was  mighty  in 
estate;  Saul  was  mighty  in  person,  overlooking  the  rest  of  the 
people  in  stature,  no  less  than  he  should  do  in  dignity.  The  senses 
of  the  Israelites  could  not  but  be  well  pleased  for  the  time,  howso- 
ever their  hearts  were  afterwards  :  when  men  are  carried  with  out- 
ward shews,  it  is  a  sign  that  God  means  them  a  delusion. 

How  far  God  fetches  his  purposes  about!  The  asses  of  Kish, 
Saul's  father,  are  strayed  away  :  what  is  that  to  the  news  of  a  king- 
dom ?  God  lays  these  small  accidents  for  the  ground  of  greater 
designs  :  the  asses  must  be  lost ;  none  but  Saul  must  go  with  his 
father's  servant  to  seek  them  ;  Samuel  shall  meet  them  in  the 
search ;  Saul  shall  be  premonished  of  his  ensuing  royalty  :  little 
can  we,  by  the  beginning  of  any  action,  guess  at  God's  intention 
in  the  conclusion. 


994  CONTEMPLATIOKS. 

Obedience  was  a  fit  entrance  into  sovereignty :  the  service  was 
homelv  for  the  son  of  a  great  man  ;  vet  he  rcfuseih  not  to  go,  as 
a  fellow  to  his  father's  servant,  upon  so  mean  a  search  :  the  diso- 
bedient and  scornful  are  good  for  nothing  ;  they  are  neither  fit  to 
be  subjects  nor  governors. 

Kish  was  a  great  man  in  l>is  country  ;  yet  he  disdaineth  not  to 
send  his  son  Saul  upon  a  thrifty  errand,  neither  doth  Saul  plead 
his  disparagement  for  a  refusal.  Pride  and  wantonness  have  mar- 
red our  times:  great  parents  count  it  a  disreputation  to  employ 
their  sons  in  courses  of  frugality  ;  and  their  pampered  children 
think  it  a  shame  to  do  any  thing,  and  so  bear  themselves  as  those 
that  hold  it  the  only  glory  to  be  either  idle  or  wicked. 

Neither  doth  Saul  go  fashionably  to  work,  but  does  this  service 
heartily  and  painfully,  as  a  man  that  desires  rather  to  effect  the 
command  than  please  the  commander  :  he  passed  from  Ephraim  to 
the  land  of  Shalisha,  from  Shalisha  to  Salim,  from  Salim  to  Jcmini 
whence  his  house  came,  from  Jemini  to  Zuph,  not  so  much  as 
staying  with  any  of  his  kindred  so  long  as  to  victual  himself :  he 
that  was  afterward  an  ill  king  approved  himself  a  good  son.  As 
there  are  diversities  of  relations  and  offices,  so  there  is  of  disposi- 
tions ;  those,  which  are  excellent  in  some,  attain  not  to  a  mediocri- 
ty in  other.  It  is  no  arguing  from  private  virtues  to  public,  from 
dexterity  in  one  station  to  the  rest :  a  several  grace  belongs  to  the 
particular  carriage  of  every  place  whereto  we  are  called,  which  if 
we  want,  the  place  may  well  want  us. 

There  was  more  praise  of  his  obedience  in  ceasing  to  seek,  than 
in  seeking  :  he  takes  care,  lest  his  father  should  take  care  for  him ; 
that  whilst  he  should  seem  officious  in  the  less,  he  might  not  neg- 
lect the  greatest.  A  blind  obedience  in  some  cases  doth  well,  but 
it  doth  far  better,  when  it  is  led  with  the  eyes  of  discretion  ;  other- 
wise, we  mav  more  offend  in  pleasing,  than  in  disobeying. 

Great  is  the  benefit  of  a  wise  and  religious  attendant.:  such  an 
one  puts  us  into  those  duties  and  actions,  which  are  most  expedient 
and  least  thought  of.  If  Saul  had  not  had  a  discreet  servant,  he 
had  returned  but  as  wise  as  he  came  ;  now  he  is  drawn  in  to  con- 
sult with  the  man  of  God,  and  hears  more  than  he  hoped  for. 
Saul  was  now  a  sufficient  journey  from  his  father's  house  ;  yet  his 
religious  servant,  in  this  ^remoteness,  takes  knowledge  of  the  place 
where  the  prophet  dwells,  and  how  honourably  doth  he  mention 
him  to  his  master  !  Behold,  in  this  city  is  a  man  of  God ;  and  he 
is  an  honourable  man  ;  all  that  he  saith  comet h  to  pass.  God's  pro- 
phets are  public  persons ;  as  their  function,  so  their  notice  con- 
cerns every  man.  There  is  no  reason  God  should  abate  any  of 
the  respect  due  to  his  ministers  under  the  Gospel :  Saint  Paul's  suit 
is  both  universal  and  everlasting ;  /  beseech  you,  brethren,  knou 
them  that  labour  amongst  you. 

The  chief  praise  is  to  be  able  to  give  good  advice  ;  the  next  is, 
to  take  it.  Saul  is  easily  induced  to  condescend  :  he,  whose  curi- 
osity led  him  voluntarily  at  last  to  the  Witch  of  Endor,  is  now  led 
at  first  by  good  counsel  to  the  man  of  God. 


THE  MEETING  OF  SAUL  AND  SAMUEL. 


285 


Neither  is  his  care  in  going  less  commendable,  than  his  will  to 
go ;  for  as  a  man  that  had  been  catechised  not  to  go  unto  God 
empty-handed,  he  asks,  What  shall  wc  bring  unto  the  man?  What 
have  we?  The  case  is  well  altered  in  our  times:  every  man  thinks* 
"  What  may  I  keep  back?"  There  is  no  gain  so  sweet  as  of  a 
robbed  altar ;  yet  God's  charge  is  no  less  under  the  Gospel,  Let 
him  that  is  taught,  make  his  teacher  partaker  of  all.  As  this  faith- 
ful care  of  Saul  was  a  just  presage  of  success,  more  than  he  looked 
for  or  could  expect ;  so  the  sacrilegious  unthankfulness  of  many 
bodes  that  ruin  to  their  soul  and  estate,  which  they  could  not  have 
grace  to  fear. 

He  that  knew  the  prophet's  abode  knew  also  the  honour  of  his 
place.  He  could  not  but  know  that  Samuel  was  a  mixed  person  ; 
the  judge  of  Israel,  and  the  seer.:  yet  both  Saul  and  his  servant 
purpose  to  present  him  with  the  fourth  part  of  a  shekel,  to  the 
value  of  about  our  five-pence.  They  had  learned,  that  thankfulness 
was  not  to  be  measured  of  good  men  by  the  weight,  but  by  the  t 
will  of  the  retributor:  how  much  more  will  God  accept  the  small 
offerings  of  his  weak  servants,  when  he  sees  them  proceed  from 
great  iove ! 

The  very  maids  of  the  city  can  give  direction  to  the  prophet: 
they  had  listened  after  the  holy  affairs,  they  had  heard  of  the  sacri- 
fice, and  could  tell  of  the  necessity  of  Samuel's  presence  :  those, 
that  live  within  the  sunshine  of  religion,  cannot  but  be  somewhat 
coloured  with  those,  beams :  where  there  is  prac  tice  and  example 
of  piety  in  the  better  sort,  there  will  be  a  reflection  of  it  upon  the 
meanest:  it  is  no  small  benefit  to  live  in  religious  and  holy  places ; 
we  shall  be  much  to  blame,  if  all  goodness  fall  beside  us.  Yea  so 
skilful  were  these  damsels  in  the  fashions  of  their  public  sacrifices, 
that  thev  could  instruct  Saul  and  his  servant,  unasked,  how  the  peo- 
ple would  not  eat,  till  Samuel  came  to  bless  the  sacrifice. 

This  meeting  was  not  more  a  sacrifice,  than  it  was  a  feast :  these 
two  agree  well:  we  have  never  so  much  cause  to  rejoice  in  feast- 
ing, as  when  we  have  duly  served  our  God.  The  sacrifice  was  a 
feast  to  God,  the  other  to  men  :  the  bodv  may  eat  and  drink  with 
contentment,  when  the  soul  hath  been  first  fed,  and  hath  first  feast- 
ed the  Maker  of  both;  Go  eat  thy  bread  with  joy,  and  drink  tin) 
drink  with  a  merry  heart,  for  God  now  accep/eth  thy  works. 

The  sacrifice  was  before  consecrated,  when.it  was  offered  to 
God  ;  but  it  was  not  consecrated  to  them,  till  Samuel  blessed  it  : 
his  blessing  made  that  meat  holy  to  the  guests,  which  was  formerly 
hallowed  to  God.  All  creatures  were  made  good,  and  took  holi- 
ness from  him  which  gave  them  their  being  :  our  sin  brought  that 
curse  upon  them,  which,  unless  our  prayers  remove  it,  cleaves  to 
them  still,  so  as  we  receive  them  not  without  a  curse.  We  are  notour 
own  friends,  except  our  prayers  help  to  take  that  away,  which  our 
sin  hath  brought,  that  so  to  the  clean  all  mav  be  clean  :  it  is  an  un- 
mannerly godlessness,  to  take  God's  creatures  without  the  leave  of 
their  Maker ;  and  well  may  God  withhold  his  blessing  from  them, 
which  have  not  the  grace  to  usk  it. 


2S6 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


Those  guests,  which  were  so  religious,  that  they  would  not  eat 
their  sacrifice  unblessed,  might  have  blessed  it  themselves :  every 
man  might  pray,  though  every  man  might  not  sacrifice  ;  yet  would 
they  not  either  eat  or  bless,  while  they  looked  for  the  presence  of 
a  prophet.  Every  Christian  may  sanctify  his  own  meat,  but  where 
those  are  present  that  are  peculiarly  sanctified  to  God,  this  service 
is  fittest  for  them.  It  is  commendable  to  teach  children  the  prac- 
tice of  thanksgiving ;  but  the  best  is  ever  mostmeetto  bless  ourtables, 
and  those  especially,  whose  office  it  is  to  offer  our  prayers  to  God. 

Little  did  Saul  think,  that  his  coming  and  his  errand  was  so  noted 
of  God,  as  that  it  was  fore-signified  unto  the  prophet;  and  now, 
behold  Samuel  is  told  a  day  before  of  the  man,  time,  and  place  of 
his  meeting.  The  eye  of  God's  providence  is  no  less  over  all  our 
actions,  all  our  motions.  We  cannot  go  any  whither  without  him  ; 
he  tells  all  our  steps  :  since  it  pleaseth  God  therefore  to  take  notice 
of  us,  much  more  should  we  take  notice  of  him,  and  walk  with 
him  in  whom  we  move  ! 

Saul  came  beside  his  expectation  to  the  prophet :  he  had  no 
thought  of  any  such  purpose,  till  his  servant  made  this  sudden 
motion  unto  him  of  visiting  Samuel,  and  yet  God  says  to  his  pro- 
phet, I  wiU  send  thee  a  man  out  of  the  land  of  Benjamin.  The 
overruling  hand  of  the  Almighty  works  us  insensibly  and  all  our 
aftairs  to  his  own  secret  determinations  ;  so  as  while  we  think  to  do 
our  own  wills  we  do  his.  Our  own  intentions  we  may  know  ;  God's 
purposes  we  know  not :  we  must  go  the  way  that  we  are  called,  let 
him  lead  us  to  what  end  he  pleaseth  :  it  is  our  duty  to  resign  our- 
selves and  our  ways  to  the  disposition  of  God,  and  patiently  and 
thankfully  to  await  the  issue  of  his  decrees. 

The  same  God,  that  foreshewed  Saul  to  Samuel,  now  points  to 
him,  See,  this  is  the  man ;  and  commands  the  prophet  to  anoint 
him  governor  over  Israel.  He,  that  told  of  Saul  before  he  came, 
knew  before  he  came  into  the  world,  what  a  man,  what  a  king  the 
would  be ;  yet  he  chuseth  him  out,  and  enjoins  his  inunction.  It 
is  one  of  the  greatest  praises  of  God's  wisdom,  that  he  can  turn  the 
evil  of  men  to  his  own  glory.  Advancement  is  not  ever  a  sign  of 
love,  either  to  the  man  or  to  the  place.  It  had  been  better  for 
Saul,  that  his  head  had  been  ever  dry :  some  God  raiseth  up  in 
judgment,  that  they  may  fall  the  more  uneasily  :  there  are  no  men 
so  miserable  as  those,  that  are  great  and  evil. 

It  seems  that  Samuel  bore  no  great  port  in  his  outside,  for  that 
Saul,  not  discerning  him  either  by  his  habit  or  attendants,  comes 
to  him,  and  asks  him  for  the  seer  :  yet  was  Samuel  as  yet  the  judge 
of  Israel :  the  substitution  of  his  sons  had  not  displaced  himself. 
There  is  an  affable  familiarity,  that  becometh  greatness  :  it  is  not 
good  for  eminent  persons  to  stand  always  upon  the  height  of  their 
state,  but  so  to  behave  themselves,  that,  as  their  sociable  carriage 
may  not  breed  contempt,  so  their  over-highness  may  not  breed  a 
servile  fearfulness  in  their  people. 

How  kindly  doth  Samuel  entertain  and  invite  Saul!  Yet  it  was 
he  only,  that  bhould  receive  wrong  by  the  future  royalty  of  Saul. 


THE  MEETING  OF  SAUL  AND  SAMUEL.  287 

Who  would  not  have  looked,  that  aged  Samuel  should  have  emu- 
lated rather  the  glory  of  his  young  rival,  and  have  looked  churlish- 
ly upon  the  man  that  should  rob  him  of  his  authority  ?  Yet  now,  ' 
as  if  he  came  on  purpose  to  gratify  him,  he  bids  him  to  the  feast, 
he  honours  him  with  the  chief  seat,  he  reserves  a  select  morsel  for 
him,  he  tells  him  iugenuouslv  the  news  of  his  ensuing  sovereignty  ; 
On  whom  is  set  the  desire  of  all  Israel  ?  Is  it  not  upon  thee  and 
thy  father'' $  house  ?  Wise  and  holy  men,  as  they  are  not  ambitious 
of  their  own  burden,  so  they  are  not  unwilling  to  be  eased  when 
God  pleaseth  to  discharge  them ;  neither  can  they  envy  those,  whom 
God  lifteth  above  their  heads  :  they  make  an  idol  of  honour,  that 
are  troubled  with  their  own  freedom,  or  grudge  at  the  promotion 
of  others. 

Doubtless  Saul  was  much  amazed  with  this  strange  salutation, 
and  news  of  the  prophet ;  and  how  modestly  doth  he  put  it  off,  as 
that  which  was  neither  fit  nor  likely  !  disparaging  his  tribe  in  re- 
spect of  the  rest  of  Israel,  his  father's  family  in  respect  of  the 
tribe,  and  himself  in  respect  of  his  father's  family.  Neither  did 
his  humility  stoop  below  the  truth  ;  for  as  Benjamin  was  the 
youngest  son  of  Israel,  so  he  was  now  by  much  the  least  tribe  of 
Israel.  They  had  not  yet  recovered  that  universal  slaughter,  which 
they  had  received  from  the  hands  of  their  brethren,  whereby  a 
tribe  was  almost  lost  to  Israel ;  yet  even  out  of  the  remainder  of 
Benjamin  doth  God  chuse  the  man,  that  shall  command  Israel ;  out 
of  the  rubbish  of  Benjamin  doth  God  raise  the  throne.  That  is 
not  ever  the  best  and  fattest  which  God  chooseth,  but  that  which 
God  chooseth  is  ever  the  fittest  :  the  strength  or  weakness  of  means 
is  neither  spur  nor  bridle  to  the  determinate  choices  of  God;  yea 
rather  he  holds  it  the  greatest  proof  of  his  freedom  and  omnipotency, 
to  advance  the  unlikeliest. 

It  was  no  hollow  i'.nd  feigned  excuse,  that  Saul  makes  to  put  off 
that  which  he  would  fain  enjoy,  and  to  cause  honour  to  follow  him 
the  more  eagerly  :  it  was  the  sincere  truth  of  his  humility,  that  so 
dejected  him  under  the  hand  of  God's  prophet.  Fair  beginnings 
are  no  sound  proof  of  our  proceedings  and  ending  well  :  how  often 
hath  a  bashful  childhood  ended  in  an  impudency  of  youth,  a  strict 
entrance  in  licentiousness,  early  forwardness  in  atheism  !  There 
might  be  a  civil  meekness  in  Saul,  true  grace  there  was  not  in  him. 
They,  that  be  good,  bear  more  fruit  in  their  age. 

Saul  had  but  five-pence  in  his  purse  to  give  the  prophet ;  the 
prophet,  after  much  i^ood  cheer,  gives  him  the  kingdom  :  he  be- 
stows the  oil  of  royal  consecration  on  his  head,  the  kisses  of  ho- 
mage upon  his  face,  and  sends  him  away  rich  in  thoughts  and  ex- 
pectation ;  and  now,  lest  his  astonishment  should  end  in  distrust, 
he  settles  his  assurance,  by  forewarnings  of  those  events  which  he 
should  find  in  his  way :  he  tells  him  whom  he  shall  meet,  what 
they  shall  say,  how  himi  elf  shall  be  affected  ;  that  all  these  and 
himself  might  be  so  man  y  witnesses  of  his  following  coronation. 
K very  word 'confirmed  Kim;  for  well  might  he  think,  "  He  that 
tan  foretell  me  the  mou  ions  and  words  of  others  cannot  fail  in 


288  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

mine;"  especially  when,  as  Samuel  had  prophesied  to  him,  he 
found  himself  to  prophesy  ;  his  prophesying  did  enough  foretell  his 
kingdom. 

No  sooner  did  Samuel  turn  his  back  from  Saul,  but  God  gave 
him  another  heart ;  lifting  up  his  thoughts  and  disposition  to  the 
pitch  of  a  king  :  the  calling  of  God  never  leaves  a  man  unchang- 

'  ed ;  neither  did  God  ever  employ  any  man  in  his  service,  whom 
he  did  not  enable  to  the  work  he  set  him,  especially  those  whom 
he  raiseth  up  to  the  supply  of  his  own  place,  and  the  representa- 
tion of  himself.    It  is  no  marvel,  if  princes  excel  the  vulgar  in 

-  gifts,  no  less  than  in  dignity  :  their  crowns  and  their  hearts  are  both 
in  one  and  the  same  hand  ;  if  God  did  not  add  to  their  powers  as 
well  as  their  honours,  there  would  be  no  equality,    i  Samuel  ix. 


THE  INAUGURATION  OF  SAUL. 

God  hath  secretly  destined  Saul  to  the  kingdom  :  it  could  not  con- 
tent Israel  that  Samuel  knew  this ;  the  lots  must  so  decide  the 
choice,  as  if  it  had  not  been  predetermined.  That  God,  which  is 
ever  constant  to  his  own  decrees,  makes  the  lots  to  find  him  out 
whom  Samuel  had  anointed.  If  once  we  have  notice  of  the  will 
of  God,  we  may  be  confident  of  the  issue  :  there  is  no  chance,  to 
the  Almighty  ;  even  casual  things  are  no  less  necessary  in  their 
first  cause,  than  the  natural. 

So  far  did  Saul  trust  the  prediction  and  oil  of  Samuel,  that  he 
hides  him  among  the  stuff :  he  knew  where  the  lots  would  light, 
before  thev  were  east :  this  was  but  a  modest  declination  of  that 
honour,  which  he  saw  must  come.  His  very  withdrawing  shewed 
some  expectation;  why  else  should  he  have. hid  himself,  rather 
than  the  other  Israelites  ?  Yet  could  he  not  hope  his  subducing  him- 
self could  disappoint  the  purpose  of  God  :  he  well  knew,  that  he, 
which  found  out  and  designed  his  name  amongst  the  thousands  of 
Israel,  would  easily  finu  out  his  person  in  a  ttmt.  When  once  we 
know  God's  decree,  in  vain  shall  we  strive  against  it :  before  we 
know  it,  it  is  indifferent  for  us  to  work  to  the  likeliest. 

I  cannot  blame  Saul  for  hiding  himself  from  a  kingdom  ;  espe- 
cially of  Israel.  Honour  is  heavy  when  it  comes  upon  the  best  terms : 
how  should  it  be  otherwise,  when  all  men's  ca  .'es  are  cast  upon  one? 
but  most  of  all  in  a  troubled  estate  ?  No  mail:  jan  put  to  sea  without 
danger;  but  he,  that  launcbeth  forth  in  a  tc  orpest,  can  expect  no- 
thing but  the  hardest  event.  Such  was  u  e  condition  of  Israel. 
Their  old  enemy  the  Philistines  were  stilles  with  that  fearful  thun- 
der of  God,  as  finding  what  it  was  to  war  against  the  Almighty. 
There  were  adversaries  enough  besides  n  their  borders  :  it  was 
but  a  hollow  truce,  that  was  betwixt  Isr?  el  and  their  heathenish 
neighbours  ;  and  Nahash  was  now  at  their  gates. 

Well  did  Saul  know  the  difference,  between  a  peaceful  govern- 
ment, and  the  perilous  and  wearisome  tuoikults  of  war.  The  quietest 


THE  INAUGURATION  OF  SAUL.  239 

throne  is  full  of  cares,  but  the  perplexed,  of  dangers.  Cares 
and  dangers  drove  Saul  into  this  corner,  to  hide  his  head  from  a 
crown  :  these  made  him  chuse  rather  to  lie  obscurely  among  the 
baggage  of  his  tent,  than  to  sit  gloriously  in  the  throne  of  state. 
This  hiding  could  do  nothing  but  shew,  that  both  he  suspected  lest 
he  should  be  chosen,  and  desired  he  should  not  be  chosen.  That 
God,  from  whom  the  hills  and  the  rocks  could  not  conceal  him, 
brings  him  forth  to  the  light ;  so  much  more  longed  for,  as  he  was 
more  unwilling  to  be  seen ;  and  more  applauded,  as  he  was  more 
longed  for. 

Now  then  when  Saul  is  drawn  forth  in  the  midst  of  the  eager 
expectation  of  Israel,  modesty  and  godliness  shewed  themselves 
in  his  face.  The  press  cannot  hide  him,  whom  the  stuff  had  hid  : 
as  if  he  had  been  made  to  be  seen,  he  overlooks  all  Israel  in  height 
of  stature,  for  presage  of  the  eminence  of  his  estate ;  From  the 
shoulders  upward,  was  he  higher  than  any  of  the  people. 

Israel  sees  their  lots  are  fallen  upon  a  noted  man  ;  one  whose 
person  shewed  he  was  born  to  be  a  king  :  and  now  all  the  people 
shout  for  joy  ;  they  have  their  longing,  and  applaud  their  own 
happiness  and  their  king's  honour.  How  easy  is  it  for  us  to  mis- 
take our  own  estates  !  to  rejoice  in  that,  which  we  shall  find  the 
just  cause  of  our  humiliation  !  The  end  of  a  thing  is  better  than 
the  beginning  :  the  safest  way  is  to  reserve  our  joy,  till  we  have 
good  proof  of  the  worthiness  and  fitness  of  the  object.  What 
are  we  the  better  for  having  a  blessing,  if  we  know  not  how  to 
use  it  ? 

The  office  and  observance  of  a  king  was  uncouth  to  Israel ;  Sa- 
muel therefore  informs  the  people  of  their  mutual  duties,  and  writes 
them  in  a  book,  and  lays  it  up  before  the  Lord  ;  otherwise  novel- 
ty might  have  been  a  warrant  for  their  ignorance,  and  ignorance 
for  neglect.  There  are  reciprocal  respects  of  princes  and  peo- 
ple, which  if  they  be  not  observed,  government  languisheth  into 
confusion  :  these  Samuel  faithfully  teacheth  them.  Though  he  may 
not  be  their  judge,  yet  he  will  be  their  prop'net :  he  will  instruct,  if 
he  may  not  rule  ;  yea  he  will  instruct  him  that  shall  rule.  There  is 
no  king  absolute,  but  he  that  is  the  king  of  all  gods  :  earthly  mo- 
narchs  must  walk  by  a  rule,  which  if  they  transgress,  they  shall  be 
accountable  to  him  that  is  higher  than  the  highest,  who  hath  de- 
puted them.  Not  out  of  care  of  civility,  so  much  as  conscience, 
must  every  Samuel  labour  to  keep  even  terms  betwixt  kings  and 
subjects  ;  prescribing  just  moderation  to  the  one,  to  the  other  obe- 
dience and  loyalty,  which  whoever  endeavours  to  trouble,  is  none 
of  the  friends  of  God  or  his  Church. 

The  most  and  best  applaud  their  new  king  ;  some  wicked  ones 
despised  him,  and  said,  How  shall  he  save  us  ?  It  was  not  the  might 
of  his  parents,  the  goodliness  of  his  person,  the  privilege  of  his  lot, 
the  fame  of  his  prophesying,  the  panegyric  of  Samuel,  that  could 
shield  him  from  contempt,  or  win  him  the  hearts  of  all.  There 
was  never  yet  any  man,  to  whom  some  took  not  exceptions.  It  is 
not  possible  either  to  please  or  displease  all  men,  while  some  men 

vol.  r.  u 


290 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


are  in  love  with  vice,  as  deeply  as  others  with  virtue,  and  some 
(as  ill)  dislike  virtue,  if  not  tor  itself,  yet  for  contradiction. 

They  well  saw,  Saul  chose  not  himself ;  they  saw  him  worthv  to 
have  been  chosen,  if  the  election  should  have  been  carried  by 
voices,  and  those  voices  by  their  eyes  ;  thev  saw  him  unwilling  to 
hold  or  yield,  when  he  was  chosen  :  yet  they  will  envy  him.  W  hat 
fault  could  they  find  in  him  whom  God  had  chosen  ?  His  paren- 
tage was  equal,  his  person  above  them,  his  inward  parts  mora 
above  them  than  the  outward  :  malcontents  will  rather  devise  than 
want  causes  of  riving  out ;  and  rather  than  fail,  the  universal  ap- 
probation of  others  is  ground  enough  of  their  dislike.  It  is  a  vain 
ambition  of  those,  that  would  be  loved  of  all :  the  Spirit  of  God, 
when  he  enjoins  us  peace,  withal  he  adds,  If  it  be  possible ;  and 
favour  is  more  than  peace.  A  man's  comfort  must  be  in  himself; 
the  conscience  of  deserving  well. 

The  neighbouring  Ammonites  could  not  but  have  heard  of  God's 
fearful  vengeance  upon  the  Philistines  ;  and  yet  they  will  be  taking 
up  the  quarrel  against  Israel :  Nahash  comes  up  against  Jabesh- 
Gilead.  Nothing  but  "race  can  teach  us  to  make  use  of  others' 
judgments;  wicked  me n  are  not  moved  with  ought  that  falls  be- 
side them  ;  they  trust  nothing  but  their  own  smart.  What  fearful 
judgments  doth  God  execute  every  dav  !  Resolute  sinners  take  no 
notice  of  them ;  and  are  grown  so  peremptory,  as  if  God  had 
never  siiewed  dislike  of  their  ways. 

The  GUeadites  were  not  more  base,  than  Nahash  the  Ammonite 
was  cruel :  the  Gileadites  would  buy  their  peace  with  servility  ; 
Nahash  would  sell  them  a  servile  peace  for  their  right  eyes.  Jephthah 
the  Gileadite  did  vet  stick  in  the  stomach  of  Amnion  ;  and  now 
they  think  their  revenge  cannot  be  too  bloodv.  It  is  a  wonder 
that  he,  which  would  offer  so  merciless  a  condition  to  Israel,  would 
yield  to  the  motion  of  any  delay  :  he  meant  nothing  but  shame  and 
death  to  the  Israelites,  yet  he  condescends  to  a  seven  days'  respite. 
Perhaps  his  confidence  made  him  thus  careless.  Howsoever,  it 
was  the  restraint  of  God,  that  gave  this  breath  to  Israel,  and  this 
opportunity  to  Saul's  courage  and  victorv.  The  enemies  of  God's 
Church  cannot  be  so  malicious,  as  thev  would  ;  cannot  approve 
themselves  so  malicious,  as  they  are  :  God  so  holds  them  in  some- 
times, that  a  stander-by  would  think  them  favourable. 

The  news  of  Gilead's  distress  had  soon  filled  and  afflicted  Israel': 
the  people  think  of  no  remedy,  but  their  pity  and  tears.  Evils 
are  easilv  grieved  for,  not  easily  redressed.  Onlv  Saul  is  more 
stirred  with  indignation  than  sorrow.  That  God,  which  put  into 
him  a  spirit  of  prophecy,  now  puts  into  him  a  spirit  of  fortitude  : 
he  was  before  appointed  to  the  throne,  not  settled  in  the  throne  > 
he  followed  the  beasts  in  the  field,  when  he  should  have  command- 
ed men.  Now,  as  one  that  would  be  a  king  no  less  by  merit  than 
election,  he  takes  upon  him  and  performs  the  rescue  of  Gi!e;ul; 
he  assembles  Israel,  he  leads  them,  he  raiseth  the  siege,  breaks  the 
troops,  cuts  the  throats  of  the  Ammonites.  When  God  hath  any 
exploit  to  perform,  he  raiseth  up  the  heart  of  some  chosen  insirn- 


samuel's  contestation,  291 

ment  with  heroical  motions  for  the  achievement :  when  all  hearts 
are  cold  and  dead,  it  is  a  sign  of  intended  destruction. 

This  day  hath  made  Saul  a  complete  king  ;  and  now  the  thank- 
ful Israelites  begin  to  inquire  after  those  discontented  mutineers, 
which  had  refused  allegiance  unto  so  worthy  a  commander;  Bring 
those  men,  that  we  may  slay  them.  This  sedition  had  deserved 
death,  though  Saul  had  been  foiled  at  Gilead  ;  but  now  his  happy 
victory  whets  the  people  much  more  to  a  desire  of  this  just  execu- 
tion. Saul,  to  whom  the  injury  was  done,  hinders  the  revenge; 
There  shall  no  man  die  this  day,  for  to-day  the  Lord  hath  saved 
Israel ;  that  his  fortitude  might  not  go  beyond  his  mercy. 

How  noble  were  these  beginnings  of  Saul !  His  prophecy  shew- 
ed him  miraculously  wise,  his  battle  and  victory  no  less  valiant, 
his  pardon  of  his  rebels  as  merciful :  there  was  not  more  power 
shewed  in  overcoming  the  Ammonites,  than  in  overcoming  himself, 
and  the  impotent  malice  of  these  mutinous  Israelites.  Now  Israel 
sees  they  have  a  king,  that  can  both  shed  blood,  and  spare  it ;  that 
can  shed  the  Ammonites'  blood,  and  spare  theirs :  his  mercy  wins 
those  hearts,  whom  his  valour  could  not.  As  in  God,  so  in  his  de- 
puties, mercy  and  justice  should  be  inseparable  .  wheresoever  these 
two  go  asunder,  government  follows  them  into  distraction,  and 
ends  in  ruin. 

If  it  had  been  a  wrong  offered  to  Samuel,  the  forbearance  of  the 
revenge  had  not  been  so  commendable  ;  although  upon  the  day  of 
so  happy  a  deliverance,  perhaps  it  had  not  been  seasonable  :  a 
man  hath  reason  to  be  most  bold  with  himself.  It  is  no  praise  of 
mercy  (since  it  is  a  fault  injustice)  to  remit  another  man's  satis- 
faction j  his  own  he  may.  1  Sam. -X. 


SAMUEL'S  CONTESTATION. 

Eyery  one  can  be  a  friend  to  him  that  prospereth  :  by  this  victory 
hath  Saul  as  well  conquered  the  obstinacy  of  his  own  people  :  now 
there  is  no  Israelite  that  rejoiceth  not  in  Saul's  kingdom. 

No  sooner  have  they  done  objecting  to  Saul,  than  Samuel  begins 
to  expostulate  with  them.  The  same  day,  wherein  they  began  to 
be  pleased,  God  shews  himself  angry.  All  the  passages  of  their 
proceedings  offended  him  :  he  deterred  to  let  tliem  "know  it  till 
now,  that  the  kingdom  was  settled,  and  their  hearts  lifted  up. 
Now  doth  God  cool  their  courage  artd  joy,  with  a  back-reckoning 
for  their  forwardness.  God  will  not  let  his  people  run  away  with 
the  arrearages  of  their  sins,  but  when  they  least  think  of  it,  calls 
them  to  an  account. 

All  this  while  was  God  angry  with  their  rejection  of  Samuel ; 
yet,  as  if  there  had  been  nothing  but  peace,  he  gives  them  a  vic- 
tory over  their  enemies  ;  he  gives  way  to  their  joy  in  their  elec- 
tion :  now  he  lets  them  know,  that,  after  their  peace-ofterings,  he 
hath  a  quarrel  with  them.  God  may  be  angry  enough  with  us, 
wlule  we  outwardly  prosper.    Jt  is  the  wisdom  of  God,  to  take  his 


292 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


best  advantages  :  he  suffers  us  to  go  on,  till  \vc  sliould  come  to  en- 
joy the  fruit  of  our  sin  ;  till  we  seem  past  the  danger,  either  of 
conscience  or  punishment;  then,  even  when  we  begin  to  be  past 
the  feeling  of  our  sin,  we  shall  begin  to  feel  his  displeasure  for  our 
sins.  This  is  only  where  he  loves,  where  he  would  both  forgive 
and  reclaim :  he  hath  now  to  do  with  his  Israel :  but  where  he 
means  utter  vengeance,  he  lets  men  harden  themselves  to  a  repro- 
bate senselessness,  and  make  up  their  own  measure  without  con- 
tradiction, as  purposing  to  reckon  with  them  but  once  forever. 

Samuel  had  dissuaded  them  before  ;  he  reproves  them  not  until 
now.  If  he  had  thus  bent  himself  against  them,  ere  the  settling 
of  the  election,  he  had  troubled  Israel  in  that,  which  God  took  oc- 
casion by  their  sin  to  establish :  his  opposition  would  have  savour- 
ed of  respects  to  himself,  whom  the  wrong  of  this  innovation 
chiefly  concerned  :  now  therefore,  when  they  are  sure  of  their  king 
and  their  king  of  them,  when  he  hath  set  even  terms  betwixt  them 
mutually,  he  lets  them  see  how  they  were  at  odds  with  God.  We 
must  ever  dislike  sins  ;  we  may  not  ever  shew  it.  Discretion  in 
the  choice  of  seasons  for  reproving,  is  jio  less  commendable  and 
necessary,  than  zeal  and  faithfulness  in  repi-oving  :  good  phvsi- 
cians  use  not  to  evacuate  the  body  in  extremities  of  heat  or  cold  : 
wise  mariners  do  not  hoist  sails  in  every  wind. 

First  doth  Samuel  begin  to  clear  his  own  innocence,  ere  he  dare 
charge  them  with  their  sin.  He  that  will  cast  a  stone  at  an  offen- 
der must  be  free  himself,  otherwise  he  condemns  and  executes  him- 
self in  another  person.  The  conscience  stops  the  mouth  of  the 
guilty  man,  and  chokes  him  with  that  sin  which  lies  in  his  own 
breast ;  and  having  not  come  forth  by  a  penitent  confession,  can- 
not find  the  way  out  in  a  reproof ;  or  if  he  do  reprove,  he  doth 
more  shame  himself  than  reform  another.  He  that  was  the  judge 
of  Israel  would  not  now  judge  himself,  but  would  be  judged  by 
Israel ;  Whose  ox  have  I  taken  ?  •whose  ass  have  I  taken  ?  or  to 
■whom  have  I  done  wrong  ?  No  doubt,  Samuel  found  himself  guilty 
before  God  of  many  private  infirmities,  but  for  his  public  carriage 
he  appeals  to  men.  A  man's  heart  can  best  judge  of  himself; 
others  can  best  judge  of  his  actions.  As  another  man's  conscience 
and  approbation  cannot  bear  us  out  before  God,  so  cannot  our 
own  before  men  ;  for  oft-times  that  action  is  censured  by  the  be- 
holders as  wrongful,  wherein  we  applaud  our  own  justice.  Happy 
is  that  man,  that  can  be  acquitted  by  himself  in  prjvate,  in  public 
by  others,  by  God  in  both  :  standers-bv  may  see  more.  It  is  very 
safe  for  a  man  to  look  into  himself  by  others'  eyes  :  in  vain  shall 
a  man's  heart  absolve  him,  that  is  condemned  by  his  actions. 

It  was  not  so  much  the  trial  of  his  carriage  that  Samuel  appeal- 
ed for,  as  his  justification  ;  not  for  his  own  comfort,  so  much  as 
their  conviction.  His  innocence  hath  not  done  him  service  enough, 
unless  it  shame  them,  and  make  them  confess  themselves  faulty. 
In  so  many  vears  wherein  Samuel  judged  Israel,  it  cannot  be,  but 
many  thousand  causes  passed  his  hands,  wherein  both  parties 
could  not  possibly  be  pleased  ;  yet  so  clear  doth  he  find  his  heart 


samuel's  contestation.  293 
and  hands,  that  he  dare  make  the  grieved  part  judges  of  his  judg- 
ment. A  good  conscience  will  make  a  man  undauntedly  confident, 
and  dare  put  him  upon  any  trial :  where  his  own  heart  strikes  him 
not,  it  bids  him  challenge,  all  the  world,  and  take  up  all  comers. 
How  happy  a  thing  is  it,  for  a  man  to  be  his  own  friend  and  patron  ! 
He  needs  not  to  fear  foreign  broils,  that  is  at  peace  at  home  :  con- 
trarily,  he,  that  hath  a  false  and  foul  heart,  lies  at  every  man's  mer- 
cy, lives  slavishly,  and  is  fain  to  daub  up  a  rotten  peace  with  the 
basest  conditions.  Truth  is  not  afraid  of  any  light,  and  therefore 
dare  suffer  her  wares  to  be  carried  from  a  dim  shop-board  unto  the 
street  door  :  perfect  gold  will  be  but  the  purer  with  trying  ; 
whereas  falsehood,  being  a  work  of  darkness,  loves  darkness,  and 
therefore  seeks  where  it  may  w  ork  closest. 

This  very  appellation  cleared  Samuel,  but  the  people's  attesta- 
tion cleared  him  more.  Innocency  and  uprightness  become  every 
man  well,  but  most  public  persons,  who  shall  be  else  obnoxious  to 
every  offender.  The  throne  and  the  pulpit  (of  all  places)  call 
for  holiness,  no  more  for  example  of  good,  than  for  liberty  of  con- 
trolling evil :  ail  magistrates  swear  to  do  that,  which  Samuel  pro- 
tested he  hath  done :  if  their  oath  were  so  verified,  as  Samuel's 
protestation,  it  were  a  shame  for  the  state  not  to  be  happy.  The 
sins  of  our  teachers  are  the  teachers  of  sin  :  the  sins  of  governors 
do  both  command  and  countenance  evil. 

This  very  acquitting  of  Samuel  was  the  accusation  of  themselves ; 
for  how  could  it  be  but  faulty,  to  cast  off  a  faultless  governor  ?  If 
he  had  not  taken  away  an  ox  or  an  ass  from  them,  why  do  they 
take  away  his  authority  ?  They  could  not  have  thus  cleared  Saul 
at  the  end  of  his  reign.  It  was  just  with  God,  since  they  were 
weary  of  a  just  ruler,  to  punish  them  with  au  unjust. 

He,  that  appealed  to  them  for  his  own  uprightness,  durst  not  ap- 
peal to  them  for  their  own  wickedness,  but  appeals  to  heaven  from 
them.  Men  are  commonly  flatterers  of  their  own  cases  :  it  must 
be  a  strong  evidence,  that  will  make  a  sinner  convicted  in  himself: 
nature  hath  so  many  shifts  to  cozen  itself  in  this  spiritual  verdict, 
that  unless  it  be  taken  in  the  manner,  it  will  hardly  yield  to  a 
truth  ;  either  she  will  deny  the  fact,  or  the  fault,  or  the  measure. 
And  now  in  this  case  they  might  seem  to  have  some  fair  pretences; 
tor  though  Samuel  was  righteous,  yet  his  sons  were  corrupt.  To 
cut  off  all  excuses  therefore,  Samuel  appeals  to  God,  the  highest 
judge,  for  his  sentence  of  their  sin,  and  dares  trust  to  a  miraculous 
conviction.  It  was  now  their  wheat-harvest :  the  hot  and  dry  air 
of  that  climate  did  not  wont  to  afford  in  that  season  so  much  moist 
vapour  as  might  raise  a  cloud,  either  for  rain  or  thunder.  He, 
that  knew  God  could  and  would  do  both  these  without  the  help  of 
second  causes,  puts  the  trial  upon  this  issue.  Had  not  Samuel 
before  consulted  with  his  Maker,  and  received  warrant  for  his  act, 
it  had  been  presumption  and  tempting  of  God,  which  was  now  a 
noble  improvement  of  faith.  Rather  than  Israel  shall  go  clear 
away  with  a  sin,  God  will  accuse  and  arraign  them  from  heaven. 
No  sooner  hath  Samuel's  voice  ceased,  than  God's  voice  begins : 


294  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

every  crack  of  thunder  spake  judgment  against  the  rebellious  Is- 
raelites, and  every  drop  of  rain  was  a  witness  of  their  sin  ;  and 
now  they  found  they  had  displeased  him,  which  ruleth  in  the  hea- 
ven, by  rejecting  the  man,  that  ruled  for  him  on  earth.  The  thun- 
dering voice  of  God,  that  had  lately  in  their  sight  confounded  the 
Philistines,  they  now  understood  to  speak  fearful  things  against 
them.  No  marvel,  if  now  they  fell  upon  their  knees,  not  to  Saul 
whom  they  had  chosen,  but  to  Samuel ;  who,  being  thus  cast  off  by 
them,  is  thus  countenanced  in  heaven.  1  Sam,  xii. 


SAUL'S  SACRIFICE. 

God  never  meant  the  kingdom  should  either  stay  long  in  the  tribe 
of  Benjamin,  or  remove  suddenly  from  the  person  of  Saul.  Many 
years  did  Saul  reign  over  Israel,  yet  God  computes  him  but  two 
years  a  king.  That  is  not  accounted  of  God  to  be  done,  which  is 
not  lawfully  done.  When  God  which  chose  Saul  rejected  him, 
he  was  no  more  a  king,  but  a  tyrant.  Israel  obeyed  him  still, 
but  God  makes  no  reckoning  of  him  as  his  deputy,  but  as  an 
usurper. 

Saul  was  of  good  years,  when  he  was  advanced  to  the  kingdom. 
His  son  Jonathan,  the  first  year  of  his  father's  reign,  could  lead  a 
thousand  Israelites  into  the  field,  and  give  a  foil  to  the  Philistines. 
And  now  Israel  could  not  think  themselves  less  happy  in  their 
prince,  than  in  their  king  :  Jonathan  is  the  heir  of  his  father's  vic- 
tory, as  well  as  of  his  valour  and  his  estate.  The  Philistines  were 
quiet  after  those  first  thunder-claps,  all  the  time  of  Samuel's  go- 
vernment ;  now  they  begin  to  stir  under  Saul. 

How  utterly  is  Israel  disappointed  in  their  hopes  !  That  security 
and  protection,  which  they  promised  themselves  in  the  name  of  a 
king,  they  found  in  a  prophet,  failed  of  in  a  warrior.  They  were 
more  safe  under  the  mantle,  than  under  arms.  Both  enmity  and 
safeguard  are  from  heaven.  Goodness  hath  been  ever  a  stronger 
guard  than  valour.  It  is  the  surest  policy,  always  to  have  peace 
with  God. 

We  find  by  the  spoils,  that  the  Philistines  had  some  battles  with 
Israel  which  are  not  recorded.  After  the  thunder  had  scared  them 
into  a  peace,  and  restitution  of  all  the  bordering  cities,  from  Ekron 
to  Gath,  they  had  taken  new  heart,  and  so  beslaved  Israel,  that 
■they  had  neither  weapon  nor  smith  left  amongst  them ;  yet  even 
in  this  miserable  nakedness  of  Israel,  have  they  both  fought  and 
overcome.  Now  might  you  have  seen  the  unarmed  Israelites, 
marching  with  their  slings,  and  plough-staves,  and  hooks,  and  forks, 
and  other  instruments  of  their  husbandry,  against  a  mighty 
and  well-furnished  enemy,  and  returning  iaden  both  with  arms 
and  victory.  No  armour  is  of  proof  against  the  Almighty  ;  nei- 
ther is  he  unweaponcd,  that  carries  the  revenge  of  God.  There 
is  the  same  disadvantage  in  our  spiritual  conflicts:  we  are 
turned  naked  to  principalities  and  powers  :  whilst  we  go  under  the 


saul's  sacrifice.  2S5 
conduct  of  the  Prince  of  our  Peace,  we  cannot  but  be  boki 
victorious. 

Vain  men  think  to  overpower  God  with  munition  and  multitude. 
The  Philistines  are  not  any  way  more  strong,  than  in  conceit : 
thirty  thousand  chariots,  six  thousand  horsemen,  footmen  like  the 
sand  for  number,  make  them  scorn  Israel  no  less,  than  Israel  fears 
them.  When  I  see  the  miraculous  success,  which  had  blessed  the 
Israelites,  in  all  their  late  conflicts  with  these  very  Philistines,  with 
the  Ammonites,  I  cannot  but  wonder  how  they  could  fear.  They, 
which  in  the  time  of  their  sin  found  God  to  raise  such  trophies 
over  their  enemies,  run  now  into  caves,  and  rocks,  and  pits,  to 
hide  them  from  the  faces  of  men,  when  they  found  God  reconciled, 
and  themselves  penitent.  No  Israelite  but  hath  some  cowardly 
blood  in  him :  if  we  had  no  fear,  faith  would  have  no  master)' ; 
yet  these  fearful  Israelites  shall  cut  the  throats  of  those  confident 
Philistines.  Doubt  and  resolution  are  not  meet  measures  of  our 
success :  a  presumptuous  confidence  goes  commonly  bleeding  home, 
when  an  humble  fear  returns  in  triumph. 

Fear  drives  those  Israelites,  which  dare  shew  their  heads,  out  of 
the  caves  unto  Saul,  and  makes  them  cling  unto  their  new  king. 
How  troublesome  were  the  beginnings  of  Saul's  honour!  Surely, 
if  that  man  had  not  exceeded  Israel  no  less  in  courage  than  in  sta- 
ture, he  had  now  hid  himself  in  a  cave,  which  before  hid  himself 
among  the  stuff;  but  now,  though  the  Israelites  ran  away  from 
him,  yet  he  ran  not  away  from  them. 

It  was  not  any  doubt  of  Saul's  valour,  that  put  his  people  to 
their  heels  ;  it  was  the  absence  of  Samuel.  If  the  prophet  had 
come  up,  Israel  would  never  have  run  away  from  their  king. 
While  they  had  a  Samuel  alone,  they  were  never  well  till  they  had 
a  Saul ;  now  they  have  a  Saul,  they  are  as  far  from  contentment, 
because  they  want  a  Samuel :  unless  both  join  together,  they  think 
there  can  be  no  safety.  Where  the  temporal  and  spiritual  state 
combine  not  together,  there  can  follow  nothing  but  distraction  in 
the  people.  The  prophets  receive  and  deliver  the  will  of  God  ; 
kings  execute  it :  the  prophets  are  directed  by  God  ;  the  people 
are  directed  by  their  kings.  Where  men  do  not  see  God  before 
them  in  his  ordinances,  their  hearts  cannot  but  fail  them,  both  in 
their  respects  tq  their  superiors,  and  their  courage  in  themselves. 
Piety  is  the  mother  of  perfect  subjection.  As  all  authority  is  de- 
rived from  heaven,  so  it  is  thence  established:  those  governors, 
that  would  command  the  hearts  of  men,  must  shew  them  God  in 
their  faces. 

No  Israelite  can  think  himself  safe  without  a  prophet.  Saul  had 
given  them  good  proof  of  his  fortitude,  in  his  late  victory  over 
the  Ammonites  ;  but  then  proclamation  was  made  before  the  fight 
through  all  the  country,  that  every  man  should  come  up  after  Saul 
and  Samuel.  If  Samuel  had  not  been  with  Saul,  they  would  rather 
have  ventured  the  loss  of  their  oxen,  than  the  hazard  of  them- 
selves. How  much  less  should  we  presume  of  any  safety  in  our 
.spiritual  combats,  when  we  have  not  a  prophet  to  lead  us  !  It  v, 


\ 

296  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

one,  saving  that  it  savours  of  more  contempt,  not  to  have  God's 
seers,  and  not  to  use  them.  He  can  be  no  true  Israelite,  that  is 
not  distressed  with  the  want  of  a  Samuel. 

As  one  that  had  learned  to  begin  his  rule  in  obedience,  Saul 
stays  seven  days  in  Gilgal,  according  to  the  prophet's  direction  ; 
and  still  he  looks  long  for  Samuel,  which  had  promised  his  presence. 
Six  days  he  expects,  and  part  of  the  seventh,  yet  Samuel  is  not 
come.  The  Philistines  draw  near ;  the  Israelites  run  away  ;  Samuel 
comes  not ;  they  must  fight ;  God  must  be  supplicated :  what 
should  Saul  do  ?  Rather  than  God  should  want  a  sacrifice,  and 
the  people  satisfaction,  Saul  will  command  that,  which  lie  knew 
Samuel  would,  if  he  were  present,  both  command  and  execute. 
"  It  is  not  possible,"  thinks  he,  "  that  God  should  be  displeased 
with  a  sacrifice :  he  cannot  but  be  displeased  with  indevotion. 
Why  do  the  people  run  from  me,  but  for  want  of  means  to  make 
God  sure  ?  What  should  Samuel  rather  wish,  than  that  we  should 
be  godly  ?  The  act  shall  be  the  same  ;  the  only  difference  shall  be 
in  the  person.  If  Samuel  be  wanting  to  us,  we  will  not  be  wanting 
to  God.  It  is  but  a  holy  prevention,  to  be  devout  unbidden." 
Upon  this  conceit,  he  commands  a  sacrifice. 

Saul's  sins  make  no  great  shew,  yet  are  they  still  heinously 
taken :  the  impiety  of  them  was  more  hidden,  and  inward  from  all 
eyes  but  God's.  If  Saul  were  among  the  prophets  before,  will  he 
now  be  among  the  priests  ?  Can  there  be  any  devotion  in  disobe- 
dience ?  O  vain  man  !  What  can  it  avail  thee,  to  sacrifice  to  God, 
against  God  ?  Hypocrites  rest  only  in  formalities.  If  the  outward 
act  be  done,  it  sufhceth  them,  though  the  ground  be  distrust,  the 
manner  irreverence,  the  carriage  presumption. 

What  then  should  Saul  have  done  ?  Upon  the  trust  of  God  and 
Samuel  he  should  have  staid  out  the  last  hour,  and  have  secretly 
sacrificed  himself  and  his  prayers,  unto  that  God  which  loves  obe- 
dience above  sacrifice.  Our  faith  is  most  commendable  in  the  last 
act.  It  is  no  praise  to  hold  out,  until  we  be  hard  driven.  Then, 
when  we  are  forsaken  of  means,  to  live  by  faith  in  our  God,  is 
worthy  of  a  crown.  God  will  have  no  worship  of  our  devising  : 
we  may  only  do  what  he  bids  us ;  not  bid  what  he  commands  not. 
Never  did  any  true  piety  arise  out  of  the  corrupt  puddle  of  man's 
brain  :  if  it  flow  not  from  heaven,  it  is  odious  to  heaven.  What 
was  it,  that  did  thus  taint  the  valour  of  Saul  with  this  weakness, 
but  distrust  ?  He  saw  some, Israelites  go  ;  he  thought  all  would  go  : 
he  saw  the  Philistines  come ;  he  saw  Samuel  came  not :  his  diffi- 
dence was  guilty  of  his  misdevotion.  There  is  nO  sin,  that  hath 
not  its  ground  from  unbelief:  this,  as  it  was  the  first  infection 
of  our  pure  nature,  so  is  the  true  source  of  all  corruption :  man 
could  not  sin,  if  he  distrusted  not. 

The  sacrifice  is  no  sooner  ended,  than  Samuel  is  come :  and 
why  came  he  no  sooner  ?  He  could  not  be  a  seer,  and  not  know 
how  much  he  was  looked  for,  how  troublesome  and  dangerous  his 
absence  must  needs  be.  He,  that  could  tell  Saul  that  he  should 
prophesy,  could  tell  that  he  would  sacrifice;  yet  he  purposely 


Jonathan's  victory  and  saul's  oath. 


297 


forbears  to  cotne,  for  the  trial  of  him  that  must  be  the  champion 
of  God.  Samuel  durst  not  have  done  thus,  but  by  direction  from 
his  Master:  it  is  the  ordinary  course  of  God,  to  prove  us  by  de- 
lays, and  to  drive  us  to  exigents,  that  we  may  shew  what  we  are. 
He,  that  anointed  Saul,  might  lawfully  from  God  control  him. 
There  must  be  discretion,  there  may  not  be  partiality,  in  our  cen- 
sures of  the  greatest.  God  makes  difference  of  sins ;  none,  of  per- 
sons :  if  we  make  difference  of  sins  according  to  persons,  we  are 
unfaithful  both  to  God  and  man. 

Scarce  is  Saul  warm  in  his  kingdom,  when  he  hath  even  lost  it. 
Samuel's  first  words  after  the  inauguration  are  of  Saul's  rejection, 
and  the  choice  and  establishment  of  his  successor.  It  was  ever 
God's  puruose,  to  settle  the  kingdom  in  Judah.  He,  that  took  oc- 
casion by  the  people's  sin  to  raise  up  Saul  in  Benjamin,  takes  oc- 
casion by  Saul's  sin  to  establish  the  crown  upon  David.  In  human 
probability,  the  kingdom  was  fixed  upon  Saul,  and  his  more  worthy 
son  ;  in  God's  decree,  it  did  but  pass  through  the  hands  of  Benja- 
min to  Judah.  Besides  trouble*,  how  fickle  are  these  earthly  glo- 
ries !  Saul,  doubtless,  looked  upon  Jonathan  as  the  inheritor  of  his 
crown;  and  behold,  ere  his  peaceable  possession,  lie  hath  lost  it 
from  himself.  Our  sins  strip  us,  not  of  our  hopes  in  heaven  only, 
but  of  our  earthly  blessings.  The  way  to  entail  a  comfortable 
prosperity  upon  our  seed  after  us,  is  our  conscionable  obedience 
unto  God.  1  Sam.  xiii. 


JONATHAN'S  VICTORY  AND  SAUL'S  OATH. 

It  is  no  wonder,  if  Saul's  courage  were  much  cooled  with  the 
heavy  news  of  his  rejection.  After  this  he  stays  under  the  pome- 
granate tree  in  Gibeah  :  he  stirs  not  towards  the  garrison  of  the 
Philistines.  As  hope  is  the  mother  of  fortitude,  so  nothing  doth 
more  breed  cowardliness  than  despair.  Every  thing  dismays  that 
heart,  which  God  hath  put  out  of  protection. 

Worthy  Jonathan,  which  sprung  from  Saul  as  some  sweet  imp 
grows  out  of  a  crabstock,  is  therefore  full  of  valour,  because  full 
of  faith.  He  well  knew,  that  he  should  have  nothing  but  discou- 
ragements from  his  father's  fear  ;  as  rather  choosing  therefore,  to 
avoid  all  the  blocks  that  might  lie  in  the  way  than  to  leap  over 
them,  he  departs  secretly  without  the  dismission  of  his  Gather,  or 
notice  of  the  people :  only  God  1  "uls  him,  and  his  armour-bearer 
follows  him.  O  admirable  faith  of  Jonathan,  whom  neither  the 
steepness  of  rocks,  nor  the  multitude  of  enemies  can  dissuade  from 
so  unlikely  an  assault!  Is  it  possible,  that  two  men,  whereof  one 
was  weaponless,  should  dare  to  think  of  encountering  so  many 
thousands?  O  divine  power  of  faith,  that  in  all  difficulties  and 
attempts,  makes  a  man  more  than  men,  and  regards  no  more  ar- 
mies of  men,  than  swarms  of  flies!  There  is  no  restraint  to  ike 
Lord,  saith  he,  to  save  with  many,  or  by  few.  It  was  not  so  great 
news,  that  Saul  should  be  amongst  the  prophets,  as  that  such  a 
word  should  come  from  the  son  of  Saul, 


2SS 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


It*  his  father  had  had  hut  so  much  divinity,  he  had  not  sacri- 
ficed. The  strength  of  his  God,  is  the  ground  of  his  strength  in 
God.  The  question  is  not,  what  Jonathan  can  do,  but  what  God 
can  do  ;  whose  power  is  not  in  the  means,  but  in  himself.  That 
man's  faith  is  well  underlaid,  that  upholds  itself  by  the  omnipo- 
tency  of  God  :  thus  the  father  of  the  faithful  built  his  assurance 
upon  the  power  of  the  Almighty. 

But  many  things  God  can  do,  which  he  will  not  do.  How  know- 
est  thou,  Jonathan,  that  God  will  be  as  forward,  as  he  is  able,  to 
give  thee  victory  ?  For  this,"  saith  he,  "  I  have  a  watch- word 
from  God,  out  of  the  mouths  of  the  Philistines  ;  If  they  say, 
Come  up,  ~ct  will  go  up;  for  God  hath  delivered  them  into  our 
hands :  If  they  say,  Tarry  (ill  we  come  to  you,  ice  will  stand  still." 
Jonathan  was  too  wise  to  trust  unto  a  casual  presage.  There  might 
be  some  far-fetched  conjectures  of  the  event  from  the  word:  lie 
will  come  to  you,  was  a  threat  of  resolution  ;  Come  you  to  us,  was 
a  challenge  of  fear ;  or  perhaps,  Come  up  to  us,  was  a  word  of 
insult,  from  them  that  trusted  to  the  inaccessiblcness  of  the 
place,  and  multitudes  of  men.  Insult  is  from  pride  ;  pride  ar- 
gued a  fall ;  but  faith  hath  nothing  to  do  with  probabilities,  as 
that  which  acknowledgeth  no  argument  but  demonstration.  If 
there  had  not  been  an  instinct  from  God  of  this  assured  warrant  of 
success,  Jonathan  had  presumed,  instead  of  believing  ;  and  had 
tempted  that  God,  whom  he  professed  to  glorify  by  his  trust.  There 
can  be  no  faith,  where  there  is  no  promise;  and  where  there  is  a 
promise,  there  can  be  no  presumption. 

Words  are  voluntary.  The  tongues  of  the  Philistines  were  as 
free  to  say,  Tarry,  as  Come :  that  God,  in  whom  our  verv  tongues 
move,  over-ruled  them  eo,  as  now  they  shall  speak  that  word, 
which  shall  cut  their  own  throats.  They  knew  no  more  harm  in 
Come,  than  Tarry:  both  were  alike  safe  for  the  sound,  for  the 
sense  ;  but  he,  that  put  a  signification  of  their  slaughter  in  the  one, 
not  in  the  other,  did  put  that  word  into  their  mouth,  whereby  they 
might  invite  their  own  destruction.  The  disposition  of  our  words 
is  from  the  providence  of  the  Almighty.  God  and  our  hearts  have 
not  always  the  same  meaning  in  our  speeches.  In  those  words 
which  we  speak  at  random  or  out  of  affectation,  God  hath  a  fur- 
ther drift  of  his  own  glory,  and  perhaps  our  judgment.  If  wicked 
men  say,  Our  tongues  are  our  oxen,  they  could  not  say  so,  but 
from  him,  whom  they  defy  in  ^ying  so,  and  who  makes  their 
tongue  their  executioner. 

No  sooner  doth  Jonathan  hear  this  invitation,  than  he  answers  it. 
He,  whose  hands  had  learned  never  to  fail  his  heart,  puts  himself 
upon  his  hands  and  knees  to  climb  up  into  this  danger,  The  ex- 
p'oit  was  not  more  difficult  than  the  way :  the  pain  of  the  passage 
was  equal  to  the  peril  of  the  enterprise,  that  his  faith  might  equally 
triumph  over  both.  He  doth  not  say,  "  How  shall  I  get  up?" 
much  less,  "  Which  way  shall  I  get  down  again  r"  but,  as  if  the 
ground  were  level  and  the  action  dangerless,  he  puts  himself  into 
the  view  of  the  Philistines.    Faith  is  never  so  glorious,  as  when  it 


jokathan's  victory  and  saul's  oath.  299 
hath  most  opposition,  and  will  not  sec  it :  reason  looks  ever  to  the 
means,  faith  to  the  end  ;  and  instead  of  consulting-  how  to  effect, 
resolves  what  shall  be  effected.  The  way  to  heaven  is  more  steep, 
more  painful.  O  God  !  how  perilous  a  passage  hast  thou  appointed 
for  thy  labouring  pilgrims !  If  difficulties  will  discourage  us,  we 
shall  but  climb  to  fall.  When  we  are  lifting  up  our  foot  to  the  last 
step,  there  are  the  Philistines  of  death,  of  temptations,  to  grapple 
With  :  give  us  but  faith,  and  turn  us  loose  to  the  spite  either  of 
earth  or  hell. 

Jonathan  is  now  on  the  top  of  the  hill ;  and  now,  as  if  he  had 
an  army  at  his  heels,  he  flies  upon  the  host  of  the  Philistines.  His 
hands,  that  might  have  been  weary  with  climbing,  are  immediately 
commanded  to  fight ;  and  deal  as  many  deaths  as  blows  to  the 
amazed  enemy.  He  needs  not  walk  far  for  this  execution  :  him- 
self and  his  armour-bearer,  in  one  half  acre's  space,  have  slain 
twenty  Philistines. 

It  is  not  long  since  Jonathan  smote  their  garrison  in  the  hill  of 
Geba:  perhaps,  from  that  time,  his  name  and  presence  carried 
terror  in  it ;  but  sure,  if  the  Philistines  had  not  seen  and  felt  more 
than  a  man  in  the  face  and  hands  of  Jonathan,  they  had  not  so 
easily  grovelled  in  death. 

The  blows  and  shrieks  cannot  but  affect  the  next,  who  with  a 
ghastly  noise  ran  away  from  death,  and  affright  their  fellows  no 
less  than  themselves  are  affrighted.  The  clamour  and  fear  runs  on, 
like  fire  in  a  train,  to  the  very  foremost  ranks.  Every  man  would 
fly  ;  and  thinks  there  is  so  much  more  cause  of  flight,  for  that  his 
ears  apprehend  all,  his  eyes  nothing.  P^uch  man  thinks  his  fellow 
stands  in  his  way,  and  therefore  instead  of  turning  upon  him  which 
was  the  cause  of  their  flight,  they  bend  their  swords  upon  those 
whom  they  imagine  to  be  the  hinderers  of  their  flight;  and  now 
a  miraculous  astonishment  hath  made  the  Philistines  Jonathan's 
champions  and  executioners.  He  follows,  and  kills  those  which 
helped  to  kill  others  ;  and  the  more  he  killed,  the  more  they  feared 
ana  fled,  and  the  more  they  killed  each  other  in  the  flight :  and 
that  fear  itself  might  prevent  Jonathan  in  killing  them,  the  earth 
itself  trembles  under  them.  Thus  doth  God  at  once  strike  them 
with  his  own  hand,  with  Jonathan's,  with  theirs  ;  and  makes  them 
run  away  from  life,  while  they  would  fly  from  an  enemy.  Where 
the  Almighty  purposes  destruction  to  any  people,  he  needs  not 
call  in  foreign  powers ;  he  needs  not  any  hands  or  weapons,  but 
their  own  :  he  can  make  vast  bodies  die  no  other  death,  than  their 
own  weight.  We  cannot  be  sure  to  be  friends  among  ourselves, 
while  God  is  our  enemy. 

The  Philistines  fly  fast,  but  the  news  of  their  flight  over-runs 
them  even  unto  Saul's  pomegranate  tree.  The  watchmen  discern, 
afar  off,  a  flight  and  execution.  Search  is  made  ;  Jonathan  is  found 
missing.  Saul  will  consult  with  the  ark  :  hypocrites,  while  they 
have  leisure,  will  perhaps  be  holy  :  for  some' fits  of  devotion  they 
cannot  be  bettered.  But  when  the  tumult  increased,  Saul's  pietv 
decreases  :  it  is  now  no  season  to  talk  with  a  priest;  "  Withdraw 


300 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


thine  hand,  Ahinh  ;  the  cpliod  must  give  place  to  arms  :  it  is  more 
time  to  fight  than  to  pray."  What  needs  he  God's  guidance,  when 
he  sees  lus  way  before  him  ?  He,  that  before  would  needs  sacrifice 
ere  he  fought,  will  now  in  the  other  extreme  fight  in  a  wilful  in- 
devotion.  Worldly  minds  regard  holy  duties  no  further,  than  may 
stand  with  their  own  carnal  purposes.  Very  easy  occasions  shall 
interrupt  them  in  their  religious  intentions ;  like  unto  children, 
which,  if  a  bird  do  but  fly  in  their  way,  cast  their  eye  from  their 
book. 

But  if  Saul  serve  not  God  in  one  kind,  he  will  serve  him  in 
another  :  if  he  honour  him  not  by  attending  on  the  ark,  he  will 
honour  him  bv  a  vow.  His  negligence  in  the  one,  is  recompensed 
with  his  zeal  in  the  other.  All  Israel  is  adjured  not  to  eat  any  food 
until  the  evening.  Hypocrisy  is  ever  masked  with  a  blind  and 
thankless  zeal.  To  wait  upon  the  ark  and  consult  with  God's 
priest  in  all  cases  of  importance,  was  a  direct  commandment  of 
God  :  to  eat  no  food  in  the  pursuit  of  their  enemies,  was  not  com- 
manded. Saul  leaves  that  which  he  was  bidden,  and  does  that 
which  he  was  not  required.  To  eat  no  food  all  day  was  more  dif- 
ficult, than  to  attend  an  hour  upon  the  ark  :  the  voluntary  services 
of  hypocrites  are  many  times  more  painful,  than  the  duties  en- 
joined by  God. 

In  what  awe  did  all  Israel  stand  of  the  oath  even  of  Saul  !  It  was 
not  their  own  vow,  but  Saul's  for  them  ;  yet  coming  into  the  wood, 
where  they  saw  the  hone)'  dropping,  and  found  the  meat  as  ready 
as  their  appetite,  they  dare  not  touch  that  sustenance,  and  will 
rather  endure  famine  and  fainting,  than  an  indiscreet  curse. 
Doubtless,  God  had  brought  those  bees  thither  on  purpose  to  try 
the  constancy  of  Israel.  Israel  could  not  but  think  (that  which  Jo- 
nathan said)  that  the  vow  was  unadvised  and  injurious;  yet  they 
will  rather  die  than  violate  it.  How  sacred  should  we  hold  the 
obligation  of  our  own  vows  in  things  just  and  expedient,  when  the 
bond  of -another's  rash  vow  is  thus  indissoluble  ! 

There  was  a  double  mischief  followed  upon  Saul's  oath,  an 
abatement  of  the  victory,  and  eating  with  the  blood  ;  for,  on  the 
one  side,  the  people  were  so  faint,  that  they  were  more  likely  to 
die  than  kill  ;  they  could  neither  run  nor  strike  in  this  emptiness ; 
neither  hands  nor  feet  can  do  their  office,  when  the  stomach  is  neg- 
lected :  on  the  other,  an  unmeet  forbearance  causes  a  ravenous 
repast ;  hunger  knows  neither  choice,  nor  order,  nor  measure. 
The  one  of  these  was  a  wrong  to  Israel,  the  other  was  a  wrong 
done  by  Israel  to  God  ;  Saul's  zeal  was  guilty  of  both.  A  rash 
vow  is  seldom  ever  free  from  inconvenience  :  the  heart,  that  hath 
unnecessarily  entangled  itself,  draws  mischief  either  upon  itself  or 
others. 

Jonathan  was  ignorant  of  his  father's  adjuration.  He  knew  no 
reason,  why  he  should  not  refresh  himself  in  so  profitable  a  service, 
with  a  little  taste  of  honey  upon  his  spear.  Full  well  had  he  de- 
served this  unsought  dainty  ;  and  now,  behold  his  honey  is  turned 
into  gail :  if  it  were  sweet  in  the  mouth,  it  was  bitter  in  the  soul ; 


Jonathan's  victory  and  saul's  oath. 


301 


if  the  eyes  of  his  body  were  enlightened,  the  light  of  God's  coun- 
tenance was  clouded  by  this  act.  After  he  heard  of  the  oath,  he 
pleads  justly  against  it,  the  loss  of  so  fair  an  opportunity  of  re- 
venge, and  the  trouble  of  Israel  ;  yet  neither  his  reasons  against 
the  oath,  nor  his  ignorance  of  the  oath,  can  excuse  him  from  a  sin 
of  ignorance  in  violating  that,  which  first  he  knew  not,  and  then 
knew  unreasonable.* 

Now  Saul's  leisure  would  serve  him  to  ask  counsel  of  God.  As 
before  Saul  would  not  inquire,  so  now  God  will  not  answer.  Well 
might  Saul  have  round  sins  enough  of  his  own,  whereto  to  impute 
this  silence.  Ke  hath  grace  enough  to  know  that  God  was  offended, 
and  to  guess  at  the  cause  of  his  offence :  sooner  will  a  hypocrite 
find  out  another  man's  sin  than  his  own. 

And  now  he  swears  more  rashly  to  punish  with  death,  the  breach 
of  that  which  he  had  sworn  rashly.  The  lots  were  cast,  and  Saul 
prays  for  the  decision  ;  Jonathan  is  taken :  even  the  prayers  of 
wicked  men  are  sometimes  heard,  although  in  justice,  not  in  mercy. 
Saul  himself  was  punished  not  a  little,  in  the  fall  of  this  lot  upon 
Jonathan.  Surely  Saul  sinned  more  in  making  this  vow,  than  Jo- 
nathan in  breaking  it  unwittingly  ;  and  now  the  father  smarts  for 
the  rashness  of  his  double  vow,  by  the  unjust  sentence  of  death 
upon  so  worthy  a  son. 

God  had  never  singled  out  Jonathan  by  his  lot,  if  he  had  not 
been  displeased  with  his  act.  Vows  rashly  made  may  not  be  rashly 
broken.  If  the  thing  we  have  vowed  be  not  evil  in  itself,  or  in  the 
effect,  we  cannot  violate  it  without  evil.  Ignorance  cannot  acquit, 
if  it  can  abate  our  sin.  It  is  like,  if  Jonathan  had  heard  his  father's 
adjuration,  he  had  not  transgressed  :  his  absence  at  the  time  of  that 
oath  cannot  excuse  him  from  displeasure.  What  shall  become  of 
those,  which  may  know  the  charge  of  their  heavenly  Father,  and 
will  not  ?  which  do  know  his  cliarge,  and  will  not  keep  it  ?  Affecta- 
tion of  ignorance,  and  willing  disobedience,  is  desperate. 

Death  was  too  hard  a  censure  for  such  an  unknown  offence. 
The  cruel  piety  of  Saul  will  revenge  the  breach  of  his  own  charge, 
so  as  he  would  be  loth  God  should  avenge  on  himself  the  breach 
of  his  divine  command.  If  Jonathan  had  not  found  better  friends 
than  his  father,  so  noble  a  victorv  had  been  recompensed  with  death. 
He,  that  saved  Israel  from  the  Philistines,  is  saved  by  Israel  from 
the  hand  of  his  father.  Saul  hath  sworn  Jonathan's  death  ;  the 
people  contrarily  swear  his  preservation.  His  kingdom  was  not 
yet  so  absolute,  that  he  could  run  away  with  so  unmerciful  a  jus- 
tice. Their  oath  that  savoured  of  disobedience,  prevailed  against 
his  oath  that  savoured  too  strong  of  cruelty.  Neither  doubt  I,  but 
Saul  was  secretly  not  displeased  with  this  loving  resistance.  So 
long  as  his  heart  was  not  false  to  his  oath,  he  could  not  be  sorry 
that  Jonathan  should  live.  1  Sam.  niv. 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


BOOK  XIII. 


TO  THE  RIGHT  HONOURABLE 

SIR  THOMAS  EDMONDS,  KNIGHT, 

TREASURER  OF  HIS  MAJESTY'S  HOUSEHOLD, 
AND  OF  HIS  MOST  HONOURABLE  PRIVY  COUNCIL. 


RIGHT  HONOURABLE  I 

After  your  long  and  happy  acquaintance  with  other  courts 
and  kingdoms,  may  it  please  you  to  compare  with  them  the  estate 
of  old  Israel.  You  shall  find  the  same  hand  swaying  all  sceptres ; 
and  you  shall  meet  with  such  a  proportion  of  dispositions  and 
occurrences,  that  you  will  say,  "  Men  are  still  the  same,  if  their 
names  and  faces  differ."  You  shall  find  envy  and  mutability  an- 
cient courtiers i  and  shall  confess  the  vices  of  men  still  alive,  if 
themselves  die.  You  shall  see  God  still  honouring  those  that  honour 
him,  and  both  rescuing  innocence  and  crowning  it.  It  is  not  for 
me  to  anticipate  your  deeper  and  more  judicious  observations.  I 
am  bold  to  dedicate  this  piece  of  my  labour  to  your  Honour,  in  a 
thankful  acknowledgment  of  those  noble  respects,  I  have  found 
from  you,  both  in  France  and  at  Home.  In  lieic  of  all  which,  I 
can  but  pray  for  your  happiness,  and  vow  myself 

Your  Honour's,  in  all  humble  observance, 

JOSEPH  HALL. 


SAUL  AND  AG  AG. 

God  holds  it  no  derogation  from  his  mercy,  to  bear  a  quarrel 
long,  where  he  hates.  He,  whose  anger  to  the  vessels  of  wrath  is 
everlasting,  even  in  temporal  judgment  revengeth  late.  The  sins 
of  his  own  children  are  no  sooner  done,  and  repented  of,  than 
forgotten  ;  but  the  malicious  sins  of  his  enemies  stick  fast  in  an 
infinite  displeasure  :  /  remember  what  Amalek  did  to  Israel ;  how 
they  laid  wait  for  them  by  tlieway,  as  they  came  up  from  Egypt. 

"  Alas,  Lord,"  might  Amalek  say,  "  they  were  our  forefathers: 
we  never  knew  their  faces,  no  not  their  names  ;  the  fact  was  so  far 
from  our  consent,  that  it  is  almost  past  the  memory  of  our  histo- 


SAUL  AND  AGAO. 


SO") 


ries."  It  is  not  in  the  power  of  time,  to  rase  out  any  of  the  arrear- 
ages of  God.  We  may  lay  up  wrath  for  our  posterity.  Happy- 
is"  that  child,  whose  progenitors  are  in  heaven:  he  is  left  an  inhe- 
ritor of  blessing',  together  with  estate;  whereas  wicked  ancestors 
lose  the  thank  of  a  rich  patrimony,  by  the  curse  that  attends  it. 
He,  that  thinks  because  punishment  is  deferred,  that  God  hath  for- 
given or  forgot  his  offence,  is  unacquainted  with  justice,  and 
knows  not,  that  time  makes  no  difference  in  eternity. 

The  Amalekites  were  wicked  idolaters,  and  therefore  could  not 
want  many  present  sins,  which  deserved  their  extirpation.  That 
God,  which  had  taken  notice  of  all  their  oHenccs,  picks  out  this 
one  noted  sin  of  their  forefathers,  for  revenge.  Among  all  their  in- 
dignities, this  shall  bear  the  name  of  their  judgment :  as  in  legal 
proceedings  with  malefactors,  one  indictment  found  gives  the  style 
of  their  condemnation.  In  the  lives  of  those  which  are  notoriously 
wicked,  God  cannot  look  beside  a  sin  ;  yet  when  he  draws  to  an 
execution,  he  fastens  his  sentence  upon  one  evil  as  principal,  others 
as  accessaries;  so  as  at  the  last,  one  sin,  which  perhaps  we  make 
no  account  of,  shall  pay  for  all. 

The  paganish  idolatries  of  the  Amalekites  could  not  but  be 
greater  sins  to  God,  than  their  hard  measure  to  Israel ;  yet  God  sets 
this  upon  the  file,  while  the  rest  are  not  recorded.  Their  super- 
stitions might  be  of  ignorance,  this  sin  was  of  malice.  Malicious 
wickednesses,  of  all  others,  as  they  are  in  greatest  opposition  to 
the  goodness  and  mercy  of  God,  shall  be  sure  of  the  payment  of 
greatest  vengeance. 

The  detestation  of  God  may  be  measured  by  his  revenge  ; 
Slay  both  man  and  woman,  both  infant  and  suckling,  both  ox  and 
sheep,  camel  and  ass ;  not  themselves  only,  but  everything  that 
drew  life,  either  from  them  or  for  their  use,  must  die.  When  the 
God  of  mercy  speaks  such  bloody  words,  the  provocation  must 
needs  be  vehement.  Sins  of  infirmity  do  but  mutter;  spiteful  sins 
cry  loud  for  judgment  in  the  ears  of  God.  Prepensed  malice,  in 
courts  of  human  justice,  aggravates  the  murder,  and  sharpens  the 
sentence  of  death. 

What  then  was  this  sin  of  Amalek,  that  is  called  unto  this  late 
reckoning?  What?  buttheir  envious  and  unprovoked  onsets  upon 
the  back  of  Israel :  this  was  it,  that  God  took  so  to  heart,  as  that  he 
not  only  remembers  it  now  bv  Samuel,  but  he  bids  Israel  ever  to 
remember  it  by  Moses;  Remember  how  Amalek  met  thee  by  the 
Way,  and  smote  the  hindmost  of  you,  all  that  were  feeble  behind 
thee,  when  thou  wast  faint  and  weary.  Besides  this,  did  Amalek 
meet  Israel  in  a  pitched  battle  openly,  in  Rephidim;  forthat,  God 
paid  them  in  the  present:  the  hand  of  Moses  lifted  up  on  the 
hill  slew  them  in  the  valley  :  he  therefore  repeats  not  that  quarrel  ; 
but  the  cowardly  and  cruel  attempts  upon  an  impotent  enemy,  stick 
still  in  the  stomach  of  the  Almighty.  Oppression  and  wrong 
upon  even  terms  are  not  so  heinous  unto  God,  as  those  that  are 
Upon  manifest  disadvantage:  in  the  one,  there  is  a  hazard  of  re- 
turn; in  the  other,  there  i:?  ever  a  tyrannous  insultation.    Go  J 


304  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

takes  still  the  weaker  part,  and  will  be  sure  therefore  to  plague 
them,  which  seek  to  put  injuries  on  the  unable  to  resist. 

This  sin  of  Anialek  slept  all  the  time  of  the  judges  ;  those  gover- 
nors were  only  for  rescue  and  defence  ;  now,  so  soon  as  Israel  hath 
a  king,  and  that  king  is  settled  in  peace,  God  gives  charge  to  call 
them  to  account.  It  was  that,  which  God  had  both  threatened 
and  sworn  ;  and  now  he  chooses  out  a  fit  season  for  the  execution  : 
as  we  use  to  say  of  winter,  the  judgments  of  God  do  never  rot  in 
the  sky,  but  shall  fall,  if  late,  yet  surely,  yet  seasonably.  There 
is  small  comfort  in  the  delay  of  vengeance,  while  we  are  sure  it 
shall  lose  nothing  in  the  way,  by  length  of  protraction. 

The  Kenites  were  the  offspring  of  Hobab  or  Jethro,  father-in- 
law  to  Moses.  The  affinity  of  him,  to  whom  Israel  owed  their  de- 
liverance and  being,  was  worthy  of  respect ;  but  it  was  the  mercy 
of  that  good  and  wise  Midianite,  shewed  unto  Israel  in  the  wilder- 
ness, by  his  grave  advice,  cheerful  gratulation,  and  aid,  which  won 
this  grateful  forbearance  of  his  posterity.  He,  that  is  not  less  in 
mercy  than  in  justice,  as  he  challenged  Amalek's  sin  of  their  suc- 
ceeding generations,  so  he  derives  the  recompence  of  Jethro's 
kindness  unto  his  far-descended  issue.  Those,  that  were  unborn 
many  ages  after  Jethro's  death,  receive  life  from  his  dust,  and  fa- 
vour from  his  hospitality.  The  name  of  their  dead  grandfather 
saves  them  from  the  common  destruction  of  their  neighbours. 
The  services  of  our  love  to  God's  children  are  never  thankless : 
when  we  are  dead  and  rotten,  they  shall  live  and  procure  blessings 
to  those,  which  never  knew  perhaps  nor  heard  of  their  progenitors. 
If  we  sow  good  works,  succession  shall  reap  them,  and  we  shall  be 
happy  in  making  them  so. 

The  Kenites  dwelt  in  the  borders  of  Amalck,  but  in  tents,  as  did 
their  issue  the  Rechabites,  so  as  they  might  remove  with  ease. 
They  are  warned  to  shift  their  habitations,  lest  they  should  perish 
with  ill  neighbours.  It  is  the  manner  of  God,  first  to  separate 
before  he  judge ;  as  a  good  husbandman  weeds  his  corn  ere  it  be 
ripe  for  the  sickle,  and  goes  to  the  fan  ere  he  go  to  the  fire. 
When  the  Kenites  pack  up  their  fardels,  it  is  time  to  expect 
judgment.  Why  should  not  we  imitate  God,  and  separate  our- 
selves that  we  may  not  be  judged  ?  separate,  not  one  Kenite  from 
another,  but  every  Kenite  from  among  the  Amalekites  ;  else,  if  we 
will  needs  live  with  Amalek,  we  cannot  think  much  to  d  e  with 
him. 

The  Kenites  are  no  sooner  removed,  than  Saul  falls  upon  the 
Amalekites.  He  destroys  all  the  people,  but  spares  their  king. 
The  charge  of  God  was  universal,  for  man  and  beast.  In  the 
corruption  of  partiality,  lightly  the  greatest  escape.  Covetous- 
ness  or  misaftection  are.  commonly  guilty  of  the  impunity  of  those, 
which  are  at  once  more  eminent  in  dignity  and  in  offence.  It  is 
a  shameful  hypocrisy,  to  make  our  commodity  the  measure  and 
rule  of  our  execution  of  God's  command;  and,  under  pretence  of 
godliness,  to  intend  gain.  The  unprofitable  vulgar  must  die  ; 
Agag  may  yield  a  rich  ransom.    The  lean  and  feeble  cattle,  that 


SAUL  AND  AGAG.  S05 

tvouldbut  spend  stover,  and  die  alone,  shall  perish  by  the  sword  of 
Israel ;  the  best  may  stock  the  grounds,  and  furnish  the  markets. 
O  hypocrites,  did  God  send  you  for  gain,  or  for  revenge  ?  Went 
you  to  be  purveyors,  or  executioners  ?  If  you  plead,  that  all  those 
wealthy  herds  had  been  but  lost  in  a  speedy  death,  think  ye  that 
he  knew  not  this  which  commanded  it  ?  Can  that  be  lost,  which  is 
devoted  to  the  will  of  the  owner  and  Creator  ?  Or  can  ye  think  to 
gain  any  thing  by  disobedience  ?  That  man  can  never  either  do 
well  or  fare  well,  which  thinks  there  can  be  more  profit  in  any 
thing  than  in  his  obedience  to  his  Maker.  Because  Saul  spared  the 
best  of  the  men,  the  people  spared  the  best  of  the  cattle  :  each  is 
willing  to  favour  other  in  the  sin.  The  sins  of  the  great  command 
imitation,  and  do  as  seldom  go  without  attendants  as  their  persons. 

Saul  knew  well  how  much  he  had  done  amiss,  and  yet  dare  meet 
Samuel,  and  can  say,  Blessed  be  thou  of  the  Lord  ;  I  have  ful- 
filled the  commandment  of  the  Lord.  His  heart  knew,  that  his 
tongue  was  as  false  as  his  hands  had  been  ;  and  if  his  heart  had  not 
been  more  false  than  either  of  them,  neither  of  them  had  been  so 
gross  in  their  falsehood.  If  hypocrisy  were  not  either  foolish  or 
impudent,  she  durst  not  shew  her  head  to  a  seer  of  God.  Could 
Saul  think  that  Samuel  knew  of  the  asses  that  were  lost,  and  did 
not  know  of  the  oxen  and  sheep  that  were  spared  ?  Coidd  he 
foretel  his  thoughts,  when  it  was,  and  now  not  know  of  his  open 
actions  ?  Much  less  when  we  have  to  do  with  God  himself,  should 
dissimulation  presume  either  of  safety  or  secrecy.  Can  the  God 
that  made  the  heart  not  know  it  ?  ('an  he,  that  comprehends  all 
things,  be  shut  out  of  our  close  corners  ?  Saul  was  otherwise  crafty 
enough,  yet  herein  his  simplicity  is  palpable.  Sin  can  besot  even 
the  wisest  man,  and  there  was  never  but  folly  in  wickedness. 

No  man  brags  so  much  of  holiness,  as  he  that  wants  it.  True 
obedience  is  joined  ever  with  humility,  and  fear  of  unknown  er- 
rors. Falsehood  is  bold,  and  can  say,  /  have  fulfilled  the  command- 
ment of  the  Lord.  If  Saul  had  been  truly  obsequious  and  holy,  he 
had  made  no  noise  of  it.  A  gracious  heart  is  not  a  blab  of  his 
tongue,  but  rests  and  rejoiceth  silently  in  the  conscience  of  a  secret 
goodness.  Those  vessels  yield  most  sound,  that  have  the  least 
liquor. 

Samuel  had  reason  to  believe  the  sheep  and  oxen  above  Saul. 
Their  bleating  and  lowing  was  a  sufficient  conviction  of  a  denied 
and  out-faced  disobedience.  God  opened  their  mouths,  to  accuse 
Saul  of  their  life  and  his  falsehood  ;  but,  as  sin  is  crafty  and  never 
wanted  a  clokc  wherewith  both  tohide  and  deck  itself,  even  this  very 
rebellion  is  holy.  "  First  the  act,  if  it  were  evil,  was  not  mine  but 
the  people's  ;  and  secondly,  their  intention  makes  it  good,  for 
these  flocks  and  herds  were  preserved,  not  for  gain  but  for  devo- 
tion. AVhat  needs  this  quarrel  ?  If  any  gain  by  this  act,  it  is  the 
Lord  thy  God.  His  altars  shall  smoke  with  these  sacrifices ;  ye, 
that  serve  at  them,  shall  fare  so  much  the  better ;  this  godly  thrifti- 
ness  looks  for  thanks;  rather  than  censure." 

VOL.  I,  2i 


306  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

If  Sa'.il  had  been  in  Samuel's  clothes,  perhaps  this  answer  would 
have  satisfied  him  :  surely,  himself  stands  out  in  it,  as  that  whereto 
he  dares  trust ;  and  after  he  hears  of  God's  angry  reproof,  he  avows 
and  doubles  his  hold  of  his  innocency  ;  as  if  the  commanders  should 
not  answer  for  the  known  sins  of  the  people;  as  if  our  intentions 
could  justify  us  to  God  against  God.  How  much  ado  is  it  to 
bring  sinners  upon  their  knees,  and  to  make  their  tongues  accuse 
their  hands!  But  it  is  no  halting  with  the  maker  of  the  heart.  He 
knew  it  was  covetousness,  and  not  piety,  which  was  accessary  to 
this  forbearance  ;  and  if  it  had  been  as  was  pretended,  he  knew  it 
was  an  odious  impiety  to  raise  devotion  out  of  disobedience.  Saul 
shall  hear  and  find,  that  he  hath  dealt  no  less  wickedly,  in  sparing 
an  Agag,  than  in  killing  an  innocent  Israelite ;  in  sparing  these 
beasts  for  sacrifice,  than  in  sacrificing  beasts  that  had  been  un- 
clean. Why  was  sacrifice  itself  good,  but  because  it  was  com- 
manded ?  What  difference  was  there  betwixt  slaughter  and  sacri- 
fice, but  obedience  ?  To  sacrifice  disobediently  is  wilfully  to  mock 
God  in  honouring  him.  1  Sain,  xv. 


THE  REJECTION  OF  SAUL,  AND  THE  CHOICE  OF 

DAVID. 

Even  when  Saul  had  abandoned  God  in  disobedience,  he  would 
not  forego  Samuel ;  yea,  though  he  reproved  him.  When  he  had 
forsaken  the  substance,  yet  he  would  maintain  the  formality.  If  he 
cannot  hold  the  man,  he  will  keep  the  pledge  of  his  garment :  such 
was  the  violence  of  Saul's  desire,  that  he  will  rather  rend  Samuel's 
coat,  than  part  with  his  person.  Little  did  Saul  think,  that  he  had 
in  his  hand  the  pawn  of  his  own  rejection  ;  that  this  act  of  kind  im- 
portunity should  carry  in  it  a  presage  of  his  judgment,  yet  so  it 
did :  this  very  rending  of  the  coat  was  a  real  prophecy,  and  did 
bode  no  less  than  the  rending  of  the  kingdom  from  him  and  his 
posterity.  Wicked  men,  while  they  think  by  carnal  means  to 
make  their  peace,  plunge  themselves  deeper  into  misery. 

Any  stander-bv  would  have  said,  "  What  a  good  king  is  this  ! 
How  dear  is  God's  prophet  unto  him  ?  How  happy  is  Israel  in  such 
a  prince,  as  thus  loves  the  messengers  of  God  !"  Samuel,  that  saw 
the  bottom  of  his  hollow  affection,  rejects  him,  whom  God  had 
rejected.  He  was  taught  to  look  upon  Saul,  not  as  a  king,  but  as 
an  offender ;  and  therefore  refuses,  with  no  less  vehemency  than 
Saul  entreated.  It  was  one  thing,  what  he  might  do  as  a  subject, 
another  what  he  must  do  as  a  prophet.  Now  he  knows  not  Saul 
any  otherwise,  than  as  so  much  the  greater  trespasser  as  his  place 
Was  higher ;  and  therefore  he  doth  no  more  spare  his  greatness, 
than  the  God  against  whom  he  sinned:  neither  doth  he  counte- 
nance that  man  with  his  presence,  on  whom  he  sees  God  to  frown. 

There  needs  no  other  character  of  hypocrisy,  than  Saul,  in  the 
carriage  of  this  one  business  with  Agag  and  Samuel.  First,  he 
obeys  God  where  there  is  no  gain  in  disobedience  ;  then,  he  serves 
God  by  halves,  and  disobeys  where  the  obedience  might  be  loss. 


THE  REJECTION  OF  SAUL,  AND  CHOICE  OF  DAVID.  307 

He  gives  God  of  tbe  worst :  he  doth  that  in  a  colour,  which  might 
seem  answerable  to  the  charge  of  God.  He  respects  persons  in 
the  execution.  He  gives  good  words,  when  his  deeds  were  evil. 
He  protests  his  obedience  against  his  conscience.  He  faces  out  his 
protestation  against  a  reproof.  When  he  sees  no  remedy,  he 
acknowledges  the  fact,  denies  the  sin,  yea  he  justifies  the  act  by  a 
profitable  intention.  When  he  can  no  longer  maintain  his  inno- 
cence, he  casts  the  blame  from  himself  upon  the  people.  He  con- 
fesseth  not,  till  the  sin  be  wrung  from  his  mouth.  He  seeks  his  ' 
peace  out  of  himself;  and  relies  more  upon  another's  virtue,  than 
his  own  penitency.  He  would  cloke  his  guiltiness  with  the  holiness 
of  another's  presence.  He  is  more  tormented  with  the  danger  and 
damage  of  his  sin,  than  with  the  offence.  He  cares  to  hold  in  with 
men,  in  what  terms  soever  he  stands  with  God.  He  fashionably 
serves  that  God,  whom  he  hath  not  cared  to  reconcile  by  his  re- 
pentance. No  marvel  if  God  cast  him  off,  whose  best  was  dissimu- 
lation. 

Old  Samuel  is  forced  to  do  a  double  execution,  and  that  upon 
no  less  than  two  kings :  the  one  upon  Saul,  in  dividing  the  king- 
dom from  him,  who  had  divided  himself  from  God  ;  the  other  upon 
Agag,  in  dividing  him  in  pieces,  whom  Saul  should  have  divided. 
Those  holy  hands  were  not  used  to  such  sacrifices  ;  yet  did  he  ne- 
ver spill  blood  more  acceptably.  If  Saul  had  been  truly  penitent, 
he  had  in  a  desire  of  satisfaction  prevented  the  hand  of  Samuel  in 
this  slaughter ;  now  he  coldly  stands  still,  and  suffers  the  weak 
hands  of  an  aged  prophet  to  be  imbrued  with  that  blood,  which  he 
was  commanded  to  shed.  If  Saul  might  not  sacrifice  in  the  ab- 
sence of  Samuel,  yet  Samuel  might  kill  in  the  presence  of  Saul.  He 
was  yet  a  judge  of  Israel,  although  he  suspended  the  execution:  in 
Saul's  neglect,  this  charge  reverted  to  him.  God  loves  just  execu- 
tions so  well,  that  he  will  hardly  take  them  ill  at  any  hand. 

I  do  not  find  that  the  slaughter  of  Agag  troubled  Samuel :  that 
other  act  of  his  severity  upon  Saul,  though  it  drew  no  blood,  yet 
struck  him  in  the  striking,  and  fetched  tears  from  his  eyes.  Good 
Samuel  mourned  for  him,  that  had  not  grace  to  mourn  for  himself. 
No  man  in  all  Israel  might  seem  to  have  so  much  reason  to  rejoice 
in  Saul's  ruin  as  Samuel,  since  that  he  knew  him  raised  up  in  despite 
of  his  government ;  yet  he  mourns  more  for  him,  than  he  did  for 
his  sons,  for  himself.  It  grieved  him  to  see  the  plant,  which  he  had 
set  in  the  garden  of  Israel,  thus  soon  withered.  It  is  an  unnatural 
senselessness,  not  to  be  affected  with  the  dangers,  with  the  sins  of 
our  governors.  God  did  not  blame  this  sorrow,  but  moderated  it ; 
How  long  wilt  thon  mourn  for  Saul?  It  was  not  the  affection  he 
forbade,  but  the  measure.  In  this  is  the  difference  betwixt  good 
men  and  evil,  that  evil  men  mourn  not  for  their  own  sins,  good 
men  do  so  mourn  for  the  sins  of  others  that  they  will  hardly  be 
taken  off. 

If  Samuel  mourn,  because  Saul  hath  cast  away  God  by  hir  sin,  he 
must  cease  to  mourn,  because  God  hath  cast  away  Saul  from  reign- 
ing over  Israel,  in  his  just  punishjneAt.    A  good  heart  bath  learnedr 


30S  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

to  rest  itself  upon  the  justice  of  God's  decree,  and  forgets  all 
earthly  respects  when  it  looks  up  to  heaven.  So  did  God  mean  to 
shew  his  displeasure  against  the  person  of  Saul,  that  he  would  shew 
favour  to  Israel ;  he  will  not  therefore  hereave  them  of  a  king,  but 
change  him  for  a  better.  Either  Saul  had  slandered  his  people,  or 
else  they  were  partners  with  him  in  the  disobedience  ;  yet,  because 
it  was  their  ruler's  fault  that  they  were  not  over-ruled,  we  do  not 
hear  of  their  smarting,  any  otherwise  than  in  the  subjection  to  such 
a  king  as  was  not  loyal  to  God.  The  loss  of  Saul  is  their  gain. 
The  government  of  their  first  king  was  abortive:  no  marvel  if  it 
held  not.  Now  was  the  maturity  of  that  state  ;  and  therefore  God 
will  bring  them  forth  a  kindly  monarchy,  settled  where  it  should. 

Kings  are  of  God's  providing  :  it  is  good  reason  he  should  make 
choice  of  his  own  deputies  ;  but  where  goodness  meets  with  sove- 
reignty, both  his  right  and  his  gift  are  doubled.  If  kings  were 
merely  from  the  earth,  what  needs  a  prophet  to  be  seen  in  the  choice 
or  inauguration  ? 

The  hand  of  Samuel  doth  not  now  bear  the  sceptre  to  rule  Israel, 
but  it  bears  the  horn  for  the  anointing  of  him  that  must  rule.  Saul 
was  sent  to  him,  when  the  time  was  to  be  anointed  ;  but  now,  he  is 
sent  to  anoint  David.  Then,  Israel  sought  a  king  for  themselves  ; 
now,  God  seeks  a  king  for  Israel.  The  prophet  is  therefore  directed 
to  the  house  of  Jesse  the  Bethlehemite,  the  grandchild  of  Ruth. 
Now  is  the  faithful  love  of  that  good  Moabitess  crowned  with  the 
honour  of  a  kingdom,  in  the  succeeding  generation.  God  fetched 
her  out  of  Moab,  to  bring  a  king  unto  Israel.  While  Orpah  wants 
bread  in  her  own  country,  Ruth  is  grown  a  great  lady  in  Bethle- 
hem ;  and  is  advanced  to  be  great  grandmother  to  the  king  of 
Israel.  The  retributions  of  God  are  bountiful :  never  any  man 
forsook  aught  for  his  sake,  and  complained  of  a  hard  bargain. 

Even  the  best  of  God's  saints  want  not  their  infirmities.  He,  that 
never  replied  when  he  was  sent  to  reprove  the  king,  moveth  doubts 
when  he  is  bidden  to  go  and  anoint  his  successor.  How  can  I  go  ? 
If  Saul  hear  it,  he  will  k  ill  me.  Perhaps  desire  of  full  direction 
drew  from  him  this  question,  but  not  without  a  mixture  of  diffi- 
dence ;  for  the  manner  of  doing  it,  doth  not  so  much  trouble  him 
as  the  success.  It  is  not  to  be  expected,  that  the  most  faithful 
hearts  should  be  always  in  an  equal  height  of  resolution. 

God  doth  not  chide.  -Samuel,  but  instruct  him.  He,  which  is 
isdom  itself,  teacheth  him  to  hide  his  counsels  in  an  honest  po- 
' ;  Take  an  heifer  with  thee,  and  saij,  I  am  come  to  do  sacrifice 
i  e  Lord.  This  was  to  say  true ;  not  to  say  all.  Truth  may 
nc  crossed  by  denials  or  equivocations  ;  it  may  be  concealed  in 
a  d.  "et  silence.  Except  in  the  case  of  an  oath,  no  man  is  bound 
to  sp  .  all  he  knows.  We  are  not  only  allowed,  but  commanded, 
to  be  i      gently  serpentine. 

Thei  ere  doubtless  heifers  enow  in  Bethlehem.  Jesse  had 
both  wei  and  devotion  enough,  to  have  bestowed  a  sacrifice 
upon  Gou  d  bis  prophet ;  but  to  give  a  more  perfect  colour  to 
tlis  intentioi.    'imuel  must  take  a  heifer  with  him.  The  act  itself 

c 


THE  REJECTION  OF  SAUL,  AND  CHOICE  OF  DAVID.  209 

was  serious  and  necessary.  There  was  no  place,  no  time,  wherein  it 
was  not  fit  for  a  Samuel  to  offer  peace-offerings  unto  God ;  but 
when  a  king  should  be  anointed,  there  was  no  less  than  necessity  in 
this  service.  Those,  which  must  represent  God  to  the  world, 
ought  to  be  consecrated  to  that  majesty  whom  they  resemble,  by 
public  devotions.  Every  important  action  requires  a  sacrifice  to 
bless  it ;  much  more  that  act,  which  imports  the  whole  church  or 
commonwealth. 

It  was  great  news  to  see  Samuel  at  Bethlehem.  He  was  no  gadder 
abroad :  none  but  necessary  occasions  could  make  him  stir  from 
Ramah.  The  elders  of  the  city  therefore  welcome  him  with  trem- 
bling ;  not  for  that  they  were  afraid  of  him,  but  of  themselves. 
They  knew  that  guest  would  not  come  to  them  for  familiarity  : 
straight  do  they  suspect  it  was  the  purpose  of  some  judgment,  that 
drew  him  thither  ;  Comest  thou  peaceably  ?j  Tt  is  a  good  thing,  to 
stand  in  awe  of  God's  messengers,  and  to  hold  good  terms  with 
them  upon  all  occasions.  The  Bethlchemites  are  glad  to  hear  of 
no  other  errand,  but  a  sacrifice  ;  and  now  must  they  sanctify  them- 
selves for  so  sacred  a  business.  We  may  not  presume  to  sacrifice., 
unto  God  unsanctified  :  this  were  to  mar  a  holy  act,  and  to  make 
ourselves  more  profane,  by  profaning  that  which  should  be  holy. 

All  the  citizens  sanctify  themselves ;  but  Jesse  and  his  sons  were 
in  a  special  fashion  sanctified  by  Samuel.  This  business  was  most 
theirs,  and  all  Israel  in  them.  The  more  God  hath  to  do  with  us, 
the  more  holy  should  we  be. 

With  what  desire  did  Samuel  look  upon  the  sons  of  Jesse,  that  he 
might  see  the  face  of  the  man  whom  God  had  chosen !  And  now, 
when  Eliab  the  eldest  son  came  forth,  a  man  of  a  goodly  pre- 
sence, whose  person  seemed  fit  to  succeed  Saul,  he  thinks  with 
himself,  "  This  choice  is  soon  made.  I  have  already  espied  the 
head,  on  which  I  must  spend  this  holy  oil.  This  is  the  man, 
which  hath  both  the  privilege  of  nature  in  his  primogeniture,  and 
of  outward  goodliness  in  proportion.  Surety,  the  Lord's  anointed 
is  before  him.''''  Even  the  holiest  prophet,  when  he  goes  without 
God,  runs  into  error.  The  best  judgment  is  subject  to  deceit.  It 
is  no  trusting  any  mortal  man,  when  he  speaks  of  himself.  Our 
eyes  can  be  led  by  nothing  but  signs  and  appearances,  and  those 
have  commonly  in  them,  cither  a  true  falsehood  or  uncertain  truth. 

That,  which  should  have  forewarned  Samuel,  deceived  him.  He, 
had  seen  the  proof  of  a  goodly  stature  unanswerable  to  their  hopes, 
and  yet  his  eye  errs  in  the  shape.  He,  that  judgeth  by  tlie  inside 
both  of  our  hearts  and  actions,  checks  Samuel  in  this  misconceit  ; 
Look  not  on  his  countenance,  nor  on  the  height  of  his  stature,  be- 
cause J  have  refused  him  ;  for  God  see/h  vol  as"  man  steth.  The 
king,  with  whom  God  meant  to  satisfy  the  untimely  desires  of  Is- 
rael, was  chosen  by  his  stature  ;  but  the  king,  with  whom  God 
meant  to  please  himself,  is  chosen  by  the  heart. 

All  the  seven  sons  of  Jesse  are  presented  to  the  prophet :  no  one 
is  omitted,  whom  their  father  thought  capable  of  any  respect.  *If 
cither  Samuel  or  Jesse  should  have  chosen,  David  "should  never 


310 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


have  been  king.  His  father  thought  him  fit  to  keep  sheep,  his 
brethren  fit  to  rule  men;  yet  even  David,  the  youngest  son,  is 
fetched  from  the  fold,  and  by  the  choice  of  God  destined  to  the 
throne.  Nature,  which  is  commonly  partial  to  her  own,  could  not 
suggest  aught  to  Jesse,  to  make  him  think  David  worthy  to  be  re- 
membered in  any  competition  of  honour  ;  yet  him  hath  God  sin- 
gled out  to  rule. 

God  will  have  his  wisdom  magnified,  in  the  unlikelihoods  of  his 
election.  David's  countenance  was  ingenuous  and  beautiful,  but 
if  it  had  promised  so  much  as  Eliab's  or  Abinadab's,  he  had  not 
been  in  the  fields,  while  his  brethren  were  at  the  sacrifice.  If  we 
do  altogether  follow  our  eye,  and  suffer  ourselves  to  be  guided  by 
outward  respects,  in  our  choice  for  God  or  ourselves,  we  cannot 
but  go  amiss. 

What  do  we  think  the  brethren  of  David  thought,  when  they 
saw  the  oil  poured  upon  his  head  ?  Surely,  as  they  were  envious 
enough,  they  had  too  much  repined,  if  they  had  either  fully  ap- 
prehended the  purpose  of  the  prophet,  or  else  had  not  thought  of 
some  improbability  in  the  success.  Either  they  understood  not, 
or  believed  not,  what  God  would  do  with  their  brother.  They  saw 
him  graced  with  God's  Spirit  above  his  wont,  but  perhaps  foresaw 
not  whither  it  tended.  David,  as  no  whit  changed  in  his  condi- 
tion, returns  to  his  sheep  again  ;  and  with  an  humble  admiration 
of  God's  gracious  respect  to  him,  casts  himself  upon  the  wise  and 
holy  decree  of  the  Almighty,  resigning  himself  to  the  disposition 
of  those  hands  which  had  chosen  him  ;  when  suddenly  a  messen- 
ger is  sent  from  Saul  to  call  him  in  all  haste,  to  that  court  whereof 
he  shall  once  be  master.  The  occasion  is  no  less  from  God,  than 
the  event.  1  Sam.  xvi. 


DAVID  CALLED  TO  THE  COURT. 

That  the  kingdom  is,  in  the  appointment  of  God,  departed  from 
Saul,  it  is  his  least  loss  :  now  the  Spirit  of  God  is  also  departed 
from  him.  One  spirit  is  no  sooner  gone,  but  another  is  come ; 
both  are  from  God  :  even  the  worst  spirits  have  not  only  permis- 
sion, but  commission  from  heaven,  for  the  infliction  of  judgment. 
He,  that  at  first  could  hide  himself  among  the  stuff,  that  he  might 
not  be  king,  is  now  so  transported  with  this  glory,  that  he  grows 
passionate  with  the  thought  of  foregoing  it :  Satan  takes  vantage 
of  his  melancholic  dejection,  and  turns  this  passion  into  frenzy. 
God  will  have  even  evil  spirits  work  by  means  :  a  distempered 
body  and  an  iinquiet  mind  are  fit  grounds  for  Satan's  vexation. 

Saul's  courtiers,  as  men  that  were  more  witty  than  religious,  ad- 
vise him  to  music.  They  knew  the  strength  of  that  skill,  in  al- 
laying the  fury  of  passions,  in  cheering  up  the  dejected  spirits  of 
their  master.  This  was  done  like  some  fond  chinngeon,  that,  when 
the  bone  is  out  of  joint,  lays  some  suppling  poultices  to  the  part, 


DAVID  CALLED  TO  THE  COURT.  311 

for  the  assuaging  of  the  ache,  in  the  mean  time  not  caring  to  remedy 
the  luxation. 

If  they  had  said,  <£  Sir,  you  know  this  evil  comes  from  that 
God  whom  you  have  offended  :  there  can  he  no  help  hut  in  recon- 
cilement :  how  easy  is  it  for  the  God  of  Spirits  to  take  off  Satan  ! 
Labour  your  peace  with  him  by  a  serious  humiliation  :  make  means 
to  Samuel  to  further  the  atonement."  they  had  been  wise  counsel- 
lors, divine  physicians ;  xvhereas  now  they  do  but  skin  over  the 
sore,  and  leave  it  rankled  at  the  bottom.  The  cure  must  ever  pro- 
ceed in  the  same  steps  with  the  disease,  else  in  rain  shall  we  seem 
to  heal.  There  is  no  safety  in  the  redress  of  evils,  but  to  strike  at 
the  root. 

Yet  since  it  is  no  better  with  Saul  and  his  courtiers,  it  is  well  it 
is  no  worse.  I  do  not  hear  either  the  master  or  servants  say,  "  This 
is  an  ill  spirit ;  send  for  some  magician,  that  may  countermand 
him.  There  are  forcible  enchantments  for  these  spiritual  vexa- 
tions ;  if  Samuel  will  not,  there  are  witches,  that  may  give  ease." 
But,  as  one  that  would  rather  be  ill  than  do  worse,  he  contents 
himself  to  do  that,  which  was  lawful,  if  insufficient.  It  is  a  shame 
to  say,  that  he,  whom  God  had  rejected  for  his  sin,  was  Vet  a  saint 
to  some  that  should  be  Christians,  who  care  not  how  much  they 
are  beholden  to  the  devil  in  their  distresses,  affecting  to  cast  out 
devils  by  Beelzebub.  In  cases  of  loss  or  sickness,  thev  make  hell 
their  refuge,  and  seek  for  patronage,  but  of  an  enemy.  Here  is  a 
fearful  agreement :  Satan  seeks  to  them  in  his  temptations,  they 
in  their  consultations  seek  to  him  ;  and,  now  they  have  mutually 
found  each  other,  if  they  ever  part,  it  is  a  miracle. 

David  had  lived  obscurely  in  his  father's  house ;  his  only  care 
and  ambition  was  the  welfare  of  the  flock  he  tended  ;  and  now, 
while  his  father  and  his  brothers  neglected  him  as  fit  for  nothing 
but  the  field,  he  is  talked  of  at  the  court.  Some  of  Saul's  followers 
had  been  at  Jesse's  house,  and  taken  notice  of  David's  skill  ;  and 
now,  that  harp,  which  he  practised  for  his  private  recreation,  shall 
make  him  of  a  shepherd  a  courtier.  The  music,  that  he  meant 
only  to  himself  and  his  sheep,  brings  him  before  kings.  The  wis- 
dom of  God  thought  fit  to  take  this  occasion,  of  acquainting  Da- 
vid with  that  court,  which  he  shall  once  govern.  It  is  good,  that 
our  education  should  perfect  our  children  in  all  those  commenda- 
ble qualities,  whereto  they  are  disposed.  Little  do  we  know,  what 
use  God  means  to  make  of  those  faculties,  which  we  know  not  how 
to  employ.  Where  the  Almighty  purposes  an  advancement,  ob- 
scurity can  be  no  prejudice.  Small  means  shall  set  forward  that, 
which  God  hath  decreed. 

Doubtless,  old  Jesse  noted,  not  without  admiration,  the  wonder- 
ful accordance  of  God's  proceedings  ;  that  he,  which  was  sent  for 
out  of  the  field  to  be  anointed,  should  now  be  sent  for  out  of  the 
country  into  the  court ;  and,  now  he  perceived  God  was  making- 
way  for  the  execution  of  that  which  he  purposed,  he  attends  the 
issue  in  silence,  neither  shall  his  hand  fail  to  give  furtherance  to  tlie 


312  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

project  of  God.  He  therefore  sends  his  son  laden  with  a  present 
to  Saul. 

The  same  God,  which  called  David  to  the  court,  welcomes  him 
thither.  His  comeliness,  valour,  and  skill  have  soon  won  him  fa- 
vour in  the  eyes  of  Saul.  The  giver  of  all  graces  hath  so  placed 
his  favours,  that  the  greatest  enemies  of  goodness  shall  see  some- 
what in  the  holiest  men,  which  they  shall  affect,  and  for  which  they 
shall  honour  the  persons  of  them,  whose  virtues  they  dislike  ;  as 
contrarily,  the  saints  on  earth  see  somewhat  to  love  even  in  the 
worst  creatures. 

No  doubt  David  sung  to  his  harp  :  his  harp  was  not  more  sweet, 
than  his  song  was  holy.  Those  psalms  alone  had  been  more  power- 
ful to  chase  the  evil  spirit,  than  the  music  was  to  calm  passions  ; 
both  together  gave  ease  to  Saul ;  and  God  gave  this  effect  to  both, 
because  he  would  have  Saul  train  up  his  successor.  This  sacred 
music  did  not  more  dispel  Satan,  than  wanton  music  invites  him; 
and  more  cheers  him,  than  us :  he  plays  and  danceth  at  a  filthy 
song ;  he  sings  at  an  obscene  dance :  our  sin  is  his  best  pastime, 
whereas  psalms,  and  hymns,  and  spiritual  songs  are  torments  unto 
the  tempter,  and  music  to  the  angels  in  heaven,  whose  trade  is  to 
sing  hallelujahs  in  the  choir  of  glory.  1  Sam.  xvi. 

DAVID  AND  GOLIATH. 

After  the  news  of  the  Philistines'  army,  I  hear  no  more  mention 
of  Saul's  frenzy  :  whether  the  noise  of  war  diverted  those  thought- 
ful passions  ;  whether  God  for  his  people's  sake  took  off  that  evil 
spirit,  lest  Israel  might  miscarry  under  a  frantic  governor. 

Now  David  hath  leisure  to  return  to  Bethlehem.  The  glory  of 
the  court  cannot  transport  him  to  ambitious  vanity  :  he  would  ra- 
ther be  his  father's  shepherd,  than  Saul's  armour-bearer:  all  the 
magnificence  and  state  which  he  saw,  could  not  put  his  mouth  out 
of  the  taste  of  a  retired  simplicity  ;  yea  rather  he  loves  his  hook 
the  better,  since  he  saw  the  court  ;  and  now  his  brethren  serve 
Saul  in  his  stead.  A  good  heart  hath  learned  to  frame  itself  unto 
all  conditions,  and  can  change  estates  without  change  of  disposi- 
tion, rising  and  falling  according  to  occasion.  The  worldly  mind 
can  rise  easily,  but,  when  it  is  once  up,  knows  not  how  to  descend 
either  with  patience  or  safety. 

Forty  days  together  had  the  Philistines  and  Israelites  faced  each 
other.  They  pitched  on  two  hills,  one  in  the  sight  of  the  other; 
nothing  but  a  valley  was  betwixt  them.  Both  stand  upon  defence 
and  advantage  :  if  they  had  not  meant  to  fight,  they  had  never 
drawn  so  near  ;  and  if  they  had  been  eager  of  light,  a  valley  could 
not  have  parted  them.  Actions  of  hazard  require  deliberation  : 
not  fury,  but  discretion  must  be  the  guide  of  war. 

So  had  Joshua  destroyed  the  giantly  Anakims  out  of  the  land  of 
Israel,  that  yet  some  were  left  in  Azzah,  Gath,  and  Ashdod  ;  both, 
to  shew  Israel  what  adversaries  their  forefathers  found  in  Canaan 


DAVID  AND  GOLIATH.  313 

and  whom  they  mastered,  as  also  that  God  might  win  glory  to  him- 
self by  these  subsequent  executions.  Of  that  race  was  Goliath, 
whose  heart  was  as  high  as  his  head  :  his  strength  was  answerable 
to  his  stature,  his  weapons  answerable  to  his  strength,  his  pride  ex- 
ceeded all.  Because  he  saw  his  head  higher,  his  arms  stronger, 
his  sword  and  spear  bigger,  his  shield  heavier  than  any  Israelite's, 
lie  defies  the  whole  host,  and,  walking  between  the  two  armies, 
braves  all  Israel  with  a  challenge  ;  Why  are  ye  come  out,  to  set 
your  battle  in  array  f  Am  not  I  a  Philistine,  and  you  servants  to 
Saul  ?  Choose  you  a  man  for  you,  and  let  him  come  doicn  to  me  : 
give  me  a  man,  that  t&e  may  Jig  lit  together.  Carnal  hearts  are  car- 
ried away  with  presumption  of  their  own  abilities;  and,  not  finding 
matches  to  themselves  in  outward  appearance,  insult  over  the  im- 
potency  of  inferiors  ;  and,  as  those  that  can  see  no  invisible  oppo* 
sition,  promise  themselves  certainty  of  success.  Insolence  and 
self-confidence  argues  the  heart  to  be  nothing,  but  a  lump  of  proud 
flesh. 

The  first  challenge  of  duel  that  ever  we  find,  came  out  of  the 
mouth  of  an  uncircumcised  Philistine ;  yet  was  that  in  open  war, 
and  tended  to  the  saving  of  many  lives,  by  adventuring  one  or 
two  ;  and  whosoever  irrtitatetb,  nay  surpasseth  him  in  challenge  to 
private  duels,  in  the  attempt  partaketh  of  his  uncircumcision, 
though  he  should  overcome  ;  and  of  his  manner  of  punishment,  if 
in  such  private  combats  he  cast  away  his  life.  For  of  all  such  de- 
sperate prodigals  we  may  say,  that  their  heads  are  cut  off  by  their 
own  sword,  if  not  by  their  own  hand. 

We  cannot  challenge  men,  and  not  challenge  God,  who  justly 
challengeth  to  himself  both  to  take  vengeance  and  to  give  success. 

The  more  Goliath  challenges  and  is  unanswered,  the  more  is  he 
puffed  up  in  the  pride  of  his  own  power.  ,And  is  there  none  of  all 
Israel,  that  will  answer  this  champion  otherwise  than  with  his 
heels  ?  Where  is  the  courage  of  him,  that  was  higher  than  all  Is- 
rael from  the  shoulders  upward  ?  The  time  was,  when  Nahash  the 
Ammonite  had  made  that  tyrannous  demand  of  the  right  eyes  of 
the  Gileadites,  that  Saul' could  ask  unasked,  What  aileth  the  peo- 
ple to  xoeep  ?  and  could  hew  his  oxen  in  pieces  to  raise  the  spirits  of 
Israel  ;  and  now  he  stands  still,  and  sees  the  host  turn  their  back, 
and  never  so  much  as  asks,  "  What  aileth  the  people  to  fly  ?V  The 
time  was,  when  Saul  slew  forty  thousand  Philistines  in  onedav,  and 
perhaps  Goliath  was  in  that  discomfiture;  and  now  one  Philistine  is 
suffered  by  him  to  brave  all  Israel  forty  days.  Whence  is  this  dif- 
ference? The  Spirit  of  God  (the  spirit  of  fortitude)  was  now 
departed  from  him.  Saul  was  not  more  above  himself,  when  God 
was  with  him,  than  he  is  below  others,  now  that  he  is  left  of  God. 

Valour  is  not  merely  of  nature :  nature  is  ever  like  itself;  by 
this  rule,  he,  that  is  once  valiant,  should  never  turn  coward  :  but 
now  we  see  the  greatest  spirits  inconstant ;  and  those,  which  have, 
given  good  proofs  of  magnanimity  at  other  times,  have  bewrayed 
white  livers  unto  their  own  reproach.  He,  that  is  the  God  of  hosts, 
gives  and  takes  away  men's  hearts  at  his  pleasure.    Neither  is  it 


314  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

otherwise  in  our  spiritual  combats :  sometimes,  the  same  soul  dare 
challenge  all  the  powers  of  darkness,  which  otherwhiles  gives 
ground  to  a  temptation.  We  have  no  strength,  but  what  is  given 
us  ;  and  if  the  author  of  all  good  gifts  remit  his  hand  for  our  hu- 
miliation, either  we  fight  not  or  are  foiled. 

David  hath  now  lain  long  enough  close  amongst  his  flock  in  the 
fields  of  Bethlehem  :  God  sees  a  time  to  send  him  to  the  pitched 
field  of  Israel.  Good  old  Jesse,  that  was  doubtless  joyful  to  think, 
that  he  had  afforded  three  sons  to  the  wars  of  his  king,  is  no  less 
careful  of  their  welfare  and  provision  ;  and  who,  amongst  all  the 
rest  of  his  seven  sons,  shall  be  picked  out  for  this  service,  but  his 
youngest  son  David,  whose  former  and  almost  worn  out  acquain- 
tance in  court  and  employment  under  Saul,  seemed  to  fit  him  best 
for  this  errand. 

Early  in  the  morning  is  David  upon  his  way  ;  yet  not  so  early, 
as  to  leave  his  Hock  unprovided.  If  his  father's  command  dismiss 
him,  yet  will  he  stay,  till  he  have  trusted  his  sheep  with  a  careful 
keeper.  We  cannot  be  faithful  shepherds,  if  our  spiritual  charge 
be  less  dear  unto  us  ;  if  when  necessity  calls  us  from  our  flocks, 
we  depute  not  those,  which  are  vigilant  and  conscionable. 

Ere  David's  speed  can  bring  him  to  the  valley  of  Elah,  both  the 
armies  are  on  foot  ready  to  join.  He  takes  not  this  excuse  to  stay 
without,  as  a  man  daunted  with  the  horror  of  war  ;  but  leaving  his 
present  with  his  servant,  he  thrusts  himself  into  the  thickest  of  the 
host,  and  salutes  his  brethren  which  were  now  thinking  of  nothing 
but  killing  or  dying,  when  the  proud  champion  of  the  Philistines 
comes  stalking  forth  before  all  the  troops,  and  renews  his  insolent 
challenge  against  Israel.  David  sees  the  man,  and  hears  his  defiance, 
and  looks  about  him  to  see  what  answer  would  be  given  ;  and  when 
he  espies  nothing  but  pale  faces  and  backs  turned,  he  wonders,  not 
so  much,  that  one  man  should  dare  all  Israel,  as  that  all  Israel 
should  run  from  one  man. 

Even  when  they  fly  from  Goliath,  they  talk  of  the  reward,  that 
should  be  given  to  that  encounter  and  victory,  which  they  dare 
not  undertake  ;  so  those,  which  have  not  grace  to  believe,  yet  can 
say,  "  There  is  glory  laid  up  for  the  faithful." 

Ever  since  his  anointing  was  David  possessed  with  God's  spirit, 
and  thereby  rilled  both  with  courage  and  wisdom :  the  more  strange, 
doth  it  seem  to  him,  that  all  Israel  should  be  thus  dastardly.  Those, 
that  are  themselves  eminent  in  any  grace,  cannot  but  wonder  at 
the  miserable  defects  of  others ;  and  the  more  shame  they  see  in 
others'  imperfections  ,the  more  is  their  zeal  in  avoiding  those  errors 
in  themselves. 

While  base  hearts  are  moved  by  example,  the  want  of  example 
is  encouragement  enough  for  a  heroical  mind  :  therefore  is  David 
readv  to  undertake  the  quarrel,  because  no  man  else  dare  do  it. 
His  eyes  sparkled  with  holy  anger,  and  his  heart  rose  up  to  his 
mouth,  when  he  heard  this  proud  challenger  ;  Who  is  this  uncir- 
Oimcised  Philistine,  that  he  should  revile  the  host  of  the  living 
ipod  f  Even  so.  O  Saviour,  when  all  the  generations  of  men  ran 


DAVID  AND  GOLIATH.  315 

away  affrighted  from  the  powers  of  death  and  darkness,  thou  alone 
hast  undertaken  and  confounded  them. 

Who  should  offer  to  daunt  the  holy  courage  of  David,  but  his 
own  brethren  !  The  envious  heart  of  Eliab  construes  this  forward- 
ness, as  his  own  disgrace  :  "  Shall  I,"  thinks  he,  "  be  put  down 
by  this  puisne  ?  Shall  my  father's  youngest  son  dare  to  attempt 
that,  which  my  stomach  will  not  serve  me  to  adventure  ?"  Now 
therefore  he  rates  David  for  his  presumption  ;  and  instead  of  an- 
swering to  the  recompence  of  the  victory,  (which  others  were 
ready  to  give,)  he  recompenseth  the  very  inquiry  of  David  with  a 
check.  It  was  for  his  brethren's  sake,  that  David  came  thither  ; 
and  yet  his  very  journey  is  cast  upon  him  by  them,  for  a  reproach  ; 
Wherefore  earnest  thou  down  hither  ?  and  when  their  bitterness  can 
meet  with  nothing  else  to  shame  him,  his  sheep  are  cast  in  his 
teeth  :  "  Is  it  for  thee,  an  idle  proud  boy,  to  be  meddling  with  our 
martial  matters  ?  Doth  not  yonder  champion  look,  as  if  he  were  a 
fit  match  for  thee  ?  What  makest  thou  of  thyself,  or  what  dost 
thou  think  of  us?  Ywis  it  were  fitter  for  thee  to  be  looking  to 
thy  sheep,  than  looking  at  Goliath  ;  the  wilderness  would  become 
thee  better  than  the  field  :  wherein  art  thou  equal  to  any  man  thou 
secst,  but  in  arrogance  and  presumption  ?  The  pastures  of  Beth- 
lehem could  not  hold  thee,  but  thou  thoughtest  it  a  goodly  matter 
to  see  the  wars  :  I  know  thee,  as  if  I  were  in  thy  bosom  ;  this  was 
thy  thought,  '  There  is  no  glory  to  be  got  among  fleeces,  I  will  go 
seek  it  in  arms;  now  are  my  brethren  winning  honour  in  the  troops 
of  Israel,  while  I  am  basely  tending  on  sheep  ;  why  should  not  I 
be  as  forward  as  the  best  of  them  ?'  This  vanity  would  make  thee 
straight  of  a  shepherd,  a  soldier  ;  and  of  a  soldier,  a  champion  : 
get  thee  home,  foolish  stripling,  to  thy  hook,  .and  thy  harp  :  let 
swords  and  spears  alone  to  those,  that  know  how  to  use  them." 

It  is  quarrel  enough  amongst  many  to  a  good  action,  that  it  is 
not  their  own. 

There  is  no  enemy  so  ready,  or  so  spiteful,  as  the  domestic  : 
the  hatred  of  brethren  is  so  much  more,  as  their  blood  is  nearer  : 
the  malice  of  strangers  is  simple,  but  of  a  brother  is  mixed  with 
envy.  The  more  unnatural  any  quality  is,  the  more  extreme  it  is: 
a  cold  wind  from  the  south  is  intolerable. 

David's  first  victory  is  of  himself ;  next,  of  his  brother :  he 
overcomes  himself,  in  a  patient  forbearance  of  his  brother;  he 
overcomes  the  malicious  rage  of  his  brother,  with  the  mildness  of 
his  answer.  If  David  had  wanted  spirit,  he  had  not  been  troubled 
with  the  insultation  of  a  Philistine.  If  he  had  a  spirit  to  match, 
Goliath,  how  doth  he  so  calmly  receive  the  affront  of  a  brother? 
What  have  I  now  done  ?  Is  there  yiot  a  cause  t  That,  which  would 
have  stirred  the  choler  of  another,  allayeth  his  :  it  was  a  brother, 
that  wronged  him,  and  that  his  eldest  •,  neither  was  it  time  to  quar- 
rel with  a  brother,  while  the  Philistines'  swords  were  drawn,  and 
Goliath  was  challenging.  Oh  that  these  two  motives  could  induce 
us  to  peace  !  If  we  have  injury  in  our  person,  in  our  cause,  it  is. 
from  brethren,  and  the  Philistines  look  on.    I  am  deceived,  if  thliJ 


316  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

conquest  were  less  glorious  than  the  following.  He  is  fit  to  be 
God's  champion,  that  hath  learned  to  be  victor  of  himself. 

It  is  not  this  sprinkling  of  cold  water,  that  can  quench  the  fire 
of  David's  zeal ;  but  still  his  courage  sends  up  flames  of  desire  ; 
still  he  goes  on  to  inquire,  and  to  proffer  :  he,  whom  the  regard  of 
others'  envy  can  dismay,  shall  never  do  aught  worthy  of  envy : 
never  man  undertook  any  exploit  of  worth,  and  received  not  soma 
discouragement  in  the  way. 

This  courageous  motion  of  David  was  not  more  scorned  by  his 
brother,  than  by  the  other  Israelites  applauded.  The  rumour  flies 
to  the  ears  of  the  king,  that  there  is  a  young  man  desirous  to  en- 
counter the  giant.    David  is  brought  forth. 

Saul,  when  he  heard  of  a  champion,  tliat  durst  go  into  the  lists 
with  Goliath,  looked  for  one  as  much  higher  than  himself,  as  he  was 
taller  than  the  rest.  He  expected  some  stern  face  and  brawny  arm : 
young  and  ruddy  David  is  so  far  below  his  thoughts,  that  he  re- 
ceives rather  contempt,  than  thanks.  His  words  were  stout ;  his 
person  was  weak.  Saul  doth  not  more  like  his  resolution,  than  dis- 
trust his  ability  :  Thou  art  not  able  to  go  against  this  Philistine,  to 
Jight  n  ith  him  ;  for  thou  art  a  boy,  and  he  is  a  man  of  war  from 
his  youth.  Even  Saul  seconds  Eliab  in  the  conceit  of  this  dispa- 
rity* ;  and  if  Eliab  spake  out  of  envy,  Saul  speaks  out  of  judgment: 
both  judge  (as  they  were  judged  of)  by  the  stature. 

All  this  cannot  weaken  that  heart,  which  receives  his  strength 
from  faith.  David's  greatest  conflict  is  with  his  friends.  The 
overcoming  of  their  dissuasions,  that  he  might  fight,  was  more 
work,  than  to  overcome  his  enemy  in  fighting.  He  must  first  jus- 
tify his  strength  to  Saul,  ere  he  maj-  prove  it  upon  Goliath.  Va- 
lour is  never  made  good  but  by  trial.  He  pleads  the  trial  of  his 
puissance  upon  the  bear  and  the  lion,  that  he  may  have  leave  to 
prove  it  upon  a  worse  beast  than  they ;  Thy  se)-jant  slew  both 
the  I  ton  and  the  bear ;  therefore  this  uncircuma'sed  Philistine 
shall  be  as  one  of  them.  Experience  of  good  success  is  no  small 
comfort  to  the  heart :  this  gives  possibility  and  hope,  but,  no  cer- 
tainty. 

Two  things  there  were  on  which  David  built  his  confidence,  on 
Goliath's  sin,  and  God's  deliverance;  Seeing  he  hath  railed  on  the 
host  of  the  living  God:  the  Lord,  that  delivered  me  out  of  the  pans 
of  the  lion  and  the  bear,  he  will  deliver  me  out  of  the  hand  of  this 
Philistine.  "Well  did  David  know,  that  if  this  Philistine's  skin  had 
been  as  hard  as  the  brass  of  his  shield,  his  sin  would  make  it  pene- 
trable by  every  stroke.  After  all  brags  of  manhood,  he  is  impo- 
tent that  hath  provoked  God.  While  others  labour  for  outward 
fortification,  happy  and  safe  were  we,  if  we  could  labour  for  inno- 
cence. He,  that  hath  found  God  present  in  one  extremity,  may 
trust  him  in  the  next.  Every  sensible  favour  of  the  Almighty  in- 
vites both  his  gifts  and  our  trust. 

Resolution  thus  grounded  makes  even  Saul  himself  confident : 
David  shall  have  both  his  leave  and  his  blessing.  If  David  came 
to  Saul  as  a  shepherd,  he  shall  go  toward  Goliath  as  a  warrior  :  the 


DAVID  AND  GOLIATH. 


317 


attire  of  the  king  is  not  too  rich  for  liiin,  that  shall  fight  for  his 
king  and  country.  Little  did  Saul  think,  that  his  helmet  was  now 
on  that  head,  which  should  once  wear, his  eroWri.  Now  that  Da- 
vid was  arrayed  in  the  warlike  habit  of  a  king,-  and  girded  with  his 
sword,  he  looked  upon  himself,  and  thought  this  outside  glorious  ; 
but  when  he  offered  to  walk,  And  found  that  the  attire  was  not  so 
strong  as  unwieldy,  and  that  it  might  be  more  for  shew. than  use, 
he  lays  down  these  accoutrements  of  honour  ;  and,  as  earing  rather 
to  be  a  homely  victor  than  a  glorious  spoil,  he  craves  pardon  to  go 
in  no  clothes  but  his  own:  he  takes  his  stafflnstead  of  the  spear, 
his  shepherd's  scrip  instead  of  his  brigandine,  and  instead  of  his 
sword  he  takes  his  sling,  and  instead  of  darts  and  javelins  he  takes 
five  smooth  stones  out  of  the  brook.  Let  Saul's  coat  be  never  so 
rich,  and  his  armour  never  so  strong,  what  is  David  the  better,  if 
they  fit  him  not  ?  It  is  not  to  be  inquired,  how  excellent  any  thing 
is,  but  how  proper.  Those  things,  which  are  helps  to  some,  may 
be  incumbrances  to  others.  An  unmeet  good  may  be  as  inconve- 
nient, as  an  accustomed  evil.  If  we  could  wish  another  man's  ho- 
nour, when  we  feel  the  weight  of  bis  cares  we  should  be  glad  to 
be  in  our  own  coat. 

Those,  that  depend  upon  the  strength  of  faith,  though  they  neg- 
lect not  means,  yet  they  are  not  curious  in  the  proportion  of  out- 
ward means  to  the  effect  desired.  Where  the  heart  is  armed  with  an 
assured  confidence,  a  sling  and  a  stone  are  weapons  enough  :  to 
the  unbelieving,  no  helps  arc  sufficient.  Goliath,  though  he  were 
presumptuous  enough,  yet  had  one  shield  carried  before  him  ;  ano- 
ther he  carried  on  his  shoulder:  neither  will  his  sword  alone  con- 
tent him,  but  he  takes  his  spear  too.  David's  armour  is  his  plain 
shepherd's  russet,  and  the  brook  yields  him  his  artillery  ;  and  he 
knows,  there  is  more  safety  in  his  cloth  than  in  the  other's  brass, 
and  more  danger  in  his  pebbles  than  the  other's  spear.  Faith  gives 
both  heart  and  arms.  The  inward  munition  is  so  much  more  no- 
ble, because  it  is  of  proof  for  both  soul  and  body  :  if  we  be  fur- 
nished with  this,  how  boldly  shall  we  meet  with  the  powers  of  dark- 
ness, and  go  away  more  than  conquerors  ! 

Neither  did  the  quality  of  David's  weapons  bewray  more  confi- 
dence, than  the  number.  If  he  will  put  his  life  and  victory  "upon 
the  stones  of  the  brook,  why  doth  he  not  fill  his  scrip  full  of  them  ? 
Why  will  he  content  himself  with  five  ?  Had  he  been  furnished 
with  store,  the  advantage  of  his  nimbleness  might  have  given  him 
hope  ;  if  one  fail,  that  yet  another  might  speed  :  but  now  this  pair- 
city  purs  the  dispatch  to  a  sudden  hazard,  and  lie  hath  but  five 
stones'  cast,  either  to  death  or  victory.  Still  the  fewer  helps,  the 
stronger  faith.  David  had  an  instinct  from  God,  that  he  should 
overcome:  he  had  not  a  particular  direction,  how  he  should  over- 
come ;  for  had  he  been  at  first  resolved  upon  the  sling  and  stone, 
he  had  saved  the  labour  of  girding  his  sword.  It  seems,  while  they 
vvereaddressing  him  to  the  combat,  he  made  account  of  hand-blows; 
now,  he  is  purposed  rather  to  send  than  bring  death  to  his  adver- 
sary :  in  either,  or  both,  he  durst  trust  God  with  the  success,  and 
before-hand,  through  the  conliiet,  saw  the  victory.  It  is  sufficient, 


318  CON'TE  MPLAT10KS. 

that  we  know  the  issue  of  our  fight.  It"  our  weapons  and  wards 
vary  according  to  the  occasion  given  hy  God,  that  is  nothing  to 
the  event ;  sure  we  are,  that  it*  we  resist  we  shall  overcome,  and  if 
we  overcome  we  shall  be  crowned. 

When  David  appeared  in  the  lists  to  so  unequal  an  adversary,  as 
many  eyes  were  upon  him,  so  in  those  eyes  divers  affections.  The 
Israelites  looked  upon  him  with  pity  and  fear,  and  each  man 
thought,  "  Alas  !  why  is  this  comely  stripling  suffered  to  cast 
away  himself  upon  such  a  monster  ?  Why  will  they  let  him  go 
unarmed  to  such  an  affray  ?  Why  will  Saul  hazard  the  honour 
of  Israel  on  so  unlikely  a  head  ?"  The  Philistines,  especial- 
ly their  great  champion,  looked  upon  him  with  scorn,  disdaining 
so  base  a  combatant ;  Am  I  a  dog,  that  thou  contest  t&  me  with 
■  staves  f  What  could  be  said  more  fitly  ?  Hadst  thou  been  any  other 
than  a  dog,  O  Goliath,  thou  hadst  never  opened  thy  foul  mouth 
to  bark  against  the  host  of  God,  and  the  God  of  Hosts:  if  David 
had  thought  thee  any  other  than  a  very  dog,  he  had  never  come  to 
thee  with  a  staff  and  a  stone. 

The  last  words,  that  ever  the  Philistine  shall  speak,  are  curses1 
and  brags  ;  Come  to  me,  and  I  will  give  thy  flesh  unto  the  fowls  of 
the  heaven,  and  the  beasts  of  the  field.  Seldom  ever  was  there  a 
good  end  of  ostentation.  Presumption  is,  at  once,  the  presage  and 
cause  of  ruin. 

He  is  a  weak  adversary,  that  can  be  killed  with  words.  That 
man,  which  could  not  fear  the  giant's  hand,  cannot  fear  bis  tongue. 
If  words  shall  first  encounter,  the  Philistine  receives  the  first  foil, 
and  shall  first  let  in  death  into  his  ear,  ere  it  enter  into  his  fore- 
head ;  Thou  contest  to  me  with  a  sword,  and  a  spear,  and  a  shield ; 
but  I  come  to  thee  in  the  name  of  the  Lord  of  Hosts,  the  God  of 
the  host  of  Israel,  whom  thou  hast  railed  upon  :  this  day  shall  the 
Lord  close  thee  in  my  hand,  and  I  shall  smite  thee,  and  take  thine 
head  from  thee.  Here  is  another  style,  not  of  a  boaster,  but  of 
a  prophet :  now  shall  Goliath  know,  whence  to  expect  his  bane, 
even  from  the  hands  of  a  revenging  God,  that  shall  smite  him  by 
David  ;  and  now  shall  learn  too  late,  what  it  is  to  meddle  with  an 
enemy,  that  goes  under  the  invisible  protection  of  the  Almighty. 

No  sooner  hath  David  spoken,  than  his  foot  and  hand  second  his 
tongue.  He  runs  to  fight  with  the  Philistine.  It  is  a  cold  courage, 
that  stands  only  upon  defence.  As  a  man,  that  saw  no  cause  of 
fear  and  was  full  of  the  ambition  of  victory,  he  flies  upon  that  mon- 
ster, and  with  a  stone  out  of  his  bag  smites  him  in  the  forehead. 
There  was  no  part  of  Goliath  that  was  capable  of  that  danger,  but 
the  face,  and  that  piece  of  the  face  ;  the  rest  was  defended  with  a 
brazen  wall,  which  a  weak  sling  would  have  tried  to  batter  in  vain. 
What  could  Goliath  fear,  to  see  an  adversary  come  to  him  without 
edge  or  point  ?  And  behold,  that  one  part  hath  God  found  out  for 
the  entrance  of  death :  he,  that  could  have  caused  the  stone  to  pass 
through  the  shield  and  breast-plate  of  Goliath,  rather  directs  the 
stone  to  that  part,  whose  nakedness  gave  advantage.  Where  there 
is  power  or  possibility  of  nature,  God  uses  not  to  work  miracles, 
but  causes  the  way  that  lies  most  open  to  his  purposes. 


Jonathan's  love,  and  saul's  envy.  31^ 

The  vast  forehead  was  a  fair  mark ;  but  how  easily  might  the 
sling  have  missed  it,  if  there  had  not  been  another  hand  in  this 
cast  besides  David's!  He,  that  guided  David  into  this  field,  and 
raised  his  courage  to  this  combat,  guides  the  stone  to  his  end,  and 
lodges  it  in  that  seat  of  impudence. 

There  nowlieth  the  great  deher  of  Israel,  grovelling  and  grinning 
in  death  ;  and  is  not  suffered  to  deal  one  blow  for  his  life  ;  and  bites 
the  unwelcome  earth  for  indignation,  that  he  dies  by  the  hand  of  a 
shepherd.  Earth  and  hell  share  him  betwixt  them:  such  is  the  end 
of  insolence  and  presumption  !  O  God,  what  is  flesh  and  blood  to 
thee,  which  canst  make  a  little  pebble-stone  stronger  than  a  giant ; 
and  when  thou  wilt,  by  the  weakest  means  canst  strew  thine  ene- 
mies in  the  dust  ? 

Where  now  are  the  two  shields  of  Goliath,  that  they  did  not  bear 
off  this  stroke  of  death?  or  wherefore  serves  that  weaver's  beam, 
but  to  strike  the  earth  in  falling  ?  or  that  sword,  but  to  behead  his 
master  ?  What  needed  David  load  himself  with  an  unnecessary  wea- 
pon ?  one  sword  can  serve  both  Goliath  and  him.  If  Goliath  had  a 
man  to  bear  his  shield,  David  had  Goliath  to  bear  his  sword,  where- 
with that  proud  blasphemous  head  is  severed  from  his  shoulders. 
Nothing  more  honours  God,  than  the  turning  of  wicked  men's 
forces  against  themselves.  There  are  none  of  his  enemies,  but  car- 
ry with  them  their  own  destruction.  Thus  didst  thou,  O  Son  of 
David,  foil  Satan  with  his  own  weapon  :  that,  whereby  he  meant 
destruction  to  thee  and  us,  vanquished  him  through  thy  mighty 
power,  and  raised  thee  to  that  glorious  triumph  and  superexalta- 
tion,  wherein  thou  art,  wherein  we  shall  be  with  thee. 

1  Sam.  xviL 


JONATHAN'S  LOVE,  AND  SAUL'S  ENVY. 

Besides  the  discomfiture  of  the  Philistines,  David's  victory  had  a 
double  issue  ;  Jonathan's  love,  and  Saul's  envy,  which  God  so  mix- 
ed, that  the  one  was  a  remedy  of  the  other.  A  good  son  makes 
amends  for  a  wayward  father. 

How  precious  was  that  stone,  that  killed  such  an  enemy  as  Go- 
liath, and  purchased  such  a  friend  as  Jonathan  !  All  Saul's  courtiers 
looked  upon  David,  none  so  affected  him,  none  did  match  him  but 
Jonathan.  That  true  correspondence,  that  was  both  in  their  faith 
and  valour,  hath  knit  their  hearts  :  if  David  did  set  upon  a  bear, 
a  lion,  a  giant ;  Jonathan  had  set  upon  a  whole  host,  and  prevailed : 
the  same  spirit  animated  both,  the  same  faith  incited  both,  the  same 
hand  prospered  both. 

All  Israel  was  not  worth  this  pair  of  friends,  so  zealously  confi- 
dent, so  happily  victorious.  Similitude  of  dispositions  and  estates 
ties  the  fastest  knots  of  affection.  A  wise  soul  hath  piercing  eyes, 
and  hath  quickly  discerned  the  likeness  of  itself  in  another  ;  as 
we  do  no  sooner  look  into  the  glass  or  water,  but  face  answers  to 
luce ;  and  where  it  sees  a  perfect  .resemblance  of  itself,  cannot 


320 


CONTEMPLATION'S. 


chuse  but  love  it  with  the  same  affection,  that  it  reflects  upon 
itself. 

No  man  saw  David  that  day,  which  had  so  much  cause  to  disaf- 
fect  him  :  none  in  all  Israel  should  be  a  loser  by  David's  success, 
but  Jonathan.  Saul  was  sure  enough  settled  for  his  time,  only  his 
successor  should  forego  all  that,  which  David  should  oain  ;  so  as 
none  but  David  stands  in  Jonathan's  light,  and  yet  all  this  cannot 
abate  one  jot  or  dram  of  his  love.  Where  God  uniteth  hearts, 
carnal  respects  are  too  weak  to  dissever  them  ;  since  that,  which 
breaks  off  affection,  must  needs  be  stronger  than  that  which  con- 
joineth  it. 

Jonathan  doth  not  desire  to  smother  his  love  by  concealment, 
but  professes  it  in  his  carnage  and  actions.  He  puts  off  the  robe 
that  was  upon  him,  and  all  his  garments  even  to  his  sword,  and 
bow.  and  girdle,  and  gives  them  unto  his  new  friend.  It  was  per- 
haps not  without  a  mystery,  that  Saul's  clothes  fitted  not  David, 
but  .Jonathan's  fitted  him,  and  these  he  is  as  glad  to  wear,  as  he 
was  to  be  disburthened  of  the  other  :  that  there  might  be  a  perfect 
resemblance,  their  bodies  are  suited,  as  well  as  their  hearts.  Now 
the  beholders  can  say,  "  There  goes  Jonathan's  other  self ;  if  there 
be  another  body  under  those  clothes,  there  is  the  same  soul." 

Now  David  hath  cast  off  his  russet  coat  and  his  scrip,,  and  is  a 
shepherd  no  more ;  he  is  suddenly  become  both  a  courtier,  and  a 
captain,  and  a  companion  to  the  prince  ;  yet  himself  is  not  changed 
with  his  habit,  with  his  condition  :  yea  rather,  as  if  his  wisdom  had 
reserved  itself  for  his  exaltation,  he  so  manageth  a  sudden  great- 
ness, as  that  he  winneth  all  hearts.  Honour  shews  the  man  ;  and 
if  there  be  any  blemishes  of  imperfection,  they  will  be  seen  in  the 
man  that  is  unexpectedly  lifted  above  his  fellows.  He  is  out  of 
the  danger  of  folly,  whom  a  speedy  advancement  leaveth  wise. 

Jonathan  loved  David  ;  the  soldiers  honoured  him  ;  the  court 
favoured  him  ;  the  people  applauded  him  ;  only  Saul  stomached 
it,  and  therefore  hated  him,  because  he  was  so  happy  in  all  besides 
himself.  It  had  been  a  shame  for  all  Israel,  if  they  had  not  mag- 
nified their  champion.  Saul's  own  heart  could  not  but  tell  him, 
that  they  did  owe  the  glory  of  that  day,  and  the  safety  of  himself 
and  Israel,  unto  the  sling  of  David,  who  in  one  man  slew  all  those 
thousands  at  a  blow.  It  was  enough  for  the  puissant  king  of  Israel, 
to  follow  the  chase,  and  to  kill  them  whom  David  had  put  to 
flight ;  yet  he,  that  could  lend  his  clothes  and  his  armour  to  this 
exploit,  cannot  abide  to  part  with  the  honour  of  it  to  him  that  had 
earned  it  so  dearly.  The  holy  songs  of  David  had  not  more  qui- 
eted his  spirits  before,  than  now  the  thankful  song  of  the  Israelitish 
women  vexes  him  :  one  little  ditty  ,  of  Said  hath  slain  his  thou- 
sand, and  David  his  ten  thousand,  sung  unto  tiie  timbrels  of  Is- 
rael, fetched  again  that  evil  spirit,  which  David's  music  had  ex- 
pelled. 

Saul  needed  not  the  torment  of  a  worse  spirit  than  envy.  Oh 
the  unreasonableness  of  this  wicked  passion  !  The  women  gave 
Saul  more,  and  David  less,  than  he  deserved ;  for  Saul  alone  could 


Jonathan's  love,  and  sAul's  envy.  321 

not  kill  a  thousand,  and  David,  in  that  one  act  of  killing  Goliath, 
slew,  in  effect,  all  the  Philistines  that  were  slain  that  day  ;  and  yet, 
because  they  give  more  to  David  than  to  himself,  he,  that  should  have 
indited  and  begun  that  song  of  thankfulness,  repines  and  grows  novr 
as  mad  with  envy,  as  he  was  before  with  grief.  Truth  and  justice 
are  no  protection  against  malice.  Envy  is  blind  to  all  objects,  save 
other  men's  happiness.  If  the  eyes  of  men  could  be  contained 
within  their  own  bounds,  and  not  rove  forth  into  comparisons, 
there  could  be  no  place  for  this  vicious  affection  ;  but  when  they 
have  once  taken  this  lawless  scope  to  themselves,  they  lose  the 
knowledge  of  home,  and  care  only  to  be  employed  abroad  in  their 
own  torment. 

Never  was  Saul's  breast  so  fit  a  lodging  for  the  evil  spirit,  as 
now,  that  it  is  dressed  up  with  envy.  It  is  as  impossible,  that  hell 
should  be  free  from  devils,  as  a  malicious  heart. 

Now  doth  the  frantic  king  of  Israel  renew  his  old  fits,  and  walks 
and  talks  distractedly.  He  was  mad  with  David,  and  who  but  David 
must  be  called  to  allay  his  madness  ?  Such  as  David's  wisdom  was, 
he  could  not  but  know  the  terms,  wherein  he  stood  with  Saul ;  yet, 
in  lieu  of  the  harsh  and  discordant  notes  of  his  master's  envy,  he 
returns  pleasing  music  unto  him.  He  can  never  be  a  good  cour- 
tier, nor  good  man,  that  hath  not  learned  to  repay,  if  not  injuries 
with  thanks,  yet  evil  with  good. 

While  there  was  a  harp  in  David's  hand,  there  was  a  spear  in 
Saul's,  wherewith  he  threatens  death  as  the  recompence  of  that 
sweet  melody  :  he  said,  /  will  smite  David  through  to  the  wall.  It 
is  well  for  the  innocent,  that  wicked  men  cannot  keep  their  own 
counsel.  God  fetcheth  their  thoughts  out  of  their  mouths  or 
their  countenance,  for  a  seasonable  prevention,  which  else  might 
proceed  to  secret  execution.  It  was  time  for  David  to  withdraw 
himself :  his  obedience  did  not  tie  him  to  be  the  mark  of  a  furious 
master  :  he  might  ease  Saul  with  his  music,  with  his  blood  he  might 
not.  Twice  therefore  doth  he  avoid  the  presence,  not  the  court, 
not  the  service,  of  Saul. 

One  would  have  thought  rather,  that  David  should  have  been 
afraid  of  Saul  because  the  devil  was  so  strong  with  him,  than  that 
Saul  should  be  afraid  of  David  because  the  Lord  was  with  him  ; 
yet  we  find  all  the  fear  in  Saul  of  David,  none  in  David  of  Saul. 
Hatred  and  fear  are  ordinary  companions.  David  had  wisdom  and 
faith,  to  dispel  his  fears  ;  Saul  had  nothing  but  infidelity,  and  de- 
jected, self-condemned,  distempered  thoughts,  which  must  needs 
nourish  them  ;  yet  Saul  could  not  fear  any  hurt  from  David,  whom 
he  found  so  loyal  and  serviceable :  he  fears  only  too  much  good 
unto  David  ;  and  the  envious  fear  is  much  more  than  the  distrust- 
ful :  now  David's  presence  begins  to  be  more  displeasing,  than  his 
music  was  sweet ;  despight  itself  would  rather  prefer  him  to  a  re- 
mote dignity,  than  endure  him  a  nearer  attendant :  this  promotion 
increaseth  David's  honour  and  love  ;  and  his  love  and  honour  ag- 
gravate Saul's  hatred  gad  fear, 

VOL,  I.  Y 


322 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


Saul's  madness  hath  not  bereaved  him  of  his  craft ;  for,  perceiv- 
ing how  great  David  was  grown  in  the  reputation  of  Israel,  he  dares 
not  offer  any  personal  or  direct  violence  to  him,  but  hires  him  in- 
to the  jaws  of  a  supposed  death,  bv  no  less  price  than  his  eldest 
daughter ;  Behold  mine  eldest  daughter  Merab :  her  will  1  give 
thee  to  wife  ;  only  be  a  valiant  son  tome,  and  fght  the  Lord's  bat- 
tles. Could  ever  man  speak  more  graciously;  more  holily  ?  What 
could  be  more  graciously  offered  by  a  king,  than  his  eldest  daugh- 
ter ?  What  care  could  be  more  holy,  than  of  the  Lord's  battles  ? 
yet  never  did  iSaul  intend  so  much  mischief  to  David,  or  so  much 
unfaithfulnesstoGod,as  when  he  spake  thus.  There  is  never  so  much 
danger  of  the  false-hearted,  as  when  they  make  the  fairest  wea- 
ther. Saul's  spear  bade  David  be  gone  ;  but  his  plausible  words 
invite  him  to  danger. 

This  honour  was  due  to  David  before,  upon  the  compact  of  his 
victory  ;  yet  he,  that  twice  inquired  into  the  reward  of  that  enter- 
prise before  he  undertook  it,  never  demanded  it  after  that 
achievement ;  neither  had  Saul  the  justice  to  offer  it,  as  a  recom- 
pence  of  so  noble  an  exploit,  but  as  a  snare  to  an  envied  victory; 
Charity  suspects  not :  David  construes  that,  as  an  effect  and  argu- 
ment of  his  master's  love,  which  was  no  other  but  a  child  of  envy, 
but  a  plot  of  mischief;  and  though  he  knew  his  own  desert  and  the 
justice  of  his  claim  to  Merab,  yet  he  in  a  sincere  humility  dispa- 
rageth  himself  and  his  parentage,  with  a  Who  am  I? 

As  it  was  not  the  purpose  of  this  modesty  in  David,  to  reject, 
but  to  solicit  the  proffered  favour  of  Saul ;  so  was  it  not  in  the 
power  of  this  bashful  humiliation,  to  turn  back  the  edge  of  so  keen 
an  envy.  It  helps  not,  that  David  makes  himself  mean,  while 
others  magnify  his  worth.  Whatsoever  the  colour  was,  Saul  meant 
nothing  to  David  but  danger  and  death ;  and  since  all  those  battles 
will  not  effect  that  which  he  desired,  himself  will  not  effect  that 
which  he  promised.  If  he  cannot  kill  David,  he  will  disgrace  him. 

David's  honour  was  Saul's  disease  :  it  was  not  likely  therefore, 
that  Saul  would  add  unto  that  honour,  whereof  he  was  so  sick  al- 
ready. Merab  is  given  unto  another  ;  neither  do  I  hear  David 
complain  of  so  manifest  an  injustice:  he  knew,  that  the  God,  whose 
battles  he  fought,  had  provided  a  due  reward  of  his  patience.  If 
Merab  fail,  God  hath  a  Michal  in  store  for  him  :  she  is  in  love  with 
David  :  his  comeliness  and  valour  have  so  won  her  heart,  that  she 
now  emulates  the  affection  of  her  brother  Jonathan.  If  she  be  the 
younger  sister,  yet  she  is  more  affectionate. 

Saul  is  glad  of  the  news:  his  daughter  could  never  live  to  do  him 
better  service,  than  to  be  a  new  snare  to  his  adversary  :  she  shall 
be  therefore  sacrificed  to  his  envy,  and  her  honest  and  sincere  love 
shall  be  made  a  bait  for  her  worthy  and  innocent  husband  ;  /  will 
give  him  her,  that  she  may  be  a  snare  unto  him,  that  the  hand  of 
the  Philistines  may  be  against  kirn.  The  purpose  of  any  favour  ia 
more  than  the  value  of  it.  Kven  the  greatest  honours  may  be 
given  with  an  intent  of  destruction.  Many  a  man  is  raised  up  for 
a  fall. 


michal's  wil£.  323 
So  forward  is  Saul  in  the  match,  that  he  sends  spokesmen  to  so- 
licit David  to  that  honour,  which  he  hopes  will  prove  the  highway 
to  death.  The  dowry  is  set  ;  a  hundred  foreskins  of  the  Philis- 
tines ;  not  their  heads,  but  their  foreskins,  that  this  victory  might 
be  more  ignominious ;  still  thinking,  "  Why  may  not  one  David 
miscarry,  as  weD  as  a  hundred  Philistines  ?" 

And  what  doth  Saul's  envy  all  this  while,  but  enhance  David's 
zeal,  and  valour,  and  glory  ?  That  good  captain,  little  imagining 
that  himself  was  the  Philistine  whom  Saul  maligned,  supererogates 
of  his  master,  and  brings  two  hundred  for  one  ;  and  returns  home 
safe,  and  renowned.  Neither  can  Saul  now  fly  off  for  shame : 
there  is  no  remedy,  but  David  must  be  a  son,  where  he  was  a  rival; 
and  Saul  must  feed  upon  his  own  heart,  since  he  cannot  see  David's. 
God's  blessing  graces  equally  together  with  men's  malice  ;  neither 
can  they  devise,  which  way  to  make  us  more  happy,  than  by  wish- 
ing us  evil.  1  Sam.  xviii. 


MICHAL'S  WILE. 

This  advantage  can  Saul  yet  make  of  David's  promotion  ;  that,  as 
his  adversary  is  raised  higher,  so  he  is  drawn  nearer  to  the  oppor- 
tunity of  death.  Now  hath  his  envy  cast  off  all  shame  ;  and  since 
those  crafty  plots  succeed  not,  he  directly  suborns  murderers  of 
his  rival.  There  is  none  in  all  the  court,  that  is  not  set  on  to  be  an 
executioner.  Jonathan  himself  is  solicited  to  imbrue  his  hand  in 
the  blood  of  his  friend,  of  his  brother.  Saul  could  not  but  see  Jo- 
nathan's clothes  on  David's  back  ;  he  could  not  but  know  the  league 
of  their  love  ;  yet  because  he  knew  withal,  how  much  the  prosperi- 
ty of  David  would  prejudice  Jonathan,  he  hoped  to  have  found 
him  his  son  in  malice.  Those,  that  have  the  jaundice,  see  all  things 
yellow  :  those,  which  are  overgrown  with  malicious  passions,  think 
all  men  like  themselves. 

I  do  not  hear  of  any  reply  that  Jonathan  made  to  his  father, 
when  he  gave  him  that  bloody  charge ;  but  he  waits  for  a  fit  time,  to 
dissuade  him  from  so  cruel  an  injustice.  Wisdom  had  taught  him 
to  give  way  to  rage,  and  in  so  hard  an  adventure  to  crave  aid  of 
opportunity.  If  we  be  not  careful  to  observe  good  moods  when 
we  deal  with  the  passionate,  we  may  exasperate  instead  of  reform- 
ing. Thus  did  Jonathan,  who,  knowing  how  much  better  it  is  to 
be  a  good  friend  than  an  ill  son,  had  not  only  disclosed  that  ill 
counsel,  but,  when  he  found  his  father  in  the  fields  in  a  calmer 
temper,  laboured  to  divert  it :  and  so  far  doth  the  seasonable  and 
pithy  oratory  of  Jonathan  prevail,  that  Saul  is  convinced  of  his 
wrong,  and  swears,  as  God  lives,  David  shall  not  die  •,  indeed  how 
could  it  be  otherwise,  upon  the  plea  of  David's  innocence  and  well 
deservings  ?  How  could  Saul  say  he  should  die,  whom  he  could  ac- 
cuse of  nothing  but  faithfulness  ?  Why  should  he  design  him  to 
death,  which  had  given  life  to  all  Israel  ? 

Oft-times  wicked  men's  judgments  are  forced  to  yield  unto  that 


324 


C0NTEMP1.ATI0NS.- 


truth,  against  which  their  affections  maintain  a  rebellion.  Even  the. 
foulest  liearts  do  sometimes  entertain  good  motions  ;  like  as,  on 
the  contrary,  the  holiest  souls  give  way  sometimes  to  the  sugges- 
tions of  evil.  The  flashes  of  lightning  may  be  discerned  in  the 
darkest  prisons.  But  if  good  thoughts  look  into  a  wicked  heart, 
they  stay  not  there  as  those  that  like  not  their  lodging;  they  are 
soon  gone.  Hardly  any  thing  distinguishes  betwixt  good  and  evil, 
but  continuance.  The  light  that  shines  into  a  holy  heart  is  con- 
stant, like  that  of  the  sun,  which  keeps  due  times,  and  varies  not 
his  course  for  any  of  these  sublunary  occasions. 

The  Philistines'  wars  renew  Davicrs  victories  ;  and  David's  vic- 
tory renews  Saul's  envy  ;  and  Saul's  envy  renews  the  plots  of  Da- 
vid's death.  Vows  and  oaths  are  forgotten.  That  evil  spirit, 
which  vexes  Saul,  hath  found  so  much  favour  with  him,  as  to  win 
him  to  these  bloody  machinations  against  an  innocent.  His  own 
hands  shall  first  be  employed  in  this  execution.  The  spear,  which 
hath  twice  before  threatened  death  to  David,  shall  now  once  again 
go  upon  that  message.  Wise  David,  that  knew  the  danger  of  a 
hollow  friend  and  reconciled  enemy,  and  that  found  more  cause  to 
mind  Saul's  earnest  than  his  own  play,  gives  way  by  his  nimble- 
ness  to  that  deadly  weapon ;  and,  resigning  that  stroke  unto  the  wall, 
flies  for  his  life.  No  man  knows  how  to  be  sure  of  an  unconscion- 
able man.  If  either  goodness,  or  merit,  or  affinity,  or  reasons,  or 
oaths  could  secure  a  man,  David  had  been  safe ;  now,  if  his  heels 
do  not  more  befriend  him  than  all  these,  he  is  a  dead  man.  No 
sooner  is  he  gone,  than  messengers  are  sped  after  him.  It  hath 
been  seldom  seen,  that  wickedness  wanted  executioners.  David's 
house  is  beset  with  murderers,  which  watch  at  all  his  doors  for  the 
opportunity  of  blood. 

Who  can  but  wonder,  to  see  how  God  hath  fetched  from  the 
loins  of  Saul  a  remedy  for  the  malice  of  Saul's  heart  ?  His  own 
children  are  the  only  means  to  cross  him  in  the  sin,  and  to  preserve 
his  guiltless  adversary.  Michal  hath  more  than  notice  of  the  plot; 
and,  with  her  subtle  wit,  countermines  her  father,  for  the  rescue 
of  a  husband.  She,  taking  the  benefit  of  the  night,  lets  David 
down  through  a  window :  he  is  gone  ;  and  disappoints  the  am- 
bushes of  Saul.  The  messengers  begin  to  be  impatient  of  this  de- 
lay ;  and  now  think  it  time  to  inquire  after  their  prisoner.  She 
whiles  them  off,  with  the  excuse  of  David's  sickness,  so  as  now  her 
husband  had  good  leisure  for  his  escape,  and  lays  a  statue  in  his 
bed.  Saul  likes  the  news  of  any  evil  befallen  to  David  ;  but,  fear- 
ing he  is  not  sick  enough,  sends  to  aid  his  disease.  The  messengers 
return  ;  and,  rushing  into  the  house  with  their  swords  drawn,  after 
some  harsh  words  to  their  imagined  charge,  surprise  a  sick  statue 
lying  with  a  pillow  under  his  head  ;  and  now  blush  to  see  they  have 
spent  all  their  threats  upon  a  senseless  stock,  and  made  themselves 
ridiculous,  while  they  would  be  serviceable. 

But  how  shall  Michal  answer  this  mockage  unto  her  furious  fa- 
ther? Hitherto  she  hath  done  like  David's  wife  ;  now  she  begins  to 
be  Saul's  daughter;  Jh  mid  tome>  Let  me  goy  or  else  1 will  kill  thee. 


michal' s  wile.  325 
£he,  whose  wit  had  delivered  her  husband  from  the  sword  of  her  fa- 
ther, now  turns  the  edge  of  her  father's  wrath  from  herself  to  her 
husband.  His  absence  made  her  presume  of  his  safety.  If  Michal 
had  not  been  of  Saul's  plot,  he  had  never  expostulated  with  her  in 
those  terms,  Why  hast  thou  let  mine  enemy  escape  ?  neither  had  she 
framed  that  answer,  He  said,  Let  me  go. 

I  do  not  find  any  great  store  of  religion  in  Michal ;  for  both  she 
had  an  image  in  the  house,  and  afterward  mocked  David  for  his 
devotion  :  yet  nature  hath  taught  her  to  prefer  a  husband  to  a  fa- 
ther ;  to  elude  a  father,  from  whom  she  could  not  fly  ;  to  save  a  hus- 
band, which  durst  not  but  fly  from  her.  The  bonds  of  matrimonial 
love  are  and  should  be  stronger  than  those  of  nature.  Those  re- 
spects are  mutual,  which  God  appointed  in  the  first  institution  of 
wedlock,  that  husband  and  wife  should  leave  father  and  mother  for 
each  other's  sake.  Treason  is  ever  odious  ;  but  so  much  more  iu 
the  marriage-bed,  by  how  much  the  obligations  are  deeper. 

As  she  loved  her  husband  better  than  her  father,  so  she  loved  her- 
self better  than  her  husband.  She  saved  her  husband  by  a  wile,  and 
now  she  saves  herself  by  a  lie  ;  and  loses  half  the  thank  of  her  deli- 
verance, by  an  officious  slander.  Her  act  was  good,  but  she  wants 
courage  to  maintain  it;  and  therefore  seeks  to  the  weak  shelter  of 
untruth.  Those  that  do  good  offices,  not  out  of  conscience  but 
good  nature  or  civility,  if  they  meet  an  affront  of  danger  seldom 
come  off  cleanly,  but  are  ready  to  catch  at  all  excuses,  though  base, 
though  injurious  ;  because  their  grounds  are  not  strong  enough  to 
bear  them  out  in  suffering  for  that,  which  they  have  Well  done. 

Whither  doth  David  fly,  but  to  the  sanctuary  of  Samuel  ?  he  doth 
not  (though  heknew  himself  gracious  with  the  soldiers)  raise  forces, 
or  take  some  strong  fort,  and  there  stand  upon  his  own  defence,  and 
at  defiance  with  his  king  ;  but  he  gets  him  to  the  college  of  the  pro^ 
phets,  as  a  man  that  would  seek  the  peaceable  protection  of  the 
King  of  Heaven  against  the  un  just  fury  of  a  king  on  earth  :  only  the 
wing  of  God  shall  hide  him  from  that  violence. 

God  intended  to  make  David,  not  a  warrior  and  a  king  only,  but 
a  prophet  too  :  as  the  field  fitted  him  for  the  first,  and  the  court  for 
the  second,  so  Naioth  shall  fit  him  for  the  third.  Doubtless  (such 
was  David's  delight  in  holy  meditations)  he  never  spent  his  time  so 
contentedly,  as  when  he  was  retired  to  that  divine  academy,  and  had 
so  full  freedom  to  enjoy  God,  and  to  satiate  himself  with  heavenly 
exercises.  The  only  doubt  is,  how  Samuel  can  give  harbour  to  a 
man  fled  from  the  anger  of  his  prince  ;  wherein,  the  very  persons 
of  both  give  abundant  satisfaction  :  for  both  Samuel  knew  the 
counsel  of  God,  and  durst  do  nothing  without  it ;  and  David  was  by 
Samuel  anointed  from  God. 

This  unction  was  a  mutual  bond.  Good  reason  had  David  to  sue 
him,  which  had  poured  the  oil  on  his  head,  for  the  hiding  of  that, 
head  which  he  had  anointed  ;  and  good  reason  had  Samuel  to  hide 
him,  whom  God  by  his  means  had  chosen,  from  him  whom  God 
had  by  his  sentence  rejected  ;  besides  that,  the  cause  deserved  com- 
miseration :  here  was  not  a  malefactor  running  away  from  justice, 


326  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

but  an  innocent  avoiding  murder ;  not  a  traitor  countenanced 
against  his  sovereign,  but  the  deliverer  of  Israel  harboured  in  a  sanc- 
tuary of  prophets  till  his  peace  might  be  made. 

Even  thither  doth  Saul  send  to  apprehend  David.  All  his  rage 
did  not  incense  him  against  Samuel  as  the  abettor  of  his  adversary  : 
such  an  impression  of  reverence  had  the  person  and  calling  of  the 
prophet  left  in  the  mind  of  Saul,  that  he  cannot  think  of  lifting  up 
his  hand  against  him.  The  same  God,  which  did  at  the  first  put  an 
awe  of  man  in  the  fiercest  creatures,  hath  stamped  in  the  cruellest 
hearts  a  reverent  respect  to  his  own  image  in  his  ministers;  so  as 
even  they  that  hate  them,  do  yet  honour  them. 

Saul's  messengers  came  to  lay  hold  on  David  ;  God  lays  hold  on 
them.  No  sooner  do  they  see  a  company  of  prophets  busy  in  those 
divine  exercises,  under  the  moderation  of  Samuel,  than  they  are 
turned  from  executioners  to  prophets.  It  is  good  going  up  to  Nai- 
oth,  into  the  hoi}7  assemblies  :  who  knows  how  we  may  be  changed 
beside  our  intention  ?  Many  one  hath  come  into  God's  house  to  carp, 
or  scoff,  or  sleep,  or  gaze,  that  hath  returned  a  convert. 

The  same  heart,  that  was  thus  disquieted  with  David's  happy  suc- 
cess, is  now  vexed  with  the  holiness  of  his  other  servants.    It  an- 

fers  him,  that  God's  Spirit  could  find  no  other  time  to  seize  upon 
is  agents,  than  when  he  had  sent  them  to  kill :  and  now,  out  of"  an 
indignation  at  this  disappointment,  himself  will  go  and  be  his  own 
servant.  His  guilty  soul  finds  itself  out  of  the  danger  of  being  thus 
surprised  ;  and  behold,  Saul  is  no  sooner  come  within  the  smell  of 
the  smoke  of  Naioth,  than  he  also  prophesies.  The  same  Spirit, 
that,  when  he  went  first  from  Samuel,  enabled  him  to  prophesy,  re- 
turns in  the  same  effect  now  that  he  was  going  (his  last)  unto  Sa- 
muel. This  was  such  a  grace  as  might  well  stand  with  rejection ; 
an  extraordinary  gift  of  the  Spirit,  but  not  sanctifying.  Many  men 
have  had  their  mouths  opened  to  prophesy  unto  others,  whose  hearts 
have  been  deaf  to  God  ;  but  this,  such  as  it  was,  was  far  from  Saul's 
purpose,  who,  instead  of  expostulating  with  Samuel,  falls  down  be- 
fore him  ;  and  laying  aside  his  weapons  and  his  robes,  of  a  tyrant 
proves,  for  the  time,  a  disciple.  All  hearts  are  in  the  hand  of  their 
Maker.  How  easy  is  it  for  him  that  gave  them  their  being,  to  frame 
them  to  his  own  bent !  Who  can  be  afraid  of  malice,  that  knows  what 
hooks  God  hath  in  the  nostrils  of  men  and  devils  ?  what  charms  he 
hath  for  the  most  serpentine  hearts  ?  1  Sam.  xix. 

DAVID  AND  AHIMELF.CH. 
Who  can  ever  judge  of  the  children  by  the  parents,  that  knows  Jo- 
nathan was  the  son  of  Saul  ?  There  was  never  a  falser  heart  than 
.Saul's;  there  was  never  a  truer  friend  than  Jonathan.  Neither  the 
hope  of  a  kingdom,  nor  the  frowns  of  a  father,  nor  the  fear  of  death, 
can  remove  him  from  his  vowed  amity.  No  son  could  be  more  offi- 
cious and  dutiful  to  a  good  father  ;  yet  he  lays  down  nature  at  the 
foot  of  grace,  and,  for  the  preservation  of  his  innocent  rival  for  the 
kingdom,  crosses  the  bloody  designs  of  his  own  parent.  David 


DAVID  AND  A  HI  ME  LECH.  321 

needs  no  other  counsellor,  no  other  advocate,  no  other  intelligencer, 
than  he.  It  is  not  in  the  power  of  Saul's  unnatural  reproaches,  or 
of  his  spear,  to  make  Jonathan  any  other  than  a  friend  and  patron 
of  innocence.  Even  after  all  these  difficulties,  doth  Jonathan  shoot 
beyond  David,  that  Saul  may  shoot  short  of  him.  In  vain  are  those 
professions  of  love,  which  are  not  answered  with  action.  He  is  no 
true  friend,  that,  beside  talk,  is  not  ready  both  to  do  and  suffer. 

Saul  is  no  whit  the  better  for  his  prophesying.  He  no  sooner 
rises  up  from  before  Samuel,  than  he  pursues  David.  Wicked  men 
are  rather  the  worse,  for  those  transitory  good  motions  they  have 
received.  If  the  swine  be  never  so  clean  washed,  she  will  wallow  a- 
gain.  That  we  have  good  thoughts,  it  is  no  thank  to  us  ;  that  we 
answer  them  not,  it  is  both  our  sin  and  judgment. 

David  hath  learned,  not  to  trust  these  fits  of  devotion  ;  but  flies 
from  Samuel  to  Jonathan,  from  Jonathan  to  Ahimelech.  When  he 
was  hunted  from  the  prophet,  he  flies  to  the  priest ;  as  one  that  knew 
justice  and  compassion  should  dwell  in  those  breasts,  which  are  con- 
secrated unto  God. 

The  ark  and  the  tabernacle  were  then  separated  ;  the  ark  was  at 
Kirjathjearim,  the  tabernacle  at  Nob.  God  was  present  with  both. 
Whither  should  David  fly  for  succour,  but  to  the  House  of  that  God 
which  had  anointed  him  ? 

Ahimelech  was  wont  to  see  David  attended  with  the  troops  of  Is- 
rael, or  with  the  gallants  of  the  court ;  it  seems  strange  therefore 
to  him,  to  see  so  great  a  peer  and  champion  of  Israel  come  alone. 
These  are  the  alterations  to  which  earthly  greatness  is  subject.  Not 
many  days  are  past,  since  no  man  was  honoured  at  court  but  Jona- 
than and  David  ;  now  they  are  both  for  the  time  in  disgrace :  now 
dare  not  the  king's  son-in-law,  brother  to  the  prince  both  in  love 
and  marriage,  shew  his  head  at  the  court ;  nor  any  of  those  that 
bowed  to  him,  dare  stir  a  foot  with  him.  Princes  are  as  the  sun,  and 
great  subjects  are  like  to  dials;  if  the  sun  shine  not  on  the  dial,  no 
man  will  look  at  it. 

Even  he,  that  overcame  the  bear,  the  lion,  the  giant,  is  overcome 
with  fear.  He,  that  had  cut  off  two  hundred  fore-skins  of  the  Phi- 
listines, had  not  circumcised  his  own  heart  of  the  weak  passions  that 
follow  distrust.  Now  that  he  is  hard  driven,  he  practises  to  help 
himself  with  an  unwarrantable  shift.  Who  can  look  to  pass  this 

{)ilgrimage  without  infirmities,  when  David  dissembleth  to  Ahime- 
ech  ?  A  weak  man's  rules  may  be  better  than  the  best  man's  actions. 
God  lets  us  see  some  blemishes  in  his  holiest  servants,  that  we  may 
neither  be  too  highly  conceited  of  flesh  and  blood,  nor  too  much 
dejected  when  we  have  been  miscarried  into  sin.  Hitherto  hath 
David  gone  upright,  now  he  begins  to  haK  with  the  priest  of  God  ; 
and,  under  pretence  of  Saul's  employment,  draws  that  favour  from 
Ahimelech  which  shall  afterwards  cost  him  his  head. 

What  could  Ahimelech  ha  ve  thought  too  dear  for  God's  anointed, 
for  God's  champion  ?  It  is  not  like,  but  that  if  David  had  sincerely 
opened  himself  to  the  priest  as  he  had  done  to  the  prophet,  Ahime- 
lech would  have  seconded  Samuel  in  some  secret  and  safe  succour 


328 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


of  so  unjust  a  distress ;  whereas  he  is  now,  by  a  false  colour,  led  te 
that  kindness  which  shall  be  prejudicial  to  his  life.  Extremities  of 
evil  are  commonly  inconsiderate ;  either  for  that  we  have  not  lei- 
sure to  our  thoughts,  or  perhaps  (so  we  may  be  perplexed)  not 
thoughts  to  our  leisure.  What  would  David  have  given  afterwards, 
to  have  redeemed  this  oversight  ? 

Under  this  pretence,  he  craves  a  double  favour  of  Ahimelech  ; 
the  one  of  bread  for  his  sustenance,  the  other  of  a  sword  for  his  de- 
fence. 

There  was  no  bread  under  the  hands  of  the  priest,  but  that  which 
was  consecrated  to  God  ;  and  whereof  none  might  taste,  but  the  de- 
voted servants  of  the  altar  ;  even  that,  which  was  with  solemn  dedi- 
cation set  upon  the  holy  tables  before  the  face  of  God  ;  a  sacramen- 
tal bread,  presented  to  God  with  incense,  figuring  that  true  bread 
that  came  down  from  Heaven  :  yet  even  this  bread  might,  in  case  of 
necessity,  become  common,  and  be  given  by  Ahimelech,  and  re- 
ceived by  David  and  his  followers.  Our  Saviour  himself  justifies  the 
act  of  both.  Ceremonies  must  give  place  to  substance.  God  will 
have  mercy  and  not  sacrifice.  Charity  is  the  sum  and  the  end  of  the 
law  :  that  must  be  aimed  at,  in  all  our  actions  ;  wherein  it  may  fall 
out,  that  the  way  to  keep  the  law  may  be  to  break  it :  the  intention 
may  be  kept,  and  the  letter  violated ;  and  it  may  be  a  dangerous 
transgression  of  the  law,  to  observe  the  words  and  neglect  the  scope 
of  God.  That,  which  would  have  dispensed  with  David  for  the  sub- 
stance of  the  act,  would  have  much  more  dispensed  with  him  for  the 
circumstance.  The  touch  of  their  lawful  wives  had  contracted  a 
legal  impurity,  not  a  moral.  That  could  have  been  no  sufficient 
reason,  why,  in  an  urgent  necessity,  they  might  not  have  partaken 
of  the  holy  bread.  Ahimelech  was  no  perfect  casuist.  These  men 
might  not  famish,  if  they  were  ceremonially  impure :  but  this  ques- 
tion bewraved  the  care  of  Ahimelech  in  distributing  the  holy  bread. 
There  might  be  in  these  men  a  double  incapacity,  the  one  as  they 
were  seculars,  the  other  as  unclean  :  he  saw  the  one  must  be,  he 
feared  lest  the  other  should  be ;  as  one  that  wished  as  little  indis- 
position, as  possible  might  be,  in  those  which  should  be  fed  from 
God's  table. 

It  is  strange,  that  David  should  come  to  the  priest  of  God  for  a 
sword.  Who,  in  all  Israel,  was  so  unlikelv  to  furnish  him  with  wea- 
pons, as  a  man  of  peace,  whose  armour  was  onlv  spiritual  ?  Doubt- 
less, David  knew  well  where  Goliath's  sword  lay  ;  as  the  noble  relic 
of  God's  victorious  deliverance,  dedicated  to  tbe  same  God  which 
won  it :  at  this,  did  that  suit  aim  :  none  could  be  so  fit  for  David  ; 
none  could  be  so  fit  for  it  as  David.  Who  could  have  so  much  right 
to  that  sword,  as  he  against  whom  it  was  drawn,  and  by  whom  it  was 
taken  ?  There  was  more  in  that  sword,  than  metal  and  form  :  David 
could  never  cast  his  eye  upon  it,  but  he  saw  an  undoubted  monument 
of  the  merciful  protection  of  the  Almighty  ;  there  was  therefore 
more  strength  in  that  sword,  than  sharpness:  neither  was  David's 
arm  so  much  strengthened  bv  it,  as  his  faith  ;  nothing  can  overcome 
hiui,  while  he  carries  with  him  that  assured  sign  of  victory.  It  is 


DAVID  AND  AHIMELECH.  329 

good  to  take  all  occasions,  of  renewing  the  remembrance  of  God's 
mercies  to  us,  and  our  obligations  to  him. 

Doeg,  tlx:  master  of  Saul's  herdmen,  (for  he  that  went  to  seek  his 
father's  asses  before  he  was  king,  hath  herds  and  droves  now  that 
he  is  a  king,)  was  now  in  the  court  of  the  tabernacle,  upon  some  oc- 
casion of  devotion.  Though  an  Israelite  in  profession,  he  was  an 
Edomite  no  less  in  heart  than  in  blood  ;  yet  he  hath  some  vow  upon 
him,  and  not  only  comes  up  to  God's  house,  but  abides  before  the 
Lord.  Hypocrites  have  equal  access  to  the  public  places  and  means 
of  God's  service.  Even  he,  that  knows  the  heart,  yet  shuts  his  doors 
upon  none  ;  how  much  less  should  we  dare  to  exclude  any,  which 
can  only  judge  of  the  heart  by  the  face  ? 

Doeg  may  set  his  foot  as  far  within  the  tabernacle,  as  David.  He 
sees  the  passages  betwixt  him  and  Aliimelech,  and  lays  them  up  for 
an  advantage.  While  he  should  have  edified  himself  by  those  holy 
services,  he  carps  at  the  priest  of  God  ;  and,  after  a  lewd  misinter- 
pretation of  his  actions,  of  an  attendant,  proves  an  accuser.  To  in- 
cur favour  with  an  unjust  master,  he  informs  against  innocent  Alii- 
melech ;  and  makes  that  his  act,  which  was  drawn  from  him  by  a 
cunning  circumvention.  When  we  see  our  auditors  before  us,  little 
do  we  know  with  what  hearts  they  are  there,  nor  what  use  they  will 
make  of  their  pretended  devotion.  If  many  come  in  simplicity  of 
heart  to  serve  their  God ,  some  others  may  perhaps  come  to  observe 
their  teachers,  and  to  pick  quarrels  where  none  are.  Only  God  and 
the  issue  can  distinguish  betwixt  a  David  and  a  Doeg,  when  they  are 
both  in  the  tabernacle. 

Honest  Ahimelech  could  little  suspect,  that  he  now  offered  a  sa- 
crifice for  his  executioner ;  yea,  for  the  murderer  of  all  his  family. 
Oh  the  wise  and  deep  judgments  of  the  Almighty  !  God  owed  a  re- 
venge to  the  house  of  Eli ;  and  now,  by  the  delation  of  Doeg,  he 
takes  occasion  to  pay  it.  It  was  just  in  God,  which  in  Doeg  was 
most  unjust.  Saul's  cruelty  and  the  treachery  of  Doeg  do  not  lose 
one  dram  of  their  guilt  by  the  counsel  of  God ;  neither  doth  the 
holv  counsel  of  God  gather  any  blemish  by  their  wickedness.  If  it 
had  pleased  God  to  indict  death  upon  them  sooner,  without  any 
pretence  of  occasion,  his  justice  had  been  clear  from  all  imputa- 
tions ;  now,  if  Saul  and  Doeg  be  instead  of  a  pestilence  or  fever, 
who  can  cavil  ?  The  judgments  of  God  are  not  open,  but  are  always 
just.  He  knows  how,  by  one  man's  sin  to  punish  the  sin  of  another, 
and  by  both  their  sins  and  punishments  to  glorify  himself.  If  his 
word  sleep,  it  shall  not  die ;  but,  after  long  intermissions,  breaks 
forth  in  those  effects,  which  we  had  forgotten  to  look  for,  and  ceased 
to  fear.  O  Lord,  thou  art  sure  when  thou  threatenest,  and  just  when 
thou  judgest.  Keep  thou  us  from  the  sentence  of  death,  else  in  vain 
shall  we  labour  to  keep  ourselves  from  the  execution. 

1  Samuel  xxi. 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


BOOK  XIV. 


TO  THE  RIGHT  HONOURABLE,  AND  MY  SINGULAR  GOOD  LORD, 

PHILIP,  EARL  OF  MONTGOMERY, 

ONE  Or  THE  GENTLEMEN  OF  HIS  MAJESTY'S  BED-CHAMBER,  AND 
KNIGHT  OF  THE  MOST  HONOURABLE  ORDER  OF  THE  GARTER. 


RIGHT  HONOURABLE  : 

After  some  unpleasing  intermissions,  I  return  to  that  task  of 
Contemplation,  wherein  only  my  soul  Jindeth  rest.  If  in  other  em~ 
ployments  I  have  endeavoured  to  perve  God  and  his  Church,  yet  in 
none,  I  must  confess,  with  equal  contentment.  Mcthinks  contro- 
versy is  not  right  in  my  way  to  heaven ;  however  the  importunity 
of  an  adversary  may  force  me  to  fetch  it  in.  If  truth  oppressed  by 
an  erroneous  teacher  cry,  like  a  ravished  virgin,  for  my  aid,  I  be- 
tray it,  if  I  relieve  it  not ;  when  I  have  done,  I  return  gladly  to  these 
paths  of  peace.  The  favour,  which  my  late  polemical  labour  hath 
found  (beyond  merit)  from  the  learned,  cannot  divert  my  love  to 
those  wrangling  studies.  How  earnestly  doth  my  heart  rather  wish 
an  universal  cessation  of  these  arms  )  that  all  the  professors  of  the 
dear  name  of  Christ  might  be  taken  up  with  nothing  but  holy  and 
peaceable  thoughts  of  devotion ;  the  sweetness  whereof  hath  so  far 
affected  me,  that,  if  I  might  do  it  without  danger  of  misconstruction , 
I  could  beg  even  of  an  enemy  this  leave  to  be  happy.  I  have  already 
given  account  to  the  world,  of  some  expences  of  my  hours  this  way, 
and  here  I  bring  more;  which,  if  some  reader  may  censure  as  poor, 
none  can  censure  as  unprofitable .  I  am  bold  to  write  than  under 
your  honourable  name,  whereto  I  am  deeply  obliged  ;  that  I  may 
leave  behind  me  this  mean  but  faithful  testimony,  of  my  humble 
thankfulness  to  your  Lordship,  and  your  most  honoured  and  virtuous 
Lady.  The  noble  respects  I  have  had  from  you  both,  deserve  my 
prayers  and  best  services,  which  shall  never  be  wanting  to  you  and 
yours, 

From  your  Honour's  sincerely 

Devoted  in  all  true  duty, 


JOSEPH  HALL. 


331 


SAUL  IN  DAVID'S  CAVE. 

It  was  the  strange  lot  of  David,  that  those  whom  he  pursued  pre- 
served him  from  those  whom  he  had  preserved.  The  Philistines, 
whom  David  had  newly  smitten  in  Keilah,  call  off  Saul  from  smit- 
ing David  in  the  wilderness,  when  there  was  but  a  hillock  betwixt 
him  and  death. 

Wicked  purposes  are  easily  checked,  not  easily  broken  off. 
Saul's  sword  is  scarce  dry  from  the  blood  of  the  Philistines,  when 
it  thirsts  anew  for  the  blood  of  David ;  and  now,  in  a  renewed 
cfiase,  hunts  him  dry-foot  through  every  wilderness.  The  veiy 
desert  is  too  fair  a  refuge  for  innocence.  The  hills  and  rocks  are 
searched  in  an  angry  jealousy.  The  very  wild  goats  of  the  moun- 
tains were  not  allowed  to  be  companions  for  him,  which  had  no 
fault  but  his  virtue.  Ob  the  seemingly-unequal  distribution  of 
these  earthly  things  !  Cruelty  and  oppression  reign  in  a  palace, 
while  goodness  lurks  among  the  rocks  and  caves,  and  thinks  it  hap- 
piness enough  to  steal  a  life. 

Like  a  dead  man,  David  is  fain  to  be  hid  under  the  earth ;  and 
seeks  the  comfort  of  protection  in  darkness :  and  now  the  wise 
providence  of  God  leads  Saul  to  his  enemy,  without  blood.  He, 
which  before  brought  them  within  a  hill's  distance  without  interview, 
brings  them  now  both  within  one  roof ;  so  as  that  while  Saul  seeks 
David  and  finds  him  not,  he  is  found  of  David  unsought.  If  Saul 
had  known  his  own  opportunities,  how  David  and  his  men  had  in- 
terred themselves,  he  had  saved  a  treble  labour,  of  chase,  of  execu- 
tion, and  burial ;  for  had  he  but  stopped  the  mouth  of  that  cave, 
his  enemies  had  laid  themselves  down  in  their  own  graves.  The 
wisdom  of  God  thinks  fit  to  hide  from  evil  men  and  spirits,  those 
means  and  seasons,  which  might  be,  if  they  had  been  taken,  most 
prejudicial  to  his  own.  We  had  been  oft  foiled,  if  Satan  could  but 
have  known  our  hearts.  Sometimes  we  lie  open  to  evils,  and 
happy  it  is  for  us  that  he  only  knows  it,  which  pities  instead  of 
tempting  us. 

It  is  not  long  since  Saul  said  of  David,  lodged  then  in  Keilah, 
God  hath  delivered  him  into  mine  hands  ;  for  he  is  shut  in,  seeing 
he  is  eorne  into  a  city  that  hath  gates  and  bars ;  but  now,  contra- 
rily,  God  delivers  Saul,  ere  he  was  aware,  into  the  Jiands  of  David ; 
and,  without  the  help  of  gates  and  bars,  hath  inclosed  him  within 
the  valley  of  death.  How  just  is  it  with  God,  that  those  who  seek 
mischief  to  others  find  it  to  themselves;  and,  even  while  they  ate 
spreading  nets,  are  ensnared.  Their  deliberate  plotting  of  evil  is 
surprised  with  a  sudden  judgment. 

How  amazedly  must  David  needs  look,  when  he  saw  Saul  enter 
into  the  cave,  where  himself  was  !    "  What  is  this,"  thinks  he, 

which  God  hath  done?  Is  this  presence  purposed,  or  casual? 
Is  Saul  here  to  pursue,  or  to  tempt  me  ?"  Where,  suddenly,  the 
action  bewrays  the  intent ;  and  tells  David,  that  Saul  sought  se- 
crecy, and  not  him.   The  superfluity  of  his  maliciousness  brought 


332  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

him  into  the  wilderness  ;  the  necessity  of  nature  led  hina  into  the 
cave  :  even  those  actions  wherein  we  place  shame,  are  not  ex- 
empted from  a  providence. 

The  fingers  of  David's  followers  itched  to  seize  upon  their 
master's  enemy ;  and,  that  they  might  not  seem  led  so  much  by 
faction  as  by  faith,  they  urge  David  with  a  promise  from  God  ; 
The  day  is  come,  whereof  the  Lord  said  until  thee,  Behold,  I  will 
deliver  thine  enemy  into  thine  hand,  and  thou  shall  do  to  him,  as  it 
shall  seem  good  to  thee.  This  argument  seemed  to  carry  sucli  com- 
mand with  it,  as  that  David  not  only  may  but  must  imbrue  his 
hands  in  blood,  unless  he  will  be  found  wanting  to  God  and  himself. 
Those  temptations  are  most  powerful,  which  fetch  their  force  from 
the  pretence  of  a  religious  obedience ;  whereas  those,  which  are 
raised  from  arbitrary  and  private  respects,  admit  of  an  easy  dispen- 
sation. 

If  there  were  such  a  prediction,  one  clause  of  it  was  ambiguous  ; 
and  they  take  it  at  the  worst.  Thou  shall  do  to  him,  as  shall  seem 
good  to  thee :  that  might  not  seem  good  to  him,  which  seemed  evil 
to  God.  There  is  nothing  more  dangerous,  than  to  make  con- 
struction of  God's  purposes  out  of  eventual  appearances.  If  carnal 
probabilities  might  be  the  rule  of  our  judgment,  what  could  God 
seem  to  intend  otner  than  Saul's  death,  in  offering  him  naked  into 
the  hands  of  those  whom  he  unjustly  persecuted  ?  How  could 
David's  soldiers  think,  that  God  had  sent  Saul  thither  on  any  other 
errand,  than  to  fetch  his  bane  ?  And  if  Saul  could  have  seen  his 
own  danger,  he  had  given  himself  for  dead  ;  for  his  heart,  guilty 
to  his  own  bloody  desires,  could  not  but  have  expected  the  same 
measure  which  it  meant;  But  wise  and  holy  David,  not  transported 
either  with  misconceit  of  the  event,  or  fury  of  passion,  or  solicita- 
tion of  his  followers,  dares  make  no  other  use  of  this  accident,  than 
the  trial  of  his  loyalty  and  the  inducement  of  his  peace.  It  had 
been  as  easy  for  him,  to  cut  the  throat  of  Saul  as  his  garment ; 
but  now  his  coat  only  shall  be  the  worse,  not  his  person  :  neither 
doth  he  in  this  maiming  of  a  cloke  seek  his  own  revenge,  but  a 
monument  of  his  innocence.  Before,  Saul  rent  Samuel's  garment ; 
now,  David  cutteth  Saul's  :  both  were  significant :  the  rending  of 
the  one,  signified  the  kingdom  torn  out  of  those  unworthy  hands ; 
the  cutting  of  the  other,  that  the  life  of  Saul  might  have  been  as, 
easily  cut  off. 

Saul  needs  no  other  monitor  of  his  own  danger,  than  what  he 
wears.  The  garment  of  Saul  was  laid  aside,  while  he  went  to  co- 
ver his  feet ;  so  as  the  cut  of  the  garment  did  not  threaten  any 
touch  of  the  body  :  yet  even  the  violence  offered  to  a  remote  gar- 
ment strikes  the  heart  of  David,  which  finds  a  present  remorse,  for 
harmfully  touching  that  which  did  once  touch  the  person  of  his 
master.  Tender  consciences  are  moved  to  regret  at  those  actions, 
which  strong  hearts  pass  over  with  a  careless  ease.  It  troubled  not 
Saul  to  seek  after  the  blood  of  a  righteous  servant.  There  is  no 
less  difference  of  consciences  than  stomachs:  some  stomachs  will 
digest  the  hardest  meats,  and  turn  over  substances  not  in  their 


saul  in  david's  cave.  333 

nature  edible,  while  others  surfeit  of  the  lightest  food,  and  com- 
plain even  of  dainties.  Every  gracious  heart  is  in  some  measure 
scrupulous,  and  finds  more  safety  in  fear,  than  in  presumption  ; 
and  if  it  be  so  strait,  as  to  curb  itself  in  from  the  liberty  which  it 
might  take  in  things  which  are  not  unlawful,  how  much  less  will  it 
dare  to  take  scope  unto  evil !  By  how  much  that  state  is  better, 
where  nothing  is  allowed,  than  where  all  things  ;  by  so  much  is 
the  strict  and  timorous  conscience  better  than  the  lawless.  There 
is  good  likelihood  of  that  man,  which  is  any  way  scrupulous  of  his 
ways  ;  but  he,  which  makes  no  bones  of  his  actions,  is  apparently 
hopeless. 

Since  David's  followers  pleaded  God's  testimony  to  him  as  a 
motive  to  blood,  David  appeals  to  the  same  God  for  his  preserva- 
tion from  blood  ;  The  Lord  keep  me  from  doing  that  thing  to  my 
waster,  the  Lord's  Anointed.  And  now  the  good  man  hath  work 
enough,  to  defend  both  himself  and  his  persecutor;  himself,  from 
the  importunate  necessity  of  doing  violence,  and  his  master,  from 
suffering  it.  It  was  not  more  easy  to  rule  his  own  hands,  than 
difficult  to  rule  a  multitude.  David's  troop  consisted  of  malecon- 
tents  ;  all  that  were  in  distress,  in  debt,  in  bitterness  of  soul,  were 
gathered  to  him.  Many,  if  never  so  well  ordered,  are  hard  to 
command ;  a  few,  if  disorderly,  more  hard  ;  many  and  disorderly, 
must  needs  be  so  much  the  hardest  of  all,  that  David  never  achieved 
any  victory  like  unto  this,  wherein  he  first  overcame  himself,  then 
his  soldiers. 

And  what  was  the  charm,  wherewith  David  allayed  those  raging 
spirits  of  his  followers  ?  No  other  but  this  ;  He  is  the  Anointed  of 
the  Lord.  That  holy  oil  was  the  antidote  for  his  blood.  Saul  did 
not  lend  David  so  unpierceablc  an  armour,  when  he  should  en- 
counter Goliath,  as  David  now  lent  him  in  this  plea  of  his  unction. 
Which  of  all  the  discontented  outlaws  that  lurked  in  that  cave, 
durst  put  forth  his  hand  against  Saul,  when  they  once  heard,  He 
ts  the  Lord's  Anointed  ?  Such  an  impression  of  awe  hath  the  Di- 
vine Providence  caused  his  image  to  make  in  the  hearts  of  men,  as 
that  it  makes  traitors  cowards  ;  so  as,  instead  of  striking,  they 
tremble.  How  much  more  lawless  than  the  outlaws  of  Israel,  are 
those  professed  ringleaders  of  Christianity,  which  teach,  and  prac- 
tise, and  encourage,  aud  reward,  and  canonize,  the  violation  of 
majesty  !  It  is  not  enough  for  those  who  are  commanders  of 
others,  to  refrain  their  own  hands  from  doing  evil,  but  they  must 
carefully  prevent  the  iniquity  of  their  heels  ;  else  they  shall  be 
justly  reputed  to  do  that  by  others,  which  in  their  own  persons  they 
avoided.  The  laws  both  of  God  and  man  presuppose  us  in  some 
sort  answerable  for  our  charge  ;  as  taking  it  for  granted,  that  we 
should  not  undertake  those  reins  which  we  cannot  manage. 

There  was  no  reason  David  should  lose  the  thanks  of  so  noble  a 
demonstration  of  his  loyalty  :  whereto  he  trusts  so  much,  that  he 
dares  call  back  the  man  by  whom  he  was  pursued  ;  and  make  him 
judge,  whether  that  fact  had  not  deserved  a  life.  As  his  act,  so 
his  word  aud  gesture,  imported  nothing  but  humble  obedience: 


33+  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

neither  was  there  more  meekness  than  force  in  that  seasonable  per- 
suasion ;  wherein  he  lets  Saul  see  the  error  of  his  credulity,  the  un- 
just slanders  of  maliciousness,  the  opportunity  of  his  revenge,  the 
proof  of  his  forbearance,  the  undeniable  evidence  of  his  innocence  ; 
and,  after  a  lowlv  disparagement  of  himself,  appeals  to  God  for 
judgment,  for  protection. 

So  lively  and  feeling  oratory  did  Saul  find  in  the  lap  of  his  gar- 
ment and  the  lips  of  David,  that  it  is  not  in  the  power  of  his  envy 
or  ill-nature  to  hold  out  any  longer  ;  Is  this  thy  voice,  my  son  Da- 
vid ?  And  Saul  lift  up  his  voice  and  wept,  and  said;  Thou  art  more 
righteous  than  I.  He,  whose  harp  was  wont  to  quiet  the  phrensy 
of  Saul,  hath  now  by  his  words  calmed  his  fury  ;  so  that  now  he 
sheds  tears,  instead  of  blood  ;  and  confesses  his  own  wTong,  and 
David's  integrity  ;  and,  as  if  he  were  now  again  entered  into  the 
bounds  of  Naioth  in  Ramah,  he  prays,  and  prophesies  good  to 
him,  whom  he  maliced  for  good  ;  The  Lord  render  thee  good,  for 
that  thou  hast  done  to  me  this  day ;  for  now  behold,  I  knozv  that 
thou  shalt  be  king. 

There  is  no  heart  made  of  flesh,  that  some  time  or  other  relents 
not.  Even  flint  and  marble  will,  in  some  weather,  stand  on  drops. 
I  cannot  think  these  tears  and  protestations  feigned.  Doubtless 
Saul  meant  as  he  said ;  and  passed  through  sensible  fits  of  good 
and  evil.  Let  no  man  think  himself  the  better  for  good  motions  : 
the  praise  and  benefit  of  those  gusts  is  not  in  the  receipt,  but  the 
retention. 

Who,  that  had  seen  this  meeting,  could  but  have  thought  that  all 
had  been  sure  on  David's  side  ?  What  can  secure  us  if  not  tears, 
and  prayei's,  and  oaths?  Doubtless  David's  men,  which  knew 
themselves  obnoxious  to  laws  and  creditors,  began  to  think  of  some 
new  refuge,  as  making  account  this  new-pieced  league  would  be 
everlasting.  They  looked  when  Saul  would  take  David  home  to 
the  court,  and  dissolve  his  army,  and  recompense  that  unjust  per- 
secution with  just  honour;  when  behold,  in  the  loose,  Saul  goes 
home,  but  David  and  his  men  go  up  unto  the  hold.  Wise  David 
knows  Saul  not  to  be  more  kind  than  untrusty ;  and  therefore 
would  rather  seek  safety  in  his  hold,  than  in  the  hold  of  a  hollow 
and  unsteadv  friendship.  Here  are  good  words,  but  no  security  ; 
which  therefore  an  experienced  man  gives  the  hearing,  but  stands 
the  while  upon  his  own  guard.  No  charity  binds  us  to  a  trust  of 
those,  whom  we  have  found  faithless.  Credulity  upon  weak  grounds, 
after  palpable  disappointments,  is  the  daughter  of  folly.  A  man  that 
is  weather-wise,  though  he  find  an  abatement  of  the  storm,  yet 
will  not  stir  from  under  his  shelter  while  he  sees  it  thick  in  the 
wind.   Distrust  is  the  just  gain  of  unfaithfulness.     1  Sam.  xxiv. 


NABAL  AND  ABIGAIL. 
If  innocency  could  have  secured  from  Saul's  malice,  David  had 
not  been  persecuted ;  and  yet  under  that  wicked  king,  aged  Sa- 
muel dies  in  his  bed.    That  there  might  be  no  place  for  envy,  the 


NABAL  AND  ABIGAIL.  335 

good  prophet  had  retired  himself  to  the  schools.  Yet  he,  that  hated 
David,  for  what  he  should  be,  did  no  less  hate  Samuel,  for  what  he 
had  been.  Even  in  the  midst  of  Saul's  malignity,  there  remained  in 
his  heart  impressions  of  awfulness  unto  Samuel :  he  feared,  where 
he  loved  not.  The  restraint  of  God  curbeth  the  rage  of  his  most 
violent  enemies,  so  as  they  cannot  do  their  worst.  As  good  hus- 
bands do  not  put  all  their  corn  to  the  oven,  but  save  some  for 
seed,  so  doth  God  ever  in  the  worst  of  persecutions. 

Samuel  is  dead ;  David  banished  ;  Saul  tyrannizeth  ;  Israel  hath 
good  cause  to  mourn ;  it  is  no  marvel  if  this  lamentation  be  uni- 
versal. There  is  no  Israelite  that  feeleth  not  the  loss  of  a  Samuel. 
A  good  prophet  is  the  common  treasure,  wherein  every  gracious 
soul  hath  a  share.  That  man  hath  a  dry  heart,  which  can  part  with 
God's  prophet  without  tears. 

Nabal  was,  according  to  his  name,  foolish  ;  yet  rich  and  mighty. 
Earthly  possessions  are  not  always  accompanied  with  wit  and  grace. 
Even  the  line  of  faithful  Caleb  will  afford  an  ill-conditioned  Nabal. 
Virtue  is  not  like  unto  lands,  inheritable.  All  that  is  traduced  with 
the  seed,  is  either  evil,  or  not  good.  Let  no  man  brag  with  the 
Jews,  that  he  hath  Abraham  to  his  father :  God  hath  raised  up  of 
this  stone  a  son  to  Caleb. 

Abigail  (which  signified)  her  father's  joy)  had  sorrow  enough  to 
be  matched  with  so  unworthy  a  husband.  If  her  father  had  meant 
she  should  have  had  joy  in  herself,  or  in  her  life,  he  had  not  dis- 
posed her  to  a  husband,  though  rich,  yet  fond  and  wicked.  It  i9 
like  he  married  her  to  the  wealth,  not  to  the  man.  Many  a  child  is 
cast  away  upon  riches.  Wealth  in  our  matches  should  be  as  some 
grains  or  scruples  in  the  balance,  superadded  to  the  gold  of  virtuous 
qualities,  to  weigh  down  the  scales :  when  it  is  made  the  substance 
of  the  weight,  and  good  qualities  the  appendance,  there  is  but  one 
earth  poised  with  another;  which,  wheresoever  it  is  done,  it  is  a 
wonder,  if  either  the  children  prove  not  the  parents'  sorrow,  or  the 
parents  theirs. 

Nabal's  sheep-shearing  was  famous.  Three  thousand  fleeces  must 
needs  require  many  hands  :■  neither  is  any  thing  more  plentiful 
commonly  than  a  churl's  feast.  What  a  world  was  this,  that  the 
noble  champion  and  rescuer  of  Israel,  God's  anointed,  is  driven  to 
send  to  a  base  carle  for  victuals !  It  is  no  measuring  of  men,  by 
the  depth  of  the  purse,  by  outward  prosperity.  Servants  are  often- 
times set  on  horseback,  while  princes  go  on  loot.  Our  estimation 
must  be  led  by  their  inward  worth,  which  is  not  alterable  by  time, 
nor  diminished  with  external  conditions.  One  rag  of  a  David  is 
more  worth,  than  the  wardrobes  of  a  thousand  Nabals. 

Even  the  best  deservings  may  want.  No  man  may  be  con- 
temned for  his  necessity  :  perhaps  he  may  be  so  much  richer  in 
grace,  as  he  is  poorer  in  estate.  Neither  hath  violence  or  casualty 
more  impoverished  a  David,  than  his  poverty  hath  enriched  him, 
He,  whose  folly  hath  made  himself  miserable,  is  justly  rewarded 
with  neglect;  but  he  that  suffers  for  good,  deserves  so  much 
more  honour  from  others,  as  his  distress  is  more.    Our  compas- 


33G  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

sion  or  respect  must  be  ruled,  according  to  the  cause  of  another* 
misery. 

One  good  turn  requires  another.  In  some  cases,  not  hurting  is 
meritorious.  He,  that  should  examine  the  qualities  of  David's  fol- 
lowers, must  needs  grant  it  worthy  of  a  fee,  that  Nabal's  flocks  lay 
untouched  in  Carmel.  But  more,  that  David's  soldiers  were  Na- 
bal's shepherds,  yea  the  keepers  of  his  shepherds,  gave  them  a  just 
interest  in  that  sheep-shearing  feast ;  justly  should  they  have  been 
set  at  the  upper  end  of  the  tahle.  That  Nahal's  sheep  were  safe, 
he  might  thank  his  shepherds  ;  that  his  shepherds  were  safe,  he 
might  thank  David's  soldiers.  It  is  no  small  benefit,  that  we  re- 
ceive in  a  safe  protection.  Well  may  we  think  our  substance  due, 
where  we  owe  ourselves. 

Yet  this  churlish  Nabal  doth  not  only  give  nothing  to  David's 
messengers,  but,  which  is  worse  than  nothing,  ill  words  ;  Who  is 
David,  or  who  is  the  so?i  of  Jesse  ?  There  be  many  servants  now 
a-days,  that  break  away  from  their  masters.  David  asked  him  bread  ; 
he  giveth  him  stones.  All  Israel  knew  and  honoured  their  deliverer; 
yet  this  clown,  to  save  his  victuals,  will  needs  make  him  a  man, 
either  of  no  merits  or  ill,  either  an  obscure  man  or  a  fugitive. 

Nothing  is  more  cheap  than  good  words.  These  Nabal  might 
have  given,  and  been  never  the  poorer.  If  he  had  been  resolved  to 
shut  his  hands  in  a  fear  of  Saul's  revenge,  he  might  have  so  tem- 
pered his  denial,  that  the  repulse  might  have  been  free  from  of- 
fence ;  but  now  his  foul  mouth  doth  not  only  deny,  but  revile.  It 
should  have  been  Nahal's  glory,  that  his  tribe  yielded  such  a  suc- 
cessor to  the  throne  of  Israel ;  now,  in  all  likelihood,  his  envy  stirs 
him  up  to  disgrace  that  man,  who  surpassed  him  in  honour  and 
virtue,  more  than  he  was  surpassed  by  him  in  wealth  and  ease. 

Many  a  one  speaks  fair,  that  means  ill;  but  when  the  mouth 
speaks  foul,  it  argues  a  corrupt  heart.  If,  with  Saint  James's  ver- 
bal benefactors,  we  say  only,  Depart  in  peace,  warm  yourselves , 
fill  your  bellies,  we  shall  answer  for  hypocritical  uncharitablencss  ; 
but  if  we  rate  and  curse  those  needy  souls,  whom  we  ought  to  re- 
lieve, we  shall  give  a  more  fearful  account  of  a  savage  cruelty,  in 
trampling  on  those  whom  God  hath  humbled.  If  healing  with 
good  words  be  justly  punishable,  what  torment  is  there  for  those 
that  wound  with  evil  ? 

David,  which  had  all  this  while  been  in  the  school  of  patience, 
hath  now  his  lesson  to  seek.  He,  who  hath  happily  digested  all  the 
leadings  and  persecutions  of  a  wicked  master,  cannot  put  off  this 
affront  of  a  Nabal.  Nothing  can  assuage  his  choler,  but  blood. 
How  subject  are  the  best  of  God's  saints  to  weak  passions  !  and,  if 
we  have  the  grace  to  ward  an  expected  blow  of  temptation,  how 
easily  are  we  surprised  with  a  sudden  foil ! 

Wherefore  serve  these  recorded  weaknesses  of  holy  men,  but  to 
strengthen  us  against  the  conscience  of  our  infirmities  ?  Not  that 
we  should  take  courage  to  imitate  them  in  the  evil,  whereunto 
they  have  been  miscarried  ;  but  we  should  take  heart  to  ourselves, 
against  the  discouragement  of  our  own  evils. 


NAEAL  AND  ABIGAIL.  337 

'  The  wisdom  of  God  hath  so  contrived  it,  that,  commonly,  in  so- 
cieties, good  is  mixed  with  evil.  Wicked  Nahal  hath  in  his  house  a 
wise  and  good  servant,  a  prudent  and  worthy  wife.  That  wise  ser- 
vant is  careful  to  advertise  his  mistress  of  the  danger ;  his  prudent 
mistress  is  careful  to  prevent  it. 

The  lives  of  all  his  family  were  now  in  hazard :  she  dares  not 
commit  this  business  to  the  fidelity  of  a  messenger,  but,  forgetting 
her  sex,  puts  herself  into  the  errand.  Her  foot  is  not  slow  ;  her 
hand  is  not  empty. 

According  to  the  offence,  she  frames  her  satisfaction.  Her  hus- 
band refused  to  give;  she  brings  a  bountiful  gift:  her  husband 
gave  ill  words  ;  she  sweetens  iheiu  with  a  meek  and  humble  depre- 
cation :  her  husband  could  say,  IV ho  is  David?  she  falls  at  his 
feet :  her  husband  dismisses  David's  men  empty  ;  she  brings  her 
servants  laden  with  provision  ;  as  if  it  had  been  only  meant  to  case 
the  repelled  messengers  of  the  carriage,  not  to  scant  them  of  the 
required  benevolence.  No  wit,  no  art,  could  devise  a  more  pithy 
and  powerful  oratory. 

As  all  satisfaction,  so  hers,  begins  with  a  confession  ;  wherein  she 
deeply  blameth  the  folly  of  her  husband.  She  could  not  have  been 
a  good  wife,  if  she  had  not  honoured  her  urjwprthy  head.  If  a 
stranger  should  have  termed  him  fool  in  her  hearing,  he  could  not 
have  gone  away  in  peace  ;  now,  to  save  his  life,  she  is  bold  to 
acknowledge  his  folly  :  it  is  a  good  disparagement  that  preserved). 
There  is  the  same  way  to  our  peace  in  heaven  :  the  only  means  to 
escape  judgment,  is  to  complain  of  our  own  vileuess. 

iShe  pleadeth  her  ignorance  of  the  fact,  and  therein  her  freedom 
from  the  offence :  she  humbly  craveth  acceptation  of  her  present, 
with  pardon  of  the  fault :  she  professeth  David's  honourable  acts 
and  merits  ;  she  foretels  his  future  success  and  glory  :  she  lays  be- 
fore him  the  happy  peace  of  his  soul,  in  refraining  from  innocent 
blood.  David's  breast,  which  could  not,  through  the  seeds  of 
grace,  grow  to  a  stubbornness  in  ill  resolutions  cannot  but  relent 
with  these  powcrfid  and  seasonable  persuasions  ;  and  now,  instead 
of  revenge,  he  blesscth  God  lor  sending  Abigail  to  meet  him  ;  he 
blesscth  Abigail  for  her  counsel ;  he  blesseth  the  counsel  for  so 
wholesome  efficacy,  and  now  rejoiceth  more  in  being  overcome 
with  a  wise  and  gracious  advice,  than  he  would  have  rejoiced  in  a 
revengeful  victory. 

A  good  heart  is  easily  stayed  from  sinning,  and  is  glad  when  it 
finds  occasion  to  be  crossed  in  ill  purposes.  Those  secret  checks, 
which  are  raised  within  itself,  do  readily  conspire  with  ali  outward 
retentives.  It  never  yielded  to  a  wicked  motion,  without  much  re- 
luctance, and  when  it  is  overcome,  it  is  but  with  half  a  consent ; 
whereas  perverse  and  obdurate  sinners,  by  reason  they  take  full 
delight  in  evil,  and  have  already  in  their  conceit  swallowed  the 
pleasure  of  sin,  abide  not  to  be  resisted,  running  on  headily,  in 
those  wicked  courses  they  have  propounded  in  spite  of  opposition ; 
and,  if  they  be  forcibly  stopped  in  their  way,  they  grow  sullen  and 
mutinous. 

VOL.  i.  z 


338 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


David  had  not  only  vowed,  but  deeply  sworn,  die  death  of 
Nabal,  and  all  his  family,  to  the  very  dog  that  lay  at  his  door  ; 
yet  now  he  praiseth  God,  that  hath  given  the  occasion  and  grace 
to  violate  it.  Wicked  vows  are  ill  made,  but  worse  kept.  Our 
tongue  cannot  tie  us  to  commit  sin.  Good  men  think  themselves 
happy,  that  since  they  had  not  the  grace  to  deny  sin,  yet  they 
had  not  the  opportunity  to  accomplish  it. 

If  Abigail  had  sat  still  at  home,  David  had  sinned,  and  she  had 
died  ;  now  her  discreet  admonition  hath  preserved  her  from  the 
sword,  and  diverted  him  from  bloodshed.  And  now,  what  thanks, 
what  benedictions,  hath  she  for  this  seasonable  counsel  !  How 
should  it  encourage  us  to  admonish  our  brethren  ;  to  see,  that  if 
we  prevail,  we  have  blessings  from  them ;  if  we  prevail  not,  we 
have  yet  blessings  from  God,  and  thanks  of  our  own  hearts  ! 

How  near  was  Nabal  to  a  mischief,  and  perceives  it  not !  David 
was  coming  to  the  foot  of  the  hill  to  cut  his  throat,  while  he  was 
feasting  in  his  house  without  fear.  Little  do  sinners  know,  how 
near  their  jollity  is  to  perdition.  Many  times  judgment  is  at  the 
threshold,  while  drunkenness  and  surfeit  are  at  the  board.  Had  he 
been  any  other  than  a  Nabal,  he  had  not  sat  down  to  feast' till  he 
had  been  sure  of  his  peace  with  David  :  either  not  to  expect 
danger,  or  not  to  clear  it,  was  sottish.  So  foolish  are  carnal  men, 
that  give  themselves  over  to  their  pleasures,  while  there  are  deaulv 
quarrels  depending  against  them  in  heaven. 

There  is  nothing  wherein  wisdom  is  more  seen,  than  in  the  tern*- 
pcrate  use  of  prosperity,  A  Nabal  cannot  abound,  but  he  must  be 
drunk  and  surfeit.  Excess  is  a  true  argument  of  folly.  We  use  to 
say,  that  when  drink  is  in,  wit  is  out ;  but  if  wit  were  not  out,  drink 
would  not  be  in. 

It  was  no  time  to  advise  Nabal,  while  his  reason  was  drowned  in  a 
deluge  of  wine.  A  beast  or  a  stone  is  as  capable  of  good  counsel  as 
a  drunkard.  Oh  that  the  noblest  creature  should  so  far  abase  him- 
self, as  for  a  little  liquor  to  lose  the  use  of  those  faculties,  whereby 
he  is  a  man  !  Those,  that  have  to  do  with  drink  or  phrensy,  must  be 
glad  to  watch  times :  so  did  Abigail,  who,  the  next  morning,  pre- 
sents to  her  husband  the  view  of  his  faults,  of  his  danger.  He  then 
sees,  how  near  he  was  to  death,  and  felt  it  not.  That  worldly  mind 
is  so  apprehensive  of  the  death  that  should  have  been,  as  that  he, 
dies,  to  think  that  he  had  like  to  have  died.  Who  would  think  a 
man  could  be  so  affected  with  a  danger  past,  and  yet  so  senseless  of 
a  future,  yea  imminent  ?  He,  that  was  yesternight  as  a  beast,  is 
now  as  a  stone:  he  was  then  over-merry,  now  dead  and  lumpish. 
Carnal  hearts  are  ever  in  extremities.  If  they  be  once  down,  their 
dejection  is  desperate,  because  they  have  no  inward  comfort  to  mi- 
tigate their  sorrow.  What  difference  there  was  betwixt  the  disposi- 
tion of  David  and  Nabal !  How  oft  had  David  been  in  tlic  valley  of 
the  shadow  of  death,  and  feared  no  evil !  Nabal  is  but  once  put  in 
mind  of  a  death  that  might  have  been,  and  is  stricken  dead.  It 
is  just  with  God,  that  they  who  live  without  grace  should  die  with- 
out comfort ;  neither  can  we  expect  better,  while  we  go  on  in  our 
;>ins. 


DAVID  AND  ACHISH. 


339 


The  speech  of  Abigail  smote  Nabal  into  a  qualm.  That  tongue 
had  doubtless  oft  advised  him  well,  and  prevailed  not ;  now,  it  oc- 
casions his  death,  whose  reformation  it  could  not  effect.  She  meant 
nothing  but  his  amendment ;  God  meant  to  make  that  loving  in- 
strument the  means  of  his  revenge :  she  speaks,  and  God  strikes ; 
and  within  ten  days,  tliat  swoon  ends  in  death. 

And  now  Nabal  pays  dear  for  his  uncharitable  reproach,  for  his 
riotous  excess.  That  God,  which  would  not  suffer  David  to  right 
himself  by  his  own  sword,  takes  the  quarrel  of  his  servant  into  his 
own  hand.  David  hath  now  Ids  ends  without  sin  ;  rejoicing  in  the 
just  executions  of  God,  who  would  neither  suffer  him  to  sin  in  re- 
venging, nor  suffer  his  adversaries  to  sin  unrevenged. 

Our  loving  God  is  more  angry  with  the  wrongs  done  to  his  ser- 
vants, than  themselves  can  be ;  and  knows  how  to  punish  that 
justly,  which  we  could  not  undertake  without  wronging  God,  more 
than  men  have  wronged  us.  He,  that  saith,  Vengeance  is  mine,  I 
will  repay,  repays  oft-times  when  we  have  forgiven,  when  we  have 
forgotten,  and  calls  to  reckoning  after  our  discharges.  It  is  dan- 
gerous offending  any  favourite  of  him,  whose  displeasure  and  re- 
venge is  everlasting. 

How  far  God  looks  beyond  our  purposes  !  Abigail  came  only  to 
plead  for  an  ill  husband  ;  and  now  God  makes  this  journey  a  pre- 
paration for  a  better :  so  that  in  one  act,  she  preserved  an  ill  hus- 
band, and  won  a  good  one  in  the  future.  David  well  remembers 
her  comely  person,  her  wise  speeches,  her  graceful  carriage  ;  and 
now,  when  modesty  found  it  seasonable,  he  sends  to  sue  her,  which 
had  been  his  suppliant.  She  entreated  for  her  husband ;  David 
treats  with  her  for  his  wife :  her  request  was  to  escape  his  sword ; 
he  wisheth  her  to  his  bed.  It  was  a  fair  suit  to  change  a  David 
for  a  Nabal ;  to  become  David's  queen,  instead  of  Nabal's  drudge. 
She,  that  learned  humility  under  so  hard  a  tutor,  abaseth  herself  no 
less  when  David  offers  to  advance  her ;  Let  thine  hand-maid  be  a 
servant,  to  wash  the  feet  of  the  servants  of  my  Lord.  None  are  so 
fit  to  be  great,  as  those  that  can  stoop  lowest.  How  could  David 
be  more  happy  in  a  wife:  he  finds  at  once  piety,  wisdom,  humi- 
lity, faithfulness,  wealth,  beauty  ?  How  could  Abigail  be  more 
happy  in  a  husband,  than  in  the  prophet,  the  champion,  the  anointed 
of  God  ?  Those  marriages  are  well  made,  wherein  virtuesare  matched, 
and  happiness  is  mutual.  1  Sam.  xxv. 

DAVID  AND  ACHISH. 

Good  motions  that  fall  into  wicked  hearts,  are  like  some  sparks 
that  fall  from  the  flint  and  steel  into  wet  tinder;  lightsome  for  the 
time,  but  soon  out.  After  Saul's  tears  and  protestations,  yet  he  is 
now  again  in  the  wilderness  with  three  thousand  men,  to  hunt  after 
innocent  David. 

How  invincible  is  the  charity  and  loyalty  of  an  honest  heart ! 
The  same  hand,  that  spared  Saul  in  the  cave,  spares  him  sleeping 
in  the  field  :  the  same  hand,  that  cut  away  the  lap  of  his  master's 


340  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

garment,  carried  away  his  spear;  that  spear,  which  might  as  well 
hate  carried  away  the  life  of  the  owner,  is  only  borne  away  for  a 
proof  of  the  fidelity  of  the  bearer. 

Still  Saul  is  strong,  but  David  victorious,  and  triumphs  over  the 
malice  of  his  persecutor  ;  yet  still  the  victor  flieth  from  him,  whom 
he  hath  overcome. 

.  A  man,  that  sees  how  far  Saul  was  transported  with  his  rancorous 
envy,  cannot  but  say,  that  he  was  never  more  mad  than  when  he 
was  sober ;  for  even  after  he  had  said,  Blessed  art  thou,  my  son 
David,  thou  shalt  do  great  things,  and  also  prevail,  yet  still  he 
pursues  him,  whom  he  grants  assured  to  prevail :  what  is  this,  but 
to  resolve  to  lose  his  labour  in  sinning,  and  in  spite  of  himself  to 
offend  ?  How  shameful  is  our  inequality  of  disposition  to  good  f 
We  know  we  cannot  miss  of  the  reward  of  well-doing,  and  yet  do 
it  not ;  while  wicked  men  cast  away  their  endeavours  upon  those 
evil  projects,  whereof  they  are  sure  to  fail.  Sin  blinds  the  eyes, 
and  hardens  the  heart,  and  thrusts  men  into  wilful  mischiefs,  how- 
ever dangerous,  however  impossible  ;  and  never  leaves  them,  till 
it  have  brought  them  to  utter  confusion. 

The  over  long  continuance  of  a  temptation,  may  easily  weary 
the  best  patience  ;  and  may  attain  that  by  protraction,  which  it 
could  never  do  by  violence.  David  himself  at  last  begins  to  bend 
under  this  trial ;  and  resolves  so  to  fly  from  Saul,  as  he  runs  from 
the  Church  of  God ;  and  while  he  will  avoid  the  malice  of  hi$ 
master,  joins  himself  with  God's  enemies. 

The  greatest  saints  upon  earth  are  not  always  upon  the  same 
pitch  of  spiritual  strength.  He,  that  sometimes  said,  /  will  not  be 
afraid  of  ten  thousands,  now  says,  /  shall  one  day  perish  by  the 
hand  of  Saul.  He  had  wont  to  consult  with  God  •,  now  he  says 
thus  in  his  own  heart.  How  many  evident  experiments  had  David 
of  God's  deliverances  ;  how  certain  and  clear  predictions  of  his 
future  kingdom  ;  how  infallible  an  earnest  was  the  holy  oil,  where- 
with he  was  anointed,  of  the  crown  of  Israeli  And  yet,  David 
sa'id  in  his  heart,  I  shall  now  perish  one  day  by  the  hand  of  Saul. 
The  best  faith  is  but  like  the  twilight ;  mixed  with  some  degrees 
of  darkness  and  infidelity.  We  do  utterly  misreckon  the  greatest 
earthly  holiness,  if  we  exempt  it  from  infirmities.  It  is  not  long, 
since  David  told  Saul,  that  those  wicked  enemies  of  his,  which  cast 
him  out  from  abiding  in  the  inheritance  of  the  Lord,  did  as  good 
as  bid  him,  Go  serve  other  gods ;  yet  now  is  he  gone  from  the  in- 
heritance of  God,  into  the  land  of  the  Philistines.  That  Saul  might 
seek  him  no  more,  he  hides  himself  out  of  the  lists  of  the  Church, 
where  a  good  man  would  not  look  for  him. 

Once  before  had  David-  fled  to  this  Achish ;  when  he  was  glad  to 
scrabble  on  the  doors,  and  let  his  spittle  fall  upon  his  beard,  in  a 
semblance  of  madness,  that  he  might  escape ;  yet  now,  in  a  sem- 
blance of  friendship,  is  he  returned  to  save  that  life,  which  he  was 
in  danger  to  have  lost  in  Israel.  Goliath,  the  champion  of  the  Phi- 
listines, whom  David  slew,  was  of  Gath  ;  yet  David  dwells  with 
Achish,  king  of  the  Philistines,  in  Gath  :  even  amongst  them  whose 


T5AVID  AND  ACHISH.  341 

fore-skins  he  had  presented  to  Saul,  by  two  hundreds  at  once,  doth 
David  choose  to  reside  for  safety.  Howsoever  it  was  a  weakness  in 
David,  thus  by  his  league  of  amity  to  strengthen  the  enemies  of 
God,  yet  doth  not  God  take  advantage  of  it  for  his  overthrow, 
but  gives  him  protection,  even  where  his  presence  offended  ;  and 
gives  him  favour,  where  himself  bore  just  hatred.  Oh  the  infinite 
patience  and  mercy  of  our  God,  who  doth  good  to  us  for  our  evil ; 
and  in  the  very  act  of  our  provocation  upholdcth,  yea,  blcsseth  us 
with  preservation  ! 

Could  Saul  have  rightly  considered  it,  he  had  found  it  no  small 
loss  and  impairing  to  his  kingdom,  that  so  valiant  a  captain,  at- 
tended with  six  hundred  able  soldiers  and  their  families,  should  for- 
sake his  land,  and  join  with  his  enemies;  yet  he  is  not  quiet,  tiil 
he  have  abandoned  his  own  strength.  The  world  hath  none  so  great 
enemy  to  a  wicked  man,  as  himself:  his  hands  cannot  be  held  from 
his  own  mischief:  he  will  needs  make  his  friends,  enemies;  his 
enemies,  victors  ;  himself,  miserable. 

David  was  too  wise  to  cast  himself  into  the  hand  of  a  Philistine 
king,  without  assurance.  What  assurance  could  he  have,  but  pro- 
mises? Those,  David  had  from  Saul  abundantly,  and  trusted  them 
not :  he  dares  trust  the  fidelity  of  a  pagan  ;  he  dares  not  trust  the 
vows  of  a  king  of  Israel.  There  may  be  fidelity  without  the 
Church,  and  falsehood  within.  It  need  not  be  any  news,  to  find 
some  Turks  true,  and  some  Christians  faithless. 

Even  unwise  men  are  taught  by  experience ;  how  much  more 
they,  who  have  wit  to  learn  without  it !  David  had  well  found, 
what  it  was  to  live  in  a  court ;  he  therefore,  whom  envy  drove  from 
the  court  of  Israel,  voluntarily  declines  the  Philistine  court,  and 
sues  for  a  country  habitation.  It  had  not  been  possible  for  so  noted 
a  stranger,  after  so  much  Philistine  bloodshed,  to  live  long  in  such 
an  eminency,  amongst  the  press  of  those,  whose  sons,  or  brothers, 
or  fathers,  or  allies,  he  had  slaughtered,  without  some  perilous 
machination  of  his  ruin  ;  therefore  he  makes  suit  for  an  early  re- 
move ;  For  why  should  thy  servant  dwell  in  (he  chief  city  of  the 
kingdom  with  thee  f  Those,  that  would  stand  sure,  must  not  affect 
too  much  height  or  conspicuity.  The  tall  cedars  are  most  subject 
to  winds  and  lightnings,  while  the  shrubs  of  the  vallies  stand  un- 
moved. Much  greatness  doth  but  make  a  fairer  mark  for  evil.1 
There  is  true  firmness  and  safety  in  mediocrity. 

How  rarely  is  it  seen,  that  a  man  loseth  by  his  modesty  !  The 
change  fell  out  well  to  David,  of  Ziklag  for  Gath.  Now  he  hath 
a  city  of  his  own.  All  Israel,  where  he  was  anointed,  afforded  him 
not  so  much  possession.  Now  the  city,  which  was  anciently  assigned 
to  Judah,  returns  to  the  just  owner  ;  and  is,  by  this  means,  entailed 
to  the  crown  of  David's  successors.  Besides  that,  now  might  David 
five  out  of  the  sight  and  hearing  of  the  Philistine  idolatries;  and 
enjoy  God,  no  less  in  the  walls  of  a  Philistine  city,  than  in  an  Isra- 
elitish  wilderness  :  withal,  a  happy  opportunity  was  now  opened  to 
his  friends  of  Israel,  to  retort  unto  his  aid.  The  heads  of  the  thou- 
sands that  were  of  Manasseh,  and  many  valiant  captains  of  the  other 


342 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


tribes,  fell  daily  to  him,  and  raised  his  six  hundred  followers  to  an 
army,  like  the  host  of  God.  The  deserts  of  Israel  could  never 
have  yielded  David  so  great  an  advantage.  That  God,  whose  the 
earth  is,  makes  room  for  his  own  every  where  ;  and  oft-times  pro- 
videth  them  a  foreign  home,  more  kindly  than  the  native.  It  is  no 
matter  for  change  of  our  soil,  so  we  change  not  our  God.  If  we  can 
every  where  acknowledge  him,  he  will  no  where  be  wanting  to  us. 

It  was  not  for  God's  champion  to  be  idle.  No  sooner  is  he  free 
from  Saul's  sword,  than  he  begins  an  offensive  war  against  the 
Amolekites,  Gezrites,  Geshurites.  He  knew  these  nations  branded 
by  God  to  destruction  :  neither  could  his  increasing  armv  be  main- 
tained with  a.  little :  by  one  act  therefore,  he  both  revenges  for 
God,  and  provides  for  his  host.  Had  it  not  been  for  that  old  quar- 
rel, which  God  had  with  this  people,  David  could  not  be  excused 
from  a  bloody  cruelty,  in  killing  whole  countries,  only  for  the  be- 
nefit of  the  spoil ;  now,  his  soldiers  were  at  once,  God's  execu- 
tioners, and  their  own  foragers.  The  intervention  of  a  command 
from  the  Almighty  alters  the  state  of  any  act ;  and  makes  that 
worthy  of  praise,  which  else  were  no  better  than  damnable.  It  is 
now  justice,  which  were  otherwise  murder.  The  will  of  God  is  the 
rule  of  good.  What  need  we  inquire  into  other  reasons  of  any 
act  or  determination,  when  we  hear  it  comes  from  heaven  ? 

How  many  hundred  years  had  this  brood  of  Canaanites  lived 
securely  in  their  country,  since  God  commanded  them  to  be  rooted 
out,  and  now  promised"  themselves  the  ceitainest  peace  !  The  Phi- 
listines were  their  friends,  if  not  their  lords.  The  Israelites  had 
their  hands  full ;  neither  did  thev  know  any  grudge  betwixt  them 
and  their  neighbours  ;  when  suddenly,  the  sword  of  David  cuts 
them  off,  and  leaves  none  alive  to  tell  the  news.  There  is  no  safety 
in  protraction.  With  men,  delay  causeth  forgetfulness,  or  abates 
the  force  of  anger ;  as  all  violent  motions  are  weakest  at  the  fur- 
thest: but  with  him,  to  whom  all  times  are  present,  what  can  be 
gained  by  prorogation  ?  Alas  !  what  can  it  avail  any  of  the  cursed 
seed  of  Canaan,  that  they  have  made  a  truce  with  heaven  and 
a  league  with  hell  ?  Their  day  is  coming  ;  and  is  not  the  further 
off,  because  they  expect  it  not. 

Miserable  were  the  straits  of  David  ;  while  he  was  driven,  not 
only  to  maintain  his  armv  by  spoil,  but  to  colour  his  spoil  by  a 
sinful  dissimulation.  He  tells  Achish,  that  he  had  been  roving 
against  the  south  of  Judah,  and  the  south  of  the  Jerahmeelites,  ana 
the  south  of  the  Kenites  ;  either  falsely  or  doubtfully,  so  as  he 
meant  to  deceive  him,  under  whom  he  lived,  and  by  whom  he  was 
trusted.  If  Achish  were  a  Philistine,  yet  he  was  David's  friend, 
3rea  his  patron ;  and  if  he  had  been  neither,  it  had  not  become 
David  to  be  false.  The  infirmities  of  God's  children  never  appear, 
but  in  their  extremities.  It  is  hard  for  the  best  man,  to  say  how  far 
he  will  be  tempted.  If  a  man  will  put  himself  among  Philistines, 
he  cannot  promise  to  come  forth  innocent. 

How  easily  do  we  believe  that  which  we  wish  !  The  more  credit 
Achish  gives  unto  David,  the  more  sin  it  was  to  deceive  him  ;  and 


DAVID  AND  ACHISH. 


34J 


now,  the  conceit  of  this  engagement  procures  him  a  lurther  service. 
The  Philistines  are  assembled  to  fight  with  Israel.  Achish  dares 
trust  David  on  his  .side ;  yea  to  keep  his  head  for  ever :  neither 
can  David  do  any  less,  than  promise  his  aid  against  his  own  flesh. 

Never  was  David,  in  all  his  life,  driven  to  so  hard  an  exigent ; 
never  was  he  so  extremely  perplexed.  For  what  should  he  do  now  ? 
To  fight  with  Achish,  he  was  tied  by  promise,  by  merit ;  not  to 
fight  against  Israel,  he  was  tied  by  his  calling,  by  his  unction  :  not 
to  figat  for  Achish,  were  to  be  unthankful ;  to  fight  against  Israel, 
were  to  be  unnatural.  Oh  what  an  inward  battle  must  David  needs 
have  in  his  breast,  when  he  thinks  of  this  battle  of  Israel  and  the 
Philistines !  How  doth  he  wish  now,  that  he  had  rather  stood  to 
the  hazard  of  Saui's  persecution,  than  to  have  put  himself  upon 
the  favour  of  Achish  !  He  must  fight  on  one  side ;  and  on  whether 
side  soever  he  should  fight,  he  could  not  avoid  to  be  treacherous  ; 
a  condition  worse  than  death,  to  an  honest  heart.  Which  way  he 
would  have  resolved,  if  it  had  come  to  the  execution,  who  can 
know,  since  himself  was  doubtful  ?  Either  course  had  been  no  bet- 
ter than  desperate.  How  could  the  Israelites  ever  have  received 
him  for  their  king,  who  in  the  open  field  had  fought  against  them  ? 
And  contrarily,  it  lie  would  have  fought  against  his  friend  for  his 
enemy,  against  Achish  for  Saul,  he  was  now  environed  with  jealous 
Philistines  ;  and  might  rather  look  for  the  punishment  of  his  trea- 
son, than  the  glory  of  a  victory. 

His  hear  hi  d  led  him  into  these  straits;  the  Lord  finds  way  to 
lead  him  out.  The  suggestions  of  his  enemies  do  herein  befriend 
him.  The  princes  of  the  Philistines,  whether  of  envy  or  suspicion, 
plead  for  David's  dismi«sio n ;  Scud  this  fellow  back,  that  he  may 
go  again  to  his  place,  which  thou  hast  appointed  him  ;  and  let  him 
not  go  down  to  the  buttle,  lest  he  be  an  adversary  to  us.  No  advo- 
cate cou!  1  nave  said  more;  himself  durst  not  have  said  so  much. 
Oh  the  wisdom  and  goodness  of  our  God,  that  can  raise  up  an 
adversary,  to  deliver  out  of  those  evils  which  our  friends  cannot ; 
that,  by  the  sword  of  an  enemy,  can  let  out  that  imposthume, 
w  "ici  no  physician  could  tell  how  to  cure !  It  would  be  wide  with 
us  sometime     if  't  were  not  for  others'  malice. 

I'here  could  not  be  a  more  just  question,  than  this  of  the  Phi- 
listine pri  icesy  What  do  these  Hebrews  here?  An  Israelite  is  out  of 
his  element,  when  he  is  in  an  army  of  Philistines.  The  true  ser- 
vants ot  God  are  in  the.r  due  pltices,  when  they  are  in  opposition 
to  his  enemies.  Profession  of  hostility  becomes  them  better,  than 
leagues  of  amity. 

let  Achish  likes  David's  conversation  and  presence  so  well,  that 
he  professeth  himself  pleased  with  bun,  as  with  an  angel  of  God. 
How  strange  is  it  to  hear,  that  a  Philistine  should  delight  in  that 
holy  man,  whom  an  Israelite  abhors;  and  should  be  loth  to  be  quit 
of  David,  whom  Saul  hath  expelled  !  Terms  of  civility  be  equally 
open  to  all  religions,  to  all  professions.  The  common  graces  of 
God's  children  are  able  to  attract  love,  from  the  most  obstinate 
enemies  of  goodness.    If  we  affect  them  for  by-respttcts  of  valour, 


344 


CONTF  MPLATIONS. 


wisdom,  discourse,  wit,  it  is  their  praise,  not  ours ;  but  it  for  di- 
vine grace  and  religion,  it  is  our  praise  with  theirs. 

Such  now  was  David's  condition,  that  he  must  plead  for  tliat  he 
feared,  and  argue  against  that  which  he  desired  ;  What  have.  I  done  ? 
and -j; hat  hast  thou-  found  in  t hi/  servant,  that  I  may  not  go  awl 
jigftl  against  th-e  enemies  of  mij  lord  the  king?  Never  anv  news- 
could  be  more  cordial  to  him  than  this,  of  his  dismission  ;  vet  must 
he  seem  to  strive  against  it,  with  an  importunate  profession  of  his 
forwardness  to  that  aft  which  he  most  detested.. 

One  degree"  of  dissimulation  draws  on  another.  Those,  which 
have  once  given  wav  to  a  faultv  course,  cannot  easilv,  either  stop 
or  turn  back ;  but  are'  in  a  sort  forced  to  second  their  ill  begin- 
nings, with  worse  proceedings.  It  is  a  dangerous  and  miserahle 
thing,  to  east  ourselves  into  those  actions,  which  draw  with  them  a 
necessity,  either  of  offending  or  miscarriage.         1  Sam.  xxvii. 

SAUL  AND  THE  WITCH  OF  ENDOR. 

Even  the  worst  men  mav  sometimes  make  head  against  some  sins. 
Saul  hath  expelled  the  sorcerers  out  of  the  land  of  Israel ;  and 
hath  forbidden  magic  upon  pain  of  death.  He,  that  had  no  care  to 
expel  Satan  out  of  iiis  own  heart,  yet  will  seem  to  drive  him  out  of 
his  kingdom.  That  we  see  wicked  men  oppose  themselves  to  some 
sins,  there  is  neither  marvel  nor  comfort  m  it. 

No  doubt  Satan  made  sport  at  this  edict  of  Saul.  What  cares  he 
to  be  banished  in  sorcery,  while  he  is  entertained  in  malice?  He 
knew  and  found  Said  his,  while  he  resisted  ;  and  smiled  to  yield 
thus  far  unto  his  vassal.  If  we  quit  not  all  sins,  he  will  be  content 
we  should  either  abandon  or  persecute  some. 

Where  is  no  place  for  holy  fear,  there  will  be  place  for  the  ser- 
vile. The  graceless  heart  of  Saul  was  astonished  at  the  Philistines  ; 
yet  was  never  moved  at  the  frowns  of  that  God  whose  anger  sent 
them,  nor  of  those  sins  of  his  which  procured  them.  Those,  that 
cannot  fear  for  love,  shall  tremble  for  tear  :  and  how  much  better 
is  awe,  than  terror!  prevention,  than  confusion!  There  is  nothing 
more  lamentable,  than  to  ^ee  a  man  laugh  when  he  should  fear: 
God  shall  laugh,  when  such  .a  one's  fear  cometh. 

Extremity  of  distress  will  send  even  the  profanest  man  to  God. 
Like  as  the  drowning  man  reacheth  out  his  hand  to  that  bough, 
which  he  contemned  while  he  stood  safe  on  the  bank,  Saul  now 
asketh  counsel  of  the  Lord,  whose. prophet  he  hated,  whose  priests 
lie  slew,  whose  anointed  he  persecutes.  Had  Said  consulted  with 
God  when'  he  should,  this  evil  had  not  been  ;  but  now,  if  this  evil 
had  not  heen,  he  Irad  not  consulted  with  God.  The  thank  of  this 
act  is  due,  not  to  him,  but  to  his  affliction. 

A  forced  piety  is  thankless,  unprofitable.  God  will  not  answer 
him,  neither  by  dreams,  nor  by  Urim,  nor  by  prophets.  Why 
should  God  answer  that  man  bv  dreams,  who  had  resisted  him 
waking  ?  Whv  should  he  answer  him  by  Urim,  that  had  slain  his 
priests?   Why  should  he  answer  him  by  .prophets,  who  hated  the 


SAUL  AXD  THE  WITCH  OF  ENDOR.  34.5 

father  of  the  prophets,  rebelled  against  the  word  of  the  prophets  ? 
It  is  an  unreasonable  inequality,  to  hope  to  find  God  at  our  com- 
mand,  when  we  would  not  be  at  his;  to  look  that  God  should  re- 
gard our  voice  in  trouble,  when  we  would  not  regard  his  in  peace. 

Unto  what  mad  shifts  are  men  driven  by  despair  !  If  God  will 
not  answer,  Satan  shall ;  Saul  said  to  his  servants,  Seek  vie  a  man 
that  hath  a  familiar  spirit.  If  Saul  had  not  known  this  course  de- 
vilish, why  did  lie  decree  to  banish  it,  to  mulct  it  with  death?  yet 
now,  against  the  stream  of  his  conscience,  he  will  seek  to  those 
whom  he  had  condemned. 

There  needs  no  other  judge  of  Saul's  act,  than  himself.  Had  he 
not  before  opposed  this  sin,  he  had  not  so  heinously  sinned  in  com- 
mitting it.  There  cannot  be  a  more  fearful  sign  of  a  heart  given 
up  to  a  reprobate  sense,  than  to  cast  itself  wilfully  into  those  sins, 
which  it  hath  proclaimed  to  detest.  The  declinations  to  evil  are 
many  times  insensible';  but  when  it  breaks  forth  into  such  appa- 
rent effects,  even  othe  rs'  eyes  may  discern  it. 

What  was  Saul  the  better,  to  foreknow  the  issue  of  his  approach- 
ing battle  ?  If  this  consultation  could  have  strengthened  him  against 
his  enemies,  or  promoted  his  victory,  there  might  have  been  some 
colour  for  so  foul  an  act ;  now,  what  could  he  gain,  but  the  satisl 
fying  of  his  bootless  curiosity,  in  foreseeing  that,  which  he  should 
not  be  able  to  avoid  ? 

Foolish  men  give  away  their  souls  for  nothing.  The  itch  of 
impertinent  and  unprofitable  knowledge,  hath  been  the  hereditary 
disease  of  the  sons  of  Adam  and  Eve.  How  many  have  perished 
to  know  that,  which  hath  procured  their  perishing  !  How  ambitious 
should  we  be  to  know  those  things,  the  knowledge  whereof  is  eter- 
nal life  ! 

Many  a  lewd  office  are  they  put  to,  which  serve  wicked  masters. 
One  while,  Saul's  servants  are  sent  to  kill  innocent  David  ;  another 
while,  to  shed  the  blood  of  God's  priests  ;  and  now,  they  must  go 
seek  for  a  witch.  It  is  no  small  happiness  to  attend  them,  from 
whom  we  may  receive  precepts  and  examples  of  virtue. 

Had  Saul  been  good,  he  had  needed  no  disguise.  Honest  ac- 
tions never  shame  the  doers.  Now,  that  he  goeth  about  a  sinful 
business,  he  changeth  himself:  he  seeks  the  shelter  of  the  night: 
he  takes  but  two  followers  with  him.  It  is  true,  that  if  Saul  had 
come  in  the  port  of  a  king,  the  witch  had  as  much  dissembled  her 
condition,  as  now  he  dissembleth  his  ;  yet  it  was  not  only  desire  to 
speed,  but  guiltiness,  that  thus  altered  his  habit.  Such  is  the  power 
of  conscience,  that  even  those  who  arc  most  affected  to  evil,  yet 
are  ashamed  to  be  thought  such  as  they  desire  to  be. 

Saul  needed  another  face  to  fit  that  tongue,  which  should  say, 
Conjecture  to  me  by  the  familiar  spirit,  and  bring  me  up  whom  I 
shall  name  unto  thee.  An  obdurate  heart  can  give  way  to  any 
tiling. 

Notwithstanding  the  peremptory  edict  of  Saul,  there  are  stiil 
witches  in  Israel.  Neither  good  laws,  nor  careful  executions,  can 
purge  the  Church  from  malefactors.    There  will  still  be  some,  that 


346 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


will  jeopard  their  heads  upon  the  grossest  sins.  No  garden  can  be 
so  curiously  tended,  that  there  should  not  be  one  weed  left  in  it. 
Yet  so  far  can  good  statutes,  and  due  inflictions  of  punishments 
upon  offenders,  prevail,  that  mischievous  persons  are  glad  to  pull 
in  their  heads ;  and  dare  not  do  ill,  but  in  disguise  and  darkness. 
It  is  no  small  advantage  of  justice,  that  it  affrights  sin,  if  it  cannot 
be  expelled ;  as  eontrarily,  woeful  is  the  condition  of  that  place, 
where  is  a  public  profession  of  wickedness. 

The  witch  was  no  less  crafty  than  wicked.  She  had  before,  as 
is  like,  bribed  officers  to  escape  indictment,  to  lurk  in  secrecy  ; 
and  now  she  will  not  work  her  feats  without  security.  Her  suspi- 
cion projects  the  worst ;  Wherefore  seekest  thou  to  take  vie  in  a 
snare,  to  cause,  me  to  die  ?  O  vain  sorceress,  that  could  be  wary 
to  avoid  the  punishment  of  Saul ;  careless  to  avoid  the  judgment 
of  God!  ? 

Could  we  forethink  what  our  sin  would  cost  us,  we  durst  not  but 
be  innocent.  This  is  a  good  and  seasonable  answer  for  us  to  make 
uoto  Satan,  when  he  solicits  us  to  evil ;  Wherefore  seekest  thou  to 
take  me  in  a  snare,  to  cause  me  to  die  ?  Nothing  is  more  sure, 
than  this  intention  in  the  tempter,  than  this  event  in  the  issue. 
Oh  that  we  could  but  so  much  fear  the  eternal  pains,  as  we  do  the 
temporary  ;  and  be  but  so  careful,  to  save  our  souls  from  torment, 
as  our  bodies ! 

No  sooner  hath  Saul  sworn  her  safety,  than  she  addresseth  her  to 
her  sorcery.  Hope  of  impunity  draws  on  sin  with  boldness.  Were 
it  not  for  the  delusions  of  false  promises,  Satan  should  have  no 
clients. 

Could  Saul  be  so  ignorant,  as  to  think  that  magic  had  power 
over  God's  deceased  saints,  to  raise  them  up;  yea,  to  call  them 
down  from  their  rest  ?  Time  was,  when  Saul  was  among  the  pro- 
phets ;  and  yet  now,  that  he  is  in  the  impure  lodge  of  devils,  how 
senseless  he  is,  to  say,  Bring  me.  up  Samuel !  It  is  no  rare  thing, 
to  lose  even  our  wit  and  judgment  together  with  graces.  How 
justly  are  they  given  to  cottishness,  that  have  given  themselves 
over  to  sin  ! 

The  sorceress,  it  seems,  exercising  her  conjurations  in  a  room 
apart,  is  informed  by  her  familiar,  who  it  was  that  set  her  on  work. 
She  can  therefore  find  time,  in  the  midst  of  her  exorcisms,  to  bind 
the  assurance  of  her  own  safety,  by  expostulation  ;  She  cried  with 
a  loud  voice,  Why  hast  thcu  deceived  me,  for  thou  art  Saul  ?  The 
very  name  of  Saul  was  an  accusation  ;  yet  is  he  so  far  from  striking 
his  breast,  that,  doubting  lest  this  fear  of  the  witch  should  inter- 
rupt the  desired  work,  he  encourages  her,  whom  he  should  have 
condemned  ;  Be  not  afraid.  He,  that  had  more  cause  to  fear  for 
his  own  sake  in  an  expectation  of  just  judgment,  cheers  up  her, 
that  feared  nothing  but  himself.  How  ill  doth  it  become  us,  to 
give  that  counsel  to  others,  whereof  we  have  more  need  and  use  in 
our  own  persons ! 

As  one,  that  had  more  care  to  satisfy  his  own  curiosity  than  her 
suspicion,  he  asks,  What  sanest  thou  ?  Who  would  not  have  looked, 


SAUL  AKD  THE  WITCH  OF  END0R.  347 

that  Saul's  hair  should  have  stared  on  his  head,  to  hear  of  a  spirit 
raised  ?  His  sin  hath  so  hardened  him,  that  lie  rather  pleases  him- 
self in  it,  which  hath  nothing  in  it  but  horror. 

So  far  is  Satan  content  to  descend  to  the  service  of  his  servants, 
that  he  will  approve  his  feigned  ohedience  to  their  very  outward 
senses.  What  form  is  so  glorious,  that  he  either  cannot  or  dare  not 
undertake  ?  Here,  gods  ascend  out  of  the  earth  ;  elsewhere,  Satan 
transforms  him  into  an  angel  of  light.  What  wonder  is  it,  that  his 
wicked  instruments  appear  like  saints,  in  their  hypocritical  dissi- 
mulation ? 

If  we  will  be  judging  by  the  appearance,  we  shall  be  sure  to  err. 
No  eye  could  distinguish  betwixt  the  true  Samuel  and  a  false  spirit. 
Saul,  who  was  well  worthy  to  be  deceived,  seeing  those  grey  hairs 
and  that  mantle,  inclines  himself  to  the  ground,  and  bows  himself. 
He,  that  would  not  worship  God  in  Samuel  alive,  now  worships 
Samuel  in  Satan :  and  no  marvel ;  Satan  was  now  become  his  re- 
fuge instead  of  God  ;  his  Urim  was  darkness,  his  prophet  a  ghost. 
Every  one,  that  consults  with  Satan,  worships  him,  though  he  bow 
not ;  neither  doth  that  evil  spirit  desire  any  other  reverence,  than 
to  be  sought  unto. 

How  cunningly  doth  Satan  resemble,  not  only  the  habit  and 
gesture,  but  the  language  of  Samuel;  Wherefore  hast  thw  dis- 
quieted me  ?  And  wherefore  dost  thou  ask  of  mey  seeing  the  Lord 
is  gone  from  thee,  and  is  thine  enemy  ?  Nothing  is  more  pleasing 
to  that  evil  one,  than  to  be  solicited  ;  yet,  in  the  person  of  Samuel, 
he  can  say,  Why  hast  thou  disquieted  me  ?  Had  not  the  Lord  been 
gone  from  Saul,  he  had  never  come  to  the  devilish  oracle  of  Endor ; 
and  yet  the  counterfeiting  spirit  can  say,  Why  doest  thou  ask  of  me, 
seeing  the  Lord  is  gone  from  thee  f  Satan  cares  not  how  little  he  is 
known  to  be  himself:  he  loves  to  pass  under  any  form,  rather  than 
his  own.  The  more  holy  the  person  is,  the  more  carefully  doth 
Satan  act  him;  that  by  his  stale,  he  may  ensnare  us. 

In  every  motion,  it  is  good  to  try  the  spirits,  whether  they  be 
of  God.  Good  words  are  no  means  to  distinguish  a  prophet  from 
a  devil.  Samuel  himself,  while  he  was  alive,  could  not  have  spoken 
more  gravely,  more  severely,  more  divinely,  than  this  evil  ghost ; 
For  the  Lord  will  rent  thy  kingdom  out  of  thy  hand,  and  give  it 
thy  neighbour  David:  because  thou  obeyedst  not  the  voice  of  the  Lord, 
nor  executedst  his  fierce  wrath  upon  the  Amalekites,  therefore  hath 
the  Lord  done  this  unto  thee  this  day.  When  the  devil  himself  puts 
on  gravity  and  religion,  who  can  marvel  at  the  hypocrisy  of  men  ? 
Well  may  lewd  men  be  good  preachers,  when  Satan  himself  can 
play  the  prophet.  Where  are  those  ignorants,  that  can  think  cha- 
ritably of  charms  and  spells,  because  they  find  nothing  in  them 
but  good  words?  What  prophet  could  speak  better  words,  than 
this  devil  in  Samuel's  mantle  ?  Neither  is  there  at  any  time  so 
much  danger  of  that  evil  spirit,  as  when  he  speaks  best. 

I  could  wonder  to  hear  Satan  preach  thus  prophetically,  if  I  did 
not  know,  that,  as  he  was  once  a  good  angel,  so  he  can  still  act 
what  he  was. 


348 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


While  Saul  was  in  consultation  of  sparing  Agag,  we  shall  never 
find  that  Satan  would  lav  any  block  in  his  way  :  yea,  then  he  was 
a  prompt  orator,  to  induce  him  into  that  sin  ;  now  that  it  is  past 
and  gone,  he  can  load  Saul  with  fearful  denunciations  of  judgment. 
Till  we  have  sinned,  Satan  is  a  parasite ;  when  we  have  sinned,  he 
is  a  tyrant.  What  cares  be  to  flatter  any  more,  when  he  hath  what 
he  would  ?  Now,  his  only  work  is  to  terrify  and  confound,  that  he 
may  enjoy  what  he  hath  won.  How  much  better  is  it  serving  that 
Master,  who,  when  we  are  most  dejected  with  the  conscience  of 
evil,  heartens  us  with  inward  comfort,  and  speaks  peace  to  the  soul 
in  the  midst  of  tumult !  1  Sam.  xxtiii, 


ZIKLA'G  SPOILED  AND  REVENGED.  . 

Had  not  the  king  of  the;  Philistines  sent  David  away  earlv,  his 
wives  and  his  people  and  substance,  which  he  left  at  Ziklag,  had 
been  utterly  lost  ;  now  Achish  did  not  more  pleasure  David  in  his 
entertainment,  than  in  his  .dismission. 

£aul  was  not  David's  enemy  more,  in  the  persecution  of  his  per- 
son, than  in  the  forbearance  of  God's  enemies.  Behold,  thus  late 
doth  David  feel  the  smart  of  Saul's  sin,  in  sparing  the  Amalekites; 
who,  if  God's  sentence  had  been  duly  executed,  bad  not  now  sur- 
vived, to  annoy  this-parcel  of  Israel. 

As,  in  spiritual  respects,  our  sins  are  always  hurtful  to  ourselves' 
so,  in  temporal,  oft-times  prejudicial  to  posterity.  A  wicked  man 
deserves  ill  of  those,  he  never  lived  to  see. 

I  cannot  marvel  at  the  Amalekites1  assault  made  upon  the  Isra- 
elites of  Ziklag  :  I  cannot  but  marvel  at  their  clemency.  How  just 
was  it,  that,  while  David  would  give  aid  to  the  enemies  of  the  Church 
against  Israel,  the  enemies  of  the  Church  should  rise  against  David 
in  his  peculiar  charge  of  Israel !  But,  while  David,  roving  against 
the  Amalekites,  not  many  days  before,  left  neither  man  nor  woman 
alive,  how  strange  is  it,  that  the  Amalekites,  invading  and  surpris- 
ing Ziklag,  in  revenge,  kiil  neither  man  nor  woman  !  Shall  we  say 
that  mercy  is  fled  from  the  breasts  of  Israelites,  and  rests  in  hea- 
thens ?  or  shall  we  rather  ascribe  this  to  the  gracious  restraint  of 
God,  who,  having  designed  Amalek  to  the  slaughter  of  Israel,  and 
not  Israel  to  the  slaughter  of  Amalek,  moved  the  hands  of  Israel, 
and  held  the  hands  of  Amalek  ?  This  was  that  alone,  that  made 
the  heathens  take  up  with  an  unbloody  revenge;  burning  only  the 
walls,  and  leading  away  the  persons.  Israel  crossed  the  revealed 
will  of  God,  in  sparing  Amalek;  Amalek  fulfils  the  secret  will  of 
God,  in  sparing  Israel. 

It  was  still  the  lot  of  Amalek,  to  take  Israel  at  all  advantages. 
Upon  their  first  coming  out  of  Egypt,  when  they  were  weary, 
weak,  and  unarmed,  then  did  Amalek  assault  them;  and  now, 
when  one  part  of  Israel  was  in  the  field  against  the  Philistines, 
another  was  gone  with  the  Philistines  against  Israel,  the  Amalekites 
set  upon  the  coasts  of  both,  and  go  away  laden  with  the  spoil : 


ZIKL.AG  SPOTTED  AND  REVENGED. 


349 


no  otiier  is  to  be  expected  of  our  spiritual  adversaries,  who  are 
ever  readiest  to  assail,  when  we  are  the  unreadiest  to  defend. 

It  was  a  woeful  spectacle  for  David  and  his  soldiers  upon  their 
return,  to  find  ruins  and  a»hes,  instead  of  houses ;  and  instead  of 
their  families,  solitude.  Their  city  was  vanished  into  smoke,  their 
households  into  captivity ;  neither  could  they  know  whom  to  accuse, 
or  where  to  incjuire  for  redress.  While  they  made  account,  that 
their  home  should  recompense  their  tedious  journey  with  comfort, 
the  miserable  desolation  of  their  home  doubles  the  discomfort  of 
their  journey.  What  remained  there,  but  tears  and  lamentations? 
They  lifted  up  their  voices,  and  wept,  till  they  could  weep  no  more. 
Here  was  plenty  of  nothir.g,  hut  misery  and  sorrow. 

The  heart  of  every  Israelite  was  brimful  of  grief.  David's  ran 
over  ;  for,  besides  that  his  cross  was  the  same  with  theirs,  all  theirs 
was  his  alone  :  each  man  looked  on  his  fellow  as  a  partner  of  afflic- 
tion, but  every  one  looked  upon  David  as  the  cause  of  all  their 
affliction  ;  and,  as  common  displeasure  is  never  but  fruitful  of  re- 
venge, they  all  agree  to  stone  him,  as  the  author  of  their  undoing, 
whom  they  followed  all  this  while,  as  the  hopeful  means  of  their 
advancements. 

Now  David's,  loss  is  his  least  grief.  Neither,  as  if  every  thing 
had  conspired  to  torment  him,  can  he  look  besides  the  aggravation 
of  his  sorrow  and  danger.  Saul  and  his  soldiers  had  hunted  him 
out  of  Israel ;  the  Philistine  courtiers  had  hunted  him  from  the 
favour  of  Achish  ;  the  xVmalekites  spoiled  him  in  Ziklag ;  yet  all 
these  are  easy  adversaries,  in  comparison  of  his  own  :  his  own  fol- 
lowers are  so  far  from  pitying  his  participation  of  the  loss,  that 
they  are  ready  to  kill  him,  hecause  they  arc  miserable  with  him. 
Oh  the  many  and  grievous  perplexities  of  the  man  after  God's  own 
heart !  If  all  his  train  had  joined  their  best  helps  for  the  mitigation 
of  his  grief,  their  cordials  had  been  too  weak ;  but  now,  the  vexa- 
tion, that  arises  from  their  fury  and  malice,  drowneth  the  sense  of 
their  loss,  and  were  enough  to  distract  the  most  resolute  heart. 
Why  should  it  be  strange  to  us,  that  we  meet  with  hard  trials, 
when  we  see  the  dear  anointed  of  God  thus  plunged  in  evils  ? 

What  should  the  distressed  son  of  Jesse  now  do  ?  whither  should 
he  think  to  turn  him  ?  To  go  back  to  Israel,  he  durst  not ;  to  go  to 
Achish,  he  might  not;  to  abide  amongst  those  waste  heaps,  he 
could  not ;  or,  if  there  might  have  been  harbour  in  those  burnt 
walls,  yet  there  could  be  no  safety  to  remain  with  those  mutinous 
spirits.  But  David  comforted  himself  in  the  Lord  his  God.  O  hap- 
py and  sure  refuge  of  a  faithful  soul !  The  earth  yielded  him  no- 
thing, but  matter  of  diseonsokition  and  heaviness  :  he  lifts  his  eyes 
above  the  hills,  whence  cometh  his  salvation. 

It  is  no  marvel,  that  God  remembereth  David  in  all  his  troubles, 
since  David  in  all  his  troubles  did  thus  remember  his  God  1  He 
knew,  that,  though  no  mortal  eye  of  reason  or  sense  could  discern 
any  evasion  from  these  intricate  evils,  yet  that  the  eye  of  divine 
Providence  had  descried  it  long  before ;  and  that  though  no  hu- 
man power  could  mako  way  for  his  safety,  yet  that  the  over-ruliug 


350 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


hand  of  his  God  could  do  it  with  ease.  His  experience  had  assured 
him  of  the  fidelity  of  his  Guardian  in  heaven,  and  therefore  he 
comforted  himself  in  the  Lord  his  God. 

In  vain  is  comfort  expected  from  God,  if  we  consult  not  with 
him.  Abiathar  the  priest  is  called  for.  David  was  not  in  the  court 
of  Achish,  without  the  priest  by  his  side ;  nor  the  priest  without 
the  ephod.  Had  these  been  left  behind  in  Ziklag,  they  had  been 
miscarried  with  the  rest,  and  David  had  now  been  hopeless.  How 
well  it  succeeds  to  the  great,  when  they  take  God  with  them,  in  his 
ministers,  in  his  ordinances !  As  contrarily,  when  these  are  laid 
by,  as  superfluous,  there  can  be  nothing  but  uncertainty  of  suc- 
cess, or  certainty  of  mischief.  The  presence  of  the  priest  and 
ephod  would  have  little  availed  him  without  their  use  :  by  them  he 
asks  counsel  of  the  Lord,  in  these  straits. 

The  mouth  and  ears  of  God,  which  were  shut  unto  Saul,  are  open 
unto  David:  no  sooner  can  he  ask,  than  he  receives  answer;  and 
the  answer  that  he  receives  is  full  of  courage  and  comfort ;  Follow, 
for  thou  shall  surely  overtake  them,  and  recover  all.  That  God  of 
truth  never  disappointed  any  man's  trust.  David  now  finds,  that 
the  eye  which  waited  upon  God  was  not  sent  away  weeping. 

David  therefore,  and  his  men,  are  now  upon  their  march  after 
the  Amalekites.  It  is  no  lingering,  when  God  bids  us  go.  Thev, 
which  had  promised  rest  to  their  weary  limbs,  after  their  return 
from  Achish,  in  their  harbour  of  Ziklag,  are  glad  to  forget  their 
hopes,  and  to  put  their  stiff  joints  unto  a  new  task  of  motion.  If  is 
no  marvel,  if  two  hundred  of  them  were  so  over-tired  with  their 
former  toil,  that  they  were  not  able  to  pass  over  the  river  Besor. 

David  was  a  true  type  of  Christ.  We  follow  him  in  these  holy 
wars,  against  the  spiritual  Amalekites.  Ail  of  us  are  not  of  an 
equal  strength:  some  are  carried  by  the  vigour  of  their  faith, 
through  all  difficulties  ;  others,  after  long  pressure,  are  ready  to 
languish  in  the  way.  Our  leader  is  not  more  strong  than  pitiful  ; 
neither  doth  he  scornfully  cashier  those,  whose  desires  are  hearty, 
while  their  abilities  are  unanswerable.  How  much  more  should 
our  charity  pardon  the  infirmities  of  our  brethren  ;  and  allow  them 
to  sit  by  toe  stuff,  who  cannot  endure  the  march  ! 

The  same  Providence,  which  appointed  David  to  follow  the 
Amalekites,  had  also  ordered  an  Egyptian  to  be  cast  behind  them. 
This  cast  servant,  whom  his  cruel  master  had  left  to  faintness  and 
famine,  shall  be  used  as  the  means,  of  the  recovery  of  the  Israel- 
ites' loss,  and  of  the  revenge  of  the  Amalekites.  Had  not  his  mas- 
ter neglected  him,  all  these  rovers  of  Amalek  had  gone  away  with 
their  life  and  booty.  It  is  not  safe,  to  despise  the  meanest  vassal 
upon  earth.  There  is  a  mercy  and  care  due  to  the  most  despicable 
piece  of  all  humanity  ;  wherein  we  cannot  be  wanting  without  the 
offence,  without  the  punishment  of  God. 

Charity  distinguished!  an  Israelite  from  an  Amalekite.  David's 
followers  are  strangers  to  this  Egyptian.  An  Amalekite  was  his 
master.  His  master  leaves  him  to  die  (in  the  field)  of  sickness  and 
hunger;  the^e  strangers  relieved  him:  and,  ere  they  know  whe- 


i 


ZIKLAG  SPOILED  AND  REVENGED.  351 

ther  they  might  by  him  receive  any  light  in  their  pursuit,  they  re- 
fresh his  dying  spirits  with  bread  and  water,  with  figs  and  raisins ; 
neither  can  the  haste  of  their  way  be  any  hindrance  to  their  com- 
passion. He  hath  no  Israelitish  blood  in  him,  that  is  utterly  mer- 
ciless. 

Perhaps  yet  David's  followers  might  also,  in  the  hope  of  some 
intelligence,  shew  kindness  to  this  forlorn  Egyptian.  Worldly  wis- 
dom teacheth  us,  to  sow  small  courtesies,  where  we  may  reap  large 
harvests  of  recompence. 

No  sooner  are  his  spirits  recalled,  than  he  requites  his  food  with 
information.  I  cannot  blame  the  Egyptian,  that  he  was  so  easily 
induced,  to  descry  these  unkind  Amalekites  to  merciful  Israelites  ; 
those  that  gave  him  over  unto  death,  to  the  restorers  of  his  life : 
much  less,  that,  ere  he  would  descry  them,  he  requires  an  oath  of 
security  from  so  bad  a  master.  Well  doth  he  match  death  with  such 
a  servitude. 

Wonderful  is  the  providence  of  God,  even  over  those  that  are 
not,  in  the  nearest  bonds,  his  own.  Three  days  and  three  nig  hts, 
had  this  poor  Egyptian  slave  lain  sick  and  hunger-starved  in  the 
fields,  and  looks  for  nothing  but  death,  when  God  sends  him  suc- 
cour from  the  hands  of  those  Israelites,  whom  he  had  helped  to 
spoil :  though  not  so  much  for  his  sake,  as  for  Israel's,  is  this  hea- 
thenish straggler  preserved. 

It  pleases  God,  to  extend  his  common  favours  to  all  his  crea- 
tures ;  but  in  miraculous  preservations,  he  hath  still  wont  to  have 
respect  to  his  own.  By  this  means,  therefore,  are  the  Israelites 
brought  to  the  sight  of  their  late  spoilers  ;  whom  they  find  scat- 
tered abroad,  upon  all  the  earth,  eating  and  drinking,  and  danc- 
ing in  triumph,  for  the  great  prey  they  had  taken. 

It  was  three  days,  at  least,  since  this  gainful  foraging  of  Ama- 
Jek  ;  and  now,  seeing  no  fear  of  any  pursuer,  and  promising  them- 
selves safety,  in  so  great  and  untracetl  a  distance,  they  make  them- 
selves merry  with  so  rich  and  easy  a  victory  ;  and  now  suddenlv, 
when  they  began  to  think  of  enjoying  the  beauty  and  wealth  thev 
had  gotten,  the  sword  of  David  was  upon  their  throats.  Destruc- 
tion is  never  nearer,  than  when  security  hath  chased  away  fear, 
With  how  sad  faces  and  hearts,  had  the  wives  of  David,  and  the 
other  captives  of  Israel,  looked  upon  the  triumphal  revels  of  Ama- 
lek  ;  and  what  a  change,  do  we  think,  appeared  in  them,  when 
they  saw  their  happy  and  valiant  rescuers,  flying  in  upon  their  in- 
solent victors,  and  making  the  death  of  the  Amalekites,  the  ransom 
of  their  captivity  !  They  mourned  even  now  at  the  dances  of 
Amalek:  now,  in  the  shrieks  and  death  of  Amalek,  they  shout  and 
rejoice.  The  mercy  of  our  God  forgets  not  to  interchange  our  sor- 
rows with  joy,  and  the  joy  of  the  wicked  with  sorrow. 

The  Amalekites  have  paid  a  dear  loan  for  the  goods  of  Israel, 
which  they  now  restore  with  their  own  lives.  And  now  their  spoil 
hath  made  David  richer  than  he  expected  :  that  booty,  which  they 
had  swept  from  all  other  parts,  accrued  to  him. 

Those  Israelites,  that  could  not  go  on  to  fight  for  their  share, 


352 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


are  come  to  meet  their  brethren  with  grata! ation.  How  partial  arc 
we  wont  to  be  to  our  own  causes !  Even  very  Israelites  will  be 
ready  to  fall  out  for  matter  of  profit.  Where  self-love  hath  bred  a 
quarrel,  every  man  is  subject  to  flatter  his  own  case.    It  seemed, 

Elausible  and  but  just  to  the  actors  in  this  rescue,  that  those,  which 
ad  taken  no  part  in  the  pain  and  hazard  of  the  journey,  should  re- 
ceive no  part  of  the  commodity.  It  was  favour  enough  for  them 
to  recover  their  wives  and  children,  though  they  shared  not  in  the 
goods.  Wise  and  holy  David,  whose  praise  was  no  less  to  over- 
come his  own  in  time  of  peace  than  his  enemies  in  war,  calls  his 
contending  followers  from  law  to  equity  ;  and  so  orders  the  mat- 
ter, that,  since  the  plaintiffs  were  detained  not  by  will  but  by  ne- 
cessity, and  since  their  forced  stay  was  useful  in  guarding  the 
stuff,  they  should  partake  equally  of  the  prey  with  their  fellows  :  i 
sentence  well  beseeming  the  justice  of  God's  anointed.  Those, 
that  represent  God  upon  earth,  should  resemble  him  in  their  pro- 
ceedings. It  is  the  just  mercy  of  our  God,  to  measure  us  by  our 
wills,  not  by  our  abilities  ;  to  recompense  us  graciously,  according 
to  the  truth  of  our  desires  and  endeavours  ;  and  to  account  that  per- 
formed by  us,  which  he  only  letteth  us  from  performing:  It  were 
wide  with  us,  if  sometimes  purpose  did  not  supply  actions.  While 
our  heart  faulteth  not,  we,  that  through  spiritual  sickness  are  fain 
to  abide  by  the  stuff,  shall  share  both  in  grace  and  glory  with  the 
victors.  1  Sam.  .r.r.r. 


THE  DEATH  OF  SAUL. 

The  Witch  of  Endor  had  half  slain  Saul,  before  the  battle  :  it 
is  just,  that  they,  who  consult  with  devils,  should  go  awav  with 
discomfort.  He  hath  eaten  his  last  bread,  at  the  hand  of  a  sor- 
ceress: and  now  necessity  draws  him  into  that  field,  where  he  sees 
nothing  but  despair.  Had  not  Saul  believed  the  ill  news  of  the 
counterfeit  Samuel,  he  had  not  been  struck  down  on  the  ground 
with  words  :  now"  his  belief  made  him  desperate.  Those  actions, 
which  are  not  sustained  by  hope,  must  needs  languish  ;  and  are- 
only  promoted  by  outward  compulsion.  While  the  mind  is  uncer- 
tain of  success,  it  relieves  itself  with  the  possibilities  of  good  :  in 
doubts,  there  is  a  comfortable  mixture ;  but  when  it  is  assured  of  the 
worst  event,  it  is  utterly  discouraged  and  dejected.  It  hath  there- 
fore pleased  the  wisdom  of  God,  to  hide  from  wicked  men  his  de- 
termination of  their  final  estate,  that  their  remainders  of  hope 
may  hearten  them  to  good. 

In  all  likelihood,  one  self-same  day  saw  David  a  victor  over  the 
Amalekites,  and  Saul  discomfited  by  the  Philistines.  How  should 
it  be  otherwise?  David  consulted  with  God,  and  prevailed  ;  Saul 
with  the  Witch  of  Endor,  and  perisheth.  The  end  is  commonly 
answerable  to  the  way.  It  is  an  idle  injustice,  when  we  do  ill,  to 
look  to  speed  well. 

The  slaughter  of  Saul  and  his  sons  was  not  in  the  first  scene  of 


THE  DEATH  OF  SAUL. 


353 


ihis  tragical  field :  that  was  rather  reserved  by  God  for  the  last 
act,  that  Saul's  measure  might  be  full.  God  is  long,  ere  he  strikes ; 
but  when  he  doth,  it  is  to  purpose. 

First,  Israel  flees  and  falls  down  wounded  in  Mount  Gilboa.  They 
had  their  part  in  Saul's  sin ;  they  were  actors  in  David's  persecution : 
justly  therefore  do  they  suffer  with  him,  whom  they  had  seconded 
in  offence.  As  it  is  hard  to  be  good  under  an  evil  prince,  so  it  is  as 
rare  not  to  be  enwrapped  in  his  judgments.  It  was  no  small  addi- 
tion to  the  anguish  of  Saul's  death;  to  see  his  sons  dead;  to  see  his 
people  fleeing,  and  slain  before  him.  They  had  sinned  in  their 
king,  and  in  them  is  their  king  punished. 

The  rest  were  not  so  worthy  of  pity  ;  but  whose  heart  would  it 
not  touch  to  see  Jonathan,  the  good  son  of  a  wicked  father,  involv- 
ed in  the  common  destruction  ?  Death  is  not  partial.  AH  dispo- 
sitions, all  merits,  are  alike  to  it ;  if  valour,  if  holiness,  if  since- 
rity of  heart,  could  have  been  any  defence  against  mortality,  Jona- 
than had  survived  :  now  by  their  wounds  and  death,  no  man  can 
discern  which  is  Jonathan.  The  soul  only  finds  the  difference, 
which  the  body  admitteth  not.  Death  is  the  common  gate  both  to 
heaven  and  hell  ;  we  all  pass  that,  ere  our  turning  to  either  hand. 
The  sword  of  the  Philistines  fetcheth  Jonathan  through  it,  with 
his  fellows.  No  sooner  is  his  foot  over  that  threshold,  than 
God  conducteth  him  to  glory.  The  best  cannot  be  happy,  but 
through  their  dissolution.  Now  therefore  hath  Jonathan  no  cause 
of  complaint.  He  is,  by  the  rude  and  cruel  hand  of  a  PhUistine, 
but  removed  to  a  better  kingdom,  than  he  leaves  to  his  brother ; 
and,  at  once,  is  his  death  both  a  temporal  affliction  to  the  son  of 
Saul,  and  an  entrance  of  glory  to  the  friend  of  David. 

The  Philistine  archers  shot  at  random.  God  directs  their  arrows 
into  the  body  of  Saul.  Lest  the  discomfiture  of  his  people,  and 
the  slaughter  of  his  sons  should  not  be  grief  enough  to  him,  he 
feels  himself  wounded,  and  sees  nothing  before  him  but  horror  and 
death  ;  and  now,  as  a  man  forsaken  of  all  (hopes,  he  begs  of  his 
armour-bearer  that  death' s-blow,  which  else  he  must,  to  the  dou- 
bling of  his  indignation,  receive  from  a  Philistine.  He  begs  this 
bloody  favour  of  his  servant,  and  is  denied.  Such  an  awfulness 
hath  God  placed  in  sovereignty,  that  no  intreaty,  no  extremity, 
can  move  the  hand  against  it.  What  metal  are  tlio.se  men  made  of, 
that  can  suggest,  or  resolve,  and  attempt  the  violation  of  majesty?, 

Wicked  men  care  more  for  the  shame  of  the  world,  than  the  dan- 
ger of  their  souls.  Desperate  Saul  will  now  supply  his  armour- 
bearer  ;  and  as  a  man  that  bore  arms  against  himself,  he  falls  upon 
his  own  sword.  What  if  he  had  died  by  the  weapon  of  a  Phi- 
listine ?  so  did  his  son  Jonathan,  and  lost  no  glory.  These  con- 
ceits of  disreputation  prevail  with  carnal  hearts,  above  all  spiritual 
respects.  There  is  no  greater  murderer,  than  vain-glory.  Nothing 
more  argues  a  heart  void  of  grace,  than  to  be  transported  by  idle 
popularity  into  actions  prejudicial  to  the  soul. 

Evil  examples,  especially  of  the  great;  never  escaped  imitation. 

VOL.  I.  A  A 


554 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


The  armour-bearer  of  Saul  follows  his  master  ;  and  dares  do  that 
to  himself,  which  to  his  king  he  durst  not  :  as  if  their  own  swords 
had  been  more  familiar  executioners,  they  yielded  unto  them,  what 
'they  grudged  to  their  pursuers. 

From  the  beginning  was  Saul  ever  his  own  enemy  ;  neither  did 
any  hands  hurt  him,  but  his  own  :  and  now  his  death  is  suitable  to 
his  life:  his  own  hand  pays  him  the  reward  of  all  his  wickedness. 

The  end  of  hypocrites  and  envious  men  is  commonly  fearful. 
Now  is  the  blood  of  God's  priests  which  Saul  shed,  and  of  David 
which  he  would  have  shed,  required  and  requited. 

The  evil  spirit  had  said,  the  evening  before,  To-morrow  t/iou 
shalt  be  with  vie  ;  and  now  Saul  hasteth  to  make  the  devil  no  liar. 
Rather  than  fail,  he  gives  himself  his  own  mittimus. 

Oh  the  woeful  extremities  of  a  despairing  soul,  plunging  him 
ever  into  a  greater  mischief  to  avoid  the  less  !  He  might  have  been 
a  patient  in  another's  violence,  and  faultless ;  now,  while  he  will 
needs  act  the  Philistines'  part  upon  himself,  lte  lived  and  died  a 
murderer.  The  case  is  deadly,  when  the  prisoner  breaks  the  jail, 
and  will  not  stay  for  his  delivery :  and  though  we  may  not  pass  sen- 
tence upon  such  a  soul,  yet  upon  the  fact  we  may  :  the  soul  may 
possibly  repent  in  the  parting  ;  the  act  is  heinous,  and  such  as, 
without  repentance,  kills  the  soul. 

It  was  the  next  day,  ere  the  Philistines  knew  how  much  they 
were  victors  ;  then  finding  the  dead  corpse  of  Saul  and  his  sons, 
they  begin  their  triumphs.  The  head  of  king  Saul  is  cut  ofi'  in 
lieu  of  Goliath's  ;  and  now  all  their  idol  temples  ring  of  their  suc- 
cess. Foolish  Philistines!  if  they  had  not  been  more  beholden  to 
Saul's  sins  than  their  gods,  they  had  never  carried  away  tlie  honour 
of  those  trophies.  Instead  of  magnifying  the  justice  of  the  tru« 
God,  who  punished  Saul  with  deserved  death,  they  magnify  the 
power  of  the  false.  Superstition  is  extremely  injurious  to  God. 
It  is  no  better  than  theft,  to  ascribe  unto  the  second  causes,  that 
honour  which  is  due  unto  the  first ;  but  to  give  God's  glory  to  those 
things,  which  neitheractnor  are,  it  is  the  highest  degree  of  spiritual 
robbery. 

Saul  was  none  of  the  best  kings  ;  yet,  so  impatient  are  his  sub- 
jects of  the  indignity  offered  to  his  dead  corpse,  that  they  will  ra- 
ther leave  their  own  bones  amongst  the  Philistines,  than  the  carcase 
of  Saul.  Such  a  close  relation  there  is  betwixt  a  prince  and  sub- 
ject, that  the  dishonour  of  either  is  inseparable  from  both.  How 
willing  should  we  be  to  hazard  our  bodies  or  substance,  for  the 
vindiciition  either  of  the  person  or  name  of  a  good  king,  while  he 
lives  to  the  benefit  of  our  protection?  It  is  an  unjust  ingratitude 
in  those  men,  which  can  endure  the  disgrace  of  them,  under  whose 
shelter  they  live ;  but  how  unnatural  is  the  villany  of  those  mis- 
creants, that  can  be  content  to  be  actors  in  the  capital  wrongs  of- 
fered to  sovereign  authority ! 

It  were  a  wonder,  if,  after  the  death  of  a  prince,  there  should 
want  some  pickthank,  to  insinuate  himself  into  his  successor.  An 
Amalekitc  young  man  rides  post  to  Ziklag,  to  find  out  David, 


THE  DEATH  OK  SAUL. 


355 


whom  even  common  rumour  had  notified  for  the  anointed  heir  to 
the  kingdom  of  Israel ;  to  be  the  first  messenger  of  that  news, 
which  he  thought  could  be  no  other  than  acceptable,  the  death  of 
Saul :  and  that  the  tidings  might  be  so  much  more  meritorious,  he 
adds  to  the  report,  what  he  thinks  might  carry  the  greatest  retri- 
bution. In  hope  of  reward  or  honour,  the  man  is  content  to  belie 
himself  to  David.  It  was  not  the  spear,  but  the  sword  of  Saul, 
that  was  the  instrument  of  his  death ;  neither  could  this  stranger 
find  Saul  but  dying,  since  the  armour-bearer  of  Saul  saw  him  dead, 
ere  he  offered  that  violence  to  himself.  The  hand  of  this  Ama- 
lekite  therefore  was  not  guilty  ;  his  tongue  was. 

Had  not  this  messenger  measured  David's  foot  by  his  own  last, 
he  had  forborne  this  piece  of  the  news ;  and  not  hoped  to  advantage 
himself  by  this  falsehood.  Now  he  thinks;  "  The  tidings  of  a 
kingdom  cannot  but  please.  None  but  Saul  and  Jonathan  stood 
in  David's  way,  he  cannot  chuse,  but  like  to  hear  of  their  removal; 
especially,  since  Saul  did  so  tyrannously  persecute  his  innocence. 
If  I  shall  only  report  the  fact  done  by  another,  I  shall  go  away 
but  with  the  rccompence  of  a  lucky  post ;  whei'eas,  if  I  take  upon 
me  the  action,  I  am  the  man,  to  whom  David  is  beholden  for  the 
kingdom  :  he  cannot  but  honour  and  requite  me,  as  the  author  of 
his  deliverance  and  happiness."  Worldly  minds  think  no  man  can 
be  of*  any  other,  than  their  own  diet ;  and  because  they  find  the 
respects  of  self-love  and  private  profit  so  strongly  prevailing  with 
themselves,  they  cannot  conceive  how  these  should  be  capable  of  a 
repulse  from  others. 

How  much  was  this  Amalekite  mocked  of  his  hopes  !  Whilehe 
imagined  that  David  would  now  triumph  and  feast  in  the  assured 
expectation  of  the  kingdom,  and  possession  of  the  crown  of  Israel, 
he  finds  him  rending  his  clothes,  and  wringing  his  hands,  and  weep- 
ing, and  mourning  ;  as  if  all  his  comfort  had  been  dead  with  Saul 
and  Jonathan:  and  yet  perhaps  he  thought,  "  This  sorrow  of  Da- 
vid is  but  fashionable  ;  such  as  great  heirs  make  shew  of  in  the  fa- 
tal day  they  have  longed  for :  these  tears  will  be  soon  dry  ;  the 
sight  of  a  crown  will  soon  breed  a  succession  of  other  passions :" 
but  this  error  is  soon  corrected  ;  for,  when  David  had  entertained 
this  bearer  with  a  sad  fast  all  the  day,  he  calls  him  forth  in  the 
evening  to  execution  ;  How  wast  thou  not  afraid,  saith  he,  to  put 
forth  thine  hand  to  destroy  the  anointed  of  the  Lord  ? 

Doubtless,  the  Amalekite  made  many  fair  pleas  for  himself,  out 
of  the  grounds  of  his  own  report :  "  Alas,  Saul  was  before  fallen 
upon  his  own  spear.  It  was  but  mercy  to  kill  him,  that  was  half 
dead,  that  he  might  die  the  shorter.  Besides,  his  entreaty  and  im- 
portunate prayers  moved  me,  to  hasten  him  through  those  painful 
gates  of  death.  Had  I  stricken  him  as  an  enemy,  I  had  deserved 
the  blow  I  had  given  ;  now  I  lent  him  the  hand  of  a  friend.  Why 
am  I  punished  for  obeying  the  voice  of  a  king  ?  and  for  perfecting 
what  himself  be^un,  and  could  not  finish  ?  And  if  neither  his  own 
wound  nor  mine  had  dispatched  him,  the  Philistines  were  at  his  heels, 
eady  to  do  this  same  act  with  insujtation,  which  I  did  in  favour  ; 


356 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


and  if  my  hand  had  not  prevented  him,  where  had  been  the  crown 
of  Israel,  which  I  now  have  here  presented  to  thee  ?  I  could  have 
delivered  that  to  king  Achish,  and  have  been  rewarded  with  ho- 
nour. Let  me  not  die,  for  an  act  well  meant  to  thee,  howev  er  con- 
strued by  thee." 

But  no  pretence  can  make  his  own  tale  not  deadlv  ;  Thy  blood 
be  upon  thine  own  head ;  for  thine  own  mouth  hath  testified  against 
thee,  saying,  I  have  slain  the  Lord's  anointed.  It  is  a  just  suppo- 
sition, that  every  man  is  so  great  a  favourer  of  himself,  that  he 
will  not  mis-report  his  own  actions,  nor  say  the  worst  of  himself. 
In  matter  of  confession,  men  may  without  injury  be  taken  at  their 
words.  If  he  did  it,  his  fact  was  capital ;  if  he  did  it  not,  his  lie. 
It  is  pity  any  other  recompence  should  befal  those  false  flatterers, 
that  can  be  content  to  father  a  sin  to  get  thanks.  Every  drop  of 
royal  blood  is  sacred :  for  a  man  to  say  that  he  hath  shed  it,  is 
mortal.  Of  how  far  diderent  spirits  from  this  of  David's,  are 
those  men,  which  suborn  the  death  of  princes,  and  celebrate  and 
canonize  the  murderers!  Into  their  secret  let  not  my  soul  come ; 
my  glory,  be  thou  ?wt  joined  to  their  assembly. 

1  Sam.  xxxi.  1  Chron.  x. 


ABNER  AND  JOAB. 

How  merciful  and  seasonable  are  the  provisions  of  God !  Ziklag 
was  now  nothing  but  ruins  and  ashes.  David  might  return  to  the 
soil  where  it  stood  ;  to  the  roofs  and  walls,  he  could  not.  No  sooner 
is  he  disappointed  of  that  harbour,  than  God  provides  him  cities  of 
Hebron.    Saul  shall  die  to  give  him  elbow-room. 

Now  doth  David  find  the  comfort  that  his  extremity  sought,  in 
the  Lord  his  God.  Now  are  his  clouds  for  a  time  passed  over,  and 
the  sun  breaks  gloriously  forth.  David  shall  reign  after  his  suffer- 
ings. So  shall  we,  if  we  endure  to  the  end,  find  A  crown  of  righ- 
teousness, which  the  Lord,  the  righteous  judge,  shall  give  us  at 
that  day. 

But  though  David  well  knew  that  his  head  was  long  before 
anointed,  and  had  heard  Saul  himself  confidently  avouching  his 
succession ;  yet  he  will  not  stir  from  the  heaps  of  Ziklag,  till  he 
have  consulted  with  the  Lord.  It  did  not  content  him,  that  he  had 
God's  warrant  for  the  kingdom  ;  but  he  must  have  his  instructions 
for  the  taking  possession  of  it.  How  safe  and  happy  is  the  man, 
that  is  resolved  to  do  nothing  without  God  !  Neither  will  generali- 
ties of  direction  be  sufficient :  even  particular  circumstances  must 
look  for  a  word.  Still  is  God  a  pillar  of  fire  and  cloud  to  the  eye 
of  every  Israelite  ;  neither  may  there  be  any  motion  or  stay  but 
from  him.  -That  action  cannot  but  succeed,  which  proceeds  upon 
so  sure  a  warrant. 

God  sends  him  to  Hebron,  a  city  of  Judah.  Neither  will  Da- 
vid go  up  thither  alone  ;  but  lie  takes  with  him  all  his  men,  with 
their  whole  house  iolds :  they  shall  take  suck  part  as  himself:  as 


ABNER  AND  JOAB.  357 

they  had  shared  with  him  in  his  misery,  so  they  shall  now  in  his 
prosperity.  Neither  doth  he  take  advantage  of  their  late  mutiny, 
which  was  yet  fresh  and  green,  to  cashier  those  unthankful  and  un- 
gracious followers;  but,  pardoning  their  secret  rebellions,  he  makes 
tliem  partakers  of  his  good  success.  Thus  doth  our  heavenly 
Leader,  whom  David  prefigured,  take  us  to  reign  with  him  who 
have  suffered  with  him  :  passing  by  our  manifold  infirmities,  as  if 
they  had  not  been,  he  removeth  us  from  the  land  of  our  banish- 
ment, and  the  ashes  of  our  forlorn  Ziklag,  to  the  Hebron  of  our 
peace  and  glory.  The  expectation  of  this  day  must,  as  it  did  with 
David's  soldiers,  digest  all  our  sorrows. 

Never  any  calling  of  God  was  so  conspicuous,  as  not  to  find 
some  opposites.  What  Israelite  did  not  know  David  appointed  by 
God  to  the  succession  of  the  kingdom  ?  Even  the  Amalekite  could 
carry  the  crown  to  him,  as  the  true  owner  ;  yet  there  wants  not. 
an  Abner  to  resist  him,  and  the  title  of  an  Ishbosheth  to  colour  his 
resistance. 

If  anv  of  Saul's  house  could  have  made  challenge  to  the  crown, 
it  should  have  been  Mephibosheth,  the  son  of  Jonathan  ;  who,  it 
seems,  had  too  much  of  his  father's  blood,  to  be  a  competitor  with 
David. 

The  question  is  not,  who  may  claim  the  most  right,  but  who 
may  best  serve  the  faction.  Neither  was  Ishbosheth  any  other  than 
Abner's  stale.  Saul  could  not  have  a  fitter  courtier  :  whether  in 
the  imitation  of  his  master's  envy,  or  the  ambition  of  ruling  under 
a  borrowed  name,  he  strongly  opposed  David.  There  are  those, 
who  strive  against  their  own  hearts,  to  make  a  side;  with  whom 
conscience  is  oppressed  by  affection.  An  ill  quarrel,  once  under- 
taken, shall  be  maintained,  although  with  blood.  Now,  not  so 
much  the  blood  of  Saul,  as  the  engagement  of  Abner,  makes  the 
War. 

The  sons  of  Zeruiah  stand  fast  to  David.  It  is  much,  how  a 
man  placeth  his  first  interest.  If  Abner  had  been  in  Joab's  room, 
when  Saul's  displeasure  drove  David  from  the  court,  or  Joab  in  Ab- 
ner's, these  actions,  these  events  had  been  changed  with  the  per- 
sons. It  was  the  only  happiness  of  Joab,  that  he  fell  on  the  bet- 
ter side. 

Both  the  commanders  under  David  and  Ishbosheth  were  equally 
cruel  :  both  are  so  inured  to  blood,  that  tiiey  make  but  a  sport  of 
killing.  Custom  makes  sin  so  familiar,  that  the  horror  of  it  is  to 
some  turned  into  pleasure;  Come,  let  the. young  men  play  before 
vs.  Abner  is  the  challenger,  and  speeds  thereafter  ;  for  though  in 
the  matches  of  duel  both  sides  miscarried,  yet  in  the  following  con- 
flict Abner  and  his  men  are  beaten  :  by  the  success  of  those  single 
combats,  no  man  knows  the  better  of  the  cause  :  both  sides  perish, 
to  show  how  little  God  liked  either  the  ofler,  or  the  acceptation  of 
such  a  trial ;  but  when  both  did  their  best,  God  punisheth  the 
wrong  part  with  discomfiture. 

Oh  the  misery  of  civil  dissension  !  Israel  and  Judah  were  bre- 
thren.   One  carried  the  name  of  the  father,  the  other  of  the  son. 


358  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

Judah  was  but  a  branch  of  Israel ;  Israel  was  the  root  of  Judah  : 
yet  Israel  and  Judah  must  right,  and  kill  each  other  ;  only  upon 
the  quarrel  of  an  ill  leader's  ambition.  • 

The  speed  of  Asahel  was  not  greater  than  his  courage.  It  was 
a  mind  fit  for  one  of  David's  worthies,  to  strike  at  the  head,  to 
match  himself  with  the  best.  He  was  both  swift  and  strong  ;  but 
The  race  is  not  to  the  swift,  nor  the  battle  to  the  strong.  If  he  had 
gone  never  so  slowly,  he  miglit  have  overtaken  death  :  now  he  runs 
to  fetch  it. 

So  little  lust  had  Abner  to  shed  the  blood  of  a  son  of  Zeruiah, 
that  he  twice  advises  him  to  retreat  from  pursuing  his  own  peril. 
Asahel's  cause  was  so  much  hetter  as  Abner's  success.  Many  a  one 
miscarries  in  the  rash  prosecution  of  a  good  quarrel,  when  the 
abettors  of  the  worst  part  go  away  with  victory.  Heat  of  zeal, 
sometimes  in  the  indiscreet  pursuit  of  a  just  adversary,  proves 
mortal  to  the  agent,  prejudicial  to  the  service. 

Abner,  while  he  kills,  yet  he  flies  ;  and  runs  away  from  his  own 
death,  while  he  inflicts  it  upon  another. 

David's  followers  had  the  better  of  the  field  and  day.  The 
sun,  as  unwilling  to  see  any  more  IsraeHtish  blood  shed  by  bre- 
thren, hath  withdrawn  himself :  and  now,  both  parts  having  got 
the  advantage  of  a  hill  under  them,  have  safe  convenience  or  par- 
ley. Abner  begins ;  and  persuades  Joab  to  surcease  the  fight ; 
Shall  the  sword  devour  for  ever  ?  Knottiest  thou  not,  that  it  will  be 
bitterness  in  the  end  ?  How  long  shall  it  be,  ere  thou  bid  the  peo- 
ple return  from  following  their  brethren  ?  It  was  his  fault,  that 
the  sword  devoured  at  all :  and  why  was  not  the  beginning  of  a 
civil  war,  bitterness  ?  Why  did  he  call  forth  the  people  to  skir- 
mish, and  invite  them  to  death  ? 

Had  Abner  been  on  the  winning  hand,  this  motion  had  been 
thankworthy.  It  is  a  noble  disposition  in  a  victor,  to  call  for  a 
cessation  of  arms  ;  whereas,  necessity  wrings  this  suit  from  the 
over-mastered.  There  cannot  be  a  greater  praise,  to  a  valiant  and 
wise  commander,  than  a  propensionto  all  just  terms  of  peace:  for 
war,  as  it  is  sometimes  necessary,  so  it  is  always  evil ;  and  if  fight- 
ing have  any  other  end  proposed  besides  peace,  it  proves  murder. 

Abner  shall  find  himself  no  less  overcome  by  Joab,  in  clemency, 
than  power.  He  says  not,  "  I  will  not  so  easily  leave  the  advan- 
tage of  my  victory  :  since  the  dice  of  war  run  on  my  side,  I  wdl 
follow  the  chance  of  my  good  success  :  thou  shouldest  have  consi- 
dered of  this  before  thy  provocation  :  it  is  now  too  late,  to  move 
unto  forbearance:"  but,  as  a  man  that  meant  to  approve  himself 
equally  free,  from  cowardice  in  the  beginning  of  the  conflict,  and 
from  cruelty  in  the  end,  he  professeth  his  forwardness  to  entertain 
any  pretence  of  sheathing  up  the  swords  of  Israel  ;  and  swears  to 
Abner,  that  if  it  had  not  been  for  his  proud  irritation,  the  people 
had  in  the  morning  before  ceased  from  that  bloody  pursuit  of  their 
brethren.  As  it  becomes  public  persons  to  be  lovers  of  peace,  so 
they  must  shew  it  upon  all  good  occasions  :  letting  pass  no  oppor- 
tunity of  making  spare  of  blood. 


ABNER  AND  .FOAB.  359 

Ishbosheth  was,  it  seems,  a  man  of  no  great  spirits  ;  for,  bcint^ 
no  less  than  forty  years  old,  when  his  father  went  into  his  last  held 
against  the  Philistines,  he  was  content  to  stay  at  home.  Ahner 
hath  put  ambition  into  him  ;  and  hath  easily  raised  him  to  the 
head  of  a  faction,  against  the  anointed  prince  of  God's  people.  If 
this  usurped  crown  of  Saul's  son  had  any  worth  or  glory  in  it,  he 
cannot  but  acknowledge  to  owe  it  all  unto  Abner  ;  yet  how  for- 
ward is  unthankful  Ishbosheth,  to  receive  a  false  suggestion  against 
his  chief  abettor:  Wherefore  hast  thou  gone  into  my  father's  con- 
cubine? He,  that  made  no  conscience  of  an  unjust  claim  to  the 
crown  and  a  maintenance  of  it  with  blood,  yet  seems  scrupulous 
of  a  less  sin,  that  carried  in  it  the  colour  of  a  disgrace.  The  touch 
of  her,  who  had  been  honoured  by  his  father's  bed,  seemed  an  in- 
tolerable presumption,  and  such  as  could  not  be  severed  from  his 
own  dishonour.  Self-love  sometimes  borrows  the  face  of  honest 
zeal.  Th6se,  who  out  of  true  grounds  dislike  sins,  do  hate  them 
all  indifferently,  according  to  their  heinousness :  hypocrites  are 
partial  in  their  detestation  ;  bewraving  ever  most  bitterness  against 
those  offences,  which  may  most  prejudice  their  persons  and  repu- 
tations. 

It  is  as  dangerous  as  unjust,  for  princes  to  give  both  their  ears 
and  their  heart  to  misgrounded  rumours  of  their  innocent  followers. 
This  wrong  hath  stripped  Ishbosheth  of  the  kingdom. 

Abner,  in  the  mean  time,  cannot  be  excused  from  a  treacherous 
inconstancy.  If  Saul's  son  had  no  true  title  to  the  crown,  why  did 
he  maintain  it  ?  If  he  had,  why  did  he  forsake  the  cause  and  per* 
son?  Had  Abner,  out  of  remorse  for  furthering  a  false  claim, 
taken  off  his  hand,  I  know  not  wherein  he  could  be  blamed,  ex- 
cept for  not  doing  it  sooner ;  but  now  to  withdraw  his  professed 
allegiance,  upon  a  private  revenge,  was  to  take  a  lewd  leave  of  an 
ill  action.  If  Ishbosheth  were  his  lawful  prince,  no  injury  could 
warrant  a  revolt.  Even  betwixt  private  persons,  a  return  of  wrongs 
is  both  uncharitable  and  unjust;  however  this  go  current  for  the 
common  justice  of  the  world  :  how  much  more  should  we  learn, 
from  a  supreme  hand,  to  take  hard  measures  with  thanks  !  It  had 
been  Abner's  duty,  to  have  given  his  king  a  peaceable  and  humble 
satisfaction,  and  not  to  fly  out  in  a  snuff.  If  the  spirit  of  the 
ruler  rise  up  against  thee,  leave  not  thy  place ;  for  yielding  pacifieth 
great  offences :  now  his  impatient  falling,  although  to  the  right 
side,  makes  him  no  better  than  traitorously  honest. 

So  soon  as  Abner  had  entertained  a  resolution  of  his  rebellion, 
he  persuades  the  elders  of  Israel  to  accompany  him  in  the  change  : 
and  whence  doth  he  fetch  his  main  motive,  but  from  the  oracle  of 
God  ?  The  Lord  hath  spoken  of  David,  saying,  By  the  hand  of 
my  servant  David,  will  I  save  my  people  Israel,  out  of  the  hand  of 
the  Philistines,  and  out  of  the  hand  of  all  their  enemies.  Abner 
knew  this  full  well  before  ;  yet  then  was  well  content,  to  smother 
a  known  truth  for  his  own  turn  ;  and,  now  the  publication  of  it  mav 
serve  for  his  advantage,  he  wins  the  heart  of  Israel,  by  shewing 
God's  charter  for  him,  whom  he  had  so  long  opposed.  Hypocrite* 


360 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


make  use  of  God  for  their  own  purposes ;  and  care  only,  to  mate 
divine  authority  a  colour  for  their  own  designs.  No  man  ever  heard 
Abner  godly  till  now  ;  neither  had  he  been  so  at  this  time,  if  he 
had  not  intended  a  revengeful  departure  from  Ishbosheth.  Nothing 
is  more  odious,  than  to  make  religion  a  stalking  horse  to  policy. 

Who  can  but  glorify  God  in  his  justice,  when  he  sees  the  bitter 
end  of  this  treacherous  dissimulation  ?  David  may,  upon  conside- 
rations of  state,  entertain  his  new  guest  with  a  feast ;  and  well 
might  he  seem  to  deserve  a  welcome,  that  undertakes  to  bring  all 
Israel  to  the  league  and  homage  of  David  :  but  God  never  meant 
to  use  so  unworthy  means,  for  so  good  a  work.  Joab  returns  from 
pursuing  a  troop  ;  and,  finding  Abner  dismissed  in  peace  and  ex- 
pectation of  beneficial  return,  follows  him;  and,  whether  out  of 
envy  at  a  new  rival  of  honour,  or  out  of  the  revenge  of  Asahel, 
he  repays  him  both  dissimulation  and  death.  God  doth  most  justly 
by  Joab,  that  which  Joab  did  for  himself  most  unjustly . 

I  know  not,  setting  the  quarrel  aside,  whether  we  can  worthily 
blame  Abner  for  the  death  of  Asahel,  who  would  needs,  after  fair 
warnings,  run  himself  upon  Abner' s  spear  ;  yet  this  fact  shall  pro- 
cure his  payment  for  worse.  Now  is  Ishbosheth's  wrong  revenged 
by  an  enemy.  We  may  not  always  measure  the  justice  of  God's 
proceedings,  by  present  occasions.  He  needs  not  make  us  ac- 
quainted, or  ask  us  leave,  'when  he  will  call  for  the  arrearages  of  for- 
gotten sins,  2$am.ii,iii\ 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


BOOK  XV. 


TO  THE  RIGHT  HONOURABLE,  MY  VERY  GOOD  LORD, 

WILLIAM,  LORD  BURLEIGH, 

ALL  GRACE  AND  HAPPINESS, 


RIGHT  HONOURABLE  ! 

There  are  but  two  books  wherein  we  can  read  God ;  the  one  is 
his  Word,  his  Works  the  other :   this  is  the  bigger  volume;  that, 
the  more  exquisite.     The  characters  of  this  are  more  large, 
but  di?n  ;  of  that,  smaller,  but  clearer.    Philosophers  have  turned 
over  this,  and  erred ;  that,  divines  and  studious  Christians,  not  with, 
out  full  and  certain  information.    In  the  works  of  God  we  see  the 
shadow,  or  footsteps  of  the  Creator  ;  in  his  word  we  see  the  face  of 
God  in  a  glass.    Happiness  consists  in  the  vision  of  that  infinite 
Majesty  ;  and  if  we  be  perfectly  happy  above  in  seeing  him  face  to 
face,  our  happiness  is  well  forward  below,  in  seeing  the  lively  re- 
presentation of  his  face  in  the  glass  of  the  Scriptures.    We  cannot 
spend  our  eyes  too  much  upon  this  object :  for  me,  the  more  I  see, 
/he  more  I  am  amazed,  the  more  I  am  ravished,  with  this  glorious' 
beauty.    With  the  honest  lepers,  I  cannot  be  content  to  enjoy  this 
happy  sight  alone  t  there  is  but  one  way  to  every  man's  felicity. 
May  it  please  your  Lordship  to  take  pari  with  many  your  peers,  in 
these  my  weak,  but  not  unprofitable  Contemplations  ;  which  shall 
hold  themselves  not  a  little  graced  with  your  honourable  name; 
whereto,  together  -with  your  right  noble  and  most  -worthy  Lady,  I 
have  gladly  devoted  myself,  to  be 

i  our  Lordship's  in  all  dutiful  observance, 

JOSEPH  HALL. 


UZZAH,  AND  THE  AUK  REMOVED. 

The  house  of  Saul  is  quiet ;  the  Philistines  beaten  i  victory  can- 
not end  better  than  in  devotion  ;  David  is  no  sooner  settled  in  his 
house  at  Jerusalem,  than  he  fetcheth  God  to  be  his  guest  there. 
The  thousands  of  Israel  go  now  in  a  holy  march,  to  bring  up  the 
ark  of  God  to  the  place  of  his  rest.  The  tumults  of  war  afforded 
no  opportunity  of  this  service.  Only  peace  is  a  friend  to  religion  ; 
neither  is  peace  ever  our  friend,  but  when  it  is  a  servant  of  piety. 
The  use  of  war  is  not  more  pernicious  to  the  body,  than  the  abuse 


362 


CONTEMPLATION?. 


of  peace  is  to  the  soul.  Alas !  the  riot  bred  of  our  long  case  ra- 
ther drives  the  ark  of  God  from  us ;  so,  the  still  sedentary  life  is 
subject  to  diseases,  and  standing  waters  putrify.  It  may  be  just 
with  God,  to  take  away  the  blessing  which  we  do  so  much  abuse ; 
and  to  scour  off  our  rust  with  bloody  war. 

The  ark  of  God  had  now  many  years  rested  in  the  obscure 
lodge  of  Abinadab,  without  the  honour  of  a  tabernacle.  David 
will  not  endure  himself  glorious,  and  the  ark  of  God  contemptible. 
His  first  care  is,  to  provide  a  fit  room  for  God,  in  the  head  of  the 
tribes,  in  his  own  city.  The  chief  care  of  good  princes  must  be 
the  advancement  of  religion.  What  should  the  deputies  of  God 
rather  do,  than  honour  him  whom  they  represent  ? 

It  was  no  good,  that  Israel  could  learn  of  Philistines.  Those 
pagans  had  sent  the  ark  back  in  a  new  cart;  the  Israelites  saw  God 
blessed  that  conduct,  and  now  they  practise  it  at  home :  but  that, 
which  God  will  take  from  Philistines,  he  will  not  brook  from  Is- 
rael. Aliens  from  God  are  no  fit  patterns  for  children.  Divine 
institution  had  made  this  a  carriage  for  the  Levites,  not  for  oxen  : 
neither  should  those  sons  of  Abinadab  have  driven  the  cart,  but 
carried  that  sacred  burden.  God's  businesses  must  be  done  after 
his  own  forms,  which  if  we  do  with  the  best  intentions  alter,  we 
presume. 

It  is  long,  since  Israel  saw  so  fair  a  day  as  this ;  wherein  they  went, 
in  this  holy  triumph,  to  fetch  the  ark  of  God.  Now  their  warlike 
trumpets  are  turned  into  harps  and  timbrels  ;  and  their  hands,  in- 
stead of  wielding  the  sword  and  spear,  strike  upon  those  musical 
strings,  whereby  they  might  express  the  joy  of  their  hearts.  Here 
was  no  noise  but  of  mirth  ;  no  motion  but  pleasant.  O  happv  Is- 
rael, that  had  a  God  to  rejoice  in,  that  had  this  occasion  of  rejoic- 
ing in  their  God,  and  a  heart  that  embraced  tliis  occasion  !  There 
is  nothing  but  this,  wherein  we  may  not  joy  immoderately,  unsea- 
sonably: this  spiritual  jov  can  never  be  either  out  of  time,  or  out 
of  measure.    Let him that  rejoice th,  rejoice  in  the  Lord. 

But  now,  when  the  Israelites  were  in  the  midst  of  this  angel-like 
jollity,  their  hearts  lifted  up,  their  hands  playing,  their  feet  moving, 
their  tongues  singing  and  shouting,  God  sees  good  to  strike  them 
into  a  sudden  dump,  by  the  death  of  Uzzah.  They  are  scarce  set 
into  the  tune,  when  God  mars  their  music,  by  a  fearful  judgment ; 
and  changes  their  mirth  into  astonishment  and  confusion.  There 
could  not  be  a  more  excellent  work,  than  this  they  were  about; 
there  could  not  be  more  cheerful  hearts  in  the  performing  of  it ; 
yet  will  the  most  hoi)-  God  rather  das!)  all  this  solemn  service,  than 
endure  an  act  of  presumption  or  infidelity. 

Abinadab  had  been  the  faithful  host  of  God's  ark,  for  the  space 
of  twenty  years :  even  in  the  midst  of  the  terrors  of  Israel,  who 
were  justly  affrighted  with  die  vengeance  inflicted  upon  Bethslie- 
mesh,  did  he  give  harbour  unto  it ;  yet  even  the  son  of  Abinadab 
is  stricken  dead,  in  the  first  departing  of  that  blessed  guest.  The 
sanctity  of  the  parent  cannot  bear  out  the  sin  of  his  son.  The 


UZZAH,  AND  THE  ARK  REMOVED.  363 

Holy  One  of  Israel  will  be  sanctified  in  all  that  come  near  him  :  he 
will  be  served  like  himself. 

Whafttoen  was  the  sin  of  Uzzah?  What  was  the  capital  crime, 
for  which  he  so  fearfully  perished  ?  That  the  ark  of  God  was  com- 
mitted to  the  cart,  it  was  not  his  device  only,  but  the  common  act 
of  many  ;  that  it  was  not  carried  on  the  shoulders  of  Levites,  was 
no  less  the  fault  of  Ahio,  and  the  rest  of  their  brethren  ;  only  Uz- 
zah is  stricken.  The  rest  sinned  in  negligence  ;  he,  in  presumption. 
The  ark  of  God  shakes  with  the  agitation  of  that  carriage  ;  he  puts 
forth  his  hand  to  hold  it  steady.  Human  judgment  would  have 
found  herein  nothing  heinous.  God  sees  not  with  the  eyes  of  men. 
None  but  the  priests  should  have  dared  to  touch  the  ark  ;  it  was 
enough  for  the  Levites,  to  touch  the  bars  that  carried  it.  An  un- 
warranted hand  cannot  so  lightly  touch  the  ark,  but  he  strikes  the 
God  that  dwells  in  it.  No  marvel  if  God  strike  that  man  with 
death,  that  strikes  him  with  presumption.  There  was  well-near 
the  same  quarrel  against  the  thousands  of  Betiishemesh,  and  against 
Uzzah :  they  died  for  looking  into  the  ark  ;  he,  for  touching  it. 
Lest  Israel  should  grow  into  a  contemptuous  familiarity  with  this 
testimony  of  God's  presence,  lie  will  hold  them  in  awe  with  judg- 
ments. 

The  revenging  hand  of  the  Almighty,  that,  upon  the  return  of 
the  ark  stayed  at  the  house  of  Abinadab,  upon  the  remove  of  the 
ark  begins  there  again.  Where  are  those,  that  think  God  will  take 
up  with  a  careless  and  slubbered  service  ?  He,  whose  infinite  mer- 
cy uses  to  pass  by  our  sins  of  infirmity,  punisheth  yet  severely  our 
bold  faults.  If  we  cannot  do  any  thing  in  the  degrees  that  he  re- 
quireth,  yet  we  must  learn  to  do  all  things  in  the  form  that  he  re- 
quireth. 

Doubtless  Uzzah  meant  no  otherwise  than  well,  in  putting  forth 
his  hand  to  stay  the  ark.  He  knew  the  sacred  utensils  that  were  in 
it,  the  pot  of  manna,  the  tables  of  the  law,  the  rod  of  Aaron, 
which  might  be  wronged  by  that,  over-rough  motion  :  to  these  he 
offers  his  aid,  and  is  stricken  dead.  The  best  intention  cannot  ex- 
cuse, much  less  warrant  us,  in  unlawful  actions.  Where  we  do 
aught  in  faith,  it  pleaseth  our  good  God  to  wink  at  and  pity  our 
weaknesses;  but  if  we  dare  to  present  God  with  the  well-meant 
services  of  our  own  making,  we  run  into  the  indignation  of  God. 
There  is  nothing  more  dangerous,  than  to  be  our  own  carvers  in 
matter  of  devotion. 

I  marvel  not  if  the  countenance  of  David  were  suddenly  changed, 
to  sec  the  pale  face  of  death  in  one  of  the  chief  actors  in  this  holy 
procession.  He,  that  had  found  God  so  favourable  to  him  in  ac- 
tions of  less  worth,  is  troubled  to  see  this  success  of  a  business  so 
heartily  directed  unto  his  God  ;  and  now  he  begins  to  look  through 
Uzzah  at  himself,  and  to  say,  JIoio  shall  the  ark  of  the  Lord  conu 
to  vie?  Then  only  shall  we  make  a  right  use  of  the  judgment^ 
of  God  upon  others,  when  we  shall  fear  them  in  ourselves;  and. 
finding  our  sins  at  least  equal,  shall  tremble  at  the  expectation  ot 
the  same  deserved  punishments.   God  intends,  not  only  revenge  in 


36*  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

his  execution,  but  reformation:  as  good  princes  regard,  not  so 
much  the  smart  of  the  evil  past,  as  the  prevention  of  the  future ; 
which  is  never  attained,  but  when  we  make  applications*  of  God's 
hand,  and  draw  common  causes,  out  of  God's  particular  proceed- 
ings. 

I  do  not  hear  David  say,  "  Surely,  this  man  is  guilty  of  some 
secret  sin,  that  the  world  knows  not.  God  hath  met  with  him. 
There  is  no  danger  to  us.  Why  should  I  be  discouraged  to  see 
God  just  t  We  may  go  on  safely  and  prosper."  But  here  his  foot 
stays,  and  his  hand  falls  from  his  instrument,  and  his  tongue  is 
ready  to  tax  his  own  unworthiness  ;  How  shall  the  ark  of  the  Lord 
come  unto  vie  ?  That  heart  is  carnal  and  proud,  that  thinks  any 
man  worse  than  himself. 

David's  fear  stays  his  progress.  Perhaps  he  might  have  pro- 
ceeded with  good  success,  but  he  dares  not  venture  where  he  sees 
such  a  deadly  check.  It  is  better  to  be  too  fearful  than  too  for- 
ward, in  those  affairs  which  do  immediately  concern  God-.  As  it 
is  not  good,  to  refrain  from  holy  businesses,  so  it  is  worse  to  do  them 
ill.  Awfulness  is  a  safe  interpreter  of  God's  secret  actions,  and  a 
wise  guide  of  ours. 

This  event  hath  helped  Ohed-Edom  to  a  guest  he  looked  not  for. 
God  shall  now  sojourn  in  the  house  of  him,  in  whose  heart  he  dwelt 
before  by  a  strong  faith  :  else  the  man  durst  not  have  undertaken 
to  receive  that  dreadful  ark,  which  David  himself  feared  to  har- 
bour. Oh  the  courage  of  an  honest  and  faithful  heart !  Obed- 
Edom  knew  well  enough  what  slaughter  the  ark  had  made  amongst 
the  Philistines,  and  after  that  amongst  the  Bethshemites,  and  now 
he  saw  Uzzah  lie  dead  before  him  ;  yet  doth  he  not  make  any  scru- 
ple of  entertaining  it;  neither  doth  he  sav,  "  My  neighbour  Abin- 
adab  was  a  careful  and  religious  host  to  the  ark,  and  is  now  payed 
with  the  blood  of  his  son  ;  how  shall  I  hope  to  speed  better  r"  But 
he  opens  his  doors  with  a  bold  cheerfulness,  and  notwithstanding  all 
those  terrors,  bids  God  welcome.  Nothing  can  make  God  not 
amiable  to  his  own.  Even  his  very  justice  is  lovely.  Holy  men 
know  how  to  rejoice  in  the  Lord  with  trembling ;  and  can  fear 
without  discouragement. 

The  God  of  heaven  will  not  receive  anything  from  men,  on  free 
cost.  He  will  pay  liberally  for  his  lodging ;  a  plentiful  blessing 
upon  Obed-Edom  and  all  his  household.  It  was  an  honour  to  that 
zealous  Gittite,  that  the  ark  should  come  under  his  roof ;  yet  God 
rewards  that  honour  with  benediction  :  never  man  was  loser  by  true 
godliness. 

The  bouse  of  Obed-Edom  cannot  this  while  want  observation.  The 
eyes  of  David  and  all  Israel  were  never  off  from  it,  to  see  how  it  fared 
with  this  entertainment ;  and  now,  when  they  find  nothing  but  a  gra- 
cious acceptation  and  sensible  blessing,  the  good  king  of  Israel 
takes  new  heart,  and  hastens  to  fetch  the  ark  into  his  royal  city. 
The  view  of  God's  favours  upon  the  godly,  is  no  small  encourage- 
ment to  confidence  and  obedience.  Doubtless,  Obed-Edom  was 
not  free  from  some  weaknesses.    If  the  Lord  should  have  taken  the 


UZZAH,  AND  THE  ARK  REMOVED.  36S 

advantage  of  judgment  against  him,  what  Israelites  had  not  been 
disheartened  from  attending  the  ark  ?  Now,  David  and  Israel  were 
not  more  affrighted  with  the  vengeance  upon  Uzzah,  than  encou- 
raged by  the  blessing  of  Obed-Edoin.  The  wise  God  doth  so 
order  his  just  and  merciful  proceedings,  that  the  awfulness  of  meij 
may  be  tempered  by  love. 

Now  the  sweet  singer  of  Israel  revives  his  holy  music  ;  and  adds 
both  more  spirit  and  more  pomp  to  so  devout  a  business.  I  did  not 
before  hear  of  trumpets,  nor  dancing,  nor  shouting,  nor  sacrifice, 
nor  the  linen  ephod.  The  sense  of  God's  past  displeasure  doubles 
our  care  to' please  him,  and  our  joy  in  his  recovered  approbation. 
We  never  make  so  much  of  our  health,  as  after  sickness;  nor  never 
are  so  officious  to  our  friend,  as  after  an  unkindness. 

In  the  first  setting  out  of  the  ark,  David's  fear  was  at  least  an. 
equal  match  to  his  joy  ;  therefore,  after  the  first  six  paces,  he 
effered  a  sacrifice,  both  to  pacify  God  and  thank  him  :  but  now, 
when  they  saw  no  sign  of  dislike,  they  did  more  freely  let  them- 
selves loose  to  a  fearless  joy  ;  and  the  body  strove  to  express  the 
holy  affection  of  the  soul.  There  was  no  limb,  no  part,  that  did 
not  profess  their  mirth  by  motion  ;  no  noise  of  voice  or  instrument 
wanted  to  assist  their  spiritual  jollity.  David  led  the  way,  dancing 
with  all  his  might  in  ins  linen  ephod.  Uzzah  was  still  in  his  eye: 
he  durst  not  usurp  upon  a  garment  of  priests  ;  but  will  borrow 
their  colour  to  grace  the  solemnity,  though  he  dare  not  the  fashion. 
White  was  ever  the  colour  of  joy,  and  linen  was  light  for  use ; 
therefore  he  covers  his  princely  robes  with  white  linen,  .and  means 
to  honour  himself  by  his  conformity  to  God's  ministers. 

Those,  that  think  there  is  disgrace,  in  the  ephod,  are  far  from 
the  spirit  of  the  man  after  God's  own  heart  :  neither  can  there  be 
a  greater  argument  of  a  foul  soul,  than  a  dislike  of  the  glorious 
calling  of  God.  Barren  Michal  hath  too  many  sons,  that  scorn 
the  holy  habit  and  exercises  :  she  looks  through  her  window,  and 
seeing  the  attire  and  gestures  of  her  devout  husband,  despiseth  him 
in  her  heart;  neither  can  she  conceal  her  contempt,  but,  like  Saul's1 
daughter,  casts  it  proudly  in  his  face;  Oh,  how  glorious  was  the 
king  of  Israel  this  day ;  which  was  uncovered  this  day  in  the  eyes 
of  the  maidens  of  his  servants,  as  a  fool  uncovereth  himself!  World- 
ly hearts  can  see  nothing  in  actions  of  zeal,  but  folly  and  madness, 
Piety  hath  no  relisfi  to  their  palate,  but  distasteful. 

David's  heart  did  never  swell  so  much  at  any  reproach,  as  this 
of  his  wife:  his  love  was  for  the  time  lost  in' his  anger;  and,  as  a 
man  impatient  of  no  affront  so  much  as  in  the  way  of  his  devo- 
tion, he  returns  a  bitter  check  to  his  Michal  ;  It  was  before  the 
Lord,  which  chose  mc  rather  than  thy  father,  and  all  his  house, 
iSfo  Had  not  Michal  twitted  her  husband  with  the  shame  of  his 
zeal,  she  had  not  heard  of  the  shameful  rejection  of  her  father ; 
now,  since  she  will  be  forgetting  whose  wife  she  was,  she  shall  be 
put  in  mind  whose  daughter  she  was.  Contumelies,  that  are  cast 
upon  us  in  the  causes  of  God,  may  safely  be  repaid.    If  ue  be 


366  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

meal-mouthed  in  the  scorns  of  religion,  we  are  not  patient,  but 
2ealless :  here,  we  may  not  forbear  her,  that  lies  in  our  bosom. 

If  David  had  not  loved  Michal  dearly,  he  had  never  stood  upon 
those  points  with  Abner.  He  knew,  that  if  Abner  came  to  him, 
the  kingdom  of  Israel  would  accompaay  him ;  and  yet  he  sends 
him  the  charge  of  not  seeing  his  face,  except  he  brought  Michal, 
Saul's  daughter,  with  him  ;  as  if  he  would  not  regard  the  crown  of 
Israel,  while  he  wanted  that  wife  of  his  !  yet  here  he  takes  her  up 
roundly,  as  if  she  had  been  an  euemv,  not  a  partner  of  his  bed. 
All  relations  are  aloof  off,  in  comparison  of  that  betwixt  God  and 
the  soul.  He,  that  loves  father,  or  mother,  or  wife,  or  child,  belter 
than  me,  saith  our  Saviour,  is  not  worthy  of  me.  Even  the  highest 
delights  of  our  hearts  must  be  trampled  upon,  when  they  will  stand 
out  in  rivality  with  God. 

O  happy  resolution  of  the  royal  prophet,  and  prophetical  king 
of  Israel  !  /  will  be  yet  more  vile  than  thus,  and  will  be  low  in 
mine  own  sight.  He  knew  this  very  abasement  heroical ;  and  that 
the  only  way  to  true  glory,  is,  not  to  be  ashamed  of  our  lowest  hu- 
miliation unto  God.  Well  might  he  promise  himself  honour  from 
those,  whose  contempt  she  had  tlueatened.  The  hearts  of  men 
are  not  their  own  :  he,  that  made  them  overrules  them,  and  inclines 
them  to  an  honourable  conceit  of  those  that  honour  their  Maker  ; 
so  as  holy  men  have  oft-times  inward  reverence,  even  where  they 
have  outward  indignities. 

David  came  to  bless  his  house  ;  Michal  brings  a  curse  upon  her- 
self. Her  scorns  shall  make  her  childless  to  the  day  of  her  death. 
Barrenness  was  held  in  those  times  none  of  the  least  judgments. 
God  doth  so  revenge  David's  quarrel  upon  Michal,  that  her  sudden 
disgrace  shall  be  recompensed  with  perpetual.  She  shall  not  be 
held  worthy  to  bear  a  son,  to  him  whom  she  unjustly  contemned. 
How  just  is  it  with  God,  to  provide  whips  for  the  backs  of  scorners ! 
It  is  no  marvel,  if  those  that  mock  at  goodness  be  plagued  with 
continual  fruklessness.  2  Sam.  vi.  1  Chron.  xiii. 


MEPHIBOSHETH  AND  ZIBA. 

So  soon  as  ever  David  can  but  breathe  himself  from  the  public 
cares,  he  casts  back  his  thoughts  to  the  dear  remembrance  of  hU 
Jonathan. 

Saul's  servant  is  likely  to  give  him  the  best  intelligence  of  Saul's 
sons.  The  question  is  therefore  moved  to  Ziba  ;  Remaineth  there 
none  of  the  house  of  Saul  t  And,  lest  suspicion  might  conceal  the 
remainders  of  an  emulous  line,  in  fear  of  revenge  intended,  he. 
adds,  On  whom  I  may  shew  the  mercy  of  God  for  Jonathan's  sake. 
O  friendship  worthy  of  the  monuments  of  eternity  !  Fit  only  to 
requite  him,  whose  love  was  more  than  the  love  of  women! 

He  doth  not  say,  "  Is  there  any  of  the  house  of  Jonathan  \ 
but,  "  of  Saul  ?"  that,  for  his  friend's  sake,  be^uay  shejv  favour 


MEPHIBOSHETH  AND  ZIBA.  36*7 

to  the  posterity  of"  His  persecutor.  Jonathan's  love  could  not  be 
greater  than  Saul's  in.ilice,  which  also  survived  long  in  his  issue  ; 
from  whom  David  found  a  busy  and  stubborn  rivahy  for  the  crown 
of  Israel:  yet,  as  one  that  gladly  buried  all  the  hostility  of  Saul's 
house  in  Jonathan's  grave,  he  asks,  Is  there  any  man  left  (if  Saul's 
house,  that  I  may  shew  him  mercy  for  Jonathan's  sake  S  It  is  true 
love,  that,  overliving  the  person  of  a  friend,  will  be  inherited  of 
his  seed  ;  but  to  love  the  posterity  of  an  enemy  in  a  friend,  it  is 
the  miracle  of  friendship.  The  formal  amity  of  the  world  is  con- 
fined to  a  face  ;  or  to  the  possibility  of  recompence  ;  languishing 
in  the  disability,  and  dying  in  the  decease  of  the  party  affected. 
That  love  was  ever  false,  that  is  not  ever  constant,  and  the  most 
operative,  when  it  cannot  be  either  known  or  requited. 

To  cut  off  all  unquiet  competition  for  the  kingdom  of  Israel, 
the  providence  of  God  had  so  ordered,  that  there  is  none  left  of 
the  house  of  Saul,  besides  the  sons  of  his  concubines,  save  only 
young  and  lame  Mephibosheth  :  so  young,  that  he  was  but  five 
years  of  age,  when  David  entered  upon  the  government  of  Israel ; 
so  lame,  that,  if  his  age  had  fitted,  his  impotence  had  made  him 
imHt  for  the  throne. 

Mephibosheth  was  not  born  a  cripple  :  it  was  a  heedless  nurse, 
that  made  him  so :  she,  hearing  of  the  death  of  Saul  and  Jona- 
than, made  such  haste  to  flee,  that  her  young  master  was  lamed 
with  the  fall.  I  wis,  there  needed  no  such  speed  to  run  away 
from  David  ;  whose  love  pursues  the  hidden  son  of  his  brother 
Jonathan.  How  often  doth  our  ignorant  mistaking  cause  us  to 
run  from  our  best  friends  ;  and  to  catch  knocks  and  maims,  of  them 
that  profess  our  protection  ! 

Mephibosheth  could  not  come  otherwise  than  fearfully  into  the 
presence  of  David,  whom  he  knew  so  long,  so  spitefully,  opposed 
by  the  house  of  Saul.  He  could  not  be  ignorant,  that  the  fashion 
of  the  world  is,  to  build  their  own  security  upon  the  blood  of  the 
opposite  faction  ;  neither  to  think  themselves  safe,  while  any  branch 
remains  springing  out  of  that  root  of  their  emulation  :  seasonably 
doth  David  therefore,  first,  expel  all  those  unjust  doubts,  ere  he 
administer  his  further  cordials;  Fear  not,  for  I  will  surely  shew 
thee  kindness,  for  Jonathan  thy  father'' s  sake ;  and  will  restore  thee 
all  the  fields  of  Saul  thy  father ;  and  thou  shalt  eat  bread  at  my  ta- 
ble continually. 

David  can  see  neither  Saul's  blood,  nor  lame  legs,  in  Mephibo- 
sheth, while  he  sees  in  him  the  features  of  his  friend  Jonathan  :  how 
much  less  shall  the  God  of  mercies  regard  our  infirmities,  or  the 
corrupt  blood  of  our  sinful  progenitors,  while  he  beholds  us  in  the 
face  of  his  Son,  in  whom  he  is  well  pleased  ! 

Favours  are  wont  so  much  more  to  affect  us,  as  they  are  less  ex- 
pected by  us.  Mephibosheth,  as  overjoyed  with  so  comfortable  a 
word,  and  confounded  in  himself  at  the  remembrance  of  the  con- 
trary deservings  of  his  family,  bows  himself  to  the  earth,  and  says, 
What  is  thy  servant,  that  thou  shouldest  look  upon  such  a  dead  dog 
as  I  am  f 


363  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

I  find  no  defect  of  wit,  though  of  limbs,  in  Mephibosheth  :  he 
knew  himself  the  grand-child  of  the  king  of  Israel,  the  son  of  Jo- 
nathan, the  lawful  heir  of  both  ;  yet,  in  regard  of  his  own  impo- 
tency,  and  the  trespass  and  rejection  of  his  house,  he  thus  abaseth 
himself  unto  David.  Humiliation  is  a  right  use  of  God's  afflic- 
tion. What  if  he  were  born  great  ?  If  the  sin  of  his  grand-father 
hath  lost  his  estate,  and  the  hand  of  his  nurse  hath  deformed  and 
disabled  his  person,  he  now  forgets  what  he  was,  and  calls  himself 
worse  than  he  is,  A  di)g  :  yet,  A  Iking  dog  is  better  than  a  dead 
lion  ;  there  is  dignity  and  comfort  in  life  ;  Mephibosheth  is  there- 
fore a  dead  dog  unto  David.  It  is  not  for  us  to  nourish  the  same 
spirits  in  our  adverse  estate,  that  we  found  in  our  highest  prospe- 
rity. What  use  have  we  made  of  God's  hand,  if  we  be  not  the 
lower  with  our  fall  r  God  intends  we  should  carry  our  cross,  not 
make  a  fire  of  it  to  warm  us.  It  is  no  bearing  up  our  sails  in  a 
tempest. 

Good  David  cannot  disesteem  Mephibosheth  ever  the  more  for 
disparaging  himself :  he  loves  and  honours  this  humility  in  the  son 
of  Jonathan.  There  is  no  more  certain  way  to  glory  and  advance- 
ment, than  a  lowly  dejection  of  ourselves.  He,  that  made  himself 
a  dog,  and  therefore  fit  only  to  lie  under  the  table,  yea  a  dead  dog, 
and  therefore  fit  only  for  the  ditch,  is  raised  up  to  the  table  of  a 
king;  his  seat  shall  be  honourable,  yea,  royal;  his  fare  delicious, 
his  attendance  noble.  How  much  more  will  our  gracious  God  lift 
up  our  heads,  unto  true  honour  before  men  and  angels,  if  we  can 
be  sincerely  humbled  in  his  sight !  If  we  miscal  ourselves,  in  the 
meanness  of  our  conceits,  to  him,  he  gives  us  a  new  name,  and 
sets  us  at  the  table  of  his  glory.  It  is  contrary  with  God  and  men: 
if  they  reckon  of  us  as  we  set  ourselves,  he  values  us  according  to 
our  abasements. 

Like  a  prince  truly  munificent  and  faithful,  David  promises  and 
performs  at  once.  Ziba,  Saul's  servant,  hath  the  charge  given 
him,  of  the  execution  of  that  royal  word  ;  He  shall  be  the  bailiff 
of  this  great  husbandry  of  his  master  Mephibosheth.  The  land  of 
Saul,  however  forfeited,  shall  know  no  other  master  than  Saul's 
grand-child. 

As  yet,  Saul's  servant  had  sped  better  than  his  son.  I  read  of 
twenty  servants  of  Ziba,  none  of  Mephibosheth.  Earthly  pos- 
sessions do  not  always  admit  of  equal  divisions.  The  wheel  is  now 
turned  up  ;  Mepliibosheth  is  a  prince,  Ziba  is  his  officer. 

I  cannot  but  pity  the  condition  of  this  good  son  of  Jonathan. 
Into  ill  hands  did  honest  Mephibosheth  fall;  first,  of  a  careless 
nurse;  then,  of  a  treacherous  servant :  she  maimed  his  body  ;  he 
would  have  overthrown  his  estate.  After  some  years  of  eye-ser- 
vice to  Mephibosheth,  wicked  Ziba  intends  to  give  him  a  worse 
fall  than  his  nurse.  Never  any  court  was  free  from  detractors, 
from'delators  ;  who,  if  they  see  a  man  to  be  a  cripple,  that  he  can- 
not go  to  speak  for  himself,  will  be  telling  tales  of  him  in  the  ears 
of  the  great :  such  an  one  was  this  perfidious  Ziba ;  who,  taking 
the  opportunity  of  David's  flight  from  his  son  Absalom,  follows 


MEPHIBOSHETH  AND  ZIBA. 


3C9 


liim  with  a  fair  present  and  a  false  tale,  accusing  his  impotent  mas- 
ter of  a  foul  and  traitorous  ingratitude  ;  labouring  to  tread  upon 
his  lame  lord,  to  raise  himself  to  honour. 

True-hearted  Mephibosheth  had  as  good  a  will  as  the  best.  If 
he  could  have  commanded  legs,  he  had  not  been  left  behind  David; 
now,  that  he  cannot  go  with  him,  he  will  not  be  well  without  him, 
and  therefore  puts  himself  to  a  wilful  and  sullen  penance,  for  the 
absence  and  danger  of  his  king :  he  will  not  so  much  as  put  on 
clean  clothes  for  the  time,  as  he  that  could  not  have  any  joy  in 
himself,  for  the  want  of  his  lord  David. 

Unconscionable  miscreants  care  not  how  they  collogue,  whom 
they  slander,  for  a  private  advantage.  Lewd  Ziba  comes  with  a 
gift  in  his  hand,  and  a  smooth  tale  in  his  mouth;  "  O  sir,  you 
thought  you  had  a  Jonathan  at  home,  but  you  will  find  a  Saul.  It 
were  pity,  but  he  should  be  set  at  your  table,  that  would  sit  in  your 
throne.  You  thought  Saul's  land  would  have  contented  Mephi- 
bosheth, but  he  would  have  all  yours.  Though  he  be  lame,  yet 
he  would  be  climbing.  Would  you  have  thought  that  this  cripple 
could  be  plotting  for  your  kingdom,  now  that  you  are  gone  aside? 
Ishbosheth  will  never  die,  while  Mephibosheth  lives.  How  did  he 
now  forget  his  impotence,  and  raised  up  his  spirits  in  hope  of  a  day ; 
and  durst  say,  that  now  the  time  was  come,  wherein  the  crown 
should  revert  to  Saul's  tme  heir."  O  viper  !  if  a  serpent  bite  in 
secret  when  he  is  not  charmed,  no  better  is  a  slanderer.  Honest 
Mephibosheth  in  good  manners  made  a  dead  dog  of  himself,  when 
David  offered  him  the  favour  of  his  board  ;  but  Ziba  would  make 
him  a  very  dog  indeed,  an  illnatured  cur,  that,  when  David  did 
thus  kind!}-  feed  him  at  his  own  table,  would  uot  only  bite  his  fin- 
gers, butfiy  at  his  throat. 

But  what  shall  we  say  to  this  ?  Neither  earthly  sovereignty,  nor 
holiness,  can  exempt  men  from  human  infirmity.  Wise  and  good 
David  hath  now  but  one  ear  ;  and  that  misled  with  credulity.  His 
charity  in  believing  Ziba  makes  him  uncharitable  in  distrusting,  in 
censuring  Mephibosheth.  The  detractor  hath  not  only  sudden 
credit  given  him,  but  Saul's  land.  Jonathan's  son  hath  lost,  un- 
heard, that  inheritance  which  was  given  him,  unsought.  Hearsay 
is  no  safe  ground  of  any  judgment.  Ziba  slanders ;  David  be- 
lieves ;  Mephibosheth  surfers. 

Lies  shall  not  always  prosper.  God  will  not  abide  the  truth  to 
be  ever  oppressed.  At  last,  Jonathan's  lame  son  shall  be  found, 
as  sound  in  heart  as  lame  in  his  body.  He,  whose  soul  was  like 
his  father  Jonathan's  soul,  whose  body  was  like  to  his  grandfather 
Saul's  soul,  meets  David,  as  it  is  high  time,  upon  his  return  ;  be- 
stirs his  tongue  to  discharge  himself  of  so  foul  a  slander.  The 
more  horrible  the  crime  had  been,  the  more  villainous  was  the  un- 
just suggestion  of  it,  and  the  more  necessary  was  a  just  apology; 
sweetly  therefore,  and  yet  passionately,  doth  he  labour  to  greaten 
David's  favours  to  him  ;  his  own  obligations  and  vileness  ;  shewing 
himself  more  affected  with  his  wrong,  than  with  liisloss  ;  w«lcom- 
vol.  i.  s  s 


310  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

ing  David  home  with  a  thankful  neglect  of  himself,  as  not  caring 
that  Ziba  liad  his  substance,  now  tbat  he  bad  his  king.  David  i» 
satisfied,  Mephibosheth  restored  to  favour  and  lands  :  here  are  two 
kind  hearts  well  met.  David  is  full  of  satisfaction  from  Mephi- 
bosheth;  Mephibosheth  runs  over,  with  joy  in  David:  David,  like 
a  gracious  king,  gives  Mephibosheth,  as  before,  Saul's  lands  to 
halves  with  Ziba  ;  Mephibosheth,  like  a  king,  gives  all  to  Ziba  for 
joy  that  God  had  given  him  David. 

All  had  been  well,  if  Ziba  had  fared  worse.  Pardon  me,  O  holy 
and  glorious  soul  of  a  prophet,  of  a  king,  after  God's  own  heart ; 
I  must  needs  blame  thee  for  mercy  :  a  fault  that  the  best  and  mo>t 
generous  natures  are  most  subject  to.  It  is  pity  that  so  good  a 
thing  should  do  hurt ;  vet  we  find  that  the  best,  misused,  is  most 
dangerous.  Who  should  be  the  pattern  of  kings,  but  the  king  of 
God  r  Mercy  is  the  goodliest  flower  in  his  crown,  much  more  in 
theirs,  but  With  a  difference  :  God's  mercy  is  infinite,  theirs  li- 
mited :  he  says,  I  will  have  mercy  on  -whvUi  I  mill;  they  must 
say,  "  I  wiil  have  mercy  on  whom  I  should."  And  yet  he,  forall 
his  infinite  mercy,  hath  vessels  of  wrath ;  so  must  they  :  of  whom 
his  justice  hath  said,  Thine  eye  shall  not  spare  them.  A  good 
man  is  pitiful  to  his  beast,  shall  he  therefore  make  much  of  toads 
and  snakes  ?  Oh  that  Ziba  should  go  away  with  any  possession, 
save  of  shame  and  sorrow  ;  that  he  should  be  coupled  with  a  Me- 
phibosheth in  a  partnership  of  estates  !  Oh  that  David  had  chang- 
ed the  word  a  little  ! 

A  division  was  due  here,  indeed  ;  but  of  Ziba's  ears  from  his 
head,  or  his  head  from  his  shoulders,  for  going  about  so  malicious- 
ly to  divide  David  from  the  son  of  Jonathan.  An  eye  for  an  eye, 
was  God's  rule.  If  that  had  been  true,  which  Ziba  suggested 
against  Mephibosheth,  he  had  been  worthy  to  lose  his  head  with 
his  lands  :  being  false,  it  had  been  but  reason,  Ziba  should  have 
changed  heads  with  Mephibosheth.  Had  not  holy  David  himself 
been  so  stung  with  the  venomous  tongues,  that  he  cries  out  in  the 
bitterness  of  his  soul,  What  regard  shall  be  given  thee,  O  thou 
false  tongue  t  Even  sharp  arrows,  with  hot  burning  coals  ?  He 
that  was  so  sensible  of  himself  in  Doeg's  wrong,  doth  he  feel  so 
little  of  Mephibosheth  in  Ziba's  ?  Are  these  the  arrows  of  David's 
cjuiver  ?  Are  these  his  hot  burning  coals,  Thou  and  Ziba  divide  t 
He  that  had  said,  Their  tongue  is  a  shai  p  sword,  now,  that  the 
sword  of  just  revenge  is  in  his  hand,  is  this  the  blow  he  gives,  Di- 
,vidc  the  possession?  I  know  npt  whether  excess  or  want  of  mercy 
may  prove  most  dangerous  in  the  great ;  the  one  discourages  good 
intentions  with  fear  ;  the  other  mav  encourage  wicked  practices 
through  presumption  :  those  that  are  in  eminent  place  must  learn 
the  mid-way  betwixt  both  ;  so  pardoning  faults,  that  they  may  not 
provoke  them;  so  punishing  them,  that  they  mav  not  dishearten 
virtuous  and  well-meant  actions  :  thev  must  learn  to  sing  that  ab- 
s*>lut.:  ditty,  whereof  David  had  here  forgotten  one  part,  of  Mercy 
.    i  (Judgment.  2  Samuel  is. 


371 


HANUN,  AND  DAVID'S  AMBASSADORS. 

It  is  not  the  meaning  of  religion,  to  make  men  uncivil.  If  the 
king  of  Amnion  were  heathenish,  yet  his  kindness  may  be  acknow- 
ledged, may  be  returned,  by  the  king  of  Israel.  I  say  not,  but 
that  perhaps  David  might  maintain  too  strait  a  league  witli  that 
forbidden  nation;  a  little  friendship  is  enough  to  an  idolater;  but 
even  the  savage  cannibals  may  receive  an  answer  of  outward  cour- 
tesy. If  a  very  dog  fawn  upon  us,  we  stroke  him  on  the  head,  and 
clap  him  on  the  side  ;  much  less  is  the  common  band  of  humanity 
untied  by  grace.  Disparity  in  spiritual  professions  is  no  warrant 
for  ingratitude.  He,  therefore,  whose  goodnature  proclaimed,  to 
shew  mercy  to  any  branch  of  Saul's  house,  for  Jonathan's  sake, 
will  now  also  shew  kindness  to  Hanun,  for  the  sake  of  Nahash  his 
father. 

It  was  the  same  Nahash,  that  offered  the  cruel  condition  to  the 
men  of  Jabesh  Gilead,  of  thrusting  out  their  right  eyes  for  the 
admission  into  his  covenant.  He,  that  was  thus  bloody  in  his  design 
against  Israel,  yet  was  kind  to  David  ;  perhaps  for  no  cause,  so 
much  as  Saul's  opposition  :  and  yet  even  this  favour  is  held  worthy 
both  of  memory  and  retribution.  Where  we  have  the  acts  of 
courtesy,  it  is  not  necessary  we  should  enter  into  a  strict  exami- 
nation of  the  grounds  of  it :  while  the  benefit  is  ours,  let  the  in- 
tention be  their  own.  Whatever  the  hearts  of  men  are,  we  must 
look  at  their  hands;  and  repay,  not  what  tiiey  meant,  but  what 
they  did. 

Nahash  is  dead.  David  sends  ambassadors  to  condole  his  loss, 
and  to  comfort  his  son  Hanun.  No  Ammonite  but  is  sadly  affect- 
ed with  the  death  of  a  father,  though  it  gain  him  a  kingdom.  Even 
Esau  could  say,  The  days  of  mourning  for  my  father  will  come. 
No  earthly  advantage  can  fill  up  the  gap  of  nature.  Those  chil- 
dren are  worse  than  Ammonites,  that  can  think  either  gain,  or  li- 
berty, worthy  to  countervail  a  parent's  loss. 

Carnal  men  are  wont  to  measure  another's  foot  by  their  own  last : 
their  own  falsehood  makes  them  unjustly  suspicious  of  others.  The 
princes  of  Amnion,  because  they  are  guilty  to  their  own  hollow- 
ness  and  doubleness  of  heart,  are  ready  so  to  judge  of  David  and 
his  messengers  ;  Thinkest  thou,  that  David  doth  honour  thy  father, 
that  he  hath  sent  comforters  unto  thee  ?  Hath  not  David  rather 
sent  his  own  servants  to  thee,  to  search  the  city,  and  to  spy  it  out,  to 
overthrow  it  t  It  is  hard  for  a  wicked  heart  to  think  well  of  any 
other  ;  because  it  can  think  none  better  than  itself,  and  knows  it- 
sell  evil.  The  freer  a  man  is  from  vice  himself,  the  more  chari- 
table he  uses  to  be  unto  others. 

Whatsoever  David  was  particularly  in  his  own  person,  it  was. 
ground  enough  of  prejudice,  that  he  was  an  Israelite.  It  was  an 
hereditary  and  deep  settled  hatred,  that  the  Ammonites  had  con- 
ceived against  their  brethren  of  Israel :  neither  can  they  forget 
that  shameful  and  fearful  foil,  which  they  received  from  the  res. 


372 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


cuers  of  Jabesh  Gilead ;  and  now  still  do  they  stomach  at  the 
name  of  Israel.  Malice,  once  conceived  in  worldly  hearts,  is  not 
easily  extinguished ;  but,  upon  all  occasions,  is  ready  to  break 
forth  into  a  fiame  of  revengeful  actions. 

Nothing  can  be  more  dangerous,  than  for  young  princes  to  meet 
with  ill  counsel,  in  the  entrance  of  their  government ;  for  both 
then  are  they  most  prone  to  take  it,  and  most  difficultly  recovered 
from  it.  If  we  be  set  out  of  our  way  in  the  beginning  of  our 
journey,  we  wander  all  the  day.  How  happy  is  that  state,  where, 
both  the  counsellors  are  faithful  to  give  only  good  advice,  and  the 
king  wise  to  discern  good  advice  from  evil. 

The  young  king  of  Amnion  is  easily  drawn,  to  believe  his  peers, 
and  to  mistrust  the  messengers;  and,  having  now  in  his  conceit 
turned  them  into  spies,  entertains  them  with  a  scornful  disgrace : 
he  shaves  oft'  one  half  of  their  beards,  and  cuts  off  one  half  of 
their  garments;  exposing  them  to  the  derision  of  all  the  beholders. 
The  Israelites  were  forbidden  either  a  shaven  beard,  or  a  short 
garment :  in  despite,  perhaps,  of  their  law,  these  ambassadors  are 
sent  away  with  both ;  certainly  in  a  despite  of  their  master,  and  a 
scorn  of  their  persons. 

King  David  is  not  a  little  sensible  of  the  abuse  of  his  messen- 
gers, and  of  himself  in  them  ;  first,  therefore  he  desires  to  hide 
their  shame  ;  then,  to  revenge  it. 

Man  hath  but  a  double  ornament  of  body,  the  one  of  nature, 
the  other  of  art :  the  natural  ornament  is  the  hair,  the  artificial  is 
apparel ;  David's  messengers  are  deformed  in  both ;  the  one  is 
easily  supplied  by  a  new  suit,  the  other  can  only  be  supplied  out 
of  the  wardrobe  of  time,  Tarry  at  Jericho,  till  your  beards  be 
groua.  Dow  easily  had  this  deformity  been  removed,  if,  as  Hanun 
iiad  shaven  one  side  of  their  faces,  so  they  had  shaven  the  other. 
What  bad  this  been,  but  to  resemble  their  younger  age,  or  that 
other  sex,,  in  neither  of  which  do  we  use  to  place  any  imagination 
of  unbeseeming  ?  Neither  did  there  want  some  of  their  neighbour 
nations,  whose  faces  age  itself  had  not  wont  to  cover  with  this 
shade  of  hair.  But  so  respective  is  good  David  and  his  wise  se- 
nators of  their  country-forms,  that  they  shall  by  appointment 
rather  tarry  abroad,  till  time  have  wrought  their  conformity,  than 
vary  from  the  received  fashions  of  their  own 'people.  Alas,  into 
what  a  licentious  variety  of  strange  disguises  are  we  fallen  1  The 
glory  of  attire  is  sought  in  novelty,  in  mis-shapenness,  in  mon- 
strousness.  There  is  much  latitude,  much  liberty,  in  the  use  of 
these  indifferent  things  ;  but  because  we  are  free,  we  may  not  run 
wild  :  and  never  think  we  have  scope  enough,  unless  we  out-run 
modesty. 

It  is  lawful  for  public  persons,  to  feel  their  own  indignities,  and 
to  endeavour  their  revenge.  Now  David  sends  all  the  host  of  the 
mighty  men,  to  punish  Amnion,  for  so  foul  an  abuse.  Those,  that 
received  the  messengers  of  his  love  with  scorn  and  insolency,  shall 
now  be  severely  saluted  with  the  messengers  of  his  wrath.  It  is 
iw&t  both  with  God  and  men,  that  they,  who  know  not  how  to  take 


HANUN,  AND  DAVID'S  AMBASSADORS.  3^3 

favours  aright,  should  smart  with  judgments.  Kindness  repulsed 
breaks  forth  into  indignation  ;  how  much  more,  when  it  is  repaid 
with  an  injurious  affront ! 

David  cannot  but  feel  his  own  cheeks  shaven,  and  his  own  coat 
cut,  in  his  ambassadors ;  they  did  but  carry  his  person  to  Hanun  ; 
neither  can  he  therefore  but  appropriate  to  himself,  the  kindness 
or  injury  offered  unto  them.  He,  that  did  so  take  to  heart  the 
cutting  off  but  the  lap  of  king  Saul's  garment,  when  it  was  laid 
aside  from  him,  how  must  he  needs  be  affected  with  this  disdainful 
halving  of  his  hair  and  robes,  in  the  person  of  his  deputies  ! 

The  name  of  ambassadors  hath  been  ever  sacred  ;  and  by  the 
universal  law  of  nations,  hath  carried  in  it  sufficient  protection 
from  all  public  wrongs  ;  neither  bath  it  been  ever  violated,  without 
a  revenge.  O  God,  what  shall  we  say  to  those  notorious  contempts, 
which  are  daily  cast  upon  thy  spiritual  messengers  ?  Is  it  possible 
thou  shouldest  not  feel  them,  thou  shouldest  not  avenge  them  ? 
We  are  made  a  gazing  stock  to  the  world,  to  angels,  and  to  men  ; 
we  are  despised  and  trodden  down  in  the  dust ;  who  hath  believed 
ow  report,  and  to  whom  is  the  arm  of  the  Lord  revealed  9 

How  obstinate  are  wicked  men,  in  their  perverse  resolutions  ! 
These  foolish  Ammonites  would  rather  hire  Syrians  to  maintain  a 
war  against  Israel  in  so  foul  a  quarrel,  besides  the  hazard  of  their 
own  lives,  than  confess  the  error  of  their  jealous  misconstruction. 

It  is  one  of  the  mad  principles  of  wickedness,  that  it  is  a  weakness 
to  relent,  and  ratiier  to  die  than  yield :  even  ill  causes,  once  under- 
taken, must  be  upheld  although  with  blood  ;  whereas  the  gracious 
heart,  finding  his  own  mistaking,  doth  not  only  remit  ot  an  un- 
grounded displeasure,  but  studies  to  be  revenged  of  itself,  and  to 
give  satisfaction  to  the  offended. 

The  mercenary  Syrians  are  drawn  to  venture  their  lives  for  a 
fee.  Twenty  thousand  of  them  are  hired  into  the  field  against 
Israel.  Fond  Pagans,  that  know  not  the  value  of  a  man  !  Their 
blood  cost  them  nothing,  and  they  care  not  to  sell  it  good  cheap. 
How  can  we  think  those  men  have  souls,  that  esteem  a  little  white 
earth  above  themselves  ;  that  never  inquire  into  the  justice  of  the 
quarrel,  but  the  rate  of  the  pay  ;  that  can  rifle  for  drams  of  silver, 
in  the  bowels  of  their  own  flesh,  and  either  kill  or  die  for  a  day's 
Wages  ? 

Jpab,  the  wise  general  of  Israel,  soon  finds  where  the  strength  of 
the  battle  lay  ;  and  so  marshals  his  troops,  that  the  choice  of  his 
men  should  encounter  the  vanguard  of  the  Syrians.  His  brother 
Abishai  leads  the  rest  against  the  children  of  Ammon  ;  with  this  co- 
venant of  mutual  assistance,  If  the  Syrians  be  too  strong  for  me, 
then  thou  shalt  help  me;  but  if  the  children  of  Ammon  be  too 
strong  for  thee,  then  will  I  come  and  help  thee.  It  is  a  happy 
thing,  when  the  captains  of  God's  people  join  together  as  brethren, 
and  lend  their  hand  to  the  aid  of  each  other,  against  the  common 
adversary.  Concord  in  defence  or  assault  is  the  way  to  victory ; 
as,  contrarily,  the  division  of  the  leaders  is  the  overthrow  of  the 
army. 


37i 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


Set  aside  some  particular  actions,  Joab  was  a  worthv  captain, 
both  for  wisdom  and  valour.  Who  could  either  exhort  or  resolve 
better  than  he  ;  Be  of  good  courage,  and  lei  us  play  the  men,  for 
our  people,  and  for  the  cities  of  our  God  ;  and  the  Lord  do  that 
which  scemcth  him  good  f  It  is  not  either  private  glory  or  profit, 
that  whets  his  fortitude,  but  the  respect  to  the  cause  of  God  and  his 
people.  That  soldier  can  never  answer  it  to  God,  that  strikes  not 
more  as  a  justicer,  than  as  an  enemy.  Neither  doth  he  content 
himself  with  his  own  courage,  but  he  animates  others.  The  tongue 
of  a  commander  fights  more  than  his  hand.  It  is  enough  for  pri- 
vate men,  to  exercise  what  life  and  limbs  they  have  ;  a  good  leader 
must,  out  of  his  own  abundance,  put  life  and  spirits  into  all  others. 
If  a  lion  lead  sheep  into  the  field,  there  is  hope  of  victory.  Lastly, 
when  he  hath  done  his  best,  he  resolves  to  depend  upon  God  for  the 
issue :  not  trusting  to  his  sword,  or  his  bow,  but  to  the  providence 
of  the  Almighty  for  success;  as  a  man  religiously  awful,  and  aw- 
fully confident,  while  there  should  be  no  want  in  their  own  endea- 
vours. He  knew  well,  that  the  race  was  not  to  the  swift,  nor  the 
battle  to  the  strong ;  therefore  he  looks  up  above  the  hills,  whence 
cometh  his  salvation.  All  valour  is  cowardice  to  that  which  is  built 
upon  religion. 

I  marvel  not  to  see  Joab  victorious,  while  he  is  thus  godly. 
The  Syrians  flee  before  him,  like  flocks  of  sheep  ;  the  Ammonites 
follow  them  ;  the  two  sons  of  Zeruiah  have  nothing  to  do,  but  to 
pursue  and  execute.  The  throats  of  the  Ammonites  are  cut,  for 
cutting  the  beards  and  coats  of  the  Israelitish  messengers. 

Neither  doth  this  revenge  end  in  the  field  ;  Rabba,  the  ro)'aI 
city  of  Ammon,  is  strongly  beleaguered  by  Joab.  The  city  of  wa- 
ters, after  well  near  a  vears  siege,  yieideth  :  the  rest  can  no  longer 
hold. 

Now  Joab,  as  one  that  desireth  more  to  approve  himself  a  loyal 
and  a  careful  subject  than  a  happy  general,  sends  to  his  master 
David,  that  he  should  come  personally,  and  encamp  against  the 
city,  and  take  it  ,  Lest,  saith  he,  I  take  it,  and  it  be  called  after 
my  name.  O  noble  and  imitable  fidelity  of  a  dutiful  servant,  that 
prefers  his  lord  to  himself,  and  is  so  far  from  stealing  honour  from 
his  master's  deserts,  that  he  willingly  remits  of  his  own  to  add  unto 
his.  The  war  was  not  his  ;  he  was  only  employed  by  his  sovereign.- 
The  same  person,  that  was  wronged  in  the  ambassadors,  reveng;eth 
by  his  soldiers.  The  praise  of  ihc  act  shall,  like  fountain-water, 
return  to  the  sea,  whence  it  originally  came.  To  seek  a  man's  own 
glory  is  not  glory.  Alas,  how  many  are  there,  who,  being  sent  to 
sue  for  God,  woo  for  themselves  !  O  God,  it  is  a  fearful  thing  to 
rob  thee  of  that  which  is  dearest  to  thee,  glory  ;  which,  as  thou  wilt 
not  give  to  anv  creature,  so  much  less  wilt  thou  endure  that  any 
creature  should  filch  it  from  thee,  and  give  it  to  himself.  Have 
thou  the  honour  of  all  our  actions,  who  givest  a  being  to  our  ac- 
tions and  us,  and  in  both  hast  most  justly  regarded  thine  own  praise. 

2  Sam.  .r.  1  Chron.  xix. 


375 


DAVID  WITH  BATHSHEBA  AND  URIAH. 
With  what  unwillingness,  with  what  fear,  do  I  still  look  upon  the 
miscarriage  of  the  man  after  God's  own  heart !  O  holy  prophet, 
who  can  promise  himself  always  to  stand,  when  he  sees  thee  fallen, 
and  maimed  with  the  fall  ?  Who  can  assure  himself  of  an  immu- 
nity from  the  foulest  sins,  when  he  sees  thee  offending  so  heinously, 
so  bloodily  ?  Let  prophane  eyes  behold  thee  contentedly,  as  a  pat- 
tern, as  an  excuse  of  sinning;  I  shall  never  look  upon  thee  but 
through  tears,  as  a  woful  spectacle  of  human  infirmity. 

While  Joab  and  all  Israel  were  busy  in  the  war  against  Ammon , 
in  the  siege  of  Kabbah,  Satan  finds  time  to  lay  siege  to  the  secure 
heart  of  David. 

^v^loever  found  David  thus  tempted,  thus  foiled,  in  the  days  of 
his  busy  wars  ?  Now  only  do  I  see  the  king  of  Israel,  rising  from 
his  bed  in  the  evening.  The  time  was,  when  he  rose  up  in  the 
morning  to  his  early  devotion  ;  when  he  brake  his  nightly  rest,  with 
public  cares,  with  the  business  of  the  state.  All  that  while  he  was 
innocent,  he  was  holy  ;  but  now  that  he  wallows  in  the  bed  of 
idleness,  he  is  fit  to  invite  temptation.  The  industrious  man  hath  no 
leisure  to  sin  :  the  idle  hath  neither  leisure  nor  power  to  avoid  sin. 
Exercise  is  not  more  wholesome  for  the  body,  than  for  the  soul; 
the  remission  whereof  breeds  matter  of  disease  in  both.  The  water, 
that  hath  been  heated,  soonest  freezeth  ;  the  most  active  spirit 
soonest  tireth  with  slacking.  The  earth  stands  still,  and  is  all 
dregs  ;  the  heavens  ever  move,  and  are  pure.  We  have  no  reason 
to  complain  of  the  assiduity  of  work  ;  the  toil  of  action  is  answered 
by  the  benefit;  if  we  did  less,  we  should  suffer  more.  Satan,  like 
an  idle  companion,  if  he  find  us  busy,  flies  back,  and  sees  it  no  time 
to  entertain  vain  purposes  with  us.  We  cannot  please  him  better, 
than  by  casting  away  our  work,  to  hold  chat  with  hini.  We  cannot 
yield  so  far,  and  be  guiltless. 

Even  David's  eyes  have  no  sooner  the  sleep  rubbed  out  of  them, 
than  they  rove  to  wanton  prospects.  He  walks  upon  his  roof,  and 
sees  Bathsheba  washing  herself;  inquires  after  her,  sends  for  her, 
solicits  her  to  uncleanness.  The  same  spirit,  that  shut  up  his  eyes  in 
an  unseasonable  sleep,  opens  them  upon  an  enticing  object :  while 
sin  hath  such  a  solicitor,  it  cannot  want  either  means  or  opportu- 
nity. 

I  cannot  think  Bathsheba  could  be  so  immodest,  as  to  wash  her- 
sell  openly ;  especially  from  her  natural  uncleanness.  Lust  is  quick  - 
sighted  :  David  hath  espied  her,  where  she  could  espy  no  beholder. 
His  eyes  recoil  upon  his  heart,  and  have  smitten  him  with  sinful 
desire. 

There  can  be  no  safety  to  that  soul,  where  the  senses  are  let 
loose.  He  can  never  keep  his  covenant  with  God,  that  makes  not 
a  covenant  with  his  eyes.  It  is  an  idle  presumption  to  think  the 
outward  man  may  be  free,  while  the  inward  is  safe.  He  is  more 
than  a  man,  whose  heart  is  not  led  by  his  eyes  ;  he  is  no  regenerate 
man,  whose  eyes  are  not  restrained  by  his  heart. 


376 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


O  Bathsheba,  how  wert  thou  washed  from  thine  unclearmess, 
when  thou  yieldedst  to  go  into  an  adulterous  bed  !  Never  wert  thou 
so  foul,  as  now  when  thon  wert  new  washed.  The  worst  of  nature  is 
cleanliness  to  the  best  of  sin  :  thou  hadst  been  clean,  if  thou  hadst 
not  washed  ;  yet  for  thee,  I  know  how  to  plead  infirmity  of  sex, 
and  the  importunity  of  a  king  :  but  what  shall  I  say  for  thee,  O 
thou  royal  prophet,  and  prophetical  king  of  Israel  ?  Where  shall  I 
find  ought  to  extenuate  that  crime,  for  which  God  himself  hath 
noted  thee  ?  Did  not  thy  holy  profession  teach  thee,  to  abhor  such 
a  sin  more  than  death  ?  Was  not  thy  justice  wont  to  punish  this 
s  n,  with  no  less  than  death  ?  Did  not  thy  very  calling  call  thee,  to 
a  protection  and  preservation  of  justice,  of  chastity,  in  thy  sub- 
jects ?  Didst  thou  want  store  of  wives  of  thine  own  ?  Wert  thou 
restrained  from  taking  more  ?  Was  there  no  beauty  in  Israel,  but 
in  a  subject's  marriage-bed  ?  Wert  thou  overcome  by  the  vehement 
solicitations  of  an  adultress  ?  Wert  thou  not  the  tempter,  the  pro- 
secutor, of  this  uncleanness  ?  I  should  accuse  thee  deeply,  if  thou 
hadst  not  accused  thyself.  Nothing  wanted  to  greaten  thy  sin,  or 
our  wonder  and  fear.  O  God,  whither  do  we  go,  if  thou  stay  us 
not  ?  Whoever,  amongst  the  millions  of  thy  servants,  could  find 
himself  furnished  with  stronger  preservatives  against  sin  ?  Against 
whom  could  such  a  sin  find  less  pretence  of  prevailing  ?  Oh  keep 
thou  us,  that  presumptuous  sins  prevail  not  over  us;  so  only  shall 
we  be  free  from  great  offences. 

The  suits  of  kings  are  imperative.  Ambition  did  now  prove  a 
bawd  to  lust.  Bathsheba  yieldeth  to  offend  God,  to  dishonour  her 
husband,  to  clog  and  wound  her  own  soul,  to  abuse  her  body. 
Dishonesty  grows  bold,  when  it  is  countenanced  with  greatness. 
Eminent  persons  had  need  be  careful  of  their  demands  :  they  sin  by 
authority,  that  are  solicited  by  the  mighty. 

Had  Bathsheba  been  mindful  of  her  matrimonial  fidelity,  per- 
haps David  had  been  soon  checked  in  his  inordinate  desire  :  her 
facility  furthers  the  sin.  Tlx  first  motioner  of  evil  is  most  faulty; 
but,  as  in  quarrels,  so  in  offences,  the  second  blow  (which  is  the 
consent)  makes  the  fray.  Good  Joseph  was  moved  to  folly  by  his 
great  and  beautiful  mistress :  this  fire  fell  upon  wet  tinder,  and 
therefore  soon  went  out. 

Sin  is  not  acted  alone  ;  if  but  one  party  be  wise,  both  escape. 
Itis  no  excuse, to  say,  "I  was'tempted,"  though  by  thegreat,  though 
by  the  holy  and  learned.  Almost  all  sinners  are  misled,  by  that 
transformed  angel  of  light.  The  action  is  that  We  must  regard,  not 
the  person.  Let  the  mover  be  never  so  glorious,  if  he  stir  us  to  evil, 
he  must  be  entertained  with  defiance. 

The  God,  that  knows  how  to  raise  good  out  of  evil,  blesses  an 
adulterous  copulation  with  that  increase,  which  he  denies  to  the 
chaste  embracements  of  honest  wedlock.  Bathsheba  hath  con- 
ceived by  David ;  and  now  at  once  conceives  a  sorrow  and  care, 
how  to  smother  the  shame  of  her  conception  :  he  that  did  the  fact 
must  hide  it. 

O  David,  where  is  thy  repentance  ?   Where  is  thy  tenderness 


DAVID  WITH  BA.THSHEBA  AND  URIAH.  377 

and  compunction  of  heart  ?  Where  are  those  holy  meditations, 
which  had  wont  to  take  up  thy  soul  ?  Alas !  instead  of  clearing 
thy  sin,  thou  lahourestto  cloke  it ;  and  spendest  those  thoughts  in 
the  concealing  of  thy  wickedness,  which  thou  shouldest  ratherhave 
bestowed  in  preventing  it.  The  best  of  God's  children  may  not 
only  be  drenched  in  the  waves  of  sin,  but  lie  in  them  for  the  time, 
and  perhaps  sink  twice  to  the  bottom.  What  hypocrite  could  have 
done  worse,  than  study  how  to  cover  the  face  of  his  sin  from  the 
eyes  of  men,  while  he  regarded  not  the  sting  of  sin  in  his  soul  P 

As  there  are  some  acts,  wherein  the  hypocrite  is  a  saint,  so  there 
are  some,  wherein  the  greatest  saint  upon  earth  may  be  a  hypocrite. 
Saul  did  thus  go  about  to  colour  his  sin,  and  is  cursed.  The  ves- 
sels of  mercy  and  wrath  are  not  ever  distinguishable  by  their  ac- 
tions. He  makes  the  difference,  that  will  have  mercy  on  whom  he 
will,  and  whom  he  will,  he  hardeneth. 

It  is  rare  and  hard  to  commit  a  single  sin.  David  hath  abused 
the  wife  of  Uriah  ;  now  he  would  abuse  his  person,  in  causing  him 
to  father  a  false  seed.  That  worthy  Hittite  is  sent  for  from  the 
wars ;  and  now,  after  some  cunning  and  fav-fetched  questions,  isl 
dismissed  to  his  house,  not  without  a  present  of  favour.  David' 
could  not  but  imagine,  that  the  beauty  of  his  Bathsheba,  must 
needs  be  attractive  enough  to  a  husband,  whom  long  absence  in 
wars  had  withheld  all  that  while  from  so  pleasing  a  bed ;  neither 
could  he  think,  that,  since  that  face  and  those  breasts  had  power  to 
allure  himself  to  an  unlawful  lust,  it  could  be  possible,  that  Uriah 
should  not  be  invited  by  them,  to  an  allowed  and  warrantable  frui- 
tion. 

That  David's  heart  might  now  the  rather  strike  him,  in  com- 
paring the  chaste  resolutions  of  his  servant  with  his  own  light  in- 
continence, good  Uriah  sleeps  at  the  door  of  the  king's  palace  ; 
making  choice  of  a  stony  pillow,  under  the  canopy  of  heaven,  ra- 
ther than  the  delicate  bed  of  her,  whom  he  thought  as  honest  as  he 
knew  fair.  The  ark,  saith  he,  and  Israel,  and  Judah,  dwell  in 
tents ;  and  my  lord  Joab,  and  the  servants  of  my  lord,  abide  in  the 
open  fields ;  shall  I  then  go  into  my  house  to  eat,  and  drink,  and 
lie  with  my  wife  ?  By  thy  life,  and  by  the  life  of  thy  soul,  I  will 
not  do  this  thing. 

Who  can  but  be  astonished  at  this  change  ;  to  see  a  soldier  au- 
stere, and  a  prophet  wanton  !  And  how  doth  that  soldier's  auste- 
rity shame  the  prophet's  wantonness !  O  zealous  and  mortified 
soul,  Avorthy  of  a  more  faithful  wife,  of  a  more  just  master,  how 
didst  thou  overlook  all  base  sensuality,  and  hatedst  to  be  happy 
alone  !  War  and  lust  had  wont  to  be  reputed  friends.  Thy  breast: 
is  not  more  full  of  courage  than  chastity  ;  and  is  so  far  from  wan- 
dering after  forbidden  pleasures,  that  it  refuseth  lawful. 

There  is  a  time  to  laugh,  and  a  time  to  mourn ;  a  time  to  em- 
brace, and  a  time  to  be  far  from  embracing.  Even  the  best  actions 
are  not  always  seasonable,  much  less  the  indifferent.  He,  that  ever 
takes  liberty  to  do  what  he  may,  shall  offend  no  less,  than  he  that 
sometimes  takes  liberty  to  do  what  he  may  not. 


373  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

If  any  thing,  the  ark  of  God  is  fittest  to  lead  our  tunes.  Accord- 
ingly as  that  is  either  distressed  or  prospereth,  should  we  frame  our 
mirth  or  mourning.  To  dwell  in  ceiled  houses,  while  the  temple 
lies  waste,  is  the  ground  of  God's  just  quarrel.  How  shall  we 
sing  a  song  of  the  Lord  in  a  strange  land  ?  If  I  forget  thee,  O 
Jerusalem,  let  my  right-hand  forget  her  cunning ;  if  I  do  not  re- 
member thee,  let  my  tongue  cleave  to  the  roof  of  my  mouth  ;  yea, 
if  J  prefer  not  Jerusalem  to  my  chief  joy. 

As  every  man  is  a  limb  of  the  community,  so  must  he  be  affected 
with  the  estate  of  the  universal  body,  whether  healthful  or  languish- 
ing. It  did  not  more  aggravate  David's  sin,  that,  while  the  ark  and 
Israel  was  in  hazard  and  distress,  he  could  find  time  to  loose  the 
reins  to  wanton  desires  and  actions,  than  it  magnifies  the  religious 
zeal  of  Uriah,  that  he  abandons  comfort,  till  he  see  the  ark  and 
Israel  victorious.  Common  dangers  or  calamities  must,  like  the 
rapt  motion,  carry  our  hearts  contrary  to  the  ways  of  our  private 
occasions. 

He,  that  cannot  be  moved  with  words,  shall  be  tried  with  wine. 
Uriah  had  equally  protested,  against  feastiug  at  home,  and  society 
with  his  wife  ;  to  the  one,  the  authority  of  a  king  forceth  him 
abroad,  in  hope  that  the  excess  thereof  shall  force  him  to  the  other. 
It  is  like,  that  holy  captain  intended  only  to  yield  so  much  obe- 
dience, as  might  consist  with  his  course  of  austerity.  But  Wine  is 
a  mocker.  When  it  goes  plausibly  in,  no  man  can  imagine  how  it 
will  rage  and  tyrannise.  He,  that  receives  that  traitor  within  his 
gates,  shall  too  late  complain  of  surprisal.  Like  unto  that  ill  spirit, 
it  insinuates  sweetly,  but  in  the  end  it  bites  like  a  serpent,  and  hurts 
like  a  cockatrice.  Even  good  Uriah  is  made  drunk.  The  holiest  soul 
may  be  overtaken.  It  is  hard  gainsaying,  where  a  king  begins  a 
health  to  a  subject. 

Where,  oh  where,  will  this  wickedness  end  ?  David  will  now 
procure  the  sin  of  another,  to  hide  his  own.  Uriah's  drunkenness 
is  more  David's  offence,  than  his.  It  is  weakly  yielded  to  of  the 
one,  which  was  wilfully  intended  of  the  other.  The  one  was  as  the 
sinner,  the  other  as  the  tempter. 

Had  not  David  known  that  wine  was  an  inducement  to  lust,  he 
had  spared  those  superfluous  cups.  Experience  had  taught  him, 
that  the  eye  debauched  with  wine  will  look  upon  strange  women. 
The  drunkard  may  be  any  thing,  save  good.  Yet  in  this  the  aim 
failed.  Grace  is  stronger  than  wine:  while  that  withholds,  in  vain 
shall  the  fury  of  the  grape  attempt  to  carry  Uriah  to  his  own  bed. 
Sober  David  is  now  worse  than  drunken  Uriah.  Had  not  the  king 
of  Israel  been  more  intoxicate  with  sin,  than  Uriah  with  drink,  he 
had  not  in  a  sober  intemperance  climbed  up  into  that  bed,  which 
the  drunken  temperance  of  Uriah  refused. 

If  David  had  been  but  himself,  how  had  he  loved,  how  had  he 
honoured,  this  honest  and  religious  zeaf,  in  his  so  faithful  servant; 
whom  now  he  cruelly  seeks  to  reward  with  death  !  That  fact  which 
wine  cannot  hide,  the  sword  shall.  Uriah  shall  bear  his  own  mitti- 
mus unto  Joab  ;  Put  ye  Uriah  in  the  fore-front  of  the  strengh  of 


DAVID  WITH  BATHSHEBA  AND  URIAH.  579 

the  battle,  and  recoil  back  from  him,  that  he  may  be  smitten  and 
die.  What  is  become  of  thee,  O  thou  good  spirit,  that  hadst  wont 
to  guide  thy  chosen  servant  in  his  former  ways  ?  Is  not  this  the 
man,  whom  we  lately  saw  so  heart-smitten,  for  but  cutting  off  the 
lap  of  the  garment  of  a  wicked  master,  that  is  now  thus  lavish  of 
the  blood  of  a  gracious  and  well-deserving  servant  ?  Could  it  be. 
likely,  that  so  worthy  a  captain  could  fall  alone?  Could  David 
have  expiated  this  sin  with  his  own  blood,  it  had  been  but  well 
spent ;  but  to  cover  his  sin  with  the  innocent  blood  of  others,  was  a 
crime  above  astonishment. 

Oh  the  deep  dece.tfulness  of  sin  !  If  the  devil  should  have  come 
to  David  in  the  most  lovely  form  of  Bathsheba  herself,  and  at  the 
first  should  have  directly  and  in  plain  terms  solicited  him  to  mur- 
der his  best  servant,  I  doubt  not  but  he  would  have  spit  scorn  in 
that  face,  on  which  he  should  otherwise  have  doted  ;  now,  by  many 
cunning  windings,  Satan  rises  up  to  that  temptation,  and  prevails : 
that  shall  be  done  for  a  colour  of  guiltiness,  whereof  the  soul  would 
have  hated  to  be  immediately  guilty.  Kven  those,  that  find  a  just 
horror,  in  leaping  down  from  some  high  tower,  yet  may  be  per- 
suaded to  descend  by  stairs  to  the  bottom.  He  knows  not  where 
he  shall  stay,  that  hath  willingly  slipped  into  a  known  wickedness. 

How  many  doth  an  eminent  offender  draw  with  him  into  evil ! 
It  could  not  be,  but  that  divers  of  the  attendants,  both  of  David 
and  Bathsheba,  must  be  conscious  to  that  adultery.  Great  men's 
sins  are  seldom  secret.  And  now  Joab  must  be  fetched  in,  as  ac- 
cessary to  the  murder.  How  must  this  example  needs  harden  Joab, 
against  the  conscience  of  Abner's  blood  ;  while  he  cannot  but  think, 
David  cannot  avenge  that  in  me,  which  he  acteth  himself! 

Honour  is  pretended  to  poor  Uriah ;  death  is  meant.  This  man 
was  one  of  the  worthies  of  David.  Their  courage  sought  glory, 
in  the  difhcultest  exploits.  That  reputation  haa  never  been  pur- 
chased, without  attempts  of  equal  danger. 

Had  not  the  leader  and  followers  of  Uriah  been  more  treacherous, 
than  his  enemies  were  strong,  he  had  come  off  with  victory  ;  now, 
he  was  not  the  first  or  last  that  perished  by  his  friends.  David  hath 
forgotten,  that  himself  was  in  like  sort  betrayed  in  his  master's  in- 
tention, upon  the  dowry  of  the  Philistines'  foreskins. 

I  lear  to  ask,  Who  ever  noted  so  foul  a  plot  in  David's  rejected 
predecessor  ?  Uriah  must  be  the  messenger  of  his  own  death  ; 
Joab  must  be  a  traitor  to  his  friend  ;  the  host  of  God  must  shame- 
fully turn  their  backs  upon  the  Ammonites ;  all  that  Israelitish  blood 
must  be  shed  ;  that  murder  must  be  seconded  with  dissimulation  ; 
and  all  this  to  hide  one  adidtery  !  O  God,  thou  hadst  never  sulfered 
so  dear  a  favourite  of  thine  to  fall  so  fearfully,  if  thou  hadst  not 
meant  to  make  him  a  universal  example  to  mankind,  of  not  pre- 
suming, of  not  despairing.  How  can  we  presume  of  not  sinning, 
or  despair  for  sinning,  when  we  find  so  great  a  saint  thus  fallen, 
thus  risen  !  2  Sam.  xi* 


S50 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


NATHAN  AND  DAVID. 
Yet  Bathsheba  mourned  for  the  death  of  that  husband,  whom  she 
had  been  drawn  to  dishonour.  How  could  she  bestow  tears  enough 
upon  that  funeral,  whereof  her  sin  was  the  cause  !  If  she  had  but 
a  suspicion  of  the  plot  of  his  death,  the  fountains  of  her  eyes  could 
not  yield  water  enough  to  wash  off  her  husband's  blood.  Her  sin 
Was  more  worthy  of  sorrow,  than  her  loss.  If  this  grief  had  been 
right  placed,  the  hope  of  hiding  her  shame  and  the  ambition  to  be 
a  queen  had  not  so  soon  mitigated  it ;  neither  had  she,  upon  any 
terms,  been  drawn  into  the  bed  of  her  husband's  murderer.  Every 
gleam  of  earthly  comfort  can  dry  up  the  tears  of  worldly  sorrow. 
Bathsheba  hath  soon  lost  her  grief  at  the  court.  The  remembrance 
tif  a  husband  is  buried  in  the  jollity  and  state  of  a  princess. 

David  securely  enjoys  his  ill-purchased  love  ;  and  is  content  to 
exchange  the  conscience  of  his  sin,  for  the  sense  of  his  pleasure. 
But  the  just  and  holy  God  will  not  put  it  up  so.  He,  that  hates 
sin  so  much  the  more  as  the  offender  is  more  dear  to  him,  will  let 
David  feel  the  bruise  of  his  fall.  If  God's  best  children  have  been 
sometimes  suffered  to  sleep  in  a  sin,  at  last  he  hath  awakened  them 
in  a  fright. 

David  was  a  prophet  of  God  ;  and  yet  he  hath  not  only  stepped 
into  those  foul  sins,  but  sojourns  with  them.  If  any  profession  or 
state  of  life  could  have  privileged  from  sin,  the  angels  had  not 
sinned  in  heaven,  nor  man  in  paradise. 

Nathan  the  prophet  is  sent  to  the  prophet  David,  for  reproof, 
for  conviction.  Had  it  been  any  other  man's  case,  none  could 
have  been  more  quick-sighted  than  the  princely  prophet ;  in  his 
own,  he  is  so  blind,  that  God  is  fain  to  lend  him  others'  eyes. 
Even  the  physician  himself,  when  he  is  sick,  sends  for  the  counsel 
of  those,  whom  his  health  did  mutually  aid  with  advice.  Let  no 
man  think  himself  too  good  to  learn.  Teachers  themselves  may 
be  taught  that,  in  their  own  particular,  which,  in  a  generality, 
they  have  often  taught  others.  It  is  not  only  ignorance  that  is  to 
be  removed,  but  misaffection. 

Who  can  prescribe  a  just  period  to  the  best  man's  repentance? 
About  ten  months  are  passed,  since  David's  sin  ;  in  all  which  time, 
I  find  no  news  of  any  serious  compunction.  It  could  not  be,  but 
some  glances  of  remorse  must  needs  have  passed  through  his  soul, 
long  ere  this ;  but  a  due  and  solemn  contrition  was  not  heard  of, 
till  Nathan's  message  ;  and  perhaps  had  been  further  adjourned,  if 
that  monitor  had  been  longer  deferred.  Alas  !  what  long  and  dead 
sleeps  may  the  holiest  soul  take  in  fearful  sins !  Were  it  not  for 
thy  mercy,  O  God,  the  best  of  us  should  end  our  spiritual  lethargy 
in  sleep  of  death. 

It  might  have  pleased  God  as  easily  to  have  sent  Nathan  to  check 
David  in  his  first  purpose  of  sinning ;  so  had  his  eyes  been  restrained, 
Bathsheba  honest,  Uriah  alive  with  honour :  now,  the  wisdom  of 
the  Almighty  knew  how  to  win  more  glory,  by  the  permission  of 
•so  foul  an  evil,  than  by  the  prevention ;  yea,  he  knew  how,  by 


NATHAN  AND  DAVID. 


331 


the  permission  of  one  sin,  to  prevent  millions.  How  many  thou- 
sands had  sinned,  in  a  vain  presumption  on  their  own  strength, 
if  David  had  not  thus  offended !  How  many  thousands  had  de- 
spaired, in  the  conscience  of  their  own  weaknesses,  if  these  hor- 
rible sins  had  not  received  forgiveness  !  It  is  happy  for  all  times, 
that  we  have  so  holy  a  sinner,  so  sinful  a  penitent. 

It  matters  not  how  bitter  the  pill  is,  but  how  well  wrapped.  So 
cunningly  hath  Nathan  conveyed  this  dose,  that  it  begins  to  work 
ere  it  be  tasted.  There  is  no  one  thing,  wherein  is  move  use  of 
wisdom,  than  the  due  contriving  of  reprehension  ;  which,  in  a  dis- 
creet delivery  helps  the  disease,  in  an  unwise  destroys  nature. 

Had  not  Nathan  been  used  to  the  possession  of  David's  ear,  this 
complaint  had  been  suspected.  It  well  beseems  a  king,  to  take  in- 
formation by  a  prophet. 

While  wise  Nathan  was  querulously  discoursing  of  the  cruel  rich 
man,  that  had  forcibly  taken  away  the  only  lamb  of  his  poor  neigh- 
bour, how  willingly"  doth  David  listen  to  the  story ;  and  how  sharply, 
even  above  law,  doth  he  censure  the  fact ;  As  the  Lord  liveth,  the 
man  that  hath  done  this  thing  shall  surely  die  !  Full  little  did  he 
think,  that  he  had  pronounced  sentence  against  himself.  It  had 
not  been  so  heavy,  if  he  had  known  on  whom  it  should  have  lit. 
We  have  open  ears  and  quick  tongues  to  the  vices  of  others.  How 
severe  justicers  we  can  be,  to  our  very  own  crimes  in  others  per- 
sons !  How  flattering  parasites,  to  another's  crime  in  ourselves  ! 

The  life  of  doctrine  is  in  application.  Nathan  might  have  been 
long  enough  in  his  narration,  in  his  invective,  ere  David  would 
have  been  touched  with  his  own  guiltiness;  but  now  that  the  pro- 
phet brings  the  word  home  to  his  bosom,  he  cannot  but  be  affected. 
We  may  take  pleasure,  to  hear -men  speak  in  the  clouds  ;  we  never 
take  profit,  till  we  find  a  propriety  in  the  exhortation  or  reproof. 

There  was  not  more  cunning  in  the  parable,  than  courage  in 
the  application,  Thou  art  the  man.  If  David  be  a  king,  he  may 
not  look,  not  to  hear  of  his  faults.  God's  messages  may  be  no 
other  than  impartial.  It  is  a  treacherous  flattery,  in  divine  errands 
to  regard  greatness.  If  prophets  must  be  mannerly  in  the  form, 
yet  in  the  matter  of  reproof  resolute.  The  words  are  not  their 
own  :  they  are  but  the  heralds  of  the  King  of  Heaven ;  Thus  saith 
the  Lord  God  of  Lsrael. 

How  thunder-stricken  do  we  think  David  did  now  stand  !  How 
did  the  change  of  his  colour  bewray  the  confusion  in  his  soul ; 
while  his  conscience  said  the  same  within,  which  the  prophet 
sounded  in  his  ear !  And  now,  lest  ought  should  be  wanting  to  his 
humiliation,  all  God's  former  favours  shall  be  laid  before  his  eyes, 
by  way  of  exprobration.  He  is  worthy  to  be  upbraided  with  mer- 
cies, that  hath  abused  mercies  unto  wantonness.  While  we  do 
well,  God  gives,  and  says  nothing ;  when  we  do  ill,  he  lays  his 
benefits  in  our  dish,  and  casts  thein  in  our  teeth,  that  our  shame 
may  be  so  much  the  more,  by  how  much  our  obligations  have  bt;en 
greater.  The  blessings  of  God,  in  our  unworthy  carriage,  prove 
out  the  aggravations  of  sin,  and  additions  to  judgment. 


382  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

I  see  all  God's  children  falling  into  sin  ;  some  of  them  lying  in 
sin  ;  none  of  them  maintaining  their  sin.  David  cannot  have  the 
heart  or  the  face,  to  stand  out  against  the  message  of  God  ;  but 
now,  as  a  man  confounded,  and  condemned  in  himself,  he  cries  out, 
in  the  bitterness  of  a  wounded  soul,  I  have  sinned  against  the  Lord. 

It  was  a  short  word,  but  passionate  ;  and  such  as  came  from  the 
bottom  of  a  contrite  heart.  The  greatest  griefs  are  not  most  ver- 
bal. Saul  confessed  his  sin  more  largely,  less  effectually.  God 
cares  not  for  phrases,  but  for  affections. 

The  first  piece  of  our  amends  to  God  for  sinning,  is  the  acknow- 
ledgment of  sin.  lie  can  do  little,  that  in  a  just  offence  cannot 
accuse  himself.  If  we  cannot  be  so  good  as  we  would,  it  is  reason 
we  should  do  God  so  much  right,  as  to  say,  how  evil  we  are.  And 
why  w^s  not  this  done  sooner  ?  It  is  strange  to  see  how  easily 
sin  gets  into  the  heart ;  how  hardly  it  gets  out  of  the  mouth.  Is  it 
because  sin,  like  unto  Satan,  where  it  hath  got  possession  is  desirous 
to  hold  it ;  and  knows  that  it  is  fully  ejected  by  a  free  confession  ? 
or,  because  in  a  guiltiness  of  deformity,  it  hides  itself  in  the  breast 
where  it  is  once  entertained,  and  hates  the  light  ?  or,  because  the 
tongue  is  so  feed  with  self-love,  that  it  is  loth  to  be  drawn  unto 
any  verdict  against  the  heart  or  hands  ?  or,  is  it  out  of  an  idle  mis- 
prision of  shame,  which,  while  it  should  be  placed  in  offending,  is 
misplaced  in  disclosing  of  our  offence  ?  However,  sure  I  am,  that 
God  hath  need  even  of  racks  to  draw  out  confessions;  and  scarce 
in  death  itself,  are  we  wrought  to  a  discovery  of  our  errors. 

There  is  no  one  thing,  wherein  our  folly  shews  itself  more,  than 
in  these  hurtful  concealments.  Contrary  to  the  proceedings  of 
human  justice,  it  is  with  God,  Confess,  and  live.  No  sooner  can 
David  say,  /  have  sinned,  than  Nathan  infers,  The  Lord  also  hath 
put  uivay  thy  sin.  He,  that  hides  his  sins,  shall  not  prosper ;  but 
he,  that  confesseth  and  forsaketh  them,  shall  find  mercy.  Who 
would  not  accuse  himself,  to  be  acquitted  of  God  ?  O  God,  who 
would  not  tell  his  wickedness  to  thee,  that  knowest  it  better  than 
his  own  heart,  that  his  heart  may  be  eased  of  that  wickedness, 
which  being  not  told  killeth  ?  Since  we  have  sinned,  why  should 
we  be  niggardly  of  that  action,  wherein  we  may  at  once  give,glory 
to  thee,  and  relief  to  our  souls  ? 

David  had  sworn,  in  a  zeal  of  justice,  that  the  rich  oppressor, 
for  but  taking  his  poor  neighbour's  lamb,  should  die  the  death: 
God,  by  Nathan,  is  more  favourable  to  David,  than  to  take  him 
at  his  word  ;  Thou  shalt  not  die.  Oh  the  marvellous  power  of  re- 
pentance !  Besides  adultery,  David  had  shed  the  blood  of  innocent 
Uriah.  The  strict  law  was,  Eye  for  eye,  tooth  for  tooth ;  he,  that 
smiteth  with  the  sword,  shall  perish  with  the  sword.  Yet,  as  if  a 
penitent  confession  had  dispensed  with  the  rigour  of  justice,  now 
God  says,  Thou  shalt  not  die.  David  was  the  voice  of  the  Law, 
awarding  death  unto  sin  ;  Nathan  was  the  voice  of  the  Gospel, 
awarding  life  unto  the  repentance  for  sin.  Whatsoever  the  sore  be, 
never  any  soul  applied  this  remedy,  and  died  ;  never  any  soul  cs-r 
caped  death,  that  applied  it  not. 


NATHAN  AND  DAVID. 


383 


David  himself  shall  not  die  for  this  fact ;  "but  his  misbegotten 
child  shall  die  for  hi  in.  He,  that  said,  The  Lord  hath  put  away  thy 
sin,  yet  said  also,  The  sword  shall  not  depart  from  thine  house. 
The  same  mouth,  with  one  breath,  pronounces  the  sentence  both 
of  absolution  and  death  ;  absolution  to  the  person,  death  to  the 
issue.  Pardon  may  well  stand  with  temporal  affliction;.  Where 
God  hath  forgiven,  though  he  doth  not  punish,  yet  he  may  chas- 
tise, and  that  unto  blood;  neither  doth  he  always  forbear  correc- 
tion, where  he  remits  revenge.  So  long  as  he  smites  us  not  as  an 
angry  judge,  we  may  endure  to  smart  from  him  as  a  loving  father. 

Yet  even  this  rod  did  David  deprecate  with  tears.  How  fain 
would  he  shake  off  so  easy  a  load  !  The  child  is  stricken  :  the  fa- 
ther fasts,  and  prays,  and  weeps,  and  lies  all  night  upon  the  earth, 
and  abhors  the  noise  of  comfort.  That  child,  which  was  the  fruit 
and  monument  of  his  odious  adultery,  whom  he  could  never  have 
looked  upon  without  recognition  of  his  sin,  in  whose  face  he  could 
not  but  have  still  read  the  records  of  his  own  shame,  is  thus  mourned 
for,  thus  sued  for.  It  is  easy  to  observe  that  good  man  over-pas- 
sionately  affected  to  his  children.  Who  would  not  have  thought, 
that  David  might  have  held  himself  well  ap payed,  that  his  soul 
escaped  an  eternal  death,  his  body  a  violent,  though  God  should 
punish  his  sin,  in  that  child,  in  whom  he  sinned  ?  yet  even  against 
this  cross  he  bends  his  prayers,  as  if  nothing  had  been  forgiven 
him.  There  is  no  child  that  would  be  scourged,  if  he  might  es- 
cape for  crying.  No  affliction  is  for  the  time  other  than  grievous ; 
neither  is  therefore  yielded  unto,  without  some  kind  of  reluctance. 

Far  yet  was  it  from  the  heart  of  David,  to  make  any  opposition 
to  the  will  of  God  :  he  sued ;  he  struggled  not.  There  is  no  im- 
patience in  entreaties.  He  well  knew,  that  the  threats  of  temporal 
evils  ran  commonly  with  a  secret  condition,  and  therefore  might 
perhaps  be  avoided  by  humble  importunity.  If  any  means  under 
heaven  can  avert  judgments,  it  is  our  prayers. 

God  could  not  choose  but  like  well  the  boldness  of  David's  faith ; 
who,  after  the  apprehension  of  so  heavy  a  displeasure,  is  so  far 
from  doubting  of  the  forgiveness  of  his  sin,  that  he  dares  become 
a  suitor  unto  God  for  his  sick  child.  Sin  doth  not  make  us  more 
strange,  than  faith  confident. 

But  it  is  not  in  the  power  of  the  strongest  faith,  to  preserve  us 
from  all  afflictions.  After  all  David's  prayers  and  tears,  the  child 
must  die.  The  careful  servants  dare  but  whisper  this  sad  news. 
They,  who  had  found  their  master  so  averse  from  the  motion  of 
comfort  in  the  sickness  of  the  child,  feared  him  incapable  of  com- 
fort in  his  death. 

Suspicion  is  quick-witted.  Every  occasion  makes  us  misdoubt 
that  event,  which  we  fear.  This  secrecy  proclaims  that,  which 
they  were  so  loth  to  utter.  David  perceives  his  child  dead  ;  and 
now  he  rises  up  from  the  earth  whereon  he  lay,  and  washes  him- 
self, and  changeth  his  apparel,  and  goes  first  into  God's  house 
to  worship,  and  into  his  own  to  eat;  now  he  refuses  no  Comfort, 
who  before  would  take  none.  The  issue  of  things  doth  more  fully 


•384  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

shew  the  will  of  God,  than  the  prediction.  God  never  did  any 
thing,  but  what  he  would.  He  hath  sometimes  foretold  that  for 
trial,  which  his  secret  will  intended  not.  He  would  foretel  it ;  be 
would  not  effect  it ;  because  he  would  therefore  foretel  it,  that  he 
might  not  effect  it.  His  predictions  of  outward  evils  are  not  always 
absolute  ;  his  actions  are.  David  well  sees  by  the  event,  what  the 
decree  of  God  was  concerning  his  child  ;  which  now  he  could  not 
strive  against,  without  a  vain  impatience.  Till  we  know  the  deter- 
minations of  the  Almighty,  it  is  free  for  us  to  strive  in  our  prayers  ; 
to  strive  with  him,  not  against  him:  when  once  we  know  them, 
it  is  our  duty  to  sit  down  in  a  silent  contentation. 

While  the  child  was  yet  alive,  I  fasted  and  wept ;  for  I  said, 
Who  can  tell,  whether  the  Lord  will  be  gracious  to  vie,  that  the 
child  may  live  !  but  now  he  is  dead,  wherefore  should  I  fast  ?  Can 
I  bring  him  back  again  ? 

The  grief,  that  goes  before  an  evil  for  remedy,  can  hardly  be  too 
much  ;  but  that,  which  follows  an  evil  past  remedy,  cannot  be  too 
little.  Even  in  the  saddest  accident,  death,  we  may  yield  some- 
thing to  nature,  nothing  to  impatience.  Immoderation  of  sor- 
row, for  losses  past  hope  of  recovery,  is  more  sullen  than  useful ; 
our  stomach  may  be  bewrayed  by  it,  not  our  wisdom.  2Sam.xii. 


AMNON  AND  TAMAR. 

It  is  not  possible,  that  any  word  of  God  should  fall  to  the  ground, 
David  is  not  more  sure  of  forgiveness,  than  smart.  Three  main 
sins  passed  him  in  this  business  of  Uriah  ;  adultery,  murder,  dissi- 
mulation :  for  all  which  he  receives  present  payment ;  for  adultery, 
in  the  deflouring  of  his  daughter  Tamar ;  for  murder,  in  the  kill- 
ing of  his  son  Amnon ;  for  dissimulation,  in  the  contriving  of 
both.  Yet  all  this  was  but  the  beginning  of  evils.  Where  the  father 
of  the  family  brings  sin  home  to  the  house,  it  is  not  easily  swept 
out.  Unlawful  lust  propagates- itself  by  example.  How  justly  i 
David  scourged  by  the  sin  of  his  sons,  whom  his  act  taught  t 
offend ! 

Maachah  was  the  daughter  of  a  heathenish  king.    By  her  had 
David  that  beautiful  but  unhappy  issue,  Absalom,  and  his  no  le- 
fair  sister,  Tamar.  Perhaps,  thus  late  doth  David  feel  the  punish- 
ment of  that  unfit  choice.    I  should  have  marvelled,  if  so  holy 
man  had  not  found  crosses  in  so  unequal  a  match ;  either  in  If 
person,  or  at  least  in  his  seed. 

Beauty,  if  it  be  not  well  disciplined,  proves  not  a  friend,  bu 
a  traitor.  Three  of  David's  children  are  undone  by  it  at  once. 
What  else  was  guilty  of  Amuon's  incestuous  love,  Tamar's  ravish 
ment,  Absalom's  pride  ?  It  is  a  blessing  to  be  fair  ;  yet  such  a  bless 
jog,  as,  if  the  soul  answer  not  to  the  face,  may  lead  to  a  curse 
How  commonly  have  we  seen  the  foulest  soul  dwell  fairest ! 

It  was  no  fault  of  Tamar's,  that  she  was  beautiful :  the  candl 
offends  not  in  burning ;  the  foolish  fly  offends  in  scorching  itsel 


AMNON  AND  TAMAR. 


335 


in  the  flame  :  yet  it  is  no  small  misery  to  become  a  temptation  unto 
another,  and  to  be  made  but  the  occasion  of  others'  ruin. 

Amnon  is  love-sick  of  his  sister  Tamar,  and  languishes  of  that 
unnatural  heat.  Whither  will  not  wanton  lust  carry  the  inordinate 
minds  of  pampered  and  ungoverned  youths?  None  but  his  half- 
sister  will  please  the  eyes  of  the  young  prince  of  Israel.  Ordinary 
pleasures  will  not  content  those,  whom  the  conceit  of  greatness, 
youth,  and  ease,  have  let  loose  to  their  appetite. 

Perhaps  yet,  this  unkindly  flame  might  in  time  have  gone  out 
alone,  had  not  there  been  a  Jonadab,  to  blow  these  coals  with  ill 
counsel.  It  were  strange,  if  great  princes  should  want  some  pa- 
rasitical followers,  that  are  ready  to  feed  their  ill  humours.  Why 
art  thou,  the  king's  son,  so  lean  from  day  to  day  ?  As  if  it  were 
unworthy  the  heir  of  a  king,  to  suffer  either  law  or  conscience  to 
stand  in  the  way  of  his  desires :  whereas  wise  princes  know  well, 
that  their  places  give  them  no  privilege  of  sinning  ;  but  call  them 
in  rather  to  so  much  more  strictness,  as  their  example  may  be 
more  prejudicial. 

Jonadab  was  the  cousin-german  of  Amnon.  Ill  advice  is  so  much 
more  dangerous,  as  the  interest  of  the  giver  is  more.  Had  he  been 
a  true  friend,  he  had  bent  all  the  forces  of  his  dissuasion  against 
the  wicked  motions  of  that  sinful  lust ;  and  had  shewed  the  prince 
of  Israel,  how  much  those  lewd  desires  provoked  God  and  ble- 
mished himself ;  and  had  lent  his  hand  to  strangle  them  in  their 
first  conception.  There  cannot  be  a  more  worthy  improvement 
of  friendship,  than  in  a  fervent  opposition  to  the  sins  of  them, 
whom  we  profess  to  love.  No  enemy  can  be  so  mortal  to  great 
princes,  as  those  officious  clients,  whose  flattery  sooths  them  up  in 
wickedness  :  these  are  traitors  to  the  soul,  and  by  a  pleasing  vio- 
lence kill  the  best  part  eternally. 

How  ready  at  hand  is  an  evil  suggestion  !  Good  counsel  is  like 
unto  well-water,  that  must  be  drawn  up  with  a  pump  or  bucket ; 
ill  counsel  is  like  to  conduit- water,  which,  if  the  cock  be  but 
turned,  runs  out  alone.  Jonadab  hath  soon  projected,  how  Amnon 
shall  accomplish  his  lawless  purpose.  The  way  must  be  to  feign 
himself  sick  in  body,  whose  mind  was  sick  of  lust ;  and,  under  this 
pretence,  to  procure  the  presence  of  her,  who  had  wounded,  and 
only  might  cure  him.  The  daily  increasing  languor,  and  leanness, 
and  paleness  of  love-sick  Amnon,  might  well  give  colour  to  a  ker- 
chief and  a  pallet. 

Now  is  it  soon  told  David,  that  his  eldest  son  is  cast  upon  his 
sick  bed.  There  needs  no  suit  for  his  visitation.  The  careful  fa- 
ther hastens  to  his  bedside  ;  not  without  doubts  and  fears.  He,  that 
was  lately  so  afflicted,  with  the  sickness  of  a  child  that  scarce  lived 
to  see  the  light,  how  sensible  must  we  needs  think  he  would  be,  of 
the  indisposition  of  his  first-born  son,  in  the  prime  of  his  age  and 
hopes ! 

It  is  not  given  to  any  prophet,  to  foresee  all  things.  Happy 
had  it  been  for  David,  if  Amnon  hud  been  truly  sick,  and  sick  unto 
death ;  yet  who  could  have  persuaded  this  passionate  father,  to 

vol.  i.  c  c 


3S6  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

have  been  content  with  this  succession  of  losses,  this  early  loss  of 
his  successor  ?  How  glad  is  he  to  hear,  that  his  daughter  Tamar'a 
skill  might  be  likely  to  fit  the  diet  of  so  dear  a  patient !  Conceit 
is  wont  to  rule  much,  both  in  sickness  and  in  the  c  ure. 

Taniar  is  sent  by  her  father  to  the  house  of  Amiion.  Her  hand 
only  must  dress  that  dish,  which  may  please  the  nice  palate  of  her 
sick  brother.  Even  the  childi'en  of  kings,  in  those  homelier  times, 
did  not  scorn  to  put  their  fingers  to  some  works  of  huswifery  ; 
She  took  flour,  and  did  knead  it,  and  did  make  cakes  in  his  sight, 
and  did  bake  the  cakes,  and  took  a  pan,  and  poured  them  out  before 
him.  Had  she  not  been  sometimes  used  to  such  domestic  employ- 
ments, she  had  been  now  to  seek  ;  neither  had  this  been  required 
of  her,  but  upon  the  knowledge  of  her  skill.  She  doth  not  plead 
the  impairing  of  her  beauty  by  the  scorching  of  the  fire ;  nor 
thinks  her  hand  too  dainty  for  such  mean  services ;  but  settles  to 
the  work,  as  one  that  would  rather  regard  the  necessities  of  her 
brother,  than  her  own  state.  Only  pride  and  idleness  have  ba- 
nished honest  and  thrifty  diligence  out  of  the  houses  of  the  great. 

This  was  not  yet  the  dish  that  Ainnon  longed  for.  It  was  the 
cook,  and  not  the  cates,  which  that  wanton  eye  affected.  Unlaw- 
ful acts  seek  for  secrecy.  The  company  is  dismissed  ;  Tamar  only 
stays.  Good  meaning  suspects  nothing.  While  she  presents  the 
meat  she  had  prepared  to  her  sick  brother,  herself  is  made  a  prey 
to  his  outrageous  lust.  The  modest  virgin  entreats  and  persuades 
in  vain.  She  lays  before  him  the  sin,  the  shame,  the  danger  of 
the  fact ;  and,  since  none  of  these  can  prevail,  fain  would  win  time, 
by  the  suggestion  of  impossible  hopes.  Nothing  but  violence  can 
stay  a  resolved  sinner :  what  he  cannot  by  entreaty,  he  will  have 
by  force.  If  the  devil  were  not  more  strong  in  men,  than  nature, 
they  would  never  seek  pleasure  in  violence. 

Amnon  hath  no  sooner  fulfilled  his  beastly  desires,  than  he  hates 
Tamar  more  than  he  loved  her.  Inordinate  hist  never  ends  but  in 
discontentment.  Loss  of  spirits  and  remorse  of  soul  make  the 
remembrance  of  that  act  tedious,  whose  expectation  promised  de- 
light. If  we  could  see  the  back  of  sinful  pleasures,  ere  we  behold 
their  face,  our  hearts  could  not  but  be  forestalled  with  a  just  de- 
testation. Brutish  Amnon,  it  was  thyself,  whom  thou  shouldst 
have  hated  for  this  villainy,  not  thine  innocent  sister.  Both  of  you 
lay  together ;  only  one  committed  incest.  What  was  she,  but  a 
patient  in  that  impotent  fury  of  lust  ?  How  unjustly  do  carnal  men 
misplace  their  affections  !  No  man  can  say,  whether  that  love  or 
this  hatred  were  more  unreasonable.  Fraud  drew  Tamar  into  the 
house  of  Amnon  ;  force  entertained  her  within,  and  drove  her  out. 
Fain  would  she  have  hid  her  shame  where  it  was  wrought,  and 
may  not  be  allowed  it.  That  roof,  under  which  she  came  with 
honour,  and  in  obedience  and  love,  may  not  be  lent  her  for  the 
time  as  a  shelter  of  her  ignominy.  Never  any  savage  could  be 
more  barbarous.  Shechem  had  ravished  Dinah  :  his  offence  did  not 
muke  her  odious:  his  affection  so  continued,  that  he  is  willing 
rather  to  draw  blood  of  himself  and  his  people,  than  forego  her 


AMNON  AND  TAMAR.  3S7 

whom  he  had  abused.  Amnon,  in  one  hour,  is  in  the  excess  of 
love  and  hate ;  and  is  sick  of  her,  for  whom  he  was  sick.  She, 
that  lately  kept  the  keys  of  his  heart,  is  now  locked  out  of  his 
doors.  Unruly  passions  run  ever  into  extremities  ;  and  are  then 
best  appayed,  when  they  are  furthest  oil*  from  reason  and  modera- 
tion. 

What  could  Amnon  think  would  be  the  event  of  so  foul  a  fact ; 
which,  as  he  had  not  the  grace  to  prevent,  so  he  hath  not  the  care 
to  conceal  ?  If  he  looked  not  so  high  as  heaven,  what  could  he 
imagine  would  follow  hereupon,  but  the  displeasure  of  a  father, 
the  danger  of  law,  the  indignation  of  a  brother,  the  shame  and 
outcries  of  the  world  ?  All  which  he  might  have  hoped  to  avoid, 
by  secrecy  and  plausible  courses  of  satisfaction.  It  is  the  just 
judgment  of  God  upon  presumptuous  offenders,  that  they  lose 
their  wit,  together  with  their  honesty  ;  and  are  either  so  blinded, 
that  they  cannot  foresee  the  issue  of  their  actions,  or  so  besotted 
that  they  do  not  regard  it. 

Poor  Tamar  can  but  bewail  that  which  she  could  not  keep,  her 
virginity ;  not  lost,  but  torn  from  her  by  a  cruel  violence.  She 
rends  her  princely  robe,  and  lays  ashes  on  her  head,  and  laments 
the  shame  of  another's  sin,  and  lives  more  desolate  than  a  widow 
in  the  house  of  her  brother  Absalom. 

In  the  mean  time,  what  a  corrosive  must  this  news  needs  be  to 
the  heart  of  good  David  ;  whose  fatherly  command  had,  out  of 
love,  cast  his  daughter  into  the  jaws  of  this  lion  !  What  an  inso- 
lent affront  must  he  needs  construe  this,  to  be  offered  by  a  son  to 
a  father ;  that  the  father  should  be  made  the  pander  of  his  own 
daughter  to  his  son  !  He,  that  lay  upon  the  ground  weeping  for 
but  the  sickness  of  an  infant,  how  vexed  do  we  think  he  was  with 
the  villainy  of  his  heir,  with  the  ravishment  of  his  daughter  ;  both 
of  them  worse  than  many  deaths  !  What  revenge  can  he  think  of 
for  so  heinous  a  crime,  less  than  death  ;  and  what  less  than  death 
is  it  to  him,  to  think  of  a  revenge  ?  Rape  was  by  the  law  of  God, 
capital ;  how  much  more,  when  it  is  seconded  with  incest !  Anger 
was  not  punishment  enough  for  so  high  an  offence  :  yet  this  is  all 
that  I  hear  of,  from  so  indulgent  a  father  ;  saving  that  he  makes  up 
the  rest  with  sorrow,  punishing  his  son's  outrage  in  himself.  The 
better  natured  and  more  gracious  a  man  is,  the  more  subject  he  is 
to  the  danger  of  an  over-remissness,  and  the  excess  of  favour  and. 
mercy.  The  mild  injustice  is  no  less  perilous  to  the  common- 
wealth, than  the  cruel. 

If  David  (perhaps  out  of  the  conscience  of  his  own  late  offence) 
will  not  punish  this  fact,  his  son  Absalom  shall ;  not  out  of  any 
care  of  justice,  but  in  a  desire  of  revenge.  Two  whole  years,  hath 
this  sly  courtier  smothered  his  indignation,  and  feigned  kindness; 
else  his  invitation  of  Amnon  in  special  had  been  suspected. 

Even  gallant  Absalom  was  a  great  sheep-master.  The  bravery 
and  magnificence  of  a  courtier  must  be  built  upon  the  grounds  of 
frugality. 

David  himself  is  bidden  to  this  bloody  sheep-shearing.    It  was 


38S 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


no  otherwise  meant,  but  that  the  father's  eyes  should  be  the  wit- 
nesses of  the  tragical  execution  of  one  son  by  another.  Only 
David's  love  kept  him  from  that  horrible  spectacle.  He  is  careful, 
not  to  be  chargeable  to  that  son,  who  cares  not  to  overcharge  his 
father's  stomach  with  a  feast  of  blood. 

Amnon  hath  so  quite  forgot  his  sin,  that  he  dares  go  to  feast  in 
that  house,  where  Tamar  was  mourning ;  and  suspects  not  the 
kindness  of  him,  whom  he  had  deserved,  of  a  brother  to  make  an 
enemy.  Nothing  is  more  unsafe  to  be  trusted,  than  the  fair  looks 
of  a  festered  heart.  Where  true  charity  or  just  satisfaction  have 
not  wrought  a  sound  reconciliation,  malice  doth  but  lurk  for  the 
opportunity  of  an  advantage. 

It  was  not  for  nothing,  that  Absalom  deferred  his  revenge ; 
which  is  now  so  much  more  exquisite,  as  it  is  longer  protracted. 
What  could  be  more  fearful,  than  when  Amnon's  heart  was  merry 
with  wine,  to  be  suddenly  stricken  with  death  ?  As  if  this  execu- 
tion had  been  no  less  intended  to  the  soul,  than  to  the  body.  How 
wickedly  soever  this  was  done  by  Absalom,  yet  how  just  was  it 
with  God,  that  he,  who,  in  two  years'  impunity,  would  find  no 
leisure  of  repentance,  should  now  receive  a  punishment,  without 
possibility  of  repentance ! 

O  God,  thou  art  righteous  to  reckon  for  those  sins,  which  hu- 
man partiality  or  negligence  hath  omitted ;  and,  while  thou  pu- 
nishest  sin  with  sin,  to  punish  sin  with  death.  If  either  David  had 
called  Amnon  to  account  for  this  villainy,  or  Amnon  had  called  him- 
self, the  revenge  had  not  been  so  desperate.  Happy  is  the  man, 
that,  by  an  unfeigned  repentance,  acquits  his  soul  from  his  known 
evils,  and  improves  the  days  of  his  peace  to  the  prevention  of 
future  vengeance ;  which,  if  it  be  not  done,  the  hand  of  God 
shall  as  surely  overtake  us  in  judgment,  as  the  hand  of  Satan  hath 
overtaken  us  in  miscarriage  unto  sin.  2  Sam.  xiii. 


ABSALOM'S  RETURN  AND  CONSPIRACY. 
One  act  of  injustice  draws  on  another.  The  injustice  of  David, 
in  not  punishing  the  rape  of  Amnon,  procures  the  injustice  of 
Absalom,  in  punishing  Amnon  with  murder.  That,  which  the  fa- 
ther should  have  justly  revenged,  and  did  not,  the  son  revenges 
unjustly. 

The  rape  of  a  sister  was  no  less  worthy  of  death,  than  the  mur- 
der of  a  brother  ;  yea,  this  latter  sin  was  therefore  the  less,  because 
that  brother  was  worthy  of  death,  though  by  another  hand  ;  whereas 
that  sister  was  guilty  of  nothing,  but  modest  beauty  :  yet  he,  that 
knew  this  rape  passed  over  two  whole  years  with  impunity,  dares 
not  trust  the  mercy  of  a  father,  in  the  pardon  of  his  murder ;  but 
for  three  years  hides  his  head  in  the  court  of  his  grandfather,  the 
king,  of  Geshur.  Doubtless,  that  heathenish  prince  gave  him  a 
kind"  welcome,  for  so  meritorious  a  revenge  of  the  dishououx  done 
to  his  own  loins. 


Absalom's  return  and  conspiracy.  3S9 

No  man  can  tell,  how  Absalom  should  have  sped  from  the  hands 
of  his  otherwise  over-indulgent  father,  if  he  had  been  apprehended 
in  the  heat  of  the  fact.  Even  the  largest  love  may  be  overstrained, 
and  may  give  a  fall  in  the  breaking.  These  fearful  effects  of  lenity 
might  perhaps  have  whetted  the  severity  of  David,  to  shut  up  these 
outrages  in  blood.  Now,  this  displeasure  was  weakened  with  age. 
Time  and  thoughts  have  digested  this  hard  morsel.  David's  heart 
told  him,  that  his  hands  had  a  share  in  this  offence  ;  that  Absalom 
did  but  give  that  stroke,  which  himself  had  wrongfully  forborne  ; 
that  the  irrecoverable  loss  of  one  son,  would  be  but  woefully  relieved 
with  the  loss  of  another :  he  therefore,  that,  in  the  news  of  the 
deceased  infant,  could  change  his  clothes,  and  wash  himself,  and 
cheer  up  his  spirits,  with  the  resolution  of,  I  shall  go  to  him,  he 
shall  not  return  to  me,  comforts  himself  concerning  Amnon  ;  and 
begins  to  long  for  Absalom. 

Those  three  years'  banishment  seemed  not  so  much  a  punishment 
to  the  son,  as  to  the  father.  Now  David  begins  to  forgive  himself; 
yet  out  of  his  wisdom,  so  inclines  to  favour,  that  he  conceals  it ; 
and  yet  so  conceals  it,  that  it  may  be  descried  by  a  cunning  eye. 
If  he  had  cast  out  no  glances  of  affection,  there  had  been  no  hopes 
for  his  Absalom ;  if  he  had  made  profession  of  love  after  so  foul 
an  act,  there  had  been  no  safety  for  others :  now  he  lets  fall  so 
much  secret  grace,  as  may  both  hold  up  Absalom  in  the  life  of  his 
hopes,  and  not  hearten  the  presumption  of  others. 

Good  eyes  see  light  through  the  smallest  chink.  The  wit  of  Joab 
hath  soon  discerned  David's  reserved  affection  ;  and  knows  how  to 
serve  him  in  that  which  he  would,  and  would  not  accomplish : 
and  now  devises,  how  to  bring  into  the  light  that  birth  of  desire, 
whereof  he  knew  David  was  both  big  and  ashamed.  A  woman  of 
Tekoah,  (that  sex  hath  ever  been  more  apt  for  wiles,)  is  suborned 
to  personate  a  mourner,  and  to  say  that,  by  way  of  parable,  which 
in  plain  terms  would  have  sounded  too  harshly  ;  and  now,  while 
she  lamentably  lays  forth  the  loss  and  danger  of  her  sons,  she  shews 
David  his  own  ;  and  while  she  moves  compassion  to  her  pretended 
issue,  she  wins  David  to  a  pity  of  himself,  and  a  favourable  sen- 
tence for  Absalom.  We  love  ourselves  better  than  others  ;  but  we 
see  others  better  than  ourselves.  Whoso  would  perfectly  know  his 
own  case,  let  him  view  it  in  another  person's. 

Parables  sped  well  with  David.  One  drew  him  to  repent  of  his 
own  sin  ;  another,  to  remit  Absalom's  punishment :  and  now,  as 
glad  to  hear  this  plea,  and  willing  to  be  persuaded  unto  that  which 
jf  he  durst  he  would  have  sought  for,  he  gratifies  Joab  with  the 
grant  of  that  suit,  which  Joab  more  gratified  him  in  suing  for  ;  Go, 
bring  again  the  young  man  Absalom. 

How  glad  is  Joab,  that  he  hath  lit  upon  one  act,  for  which  the 
sun,  both  setting  and  rising,  should  shine  upon  him  !  And  now  he 
speeds  to  Geshur,  to  fetch  back  Absalom  to  Jerusalem.  He  may 
bring  the  long-banished  prince  to  the  city  ;  but  to  the  court  he 
may  not  bring  him ;  Lei  him  turn  to  his  own  house,  and  let  him 
not  see  my  face. 


390  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

The  good  king  hath  so  smarted  with  mercy,  that  now  he  is  re- 
solved upon  austerity  ;  and  will  relent  but  by  degrees.  It  is  enough 
for  Absalom,  that  he  lives,  and  may  now  breathe  in  his  native  air  : 
David's  face  is  no  object  for  the  eyes  of  murderers.  What  a  dar- 
ling this  son  was  to  his  father  appears,  in  that,  after  an  unnatural 
and  barbarous  rebellion,  passionate  David  wishes  to  have  changed 
lives  with  him ;  yet  now,  while  his  bowels  yearned,  his  brow 
frowned.    The  face  may  not  be  seen,  where  the  heart  is  set. 

The  best  of  God's  saints  may  be  blinded  with  affection  ;  but 
when  they  shall  once  see  their  errors,  they  are  careful  to  correct 
them.  Wherefore  serves  the  power  of  grace,  but  to  subdue  the  in- 
solencies  of  nature  ?  It  is  the  wisdom  of  parents,  as  to  hide  their 
hearts  from  their  best  children,  so  to  hide  their  countenances  from 
the  ungracious.  Fleshly  respects  may  not  abate  their  rigour  to  the 
ill-deserving.  For  the  child  to  see  all  his  father's  love,  it  is  enough 
to  make  him  wanton  ;  and  of  wanton,  wicked  :  for  a  wicked  child, 
to  see  any  of  his  lather's  love,  it  emboldens  him  in  evil,  and  draws 
on  others. 

Absalom's  house  is  made  his  prison.  Justly  is  he  confined  to  the 
place,  which  he  had  stained  with  blood.  Two  years  doth  he  live 
in  Jerusalem,  without  the  happiness  of  his  father's  sight.  It  was 
enough  for  David  and  him,  to  see  the  smoke  of  each  other's  chim- 
nies.  In  the  mean  time,  how  impatient  is  Absalom  of  this  absence ! 
He  sends  for  Joab,  the  solicitor  of  his  return.  So  hard  a  hand  doth 
wise  and  holy  David  cany  over  his  reduced  son,  that  his  friendly 
intercessor,  Joab,  dares  not  visit  him. 

He,  that  afterwards  kindled  that  seditious  fire  over  all  Israel,  sets 
fire  now  on  the  field  of  Joab.  Whom  love  cannot  draw  to  him, 
fear  and  anger  shall. 

Continued  displeasure  hath  made  Absalom  desperate.  Five  years 
are  passed,  since  he  saw  the  face  of  his  father ;  and  now  he  is  no 
less  weary  of  his  life,  than  of  this  delay  ;  Wherefore  am  I  come 
down  from  Geshur?  It  had  been  better  for  me,  to  have  been  there 
still :  now  therefore  let  me  see  the  king's  face,  and  if  there  be  any 
iniquity  in  me,  let  him  kill  me.  Either  banishment  or  death  seemed 
as  tolerable  to  him,  as  the  debarring  of  his  father's  sight. 

What  a  torment  shall  it  be  to  the  wicked,  to  be  shut  out  for  ever, 
from  the  presence  of  a  God,  without  all  possible  hopes  of  recovery! 
This  was  but  a  father  of  the  flesh,  by  whom,  if  Absalom  lived  at 
first,  yet  in  him  he.  lived  not ;  yea,  not  without  him  onlv,  but 
against  him,  that  son  found  he  could  live  :  God  is  the  Father  of 
Spirits,  in  whom  we  so  live,  that  without  him  can  be  no  life,  no 
being.  To  be  ever  excluded  from  him,  in  whom  we  live  and  are, 
what  can  it  be  but  an  eternal  dying,  an  eternal  perishing  ?  If  in 
thy  presence,  O  God,  be  the  fulness  of  joy,  in  thine  absence,  must 
needs  be  the  fulness  of  horror  and  torment.  Hide  not  thy  face  from 
us,  O  Lord,  but  shew  us  the  light  of  thy  countenance,  that  we  may 
live,  and  praise  thee. 

Even  the  fire  of  Joab's  field  warmed  the  heart  of  David,  while  it 
gave  him  proof  of  the  heat  of  Absalom's  filial  affection.  As  a  man 


Absalom's  return  and  conspiracy.  391 

therefore  inwardly  weary  of  so  long  displeasure,  at  last  he  receives 
Absalom  to  his  sight,  to  his  favour;  and  seals  his  pardon  with  a  kiss. 
Natural  parents  know  not  how  to  retain  an  everlasting  anger  towards 
the  fruit  of  their  loins  ;  how  much  less  shall  the  God  of  mercies  be 
unreconcileably  displeased  with  his  own,  and  suffer  his  wrath  to 
burn  like  fire  that  cannot  be  quenched  !  He  will  not  always  chide, 
neither  will  he  keep  his  anger  for  ever.  His  wrath  endureth  but 
a  moment.  In  his  favour  is  life.  Weeping  may  endure  for  a  night, 
but  joy  cometh  in  the  morning. 

Absalom  is  now  as  great  as  fair.  Beauty  and  greatness  make 
him  proud  ;  pride  works  his  ruin.  Great  spirits  will  not  rest  con- 
tent with  a  moderate  prosperity.  Ere  two  years  be  run  out,  Absa- 
lom runs  out  into  a  desperate  plot  of  rebellion  ;  none  but  his  own 
father  was  above  him  in  Israel.  None  was  so  likely,  in  human  ex- 
pectation, to  succeed  his  father.  If  his  ambition  could  but  have 
contained  itself  for  a  few  years,  as  David  was  now  near  his  period, 
dutiful  carriage  might  have  procured  that  by  succession,  which 
now  he  sought  by  force.  An  aspiring  mind  is  ever  impatient,  and 
holds  time  itself  an  enemy,  if  it  thrust  itself  importunately  be- 
twixt the  hopes  and  fruition.  Ambition  is  never  but  in  travail ;  and 
can  find  no  intermission  of  painful  throes,  till  she  have  brought 
forth  her  abortive  desires.  How  happy  were  we,  if  our  affectation 
could  be  so  eager  of  spiritual  and  heavenly  promotions  !  Oh  that 
my  soul  could  find  itself  so  restless,  till  it  feel  the  weight  of  that 
crown  of  glory  ! 

Outward  pomp  and  nn.vonted  shews  of  magnificence,  are  wont 
much  to  affect  the  light  minds  of  the  vulgar.  Absalom  therefore, 
to  the  incomparable  comeliness  of  his  person,  adds  the  unusual 
state  of  a  more  than  princely  equipage.  His  chariots  rattle,  and  his 
horses  trample  proudly  in  the  streets.  Fifty  footmen  run  before 
their  glittering  master.  Jerusalem  rings  of  their  glorious  prince ; 
and  is  ready  to  adore  these  continual  triumphs  of  peace. 

Excess  and  novelty  of  expensive  bravery  and  ostentation  in 
public  persons,  give  just  cause  to  suspect  either  vanity  or  a  plot. 
True-hearted  David  can  misdoubt  nothing  in  him,  to  whom  he  had 
both  given  life,  and  forgiven  this.  Love  construed  all  this,  as 
meant  to  the  honour  of  a  father's  court,  to  the  expression  of  joy 
and  thankfulness  for  his  reconcilement. 

The  eyes  and  tongues  of  men  are  thus  taken  up :  now  hath  Ab- 
salom laid  snares  for  their  hearts  also.  He  rises  early,  and  stands 
beside  the  way  of  the  gate ;  Ambition  is  no  niggard  of  her  pains  ; 
seldom  ever  is  good  meaning  so  industrious:  the  more  he  sinned 
in  beauty  and  royal  attendance,  so  much  more  glory  it  was  to 
neglect  himself,  and  to  prefer  the.  care  of  justice  to  his  own  case. 
Neither  is  Absalom  more  painful  than  plausible.  His  ear  is  open  to 
all  plaintives,  all  petitioners.  There  is  no  cause  which  he  flatters 
not;  See,  thy  matters  arts  good  and  right.  His  hand  flatters  every 
corner  with  a  salutation,  his  lips  with  a  kiss.  All  men,  all  matters 
are  soothed,  saving  the  state  and  government :  the  censure  of  that 
is  no  less  deep,  than  the  applause  of  all  others ;  There  is  none  dc~ 


392 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


puted  of  the  king  to  hear  thee.  What  insinuations  could  be  more 
powerful  ?  No  music  can  be  so  sweet  to  the  ears  of  the  unstable 
multitude,  as  to  hear  well  of  themselves,  ill  of  their  governors. 
Absalom  needs  not  to  wish  himself  upon  the  bench.  Every  man 
says,  "  Oh,  what  a  curious  prince  is  Absalom  !  What  a  just  and 
careful  ruler  would  Absalom  be  ?  How  happy  were  we,  if  we 
might  be  judged  by  Absalom.  Those  qualities  which  are  wont 
singly  to  grace  others,  have  conspired  to  meet  in  Absalom  ;  good- 
liness  of  person,  magnificence  of  state,  gracious  affability,  unwea- 
ried diligence,  humility  in  greatness,  feeling  pity,  love  of  justice, 
care  of  the  commonwealth.  The  world  hath  not  so  complete  a 
prince  as  Absalom."  Thus  the  hearts  of  the  people  are  not  won, 
but  stolen,  by  a  close  traitor,  from  their  lawfully  anointed  sove- 
reign. 

Over-fair  shews  are  a  just  argument  of  unsoundness.  No  natural 
face  hath  so  clear  a  white  and  red,  as  the  painted.  Nothing  wants 
now  but  a  cloke  of  religion,  to  perfect  the  treachery  of  that  ungra- 
cious son,  who  carried  peace  in  his  name,  war  in  his  heart:  and 
how  easily  is  that  put  on  !  Absalom  hath  a  holy  vow  to  be  paid  in 
Hebron  !  The  devout  man  had  made  it  long  since,  while  he  was 
exiled  in  Syria ;  and  now  he  hastes  to  perform  it ;  If  the  Lord 
shall  bring  me  back  again  to  Jerusalem,  then  will  I  serve  the  Lord. 
Wicked  hypocrites  care  not  to  play  with  God,  that  they  may  mock 
men .  The  more  deformed  any  act  is,  the  fairer  visor  it  still  seeketh. 

How  glad  is  the  good  old  king,  that  he  is  blessed  with  so  godly 
a  son  ;  whom  he  dismisseth  laden  with  his  causeless  blessings  ! 
What  trust  is  there  in  flesh  and  blood,  when  David  is  not  safe  from 
his  own  loins  ? 

The  conspiracy  is  now  fully  forged,  there  lacked  nothing  but 
this  guilt  of  piety  to  win  favour  ana  value  in  all  eyes  ;  and  now  it 
is  a  wonder,  that  but  two  hundred  honest  citizens  go  up  with  Ab- 
salom from  Jerusalem.  The  true-hearted  lie  most  open  to  credu-i 
lity.  How  easy  it  is  to  beguile  harmless  intentions !  The  name  of 
David's  son  carries  them  against  the  father  of  Absalom  ;  and  now 
these  simple  Israelites  are  unwittingly  made  loyal  rebels.  Their 
hearts  are  free  from  a  plot,  and  they  mean  nothing  but  fidelity,  in 
the  attendance  of  a  traitor.  How  many  thousands  are  thus  igno- 
rantly  misled  into  the  train  of  error  !  Their  simplicity  is  as  worthy 
of  pity,  as  their  misguidance  of  indignation.  Those,  that  will  suffer 
themselves  to  be  carried  with  semblances  of  tvuth  and  faithfulness, 
must  needs  be  as  far  from  safety  as  innocence.  2  Sam,  xiv. 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 

BOOK  XVI. 


TO  THE  RIGHT  HONOURABLE  AND  TRULY  NOBLE  LORD, 

FRANCIS,  LORD  RUSSELL, 

BARON  OF  THORNHAUGH, 
ALL  INCREASE  OF  HONOUR  AND  HAPPINESS. 


RIGHT  HONOURABLE  : 

Yo U  shall  not  need  to  impute  it  to  any  other  reason  besides  your 
virtues,  that  I  have  presumed  to  shroud  this  piece  of  my  labours 
under  your  noble  patronage.  The  world  hath  taken  just  notice, 
how  much  the  Gospel  is  graced  by  your  real  profession  ;  whom  nei- 
ther honour  hath  made  overlie,  nor  wealth  lavish,  nor  charge  mi- 
serable, nor  greatness  licentious.  Go  on  happily  in  these  safe  and 
gainful  steps  of  goodness  ;  and  still  honour  the  God  that  hath  ho- 
noured you.  In  the  mean  time,  accept  from  my  unworthy  hands 
these  poor  Meditations  ;  more  high  for  their  subject,  than  mean  for 
their  author  :  wherein,  Shimei's  curses  shall  teach  you,  how  unable 
either  greatness  or  innocence  is,  to  bear  off'  the  blows  of  ill  tongues; 
and  how  baseness  ever  moulds  itself  according  to  the  advantage  of 
times.  AhitopheV s  depth,  compared  with  his  end,  shall  shew,  how 
witless  and  insensate  craft  is,  when  it  strives  against  honesty  ;  and 
how  justly  are  they  forsaken  of  their  reason,  that  have  abandoned 
God.  The  blood  of  Absalom  and  Sheba  proclaim  the  inevitable  re- 
venge of  rebellion,  which  neither  in  woods  nor  walls  can  find  safety. 
The  late  famine  of  Israel,  for  the  forgotten  violence  offered  to  the 
Gibeonites,  shews  what  note  God  takes  of  our  oaths,  and  what  sure 
vengeance  of  their  violation.  Ddvid's  muster,  seconded  with  the 
plague  of  Israel,  teaches,  how  highly  God  may  be  offended  with  sins 
of  the  least  appearance  ;  how  severe  to  his  own  ;  how  merciful  to 
that  severity.  If  these  my  thoughts  shall  be  approved  beneficial  to 
any  soul,  I  am  rich.  I  shall  vow  my  prayers  to  their  success,  and 
to  the  happiness  of  your  honourable  family ,  both  in  the  root  and 
branches ;  whereto  I  am,  in  all  humble  duty,  devoted, 

JOSEPH  HALL. 


SHIMEI  CURSING. 

With  a  heavy  heart,  and  a  covered  head,  and  a  weeping  eve, 
and  bare  feet,  is  David  gone  away  from  Jerusalem.  Never  did  he 
with  more  joy  come  up  to  this  city,  than  now  he  left  it  with  sor- 
row :  how  could  he  do  otherwise,  whom  the  insurrection  of  his 


394r  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

own  son  drove  out  from  his  house,  from  his  throne,  from  the  ark 
of  God  ? 

And  now,  when  the  depth  of  this  grief  deserved  nothing  but 
compassion,  the  foul  mouth  of  Shimei  entertains  David  with  curses. 
There  is  no  small  cruelty,  in  the  picking  out  of  a  time  for  mischief. 
That  word  would  scarce  gall  at  one  season,  which  at  another  kil- 
leth.  The  same  shaft,  flying  with  the  wind,  pierces  deep,  which, 
against  it,  can  hardly  find  strength  to  stick  upright.  The  valour 
and  justice  of  children  condemn  it  for  in  juriously  cowardly ,  to  strike 
their  adversary  when  he  is  once  down.  It  is  the  murder  of  the 
tongue,  to  insult  upon  those  whom  God  hath  humbled,  and  to  draw 
blood  of  that  back,  which  is  yet  blue  from  the  hand  of  the  Al- 
mighty. If  Shimei  had  not  presumed  upon  David's  dejection,  he 
durst  not  have  been  thus  bold  ;  now,  he,  that  perhaps  durst  not 
have  looked  at  one  of  those  worthies  single,  defies  them  all  at  once, 
and  doth  both  cast  and  speak  stones  against  David  and  all  his  army. 
The  malice  of  base  spirits  sometimes  carries  them  further,  than  the 
courage  of  the  valiant. 

In  all  the  time  of  David's  prosperity,  we  heard  no  news  of  Shi- 
mei :  his  silence  and  colourable  obedience  made  him  pass  for  a 
great  subject  ;  yet  all  that  while  was  his  heart  unsound  and  trai- 
torous. Peace  and  good  success  hide  many  a  false  heart,  like  as 
the  snow-drift  covers  a  heap  of  dung,  which,  once  melting  away, 
descries  the  rottenness  that  lay  within.  Honour  and  welfare  are 
but  flattering  glasses  of  men's  affections.  Adversity  will  not  de- 
ceive us;  but  will  make  a  true  report,  as  of  our  own  powers,  so  of 
the  disposition  of  others. 

He,  that  smiled  on  David  in  his  throne,  curseth  him  in  his  flight. 
If  there  be  any  quarrels,  any  exceptions  to  be  taken  against  a  man, 
let  him  look  to  have  them  laid  in  his  dish,  when  he  fares  the  hardest. 
Tht6  practice  have  wicked  men  learned  of  their  master,  to  take 
the  utmost  advantages  of  our  afflictions.  He  that  suffers  had  need 
to  be  double  armed,  both  against  pain  and  censure. 

Every  word  of  Shimei  was  a  slander :  he,  that  took  Saul's  spear 
from  his  head,  and  repented  to  have  but  cut  the  lap  of  his  gar- 
ment, is  reproached  as  a  man  of  blood  :  the  man  after  God's  own 
heart  is  branded  for  a  man  of  Belial.  He,  that  was  sent  for  out  of 
the  fields  to  be  anointed,  is  taxed  for  a  usurper.  If  David's  hand 
were  stained  with  blood,  yet  not  of  Saul's  house  ;  it  was  his  servant, 
not  his  master,  that  bled  bv  him  ;  yet  is  the  blood  of  the  Lord's 
anointed  cast  in  David's  teeth,  by  the  spite  of  a  false  tongue.  Did 
we  not  see  David,  after  all  the  proofs  of  his  humble  loyalty,  shed- 
ding the  blood  of  that  Amalekite,  who  did  but  say  he  shed  Saul's  ? 
Did  we  not  hear  him  lament  passionately  for  the  death  of  so  ill  a 
master,  chiding  the  mountains  of  Gilboa  on  which  he  fell,  and  an- 
grily wishing  that  no  dew  might  fall  where  that  blood  was  poured 
out  ;  and  charging  the  daughters  of  Israel  to  weep  over  Saul,  who 
bad  clothed  them  in  scarlet  ?  Did  we  not  hear  and  see  him  inquir- 
ing for  any  remainder  of  the  house  of  Saul,  that  he  might  shew 
him  the  kindness  of  God  f   Did  we  not  see  him  honouring  lame 


SHIMEI  CURSING.  395 

Mephibosheth,  with  a  princely  seat  at  his  own  table  ?  Did  we  not 
see  him  revenging  the  blood  of  his  rival  Ishbosheth,  upon  the  heads 
of  Rechab  and  Baanah  ?  What  could  any  living  man  have  done 
'  more,  to  wipe  off  these  bloody  aspersions  ?  Yet  is  not  a  Shimei 
ashamed  to  charge  innocent  David,  with  all  the  blood  of  the  house 
of  Saul.  How  is  it  likely  this  clamorous  wretch  had  secretly  tra- 
duced the  name  of  David,  all  the  time  of  his  government,  that 
dares  thus  accuse  him  to  his  face,  before  all  the  mighty  men  of  Is- 
rael, who  were  witnesses  of  the  contrary  I 

The  greater  the  person  is,  the  more  open  do  his  actions  lie  to 
misinterpretation  and  censure.  Every  tongue  speaks  partially,  ac- 
cording to  the  interest  he  hath  in  the  cause,  or  the  patient.  It  is  not 
possible,  that  eminent  persons  should  be  free  from  imputations  :  in- 
nocence can  no  more  protect  them,  than  power. 

If  the  patience  of  David  can  digest  this  indignity,  his  train  can- 
not. Their  fingers  could  not  but  itch,  to  return  iron  for  stones.  If 
Shimei  rail  on  David,  Abishai  rails  on  Shimei.  Shimei  is  of  Saul's 
family  ;  Abishai  of  David's  :  each  speaks  for  his  own.  Abishai 
most  justly  bends  his  tongue  against  Shimei,  as  Shimei  against  Da- 
vid most  unjustly.  Had  Shimei  been  any  other  than  a  dog,  he  had 
never  so  rudely  barked  at  a  harndess  passenger;  neither  could  he 
deserve  less  than  the  loss  of  that  head,  which  had  uttered  such 
blasphemies  against  God's  anointed.  The  zeal  of  Abishai  doth  but 
plead  for  justice,  and  is  checked ;  What  have  I  to  do  with  you,  ye 
sons  of  Zeruiah?  David  said  not  so  much  to  his  reviler,  as  to  his 
abettor.  He  well  saw,  that  a  revenge  was  just,  but  not  seasonable. 
He  found  the  present  a  fit  time,  to  suffer  wrongs,  not  to  right  them ; 
he  therefore  gives  way  rather  meekly  to  his  own  humiliation,  than 
to  the  punishment  of  another.  There  arc  seasons  wherein  lawful 
motions  are  not  fit  to  be  cherished  :  anger  doth  not  become  a 
mourner  :  one  passion  at  once  is  enough  for  the  soul.  Unadvised 
zeal  may  be  more  prejudicial,  than  a  cold  remissness. 

What  if  the  Lord,  for  the  correction  of  his  servant,  have  said  un- 
to Shimei,  Curse  David ;  yet  is  Shimei's  curse  no  less  worthy  of 
Abishai's  sword.  The  sin  of  Shimei's  curse  was  his  own  ;  the  smart 
ot  the  curse  was  God's.  God  wills  that,  as  David's  chastisement, 
which  he  hates,  as  Shimei's  wickedness.  That  lewd  tongue  moved 
from  God  ;  it  moved  lewdly  from  Satan.  Wicked  men  are  never 
the  freer  from  guilt  or  punishment,  for  that  hand  which  the  Holy 
God  hath  in  their  offensive  actions.  Yet  David  can  say,  Let  him 
alone,  and  let  him  curse,  for  the  Lord  hath  bidden  him  ;  as  mean- 
ing to  give  a  reason  of  his  own  patience,  rather  than  Shimei's  im- 
punity. The  issue  shewed,  how  well  David  could  distinguish  be- 
twixt the  act  of  God  and  of  a  traitor  ;  how  he  could  both  kiss  the 
rod,  and  burn  it.  There  can  be  none  so  strong  motive  of  our  meek 
submission  to  evils,  as  the  acknowledgment  of  their  original.  He, 
that  can  see  the  hand  of  God  striking  him  by  the  hand  or  tongue 
ot  an  enemy,  shall  more  awe  the  first  mover  of  his  arm,  than  ma- 
Jign  the  instrument. 

Even  while  David  laments  the  rebellion  of  his  son,  he  gains  by 


396  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

it ;  and  makes  that  the  argument  of  his  patience,  which  was  the 
exercise  of  it;  Behold,  my  son,  which  came  forth  of  my  bowels, 
seeketh  my life ;  how  much  more  now  may  this  Benjamite  do  it? 
The  wickedness  of  an  Absalom  may  rob  his  father  of  comfort,  but 
shall  help  to  add  to  his  father's  goodness.  It  is  the  advantage  of 
great  crosses,  that  the)-  swallow  up  the  less.  One  man's  sin  cannot 
be  excused  by  another's  ;  the  lesser,  by  the  greater ;  if  Absalom 
be  a  traitor,  Shimei  may  not  curse  and  rebel :  but  the  passion  con- 
ceived from  the  indignity  of  a  stranger,  may  be  abated  by  the 
harder  measure  of  our  own.  If  we  can  therefore  suffer,  because 
we  have  suffered,  we  have  profited  by  our  affliction.  A  weak  heart 
faints  with  every  addition  of  succeeding  trouble:  the  strong  recol- 
lects itself  ;  and  is  grown  so  skilful,  that  it  bears  off  one  mischief 
with  another. 

It  is  not  either  the  unnatural  insurrection  of  Absalom,  nor  the  un- 
just curses  of  Shimei,  that  can  put  David  quite  out  of  heart;  It 
may  be,  that  theLord  will  lookor.  mine  affliction,  and  will  requite  good 
for  his  cursing  this  day.  So  well  was  David  acquainted  with  the 
proceedings  of  God,  that  he  knew  cherishing  was  ever  wont  to 
follow  stripes ;  after  vehement  evacuation,  cordials ;  after  a  dark 
night,  the  clear  light  of  the  morning  :  hope  therefore  dotli  not 
only  uphold,  but  cheer  up  his  heart,  in  the  midst  of  his  sorrow.  If 
we  can  look  beyond  the  cloud  of  our  affliction,  and  see  the  sun- 
shine of  comfort  on  the  other  side  of  it,  we  cannot  be  so  discou- 
raged with  the  presence  of  evil,  as  heartened  with  the  issue  ;  as,  on 
the  contrary,  let  a  man  be  never  so  merrv  within,  and  see  pain  and 
misery  waiting  for  him  at  the  door,  his  expectation  of  evil  shall 
easily  daunt  all  the  sense  of  his  pleasure.  The  retributions  of  tem- 
poral favours  go  but  by  peradventures  ;  It  may  be,  the  Lord  will 
took  on  mine  affliction;  of  eternal,  are  certain  and  infallible.  If 
we  suffer,  we  shall  reign  :  why  should  not  the  assurance  of  reign- 
ing make  us  triumph  in  suffering  ? 

David's  patience  draws  on  the  insolence  of  Shimei.  Evil  natures 
grow  presumptuous  upon  forbearance  :  in  good  dispositions,  injury 
unanswered  grows  weary  of  itself,  and  dies  in  a  voluntary  remorse; 
but  in  those  dogged  stomachs,  which  are  only  capable  of  the  re- 
straints of  fear,  the  silent  digestion  of  a  former  wrong  provokes  a 
second.  Mercy  had  need  to  be  guided  with  wisdom,  lestitpixwe 
cruel  to  itself. 

Oh  the  base  minds  of  inconstant  time-servers!  Stay  but  awhile, 
till  the  wheel  be  a  little  turned,  you  shall  see  humble  Shimei  fall 
down  on  his  face  before  David,  in  his  return  over  Jordan  :  now, 
his  submission  shall  equal  his  former  rudeness  ;  his  prayers  shall 
requite  his  curses  ;  his  tears  make  amends  for  his  stones  ;  Let  not 
my  lord  impute  iniquity  unto  me  t  neither  do  thou  remember  that 
which  thy  servant  did  perversely,  the  day  that  my  lord  tlie  king 
went  out  of  Jerusalem,  that  the  king  should  take  it  to  heart ;  for  thy 
servant  doth  know  that  I  have  sinned.  False-hearted  Shimei  !  had 
Absalom  prospered,  thou  hadst  not  sinned  ;  thou  hadst  not  repent- 
ed :  then  hadst  thou  bragged  of  thine  insultation  over  his  miseries, 


AHITOPHEL.  397 

whose  pardon  thou  now  beggest  with  tears.  The  changes  of  worldly 
minds  are  thankless,  since  they  are  neither  wrought  out  of  con- 
science nor  love,  but  only  by  slavish  fear  of  just  punishment. 

David  could  say  no  more  to  testify  his  sorrow  for  his  heinous 
sins  against  God  to  Nathan,  than  Shimei  says  of  himself  to  Da- 
vid ;  whereto  may  be  added  the  advantage  of  a  voluntary  con- 
fession in  this  offender,  which  in  David  was  extorted  by  the  reproof 
of  a  prophet  t  yet  is  David's  confession  seriously  penitent ;  Shi- 
mei's,  craftily  hypocritical.  Those  alterations  are  justly  suspected, 
which  are  shaped  according  to  the  times  and  outward  occasions : 
the  true  penitent  looks  only  at  God  and  his  sin,  and  is  changed 
when  all  others  things  are  themselves. 

Great  offences  had  need  of  answerable  satisfaction.  As  Shimei 
was  the  only  man  of  the  house  of  Benjamin  that  came  forth  and 
cursed  David  in  his  flight,  so  is  he  the  first  man  (even  before  those  of 
Joseph,  though  nearer  in  situation)  that  comes  to  meet  David  ia 
his  return  with  prayers  and  gratulations.  Notorious  offenders  may 
not  think  to  sit  down,  with  the  task  of  ordinary  services.  The  re- 
tributions of  their  obedience  must  be  proportionable  to  their 
crimes.  2  Samuel  xvi. 


AHITOPHEL. 

So  soon  as  David  heard  of  Ahitophel's  hand  in  that  conspiracy,  he 
falls  to  his  prayers  ;  0  Lord,  I  pray  thee,  turn  the  counsel  of  Ahi- 
tophel  into  foolishness.  The  known  wisdom  of  his  revolted  coun- 
sellor, made  him  a  dangerous  and  dreadful  adversary.  Great  parts 
misemployed  cannot  but  prove  most  mischievous.  When  wicked- 
ness is  armed  with  wit  and  power,  none  but  a  God  can  defeat  it : 
when  we  are  matched  with  a  strong  and  subtle  enemy,  it  is  high 
time,  if  ever,  to  be  devout :  if  the  bounty  of  God  have  thought 
good  to  furnish  his  creatures  with  powers  to  war  against  himself, 
his  wisdom  knows  how  to  turn  the  abuse  of  those  powers  to  the 
shame  of  the  owners,  and  the  glory  of  the  giver. 

Oh  the  policy  of  this  Machiavel  of  Israel,  no  less  deep  than  hell 
itself!  "  Go  in  to  thy  father's  concitbines,  which  he  hath  left  to  keep 
the  house  ;  and  when  all  Israel  shall  hear  that  thou  art  abhorred 
of  thy  father,  the  hands  of  all  that  are  with  thee  shall  be  strong. 
The  first  care  must  be  to  secure  the  faction.  There  can  be  no 
safety,  in  siding  with  a  doubtful  rebel.  If  Absalom  be  a  traitor, 
yet  he  is  a  son.  Nature  may  return  to  itself :  Absalom  may  relent; 
David  may  remit  :  where  then  are  we,  that  have  helped  to  promote 
the  conspiracy  ?  The  danger  is  ours,  while  this  breach  may  be 
pieced.  There  is  no  way,  but  to  engage  Absalom  in  some  further 
act,  incapable  of  forgiveness.  Besides  the  throne,  let  him  violate 
the  bed  of  his  father:  unto  his  treason,  let  him  add  an  incest,  no 
less  unnatural :  now  shall  the  world  see,  that  Absalom  neither 
Itopes  nor  cares  for  the  reconciliation  of  a  father.  Our  quarrel 
caft  never  have  any  safe  ead  but  victory ;  the  hope  whereof  de- 


3SJ8 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


pends  upon  tlie  resolution  of  our  followers  :  they  cannot  be  reso- 
lute, but  upon  the  unpardonable  wickedness  of  their  leader.  Nei- 
ther can  this  villainy  be  shameful  enough,  if  it  be  secret.  The 
closeness  of  evil  argues  fear  or  modesty  ;  neither  of  which  can  be- 
seem him  that  would  be  a  successful  traitor  :  set  up  a  tent  on  the 
top  of  the  house,  and  let  all  Israel  be  witnesses  of  thy  sin,  and 
thy  father's  shame.  Ordinary  crimes  are  for  vulgar  offenders  :  let 
Absalom  sin  eminently  ;  and  do  that,  which  may  make  the  world 
at  once  to  blush  and  wonder." 

Who  would  ever  have  thought,  that  Ahitophel  had  lived  at  court, 
at  the  council-table  of  a  David?  Who  would  think,  that  mouth 
had  ever  spoken  well  ?  Yet  had  he  been  no  other  than  as  the  oracle 
of  God,  to  the  religious  court  of  Israel ;  even  while  he  was  not 
wise  enough  to  be  good.  Policy  and  grace  are  not  always  lodged 
under  one  roof.  This  man,  while  he  was  one  of  David's  deep 
counsellors,  was  one  of  David's  fools,  that  said  in  their  hearts,  There 
is  no  God ;  else  he  could  not  have  hoped  to  make  good  an  evil  with 
worse,  to  build  the  success  of  treason  upon  incest.  Profane  hearts 
do  so  contrive  the  plots  of  their  wickedness,  as  if  there  were  no  over- 
ruling power,  to  cross  their  designs,  or  to  revenge  them.  He  that 
sits  in  heaven  laughs  them  to  scorn  ;  and  so  far  gives  way  to  their 
sins,  as  their  sins  may  prove  plagues  unto  themselves. 

These  two  sons  of  David  met  with  pestilent  counsel  :  Amnon  is 
advised  to  incest  with  his  sister  ;  Absalom  is  advised  to  incest  with 
his  father's  concubines  :  that  by  Jonadab  ;  this  by  Ahitophel.  Both 
prevail.  It  is  as  easy,  at  least,  to  take  ill  counsel,  as  to  give  it. 
Proneness  to  villainy  in  the  great,  cannot  want  either  projectors  to 
devise,  or  parasites  to  execute,  the  most  odious  sins,  t 

The  tent  is  spread,  lest  it  should  not  be  conspicuous  enough,  on 
the  top  of  the  house.  The  act  is  done,  in  the  sight  of  all  Israel. 
The  filthiness  of  the  sin  was  not  so  great,  as  the  impudency  of  the 
manner.  When  the  prophet  Nathan  came  with  that  heavy  mes- 
sage of  reproof  and  menace  to  David,  after  his  sin  with  Bathshe- 
ba,  he  could  say  from  God,  Behold,  I  will  raise  up  evit  against 
thee,  out  of  thine  own  house ;  and  will  take  thy  wives  before  thine 
eyes,  and  give  them  unto  thy  neighbour,  and  he  shall  lie  with  thy 
wives  in  the  sight  of  this  sun  :  for  thou  didst  it  secretly,  but  I  will 
do  this  thing  before  all  Israel,  and  before  this  sun.  The  coun- 
sel of  Ahitophel  and  the  lust  of  Absalom  have  fulfilled  the  judg- 
ment of  God.  Oh  the  wisdom  of  the  Almighty,  that  can  use  the 
worst  evils  well,  and  most  justly  make  the  sins  of  men  his  execu- 
tioners ! 

It  was  the  sin  of  Reuben,  that  he  defiled  his  father's  bed  ;  yet 
not  in  the  same  height  of  lewdness.  What  Reuben  did  in  a  youth- 
ful wantonness,  Absalom  did  in  a  malicious  despite:  Reuben  sin- 
ned with  one,  Absalom  with  ten  ;  Reuben  secretly,  Absalom  in  the 
open  eyes  of  heaven  and  earth  ;  yet  old  Jacob  could  say  of  Reu- 
ben, Thou  shall  not  excel;  thy  dignity  is  gone  ;  while  Ahitophel 
says  to  Absalom,  "  Thy  dignity  shall  arise  from  incest;  climb  up 
to  thy  father's  bed,  if  thou  wilt  sit  in  his  throne."    If  Ahitophel 


AHITOPHEL.  399 

were  a  politician,  Jacob  was  a  prophet :  if  the  one  spake  from 
carnal  sense,  the  other  from  divine  revelation.  Certainly,  to  sin  is 
not  the  way  to  prosper  :  whatever  vain  fools  promise  to  themselves, 
There  is  no  wisdom,  nor  understanding,  nor  counsel  against  the 
Lord. 

After  the  rebellion  is  secured  for  continuance,  the  next  care  is 
that  it  may  end  in  victory.  This  also  hath  the  working  head  of 
Ahitophel  projected.  Wit  and  experience  told  him,  that,  in  these 
cases  of  assault,  celerity  uses  to  bring  forth  the  happiest  dispatch  ; 
whereas  protraction  is  no  small  advantage  to  the  defendant.  Let 
vie,  saith  he,  chuseout  now  twelve  thousand  men,  and  L  itnll  up,  and 
follow  after  David  this  night  ,■  and  L  will  come  upon  him,  while  he 
is  weary  and  weak-handed.  No  advice  could  be  more  pernicious ; 
for,  besides  the  weariness  and  unreadiness  of  David  and  his  army, 
the  spirits  of  that  worthy  leader  were  daunted  and  dejected  with 
sorrow,  and  offered  way  to  the  violence  of  a  sudden  assault.  Tlfe 
field  had  been  half  won,  ere  any  blow  stricken.  Ahitophel  could 
not  have  been  reputed  so  wise,  if  he  had  not  learned  the  due  pro- 
portion betwixt  actions  and  times.  He,  that  observeth  every  wind, 
shall  never  sow;  but  he,  that  observeth  no  wind  at  all,  shall  never 
reap. 

The  likeliest  devices  do  not  always  succeed.  The  God,  that  had 
appointed  to  establish  David's  throne,  and  determined  Solomon  to 
his  succession,  finds  means  to  cross  the  plot  of  Ahitophel,  by  a 
less  probable  advice.  Hushai  was  not  sent  back  for  nothing. 
Where  God  hath  in  his  secret  will  decreed  any  event,  he  inclines 
the  wills  of  men  to  approve  that,  which  may  promote  his  own  pur- 
poses. Neither  had  Hushai  so  deep  a  head,  neither  was  his  coun- 
sel so  sure,  as  that  of  Ahitophel  ;  yet  his  tongue  shall  refel  Ahito- 
phel, and  divert  Absalom.  The  pretences  were  fairer,  though  the 
grounds  were  unsound.  First,  to  sweeten  his  Opposition,  he  yields 
the  praise  of  wisdom  to  his  adversary  in  all  other  counsels,  that  he 
may  have  leave  to  deny  it  in  this ;  his  very  contradiction  in  the 
present,  insinuates  a  general  allowance:  then,  he  suggests  certain 
apparent  truths  concerning  David's  valour  and  skill,  to  give 
countenance  to  the  inferences  of  his  improbabilities :  lastly,  he 
cunningly  feeds  the  proud  humour  of  Absalom,  in  magnifying  tw. 
power  and  extent  of  his  commands,  and  ends  in  the  glorious  boasts 
of  his  fore-promised  victory.  As  it  is  with  faces,  so  with  counsel, 
that  is  fair  that  pleascth.  He,  that  gives  the  utterance  to  words, 
gives  also  their  speed.  Favour,  both  of  speech  and  men,  is  not 
ever  according  to  desert,  but  according  to  fore-ordination.  The 
tongue  cf  Hushai,  and  the  heart  of  Absalom,  is  guided  by  a  power 
above  their  own;  Hushai  shall  therefore  prevail  with  Absalom, 
that  the  treason  of  Absalom  may  not  prevail.  He,  that  worketh  all 
in  all  things,  so  disposeth  of  wicked  men  and  spirits,  that,  while 
they  do  most  oppose  his  revealed  will,  they  execute  his  secret; 
and,  whde  they  think  most  to  please,  they  overthrow  themselves. 

When  Absalom  first  met  Hushai  returned  to  Jerusalem,  he 
Upbraided  him  pleasantly,  with  the  scoff  of  his  professed  friendship 


400  CONTEMPLATIONS, 

to  David  ;  Is  this  thy  kindness  to  thy  friend  ?  Sometimes  there  is 
more  truth  in  the  mouth,  than  in  the  heart ;  more  in  jest,  than  in 
earnest.  Hushai  was  a  friend  ;  his  stay  was  his  kindness  ;  and  now 
he  hath  done  that,  for  which  he  was  left  at  Jerusalem ;  disap- 
ointed  Ahitophel,  preserved  David.  Neither  did  his  kindness  to 
is  friend  rest  here;  but,  as  one  that  was  justly  jealous  of  him 
with  whom  he  was  allowed  to  temporize,  he  mistrusts  the  appro- 
bation of  Absalom ;  and,  not  daring  to  put  the  life  of  his  master 
upon  such  a  hazard,  he  gives  charge  to  Zadok  and  Abiathar,  of 
this  intelligence  unto  David.  We  cannot  be  too  suspicious,  when 
we  have  to  do  with  those  that  are  faithless.  We  cannot  be  too  cu- 
rious, of  the  safety  of  good  princes. 

Hushai  fears  not  to  descry  the  secrets  of  Absalom's  counsel.  To 
betray  a  traitor  is  no  other  than  a  commendable  work. 

Zadok  and  Abiathar  are  fast  within  the  gates  of  Jerusalem.  Their 
sons  lay  purposely  abroad  in  the  fields.  This  message,  that  con- 
cerned no  less  than  the  life  of  David,  and  the  whole  kingdom  of 
Israel,  must  be  trusted  with  a  maid  :  sometimes  it  pleaseth  the  wis- 
dom of  God,  who  hath  the  variety  of  heaven  and  earth  before  him, 
to  single  out  weak  instruments  for  great  services  ;  and  they  shall 
serve  li is  turn,  as  well  as  the  best:  no  counsellor  of  state  could 
have  made  this  dispatch  more  effectual. 

Jonathan  and  Ahimaaz  arc  sent,  descried,  pursued,  preserved. 
The  fidelity  of  a  maid  instructed  them  in  their  message ;  the  sub- 
tlety of  a  woman  saved  their  lives.  At  the  well  of  Rogel,  they  re- 
ceived their  message  ;  in  the  well  of  Bahurim,  was  their  life  aved. 
The  sudden  wit  of  a  woman  hath  choked  the  mouth  of  her  well 
with  dried  corn,  that  it  might  not  bewray  the  messengers. 

And  now  David  hears  safely  of  his  danger,  and  prevents  it ; 
and,  though  weary  with  travel  and  laden  with  sorrow,  he  must 
spend  the  night  in  his  remove.  God's  promises  of  his  deliverance 
and  the  confirmation  of  his  kingdom,  may  not  make  him  neglect 
the  means  of  his  safety.  If  He  be  faithful,  we  may  not  be  careless  ; 
since  our  diligence  and  care  are  appointed  for  the  factors  of  that 
divine  providence.  The  acts  of  God  must  abate  nothing  of  ours; 
rather  must  we  labour,  by  doing  that  which  he  requireth,  to  further 
that  which  he  decreeth. 

There  are  those,  that  have  great  wits  for  the  public,  none  for 
themselves  :  such  was  Ahitophel ;  who,  while  he  had  power  to 
govern  a  state,  could  not  tell  how  to  rule  his  own  passions.  Never 
till  now,  do  we  find  his  counsel  balked  ;  neither  was  it  now  reject- 
ed as  ill,  only  Hushai's  was  allowed  for  better.  He  can  live  no 
longer,  now  that  he  is  beaten  at  his  own  weapon  :  this  alone  is 
cause  enough,  to  saddle  his  ass  ;  and  to  go  home,  and  put  the  halter 
about  his  own  neck.  Pride  causes  men,  both  to  misinterpret  dis- 
graces, and  to  overrate  them. 

Now  is  David's  prayer  heard  :  Ahitophel 's  counsel  is  turned  into 
foolishness.  Desperate  Ahitophel !  what  if  thou  be  not  the  wisest 
•man  of  all  Israel  r  Even  those,  that  have  not  attained  to  the  highest 
pitch  of  wisdom,  have  found  contentment  in  a  mediocrity.  What 


THE  DEATH  OF  ABSALOM.  401 

if  thy  counsel  were  despised  ?  A  wise  man  knows  to  live  happily, 
in  spight  of  an  unjust  contempt.  What  madness  is  this,  to  revenge 
another  man's  reputation  upon  thyself  ?  And,  while  thou  strivest 
for  the  highest  room  of  wisdom,  to  run  into  the  grossest  extremity 
of  folly  ?  "Worldly  wisdom  is  no  protection  from  shame  and  ruin. 
How  easily  mav  a  man,  though  naturally  wise,  be  made  weary  of 
life  !  A  little  pain,  a  little  shame,  a  little  loss,  a  small  affront,  can 
soon  rob  a  man  of  all  comfort ;  and  cause  his  own  hands,  to  rob 
him  of  himself.  If  there  be  not  higher  re  pects  than  the  world  can 
yield,  to  maintain  us  in  being,  it  should  be  a  miracle,  if  indigna- 
tion did  not  kill  more  than  disease :  now,  that  God,  by  whose  ap- 
pointment we  live  here,  for  his  most  wise  and  holy  purposes  hath 
found  means  to  make  life  sweet,  and  death  terrible. 

What  a  mixture  do  we  find  here,  of  wisdom  and  madness  !  Ahi- 
tophel  will  needs  hang  himself;  there  is  madness:  he  will  yet  set 
his  house  in  order ;  there  is  an  act  of  wisdom.  And  could  it  be 
possible  that  he,  who  was  so  wise  as  to  set  his  house  in  order, 
should  be  so  mad  as  to  hang  himself?  that  he  should  be  careful  to 
order  his  house,  who  regarded  not  to  order  his  impotent  passions  ? 
that  he  should  care  for  his  house,  who  cared  not  for  either  body  or 
soul  ?  How  vain  it  is  for  a  man  to  be  wise,  if  he  be  not  wise  in  God ! 
How  prosperous  are  the  cares  of  idle  worldlings,  that  prefer  all 
other  things  to  themselves ;  and,  while  they  look  at  what  they 
have  in  their  coffers,  forget  what  they  have  in  their  breasts  ! 

2  Sam.  xvi,  xvii. 


THE  DEATH  OF  ABSALOM. 

The  same  God,  that  raised  enmity  to  David  from  his  own  loins, 
procured  him  favour  from  foreigners  :  strangers  shall  relieve  him, 
whom  his  own  son  persecutes.  Here  is  not  a  loss,  but  an  exchange 
of  love.  Had  Absalom  been  a  son  of  Amnion,  and  Shobi  a  son  of 
David,  David  had  found  no  cause  of  complaint.  If  God  take  with 
one  hand,  he  gives  with  another :  while  that  divine  bounty  serves 
us  in  good  meat,  though  not  in  our  own  dishes,  we  have  good  rea- 
son to  be  thankful.  No  sooner  is  David  come  to  Mehanaim,  than 
Barzillai,  Machir,  and  Shobi  refresh  him  with  provisions.  Who 
ever  saw  any  child  of  God  left  utterly  destitute  ?  Whosoever  be 
the  messenger  of  our  aid,  we  know  whence  he  comes.  Heaven 
shall  want  power  and  earth  means,  before  any  of  the  household  of 
faith  shall  want  maintenance. 

He,  that  formerly  was  forced  to  employ  his  arms  for  his  defence 
against  a  tyrannous  father-in-law,  must  now  buckle  them  on  against 
an  unnatural  son.  Now  therefore,  he  musters  his  men,  and  ordains 
his  commanders,  and  marshals  his  troops;  and,  since  their  loyal 
importunity  will  not  allow  the  hazard  of  his  person,  he  at  once 
encourages  them  by  his  eye,  and  restrains  them  with  his  tongue  ; 
Deal  gently  with  the  young  man  Absalom,  for  my  sake. 

VOL.  I.  D  D 


*02 


CONTEMPLATION'S. 


How  unreasonably  favourable  are  the  wars  of  a  father !  O  holy 
David,  what  means  this  illplaced  love,  this  unjust  mercy;  Deal 
gently  with  a  traitor  ?  but,  of  all  traitors,  with  a  son  ?  of  all  sons, 
with  an  Absalom,  the  graceless  darling  of  so  good  a  father  ?  and 
all  this  for  my  sake,  whose  crown,  whose  blood,  he  hunts  after  ? 
For  whose  sake  should  Absalom  be  pursued,  if  he  must  be  forborne 
for  thine  ?  He  was  still  courteous  to  thy  followers,  affable  to  suitors, 
plausible  to  all  Israel ;  only  to  thee  he  is  cruel.  Wherefore  are 
those  arms,  it"  the  cause  of  the  quarrel  must  be  a  motive  of  mercy  ? 
Yet  thou  sayest,  Deal  gently  with  the  young  wan  Absalom,  for 
?ny  sake.  Even  in  the  holiest  parents,  nature  may  be  guilty  of  an 
injurious  tenderness,  of  a  bloody  indulgence. 

Or,  whether  shall  we  not  rather  think  this  was  done,  in  type  of 
that  unmeasurable  mercy  of  the  true  King  and  Redeemer  of  Israel, 
who  prayed  for  his  persecutors,  for  his  murderers;  and,  even 
while  they  were  at  once  scorning  and  killing  him,  could  say,  Fa- 
ther, forgive  them,  for  they  know  not  what  they  do  ?  If  we  be  sons, 
we  are  ungracious,  we  are  rebellious  ;  yet  still  is  our  Heavenly  Fa- 
ther thus  compassionately  regardful  of  us.  David  was  not  sure  of 
his  success.  There  was  great  inequality  in  the  number.  Absalom's 
forces  were  more  than  double  to  his.  It  might  have  come  to  the 
contrary  issue,  that  David  should  have  been  forced  to  say,  Deal 
gently  zoith  the  father  of  Absalom  ;  but,  in  a  supposition  of  that 
victory,  which  only  the  goodness  of  his  cause  bid  him  hope  for, 
he  saith,  Deal  gently  with  the  young  man  Absalom.  As  for  us, 
we  are  never  but  under  mercy  :  our  God  needs  no  advantages  to 
sweep  us  from  the  earth,  any  moment  ;  yet  he  continues  that  life, 
and  those  powers  to  us,  whereby  we  provoke  him ;  and  bids  his 
angels  deal  kindly  with  us  and  bear  us  in  their  arms,  while  we 
lift  up  our  hands  and  bend  our  tongues  against  Heaven.  O  mercy 
past  the  comprehension  of  all  finite  spirits,  and  only  to  be  con- 
ceived by  him  whose  it  is '.  never  more  resembled  by  any  earthly 
affection,  than  by  this  of  his  deputy  and  type;  Deal  gently  with 
the  young  man  Absalom,  for  my  sake. 

The  battle  is  joined.  David's  followers  arc  but  a  handful  to  Ab- 
salom's. How  easily  may  the  fic  kle  multitude  be  transported  to  the 
Wrong  side  !  What  they  wanted  in  abettors,  is  supplied  in  the 
cause.  Unnatural  ambition  draws  the  sword  of  Absalom  ;  David's, 
a  necessary  and  a  just  defence.  The)  ,  that  in  simplicity  of  heart 
followed  Absalom,  cannot  in  malice  of  heart  persecute  the  father 
of -Absalom:  with  what  courage,  could  any  Israelite  draw  his 
sword  against  a  David  ?  Or,  on  the  other  side,  who  can  want  cou- 
rage, to  fight  for  a  righteous  sovereign  and  lather,  against  the  con- 
spiracy of  a  wicked  son  ? 

The  God  of  Hosts,  with  whom  it  is  all  one  to  save  w  ith  many  or 
with  few,  takes  part  with  justice;  and  lets  Israel  feel,  what  it  is  to 
bear  arms  for  a  traitorous  usurper.  The  sword  devours  twenty 
thousand  of  them  ;  and  the  wood  devours  more  than  the  sword. 
It  must  n«eds  be  a  very  universal  rebellion,  wherein  so  many  pe- 


THE  DEATH  OF  ABSALOM. 


403 


rished.  What  virtue  or  merits  can  assure  the  hearts  of  the  vulgar, 
when  so  gracious  a  prince  rinds  so  many  revolters? 

Let  no  man  look  to  prosper  by  rebellion  :  the  very  thickets,  and 
stakes,  and  pits,  and  wild  beasts  of  the  woods  shall  conspire  to  the 
punishment  of  traitors.  Amongst  the  rest,  see  how  a  fatal  oak  hath 
singled  out  the  ringleader  of  this  hateful  insurrection  ;  and  will  at 
once  serve  for  his  hangman  and  gallows,  by  one  of  those  spreading 
arms  snatching  him  away  to  speedy  execution. 

Absalom  was  comely,  and  he  knew  it  well  enough.  His  hair  was 
no  small  piece  of  his  beauty,  nor  matter  of  his  pride.  It  was  his 
wont,  to  cut  it  once  a  year  ;  not  for  that  it  was  too  long,  but  too 
heavy  :  his  heart  would  have  borne  it  longer,  if  his  neck  had  not 
complained.  And  now,  the  justice  of  God  hath  platted  a  halter  of 
those  locks.  Those  tresses  had  formerly  hanged  loosely  dishevelled 
on  his  shoulders ;  now  he  hangs  by  them.  He  had  wont,  to  weigh 
his  hair,  and  was  proud  to  find  it  so  heavy  ;  now  his  hair  poiseth 
the  weight  of  his  body,  and  makes  his  burden  his  torment.  It  is 
no  marvel,  if  his  own  hair  turned  traitor  to  him,  who  durst  rise  up 
against  his  father.  That  part,  which  is  misused  by  man  to  sin,  is 
commonlv  employed  by  God  to  revenge.  The  revenge,  that  it 
worketh  for  God,  makes  amends  for  the  offence,  whereto  it  is  drawn 
against  God.  The  very  beast  whereon  Absalom  sat,  as  weary  to 
bear  so  unnatural  a  burden  resigns  over  his  load  to  the  tree  of  jus- 
tice. There  hangs  Absalom  between  heaven  and  earth,  as  one  that 
was  hated  and  abandoned  both  of  earth  and  heaven.  As  if  God 
meant  to  prescribe  this  punishment  for  traitors,  Absalom,  Ahito- 
phel,  and  Judas  die  all  one  death.  So  let  them  perish,  that  dare 
lift  up  their  hand  against  God's  anointed. 

The  honest  soldier  sees  Absalom  hanging  in  the  oak,  and  dares 
not  toucli  him  :  his  hands  were  held  witli  the  charge  of  David, 
Beware  that  none  touch  the  young  man  Absalom.  Joab,  upon 
that  intelligence,  sees  him,  and  smites  him  with  no  less  than  three 
darts.  What  the  soldier  forbore  in  obedience,  the  captain  doth  in 
zeal :  not  fearing  to  prefer  his  sovereign's  safety,  to  his  command  ; 
and  more  tendering  the  life  of  a  king  and  peace  of  his  country, 
than  the  weak  affection  of  a  father.  I  dare  not  sit  judge,  betwixt 
this  zeal  and  that  obedience  ;  betwixt  the  captain  and  the  soldier  : 
the  one  was  a  good  subject,  the  other  a  good  patriot ;  the  one  loved 
the  king,  the  other  loved  David,  and  out  of  love  disobeyed  ;  the 
one  meant  as  well  as  the  other  sped. 

As  if  God  meant  to  fulfil  the  charge  of  his  anointed,  without 
any  blame  of  his  subjects,  it  pleased  him  to  execute  that  imme- 
diate revenge  upon  the  rebel,  which  would  have  dispatched  him 
without  hand  or  dart.  Only  the  mule  and  the  oak  conspired  to  this 
execution ;  but  that  death  would  have  required  more  leisure,  than 
it  was  safe  for  Israel  to  give ;  and  still  life  would  give  hope  of  res- 
cue. To  cut  off  all  fears,  Joab  lends  the  oak  three  darts  to  help 
forward  so  needful  a  work  of  justice. 

All  Israel  did  not  afford  so  firm  a  friend  to  Absalom,  as  Joab 
had  been.  Who  but  Joab,  had  suborned  the  witty  widow  of  Te- 


404  Contemplations. 

koah,  to  sue  for  the  recalling  of  Absalom,  from  his  three  years* 
exile  ?  Who  but  he,  went  to  fetch  him  from  Geshur  to  Jerusalem  ? 
Who  but  he,  fetched  him  from  his  house  at  Jerusalem,  whereto  he 
had  been  two  years  confined,  to  the  face,  to  the  lips  of  David  ? 
Yet  now  he,  that  was  his  solicitor  for  the  king's  favour,  is  his  exe- 
cutioner against  the  king's  charge.  With  honest  hearts,  all  respects, 
either  of  blood  or  friendship,  cease  in  the  case  of  treason.  Well 
hath  Joab  fore,  otten  himself  to  be  a  friend  to  him,  who  had  forgot- 
ten himself  to  be  a  son.  Even  civilly,  the  king  is  our  common  fa- 
ther ;  our  country  our  common  mother:  nature  hath  no  private 
relations,  winch  should  not  gladly  give  place  to  these.  lie  is  nei- 
ther father,  nor  son,  nor  brother,  nor  friend,  that  conspires  against 
the  common  parent.  Well  doth  he,  who  spake  parables  for  his 
Piaster's  son,  now  speak  darts  to  his  king's  enemy  ;  and  pierces 
that  heart,  which  was  false  to  so  great  a  father.  Those  darts  arc 
seconded  by  Joab's  followers :  each  man  tries  his  weapon  upon  so 
fair  a  mark. 

One  death  is  not  enough  for  Absalom  :  lie  is  at  once  hanged, 
shot,  mangled,  stoned.  Justly  was  he  lift  up  to  the  oak,  who  had 
lift  up  himself  against  his  father  and  sovereign  :  justly  is  he  pierced 
with  darts,  who  had  pierced  his  father's  heart  with  so  many  sor- 
rows:  justly  is  he  mangled,  who  hath  dismembered  and  divided  all 
Israel:  justly  is  he  stoned,  who  hath  not  only  cursed,  but  pursued 
his  own  parent. 

Now  Joab  sounds  the  retreat ;  and  calls  off  his  eager  troops- 
from  execution,  however  he  knew  what  his  rebellious  countrymen 
had  deserved  in  following  an  Absalom.  Wise  commanders  know 
how  to  put  a  difference,  betwixt  the  heads  of  a  faction,  and  the 
misguided  multitude ;  and  can  pity  the  one,  while  they  take  revenge 
on  the  other. 

So  did  Absalom  esteem  himself,  that  he  thought  it  would  be  a 
wrong  to  the  world,  to  want  the  memorial  of  so  goodly  a  person. 
God  had  denied  him  sons  :  how  just  it  was,  that  he  Should  want  a 
son,  who  had  robbed  his  father  of  a  son  ;  who  would  have  robbed 
himself  of  a  father,  his  father  of  a  kingdom  !  It  had  been  pity,  so 
poisonous  a  plant  should  have  been  fruitful.  His  pride  shall  sup- 
ply nature  :  he  rears  up  a  stately  pillar  in  the  king's  dale,  , and  calls 
it  by  his  own  name  ;  that  he  might  live  in  dead  stones,  who  could 
not  survive  in  living  issue  :  and  now,  behold  this  curious  pile  ends 
in  a  rude  heap,  which  speaks  no  language,  but  the  shame  of  that 
carcase  which  it  covers.  Hear  this,  ye  glorious  fools,  that  care 
not  to  perpetuate  any  memory  of  yourselves  to  the  world,  but  of 
ill  deserving  greatness.  The  best  of  this  affectation  is  vanity  ;  the 
worst,  infamy  and  dishonour  :  whereas,  The  memorial  of  the  just 
shall  be  blessed ;  and,  if  bis  humility  shall  refuse  an  epitaph,  and 
chuse  to  hide  himself  under  the  bare  earth,  God  himself  shall  en- 
grave his  name  upon  the  pillar  of  eternity. 

There  now  lies  Absalom  in  the  pit,  under  a  thousand  grave- 
stones, in  every  of  which  is  written  his  everlasting  reproach.  Well 
might  thfs  heap  overlive  that  pillar  ;  for  when  that  ceased  to  be  a- 


THE  DEATH  OF  ABSALOM.  405 

pillar,  it  began  to  be  a  beap  ;  neither  will  it  cease  to  be  a  monu- 
ment of  Absalom's  shame,  while  there  are  stones  to  be  found  upon 
earth.  Even  at  this  day,  very  pagans  and  pilgrims  that  pass  that 
way,  cast  each  man  a  stone  unto  that  heap  ;  and  are  wont  to  say, 
in  a  solemn  execration,  "  Cursed  be  the  parricide  Absalom,  and 
cursed  be  all  unjust  persecutors  of  their  parents,  for  ever."  Fasten 
your  eyes  upon  this  woeful  spectacle,  O  all  ye  rebellious  and  un- 
gracious children,  which  rise  up  against  the  loins  and  thighs  from 
wliich  ye  fell ;  and  know,  that  it  is  the  least  part  of  your  punish- 
ment, that  your  carcases  rot  in  the  earth,  and  your  name  in  igno- 
miny :  these  do  but  shadow  out  those  eternal  sufferings  of  your 
souls,  for  your  foul  and  unnatural  disobedience. 

Absalom  is  dead.  Who  shall  report  it  to  his  father  ?  Surely 
Joab  was  not  so  much  afraid  of  the  fact,  as  of  the  message.  There 
are  busy  spirits  that  love  to  carry  news,  though  thankless,  though 
purposeless;  such  as  Ahimaaz,  the  son  of  Zadok,  who  importu- 
nately thrust  himself  into  this  service.  Wise  Joab,  who  well  saw 
bow  unwelcome  tidings  must  be  the  burden  of  the  first  post,  dis- 
suades him  in  vain.  He  knew  David  too  well,  to  employ  a  friend 
to  that  errand.  An  Ethiopian  servant  was  a  litter  bearer  of  such  a 
message,  than  the  son  of  the  priest.  The  entertainment  of  the 
person  doth  so  follow  the.  quality  of  the  news,  that  David  coidd 
argue  afar  off,  lie  is  a  good  man  ;  he  eometh  with  good  tidings. 
Oh  how  welcome  deserve  those  messengers  to  be,  that  bring  us  the 
glad  tidings  of  salvation  ;  that  assure  us  of  the  foil  of  all  spiritual 
enemies;  and  tell  us  of  nothing  but  victories,  and  crowns,  and 
kingdoms  !  If  we  think  not  their  feet  beautiful,  our  hearts  are  foul 
with  infidelity  and  secure  worldliness. 

So  wise  is  Ahimaaz  grown  by  Joab's  intimation,  that,  though  he 
outwent  Cushi  in  his  pace,  he  suffers  Cushi  to  outgo  him  in  his 
tale  ;  cunningly  suppressing  that  part,  which  he  knew  must  be 
most  necessarily  delivered,  and  unplcasingly  received. 

As  our  care  is  wont  to  be  where  our  love  is,  David's  first  word  is 
not,  "  How  fares  the  host  ?"  but  Mow  fares  the  young  man  Ab- 
salom ?  Like  a  wise  and  faithful  messenger,  Cushi  answers  by  an 
honest  insinuation  ;  The  enemies  of  my  lord  the  king,  and  all  that 
l  ist;  against  thee  to  do  thee  hurt,  be  as  that  young  man  is  ;  imply- 
ing, both  what  was  done,  and  why  David  should  approve  it  l>ring 
done.  How  is  the  good  king  thunder-struck,  with  that  word  of 
his  blackamoor  !  Who,  as  if  he  were  at  once  bereaved  of  all  com- 
fort, and  cared  not  to  live  but  in  the  name  of  Absalom,  goes  and 
weeps  and  cries  out,  O  my  son  Absalom,  my  son,  my  son  Absalom  ! 
Would  God  I  had  died  for  thee;  0  Absalom,  my  son,  my  son! 
What  is  this  we  hear?  That  he,  whose  life  Israel  valued  at  ten 
thousand  °f  theirs,  should  be  exchanged  with  a  traitor's?  That  a 
good  king,  whose  life  was  sought,  should  wish  to  lay  it  down  for 
the  preservation  of  his  murderer  ?  The  best  men  have  not  wont  to 
be  the  least  passionate.  But  what  shall  we  say  to  that  love  of  thine, 

0  Saviour,  who  hast  said  of  us  wretched  traitors,  not,  Would  God 

1  had  died  for  you;  but  "  I  "  ill  die;  I  do  die;  I  have  died  for 


406  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

you  r"  Oh  love,  like  thyself,  infinite,  incomprehensible  ;  whereat 
the  angels  of  Heaven  stand  yet  amazed  ;  wherewith  thy  saints  are 
ravished.  Turn  away  thine  eyes  from  me;  for  they  overcome  inc. 
O  thou  that  dwellest  in  the  gardens,  the  companions  hearken  to  thy 
•voice  :  cause  us  to  hear  it ;  that  we  may,  in  our  measure,  anszcer 
thy  love,  and  enjoy  it for  ever.  2  Sam.  xvii,  xviii. 


SHEBA'S  REBELLION. 

It  was  the  doom,  which  God  passed  upon  the  man  after  his  own 
heart,  by  the  mouth  of  Nathan,  that  the  sword  should  never  de- 
part from  his  house,  for  the  blood  of  Uriah :  after  that  wound 
healed  by  remission,  yet  this  scar  remains  ;  Absalom  is  no  sooner 
cast  down  into  the  pit,  than  Sheba  the  son  of  Bichri  is  up  in  arms. 
If  David  be  not  plagued,  yet  he  shall  be  corrected  ;  first  bv  the 
rod  of  a  son,  then  of  a  subject :  he  had  lift  up  his  hand  against 
a  faithful  subject  ;  now  a  faithless  dares  to  lift  up  his  hand  against 
him. 

Malice,  like  some  hereditary  sickness,  runs  in  a  blood  :  Saul, 
and  Shimei,  and  Sheba  were  all  of  a  house.  That  ancient  o-rudue 
was  not  yet  dead.  The  fire  of  the  house  of  Jemini  was  but  raked 
up,  never  thoroughly  out ;  and  now,  that,  which  did  but  smoke  in 
Shimei,  flames  in  Sheba  :  although  even  through  this  chastisement, 
it  is  not  hard  to  discern  a  type  of  that  perpetual  succession  of  en- 
mity, which  should  be  raised  against  the  true  king  of  Israel.  O 
Son  of  David,  when  didst  thou  ever  want  enemies  ?  How  wert 
thou  designed  by  thine  eternal  Father,  For  a  sign  that  should  be 
spoken  against  !  How  did  the  gentiles  rage,  and  the  people  imagine 
vain  things  !  The  kings  of  the  earth  assembled,  and  the  rulers 
came  together,  against  thee.  Yea,  how  do  the  subjects  of  thine 
own  kingdom  daily  conspire  against  thee  !  Even  now,  while  thou 
enjoyest  peace  and  glory  at  thy  Father's  right  hand,  as  soon  shalt 
thou  want  friends  as  enemies  upon  earth. 

No  eye  of  any  traitor  could  espy  a  just  quarrel  in  the  govern- 
ment of  David  :  yet  Sheba  blows  the  trumpet  of  rebellion  ;  and, 
while  Israel  and  Judah  are  striving  who  should  have  the  greatest 
part  in  their  re-established  sovereign,  he  sticks  not  to  say,  Wehave 
no  part  in  David,  neither  have  zve  inheritance  in  the  son  of  Jesse ; 
and,  while  he  says,  Every  man  to  his  tents,  0  Israel,  he  calls 
every  man  to  his  own  :  so,  in  proclaiming  alibertv  from  a  just  and 
loyal  subjection,  he  invites  Israel  to  the  bondage  of  a  usurper. 

That  a  lewd  conspirator  should  breathe  treason,  it  is  no  wonder  ; 
but  is  it  not  wonder  and  shame,  that,  upon  every  mutinous  blast, 
Israel  should  turn  traitor  to  God's  anointed  ?  It  was  their  late  ex- 
postulation witli  David,  why  their  brethren  the  men  of  Judah 
should  have  stolen  him  from  them  ;  now  might  David  more  justly 
expostulate,  why  a  rebel  of  their  brethren  should  have  stolen  them 
from  him. 

As  nothing"  is  more  unstable  than  the  multitude,  so  nothing  is 


sheba's  rebellion.  407 

more  subject  to  distastes  than  sovereignty  ;  for  as  weak  minds  seek 
pleasure  in  change,  so  every  light  conceit  of  irritation  seems  suffi- 
cient colour  of  change.  Such  as  the  false  dispositions  of  the  vul- 
gar are,  love  cannot  be  security  enough  for  princes,  without  the 
awfulness  of  power.  What  hold  can  there  be  of  popularity,  when 
the  same  hands,  that  even  now  fought  for  David  to  be  all  theirs, 
now  fight  against  him,  under  the  son  of  Bichri,  as  none  of  theirs  ? 

As  bees,  when  they  are  once  up  in  a  swarm,  are  ready  to  light 
upon  every  bough,  so  the  Israelites,  being  stirred  by  the  late  com- 
motion of  Absalom,  are  apt  to  follow  every  Sheba.  It  is  unsafe 
for  any  state,  that  the  multitude  should  once  ki|o\v  the  way  to  an 
insurrection  ;  the  least  track  in  this  kind  is  easily  made  a  path. 

Yet  if  Israel  rebel,  Judah  continues  faithful ;  neither  shall  the 
son  of  David  ever  be  left  destitute  of  some  true  subjects  in  the 
worst,  of  apostacies.  He,  that  could  command  all  hearts,  will  ever 
be  followed  by  some,  God  would  rather  glorify  himself  by  a 
remnant. 

Great  commanders  must  have  active  thoughts.  David  is  not  so 
taken  up  with  the  embroiled  affairs  of  his  state,  as  not  to  intend 
domestic  justice.  His  ten  concubines,  which  were  shamelessly  de- 
filed by  his  incestuous  son,  are  condemned  to  Avard  and  widow- 
hood.  Had  not  that  constupration  been  partly  violent,  their  pu- 
nishment had  not  been  so  easy  ;  had  it  not  also  been  partly  volun- 
tary, they  had  not.  been  so  much  punished  :  but  how  much  soever 
the  act  did  partake  of  either  force  or  will,  justly  are  they  seques- 
tered from  David's  bed.  Absalom  was  not  more  unnatural  in  his 
rebellion,  than  in  his  lust :  if  now  David  should  have  returned  to 
his  own  bed,  he  had  seconded  the  incest.  How  much  more  worthy 
of  separation  are  they,  who  have  stained  the  marriage  bed  with 
their  wilful  sin  ! 

Amasa  was  one  of  the  witnesses  and  abettors  of  Absalom's  filth  i- 
ness  ;  yet  is  he,  out  of  policy,  received  to  favour  and  employment, 
while  the  concubines  suffer.  Great  men  yield  many  times  to  those 
things,  out  of  reasons  of  state,  which,  if  they  were  private  persons, 
could  not  be  easily  put  over. 

It  is  no  small  w  isdom,  to  engage  a  new  reconciled  friend,  that 
he  may  be  confirmed  by  his  own  act ;  therefore  is  Amasa  com- 
manded to  lev)-  the  forces  of  Judah. 

Joab,  after  many  great  merits  and  achievements,  lies  rusting  in 
neglect :  he,  that  was  so  if) tire  with  David,  as  to  be  of  his  counsel 
for  Uriah's  blood,  and  so  firm  to  David,  as  to  lead  all  his  battles 
against  the  house  of  Saul,  the  Ammonites,  the  Aramitos,  Absa- 
lom ;  is  now  cashiered,  and  must  yield  his  place  to  a  stranger  late 
an  enemy.  Who  knows  not,  that  tins  son  of  Zeruiah  had  shed 
the  blodd  of  war  in  peace  i  Rut  if  the  blood  of  Absalom  had  not 
been  louder  than  the  blood  of  Abner,  I  fear  this  change  had  not 
been  :  now  Joab  smarteth  for  a  loyal  disobedience.  How  slippery 
are  the  stations  of  earthly  honours,  and  subject,  to  continual  muta- 
bility !  Happy  are  they,  who  are  in  favour  with,  him,  in  whom  there 
is  no  shadow  of  change. 


408  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

Where  men  are  commonly  most  ambitions  to  please  with  tliei 
first  employments,  Amasa  slackens  his  pace.  The  least  delay  if 
matters  of  rebellion  is  perilous  ;  may  be  irrecoverable:  the  sons  o 
Zeruiah  are  not  sullen  :  Abishai  is  sent,  Joab  goes  unsent,  to  the 
pursuit  of  Sheba.  Amasa  was  in  their  way  ;  whom  no  quarrel  but 
their  envy,  had  made  of  a  brother  an  enemy.  Had  the  heart  of 
Amasa  been  privy  to  any  cause  of  grudge,  he  had  suspected  the 
kiss  of  Joab  :  now  his  innocent  eyes  look  to  the  lips,  not  to  the. 
hand,  of  his  secret  enemy.  The  lips  were  smooth;  Art  thou  in 
health,  my  brother  ?  The  hand  was  bloody,  which  smote  him  under 
the  fifth  rib.  That  unhappy  hand  knew  well  this  way  unto  death; 
which,  with  one  wound,  hath  let  out  the  souls  of  two  great  cap- 
tains, Abner  and  Amasa  :  both  they  were  smitten  by  Joab  ;  both 
under  the  fifth  rib  ;  both  under  a  pretence  of  friendship.  There 
is  no  enmity  so  dangerous  as  that,  which  comes  masked  with  love  : 
open  hostility  calls  us  to  our  guard  ;  but  there  is  no  fence  against 
a  trusted  treachery  :  we  need  not  be  bidden  to  avoid  an  enemy, 
but  who  would  run  away  from  a  friend  ?  Thus,  spiritually,  deals 
the  world  with  our  souls  :  it  kisses  us,  and  stabs  us,  at  once.  If  it 
did  not  embrace  us  with  one  hand,  it  could  not  murder  us  with  the 
other  :  only,  God,  deliver  us  from  the  danger  of  our  trust,  and  we 
shall  be  safe. 

Joab  is  gone  ;  and  leaves  Amasa  wallowing  in  blood.  That 
spectacle  cannot  but  stay  all  passengers.  The  death  of  great  per- 
sons draws  ever  many  eyes.  Each  man  says  ;  "  Is  not  this  my  lord 
Amasa  ?  Wherefore  do  we  go  to  fight,  while  our  general  lies  in 
the  dust  ?  What  a  sad  presage  is  this  of  our  own  miscarriage  ?" 
The  wit  of  Joab's  followers  hath  therefore  soon  both  removed 
Amasa  out  of  the  way,  and  covered  him  ;  not  regarding  so  much 
the  loss,  as  the  eye-sore  of  Israel.  Thus  wicked  politics  care  not 
so  much  for  the  commission  of  villany,  as  for  the  notice.  Smother- 
ed evils  are  as  not  done.  If  oppressions,  if  murder,  if  treasons  may 
be  hid  from  view,  the  obdured  heart  of  the  offender  complains  not 
of  remorse. 

Bloody  Joab,  with  what  face,  with  what  heart,  canst  thou  pur- 
sue a  traitor  to  thy  king,  while  thou  thyself  art  so  foul  a  traitor 
to  thy  friend  ;  to  thy  cousin-german  ;  and,  in  so  unseasonable  a 
slaughter,  to  thy  sovereign,  whose  cause  thou  professest  to  re- 
venge ?  If  Amasa  were  now,  in  an  act  of  loyalty,  justly,  on  God's 
part,  paid  for  the  arrearages  of  his  late  rebellion,  yet  that  it  should 
be  done  by  thy  hand,  then  and  thus,  it  was  flagitiously  cruel :  yet, 
behold,  Joab  runs  away  securely  with  the  fact ;  hasting  to  plague 
that  in  another,  whereof  himself  was  no  less  guilty.  So  vast  are  the 
gorges  of  some  consciences,  that  they  can  swallow  the  greatest 
crimes,  and  find  no  strain  in  the  passage. 

It  is  possible,  for  a  man  to  be  faithful  to  some  one  person,  and 
perfidious  to  all  others.  I  do  not  find  Joab  other  than  firm  and 
loyal  to  David,  in  the  midst  of  all  his  private  falsehoods;  whose 
just  quarrel  he  pursues  against  Sheba,  through  all  the  trihes  of  Is- 
rael.  None  of  all  the  strong  forts  of  revolted  Israel,  can  hide  the 


sheba's  rebellion.  409 

rebel  from  the  zeal  of  his  revenge.  The  city  of  Abel  lends  harbour 
to  that  conspirator,  whom  all  Israel  would  and  cannot  protect. 
Joab  casts  up  a  mount  against  it ;  and,  having  environed  it  with  a 
siege,  begins  to  work  upon  the  wall ;  and  now,  after  long  chase, 
is  in  hand  to  dig  out  that  vermin,  which  had  earthed  himself  in 
this  borough  of  Beth-maachah  ! 

Had  not  the  city  been  strong  and  populous,  Shcba  had  not  cast 
himself  for  succour  within  those  walls  ;  yet,  of  all  the  inhabitants, 
I  see  not  any  one  man  move  for  the  preservation  of  their  whole 
body ;  only  a  woman  undertakes  to  treat  with  Joab,  for  their 
safety.  These  men,  whose  spirits  were  great  enough  to  maintain  a 
traitor  against  a  mighty  king,  scorn  not  to  give  way  to  the  wisdom 
of  a  matron.  There  is  no  reason,  that  sex  should  disparage,  where 
the  virtue  and  merit  is  no  less  than  masculine.  Surely  the  soul 
acknowledged)  no  sex  ;  neither  is  varied  according  to  the  outward 
frame.  How  oft  have  we  known  female  hearts  in  the  breasts  of 
men;  and,  contrarily,  manly  powers  in  the  weaker  vessels!  It  is 
injurious,  to  measure  the  act  by  the  person,  and  not  rather  to  es- 
teem the  person  for  the  act. 

She,  with  no  less  prudence  than  courage,  challengeth  Joab  for 
the  violence  of  his  assault ;  and  lays  to  him  that  law,  which  he  could 
not  be  an  Israelite  and  disavow  ;  the  law  of  the  God  of  peace, 
whose  charge  it  was,  that  when  they  should  come  near  to  a  city  to 
fight  against  it,  they  should  offer  it  peace  ;  and  if  this  tender  must 
be  made  to  foreigners,  how  much  more  to  brethren  !  so  as  they 
must  inquire  of  Abel,  ere  they  battered  it.  War  is  the  extreme 
act  of  vindicative  justice  ;  neither  doth  God  ever  approve  it,  for 
any  other  than  a  desperate  remedy  ;  and  if  it  have  any  other  end 
than  peace,  it  turns  into  public  murder.  It  is  therefore,  an  inhu- 
man cruelty,  to  shed  blood,  where  we  have  not  proffered  fair  con- 
ditions of  peace  ;  the  refusal  whereof  is  justly  punished,  with  the 
sword  of  revenge. 

Joab  was  a  man  of  blood;  yet  when  the  wise  woman  of  Abel 
charged  him  with  going  about  to  destroy  a  mother  in  Israel,  and 
swallowing  up  the  inheritance  of  the  Lord,  with  what  vehemency 
doth  he  deprecate  that  challenge;  God  forbid,  God  forbid  it  me, 
that  I  should  devour,  or  destroy  it  !  Although  that  city,  with  the 
vest,  had  engaged  itself  in  Sheba's  sedition,  yet  how  zealously  doth 
Joab  remove  from  himself  the  suspicion  of  an  intended  vastation  ! 
How  fearful  shall  their  answer  be,  who,  upon  the  quarrel  of  their 
own  ambition,  have  not  spared  to  waste  whole  tribes  of  the  Israel 
of  God  ! 

It  was  not  the  fashion  of  David's  captains,  to  assault  an}'  city 
fere  they  summoned  it :  here  they  did.  There  be  some  things,  that, 
in  the  very  fact,  carry  their  own  conviction  :  so  did  Abel,  in  the 
entertaining  and  abetting  a  known  conspirator.  Joab  challengeth 
them  for  the  offence,  and  requires  no  other  satisfaction,  than  the 
head  of  Sheba.  This  matron  had  not  deserved  the  name  of  wise 
and  faithful  in  Israel,  if  she  had  not  both  apprehended  the  justice 
,ot  the  condition,  and  commended  it  to  her  citizens;  whom  she  had 


410 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


easily  persuaded  to  spare  their  own  heads,  in  not  sparing  a  traitor's. 
It  had  been  pity  those  walls  should  have  stood,  if  they  had  been 
too  high  to  throw  a  traitor's  head  over. 

Spiritually,  the  case  is  ours.  Every  man's  breast  is  as  a  city  in- 
closed. Every  sin  is  a  traitor,  that  lurks  within  those  walls.  God 
calls  to  us-  for  Sheba's  head ;  neither  hath  he  any  quarrel  to  our 
person,  but  for  our  sin.  If  we  love  the  head  of  our  traitor,  above 
the  life  of  our  soul,  we  shall  justly  perish  in  the  vengeance.  We 
cannot  be  more  willing  to  part  with  our  sin,  than  our  merciful  God 
is  to  withdraw  his  judgments. 

Now  is  Joab  returned  with  success  ;  and  hopes  by  Sheba's  head, 
to  pay  the  price  of  Amasa's  blood.  David  hates  the  murder,  enter- 
tains the  man,  defers  the  revenge.  Joab  had  made  himself  so  nrcaf, 
so  necessary,  that  David  may  neither  miss  nor  punish  him.  Policy 
led  the  king,  to  connive  at  that  which  his  heart  abhorred.  I  dare 
not  commend  that  wisdom,  which  holds  the  hands  of  princes  from 
doing  justice.  Great  men  have  ever  held  it  a  point  of  worldly  state, 
not  always  to  pay,  where  they  have  been  conscious  to  a  debt,  of 
either  favour  or  punishment ;  but  to  make  time  their  servant  for 
both.  Solomon  shall  once  defray  the  arrearages  of  his  father.  In 
the  mean  time,  Joab  commands  and  prospers  ;  and  David  is  feign 
to  smile  on  that  face,  whereon  he  hath  in  his  secret  destination 
written  the  characters  of  death.  2  Sam.  .v.i\ 


THE  GIBEONITES  REVENGED. 

The  reign  of  David  was  most  troublesome  towards  the  shutting 
up  ;  wherein,  both  war  and  famine  conspire  to  afflict  him,  Almost 
forty  years,  had  he  sat  in  the  throne  of  Israel,  with  competency), 
if  not  abundance,  of  all  things  ;  now  at  last,  are  his  people  visited 
with  a  long  dearth. 

We  arc  not  at  first  sensible  of  common  evils.  Three  years' 
drought  and  scarcity  are  gone  over,  ere  David  consults  with  God, 
concerning  the  occasion  of  the  judgment :  now  he  found  it  high 
time,  to  seek  the  face  of  the  Lord.  The  continuance  of  an  affliction 
sends  us  to  God,  and  calls  upon  us  to  ask  for  a  reckoning  ;  whereas, 
like  men  stricken  in  their  sleep,  a  sudden  blow  cannot  make  us  to 
find  ourselves,  but  rather  astonisheth  than  teacheth  us. 

David  was  himself  a  prophet  of  God  ;  yet  had  not  the  Lord  all 
this  while  acquainted  him  with  the  grounds  of  his  proceedings 
against  Israel.  This  secret  was  hid  from  him,  till  he  consulted  with 
tne  Urim  :  ordinary  means  shall  reveal  that  to  him,  which  no  vi- 
sion had  descried.  And  if  God  will  have  prophets  to  have  recourse 
unto  the  priests  for  the  notice  of  his  will,  how  much  more  must  the 
people  !  Even  those  that  are  inwardest  with  God  must  have  use  of 
the  ephod. 

Justly  it  is  presupposed  by  David,  that  there  was  never  judg- 
ment from  God,  where  hath  not  been  a  provocation  from  men  ; 
therefore,  when  he  sees  the  plague,  he  inquires  for  the  sin.  Never 


THE  GIBEONITES  REVENGED.  411 

man  smarted  causelessly  from  the  hand  of  divine  justice.  Oh  that 
when  we  suffer,  we  could  ask  what  we  have  done,  and  could  guide 
our  repentance  to  the  root  of  our  evils  ! 

That  God,  whose  counsels  are  secret,  even  where  his  actions  are 
open,  will  not  be  close  to  his  prophet,  to  his  priest.  Without  in- 
quiry, we  shall  know  nothing  ;  upon  inquiry,  nothing  shall  be  con- 
cealed from  us,  that  is  fit  for  us  to  know. 

Who  can  choose  but  wonder,  at  once,  both  at  David's  slackness 
in  consulting  with  God,  and  God's  speed  in  answering  so  slow  a  de- 
mand ?  He,  that  so  well  knew  the  way  to  God's  oracle,  suffers  Is- 
rael to  be  three  years  pinched  with  famine,  ere  he  asks  why  they 
suffer.  Even  the  best  hearts  may  be  overtaken  with  dulness  in  holy 
duties ;  but  oh,  the  marvellous  mercy  of  God,  that  takes  not  the 
advantage  of  our  weaknesses  ! 

David's  question  is  not  more  slow,  than  his  answer  is  speedy ; 
Jt  is  for  Saul,  and  for  his  bloody  house,  because  he  slew  the  Gi- 
beonites,  Israel  was  full  of  sins,  besides  those  of  Saul's  house. 
Saul's  house  was  full  of  sins,  besides  those  of  blood  :  much  blood 
was  shed  by  them,  besides  that  of  the  Gibeonites;  yet  the  justice  of 
Gocl  singles  out  this  one  sin  of  violence  offered  to  the  Gibeonites, 
contrary  to  the  league  made  by  Joshua  some  four  hundred  years 
before,  for  the  occasion  of  this  late  vengeance.  Where  the  causes 
of  offence  are  infinite,  it  is  just  with  God,  to  pitch  upon  some;  it 
is  merciful,  not  to  punish  for  all. 

Well  near  forty  years  are  past,  betwixt  the  commission  of  the 
sin,  and  the  reckoning  for  it.  It  is  a  vain  hope,  that  is  raised  from 
the  delay  of  judgment.  No  time  can  be  any  prejudice  to  the  An- 
tient  of  Days :  when  we  have  forgotten  our  sins,  when  the  world 
hath  forgotten  us,  he  sues  us  afresh  for  our  arrearages. 

The  slaughter  of  the  Gibeonites  was  the  sin,  not  of  the  present, 
but  rather  the  former  generation  ;  and  now  posterity  pays  for 
their  forefathers.  Even  we  men  hold  it  not  unjust,  to  sue  the  heirs 
and  executors  of  our  debtors.  Eternal  payments,  God  uses  only  to 
require  of  the  person  ;  temporary,  oft-times  of  succession. 

As  Saul  was  higher  by  the  head  and  shoulders  than  the  rest  of 
Israel,  both  in  stature  and  dignity,  so  were  his  sins  more  conspi- 
cuous than  those  of  the  vulgar.  The  eminence  of  the  person  makes 
the  offence  more  remarkable,  to  the  eyes  both  of  God  and  men. 

Neither  Saul  nor  Israel  were  faultless  in  other  kinds;  yet  God 
fixes  the  eye  of  his  revenge  upon  the  massacre  of  the  Gibeonites. 
Every  sin  hath  a  tongue  ;  but  that  of  blood  over-cries  and  drowns 
the  rest.  He,  who  is  mercy  itself,  abhors  cruelty  in  his  creature, 
above  all  other  inonlinateness.  That  holy  soul,  which  was  heavy 
pressed  with  the  weight  of  a  heinous  adultery,  yet  cries  out,  De- 
liver me  from  blood,  0  God,  the.  God  of  my  salvation  ;  and  my 
tongue  shall  joyfully  sing  of  thy  righteousness. 

If  God  would  take  account  of  blood,  he  might  have  entered  the 
action  upon  the  blood  of  Uriah  spilt  by  David  ;  or,  if  he  would  ra- 
ther insist  in  Saul's  house,  upon  the  blood  of  Abimelech  the  priest, 
and  fourscore  and  live  persons  that  did  wear  a  linen  ephod  ;  but  it 


415  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

pleased  the  wisdom  and  justice  of  the  Almighty,  father  to  call  for' 
the  blood  of  the  Gibeonites,  though  drudges  of  Israel,  and  a  rem- 
nant of  Amorites.  Why  this  ?  There  was  a  perjury  attending  upon 
this  slaughter.  It  was  an  antient  oath,  wherein  the  princes  of  the 
congregation  had  bound  themselves,  upon  Joshua's  league,  to  the 
Gibeonites,  that  they  would  suffer  them  to  live  ;  an  oath,  extorted 
by  fraud,  but  solemn  by  no  less  name  than  the  Lord  God  of  Israel; 
Saul  will  now  thus  late,  either  not  acknowledge  it,  or  not  keep  it : 
out  of  his  zeal  therefore  to  the  children  of  Israel  and  Judah,  he 
roots  out  some  of  the  Gibeonites ;  whether  in  a  zeal  of  revenge  of 
their  first  imposture,  or  in  a  zeal  of  enlarging  the  possessions  of 
Israel,  or  in  a  zeal  of  executing  God's  charge  upon  the  brood 
of  Canaanitcs.  He,  that  spared  Agag  whom  he  should  have  smitten, 
smites  the  Gibeonites  whom  he  should  have  spared.  Zeal  and 
good  intention  is  no  excuse,  much  less  a  warrant,  for  evil.  God 
holds  it  a  high  indignity,  that  his  name  should  be  sworn  by,  and 
violated.  Length  of  time  cannot  dispense  with  our  oaths,  with  our 
vows :  the  vows  and  oaths  of  others  may  bind  us,  how  much  more 
our  own  ! 

There  was  a  famine  in  Israel.  A  natural  man  would  have  ascribed 
it  unto  the  drought ;  and  that  drought  perhaps  to  some  constella- 
tions. David  knows  to  look  higher;  and  sees  a  divine  hand  scourg, 
ing  Israel  for  some  great  offence,  and  over-ruling  those  second 
causes  to  his  most  just  executions.  Even  the  most  quick-sighted 
worldling  is  purblind  to  spiritual  objects,  and  the  weakest  eves 
of  the  regenerate  pierce  the  heavens,  and  espy  God  in  all  earthly 
occurrences. 

So  well  was  David  acquainted  with  God's  proceedings,  that  he 
knew  the  removal  of  the  judgment  must  begin  at  the  satisfaction  of 
the  wronged.  At  once  therefore,  doth  he  pray  unto  God.  and 
treat  with  the  Gibeonites;  What  shall  I  do  for  you,  anclxshere^ith 
shall  I  make  the  atonement,  that  ye  may  bless  the  inheritance  of 
the  Lord If  In  vain  should  David,  though  a  prophet,  bless  Israel, 
if  the  Gibeonites  did  not  bless  them:  injuries  done  us  on  earth 
give  us  power  in  heaven  :  the  oppressor  is  in  no  man's  mercy,  but 
his  whom  he  hath  trampled  upon. 

Little  did  the  Gibeonites  think,  that  God  had  so  taken  to  heart 
their  Wron&s,  that  for  their  sakes  all  Israel  should  suffer.  Even 
when  we  think  not  of  it,  is  the  righteous  Judge  avenging  our  uiu 
righteous  vexations.  Our  hard  measures  cannot  be  hid  from  him  ; 
his  returns  are  hid  from  us.  It  is  sufficient  for  us,  that  God  can  be 
no  more  negiective,  than  ignorant,  of  our  sufferings. 

It  is  now  in  the  power  of  these  despised  Hivitcs,  to  make  their 
own  terms  with  Israel :  neither  silver,  nor  gold  will  savour"  with 
diem,  toward  their  satisfaction:  nothing  can  expiate  the  blood  of 
their  fathers,  but  the  blood  of  seven  sons  of  their  deceased  perse- 
cutor :  here  was  no  other  than  a  just  retaliation  :  Saul  had  punish- 
ed in  them  the  offence  of  their  predecessors  ;  they  will  now  re- 
venge Saul's  sin  in  his  children  :  the  measure  we  mete  unto  others, 
is,  with  much  equity,  remeasured  unto  ourselves ;  every  death 


THE  GTBEOfJITES  REVENGED.-  41  3 

Would  not  content  them  of  Saul's  sons,  but  a  cursed  and  ignomi- 
nious ;  hanging  on  the  tree :  neither  would  that  death  content 
them,  unless  their  own  hands  might  be  the  executioners;  neither 
would  any  place  serve  for  the  execution,  but  Gibeah,  the  court  of 
Saul :  neither  would  they  do  any  of  this,  for  the  wreaking  of  their 
own  fury,  but  for  the  appeasing  of  God's  wrath ;  JVc  will  hang 
than  up  unto  I  he  Lord  in  Gibeah  of  Saul. 

David  might  not  refuse  the  condition  :  he  must  deliver  ;  they 
must  execute.  He  chooses  out  seven  of  the  sons  and  grand-chil- 
dren of  Saul.  That  house  had  raised  long  an  unjust  persecution 
against  David  :  now  God  pays  it  upon  another  score. 

David's  love  and  oath  to  Jonathan  preserves  lame  Mephibojhcth : 
how  much  more  shall  the  Father  of  all  Mercies  do  good  unto  the 
children  of  the  faithful,  for  the  covenant  made  with  their  parents ! 

The  five  sons  of  Adriel,  the  Meholathite,  David's  antient  rival  in 
his  first  love,  which  were  home  to  him  by  Merab,  Saul's  daughter, 
and  brought  up  by  her  barren  sister  Michal,  the  wife  of  David,  are 
yielded  up  to  death.  Merab,  was,  after  a  promise  of  marriage  to 
David,  unjustly  given  away  by  Saul  to  Adriel.  Michal  seems  to 
abet  the  match,  in  breeding  the  children  :  now,  in  one  act,  not  of 
David's  seeking,  the  wrong  is  thus  late  avenged  upon  Saul,  Adriel, 
Merab,  Michal,  the  children.  It  is  a  dangerous  matter  to  offer  in- 
jury to  any  of  God's  faithful  ones.  If  their  meekness  have  easily 
remitted  it,  their  God  will  not  pass  it  over  without  a  severe  retri- 
bution. 

These  five,  together  with  two  sons  of  Rizpah,  Saul's  concubine, 
are  hanged  up  at  once  before  the  Lord,  yea  and  before  the  eyes  of 
the  world.  No  place  but  a  hill  will  serve  for  this  execution.  The 
acts  of  justice,  as  they  are  intended  for  example,  so  they  should  be 
done  in  that  eminent  fashion,  that  may  make  them  both  most  in- 
structive and  most  terrifying.  Unwarrantable  courses  of  private 
revenge  seek  to  hide  their  heads  in  secresy  :  the  beautiful  face  of 
justice  both  affects  the  light  and  becomes  it. 

It  was  the  general  charge  of  God's  law,  that.no  corpse  should  re- 
main all  night  upon  the  gibbet.  The  Almighty  hath  power  to  dis- 
pense with  his  own  command;  so, doubtless,  he  did  in  this  extraor- 
dinary case.    These  carcasses  did  not  defile  but  expiate. 

Sorrowful  Rizpah  spreads  her  tent  of  sackcloth  upon  the  rock, 
for  a  sad  attendance  upon  those  sons  of  her  womb :  death  plight 
bereave  her  of  then),  not  them  of  her  love.  This  spectacle  was  not 
more  grievous  to  her,  than  pleasing  to  God,  and  happy  to  Israel. 
Now  the  clouds  drop  fatness,  and  the  earth  runs  forth  into  plenty. 
The  Gibeonitcs  are  satisfied,  God  reconciled,  Israel  relieved. 

How  blessed  a  thing  is  it  for  any  nation,  that  justice  is  impar- 
tially executed,  even  upon  the  mighty  !  A  few  drops  ot  blood 
have  procured  large  showers  from  heaven.  A  few  carcasses  are  a 
rich  compost  to  the  earth.  The  drought  and  dearth  remove  away, 
w  ith  the  breath  of  those  pledges  of  the  ©Sender.  Judgment  cannot 
tyrannize,  where  justice  reigns  :  as,  contrariiy,  there  can  be  no 
j)eace,  where  blood  cries  unheard,  unregarded.        l:  Sain,  sxi. 


414 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


THE  NUMBERING  OF  THE  PEOPLE. 
Israel  was  grown  wanton  and  mutinous.    God  pulls  them  down  : 
first,  by  the  sword  ;  then,  by  famine  ;  now,  by  pestilence. 

Oh  the  wondrous,  and  yet  just  ways  of  the  Almighty  !  Because 
Israel  hath  sinned,  therefore  David  shall  sin,  that  Israel  may  be  pu- 
nished ;  because  God  is  angry  with  Israel,  therefore  David  shall 
anger  him  more,  and  strike  himself  in  Israel,  and  Israel  through 
himself. 

The  Spirit  of  God  elsewhere  ascribes  this  motion  to  Satan,  which 
here  it  attributes  to  God.  Both  had  their  hand  in  the  work  ;  God  by 
permission,  Satan  by  suggestion  ;  God  as  a  judge,  Satan  as  an 
enemy  ;  God  as  in  a  just  punishment  for  sin,  Satan  as  in  an  act  of 
sin  ;  God  in  a  wise  ordination  of  it  to  good,  Satan  in  a  malicious  in- 
tent of  confusion.  Thus  at  once,  God  moved,  and  Satan  moved: 
neither  is  it  any  excuse  to  Satan  or  David,  that  God  moved  ;  nei- 
ther is  it  any  blemish  to  God,  that  Satan  moved. 

The  ruler's  sin  is  a  punishment  to  a  wicked  people.  Though  they 
had  many  sins  of  their  own,  whereon  God  might  have  grounded  a 
judgment,  yet,  as  before  he  had  punished  them  with  dearth  for 
Saul's  sin,  so  now  he  will  not  punish  them  with  plague  but  for 
David's  sin.  If  God  were  not  angry  with  a  people,  he  would  not 
give  up  their  governors  to  such  evils,  as  whereby  he  is  provoked  to 
vengeance ;  and  if  their  governors  be  thus  given  up,  the  people 
cannot  be  safe.  The  body  drowns  not,  while  the  head  is  above  the 
water ;  when  that  once  sinks,  death  is  near :  justly  therefore  are 
we  charged  to  make  prayers  and  supplications,  as  for  all,  so  espe- 
cially for  those  that  are  in  eminent  authority.  When  we  pray  for 
ourselves,  we  pray  not  always  for  them  ;  but  we  cannot  pray  for 
them,  and  not  pray  for  ourselves  :  the  public  weal  is  not  comprised 
in  the  private,  but  the  private  in  the  public. 

What  then  was  David's  sin  ?  He  will  needs  have  Israel  and  Judah 
numbered :  surely  there  is  no  malignity  in  numbers  ;  neither  is  it 
unfit  for  a  prince  to  know  his  own  strength  :  this  is  not  the  first 
time,  that  Israel  had  gone  under  a  reckoning.  The  act  ofi'ends  not, 
but  the  misaffection  :  the  same  thing  had  been  commendably  done 
out  of  a  princely  providence,  which  now,  through  the  curiosity, 
pride,  mis-confidence  of  the  doer,  proves  heinously  vicious  :  those 
actions,  which  are  in  themselves  indifferent,  receive  either  their  life 
or  their  bane  from  the  intentions  of  the  agent.  Moses  numbcreth 
the  people  with  thanks  ;  David,  with  displeasure.  Those  sins, 
which  carry  the  smoothest  foreheads  and  have  the  most  honest  ap- 
pearances, may  more  provoke  the  wrath  of  God,  than  those  that 
bear  the  most  abomination  in  their  faces.  How  many  thousand 
wickednesses  passed  through  the  hands  of  Israel,  which  we  men 
would  rather  have  branded  out  for  judgment,  than  this  of  David's  ! 
The  righteous  Judge  of  the  world  censures  sins,  not  by  their  dl 
Jooks,  but  by  their  foul  hearts. 

Who  can  but  wonder  to  see  Joab  the  saint,  and  David  the  tres- 
passer ;    \o  prophet  cculd  speak  better  than  that  man  of  blood  ; 


the  numbering  of  the  people.  415 

The  Lord  thy  God  increase  the  people  a  hundred  fold  more  than 
they  be,  and  that  the  eyes  of  my  lord  the  king  may  see  it ;  but 
wliv  doth  my  lord  the  king  desire  this  thing  ?  There  is  no  man  so 
lewd,  as  not  to  be  sometimes  in  good  moods,  as  not  to  dislike  some 
evil ;  contrarily,  no  man  on  earth  can  be  so  holy  as  not  sometimes 
to  overlash.  It  were  pity,  that  either  Joab  or  David  should  be 
tried  by  every  act.  How  commonly  have  we  seen  those  men  ready- 
to  give  good  advice  to  others  for  the  avoiding  of  some  sins,  who, 
in  more  gross  outrages,  have  not  had  grace  to  counsel  their  own 
hearts  !  The  same  man,  that  had  deserved  death  from  David  for 
his  treacherous  cruelty  >  dissuades  David  from  an  act  that  earned 
but  a  suspicion  of  evil.  It  is  not  so  much  to  be  regarded,  who  it  is 
that  admonisheth  us,  as  what  he  brings:  good  counsel  is  never  the 
worse,  for  the  foul  carriage.  There  are  some  dishes,  that  we  may 
eat  even  from  sluttish  hands. 

The  purpose  of  sin,  in  a  faithful  man,  is  odious;  much  more  the 
resolution^  Notwithstanding  Joab's  discreet  admonition,  David 
will  hold  on  his  course  ;  and  will  know  the  number  of  the  people, 
only  that  he  may  know  it, 

Joab  and  the  captains  address  themselves  to  the  work.  In  things 
which  are  not  in  themselves  evil,  it  is  not  for  subjects  to  dispute, 
but  to  obey.  That,  which  authority  may  sin  in  commanding,  is 
done  of  the  inferior,  not  with  safety  only,  but  with  praise. 

Nine  months  and  twenty  days,  is  this  general  muster  in  hand  :  at 
last,  the  number  is  brought  in.  Israel  is  found  eight  hundred  thou- 
sand strong  ;  Judah,  five  hundred  thousand.  The  ordinary  com- 
panies, which  served  by  course  for  the  royal  guard  (four  and 
twenty  thousand  each  month)  needed  not  to  be  reckoned.  The 
addition  of  them,  with  their  several  captains,  raises  the  sum  of  Is- 
rael to  the  rate  of  eleven  hundred  thousand :  a  power,  able  to  puff 
up  a  carnal  heart ;  but  how  can  a  heart,  that  is  more  than  flesh, 
trust  to  an  arm  of  flesh  ?  O  holy  David,  whither  hath  a  glorious 
vanity  transported  thee  ?  Thou,  which  once  didst  sing  so  sweetly, 
Put  not  your  trust  in  princes,  nor  in  the  son  of  man,  for  there  is 
no  help  in  him.  His  breath  departeth,  and  he  returneth  to  his 
earth  ;  then  his  thoughts  perish.  Blessed  is  he,  that  hath  the  God 
of'  Jacob  for  his  help,  whose  hope  is  in  the  Lord  his  God ;  how  canst 
thou  now  stoop,  to  so  unsafe  and  unworthy  a  confidence  ! 

As  some  stomachful  horse,  that  will  not  be  stopt  in  his  career 
with  the  sharpest  bit,  but  runs  on  headily  till  he  come  to  some  wall 
or  ditch,  and  there  stands  still  and  trembles;  so  did  David.  All  the 
dissuasions  of  Joab  could  not  restrain  him  from  his  intended  course. 
Almost  ten  months,  doth  he  run  on  impetuously,  in  a  way  of  his 
own,  rough  and  dangerous  :  at  last,  his  heart  smites  him  ;  the  con- 
science of  his  offence,  and  the  fear  of  judgment,  hath  fetched  him 
upon  his  knees ;  O  Ljord,  J  have  sinned  exceedingly  in  that  1  have 
done;  therefore  now,  L^ord,  1  beseech  thee  take  away  the  trespass 
of  thy  servant,  for  L  have  done  very  foolishly.  It  is  possible  for  a 
sin,  not  to  bait  only,  but  to  sojourn,  in  the  holiest  soul;  but 
though  it  sojourn  there  as  a  stranger,  it  shall  not  dwell  there  as  an 


416 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


ow  ner.  The  renewed  heart,  after  some  rovings  of  error,  will  oner, 
ere  overlong,  return  home  to  itself ;  and  fall  out  with  that  ill  guide, 
wherewith  it  was  misled,  and  with  itself  for  being  misled;  and  now 
it  is  resolved  into  tears,  and  breathes  forth  nothing  but  siahs,  and 
confessions,  and  deprecations. 

Here  needed  no  Nathan,  by  a  parabolical  circumlocution  to 
fetch  in  David  to  a  sight  and  acknowledgment  of  his  sin.  The 
heart  of  the  penitent  supplied  the  prophet.  No  other  tongue 
could  smite  him  so  deep,  as  his  own  thoughts.  But  though  his 
reins  chastised  him  in  the  night,  yet  his  seer  scourges  him  in 
the  morning  ;  Thus  saith  the  Lord,  1 offer  thee  three  things,  choose 
thee  which  of  them  I  shall  do  unto  thee.  But  what  shall  we  say  to 
this?  When,  upon  the  prophet's  reproof  for.  an  adultery  cloked 
with  murder,  David  did  but  say,  I  have  sinned,  it  was  presently 
returned,  God  hath  put  away  thy  sin;  neither  did  any  smart  fol- 
low, but  the  death  of  a  misbegotten  infant :  and  now,  when  he  vo- 
luntarily reproveth  himself  for  but  a  needless  muster,  and  sought 
for  pardon  unbidden  with  great  humiliation,  God  sends  him  the 
three  terrible  scourges,  famine,  sword,  or  pestilence,  that  he  may 
cboose  with  which  of  them  he  would  rather  to  bleed.  He  shall 
have  the  favour  of  an  election,  not  of  a  remission.  God  is  more 
angered  with  a  spiritual  and  immediate  affront  offered  to  his  ma- 
jesty, in  our  pride,  and  false  confidence  in  earthly  things,  than 
with  a  flesiily  crime,  though  heinously  seconded. 

It  was  a  hard  and  woeful  choice  of  three  years'  famine  added  to 
three  forepast;  or  of  three  months'  flight  from  the  sword  of  an 
enemy  ;  or  three  days'  pestilence.  The  Almighty,  that  hath  fore- 
determined  his  judgment,  refers  it  to  David's  will,  as  fully,  as  if  it 
were  utterly  undetermined.  God  had  resolved ;  yet  David  may 
choose.  That  infinite  wisdom  hath  foreseen  the  very  will  of  his 
creature,  which,  while  it  freely  inclines  itself  to  what  it  would  ra- 
ther, unwittingly  wills  that  which  was  fore-appointed  in  heaven. 

We  do  well  believe  thee,  O  David,  that  thou  wert  in  a  wonder- 
ful strait.  This  very  liberty  is  no  other  than  fetters.  Thou  needst 
not  have  famine ;  thou  needst  not  have  the  sw  ord  ;  thou  needst  not 
have  pestilence .  one  of  them  thou  must  have :  there  is  misery  in 
all  ;  there  is  misery  in  any.  Thou  and  thy  people  can  die  but  once ; 
and  once  they  must  die,  either  by  famine,  war,  or  pestilence.  O 
God,  how  vainly  do  we  hope  to  pass  over  our  sins  with  impunity, 
when  all  the  favour  that  David  and  Israel  can  receive  is,  to  choose 
their  bane  ! 

Yet,  behold,  neither  sins,  nor  threats,  nor  fears  can  bereave  a 
true  penitent  of  his  faith  ;  Let  us  now  fall  into  the  hands  of  the 
Lord,  for  his  mercies  are  great.  There  can  be  no  evil  of  punish- 
ment, wherein  God  hath  not  a  hand  :  there  could  be  no  famine,  no 
sword,  without  him  :  but  some  evils  are  more  immediate  from  a 
divine  stroke  ;  such  was  that  plague,  into  which  David  is  unwil- 
lingly willing  to  fall.  He  hud  his  choice  of  days,  months,  years,  in 
the  same  number  ;  and,  though  the  shortness  of  time  prefixed  to 
the  threatened  pestilence  might  seem  to  offer  some  advantage  for 


THE  NUMBERING  OF  THE  PEOPLE. 


417 


the  leading  of  his  election,  yet  God  meant,  and  David  knew  it, 
herein  to  proportion  the  difference  of  time  to  the  violence  of  the 
plague ;  neither  should  any  fewer  perish,  by  so  few  days'  pesti- 
lence, than  by  so  many  years'  famine :  the  wealthiest  might  avoid 
the  dearth  ;  the  swiftest  might  run  away  from  the  sword  ;  no  man 
could  promise  himself  safety  from  that  pestilence.  In  likelihood, 
God's  angel  would  rather  strike  the  most  guilty  ;  however,  there- 
fore, Davnl  might  well  look  to  be  enwrapped  in  the  common  de- 
struction, yet  he  rather  chooseth  to  fall  into  that  mercy  which  he 
had  abused,  and  to  suffer  from  that  justice  which  he  had  pro- 
voked ;  fat  us  now  fall  into  the  hands  of  the  Lord. 

Humble  confessions  and  devout  penance  cannot  always  avert 
temporal  judgments.  God's  angel  is  abroad  ;  and,  within  that 
short  compass  of  time,  sweeps  away  seventy  thousand  Israelites. 
David  was  proud  of  the  number  of  his  subjects :  now  they  are 
abated,  that  he  may  see  cause  of  humiliation  in  the  matter  of  his 
glory  :  in  what  we  have  offended,  we  commonly  smart. 

These  thousands  of  Israel  were  not  so  innocent,  that  they  should 
only  perish  for  David's  sin  :  their  sins  were  the  motives,  both  of 
this  sin  and  punishment :  besides  the  respect  of  David's  offence, 
they  die  for  themselves. 

It  was  no  ordinary  pestilence,  that  was  thus  suddenly  and  uni- 
versally mortal.  Common  eyes  saw  the  botch  and  the  marks;  saw 
not  the  angel :  David's  clearer  sight  hath  espied  him,  after  that 
killing  peragration  through  the  tribes  of  Israel,  shaking  his  sword 
over  Jerusalem,  and  hovering  over  Mount  Sion  ;  and  now  he,  who 
doubtless  had  spent  those  three  dismal  days  in  the  saddest  contri- 
tion, humbly  casts  himself  down  at  the  feet  of  the  avenger,  and  lays 
himself  ready  for  the  fatal  stroke  of  justice. 

It  was  more  terror,  that  God  intended,  in  the  visible  shape  of 
his  angel,  and  deeper  humiliation;  and  what  he  meant,  he  wrought. 
Never  soul  could  be  more  dejected,  more  anguished,  with  the  sense 
of  a  judgment;  in  the  bitterness  whereof  he  cries  out,  Behold,  I 
have  sinned,  yea,  I  have  done  wickedly  ;  but  these  sheep,  what  have 
they  done  f  Let  thine  hand,  L  pray  thee,  be  against  me,  and  against 
my  father  s  house.  The  better  any  man  is,  the  more  sensible  he  is 
of  his  own  wretchedness.  Many  of  those  sheep  were  wolves  to 
David.  What  had  they  done?  They  had  done  that,  which  was 
the  occasion  of  David's  sin,  and  the  cause  of  their  own  punish? 
mcnt :  but  that  gracious  penitent  knew  his  own  sin  ;  he  knew  not 
theirs:  and  therefore  can  say,  /  have  sinned;  What  have  they 
done  ?  It  is  safe  accusing,  where  we  may  be  boldest,  and  are  be5t 
acquainted,  ourselves. 

Oh  the  admirable  charity  of  David,  that  would  have  engrossed 
the  plague  to  himself  and  his  house,  from  the  rest  of  Israel ;  and 
sues  to  interpose  himself,  betwixt  his  people  and  the  vengeance ! 
He,  that  had  put  himself  upon  the  paws  of  the  bear  and  lion  for 
the  rescue  of  his  sheep,  will  now  cast  himself  upon  the  sword  of  the 
angel,  for  the  preservation  of  Israel :  there  was  hope  in  those  con- 

VOL.  I.  EE 


4  IS 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


flicts  ;  in  this  yieldance,  there  could  be  nothing  but  death.  Thus 
didst  thou,  O  son  of  David,  the  true  and  great  shepherd  of  thy 
Church,  offer  thyself  to  death  for  them  who  had  their  hands  in 
thy  blood,  who  both  procured  thy  death  and  deserved  their  own. 
Here,  he  offered  himself  that  had  sinned,  for  those  whom  he  pro- 
fessed to  have  not  done  evil ;  thou,  that  didst  no  sin,  vouchsafedst 
to  offer  thyself,  for  us  that  were  all  sin:  he  offered  and  escaped, 
thou  offeredst  and  diedst ;  and  hy  thy  death  we  live,  and  are  freed 
from  everlasting  destruction. 

But,  O  Father  of  all  mercies,  how  little  pleasure  dost  thou  take 
in  the  blood  of  sinners  !  It  was  thine  own  pity,  that  inhibited  the 
destroyer.  Ere  David  could  see  the  angel,  thou  hadst  restrained 
him ;  It  is  sufficient,  hold  now  thy  hand.  If  thy  compassion  did 
not  both  withhold  and  abridge  thy  judgments,  what  place  were 
there  for  us  out  of  hell  ? 

How  easy  and  just  had  it  been  for  God,  to  have  made  the  shutting 
up  of  that  third  evening  red  with  blood  !  His  goodness  repents  of 
the  slaughter ;  and  calls  for  that  sacrifice,  wherewith  he  will  be 
appeased. 

An  altar  must  be  built  in  the  threshing-floor  of  Araunah  the  Je- 
busite.  Lo,  in  that  very  hill,  where  the  angel  held  the  sword  of 
Abraham  from  killing  his  son,  doth  God  now  hold  the  sword  of 
the  angel  from  killing  his  people.  Upon  this  very  ground,  shall 
the  temple  after  stand.  Here  shall  be  the  holy  altar,  which  shall 
send  up  the  acceptable  oblations  of  God's  people,  in  succeeding 
generations. 

O  God,  what  was  the  thrashing-floor  of  a  Jebusite  to  thee, 
above  all  other  soils  ?  What  virtue,  what  merit  was  in  this  earth  ? 
As  in  places,  so  in  persons,  it  is  not  to  be  heeded,  what  they  are, 
but  what  thou  wilt.  That  is  worthiest,  which  thou  pleasest  to 
accept. 

Rich  and  bountiful  Araunah  is  ready  to  meet  David,  in  so  holy 
a  motion  ;  and  munificently  offers  his  Sion  for  the  place,  his  oxen 
for  the  sacrifice,  his  carts  and  ploughs  and  other  utensils  of  his 
husbandry  for  the  wood :  two  frank  hearts  are  well  met :  David 
would  buy  ;  Araunah  would  give.  The  Jebusite  wrould  not  sell ; 
David  will  not  take.  Since  it  was  for  God,  and  to  David,  Araunah 
is  loth  to  bargain  :  since  it  was  for  God,  David  wisheth  to  pay 
dear  ;  /  will  not  offer  burnt-offerings  to  the  Lord  my  God,  of  ihut 
which  doth  cost  me  nothing.  Heroical  spirits  do  well  become  emi- 
nent persons.  He,  that  knew  it  was  better  to  give  than  to  receive, 
would  not  receive  but  give.  There  can  be  no  devotion  in  a  nig- 
gardly heart :  as  unto  dainty  palates,  so  to  the  godly  soul,  that 
tastes  sweetest,  that  costs  most :  nothing  is  dear  enough  for  the 
Creator  of  all  things.  It  is  a  heartless  piety  of  those  base-minded 
Christians,  that  care  only  to  serve  God  good  cheap. 

2  Sam.  xxiv.   i  Chron.  xxi. 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


BOOK  XVII. 


TO  MY  WORTHILY  MUCH  HONOURED  FRIEND, 

SIR  HENRY  MILDMAY,  KNIGHT, 

MASTER  OF  THE  JEWEL-HOUSE, 
ALL  GRACE  AND  PEACE. 


SIR, 

Besides  all  private  obligations,  your  very  name  challengeth 
from  vie  all  due  services  of  love  and  honour.  If  I  have  received 
mercy  to  bear  any  fruit,  next  under  heaven,  I  may  thank  the  stock 
wherein  I  was  imped  ;  which  was  set  by  no  other,  than  the  happy 
hand  of  your  Right  Honourable  Grandfather.  How  have  I  so  long 
forborne  the  public  testimony  of  my  just  gratulatiuns  and  thankful 
respects,  to  so  true  an  heir  of  his  noble  virtues  !  Pardon  me,  that 
I  pay  this  debt  so  late ;  and  accept  of  this  parcel  of  my  well-meant 
labours :  wherein  you  shall  see,  Solomon  both  in  his  rising  and  set- 
ting :  his  rising,  hopeful  and  glorious;  his  declination,  fearful. 
You  shall  see  the  proofs  of  his  early  graces  :  of  mercy,  in  sparing 
Adonijah  and  Abiathar ;  of  justice,  in  punishing  that  rival  of  his, 
with  Joab  and  Shimci ;  of  wisdom,  in  his  award  betwixt  the  two 
harlots,  and  the  administration  of  his  court  and  state ;  of  piety, 
in  building  and  hallowing  the  temple ;  all  dashed  in  his  fall ;  re- 
paired in  his  repentance.  I  have  no  cause  to  misdoubt,  either  the 
acceptation  or  use  of  these  my  high-pitched  thoughts ;  which,  toge- 
ther with  yourself ,  and  your  worthy  and  virtuous  Lady,  I  humbly 
commend  to  the  care  and  blessing  of  the  Highest ;  who  am  bound, 
by  your  worth  and  merits,  to  be  ever, 

Yours  sincerely  and  thankfully 

devoted  in  all  observance, 

JOSEPH  HALL. 


ADONIJAH  DEFEATED. 

David  had  not  so  carefully  husbanded  his  years,  as  to  maintain 
a  vigorous  age  ;  he  was  therefore,  what  through  wars,  what  with 
sorrows,  what  with  sickness,  decrepit  betimes :  by  that  time  hs 
was  seventy  years  old,  his  natural  heat  was  so  wasted,  that  his 
clothes  could  uot  warm  him.  How  many  have  we  known,  of  more 


420  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

strength  at  more  age !  The  holiest  soul  dwells  not  in  an  impreg- 
nable fort.  If  the  revenging  angel  spared  David,  yet  age  and 
death  will  not  spare  him.  Neither  his  new  altar,  nor  his  costly 
sacrifice,  can  be  of  force  against  decay  of  nature.  Nothing  but 
death  can  prevent  the  weaknesses  of  age. 

None  can  blaine  a  people,  if,  when  they  have  a  good  king,  they 
are  desirous  to  hold  him.  David's  servants  and  subjects  have  com- 
mended unto  his  bed  a  fair  young  virgin  ;  not  for  the  heat  of  lust, 
but  of  life  ;  that  by  this  means  they  might  make  an  outward  sup- 
ply of  fuel,  for  that  vital  fire,  which  was  well-near  extinguished 
with  age. 

As  it  is  in  the  market  or  the  stage,  so  it  is  in  our  life ;  one  goes 
in,  another  comes  out.  When  David  was  withering,  Adonijah  was 
in  his  blossom. 

That  son,  as  he  was  next  to  Absalom  both  in  the  beauty  of  his 
body  and  the  time  of  his  birth,  so  was  he  too  like  him  in  practice, 
lie  also,  taking  advantage  of  his  father's  infirmity,  will  be  carving 
himself  of  the  kingdom  of  Israel.  That  he  might  no  whit  vary 
from  his  pattern,  he  gets  him  also  chariots  and  horsemen,  and 
fifty  men  to  run  before  him. 

These  two,  Absalom  and  Adonijah,  were  the  darlings  of  their 
father.  Their  father  had  not  displeased  them  from  their  child- 
hood ;  therefore  they  both  displeased  him  in  his  age.  Those  chil- 
dren had  need  to  be  very  gracious,  that  are  not  marred  with  pam- 
pering. It  is  more  than  God  owes  us,  if  we  receive  comfort  in 
those  children,  whom  we  have  over-loved.  The  indulgence  of  pa- 
rents at  last  pays  them  home  in  crosses. 

It  is  true,  that  Adonijah  was  David's  eldest  son  nosv  remaining, 
and  therefore  might  seem  to  challenge  the  justest  title  to  the  crown ; 
but  the  kingdom  of  Israel,  in  so  late  an  erection,  had  not  yet  known 
the  right  of  succession.  God  himself,  that  had  ordained  the  go- 
vernment, was  as  yet  the  immediate  elector  :  he  fetched  Saul  from 
among  the  stuff,  and  David  from  the  sheepfold  ;  and  had  now  ap- 
pointed Solomon,  from  the  ferule  to  the  sceptre.  And  if  Adonijah 
(which  is  unlike)  had  not  known  this,  yet  it  had  been  his  part,  to 
have  taken  his  father  with  him,,  in  this  claim  of  his  succession  ; 
and  not  so  to  prevent  a  brother,  that  he  should  shoulder  out  a  fa- 
ther ;  and  not  so  violently  to  pre-occupy  the  throne,  that  he  should 
rather  be  a  rebel  than  an  heir. 

As  Absalom,  so  Adonijah,  wants  not  furtherers,  in  this  usurpa- 
tion, whether  spiritual  or  temporal :  Joab  the  general  and  Abiathar 
the  priest  give  both  counsel  and  aid,  to  so  unseasonable  a  chal- 
lenge. These  two  had  been  firm  to  David,  in  all  his  troubles,  in 
all  insurrections  ;  yet  now,  finding  him  fastened  to  the  bed  of  age 
and  death,  they  shew  themselves  thus  slippery  in  the  loose.  Out- 
ward happiness  and  friendship  arc  not  known  till  our  last  act :  in 
the  impotency  of  either  our  revenge  or  recompence,  it  will  easily 
appear,  who  loved  us  lor  ourselves,  who  for  their  own  ends. 

Had  not  Adonijah  known,  that  Solomon  was  designed  to  the 
kingdom,  both  by  God  and  David,  he  had  never  incited  all  the 


ADONIJAH  DEFEATED.  421 

rest  of  the  kind's  sons,  his  brethren,  and  left  out  Solomon  ;  who 
was  otherwise  the  most  unlikely,  to  have  been  his  rival  in  his 
honour  :  all  the  rest  were  elder  than  he  ;  and  might  therefore  have 
had  more  pretence  for  their  competition.  Doubtless,  the  court  of 
Israel  could  not  but  know,  that,  immediately  upon  the  birth  of 
Solomon,  God  sent  him,  by  Nathan  the  prophet,  a  name  and  mes- 
sage of  love  ;  neither  was  it  for  nothing,  that  God  called  him  Je- 
didiah ;  and  fore-promised  him  the  honour  of  building  a  house  to 
his  name;  and,  in  return  of  so  glorious  a  service,  the  establish- 
ment of  the  throne  of  his  kingdom  over  Israel  for  ever :  notwith- 
standing all  which,  Adonijah,  backed  by  the  strength  of  a  Joab, 
and  the  gravity  of  an  Abiathar,  will  underwork  Solomon,  and 
justle  into  the  not-yet-^vacant  seat  of  his  father  David.  Vain  men, 
while,  like  proud  and  yet  brittle  clay,  they  will  be  knocking  their 
sides  against  the  solid  and  eternal  decree  of  God,  break  themselves 
in  pieces. 

1  do  not  find  that  Adonijah  sent  any  message  of  threats  or  un- 
kindness  to  Zadok  the  priest,  or  Nathan  the  prophet,  or  Benaiah 
the  son  of  Jehoiada,  and  the  other  worthies :  only  he  invited  them 
not  to  his  feast,  with  the  king's  sons  and  servants.  Sometimes  a 
X'ery  omission  is  an  affront  and  a  menace.  They  well  knew,  that, 
since  they  were  not  called  as  guests,  they  were  counted  as  ene- 
mies. Ceremonies  of  courtesy,  though  they  be  in  themselves 
slight  and  arbitrary,  yet  the  neglect  of  them,  in  some  cases,  may 
undergo  a  dangerous  construction. 

Nathan  was  the  man,  by  whom  God  had  sent  that  errand  of 
grace  to  David,  concerning  Solomon,  assuring  him  both  to  reigu 
and  prosper ;  yet  now,  when  Adonijah's  plot  was  thus  on  foot,  he 
doth  not  sit  still  and  depend  upon  the  issue  of  God's  decree,  but 
he  bestirs  him  in  the  business,  and  consults  with  Bathsheba,  how 
at  once  to  save  their  lives,  and  to  advance  Solomon,  and  defeat 
Adonijah.  God's  pre-determination  includes  the  means  as  well  as 
the  end.  The  same  providence,  that  had  ordained  a  crown  to 
Solomon,  a  repulse  to  Adonijah,  preservation  to  Bathsheba  and 
Nathan,  had  fore-appointed  the  wise  and  industrious  endeavours 
of  the  prophet,  to  bring  about  his  just  and  holy  purposes:  if  we 
would  not  have  God  wanting  to  us,  we  must  not  be  wanting  to 
ourselves :  even  when  we  know  what  God  hath  meant  to  us,  we 
may  not  be  negligent. 

The  prophets  of  God  did  not  look  for  revelation,  in  all  their 
affairs :  in  some  things,  they  were  left  to  the  counsel  of  their  own 
hearts.  The  policy  of  Nathan  was  of  use,  as  well  as  his  pro- 
phecy :  that  alone  hath  turned  the  stream  into  the  right  channel. 
Nothing  could  be  more  wisely  contrived,  than  the  sending  in  of 
Bathsheba  to  David,  with  so  seasonable  and  forcible  an  expostula- 
tion ;  and  the  seconding  of  hers,  with  his  own. 

Though  lust  were  dead  in  David,  yet  the  respects  of  his  old 
matrimonial  love  lived  still :  the  very  presence  of  Bathsheba  pleaded 
strongly  ;  but  her  speech  more.  The  time  was,  when  his  affection 
ostoiided  in  excess  towards  her,  being  then  another's ;  he  cannot  now 


422 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


neglect  her,  being  his  own :  and  if  either  his  age  or  the  remorse 
of  his  old  offence  should  have  set  him  off,  yet  she  knew  his  oath 
was  sure ;  My  lord,  thou  swarest  by  the  Lord  thy  God  unto  thine 
handmaid,  saying,  Assuredly,  Solomon,  thy  son,  shall  reign  after 
me,  and  he  shall  sit  upon  my  throne.  His  word  had  been  firm, 
but  his  oath  was  inviolable  :  we  are  engaged,  if  we  have  promised  ; 
but  if  we  have  sworn,  we  are  bound.  Neither  heaven  nor  earth 
have  any  gyves  for  that  man,  that  can  shake  off  the  fetters  of  an 
oath  ;  for  he  cares  not  for  that  God,  whom  he  dares  invoke  to  a 
falsehood  :  and  he,  that  cares  not  for  God,  will  not  care  for  man. 

Ere  Bathsheba  can  be  over  the  threshold,  Nathan  (upon  com- 
pact) is  knocking  at  the  door.  God's  prophet  was  never  but  wel- 
come, to  the  bed-chamber  of  King  David.  In  a  seeming  strange- 
ness, he  falls  upon  the  same  suit,  upon  the  same  complaint,  with 
Bathsheba.  Honest  policies  do  not  misbecome  the  holiest  prophets. 
She  might  seem  to  speak  as  a  woman,  as  a  mother,  out  of  passion ; 
the  word  of  a  prophet  could  not  be  misdoubted :  he  therefore, 
that  had  formerly  brought  to  David  that  chiding  and  bloody  mes- 
sage concerning  Bathsheba,  comes  now  to  David  to  sue  for  the  life 
and  honour  of  Bathsheba  ;  and  he,  that  was  sent  from  God  to  Da- 
vid, to  bring  the  news  of  a  gracious  promise  of  favour  unto  Solo- 
mon, comes  now  to  challenge  the  execution  of  it  from  the  hands 
of  a  father ;  and  he,  whose  place  freed  him  from  suspicion  of  a 
faction,  complains  of  the  insolent  demeanour  and  proclamation  of 
Adonijah  ;  what  he  began  with  a  humble  obeisance,  shutting  up 
in  a  lowly  and  loving  expostulation  ;  Is  this  thing  done  by  my  lord 
the  king,  and  thou  hast  not  shewed  thy  servant  who  should  sit  on 
the  throne  of  my  lord  the  king  after  him  ?  As  Nathan  was  of 
jGod's  counsel,  unto  David  ;  so  was  he  of  David's  counsel,  both  to 
God  and  the  state :  as  God  therefore,  upon  all  occasions,  told  Na- 
than what  he  meant  to  do  with  David  ;  so  had  David  wont,  to  tell 
Nathan  what  he  meant  to  do,  in  his  holy  and  most  important  civil 
affairs.  There  are  cases,  wherein  ft  is  not  unfit  for  God's  prophets 
to  meddle  with  matters  of  state.  It  is  no  disparagement  to  reli- 
gious princes,  to  impart  their  counsels  unto  them,  who  can  requite 
them  with  the  counsels  of  God. 

That  wood,  which  a  single  iron  could  not  rive,  is  soon  splitted 
with  a  double  wedge.  The  seasonable  importunity  of  Bathsheba 
and  Nathan,  thus  seconding  each  other,  hath  so  wrought  upon 
David,  that  now  his  love  to  Adonijah  gives  place  to  indignation  ; 
nature,  to  a  holy  fidelity :  and  now  he  renews  his  ancient  oath  to 
Bathsheba,  with  a  passionate  solemnity  ;  As  the  Lord  liveth,  who 
hath  redeemed  my  soul  out  of  all  adversity,  even  as  I  sware  unto 
thee  by  the  Lord  God  of  Israel,  saying,  Assuredly,  Solomon,  thy 
son,  shall  reign  after  me,  and  he  shall  sit  upon  my  throne  in  my 
stead,  so  will  I  certainly  do  this  day. 

In  the  decay  of  David's  body,  I  find  not  his  intellective  powers 
any  whit  impaired:  as  one  therefore,  that,  from  his  bed,  could 
w-ith  a  perfect  (if  weak)  hand,  steer  the  government  of  Israel,  he 
gives  wise  and  full  directions,  for  the  inauguration  of  Solomon . 


david's  end,  and  Solomon's  beginning.  423 

Zadok  the  priest,  and  Nathan  the  prophet,  and  Benaiah  the  cap- 
tain, receive  his  grave  and  princely  charge,  for  the  carriage  of 
that  so  weighty  a  business.  They  are  commanded  to  take  with 
them  the  royal  guard,  to  set  Solomon  upon  his  father's  mule,  to 
carry  him  down  in  state  to  Gihon,  to  anoint  him  with  the  holy  oil 
of  the  tabernacle,  to  sound  the  trumpets  and  proclaim  him  in  the 
streets,  to  bring  him  back  with  triumph  and  magnificence  to  the 
court,  and  to  set  him  in  the  royal  throne  with  all  the  due  ceremo- 
nies of  coronation. 

How  pleasing  was  this  command  to  them,  who,  in  Solomon's 
glory,  saw  their  own  safety  !  Benaiah  applauds  it ;  and,  not  fear- 
ing a  father's  envy,  in  David's  presence  wisheth  Solomon's  throne 
exalted  above  his.  The  people  are  ravished,  with  the  joy  of  so 
hopeful  a  succession;  and  break  the  earth,  and  fill  the  heaven, 
with  the  noise  of  their  music  and  shouting. 

Solomon's  guests  had  now,  at  last,  better  cheer  than  Adonijah's  ; 
whose  feast  (as  all  wicked  men's)  ended  in  horror.  No  sooner  are 
their  bellies  full  of  meat,  than  their  ears  are  full  of  the  sound  of 
those  trumpets,  which  at  once  proclaim  Solomon's  triumph  and 
their  confusion.  Ever  after  the  meal  is  ended,  comes  the  reckon 
ing.  God  could  as  easily  have  prevented  this  jollity,  as  marred  it ; 
but  he  willingly  suffers  vain  men  to  please  themselves  for  a  time, 
in  the  conceited  success  of  their  own  projects,  that  afterwards 
their  disappointment  may  be  so  much  the  more  grievous.  No 
doubt,  at  this  feast  there  was  man}'  a  health  drunken  to  Adonijah, 
many  a  confident  boast  of  their  prosperous  design,  many  a  scorn 
of  the  despised  faction  of  Solomon ;  and  now,  for  their  last  dish, 
is  served  up  astonishment,  and  fearful  expectation  of  a  just  re- 
venge. Jonathan,  the  son  of  Abiathar  the  priest,  brings  the  new  s 
of  Solomon's  solemn  and  joyful  enthronization  :  now  all  hearts  are. 
cold,  all  faces  pale  ;  and  every  man  hath  but  life  enough  to  run 
away.  How  suddenly  is  this  braving  troop  dispersed  !  Adonijah, 
their  new  prince,  flies  to  the  horns  of  the  altar  ;  as  distrusting  all 
hopes  of  life,  save  the  sanctity  of  the  place,  and  the  mercy  of  his 
rival. 

So  doth  the  wise  and  just  God  befool  proud  and  insolent  sinners, 
in  those  secret  plots,  wherein  they  hope  to  undermine  the  true  son 
of  David,  the  Prince  of  Peace.  He  suffers  them  to  lay  their  heads 
together,  and  to  feast  themselves  in  a  jocund  security  and  promise 
of  success ;  at  last,  when  they  are  at  the  height  of  their  joys  and 
hopes,  he  confounds  all  their  devices,  and  lays  them  open  to  the 
scorn  of  the  world,  and  to  the  anguish  of  their  own  guilty  hearts. 

1  Kings  i. 


DAVID'S  END,  AND  SOLOMON'S  BEGINNING. 

It  well  became  Solomon,  to  begin  his  reign  in  peace.  Adonijah 
receives  pardon,  upon  his  good  behaviour  ;  and  finds  the  throne  of 
Solomon,  as  safe  as  the  altar. 


424 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


David  lives  to  see  a  wise  son  warm  in  his  seat ;  and  now,  he,  that 
had  yielded  to  succession,  yields  to  nature. 

Many  good  counsels  had  David  given  his  heir ;  now  he  sums 
them  up  in  his  end.  Dying  words  are  wont  to  be  weightiest :  the 
soul,  when  it  is  entering  into  glory,  breathes  nothing  but  divine. 

I  go  the  way  of  all  the  earth.  How  well  is  that  princely  heart 
content,  to  subscribe  to  the  conditions  of  human  mortality ;  as 
one  that  knew  sovereignty  doth  not  reach  to  the  affairs  of  nature  ! 
Though  a  king,  he  neither  expects  nor  desires  an  immunity  from 
dissolution  ;  making  no  account  to  go  in  any  other  than  the  com- 
mon track,  to  the  universal  home  of  mankind,  the  house  of  age. 
Whither  should  earth,  but  to  earth  ?  And  why  should  we  grudge 
to  do  that,  which  all  do  ? 

Be  thou  strong,  therefore  ;  and  shew  thijself  a  man.  Even  when 
his  spirit  was  going  out,  he  puts  spirit  into  his  son  :  age  puts  life 
into  youth,  and  the  dying  animates  the  vigorous.  He  had  well 
found,  that  strength  was  requisite  to  government ;  that  he  had 
need  to  be  no  less  than  a  man,  that  should  rule  over  men.  If  great- 
ness should  never  receive  any  opposition,  yet  those  worlds  of  cares 
and  businesses,  that  attend  the  chair  of  state,  are  able  to  overlay 
any  mean  powers.  A  weak  man  may  obey  ;  none  but  the  strong 
can  govern. 

Graceless  courage  were  but  the  whetstone  of  tj'ranny  ;  Take 
heed,  therefore,  to  the  charge  of  the  Lord  thy  God,  to  walk  in  his 
•ways,  and  to  keep  his  statutes.  The  best  legacy  that  David  be- 
queaths to  his  heir,  is,  the  care  of  piety.  Himself  had  found  the 
sweetness  of  a  good  conscience,  and  now  he  commends  it  to  his 
successor.  If  there  be  an}'  thing,  that,  in  our  desires  of  the  pro- 
sperous condition  of  our  children,  takes  place  of  goodness,  our 
hearts  are  not  upright.  Here  was  the  father  of  a  king,  charging 
the  king  his  son,  to  keep  the  statutes  of  the  King  of  Kings ;  as 
one,  that  knew  greatness  could  neither  exempt  from  obedience, 
nor  privilege  sin  ;  as  one,  that  knew  the  least  deviation  in  the 
greatest  and  highest  orb,  is  both  most  sensible  and  most  dan- 
gerous. Neither  would  he  have  his  son,  to  look  for  any  prosperity, 
save  only  from  well-doing :  that  happiness  is  built  upon  sand  or 
ice,  which  is  raised  upon  any  foundation  besides  virtue.  If  Solo- 
mon were  wise,  David  was  good  ;  and  if  old  Solomon  had  well 
remembered  the  counsel  of  old  David,  he  had  not  so  foully  mis- 
carried. 

After  the  precepts  of  piety,  follow  those  of  justice ;  distribut- 
ing in  a  due  recompence,  as  revenge  to  Joab  and  Shimei,  so  favour 
to  the  house  of  Barzillai. 

The  bloodiness  of  Joab  had  lain  long  upon  David's  heart.  The 
hideous  noise  of  those  treacherous  murders,  as  it  had  pierced  hea- 
ven, so  it  still  filled  the  ears  of  David.  He  could  abhor  the  vil- 
lainy, though  he  could  not  revenge  it.  What  he  cannot  pay,  he 
will  owe;  and  approve  himself  at  last  a  faithful  debtor:  now  he 
will  defray  it  by  the  hand  of  Solomon.  The  slaughter  was  of  Ab~ 
ner  and  Amasa  :  David  appropriates  it ;  Thou  knowest  what  Joab 


david's  end,  and  Solomon's  beginning.  425 

did  to  me.  The  sovereign  is  smitten  in  the  subject :  neither  is  it 
other  than  just,  that  the  arraignment  of  mean  malefactors  runs  in  the 
style,  of  wrong  to  the  king's  crown  and  dignity.  How  much  more 
dost  thou,  O  Son  of  David,  take  to  thyself  those  insolencies,  which 
are  done  to  thy  poorest  subjects,  servants,  sons,  members  here  upon 
earth  !  No  Saul  can  touch  a  Christian  here  below,  but  thou  feelest 
it  in  heaven,  and  complainest. 

But  what  shall  we  think  of  this  ?  David  was  a  man  of  war,  So- 
lomon a  king  of  peace ;  yet  David  refers  this  revenge  to  Solomon. 
How  just  it  was,  that  he,  who  shed  the  blood  of  war  in  peace,  and 
put  the  blood  of  war  upon  his  girdle  that  was  about  his  loins, 
should  have  his  blood  shed  in  peace,  by  a  prince  of  peace  !  Peace 
is  fittest  to  rectify  the  outrages  of  war.  Or,  whether  is  not  this 
done,  in  type  of  that  divine  administration,  wherein  thou,  O, Fa- 
ther of  Heaven,  hast  committed  all  judgment  unto  thine  eternal 
Son  ?  Thou,  who  couldst  immediately  either  plague  or  absolve  sin- 
ners, wilt  do  neither  but  by  the  hand  of  a  Mediator. 

Solomon  learned  betimes,  what  his  ripeness  taught  afterwards  ; 
Take  away  the  wicked  from  the  king,  and  his  throne  shall  be  esta- 
blished hi  righteousness.  Cruel  Joab,  and  malicious  Shimei,  must 
be  therefore,  upon  the  first  opportunity,  removed.  The  one  lay 
open  to  present  justice,  for  abetting  the  conspiracy  of  Adonijah, 
neither  needs  the  help  of  time  for  a  new  advantage  ;  the  other 
went  under  the  protection  of  an  oath  from  David,  and  therefore 
must  be  fetched  in  upon  a  new  challenge.  The  hoary  head  of 
both  must  be  brought  to  the  grave  with  blood,  else  David's  head 
could  not  be  brought  to  his  grave  in  peace.  Due  punishment  of 
malefactors  is  the  debt  of  authority.  If  that  holy  king  have  run 
into  arrearages,  yet,  as  one  that  hates  and  fears  to  break  the  bank, 
he  gives  orders  to  his  paymaster :  it  shall  be  defrayed  ;  if  not  by 
him,  yet  for  him. 

Generous  natures  cannot  be  unthankful  :  Barzillai  had  shewed 
David  some  kindness,  in  his  extremity;  and  now  the  good  man 
will  have  posterity  to  inherit  the  thanks.  How  much  more  bounti- 
ful is  the  Father  of  Mercies,  in  the  remuneration  of  our  poor  un- 
worthy services !  Even  successions  of  generations  shall  fare  the 
better,  for  one  good  parent. 

The  dying  words  and  thoughts  of  the  man  after  God's  own 
heart,  did  not  confine  themselves  to  the  straits  of  these  particular 
charges,  but  enlarged  themselves  to  the  care  of  God's  public  ser- 
vice. As  good  men  are  best  at  last,  David  did  never  so  busily  and 
carefully  marshal  the  affairs  of  God,  as  when  he  was  fixed  to  the 
bed  of  his  age  and  death.  Then  did  he  load  his  son  Solomon, 
with  the  charge  of  building  the  house  of  God.  Then  did  he  lay 
before  the  eyes  of  his  son  the  model  and  pattern  of  that  whole 
sacred  work,  whereof,  if  Solomon  bare  the  name,  yet  David 
no  less  merits  it.  He  now  gives  the  platform  of  the  courts  and 
buildings.  He  gives  the  gold  and  silver  for  that  holy  use;  a  hun- 
dred thousand  udents  of  gold,  a  thousand  talents  of  silver  ;  besides 
brass  and  iron  passing  weight.    He  weighs  out  those  precious  me- 


4-26 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


tals,  for  their  several  designments.  Every  future  vessel  is  laid  out 
already  in  his  poise,  if  not  in  his  form.  He  excites  the  princes  of 
Israel  to  their  assistance,  in  so  high  a  work  :  he  takes  notice  of 
their  bountiful  offerings.  He  numbers  up  the  Levites  for  the  public 
services,  and  sets  them  their  tasks.  He  appoints  the  singers  and 
other  musicians  to  their  stations ;  the  porters  to  the  gates,  that 
should  be.  And  now,  wbeu  he  hath  set  all  things  in  a  desired  order 
and  forwardness,  he  shuts  up  with  a  zealous  blessing  of  his  Solo- 
mon and  his  people,  and  sleeps  with  his  fathers.  O  blessed  soul, 
how  quiet  a  possession  bast  thou  now  taken,  after  so  many  tumults, 
of  a  better  crown  !  Thou,  that  hast  prepared  all  things  for  the 
house  of  thy  God,  how  happily  art  thou  now  welcomed  to  that 
house  of  bis,  not  made  with  hands,  eternal  in  the  heavens  !  Who 
now  shall  envy  unto  good  princes,  the  honour  of  overseeing  the 
businesses  of  God  and  his  Church  ;  when  David  was  thus  punctual 
in  these  divine  provisions  ?  What  fear  can  be  of  usurpation,  where 
they  have  so  glorious  a  precedent  ? 

Now  is  Solomon  the  second  time  crowned  king  of  Israel ;  and 
now,  in  his  own  right,  as  formerly  in  his  father's,  sits  peaceably 
upon  the  throne  of  the  Lord.  His  awe  and  power  come  on  faster 
than,  his  years. 

Envy  and  ambition,  where  it  is  once  kindled,  may  sooner  be  hid 
in  the  ashes,  than  quite  put  out.  Adonijah  yet  hangs  after  his  old 
hopes  :  he  remembers  how  sweet  he  found  the  name  of  a  king  ;  and 
now  hath  laid  a  new  plot,  for  the  setting  up  of  his  cracked  title. 
He  would  make  the  bed  a  step  to  the  throne  :  his  old  complies  are 
sure  enough  :  his  part  would  gather  much  strength,  if  he  might  en- 
joy Abishag,  the  relict  of  his  father,  to  wife.  If  it  were  not  the 
Jewish  fashion,  as  is  pretended,  that  a  king's  widow  should  marry 
none  but  a  king  ;  yet  certainly  the  power,  both  of  the  alliance  and 
friendship  of  a  queen,  must  needs  not  a  little  advance  his  purpose. 
The  crafty  rival  dare  not,  either  move  the  suit  to  Solomon,  or  ef- 
fect the  marriage  without  him;  but  would  cunningly  undermine 
the  son,  by  the  suit  of  that  mother,  whose  suit  had  undermined 
him.  The  weaker  vessels  are  commonly  used,  in  the  most  danger- 
ous suggestions  of  evil. 

Batbsheba  was  so  wise  a  woman,  that  some  of  her  counsels  are 
canonized  for  divine ;  yet  she  saw  not  the  depth  of  this  drift  of 
Adonijah  ;  therefore  she  both  entertains  the  suit,  and  moves  it. 
But,  whatever  were  the  intent  of  the  suitor,  could  she  choose  but  see 
the  unlawfulness  of  so  incestuous  a  match  r  It  is  not  long,  since 
she  saw  her  late  husband  David  abominating  the  bed  of  those  his 
concubines,  that  had  been  touched  by  his  son  Absalom  ;  and  can 
she  hold  it  lawful,  that  his  son  Adonijah  should  climb  up  to  the  bed 
of  his  father's  wife  ?  Sometimes,  even  the  best  eyes  are  dim,  and 
discern  not  those  tilings  which  are  obvious  to  weaker  sights.  Or, 
whether  did  not  Bathsheba  well  see  the  foulness  of  the  suit,  and 
yet  in  compassion  of  Adonijah's  late  repulse,  wherein  she  was  the 
chief  agent,  and  in  a  desire  to  make  him  amends  for  the  loss  of 
the  kingdom,  she  yields  even  thus  to  gratify  him  r    It  is  an  inju- 


david's  end,  and  Solomon's  beginning.  427 
rious  weakness,  to  be  drawn  upon  by  any  by-respects,  to  the  fur- 
therance of  faulty  suits,  of  unlawful  actions. 

No  sooner  doth  Bathsheba  come  in  place,  than  Solomon  her  son 
rises  from  his  chair  of  state,  and  meets  her,  and  bows  to  her,  and 
sets  her  on  his  right  hand  ;  as  not  so  remembering  himself  to  be  a 
king,  that  he  should  forget  he  was  a  son.  No  outward  dignity  can 
take  away  the  rights  and  obligations  of  nature.  Had  Bathsheba 
been  as  mean  as  Solomon  was  mighty,  she  had  carried  away  this 
honour  from  a  gracious  son. 

Yet  for  all  these  due  compliments,  Bathsheba  goes  away  with  a 
denial.  Reverence  she  shall  have,  she  shall  not  have  a  compliance. 
In  the  acts  of  magistracy,  all  regards  of  natural  relations  must  give 
way.  That,  which  she  propounded  as  a  small  request,  is  now,  after 
a  general  and  confused  engagement,  rejected  as  unreasonable.  It 
were  pity  we  should  be  heard  in  all  our  suits.  Bathsheba  makes  a 
petition  against  herself,  ami  knows  it  not:  her  safety  and  life  de- 
pend upon  Solomon's  reign;  yet  she  unwittingly  moves  for  the  ad- 
vancement of  Adonijah.  Solomon  was  too  dutiful  to  check  his 
mother,  and  too  wise  to  yield  to  her  :  in  unfit  supplications,  we  are 
most  heard  when  we  are  most  repelled.  Thus  doth  our  God  many 
times  answer  our  prayers,  with  merciful  denials  ;  and  most  blesseth 
us,  in  crossing  our  desires. 

Wise  Solomon  doth  not  find  himself  perplexed,  with  the  scruple 
of  his  promise.  He,  that  had  said,  Ask  on,  for  I  will  not  saj/ 
thee  nay,  can  now  say,  God  do  so  to  me  and  more  also,  if  Adoni- 
jah have  not  spoken  this  word  against  his  own  life.  His  promise 
was  according  to  his  supposition  ;  his  supposition  was  of  no  other 
than  of  a  suit,  honest, reasonable,  expedient;  now,  he  holds  him- 
self free  from  that  grant,  wherein  there  was  at  once  both  sin  and 
danger.  No  man  can  be  entangled  with  general  words,  against  his 
own  just  and  honest  intentions. 

The  policies  of  wicked  men  befool  them  at  last:  This  interces- 
sion hath  undone  Adonijah  ;  and,  instead  of  the  throne,  hastens  his 
grave.  The  sword  of  Benaiah  puts  an  end  to  that  dangerous  ri- 
valry. 

Joab  and  Abiathar  still  held  champerty  with  Adonijah.  Their 
hand  was  both  in  the  claim  of  his  kingdom,  and  in  the  suit  of  Abi- 
shag.  There  are  crimes,  wherein  there  are  no  accessaries  ;  such 
is  this  of  treason. 

Abiathar  may  thank  his  burden,  that  he  lives  :  had  he  not  borne  the 
ark  of  the  Lord  before  David,  he  had  not  now  carried  his  head  upon 
his  shoulders :  had  he  not  been  afflicted  with  David,  lie  had  pe- 
rished with  Adonijah  :  now,  though  he  were,  in  his  own  merit,  a 
man  of  death,  yet  he  shall  survive  his  partners  ;  Get  thee  to  Ana- 
thoth,  unto  thine  own  fields.  The  priesthood  of  Abiathar,  as  it  ag- 
gravated his  crime,  so  it  shall  preserve  3iis  life.  Sucli  honour  have 
good  princes  given  to  the  ministers  of  the  sanctuary,  that  their  very 
coat  hath  been  defence  enough  against  the  sword  of  justice  :  how 
much  more  should  it  be  of  proof,  against  the  contempt  of  base 
persons  ! 


423 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


Besides  his  function,  respect  is  had  to  his  sufferings.  The  father 
and  brethren  of  Abiathar  were  slain  for  David's  sake;  therefore, 
for  David's  sake,  Abiathar,  though  worthy  of  death,  shall  live. 
He  had  been  now  a  dead  man,  if  he  had  not  been  formerly  afflict- 
ed. Thus  doth  our  good  God  deal  with  us  :  by  the  rod,  he  pre- 
vents the  sword  ;  and  therefore  will  not  condemn  us  for  our  sins,  be- 
cause we  have  suffered. 

If  Abiathar  do  not  forfeit  his  life,  yet  his  office  he  shall :  he  must 
change  Jerusalem  for  Anathoth,  and  the  priesthood  for  a  retired 
privacy. 

It  was  fourscore  years  ago,  since  the  sentence  of  judgment  was 
denounced  against  the  house  of  Eli :  now  doth  it  come  to  execu- 
tion. This  just  quarrel  against  Abiathar,  the  last  of  that  line,  shall 
make  good  the  threatened  judgment.  The  wickedness  of  Eli's 
house  was  neither  purged  by  sacrifice,  nor  obliterated  by  time.  If 
God  pay  slowly ,  yet  he  pays  sure.  Delay  of  most  certain  punish- 
ment is  neither  anv  hindrance  to  his  justice,  nor  any  comfort  to  our 
miseries.  1  Kings  ii.  iChron.xxlz. 


THE  EXECUTION  OF  JOAB  AND  SHIMEI. 

Abiathar  shall  live,  though  he  serve  not.  It  is  in  the  power  of 
princes  to  remit,  at  least,  those  punishments,  which  attend  the 
breach  of  human  laws :  good  reason  they  should  have  power,  to  dis- 
pense with  the  wrongs  done  to  their  own  persons. 

The  news  of  Adonijah's  death  and  Abiathar' s  removal,  cannot 
but  affright  Joab  ;  who  now  runs  to  Gibeon,  and  takes  sanctuary 
in  the  tabernacle  of  God.  All  his  hope  of  defence  is  in  the  horns 
of  the  altar.  Fond  Joab,  hadst  thou  formerly  sought  for  counselfrom 
the  tabernacle,  thou  hadst  not  now  needed  to  seek  to  it  for  refuge  : 
if  thy  devotions  had  not  been  wanting  to  that  altar,  thou  hadst  not 
needed  it  for  a  shelter.  It  is  the  fashion  of  our  foolish  presumption, 
to  look  for  protection,  where  we  have  not  cared  to  yield  obe- 
dience. 

Even  a  Joab  clings  fast  to  God's  altar,  in  his  extremity; 
which,  in  his  ruff  and  welfare  he  regarded  not.  The  worst  men 
would  be  glad  to  make  use  of  God's  ordinances,  for  their  advan- 
tage :  necessity  will  drive  the  most  profane  and  lawless  man  to 
God.  But  what  do  these  bloody  hands  touching  the  holy  altar  of 
God  ?  Miserable  Joab,  what  help  canst  thou  expect  from  that  sa- 
cred pile  ?  Those  horns,  that  were  sprinkled  with  the  blood  of 
beasts,  abhor  to  be  touched  by  the  blood  of  men :  that  altar  was 
for  the  expiation  of  sin,  by  blood;  not  for  the  protection  of  the 
sin  of  blood.  Jf  Adonijah  fled  thither  and  escaped,  it  is  murder 
that  pursues  thee,  more  than  conspiracy  :  God  hath  no  sanctuary 
for  a  wilful  homicide. 

Yea,  such  respect  doth  Benaiah  give  to  that  holy  place,  that  his 
Sword  is  unwilling  to  touch  him  that  touches  the  altar.  Those  hoins 


THE  EXECUTION  OF  JOAB  AND  SHIMEI. 


429 


shall  put  off  death  for  the  time  ;  and  give  protraction  of  the  execu- 
tion, though  not  preservation  of  life. 

How  sweet  is  life,  even  to  those  who  have  been  prodigal  of  the 
blood  of  others,  that  Joab  shifts  thus  to  hold  it,  but  some  few 
hours ! 

Benaiah  returns  with  Joab's  answer,  instead  of  his  head  ;  Nay, 
but  I  will  die  here  ;  as  not  daring  to  unsheath  his  sword  against  a 
man  sheltered  in  God's  tabernacle,  without  a  new  commission. 
Young  Solomon  is  so  well  acquainted  with  the  law  of  God  in  such 
a  case,  that  he  sticks  not  at  the  sentence.  He  knew  that  God  had 
enacted,  If  a  man  came  presumptuously  upon  his  neighbour,  to 
slay  him  with  guile,  thou  shall  take  him  from  mine  altar,  that 
he  may  die.  He  knew  Joab's  murders  had  not  been  more  pre- 
sumptuous, than  guileful  ;  and  therefore  he  sends  Benaiah  to  take 
away  the  offender,  both  from  God  and  men,  from  the  altar  and 
the  world. 

No  subject  had  merited  more  than  Joab.  When  proclamation 
was  made  in  Israel,  that  whoever  should  smite  the  Jebusites  first, 
he  should  be  the  chief  and  captain,  Joab  was  the  man  :  when  Da- 
vid built  some  part  of  Jerusalem,  Joab  built  the  rest;  so  as  Jeru- 
salem owes  itself  to  Joab,  both  for  recovery  and  reparation :  no 
man  held  so  close  to  David  :  no  man  was  more  intent  to  the  weal  of 
Israel ;  none  so  successful  in  victories :  yet  now  he  is  called  to 
reckon  for  his  old  sins,  and  must  repay  blood  to  Amasa  and  Abner. 
It  is  not  in  the  power  of  all  our  deserts,  to  buy  off  one  sin,  either 
with  God  or  man.  Where  life  is  so  deeply  forfeited,  it  admits  of 
no  redemption. 

The  honest  simplicity  of  those  times,  knew  not  of  any  infamy 
in  the  execution  of  justice.  Benaiah,  who  was  the  great  marshal 
under  Solomon,  thinks  not  his  fingers  defiled  with  that  fatal  stroke. 
It  is  a  foolish  niceness,  to  put  more  shame  in  the  doing  of  justice, 
than  in  the  violating  of  it. 

In  one  act,  Solomon  hath  approved  himself,  both  a  good  ma- 
gistrate and  a  good  son ;  fulfilling  at  once,  the  will  of  a  father 
and  the  charge  of  God;  concluding,  upon  this  just  execution,  that 
Upon  David,  and  upon  his  seed,  and  upon  his  house,  and  upon  /it's 
throne,  there  shall  be  peace  for  ever •from  the  Lord  ;  and  inferring, 
that,  without  this,  there  could  have  been  no  peace. 

Blood  is  a  restless  suitor  ;  and  will  not  leave  clamouring  for  judg- 
ment, till  the  mouth  be  stopped  with  revenge.  In  this  case,  fa- 
vour to  the  offender  is  cruelty  to  the  favourer. 

Now  hath  Joab  paid  all  his  arrearages,  by  the  sword  of  Benaiah. 
There  is  no  suit  against  his  corpse  ;  that  hath  the  honour  of  a  bu- 
rial, fit  for  a  peer  of  Israel,  for  the  near  cousin  to  the  king.  Death 
puts  an  end  to  all  quarrels.  Solomon  strikes  off  the  score,  when 
God  is  satisfied.  The  revenge,  that  survives  death,  and  will  not  be 
shut  up  in  the  coffin,  is  barbarous,  and  unbeseeming  true  Is- 
raelites. 

Only  Shimei  remains  upon  the  file.  His  course  is  next ;  yet  so,  as 
that  it  shall  be  in  his  own  liberty  to  hasten  his  end.  Upon  David'sre- 
miision,  Shimei  dwells  securely  in  Bahurim,  a  town  of  the  tribe  of 


430 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


Benjamin.  Doubtless,  when  he  saw  so  round  justice  done  upon  Ado- 
nijah  and  Joab,  his  guilty  heart  could  not  think  Solomon's  message 
portended  ought  but  bis  execution  ;  and  now  he  cannot  but  be  well 
pleased  with  so  easy  conditions,  of  dwelling  at  Jerusalem,  and  not 
assing  over  the  brook  Kidron.  What  more  delightful  place  could 
e  choose  to  live  in,  than  that  city,  which  was  the  glory  of  the  whole 
earth  ?  what  more  pleasing  bounds  could  he  wish,  than  the  sweet 
banks  of  Kidron  ?  Jerusalem  could  be  no  prison  to  him,  while  it 
was  a  Paradise  to  his  betters  ;  and  if  he  had  a  desire  to  take  fresh 
air,  he  had  the  space  of  six  furlongs  to  walk  from  the  city  to  the 
brook.  He  could  not  complain  to  be  so  delectably  confined.  And 
besides,  thrice  every  year  he  might  be  sure  to  see  all  his  friends, 
without  stirring  his  foot. 

Wise  Solomon,  while  he  cared  to  seem  not  too  severe  an  ex- 
actor of  that  which  his  father  had  remitted,  prudently  lays  in- 
sensible twigs  for  so  foul  an  offender.  Besides  the  old  grudge, 
no  doubt  Solomon  saw  cause  to  suspect  the  fidelity  of  Shimei ; 
as  a  man  who  was  ever  known  to  be  hollow  to  the  house  of 
David.  The  obscurity  of  a  country  life  would  easily  afford  him, 
more  safe  opportunities  of  secret  mischief.  Many  eyes  shall  watch 
him  in  the  city.  He  cannot  look  out  unseen  ;  he  cannot  whisper 
unheard.  Upon  no  other  terms  shall  he  enjoy  his  life,  which  the 
least  straying  shall  forfeit. 

Shimei  feels  no  pain  in  this  restiaint.  How  many  nobles  of  Is- 
rael do  that  for  pleasure,  which  he  doth  upon  command  !  Three 
years  hath  he  lived  within  compass,  limited  both  by  Solomon's 
charge  and  his  own  oath.  It  was  still  in  his  power,  notwithstand- 
ing David's  caveat,  to  have  laid  down  his  hoary  head  in  the  grave, 
without  blood.  The  just  God  infatuates  those,  whom  he  means  to 
plague.  Two  of  Shimei's  servants  are  fled  to  Gath  ;  and  now  he 
saddles  his  ass,  and  is  gone  to  fetch  them  back.  "  Either,"  he  thinks, 
"  this  word  of  Solomon  is  forgotten,  or,  in  the  multitude  of  greater 
affairs,  not  heeded  ;  or  this  so  small  an  occurrence  will  not  come  to 
his  ear."  Covetousness,  and  presumption  of  impunity,  are  the 
destruction  of  many  a  soul.  Shimei  seeks  his  servants,  and  loses 
himself.  How  many  are  there,  who  cry  out  of  this  folly,  and  yet 
imitate  it !  These  earthly  things  either  are  our  servants,  or  should 
be :  how  commonly  do  we  see  men  run  out  of  the  bounds  set  by 
God's  law,  to  hunt  after  them,  till  their  souls  incur  a  fearful  judg- 
ment ? 

Princes  have  thousands  of  eyes  and  ears.  If  Shimei  will  for  more 
secresy  saddle  his  own  ass,  and  take,  as  is  like,  the  benefit  of  night 
for  his  passage,  his  journey  cannot  be  hid  from  Solomon.  How 
wary  had  those  men  need  to  be,  that  arc  obnoxious  !  Without  delay 
is  Shimei  complained  of,  con  vented,  charged  with  violation  both 
of  the  oath  of  God  and  the  injunction  of  Solomon  ;  and,  that  all 
these  might  appear  to  be  but  an  occasion  of  that  punishment, 
whose  cause  was  more  remote,  now  is  all  that  old  venom  laid  be- 
fore him,  which  his  malice  had  long  since  spit  at  God's  anointed  ; 
Thou  knowest  all  the  wickedness,  whereto  thine  heart  is  privy,  that 
thou  didst  to  David  my  father. 


Solomon's  choice,  judgment,  &c.  431 

Had  this  old  tally  been  stricken  off,  yet  could  not  Shimei  have 
pleaded  ought  for  his  life :  for,  had  he  said,  "  Let  not  my  lord  the 
king  be  thus  mortally  displeased,  for  so  small  an  offence  :  who- 
ever died  for  passing  over  Kidron  ?  What  man  is  the  worse  for  my 
harmless  journey  ?"  it  had  soon  been  returned,  "  If  the  act  be 
small,  yet  the  circumstances  are  deadly  :  the  commands  of  sove- 
reign authority  make  the  slightest  duties  weighty:  if  the  journey 
be  harmless,  yet  not  the  disobedience."  It  is  not  for  subjects,  to 
poise  the  prince's  charge  in  the  scales  of  their  weak  constructions; 
but  they  must  suppose  it  ever  to  be  of  such  importance,  as  is  pre- 
tended by  the  commander. 

Besides  the  precept,  here  was  a  mutual  adjuration.  Shimei  swore 
not  to  go  ;  Solomon  swore  his  death,  if  he  went :  the  one  oath 
must  be  revenged  ;  the  other  must  be  kept :  if  Shimei  were  false 
in  offending,  Solomon  will  be  just  in  punishing.  Now  therefore, 
that,  which  Abishai  the  son  of  Zeruiah  wished  to  have  done  in  the 
greenness  of  the  wound  and  was  repelled,  after  long  festering 
Benaiah  is  commanded  to  do.  The  stones  that  Shimei  threw  at 
David  struck  not  so  deep,  as  Benaiah's  sword  :  the  tongue  that 
cursed  the  Lord's  anointed  hath  paid  the  head  to  boot.  Vengeance 
against  rebels  may  sleep  ;  it  cannot  die  :  a  sure,  if  late,  judgment 
attends  those,  that  flare  lift  up  either  the  hand  or  tongue  against 
the  sacred  persons  of  God's  vicegerents.  How  much  less  will  the 
God  of  Heaven  suffer,  unrevenged,  the  insolencies  and  blasphe- 
mies against  his  own  divine  majesty  !  It  is  a  fearful  word,  he  should 
notbejust,af  he  should  hold  these  guiltless.  1  Kings  ii. 


SOLOMON'S  CHOICE,  WITH  HIS  JUDGMENT  UPON 
THE  TWO  HARLOTS. 

After  so  many  messages  and  proofs  of  grace,  Solomon  begins 
doubtfully,  both  for  his  match  and  for  his  devotion.  If  Pharaoh's 
daughter  were  not  a  proselyte,  his  early  choice  was  (besides  un- 
warrantable) dangerous.  The  high  places  not  only  stood,  but  were 
frequented,  both  by  the  people  and  king.  I  do  not  find  David 
climbing  up  those  mishallowed  hills,  in  an  affection  of  the  variety 
of  altars :  Solomon  doth  so,  and  yet  loves  the  Lord,  and  is  loved 
of  God  again.  Such  is  the  mercy  of  our  God,  that  he  will  not 
suffer  our  well  meant  weaknesses,  to  bereave  us  of  his  favours' : 
he  rather  pities,  than  plagues  us,  for  the  infirmities  of  upright 
hearts. 

Gibeon  was  well  worthy  to  be  the  chief,  yea  the  only  high  place. 
There  was  the  allowed  altar  of  God :  there  was  the  tabernacle, 
though,  as  then,  severed  from  the  ark  :  thither  did  young  Solomon 
go  up  ;  and,  as  desiring  to  begin  his  reign  with  God,  there  he  offers 
no  less  than  a  thousand  sacrifices. 

Solomon  worships  God  by  day  :  God  appears  to  Solomon  by 
night.  Well  may  we  look  to  enjoy  God,  when  we  have  served 
hjm.  The  night  cannot  but  be  happy,  whose  day  hath  been  holy. 

It  was  no  unusual  course  with  God,  to  reveal  himself  unto  his 


432 


CONTEMPLATION?. 


servants  by  dreams  :  so  did  he  here  to  Solomon  ;  who  saw  more 
with  his  eyes  shut,  than  ever  they  could  see  open,  even  him  that  was 
invisible. 

The  good  king  had  offered  unto  God  a  thousand  burnt  sacri- 
fices, and  now  God  offered  him  his  option  ;  Ask  what  I  shall  give 
thee.  He,  whose  the  beasts  are  on  a  thousand  mountains,  gra- 
ciously accepts  a  small  return  of  his  own.  It  stands  not  with  the 
munificence  of  a  bountiful  God,  to  be  indebted  to  his  creature. 
We  cannot  give  him  ought  unrecompensed.  There  is  no  way 
wherein  we  can  be  so  liberal  to  ourselves,  as  by  giving  to  the  pos- 
sessor of  all  things.  And  art  thou  still,  O  God,  less  free  unto  us, 
thy  meaner  servants,  under  the  Gospel  ?  Hast  thou  not  said,  What- 
soever ye  shall  ask  the  Father  in  my  name,  it  shall  be  given  you  ? 
Only  give  us  grace,  not  to  be  wanting  unto  thee,  and  wc  know 
thou  canst  not  suffer  any  thing  to  be  wanting  unto  us. 

The  night  follows  the  temper  of  the  day  ;  and  the  heart  so  useth 
to  sleep,  as  it  wakes.  Had  not  the  thoughts  of  Solomon  been  in- 
tent upon  wisdom  bv  day,  he  had  not  made  it  his  suit  in  his  dream. 
There  needs  no  leisure  of  deliberation  :  the  heart  was  so  forestall- 
ed with  the  love  and  admiration  of  wisdom,  that,  not  abiding  the 
least  motion  of  a  competition,  it  fastens  on  that  grace  it  had  long- 
ed for ;  Give  unto  thy  servant  an  understanding  heart,  to  judge 
thy  people. 

Had  not  Solomon  been  wise  before,  he  had  not  known  the  worth 
of  wisdom  ;  he  had  not  preferred  it  in  his  desires.  The  dunghill 
cocks  of  the  world  cannot  know  the  price  of  this  pearl.  Those, 
that  have  it,  know  that  all  other  excellencies  are  but  trash  and  rub- 
bish unto  it. 

Solomon  was  a  great  king,  and  saw  that  he  had  power  enough  ; 
but  withal,  he  found  that  royalty,  without  wisdom,  was  no  other 
than  eminent  dishonour.  There  is  no  trade  of  life,  whereto  there 
belongs  not  a  peculiar  wisdom  ;  without  which,  there  is  nothing 
but  a  tedious  unprofitableness :  much  more  to  the  highest  and  busiest 
vocation,  the  regiment  of  men. 

As  God  hath  no  reason,  to  give  his  best  favours  unasked,  so  hath 
he  no  will  to  withhold  them,  where  they  are  asked. 

He,  that  in  his  cradle  had  the  title  of  beloved  of  God,  is  now  belov- 
ed more  in  the  throne,  for  the  love  and  desire  of  wisdom. 

This  soil  could  never  have  borne  this  fruit  alone.  Solomon  could 
not  so  much  as  have  dreamed  of  wisdom,  if  God  had  not  put  it 
into  him  ;  and  now  God  takes  the  suit  so  well,  as  if  he  were  be- 
holden to  his  creature,  for  wishing  the  best  to  itself ;  and  because 
Solomon  hath  asked  what  he  should,  he  shall  now  receive,  both 
what  he  asked  and  what  he  asked  not :  riches  and  honour  shall  be 
given  him  into  the  match.  So  doth  God  love  a  good  choice,  that 
he  recompenses  it  with  overgiving.  Could  we  but  first  seek  the 
kingdom  of  God  and  his  righteousness,  all  these  earthly  things 
should  be  superadded  to  us.  Had  Solomon  made  wealth  his  boon, 
he  had  failed  both  of  riches  and  wisdom  ;  now  he  asks  the  best,  and 
speeds  of  all.  They  are  in  a  fair  way  of  happiness,  that  can  pray  wett 


Solomon's  choice,  judgment,  &c.  433 

It  was  no  discomfort  to  Solomon,  that  he  awaked  and  found  it 
a  dream  ;  for  he  knew  this  dream  was  divine  and  oracular  ;  and 
he  already  found  in  his  first  waking,  the  real  performance  of  what 
was  promised  him  sleeping  :  such  illumination  did  he  sensibly  find 
in  all  the  rooms  of  his  heart,  as  if  God  had  now  given  him  a  new 
soul. 

No  marvel  if  Solomon,  now  returning  from  the  tabernacle  to 
the  ark,  testified  his  joy  and  thankfulness,  by  burnt-offerings,  and 
peace-offerings,  and  public  feastings.  The  heart,  that  hath  found 
in  itself  the  lively  testimonies  of  God's  presence  and  favour,  cannot 
contain  itself  from  outward  expressions. 

God  likes  not  to  have  his  gifts  lie  dead,  where  he  hath  conferred 
them.  Israel  shall  soon  witness  they  have  a  king  enlightened  from 
heaven  ;  in  whom  wisdom  did  not  stay  for  heirs,  did  not  admit  of 
any  parallel  in  his  predecessors.  The  all-wise  God  will  find  occa- 
sions to  draw  forth  those  graces  to  use  and  light,  which  he  hath 
bestowed  on  man. 

Two  harlots  come  before  young  Solomon,  with  a  difficult  plea. 
Itis  not  like,  the  prince's  ear  was  the  first  that  heard  this  complaint : 
there  was  a  subordinate  course  of  justice,  for  the  determination  of 
these  meaner  incidences.  The  hardness  of  this  decision  brought 
the  matter,  through  all  the  benches  of  inferior  judicature,  to  the 
tribunal  of  Solomon. 

The  very  Israelitish  harlots  were  not  so  unnatural,  as  some  now 
a  days,  that  counterfeit  honesty.  These  strive  for  the  fruit  of  their 
womb  ;  ours,  to  put  them  off. 

One  son  is  yet  alive ;  two  mothers  contend  for  him.  The  chil- 
dren were  alike  for  feature,  for  age  ;  the  mothers  were  alike  for 
reputation.  Here  can  be  no  evidence  from  others'  eyes.  Whe- 
ther's  now  is  the  living  child  ;  and  whether's  is  the  dead  ?  Had 
Solomon  gone  about  to  wring  forth  the  truth  by  tortures,  he  had 

Eerhaps  plagued  the  innocent,  and  added  pain  to  the  misery  of 
er  loss  :  the  weaker  had  been  guilty  ;  and  the  more  able  to  bear, 
had  carried  away  both  the  child  and  the  victory.  The  countenance 
of  either  of  the  mothers  bewrayed  an  equality  of  passion  :  sorrow 
possessed  the  one,  for  the  son  she  had  lost ;  and  the  other,  for  the 
.son  she  was  in  danger  to  lose.  Both  were  equally  peremptory  and 
importunate  in  their  claim.  It  is  in  vain  to  think,  that  the  true  part 
can  be  discerned,  by  the  vehemence  of  their  challenge:  falsehood 
is  oft-times  more  clamorous  than  truth.  No  witnesses  can  be  pro- 
duced. They  two  dwelt  apart  under  one  roof;  and  if  some  neigh- 
bours have  seen  the  children  at  their  birth  and  circumcision,  yet 
how  little  difference,  how  much  change,  is  there,  in  the  favour  of 
infants  !  How  doth  death  alter  more  confirmed  lines  ! 

The  impossibility  of  proof  makes  the  guilty  more  confident, 
more  impudent.  The  true  mother  pleads,  that  her  child  was  taken 
away  at  midnight,  by  the  other  ;  but  in  her  sleep  :  she  saw  it  not ; 
she  telt  it  not;  and,  if  all  her  senses  could  have  witnessed  it,  yet 
here  was  but  the  affirmation  of  the  one,  against  the  denial  of  tlw 
other,  which  in  persons  alike  credible  do  but  counterpoise. 

VOL.  I.  Ff 


431  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

What  is  there  now  to  lead  the  judge,  since  there  is  nothing  either 
in  the  act,  or  circumstances,  or  persons,  or  plea,  or  evidence,  that 
might  sway  the  sentence  ?  Solomon  well  saw,  that,  when  all  out- 
ward proofs  failed,  there  was  an  inward  affection,  which,  if  it  could 
be  fetched  out,  would  certainly  bewray  the  true  mother.  He 
knew,  sorrow  might  more  easily  be  dissembled,  than  natural  love : 
both  sorrowed  for  their  own  ;  both  could  not  love  one,  as  theirs  1 
to  draw  forth  then  this  true  proof  of  motherhood,  Solomon  calls  for 
a  sword. 

Doubtless,  some  of  the  wiser  hearers  smiled  upon  each  other ; 
and  thought  in  themselves,  "  What  !  will  the  young  king  cut 
these  knotty  causes  in  pieces  ?  Will  he  divide  justice  with  edge 
tools?  Will  he  smite  at  hazard,  before  conviction  r"  The  actions 
of  wise  princes  are  riddles  to  vulgar  constructions  ;  neither  is  it  for 
the  shallow  capacities  of  the  multitude,  to  fathom  the  deep  pro- 
jects of  sovereign  authority.  That  sword,  which  had  served  for 
execution,  shall  now  serve  for  trial ;  Divide  ye  the  living  child  in 
twain,  and  give  the  one  half  to  the  one,  and  the  other  half  to  the 
other.  O  divine  oracle  of  justice,  commanding  that  which  it  would 
not  have  done,  that  it  might  find  out  that  which  could  not  be  dis- 
covered !  Neither  God  nor  his  deputies  may  be  so  taken  at  their 
words,  as  if  they  always  intended  their  commands  for  action,  and 
not  sometimes  for  probation. 

This  sword  hath  already  pierced  the  breast  of  the  true  mother  ; 
and  divided  her  heart  with  fear  and  grief,  at  so  killing  a  sentence. 
There  needs  no  other  rack,  to  discover  nature  ;  and  now  she  thinks, 
"  Woe  is  me,  that  came  for  justice,  and  am  answered  with  cruelty  ; 
Divide  ye  the  living  child!  Alas!  what  hath  that  poor  infant  of- 
fended ?  that  it  survives,  and  is  sued  for  ?  How  much  less  misera- 
ble had  I  been,  that  my  child  had  been  smothered  in  my  sleep, 
than  mangled  before  mine  eves  !  If  a  dead  carcase  could  have  sa- 
tisfied me,  I  needed  not  to  have  complained.  What  a  woeful  con- 
dition am  I  fallen  into,  who  am  accused  to  have  been  the  death  of 
my  supposed  child  already,  and  now  shall  be  the  death  of  my  own! 
If  there  were  no  loss  of  my  child,  yet  how  can  I  endure  this  tor- 
ment of  mine  own  bowels  ?  How  can  I  live  to  see  this  part  of  my- 
self, sprawling  under  that  bloody  sword  ?"  And,  while  she  thinks 
thus,  she  sues  to  that  suspected  mercy  of  her  just  judge,  0  wy 
lord,  give  her  the  living  child,  and  slay  him  not ;  as  thinking,  "  If 
he  live,  he  shall  but  change  a  mother  ;  if  he  die,  his  mother  Ioscth 
a  son  :  while  he  lives,  it  shall  be  my  comfort,  that  I  have  a  son, 
though  I  may  not  call  him  so ;  dying,  he  perisheth  to  both  :  it  is 
better  he  should  live  to  a  wrong  mother,  than  to  neither."  Con- 
trarily,  her  envious  competitor,  as  holding  herself  well  satisfied 
that  her  neighbour  should  be  as  childless  as  herself,  can  say,  Let 
it  be  neither  mine  nor  thine,  but  divide  it.  Well  might  Solomon 
and  every  hearer  conclude,  that,  either  she  was  no  mother  or  a 
monster,  that  could  be  content  with  the  murder  of  her  child  ;  and 
that  if  she  could  have  been  the  true  mother,  and  yet  have  desired 
the  blood  of  her  infant,  she  had  been  as  worthy,  to  have  been  stripped 


THE  TEMPLE.  435 

of  her  child  for  so  foul  unnaturalness,  as  the  other  had  been  worthy 
to  enjoy  him  for  her  honest  compassion.  Not  more  justly  than 
wisely  therefore,  doth,  Solomon  trace  the  true  mother,  by  the  foot- 
steps of  love  and  pitv  ;  and  adjudgeth  the  child  to  those  bowels, 
that  had  yearned  at  his  danger. 

Even  in  morality,  it  is  thus  also.  Truth,  as  it  is  one,  so  it  loves 
entireness  ;  falsehood,  division.  Satan,  that  hath  no  right  to  the 
heart,  would  be  content  with  a  piece  of  it :  God,  that  made  it  all, 
will  have  either  the  whole  or  none.  The  erroneous  Church  strives 
with  the  true,  for  the  living  child  of  saving  doctrine  :  each  claims 
it  for  her  own  :  heresy,  conscious  of  her  own  injustice,  could  be 
content  to  go  away  with  a  leg  or  an  arm  of  sound  principles,  as 
hoping  to  make  up  the  rest  with  her  own  mixtures  ;  truth  cannot 
abide  to  part  with  a  joint,  and  will  rather  endure  to  lose  all  by 
violence,  than  a  piece  through  a  willing  connivancy. 

1  Kings  ui.  2  Chron.  i. 


THE  TEMPLE. 

It  is  a  weak  and  injurious  censure,  thattaxeth  Solomon's  slackness, 
in  founding  the  house  of  God.  Great  bodies  must  have  but  slow 
motions.  He  was  wise,  that  said,  "  The  matters  must  be  ail  pre- 
pared without,  ere  we  build  within."  And  if  David  have  laid  read  v 
a  great  part  of  the  metals  and  timber,  yet  many  a  tree  must  be 
felled  and  squared,  and  many  a  stone  hewn  and  polished,  ere  this 
foundation  could  be  laid  ;  neither  could  those  large  cedars  be  cut, 
sawn,  seasoned,  in  one  year  ;  four  years  are  soon  gone,  in  so  vast 
a  preparation. 

David  had  not  been  so  entire  a  friend  to  Hiram,  if  Hiram  had 
not  been  a  friend  to  God.  Solomon's  wisdom  hath  taught  him  to 
make  use  of  so  good  a  neighbour,  of  a  father's  friend.  He  knew  , 
that  the  Tyrians'  skill  was  not  given  them  for  nothing.  Not  Jews 
only,  but  Gentiles,  must  have  their  hand,  in  building  the  temple  of 
God  :  only  Jews  meddled  with  the  tabernacle,  but  the  temple  is 
not  built  without  the  aid  of  Gentiles  :  they,  together  with  us,  make 
up  the  Church  of  God. 

Even  pagans  have  their  arts  from  heaven  :  how  justly  may  we 
improve  their  graces,  to  the  service  of  the  God  of  Heaven  !  If 
there  be  a  Tyrian,  that  can  work  more  curiously  in  gold,  in  silver, 
in  brass,  in  iron,  in  purple,  and  blue  silk,  than  an  Israelite,  why 
should  not  he  be  employed  about  the  temple  ?  Their  heathenism 
is  their  own  ;  their  skill  is  their  Maker's.  Many  a  one  works  for 
the  Church  of  God,  that  yet  hath  no  part  in  it. 

Solomon  raises  a  tribute  for  the  work  ;  not  of  money,  but  of 
men.  Thirty  thousand  Israelites  are  levied  for  the  service  ;  yet  not 
continually,  but  with  intermission  :  their  labour  is  more  generous, 
and  less  pressing:  it  is  enough  if  they  keep  their  courses  one 
month  in  Lebanon,  two  ut  home;  so  as  ever  ten  thousand  work, 
while  twenty  thousand  breathe.    So  favourable  is  God  to  his  crea- 


436'  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

trire,  that  he  requires  us  not  to  be  overtoiled,  in  the  works  of  his 
own  service.  Due  respirations  are  requisite  in  the  holiest  acts. 

The  main  stress  of  the  work  lies  upon  proselytes  ;  whose  both 
number  and  pains  were  herein  more  than  the  natives'".  A  hundred 
and  fifty  thousand  of  them  are  employed,  in  bearing  burthens,  in 
hewing  stones  ;  besides  their  three  thousand  three  hundred  over- 
seers. Now  were  the  despised  Gibeonites  of  good  use  ;  and  in 
vain  doth  Israel  wish,  that  the  zeal  of  Saul  had  not  robbed  them  of 
so  serviceable  drudges. 

There  is  no  man  so  mean,  but  may  be  some  way  useful  to  the 
house  of  God.  Those,  that  cannot  work  in  gold,  and  silver,  and 
silk,  yet  may  cut  and  hew;  and  those,  that  can.  do  neither,  yet 
may  carry  burthens.  Even  the  services  that  are  more  homely,  are 
not  less  necessary.  Who  can  dishearten  himself,  in  the  conscience 
of  his  own  insufficiency,  when  he  sees,  God  can  as  well  serve  him- 
self of  his  labour,  as  of  his  skill  ? 

The  Terriple  is  framed  in  Lebanon,  and  set  up  in  Sion.  Neither 
hammer  nor  axe  was  heard  in  that  holy  structure.  There  was  no-1 
thing  but  noise  in  Lebanon  ;  nothing-  in  Sion,  but  silence  and 
peace.  Whatever  tumults  are  abroad,  it  is  fit  there  should  be  all 
quietness  and  sweet  concord  in  the  Church.  O  God,  that  the  axes 
of  schism,  or  the  hammers  of  furious  contentions,  should  be  heard 
within  thy  sanctuary  !  Thy  house  is  not  built  with  blows  :  with 
blows,  it  is  beaten  down.  Oh  knit  the  hearts  of  thy  servants  to- 
gether, u  In  the  unity  of  the  spirit  and  the  bond  of  peace  ;"  that 
we  may  mind  and  speak  the  same  things  ;  that  thou,  who  art  the 
God  of  peace,  mayest  take  pleasure  to  dwell,  under  the  quiet  roof 
of  our  hearts. 

Now  is  the  foundation  laid,  and  the  walls  rising,  of  that  glorious 
fabric,  which  ail  nations  admired,  and  all  times  have  celebrated. 
Even  those  stones,  which  were  laid  in  the  base  of  the  building, 
were  not  ragged  and  rude,  but  hewn  and  costlv.  The  part,  that 
lies  covered  with  earth  from  the  eyes  of  all  beholders,  is  no  less 
precious,  than  those  that  are  more  conspicuous  :  God  is  not  all  for 
the  eye  :  he  pleaseth  himself,  with  the  hidden  value  of  the  living 
stones  of  his  spiritual  temple.  How  many  noble  graces  of  his  ser- 
vants have  been  buried  in  obscurity  ;  not  discerned  so  much  as  by 
their  own  eyes ;  which  yet,  as  he  gave,  so  he  ci  owneth  !  Hypo- 
crites regard  nothing  but  shew  ;  God,  nothing  but  truth. 

The  matter  of  so  goodly  a  frame  strives  with  the  proportion, 
whether  shall  more  excel :  here  was  nothing  but  white  marble 
without  ;  nothing  but  cedar  and  gold  within.  Upon  the  hill  of 
Sion  stands  that  glittering  and  snowy  pile,  which  both  invketh  and 
dazzleth  the  eyes  of  passengers  afar  off:  so  much  more  precious 
within,  as  cedar  is  better  than  stone;  gold,  than  cedar.  No  base 
thing  goes  to  the  making  up  of  God's  house.  If  Satan  may  have 
a  dwelling,  he  cares  not  though  he  patch  it  up,  of  the  rubbish  of 
•stone,  or  rotten  sticks,  or  dross  of  metals  :  God  will  admit  of  no- 
thing that  is  not  pure  and  exquisite:  his  Church  consists  of  n< 
but  the  faithful  ;  his  habitation  is  in  no  heart  but  the  gracious. 


THE  TEMPLE.  437 

The  fashion  was  no  other  than  that  of  the  tabernacle  ;  only  this 
Mas  more  costly,  more  large,  more  fixed  :  God  was  the  same  that 
dwelt  in  both  ;  he  varied  not :  the  same  mystery  was  in  both. 
Only,  it  was  fit,  there  should  be  a  proportion,  betwixt  the  work 
and  the  builder  :  the  tabernacle  was  erected  in  a  popular  estate  ; 
the  temple,  in  a  monarchy  :  it  was  fit,  this  should  savour  of  the 
munificence  of  a  king,  as  that  of  the  zeal  of  a  multitude.  That 
was  erected  in  the  flitting  condition  of  Israel  in  the  desert ;  this,  in 
their  settled  residence  in  the  promised  laud  :  it  was  fit  therefore, 
that  should  be  framed  for  motion ;  this,  for  rest.  Both  of  them 
were  distinguished  into  three  remarkable  divisions,  whereof  each 
was  more  noble,  more  reserved,  than  other. 

But  what  do  we  bend  our  eyes  upon  stone,  and  wood,  and  me- 
tals? God  would  never  have  taken  pleasure  in  these  dead  mate- 
rials, for  their  own  sakes,  if  they  had  not  had  a  further  intend- 
ment. 

Methinks  I  see  four  temples  in  this  one.  It  is  but  one  in  matter ; 
as  the  God  that  dwells  in  it  is  but  one  :  three,  yet  more,  in  resem- 
blance ;  according  to  division  of  them,  in  whom  it  pleaseth  God 
to  inhabit ;  for  wherever  God  dwells,  there  is  his  temple.  O  God, 
thou  vouchsafest  to  dwell  in  the  believing  heart.  As  we,  thy  silly 
creatures,  have  our  being  in  thee,  so  thou,  the  Creator  of  heaven 
and  earth,  hast  thy  dwelling  in  us.  The  heaven  of  heavens  is  not 
able  to  contain  thee ;  and  yet,  thou  disdainest  not  to  dwell  in  the. 
strait  lodgings  of  our  renewed  soul.  So  then,  because  God's  chil- 
dren arc  many,  and  those  many  divided  in  respect  of  themselves 
though  united  in  their  head,  therefore  this  temple,  which  is  but 
one  in  colle-:feon,  as  God  is  one,  is  manifold  in  the  distribution,  as 
the  saints  are  many  ;  each  man  bearing  about  him  a  little  shrine  of 
this  infinite  majesty  :  and,  for  that  the  most  general  division  of  the 
saints  is  in  their  place  and  estate,  some  struggling  and  toiling  in 
this  earthly  warfare,  others  triumphing  in  heavenly  glory,  there- 
fore hath  God  two  other  more  universal  temples  ;  one,  the  Church 

i  of  his  saints  on  earth  ;  the  other,  the  highest  Heaven  of  his  saints 

;  glorified.  In  all  these,  O  God,  thou  dwellest  for  ever,  and  this 
material  house  of  thine  is  a  clear  representation  of  these  three 
spiritual.  Else,  what  were  a  temple  made  with  hands  unto  the  God 
of  Spirits  ?  And  though  one  of  these  was  a  true  type  of  all,  yet 
how  arc  they  all  exceeded  each  by  other !  This  of  stone,  though 

j  most  rich  and  costly,  yet  what  is  it  to  the  living  temple  of  the 
Holy  Ghost,  which  is  our  body  ?  What  is  the  temple  of  this  bodv 
of  ours,  to  the  temple  of  Christ's  body,  which  is  his  Church  ? 
And  what  is  the  temple  of  God's  Church  on  earth,  to  that  which 
trmmphcth  gloriously  in  heaven? 

How  easily  do  we  see  all  these,  in  this  one  visible  temple  !  which 
as  it  had  three  distinctions  of  rooms,  the  Porch,  the  Holy  Place, 

;  the  Holy  of  Holies,  so  is  each  of  them  answered  spiritually  :  in 
tin-  Porch,  we  find  the  regenerate  soul  entering  into  the  blessed 
society  of  the  Church;  in  the  Holy  Place,  the  Communion  of 
the  true  visible  Church  on  earth,  selected  from  the  world  ;  in  the 


43*  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

Holy  of  Holies,  whereinto  the  high-priest  entered  ouce  a  year, 
the  glorious  Heaven,  into  which  our  true  high-priest,  Christ  Jesus, 
entered  once  for  all,  to  make  an  atonement  betwixt  God  and  man. 

In  all  these,  what  a  meet  correspondence  there  is,  both  in  pro- 
portion, matter,  situation  ! 

In  proportion  : — The  same  rule,  that  skilful  carvers  observe  int 
the  cutting  out  of  the  perfect  statue  of  a  man,  that  the  height  be 
thrice  the  breadth,  and  the  breadth  one  third  of  the  height,  was 
likewise  duly  observed  in  the  fabric  of  the  temple:  whose  length 
was  double  to  the  height,  and  treble  to  the  breadth;  as  being 
sixty  cubits  long,  thirty  high,  and  twenty  broad.  How  exquisite 
a  symmetry  hast  thou  ordained,  (>  God,  betwixt  the  faithful  heart, 
and  thy  Church  on  earth,  with  that  in  Heaven  :  how  accurate  in 
each  of  these,  in  all  their  powers  and  parts,  compared  with  other  ! 
So, hath  God  ordered  the  believing  soul,  that  it  hath  neither  too 
much  shortness  of  grace,  nor  too  much  height  of  conceit,  nor  too 
much  breadth  of  passion.  So  hath  he  ordered  his  visible  Church, 
that  there  is  a  necessary  inequality,  without  any  disproportion  ; 
a  height  of  government,  a  length  of  extent,  a  breadth  of  jurisdic- 
tion, duly  answerable  to  each  other  :  so  hath  he  ordered  his  tri- 
umphant Church  above,  that  it  hath  a  length  of  eternity,  answered 
with  a  height  of  perfection,  and  a  breadth  of  incomprehensible 

g,ory- 

In  matter : — All  was  here  of  the  best.  The  wood  was  precious, 
sweet,  lasting  ;  the  stones  beautiful,  costly,  insensible  of  age  ;  the 
gold  pure  and  glittering  :  so  are  the  graces  of  God's  children  ;  ex- 
cellent in  their  nature,  dear  jn  their  acceptation,  eternal  in  their 
use  :  so  are  the  ordinances  of  God  in  his  Church  ;  holy,  comfort- 
able, irrefragable  :  so  is  the  perfection  of  his  glorified  saints  ;  in- 
comparable, unconceivable. 

In  situation  : — The  outer  parts  were  here  more  common  ;  the 
inward  more  holy,  and  peculiarly  reserved.  I  find  one  court  of 
the  temple  open  to  the  unclean,  to  the  uncircumcised  :  within  that, 
another,  open  only  to  the  Israelites ;  and,  of  them,  to  the  clean  : 
within  that,  yet  another,  proper  onlv  to  the  priests  and  Levites  ; 
where  was  the  brazen  altar  for  sacrifice,  and  the  brazen  sea  for 
washings ;  the  eyes  of  the  laity  might  follow  their  oblations  in 
hither,  their  feet  might  not :  yet  more,  in  the  covered  rooms  of 
the  temple,  there  is,  whither  the  priests  only  may  enter,  not  the 
Levites  ;  there  is,  whither  the  high  priest  only  may  enter,  not  his 
brethren.  It  is  thus  in  every  renewed  man,  the  individual  temple 
of  Cod  :  the  outward  parts  are  allowed  common  to  God  and  the 
world  ;  the  inwardest  and  secretest,  which  is  the  heart,  is  reserved 
only  for  the  God  that  made  it.  It  is  thus  in  the  Church  visible  :  the 
false  and  foul-hearted  hypocrite  hath  access  to  the  holy  ordinances 
of  God,  and  treads  in  his  courts;  only  the  true  Christian  hath  en- 
tire and  private  conversation,  with  the  Holy  One  of  Israel ;  he 
only  is  admitted  into  the  Holy  of  Holies,  and  enters  within  tiie 
glorious  veil  of  heaven. 

If,  from  the  walls,  we  look  unto  the  furniture  ;  what  is  the  altar, 


SOLOMON,  AND  THE  QUEEN  OF  SHEB A.  .439 

whereon  our  sacrifices  of  prayer  and  praises  are  offered  to  the  Al- 
mighty, but  a  contrite  heart  ?  What  the  golden  candlesticks,  but 
the  illumined  understanding,  wherein  the  light  of  the  knowledge 
of  God,  and  his  divine  will  shineth  for  ever  ?  What  the  tables  of 
shew-bread,  but  the  sanctified  memory,  which  keepeth  the  bread 
of  life  continually  ?  Yea,  if  we  shall  presume  so  far,  as  to  enter 
into  the  very  closet  of  God's  oracle,  even  there,  O  God,  do  we 
find  our  unworthy  hearts  so  honoured  by  thee,  that  they  are  made 
the  very  ark,  wherein  thy  royal  law  and  the  pot  of  thy  heavenly 
manna  are  kept  for  ever;  and  from  whose  propitiatory,  shaded 
with  the  wings  of  thy  glorious  angels,  thou  givest  thy  gracious 
testimonies  of  thy  good  Spirit,  witnessing  with  ours,  that  we  arc 
the  children  of  thee  the  living  God. 

Behold,  if  Solomon  built  a  temple  unto  thee,  thou  hast  built  a 
temple  unto  thyself,  in  us.  We  are  not  only,  through  thy  grace, 
living  stones  in  thy  temple,  but  living  temples  in  thy  Sion.  Oh 
do  thou  ever  dwell  in  this  thy  house  ;  and  in  this  thy  house,  let  us 
ever  serve  thee.  Wherefore  else  hast  thou  a  temple,  but  for  thy 
presence  with  us,  and  for  our  worshipping  of  thee  f  The  time  was, 
when,  as  thy  people,  so  thyself,  didst  lodge  in  flitting  tents  ;  ever 
shifting,  ever  moving:  thence,  thou  thoughtest  best  to  sojourn, 
botli  in  Shiloh  and  the  roof  of  Obed  Edom.  After  that,  thou 
eondescendedst  to  settle  thine  abode  with  men,  and  wouldst  dwell 
in  a  house  of  thine  own,  at  thy  Jerusalem.  So  didst  thou,  in  the 
beginning,  lodge  with  our  first  parents  in  a  tent ;  sojourn  with  Is- 
rael, under  the  Law  ;  and  now  makest  a  constant  residence,  under 
flic  Gospel,  in  the  hearts  of  thy  chosen  children,  from  whence  thou 
wilt  remove  no  more:  they  shall  remove  from  the  world,  from 
the  mselves  ;  thou  shalt  not  remove  from  them. 

Wheresoever  thou  art,  O  God,  thou  art  worthy  of  adoration. 
Since  thou  ever  wilt  dwell  in  us,  be  thou  ever  worshipped  in  us. 
Let  the  altars  of  our  clean  hearts  send  up  ever  to  thee,  the  sweetest 
perfumed  smokes  of  our  holy  meditations,  and  faithful  prayers, 
and  cheerful  thanksgivings.  Let  the  pure  lights  of  our  faith  and 
godly  conversation  shine  ever  before  thee  and  men,  and  never  be 
put  out.  Let  the  bread  of  life  stand  ever  ready,  upon  the  pure  and 
precious  tables  of  our  hearts.  Lock  up  thy  law  and  thy  manna 
within  us  ;  and  speak  comfortably  to  us  from  thy  mercy-seat.  Suf- 
fer nothing  to  enter  in  hither,  that  is  unclean.  Sanctify  us  unto 
thyself,  and  be  thou  sanctified  in  us. 

1  Kings  v,  vi,  2  Chron.  ii,  Hi,  iv. 


SOLOMON,  AND  THE  QUEEN  OF  SHEBA. 

God  hath  no  use  of  the  dark  lanterns  of  secret  and  reserved  per- 
fections :  we  ourselves  do  not  light  up  candles,  to  put  them  under 
bushels,  The  great  lights,  whether  of  heaven  or  earth,  are  not 
intended  to  obscurity  ;  but,  as  to  give  light  unto  otlicrs,  so  to,  be 
seen  themselves. 


440 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


Dan  and  Becrsheba  were  too  strait  bounds,  for  the  fame  of  So- 
lomon ;  whicth  new  bath  flown  over  all  lands  and  seas,  and  raised 
the  world  to  an  admiration  of  his  more  than  human  wisdom.  Even 
so,  O  thou  everlasting  King  of  Peace,  thy  name  is  great  among 
the  Gentiles.  There  is  no  speech  nor  language,  where  the  report 
of  thee  is  not  heard  :  the  sound  of  thee  is  gone  forth  through  all 
the  earth.  Thy  name  is  an  ointment  poured  out;  therefore  the  virgins 
love  thee. 

No  doubt,  many ,  from  all  coasts,  came  to  learn  and  wonder; 
none,  with  so  much  note,  as  this  noble  daughter  of  Cham  :  who, 
herself,  deserves  the  next  wonder  to  him,  whom  she  came  to  hear 
and  admire.  That  a  woman,  a  princess,  a  rich  and  great  queen, 
should  travel  from  the  remotest  south,  from  Saba,  a  region  famous 
for  the  greatest  delicacies  of  nature,  to  learn  wisdom,  is  a  match- 
less example.  We  know  merchants,  that  venture  to  either  Indies 
for  wealth  ;  others,  we  know  daily  to  cross  the  seas,  lor  wanton 
curiosity  ;  some  few  Plulosophers,  we  have  known  to  have  gone 
far  for  learning  ;  and,  amongst  princes,  it  is  no  unusual  thing,  to 
send  their  ambassadors  to  far  distant  kingdoms,  for  transaction  of 
businesses,  either  of  state  or  commerce  :  but,  that  a  royal  lady 
should,  in  person,  undertake  and  overcome  so  tedious  a  journey, 
onlv  to  observe  and  inquire  into  the  mysteries  of  nature,  art,  reli- 
gion, is  a  thing  past  both  parallel  and  imitation.  Why  do  we  think 
anv  labpur  great,  or  any  way  long,  to  hear  a  greater  than  Solomon  ? 
How  justly  shall  the  Queen  of  the  South  rise  up  in  judgment  and 
condemn  us,  who  may  hear  wisdom  crying  in  our  streets,  and  negr 
Ject  her ! 

Certainly,  so  wealthy  a  queen,  and  so  great  a  lover  of  wisdom, 
could  not  want  great  scholars  at  home :  them  she  had  first  op- 
posed, with  her  enigmatical  demands:  and  now,  finding  herself 
Unsatisfied,  she  takes  herself  to  this  oracle  of  God.  It  is  a  good 
thing  to  doubt ;  better,  to  be  resolved  :  the  mind  that  never  doubts 
shall  learn  nothing  ;  the  mind  that  ever  doubts  shall  never  pro- 
fit by  learning  :  our  doubts  only  serve  to  stir  us  up  to  seek  truth  ; 
our  resolutions  settle  us  in  the  truth  we  have  found.  There  were  no 
pleasure  in  resolutions,  if  we  had  not  been  formerly  troubled  with 
doubts  ;  there  were  nothing  but  discomfort  and  disquietness  in 
doubts,  if  it  were  not  for  the  hope  of  resolution.  It  is  not  safe,  to 
suffer  doubts  to  dwell  too  long  upon  the  heart :  there  may  be  a 
good  use  of  them  as  passengers ;  dangerous,  as  inmates  :  happy  arc 
wr,  if  we  can  find  a  Solomon  to  remove  them. 

Faroe,  as  it  is  always  a  blab,  so  oft-times  a  liar.  The  wise  princess 
found  cause  to  distrust  so  uncertain  an  informer;  whose  reports  are 
still,  either  doubtful  or  fabulous,  and,  like  winds  or  streams,  increase 
in  passing.  If  very  great  things  were  not  spoken  of  Solomon, 
fame  should  have  wronged  him ;  and  if  but  just  rumours  were 
spread  cf  his  wisdom,  there  needed  much  credulity  to  belie  ve 
them.  This  great  queen  would  not  suffer  herself  to  be  led  by  the 
ears ;  but  comes  in  person,  to  examine  the  truth  of  foreign  rela- 
tions.   How  much  more  unsafe  is  it,  in  the  most  important  bur 


SOLOMON,  AND  THE  QUEEN  OF  SHEBA.  44-1 

sinesses  of  our  souls,  to  trust  the  opinions  and  reports  of  others  ! 
Those  ears  and  eyes  are  ill  bestowed,  that  do  not  serve  to  choose 
and  judge  for  their  owners. 

When  we  come  to  a  rich  treasure,  we  need  not  be  bidden  to 
carrv  away  what  we  are  able.  This  wise  lady,  as  she  came  far  for 
knowledge,  so,  finding  the  plenty  of  this  vein",  she  would  not  depart 
without  her  full  load :  there  was  nothing,  wherein  she  would  leave 
herself  unsatisfied  :  she  knew  that  she  could  not  every  day  meet 
with  a  Soiomon,  and  therefore  she  makes  her  best  use  of  so  learned 
a  master :  now  she  empties  her  heart  of  all  her  doubts,  and  fills  it 
with  instruction.  It  is  not  good  neglecting  the  opportunities,  of 
furnishing  our  souls  with  profitable,  with  saving  knowledge.  There 
is  much  wisdom,  in  moving  a  question  well,  though  there  be  more 
in  assoiling  it :  what  use  do  we  make  of  Solomon's  teacher ;  if, 
sitting  at  the  feet  of  Christ,  we  leave  our  hearts  either  ignorant  or 
perplexed  r 

As  if  the  errand  of  this  wealthy  cjueen  had  been  to  buy  wisdom, 
she  came  with  her  camels  laden  with  gold,  and  precious  stones,  and 
rich  odours  :  though  to  a  mighty  king,  she  will  not  come  to  school 
empty  handed.  If  she  came  to  fetch  an  invaluable  treasure,  she 
finds  it  reason  to  give  thanks  unto  him  that  kept  it.  As  he  is  a 
fool,  that  hath  a  price  in  his  hand  to  get  wisdom,  and  wants  a 
heart  ;  so  is  he  unthankful,  that  hath  a  heart  to  get  wisdom,  and 
hath  no  price  in  his  hand  ;  a  price,  not  countcrvailable  to  what  he 
seeks,  but  retributory  to  him  of  whom  he  seeks.  How  shameful  is 
it,  to  come  always  with  close  hands  to  them,  that  teach  us  the 
great  mysteries  of  salvation  ! 

Expectation  is  no  better  than  a  kind  enemy  to  good  deserts. 
We  lose  those  objects  which  we  overlook.  Many  had  been  ad- 
mired, if  they  had  not  been  overmuch  befriended  by  fame  ;  who 
now,  in  our  judgment,  are  cast  as  much  below  their  rank,  as  they 
were  fore-imagined  above  it.  This  disadvantage  had  wise  Solo- 
mon with  this  stranger,  whom  rumour  had  bid  to  look  for  incredi- 
ble excellencies  ;  yet,  so  wonderful  were  the  graces  of  Solomon, 
that  they  overcame  the  highest  expectation,  and  the  liberallest  be- 
lief ;  so  as  when  she  saw  the  architecture  of  his  buildings,  the  pro- 
visions of  his  tables,  the  order  of  his  attendants,  the  religion  of  his 
sacrifices,  she  confessed,  both  her  un}ust  incredulity  in  not  believ- 
ing the  report  of  his  wisdom,  and  the  injury  of  report  in  under, 
rating  it ;  /  believed  not  the  words  till  I  came,  and  mine  eyes- 
had  seen  it,  and  lo,  the  one  half  was  not  told  vie.  Her  eyes  were 
more  sure  informers  than  her  ears.  She  did  not  so  much  hear  as 
see  Solomon's  wisdom,  in  these  Peal  effects.  His  answers  did  not  so 
much  demonstrate  it,  as  his  prudent  government.  T-herc  are  some, 
whose  speeches  are  witty,  while  their  carriage  is- weak ;  whose 
deeds  are  incongruities,  while  their  words  are  apothegms.  It  is  not 
worth  the  name  of  wisdom,  that  may  be  heard  only,  and  not  seen  : 
good -discourse  is  but  the  froth  of  wisdom  ;  the  pure  and  solid  sub- 
stance of  it,  is  in  well-framed  actions :  If  we  know  these  things^ 
happy  qre  we  if  we  do  them. 


442  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

And  if  this  great  person  admired  the  w  isdom,  and  buildings,  the 
domestie  order  of  Solomon,  and  chiefly  his  stately  ascent  into  the 
house  of  the  Lord,  how  should  our  souls  be  taken  up  with  wonder 
at  thee,  O  thou  true  Son  of  David,  and  Prince  of  everlasting  Peace, 
who  receivedst  the  Spirit  not  by  measure  !  who  hast  built  this  glo- 
rious house,  not  made  with  hands,  even  the  heaven  of  heavens  ! 
whose  infinite  providence  hath  sweetly  disposed  of  all  the  family  of 
thy  creatures  both  in  heaven  and  earth  !  and  who,  lastly,  didst 
ascend  up  on  high,  and  leddest  captivity  captive,  and  gavcst  gifts  to 
men  ! 

So  well  had  this  studious  lady  profited  by  the  lectures  of  that 
exquisite  master,  that  now  she  envies,  she  magnifies,  none  but 
them,  who  may  live  within  the  air  of  Solomon's  wisdom ;  Happy 
are  the  men,  and  happy  are  thy  servants,  which  stand  continually 
before  thee,  and  that  hear  thy  wisdom  ;  as  if  she  coidd  have  been 
content,  to  have  changed  her  throne  for  the  footstool  of  Solomon. 
It  is  not  easy  to  conceive,  how  great  a  blessing  it  is,  to  live  under 
those  lips,  which  do  both  preserve  knowledge  and  utter  it :  if  we 
were  not  glutted  with  good  counsel,  we  should  find  no  relish  in  any 
worldly  contentment,  in  comparison  thereof ;  but,  He  that  is  full 
despiseth  a  honeycomb. 

She,  whom  her  own  experience  had  taught  how  happy  a  thing 
it  is  to  have  a  skilful  pilot  sitting  at  the  stern  of  the  state,  blesseth 
Israel  for  Solomon,  blesseth  God  for  Israel,  blesseth  Solomon  and 
Israel  mutually  in  each  other ;  Blessed  be  the  Lord  thy  God,  which 
delighted  in  thee,  to  set  thee  on  the  throne  of  Israel.  Because  the 
Lord  loved  Israel  for  ever,  therefore  made  he  thee  king,  to  do 
judgment  and  justice. 

It  was  not  more  Solomon's  advancement  to  be  king  of  Israel,  than 
it  was  the  advancement  of  Israel  to  be  governed  by  a-  Solomon. 
There  is  no  earthly  proof  of  God's  love  to  any  nation,  comparable 
to  the  substitution  of  a  wise  and  pious  governor  :  to  him  we  owe 
our  peace,  our  life,  and,  which  is  deservedly  dearer,  the  life  of  our 
souls,  the  Gospel.  But,  O  God,  how  much  hast  thou  loved  thine 
Israel  for  ever,  in  that  thou  hast  set  over  it  that  righteous  branch 
of  Jesse,  whose  name  is  Wonderful,  Counsellor,  the  mighty  God, 
the  Everlasting  Father,  the  Prince  of  Peace :  in  whose  days  Jiu 
dah  shall  be  saved,  and  Israel  shall  dwell  safely  !  Sing,  0  heaven, 
and  rejoice,  O  earth,  and  break  forth  into  singing,  O  mountains, 
for  God  hath  comforted  his  people,  and  will  have  everlasting  mercy 
upon  bis  ({ttlicted. 

The  queen  of  Shcba  did  not  bring  her  gold  and  precious  stones 
to  look  on,  or  to  re-cam  ,  but  to  give  to  a  wealthier  than  herself. 
She  gives  therefore  to  Solomon  a  hundred  and  twenty  talents  of 
gold,  beside*  costly  stones  and  .odours.  He,  that  made  silver  in  Je- 
rusalem as  stones,  is  yet  richly  presented  on  all  hands.  The  riv  ers 
still  run  into  the  sea  :  to  him  that  hath  shall  be  given.  How  should 
Ave  bring  unto  thee,  O  thou  King  of  Heaven,  the  purest  gold  of 
thine  own  graces,  the  sweetest  odours  of  our  obediences!  Was  not 
this  withal  a  type  of  that  homage,  which  should  be  done  unto  thee, 


Solomon's  defection.  443 

O  Saviour,  by  the  lien  .Is  of  the  nations  ?  The  kings  of  Tarshish 
and  the  Isles  bring  presents ;  the  kings  of  Sheba  and  Saba  bring 
gifts;  yea,  all  kings  shall  worship  thee,  all  nations  shall  serve 
thee.   They  cannot  enrich  themselves,  but  by  giving  unto  thee. 

It  could  not  stand  with  Solomon's  magnificence ,  to  receive  rich  cour- 
tesies without  a  return,  The  greater  the  person  was,  the  greater  was 
the  obligation  of  requital.  The  gifts  of  mean  persons  are  taken  but 
as  tributes  of  duty  :  it  is  dishonourable,  to  take  from  equals,  and  not 
to  retribute.  There  was  not  therefore  more  freedom  in  her  gift, 
than  in  her  receipt :  her  own  will  was  the  measure  of  both.  She  gave 
what  she  would  ;  she  received  whatsoever  she  would  ask  :  and  she 
had  little  profited  bv  Solomon's  school,  if  she  had  not  learned  to 
ask  the  best :  she  returns  therefore,  more  richly  laden  than  she 
came  :  she  gave  to  Solomon,  as  a  thankful  client  of  wisdom  ;  So- 
lomon returns  to  her,  as  a  munificent  patron,  according  to  the  li- 
berality of  a  king.  We  shall  be.  sure  to  be  gainers,  by  whatsoever 
we  give  unto  thee,  O  thou  God  of  wisdom  and  peace.  Oh  that  we 
could  come  from  the  remote  regions  of  our  infidelity  and  worldli- 
ness,  to  learn  wisdom  of  thee,  who  both  teachest  and  givest  it 
abundantly,  without  upbraiding,  without  grudging ;  and  could 
bring  with  us  the  poor  presents,  of  our  faithful  desires  and  sincere 
services :  how  wouldst  thou  receive  us,  with  a  gracious  accepta- 
tion ;  and  send  us  away,  laden  with  present  comfort,  with  eternal 
glory  !  1  Kings  x.  2  Ch.ron.  ix. 


SOLOMON'S  DEFECTION. 

Since  the  first  man  Adam,  the  world  hath  not  yielded,  either  so 
great  an  example  of  wisdom,  or  so  fearful  an  example  of  apostasy, 
as  Solomon.  What  human  knowledge  Adam  had,  in  the  perfection 
of  nature  by  creation,  Solomon  had  by  infusion  ;  both  fully,  both 
from  one  fountain.  If  Adam  called  all  creatures  by  their  names, 
Solomon  spake  from  the  cedars  of  .Lebanon  to  the  moss  that  springs 
out  of  the  wail  ;  and  besides  these  vegetables,  t  here  was  no  beast, 
nor  fowl,  nor  fish,  nor  creeping  thing,  that  escaped  his  discourse. 
Both  fell  ;  both  fell  by  one  means:  as  Adam,  so  might  Solomon 
have  said,  The  woman  deceived  me.  It  is  true  indeed,  that  Adam 
fell  as  all ;  Solomon,  as  one  ;  vet  so  as  that  this  one  is  the  pattern  of 
the  frailty  of  all.  If  knowledge  could  have  given  an  immunity  from 
sin,  both  had  stood. 

Affections  are  those  feet  of  the  soul,  on  which  it  either  stands  or 
falls.  Solomon  loved  many  outlandish  women  :  I  wonder  not,  if 
the  wise  king  miscarried.  Every  word  hath  bane  enough  for  a 
man  :  women ;  many  women  ;  outlandish  ;  idolatrous  ;  and  those, 
not  only  had,  but  doated  on.  Sex,  multitude,  nation,  condition, 
all  conspired  to  the  ruin  of  a  Solomon.  If  one  woman  undid  all 
mankind,  what  marvel  is  it,  if  many  women  undid  one  ?  Yet  had 
those  many  been  the  daughters  of  Israel,  they  had  tempted  hnu 
only  to  lust ;  not  to  mis-devotion  :  now  the}'  were  of  those  nations, 


444  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

whereof  the  Lord  had  said  to  the  children  of  Israel,  Go  not  ye 
in  to  them,  nor  let  them  come  in  to  you  ;  for  surely  they  will  turn 
your  hearts  after  their  gods.  To  them  did  Solomon  join  in  love  : 
who  can  marvel,  if  they  disjoined  his  heart  from  God. 

Satan  hath  found  this  bait  to  take  so  well,  that  he  never  changed 
jt,  since  he  crept  into  Paradise.  How  many  have  we  known,  whose 
heads  have  been  broken  with  their  own  rib  !  In  the  first  world,  the 
sons  of  God  saw  the  daughters  of  men,  and  took  them  wives  of  all 
they  liked  :  they  multiplied  not  children,  but  iniquities.  Balaam 
knew  well,  if  the  dames  of  Moab  could  make  the  Israelites  wan- 
tons, they  should  soon  make  them  idolaters.  All  lies  open,  where 
the  covenant  is  not,  both  made  with  the  eye,  and  kept. 

It  was  the  charge  of  God  to  the  kings  of  Israel  before  they  wee, 
that  they  should  not  multiply  wives.  Solomon  had  gone  beyond  the 
stakes  of  the  law ;  and  now  is  ready  to  lose  himself,  amongst  a 
thousand  bedfellows.  Whoso  lays  the  reins  on  the  neck  of  his  car- 
dial appetite,  cannot  promise  where  he  will  rest. 

O  Solomon,  where  was  thy  wisdom,  while  thine  affections  run 
away  with  thee  into  so  wild  a  voluptuousness  ?  What  boots  it  thee 
to  discourse  of  all  things,  while  thou  mis-knowest  thyself?  The 
perfections  of  speculation  do  not  argue  the  inward  powers  of  self- 
government.  The  eye  may  be  clear,  while  the  hand  is  palsied.  It 
is  not  so  much  to  be  heeded,  how  the  soul  is  informed,  as  how  it  is 
disciplined  :  the  light  of  knowledge  doth  well,  but  the  due  order 
of  the  affections  doth  better.  Never  any  mere  man  since  the  first 
knew  so  much  as  Solomon  ;  many,  tiiat  have  known  less,  have  had 
more  command  of  themselves.  A  competent  estate  well  husbanded, 
is  better  than  a  vast  patrimony  neglected, 

There  can  be  no  safety  to  that  soul,  where  is  not  a  strait  curb 
upon  our  desires.  If  our  lusts  be  not  held  under  as  slaves,  they  will 
rule  as  tyrants.  Nothing  can  prevent  the  extremity  of  our  mis- 
carriage, but  early  and  strong  denials  of  our  concupiscence.  Had 
Solomon  done  thus,  delicacy  and  lawless  greatness  had  not  led  him 
into  these  bogs  of  intemperance. 

The  ways  of  youth  are  steep  and  slippery,  wherein,  as  it  is  easy 
to  fall,  so  it  is  commonly  relieved  with  pity  ;  but  the  wanton  inor- 
dinations  of  age  are  not  more  unseasonable  than  odious:  yet  be- 
hold Solomon's  younger  years  were  studious  and  innocent ;  his 
over-hastened  age  was  licentious  and  misgoverned  ;  For,  when  &'o* 
lomon  was  old,  his  wives  turned  away  his  heart  after  other  gods. 
If  any  age  can  secure  us  from  the  danger  of  a  spiritual  fall,  it  is  our 
last ;  and  if  any  man's  old  age  might  secure  him,  it  was  Solomon's  ; 
the  beloved  of  God,  the  oracle,  the  miracle  of  wisdom.  Who  would 
have  looked,  but  that  the  blossoms  of  so  hopeful  a  spring,  should 
have  yielded  a  goodly  and  pleasant  fruit,  in  the  autumn  of  age  ? 
yet  behold,  even  Solomon's  old  age  vicious.  There  is  no  time 
Y  herein  we  can  be  safe,  while  we  carry  this  body  of  sin  about  us  : 
youth  is  impetuous;  mid-age,  stubborn  ;  old  age,  weak  ;  all,  dan- 
gerous. Say  not  now  •  "  The  fury  of  my  youthful  flashes  is  over  : 
I  shall  henceforth  find  my  heart  calm  and  impregnable ;"  while 


solomon's  defection.  445' 
thou  secst  old  Solomon  doating  upon  his  concubines,  yea,  upon 
their  idolatry. 

It  is  no  presuming  upon  time,  nor  means,  nor  strength.  How 
many  have  begun  and  proceeded  well,  who  yet  have  shamed  them- 
selves in  their  last  stage  !  If  God  uphold  us  not,  we  cannot  stand  : 
if  God  uphold  us,  we  cannot  fall.  When  we  are  at  the  strongest, 
it  is  the  best  to  be  weak  in  ourselves  ;  and  when  at  our  weakest, 
strong  in  him,  in  whom  we  can  do  all  things. 

I  cannot  yet  think  so  hard  of  Solomon,  that  he  would  project  his 
person  to  Ashteroth  the  goddess  of  the  Sidonians,  or  Milcom  the. 
idol  of  the  Ammonites,  or  Chemosh  the  abomination  of  Moab.  He, 
that  knew  all  things  from  the  shrub  to  the  cedar,  could  not  be  igno- 
rant, that  these  statues  were  but  stocks,  or  stones,  or  metals  ;  and 
the  powers  resembled  by  them,  devils.  It  is  not  like  he  could  be  so 
insensate,  to  adore  such  deities  ;  but  so  far  was  the  uxorious  king 
blinded  with  affection,  that  he  gave  not  passage  only,  to  the  ido- 
latry of  his  heathenish  wives,  but  furtherance. 

So  did  he  dote  upon  their  persons,  that  he  humoured  them  in 
their  sins  :  their  act  is  therefore  his,  because  his  eyes  winked  at  it ; 
his  hand  advanced  it.  He,  that  built  a  temple  to  the  living  God 
for  himself  and  Israel  in  Sion,  built  a  temple  to  Chemosh  in  the 
Mount  of  Scandal,  for  his  mistresses  of  Moab,  in  the  very  face  of 
God's  house.  No  hill  about  Jerusalem  was  free  from  a  chapel  of 
devils.  Each  of  his  dames  had  their  puppets,  their  altars,  their 
incense.  Because  Solomon  feeds  them  in  their  superstition,  he 
draws  the  sin  home  to  himself,  and  is  branded  for  what  he  should 
have  forbidden.  Even  our  very  permission  appropriates  crimes 
to  us.  We  need  no  more  guiltiness  of  any  sin,  than  our  willing 
toleration. 

Who  can  but  yearn  and  fear,  to  see  the  woeful  wreck  of  so  rich 
and  goodly  a  vessel!  O  Solomon,  wcrt  not  thou  he,  whose  younger 
years  God  honoured  with  a  message  and  style  of  love  ?  to  whom 
God  twice  appeared  ;  and,  in  a  gracious  vision,  renewed  the  cove- 
nant of  his  favour  ?  whom  he  singled  out  from  all  the  generation 
of  men,  to  be  the  founder  of  that  glorious  temple,  which  was  no 
less  clearly  the  type  of  heaven,  than  thou  wert  of  Christ,  the  Son 
of  the  ever-living  God  ?  Wert  not  thou  that  deep  sea  of  wisdom, 
which  God  ordained  to  send  forth  rivers  and  fountains,  of  all  divine 
and  human  knowledge  to  all  nations,  to  all  ages  ?  Wert  not  thou 
one  of  those  select  secretaries,  whose  hand  it  pleased  the  Almighty  to 
employ,  in  three  pieces  of  the  divine  monuments  of  Sacred  Scrip- 
tures ?  WThich  of  us  dares  ever  hope  to  aspire  unto  thy  graces  ? 
Which  of  us  can  promise  to  secure  ourselves  from  thy  ruins  ?  We 
fall,  O  God,  we  fall  to  the  lowest  hell,  if  thou  prevent  us  not,  if 
thou  sus  ain  us  not.  Uphold  thou  me,  according  to  thy  word,  that 
I  may  live  ;  and  let  vie  not  be  ashamed  of  my  hope.  Order  my 
steps  in  thy  word,  and  let  not  any  iniquity  have  dominion  over  me. 
All  our  weakness  is  in  ourselves  ;  all  our  strength  is  in  thee.  O  God, 
be  thou  strong  in  our  weakness,  that  our  weak  knees  may  be  ever 
steady  in  thy  strength. 


4*6  CONTEMPLATIONS, 

But  in  the  midst  of  the  horror  of  this  spectacle,  able  to  affright 
all  the  sons  of  men,  behold  some  glimpse  of  comfort.  Was  it  of 
.Solomon,  that  David  his  father  prophesied;  Though  he  fall ',  he 
thai  I  not  be  utterly  cast  down;  for  the  Lord  upholdeth  him  with 
his  hand?  If  sensible  grace,  yet  final  mercy  was  not  taken  from 
that  beloved  of  God :  in  the  hardest  of  this  winter,  the  sap  was 
gone  down  to  the  root,  though  it  shewed  not  in  the  branches. 
Even  while  Solomon  removed,  that  word  stood  fast,  He  shall  be 
my  son,  and  I  will  be  his  father.  He,  that  foresaw  his  sin,  threat- 
ened and  limited  his  correction  ;  If  he  break  my  statutes,  and 
keep  not  my  commandments,  then  will  I  visit  his  transgression 
with  a  rod,  and  his  iniquity  with  stripes;  nevertheless,  my  loving 
kindness  will  I  not  utterly  take  from  him,  nor  suffer  my  faithful- 
ness to  fail ;  my  covenant  will  I  not  break ;  nor  alter  the  thing 
that  is  gone  oat  of  my  mouth. 

Behold,  the  favour  of  God  doth  not  depend  upon  Solomon's 
obedience :  if  Solomon  shall  suffer  his  faithfulness  to  fail  towards 
his  God,  God  will  not  requite  him,  with  the  failing  of  his  faithful- 
ness to  Solomon  :  if  Solomon  break  his  covenant  with  God,  God 
will  not  break  his  covenant  with  the  father  of  Solomon,  with  the 
son  of  David :  he  shall  smart ;  he  shall  not  perish.  O  gracious 
word  of  the  God  of  all  mercies  ;  able  to  give  strength  to  the 
languishing ;  comfort  to  the  despairing  ;  to  the  dying,  life ! 
Whatsoever  we  are,  thou  wilt  be  still  thyself,  O  Holy  One  of 
Israel;  true  to  thy  covenant,  constant  to  thy  decree:  the  sins 
of  thy  chosen  can  neither  frustrate  thy  counsel,  nor  outstrip  thv 
mercies. 

Now  I  see  Solomon,  of  a  wanton  lover,  a  grave  preacher  of  mor- 
tification. I  see  him  quenching  those  inordinate  flames,  with  the 
tears  of  his  repentance.  Metlnnks  I  hear  him  sighing  deeply,  be- 
twixt every  word  of  that  his  solemn  penance,  which  he  would 
needs  enjoin  himself  before  all  the  world  ;  1  have  applied  my  heart 
to  know  the  wickedness  of  folly,  even  the  foolishness  of  madness ; 
and  I  find  more  bitter  than  death,  the  woman,  whose  heart  is  as 
nets  and  snares,  and  her  hands  as  bands :  whoso  pleaseth  God 
shall  be  delivered  from  her;  but  the  sinner  shall  be  taken  by  her. 

Solomon  was  taken  as  a  sinner ;  delivered,  as  a  penitent.  His 
soul  escaped  as  a  bird  out  of  the  snare  of  the  fowlers  ;  the  snare 
was  broken,  and  he  delivered.  It  is  good  for  us,  that  he  was  both 
taken  and  delivered  ;  taken,  that  we  might  not  presume  ;  and, 
that  we  might  not  despair,  delivered.  He  sinned,  that  we  might 
not  sin ;  he  recovered,  that  we  may  not  sink  under  our  sin. 

But,  Oh  the  justice  of  God  inseparable  from  his  mercy !  Solo- 
mon's sin  shall  not  escape  the  rod  of  men.  Bather  than  so  wise 
an  offender  shall  want  enemies,  God  shall  raise  up  three  adversaries 
unto  Solomon;  Hadad  the  Edomite,  Bezon  the  king  of  Aram,  Je- 
roboam the  son  of  Nebat ;  whereof,  two  were  foreign,  one  domes- 
tical. Nothing  but  love  and  peace  sounded  in  the  name  of  Solo- 
mon ;  nothing  else  was  found  in  his  reign,  whde  he  held  in  good 
terms  with  bis  God  :  but  when  once  he  fell  foul  with  his  Maker,  ail 


Solomon's  defection.  447 
things  began  to  be  troubled.  There  are  whips  laid  up  against  the 
time  of  Solomon1  s  foreseen  offence,  which  are  now  brought  forth  for 
his  correction.  On  purpose  was  Hadad  the  son  of  the  king  of 
Edom  hid  in  a  coiner  of  Egypt  from  the  sword  of  David  and  Joab, 
that  he  might  be  reserved  for  a  scourge  to  the  exorbitant  son  of 
David.  God  would  have  us  make  account,  that  our  peace  ends 
with  our  innocence.  The  same  sin,  that  sets  debate  betwixt  God 
and  us,  arms  the  creatures  against  us.  It  were  pity  we  should  be 
at  any  quiet,  while  we  are  fallen  out  with  the  God  of  peace. 

1  Kings  a  i. 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 

BOOK  XVIII. 


TO  THE  RIGHT  HONOURABLE 

JAMES,  LORD  HAYE, 

BARON  OF  SALEY,  VISCOUNT  DONCASTER,  EARL  OF  CARLISLE, 

ONE   OF    THE    LORDS    OF   HIS   MAJESTY'S   MOST  HONOURABLE 
PRIVY  COUNCIL. 


RIGHT  HONOURABLE  : 

I CA  NNO  T  but  thus  gratidate  to  you  your  happy  return,  from 
your  many  and  noble  employments ;  which  have  made  you  some  years 
a  stranger  at  home ;  and  so  renowned  abroad,  that  all  the  better 
parts  of  Europe  know  and  honour  your  name,  no  less  than  if  you 
had  been  born  theirs :  neither  is  any  of  them  so  savage,  as  not  to 
say,  when  they  hear  mention  of  your  'worth,  that  "  Virtue  is  a 
thousand  escutcheons.'' 

If  now  your  short  breathing-time  may  allow  your  Lordship  the 
f  reedom  of  quiet  and  holy  thoughts,  cast  your  eyes  upon  Israel  and 
Judah ;  upon  the  kings  and  prophets  of  both,  in  such  beneficial 
variety,  as  profane  history  shall  promise  in  vain.  Your  Lordship 
shall  see  Rehoboain  following  Solomon,  in  nothing  but  his  seat  and 
his  fall ;  as  much  more  wilful  than  his  father,  as  less  wise;  all 
head,  no  heart ;  losing  those  ten  tribes  with  a  churlish  breath, 
whom  he  would,  and  might  not,  recover  with  blood :  Jeroboam  as 
crafty,  as  wicked ;  plotting  a  revolt ;  creating  a  religion  to  his 
state ;  marring  Lsraelites  to  make  subjects ;  branded  in  his  name ; 
smitten  in  his  hand,  in  his  loins.  You  shall  see  a  faithful  messen- 
ger of  God,  after  miraculous  proof  of  Ins  courage,  fidelity,  power, 
good-nature,  paying  dear  for  a  little  circionstance  of  credulous 
disobedience ;  the  lion  is  sent  to  call  for  his  blood,  as  the  price  of 
his  forbidden  harbour.  You  shall  see  the  blind  prophet  descrying 
the  disguise  of  a  queen,  the  judgment  of  the  king,  the  removal  of 
a  prince  too  good  for  Jeroboam'' s  heir.  You  shall  see  the  right 
stock  of  royal  succession  flourishing  in  Asa,  while  that  true  heir  of 
David,  though  not  without  soine  blemishes  of  infirmity,  inherits  a 
perfect  heart ;  purges  his  kingdom  of  sodomy,  of  idolatry ;  not 
balking  sin,  even  where  he  honoured  nature.  You  shall  see  the 
wonder  of  ,prophets,  Elijah,  opening  and  shutting  heaven,  as  his 
private  cnest ;  catered  for  by  the  ravens,  nor  less  miraculously  ca- 


449  ' 

lering  for  the  Sarepfan  ;  contesting  with  Ahab ;  confronting  the 
Baalites  ,-  speaking  both  fire  and  water,  from  heaven,  in  one  even- 
ing ;  meekly  lacqueying  his  sovereign  ;  weakly  flying from  Jezebel ; 
fed  supernaturally  by  angels ;  hid  in  the  rock  of  Horeb  ;  confirmed 
.by  those  dreadful  apparitions,  that  had  confounded  some  other; 
casting  his  mantle  upon  his  homely  successor,  and,  by  the  touch  of 
that  garment,  turning  him  from  a  ploughman  to  a  prophet.  But 
what  do  I  withhold  your  Lordship  in  the  bare  heads  of  this  ensuing 
discourse  ?  In  all  these,  your  piercing  eyes  shall  easily  see  beyond 
mine ;  and  make  my  thoughts  but- a  station  for  a further  discovery : 
Your  Lordship's  observation  hath  studied  men,  more  than  books; 
here  it  shall  study  God,  more  than  men  :  that  of  books,  hath  made 
you  full;  that  of  men,  judicious ;  this  of  God,  shall  make  yen 
ho(y  and  happy  :  hilherto  shall  ever  tend  the  wishes  and  endea- 
vours of 

Your  Lordship's  humbly  devoted 

in  all  faithful  observance, 

JOSEPH  HALL. 


REHOBOAM. 

Who  would  not  but  have  looked,  that  seven  hundred  wives,  and 
three  hundred  concubines,  should  have  furnished  Solomon's  palace 
with  choice  of  heirs,  and  have  peopled  Israel  with  royal' issue? 
And  now  behold,  Solomon  hath  by  all  these  but  one  son,  and  him 
by  an  Ammonitess.  Many  a  poor  man  hath  a  house  full  of  chil- 
dren, by  one  wife  ;  while  this  great  king  hath  but  one  son,  by 
many  housefuls  of  wives.  Fertility  is  not  from  the  means,  but 
from  the  author.  It  was  for  Solomon,  that  David  sung  of  old  ; 
Lo,  children  are  an  heritage  of  the  Lord;  and  the  fruit  of  the 
womb  is  his  reward.  How  oft  doth  God  deny  this  heritage  of 
heirs,  where  he  gives  the  largest  heritage  of  lands  ;  and  gives  most 
of  these  living  possessions,  where  he  gives  least  of  the  dead :  that, 
his  blessings  m;-y  be  acknowledged  free  unto  both  ;  entailed,  upon 
neither  ! 

As  the  greatest  persons  cannot  give  themselves  children,  so  the 
wisest  cannot  give  their  children  wisdom.  Was  it  not  of  Ileho- 
boa.m  that  Solomon  said,  /  hated  all  my  labour  which  I  had  taken 
under  the  sun,  because  I  should  leave  it  unto  the  man  that  shall  be 
after  me  ;  and  who  knoweth,  'whether  he  shall  be  a  wise  man  or  a 
fffol  ?  J  et  he  shall  rule  over  all  my  labour,  wherein  I  have  laboured., 
and  shewed  myself  wise,  under  the  sun.  All  Israel  found  that  So- 
lomon's wit  was  not  propagated.  Many  a  fool  hath  had  a  wiser 
son,  than  this  wisest  father.  Amongst  many  sons,  it  is  no  news 
to  find  some  one  defective:  Solomon  hath  but  one  son,  and  he  no 
miracle  of  wisdom.  God  gives  purposely  so  eminent  an  instance, 
to  teach  men  to  look  up  to  heaven,  both  for  heirs  and  graces. 

Solomon  was  both  the  king  of  Israel  and  the  father  of  Reho- 
boam,  when  he  was  scarce  out  of  hi?  childhood  ;  Rehoboam  enters 

V9t.  r.  G  G 


4oO  •  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

into  the  kingdom  at  a  ripe  age;  yet  Solomon  was  the  man,  ftricf 
Relioboam  the  child.  Age  is  no  just  measure  of  wisdom.  There 
arc  beardless  sages,  and  grey-headed  children.  Not  the  ancient 
are  wise,  but  the  wise  is  ancient. 

Israel  wanted  not  for  thousands,  that  were  wiser  than  Reho- 
boam ;  yet,  because  they  knew  him  to  be  the  son  of  Solomon,  no 
man  makes  question  of  his  government.  In  the  ease  of  succession 
into  kingdoms,  we  may  not  look  into  the  qualities  of  the  person, 
but  into  the  right. 

So  secure  is  Solomon  of  the  people's  fidelity  to  David's  seed, 
that  he  follows  not  ids  father's  example,  in  setting  his  son  by  him, 
in  his  own  throne :  here  was  no  danger  of  a  rivalry,  to  enforce  it ; 
no  eminency  in  the  son,  to  merit  it :  ic  sutficeth  him,  to  know  that 
no  bond  can  be  surer,  than  the  natural  allegiance  of  subjects. 

I  do  not  find,  that  the  following  kings  stood  upon  the  confirma- 
tion of  their  people  ;  but,  as  those  that  knew  the  way  to  their 
throne,  ascended  their  steps  without  aid.  As  yet  the  sovereignty 
of. David's  house  was  green  and  unsettled;  Israel  therefore  doth 
not  now  come  to  attend  Relioboam,  but  Rehoboam  goes  up  to 
meet  Israel. 

They  come  not  to  his  Jerusalem,  but  he  goes  to  their  Shecheni  : 
To  Shechem  -a  cre  all  Israel  come  to  make  him  king.  If  lovalty 
drew  them  together,  why  not  rather  to  Jerusalem  ?  there,  the  ma- 
jesty of  his  father's  temple,  the  magnificence  of  his  palace,  tlio 
very  stones  in  those  walls,  besides  the  strength  of  his  guard,  had 
pleaded  strongly  for  their  subjection.  Shechem  had  been,  manv 
wavs,  fatal;  was,  ever}:  way,  incommodious.  It  is  an  infinite  help 
or  disadvantage,  that  arises  from  circumstances.  The  very  place 
puts  Israel  in  mind  of  a  rebellion.  There,  Abimelech  had  raised 
up  his  treacherous  usurpation,  over  and  against  his  brethren : 
there,  Gaal  against  Abimelech :  there,  w  as  Joseph  sold  by  his  bre- 
thren :  as  if  the  very  soil  had  been  stained  with  perlidiousiu -.^ 
The  time  is  no  Jess  ill  chosen.  Rehoboam  had  ill  counsel,  ere  he 
bewrayed  it  •  forbad  he  speedily  called  up  Israel,  before  Jeroboam 
could  have  been  sent  for  out  of  Egypt,  he  had  found  the  way 
clear.  A  little  delay  may  lose  a  great  deal  of  opportunity.  What 
shall  we  say  of  both,  but  that  misery  is  led  in  by  infatuation  ? 

Had  not  Israel  been  somewhat  predisposed  to  a  mutiny,  they 
had  never  sent  into  Egypt,  for  such  a  spokesman  as  Jeroboam  ;  a 
fugitive,  a  traitor  to  Solomon.  Lon^-  had  that  crafty  conspirator 
lurked  in  a  foreign  court.  The  alliances  of  princes  are  not  ever 
necessary  bonds  of  friendship.  The  brother-in-law  of  Solomon 
harbours  this  snake  in  his  bosom,  and  gives  that  heat,  which  is  re- 
paid with  a  sting,  to  the  posterity  of  so  near  an  ally.  And  now 
Solomon's  death  calls  him  back  to  his  native  soil.  That  Israel 
would  entertain  a  rebel,  it  was  an  ill  sign  ;  worse  yet,  that  they 
w  ill  countenance  him  ;  worst  of  all.  that  they  would  employ  him. 
Nothing  doth  more  bewray  evil  intentions,  than  the  choice  of  vi- 
cious agents.  Those,  that  mean  well,  will  not  hazard,  either  the 
success  or  credit  of  their  actions  upon  otfeus^c  instruments.  None 


REHOBOAM. 


451 


"bin  the  sluttish  will  wipe  their  faces  with  foul  clothes.  Upright 
hearts  would  have  said,  as  David  did  to  God,  so  to  his  anointed  ; 
Do  not  I  hate  them,  that  hate  thee?  Yea,  I  hate  than,  witk  a 
perfect  haired.  Jeroboam's  head  had  been  a  fit  present,  to  have 
been  tendered  unto  their  new  king ;  and  now,  instead  thereof, 
they  tender  themselves  to  Jeroboam,  as  the  head  of  their  faction. 

Had  not  Rehoboam  wanted  spirits,  he  had  first,  after  Solomon's 
example,  done  justice  to  his  father's  traitor,  and  then  have  treated 
of  mercy  towards  his  subjects. 

The  people  soon  found  the  weakness  of  their  new  sovereign  ; 
else  they  durst  not  have  spoken  to  him  by  so  obnoxious  a  tongue ; 
Thy  father  made  our  yoke  grievous  ,  make  thou  it  lighter,  and  we 
Wat  serve  thee. 

Doubtless  the  crafty  head  of  Jeroboam  was  in  this  suit,  which 
his  mouth  uttered  in  the  name  of  Israel.  Nothing  could  have  been 
more  subtle  :  it  seemed  a  promise  ;  it  was  a  threat.  That,  which 
seemed  a  supplication,  was  a  complaint :  humility  was  but  a  vail  of 
discontentment :  one  hand  held  a  paper-,  the  other,  a  sword.  Had 
they  said,  "  Free  us  from  tributes,"  the  capitulation  had  been 
gross,  and  strongly  savouring  of  sedition  :  now  they  say;  Ease  usy 
they  profess  his  power  to  impose,  and  their  willingness  to  yield  ; 
only  craving  favour  in  the  weight  of  the  imposition.  If  Rehoboam 
yield,  he  blemishes  his  father ;  if  he  deny,  he  endangers  his  king- 
dom :  his  wilfulness  shall  seem  worthily  to  abandon  his  sceptre,  if 
he  stick  at  so  unreasonable  a  suit.  Surely  Israel  came  with  a  pur- 
)ose  to  cavil.  Jeroboam  had  secretly  troubled  these  waters,  that 
ie  might  fish  more  gainfully  :  one  malcontent  is  enough  to  embroil 
a  whole  kingdom. 

How  harshly  must  it  needs  sound  in  the  cars  of  Rehoboam,  that 
the  first  word  he  hears  from  his  people,  is  a  querulous  challenge 
of  his  father's  government ;  Thy  father  made  our  yoke  grievous  ! 

for  ought  I  see,  the  suggestion  was  not  more  spiteful,  than  un- 
just. Where  was  the  weight  of  this  yoke,  the  toil  of  the  services  ? 
Here  were  none  of  the  turmoils  of  war :  no  trainings,  marchings, 
encam pings,  entrenching:.,  watchings,  minings,  sieges,  fortifica- 
tions :  none  of  that  tedious  world  of  work,  that  attends  hostility. 
Solomon  had  not  his  name  for  nought.  All  was  calm  during  that 
long  reign  ;  and  if  they  had  paid  dear  for  their  peace,  they  had 
no  cause  to  complain  of  a  hard  match.  The  warlike  times  of  Saul 
and  David  had  exhausted  their  blood,  together  with  their  sub- 
stance. What  ingratitude  was  this,  to  cry  out  of  case!  "  Yea, 
but  that  peace  brought  forth  costly  and  laborious  buildings.  God's 
house  and  the  king's,  the  walls  of  Jerusalem,  Hazar,  Megiddo,  and 
Gezer,  the  cities  of  store,  the  cities  of  defence;  could  not  rise 
without  many  a  shoulder."  True  ;  but  not  of  any  Israelites.  The 
remainders  of  Amorites,  Hittites,  Pcrizzites,  Un  ites,  and  Jebusites, 
were  put  to  all  the  drudgery  of  these  great  works.  The  tasks  of 
Israel  were  easy  and  ingenuous  ;  free  from  servility,  free  from 
paiiifulness.  "  Hut  the  charge  was  theirs,  whosesoever  was  the 
labour.    The  diet  of  so  endless  a  retinue,  the,  attendance  of  his 


452  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

seraglio,  the  purveyance  for  his  forty  thousand  stables,  the  cost  of 
his  sacrifices,  must  needs  weigh  heavy.'1  Certainly  ;  if  it  had  lain 
o;i  none  but  his  ow  n.  But  whelrefore  went  Solomon's  navy  every 
thrce.vears  to  Ophirr  To  what  use  served  the  six  hundred  three-  ( 
score  and  six  talents  of  gold,  that  came  in  one  year  to  his  exche- 
quer ?  Wherefore  served  the  large  tributes  of  foreign  nations? 
How  did  he  make  silver  to  he  in  Jerusalem  as  stones,  if  the  exac- 
tions were  so  pressive  r  The  multitude  is  over  prone  to  pick  quar- 
rels witii  their  governors;  and,  whom  thev  feared  alive,  to  censure 
dead.  The  benefits  of  so  quiet  and  happv  a  reign  are  past  over 
in  silence  ;  the  grievances  are  recounted  with  clamour.  Who  can 
hope,  that  merit  or  greatness  can  shield  from  obloquy,  when  Solo- 
mon is  traduced  to  his  own  loins  ? 

The  proposition  of  Israel  puis  Rchoboam  to  a  deliberation  ; 
Depart  ye  for  three  days;  then  come  again  to  me.  I  hear  no 
other  word  of  his,  that  argued  wisdom.  Not  to  give  sudden  reso- 
lutions in  eases  of  importance,  was  a  point  that  might  well  beseem 
the  son  of  Solomon.  1  wonder  that  he,  who  had  so  much  wit  as 
to  call  for  leisure,  in  his  answer,  should  shew  so  little  wit,  in  the 
improving  of  that  leisure,  in  the  return  of  that  answer. 

Who  cannot  but  hope  well,  to  see  the  grey  heads  of  Solomon's 
secret  council  called  to  Kehoboam's  cabinet  r  As  counsellors,  as 
ancient,  as  Solomon's,  they  cannot  choose  but  see  the  best,  the 
safest  course,  for  their  new  sovereign.  They  had  learned  of  their 
old  master,  that  u  soft  answer  appeaseth  wrath  ;  wisely  therefore 
do  they  advise  him,  //'  thou  wilt  he  a  servant  to  this  people  this 
day,  and  speak  good  ivords  to  them,  they  will  be  thy  servants  for 
ever. 

It  was  an  easy  condition  ;  with  one  mouthful  of  a  breath,  to 
purchase  an  everlasting  homage  ;  with  one  gentle  motion  of  his 
tongue,  to  bind  ail  people's  hearts  to  his  allegiance  for  ever.  Yet, 
as  if  the  motion  had  been  unfit,  a  new  council  table  is  called. 
Well  might  this  people  say  ;  "  What  will  not  Kehoboam  grudge 
us,  if  he  think  much  to  give  good  words  for  a  kingdom  r" 

There  is  not  more  wisdom,  in  taking  variety  of  advice,  where 
the  matter  is  doubtful,  than  folly,  when  it  is  plain.  The  young 
heads  are  consulted.  This  very  change  argues  weakness.  Some 
reason  might  be  pleaded,  for  passing  from  the  younger  counsel  to 
the  aged  ;  none,  for  the  contrary.  Age  brings  experience  ;  and, 
it  is  a  shame,  if,  with  the  ancient  be  not  wisdom  :  youth  is  com- 
monly rash,  heady,  insolent,  ungoverned,  wedded  to  will,  led  by 
humour,  a  rebel  to  reason,  a  subject  to  passion,  fitter  to  execute 
than  to  advise.  Green  wood  is  ever  shrinking  and  warping  ;  where- 
as the  well-seasoned  holds  a  constant  firmness. 

Many  a  life,  many  a  soul,  many  a  nourishing  state,  hath  been 
ruined  by  undisciplined  monitors.  Such  were  these  of  liehoboam; 
whose  great  stomach  tells  them,  that  this  conditionating  of  subjects 
was  no  other  than  an  affront  to  their  new  master  ;  and  suggests  to 
them,  how  unfit  it  is  for  majesty  to  brook  so  saucy  a  treaty,  how 
requisite  and  princely  to  crush  this  presumption  in  the  egg  :  as 


RF.HOBO  AM.  4-53 

scorning  therefore,  to  be  braved  by  the  base  vulgar,  they  put 
words  of  greatness  and  terror  in  their  new  prirfCe  ;  My  little  jin'ger 
shall  be  thicker  than  my  father's  luins.  My  father  made  your  yoke 
heavy ;  I  will  add  to  your  yoke.  My  father  hath  chastised  you 
■with  whips ;  I  will  chastise  you  with  scorpions.  The;  very  words 
have  stings. 

Now  must  Israel  needs  think,  "  How  cruel  will  this  man's  hand 
be,  when  lie  thus  draws  blood  with  his  tongue  !  Men  are  not  wont 
to  speak  out  their  worst:  who  can  endure  the  hopes  of  him,  that 
promiseth  tyranny  ?"  There  can  be  no  good  use,  of  an  indefinite 
profession  of  rigour  and  severity.  Fear  is  an  unsafe  guardian  of 
any  state ;  much  less,  of  an  unsettled.  Which  was  yet  worse  ; 
not  the  sins  of  Israel  were  threatened,  nor  their  purses,  but  their 
persons ;  neither  had  they  desired  a  remission  of  justice,  but  of 
exactions ;  and  now  they  hear  of  nothing  but  burdens,  and  scourges, 
and  scorpions. 

Here  was  a  prince  and  people  well  met.  I  do  not  find  them 
sensible  of  ought,  save  their  own  profit.  They  do  not  say,  "  Ret 
ligion  was  corrupted,  in  the  shutting  up  of  thy  father's  days. 
Idolatry  found  the  free  favour  of  priests,  and  temples,  and  sacri- 
fices. Begin  thy  reign  with  God  ;  purge  the  Church ;  demolish 
those  piles  of  abomination;  abandon  those  idol-mongers ;  restore 
devotion  to  her  purity."  They  are  all  for  their  penny,  for  their 
case:  lie,  on  the  other  side,  is  all  for  his  will,  for  an  imperious 
sovereignty  ;  without  any  regard,  either  of  their  reformation  or 
satisfaction.  They  were  worthy  of  load,  that  cared  for  nothing 
but  their  hacks;  and  he  worthy  of  such  subjects,  who  professed  to 
affect  their  misery  and  torment. 

Who  would  not  but  have  looked  any  whither  for  the  cause  of 
this  evil,  rather  than  to  heaven  ?  yet  the  holy  God  challenges  it  to 
himself;  The  cause  was  from  the  Lord,  that  he  mil! ht.  perform  his 
saying  by  Abijah  the  Shilonite  to  Jeroboam.  As  sin  is  a  punishment 
of  sin,  it  is  a  part  of  justice.  The  Holy  One  of  Israel  doth  not 
abhor,  to  use  even  the  grossest  sins  to  Ins  own  just  purposes: 
while  our  wills  are  free  to  our  own  choice,  his  decrees  are  as  ne- 
cessary as  just.  Israel  had  forsaken  the  Lord,  and  worshipped 
Ashtoreth,  the  goddess  of  the  Zidonians,  and  Cheniosh,  and  Mil- 
corn.  God  owes  them  and  Solomon  a  whipping  :  the  frowardness 
of  Rehoboam  shall  pay  it  them.  I  see  Jeroboam's  plot,  the  peo- 
ple's insolence,  the  young  men's  misudvicc,  the  prince's  unrea- 
sonable austerity,  meeting  together,  through  the  wise  providence 
ot  the  Almighty,  unwittingly  to  accomplish  bis  most  just  decree. 
All  these  might  have  done  otherwise,  for  any  force  that  was  of- 
fered to  their  will;  all  would  no  more  do  otherwise,  than  if  there 
had  been  no  predetermination  in  heaven  ;  that  God  may  be  mag- 
nified m  his  wisdom  and  justice,  while  man  wittingly  perisheth  in 
his  folly. 

That  three  days'  expectation  had  warmed  these  smoking  Isra- 
elites, and  made  them  ready  for  a  combustion.  Upon  so  peivmyK 
tory  a  resolution'  of  rigour,  the  flame  bunts  dut,  winch  all  the 


454 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


waters  of  the  well  of  Bethlehem  coukl  ftever  quench.  The  furious 
multitude  flies  out  into  a  desperate  revolt ;  II  hat  portion  have  we 
zn  David?  neither  have  wc  inheritance  in  the  son  of  Jesse.  To 
your  tents,  0  Israel :  now  see  to  thine  own  house,  J'avid. 

How  durst  these  seditious  mouths  mention  David  in  defiance? 
One  would  have  thought,  that  very  name  had  been  able  to  have 
tempered  their  fury,  and  to  have  contained  them  within  the  limits 
of  obedience.  It  was  the  father  of  Rehoboam  and  the  son  of  Da- 
vid, that  had  led  Israel  into  idolatry  :  Solomon  hath  drawn  con- 
tempt upon  his  father,  and  upon  the  son.  If  Israel  have  cast  off 
their  God,  is  it  marvel  that  they  shake  oil  his  anointed  ?  Irrebgion 
is  the  way  to  disobedience.  There  can  be  no  true  subjection,  but 
out  of  conscience.  They  cannot  make  conscience  of  civil  duties, 
who  make  none  of  divine. 

In  vain  shall  Rehoboam  hope  to  prevail  by  his  officer,  when 
himself  is  rejected.  The  persons  of  princes  carry  in  them  charac- 
ters of  majesty  :  when  their  presence  works  not,  how  should  that 
message  If  Adoram  solicit  the  people  too  late  with  good  words, 
they  answer  him  witli  stones.  Nothing  is  more  untractable  and 
violt  nt,  than  an  enraged  multitude.  It  was  time  for  Rehoboam  to 
betake  himself  to  his  chariot :  he  saw  those  stones  were  thrown  at 
him,  in  his  Adoram :  as  the  messenger  suffers  for  his  master,  so 
the  master  suffers  in  his  messenger.  Had  Rehoboam  been  in  Ado- 
ram's  clothes,  this  death  had  been  his.  Only  flight  can  deliver 
him,  from  those  that  might  have  been  subjects.  Jerusalem  must 
be  his  refuge,  against  the  conspiracy  of  Shechem. 

Blessed  be  God,  for  lawful  government.  Even  a  mutinous  body 
cannot  want  a  head  :  if  the  rebellious  Israelites  have  cast  off  their 
true  sovereign,  they  must  choose  a  false.  Jeroboam,  the  son  of 
Nebat,  must  be  the  man.  He  had  need  be  skilful  and  sit  sure, 
that  shall  back  the  horse,  which  hath  cast  his  rider.  Israel  could 
not  have  any  where  met  with  more  craft  and  courage,  than  they 
found  in  this  leader. 

Rehoboam  returns  to  Jerusalem,  lighter  by  a  crown  than  he 
went  forth. 

Judah  and  Benjamin  stick  still  fast  to  their  loyalty  :  the  cxam- 

{jle  of  a  general  rebellion  cannot  make  them  unfaithful  to  the 
louse  of  David.  God  will  ever  reserve  a  remnant  free  from  the 
common  contagion.  Those  tribes,  to  approve  their  valour,  no 
less  than  their  fidelity,  will  fight  against  their  brethren  for  their 
prince  ;  and  will  hazard  their  lives,  to  reduce  the  crown  to  the 
son  of  Solomon.  A  hundred  and  fourscore  thousand  of  them  arc 
up  in  arms,  ready  to  force  Israel  to  their  denied  subjection.  No 
noise  sounded,  on  both  parts,  but  military :  no  man  thought  of 
any  thing,  but  blood  :  when,  suddenly,  God  sends  his  prophet,  to 
forbid  the  battle.  Shemaiah  comes  with  a  message  of  cessation  ; 
l'e  shall  not  go  up,  nor  fight  against  your  brethren,  the  children  of 
Israel :  return  every  man  to  his  house ;  for  this  thing  is  from  .vie, 
saith  the  Lord.  The  word  of  one  silly  prophet  dismisses  these 
.mighty  armies.    He,  that  would  not  lay  down  the  threats  of  his 


JEROBOAM.  455 

rigour,  upon  the  advice  of  his  ancient  counsellors,  will  lay  down 
his  sword,  upon  the  word  of  a  seer.  Shall  we  envy  or  shuiue  tt> 
)  sec  how  much  the  prophets  of  the  Old  Testament  eouid  do;  how 
little,  those  of  the  New?  If  our  commission  be  no  less  from  the 
same  God,  the  difference  of  success  cannot  go  away  unrevenged. 

There  was  yet  some  grace  in  llehoboam,  that  he  would  not  spurn 
against  that,  which  God  challenged  as  his  own  work.  Some  godless 
ruffian  would  have  said  ;  Whosoever  is  the  author,  I  will  be  re- 
venged on  the  instruments.'"  Rehoboam  hath  learned  this  lesson  of 
his  grandfather,  /  held  my  peace,  because  thou  Ijird  hast  done  it. 
If  he  might  strive  with  the  multitude,  he  knew  it  was  no  striving 
w  ith  his  Maker  :  quietly  therefore  doth  he  lay  down  his  arms;  not 
daring  after  that  prohibition;  to  seek  the  recovery  of  his  kingdom 
by  blood. 

Where  God's  purposes  are  hid  from -us,  we  must  take  the  faired 
ways  of  all  lawful  remedies ;  but  where  God  hath  revealed  bis  de- 
terminations, we  must  sit  down  in  an  humble  submission :  our 
struggling  may  aggravate,  cannot  redress  our  miseries. 

1  Kings  xii.    2  Chrcn.  x. 


JEROBOAM, 

As  there  was  no  public  and  universal  conflict,  betwixt  the  ten 
tribes  and  the  two,  so  no  peace.  Either  king  found  reason  to  for- 
tify the  borders  of  his  own  territories'. 

Shechem  was  worthy  to  be  dear  to  Jeroboam  ;  a  city,  as  of  old 
■seasoned  with  many  treasons,  so  now  auspicious  to  his  new  usurpa- 
tion. 

The  civil  defection  was  soon  followed  by  the  spiritual.  As  there 
are  near  respects  betwixt  God  and  his  anointed,  so  there  is  great 
affinity  betwixt  treason  and  idolatry  :  there  is  a  connexion,  betwixt 
Fear  (rod,  and  Honour  the  King ;  and  no  less,  betwixt  the  neg- 
lects of  both.  In  vain  shall  a  man  look  for  faith  in  a  misreligious 
heart. 

Next  to  Ahitophel,  I  do  not  find,  that  Israel  yielded  a  craftier 
head  than  Jeroboam's:  so  hath  he  plotted  this  conspiracy,  that, 
whatever  fall,  there  is  no  place  for  a  challenge  :  not  his  own  intru- 
sion, but  Israel's  election,  hath  raised  him  to  their  throne.  Neither 
is  his  cunning  le^s,  in  holding  a  stolen  sceptre.  Thus  he  thinks  in 
himself ;  "  If  Israel  have  made  me  theh?  king,  it  is  but  a  pang  of 
discontentment:  these  violent  thoughts  will  not  last  always:  sud- 
den fits  have  commonly  sudden  recoveries.  Their  return  to  their 
loyalty  shall  forfeit  my  head,  together  with  my  crown  :  they  can- 
not return  to  God,  and  hold  off  from  their  lawful  sovereign  :  they 
cannot  return  to  Jerusalem,  and  keep  off  from  God,  from  their 
loyalty:  thrice  a  year  will  their  devotion  call  them  up  thither; 
besides  the  exigence  of  their  frequent  vows.  How  can  they  be 
mine;,  while  that  glorious  temple  is  in  their  eve;  while  the  magni- 
ficence of  the  royal  palace  of  David  and  Solomon  snail  admonish 


456  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

tliem  of  their  native  allegiance;  while,  besides  the  solicitation  of 
their  brethren,  the  priests  and  Levites  shall  preach  to  them  the 
necessity  of  their  due  obedience,  and  the  abomination  of  their  sa-  i  | 
crifices  in  their  wilful  disobedience  ;  while  they  shall,  by  their  pre- 
sence, put  themselves  upon  the  mercy  or  justice  of  their  lawful 
and  forsaken  prince  ?  Either  therefore,  I  must  divert  them  from 
Jerusalem,  or  else  I  cannot  live  and  reign.  It  is  no  diverting  them 
by  a  direct  restraint :  such  prohibition  would  both  endanger  their 
utter  distaste,  and  whet  their  desire  to  more  eagerness.  I  may 
change  religion  ;  I  may  not  inhibit  it :  so  the  people  have  a  God, 
it  sufficeth  them.  They  shall  have  so  much  formality,  as  may 
content  them.  Their  zeal  is  not  so  sharp,  but  they  can  be  well 
pleased  with  ease.  I  will  proffer  them,  both  a  more  compendious 
and  more  plausible  worship.  Jerusalem  shall  be  supplied  within 
mine  own  borders.  Naturally,  men  love  to  see  the  objects  of  their 
devotion  ;  I  will  therefore  feed  their  eyes,  with  two  golden  repre- 
sentations of  their  God,  nearer  home  ;  and  what  can  be  more  pro- 
per than  those,  which  Aaron  devised  of  old  to  humour  Israel?" 

Upon  this  pestilent  ground,  Jeroboam  sets  up  two  calves,  in  Dan 
and  Bethel ;  and  persuades  the  people,  It  is  too  much  for  you  to 
go  up  to  Jerusalem ;  behold  thy  gods,  O  Israel,  which  brought  thee  i 
out  of  the  land  of  Egypt. 

Oh  the  mischief  that  comes  of  wicked  infidelity  !  It  was  God's 
prophet,  that  had  rent  Jeroboam's  garment  into  twelve  pieces, 
and  had  given  ten  of  them  to  him,  in  token  of  his  sharing  the  ten 
tribes,  who  with  the  same  breath  also  told  him,  that  the  cause  of 
this  distraction  was  their  idolatry  :  yet  now  will  he  institute  an  ido- 
latrous service,  for  the  hokling  together  of  them,  whom  their  ido- 
latry had  rent  from  their  true  sovereign  to  him.    He  says  not,  >. 

God  hath  promised  me  this  kingdom;  God  hath  conferred  it;  I 
God  shall  find  means  to  maintain  his  own  act :  I  will  obey  him  ;  « 
let  him  dispose  of  me :  the  God  of  Israel  is  wise  and  powerful 
enough,  to  fetch  about  his  own  designs  :"  but,  as  if  the  devices 
of  men  were  stronger  than  God's  providence  and  ordination,  he 
will  be  working  out  his  own  ends  by  profane  policies. 

Jeroboam,  being  born  an  Israelite,  and  bred  in  the  court  of  a 
Solomon,  could  not  but  know  the  express  charge  of  God,  against 
the  making  of  images,  against  the  erecting  of  any  rival  altars  to 
that  of  Jerusalem ;  yet  now,  that  he  sees  both  these  may  avail 
much  to  the  advancing  of  his  ambitious  project,  he  sets  up  those 
images,  those  altars.  Wicked  men  care  not  to  make  bold  with 
God,  in  cases  of  their  own  commodity  :  if  the  laws  of  their  Maker 
lie  in  the  way  of  their  profit  or  promotion,  they  either  spurn  them 
out,  or  tread  upon  them  at  pleasure :  aspiring  minds  will  know  no 
God,  but  honour. 

Israel  sojourned  in  Egypt,  and  brought  home  a  golden  calf;  Je-  J 
roboam  sojourns  there,  and  brought  home  two.  It  is  hard  to  dwell 
in  Egypt  untainted  :  not  to  savour  of  the  sins  of  the  place  we  live 
in,  is  no  less  strange,  than  for  wholesome  liquor  tunned  up  in  a 
musty  vessel,  not  to  smell  of  the  cask.    The  best  body  may  be 


JEROBOAM. 


451 


infected  in  a  contagious  air.  Let  him  beware  of  Egypt,  that  would 
be  free  from  idolatry. 

No  sooner  are  Jeroboam' s  calves  up,  than  Israel  is  down  on  their 
knees:  their  worship  follows  immediately  upon  the  erection.  How 
easily  is  the  unstable  vulvar  carried  into  whatsoever  religion  of 
authority  !  The  weathercock1  will  look  which  way  soever  the  wind 
blows.  It  is  no  marvel,  if  : i Is  subjects  be  brutish,  who  hath  made 
a  calf  his  god. 

Every  accessary  to  sin  is  filthy,  but  the  first  authors  of  sin  arc 
abominable.  How  is  Jeroboam  branded  in  every  of  these  sacred 
leaves  !  How  do  all  ages  ring  of  his  fact,  with  the  accent  of  disho- 
nour and  indignation  ;  Jeroboam,  the  son  of  Nebat,  that  made  Israel 
to  sin !  It  was  a  shame  for  Israel,  that  it  could  be  made  to  sin  by  a 
Jeroboam  ;  but,  O  cursed  name  of  Jeroboam,  that  would  draw  Israel 
to  sin  !  The  followers  and  abettors  of  evil  are  worthy  of  torment ; 
but  no  hell  is  too  deep,  for  the  leaders  of  public  wickedness. 

Religion  is  clothed  with  many  requisite  circumstances.  As  a  new 
king  would  have  a  new  god,  so  that  new  god  must  have  new  tem- 
ples, altars,  services,  priests,  solemnities :  all  these  hath  Jeroboam 
instituted  ;  all  these  hath  he  cast  in  the  same  mould  with  his  golden 
calves.  False  devotion  doth  no.t  more  cross,  than  imitate,  the  true. 
Satan  is  no  less  a  counterfeit,  than  an  enemy,  of  God:  he  knows 
it  more  easy  to  adulterate  religion,  than  to  abolish  it. 

That,  which  God  ordained  for  the  avoidance  of  idolatry,  is 
made  the  occasion  of  it ;  a  limitation  of  his  holy  services  to  Jeru- 
salem, How  mischievously  do  wicked  men  pervert  the  wholesome 
institutions  of  God,  to  their  sin,  to  their  bane  ! 

Jeroboam  could  not  be  ignorant,  how  fearfully  this  very  act  was 
revenged  upon  Israel,  in  the  wilderness;  yet  he  dares  renew  it  in 
Dan  and  Bethel.  No  example  of  judgment  can  affright  wilful  of- 
fenders. 

It  is  not  the  metal,  that  makes  their  gods,  but  the  worship,  the 
sacrifices.  What  sacrifices  could  there  be  without  priests  ?  No 
religion  could  ever  want  sacred  masters  of  divine  ceremonies. 

God's  clergy  was  select  and  honourable ;  branches  of  the  holv 
stem  of  Aaron  :  Jeroboam  rakes  up  his  priests,  out  of  the  channel 
of  the  multitude;  all  tribes,  all  persons  were  good  enough  for  his 
spurious  devotion.  Leaden  priests  are  well  fitted  to  golden  deities. 
Religion  receives  either  much  honour  or  blemish,  by  the  quality  of 
those  that  serve  at  her  altars.  We  arc  not  worthy  to  profess  our- 
selves servants  of  the  true  God,  if  we  do  not  hold  his  service  wor- 
thy of  the  best. 

Jeroboam's  calves  must  have  sacrifices,  must  have  solemn  festi- 
vities ;  though  in  a  day  and  month  of  his  own  devising.  In  vain 
shall  we  pretend  to  worship  a  god,  if  we  grudge  him  the  just  days 
and  rites  of  his  worship. 

It  is  strange,  that  he,  who  thought  the  dregs  of  the  vulgar  good 
enough  for  that  priesthood,  would  grace  those  gods,  by  acting 
their  priest  himself;  and  yet  behold  where  the  new  king,  of  Israel 
stands  before  his  new  altar,  with  a  sceptre  in  one  1  and  and  a  censer 


45?  C0NTEMPT..YTIOXS. 

in  the  other,  ready  to  sacrifice  to  his  new  gods;  when  the  man  of 
God  comes  from  Judah,  with  a  message  of  judgment. 

Oh  desperate  condition  of  Israel,  that  was  so  far  gone  with  im- 
piety, that  it  yielded  not  one  faithful  monitor  to  Jeroboam  !  The 
time  was,  that  the  erecting  of  but  a  new  altar  (for  memory,  for 
monument,)  on  the  other  side  of  Jordan,  bred  a  challenge  to  the 
tribes  of  Reuben,  Gad,  and  Manassch  ;  and  had  cost  much  Isra- 
elitish  blood,  if  the  quarrelled  tribes  had  not  given  a  seasonable 
and  pious  satisfaction  ;  and  now,  lo,  how  the  stronger  stomach  of 
tlegenerated  Israel  can  digest  new  altars,  new  temples,  new  gods! 
What  a  difference  there  is,  betwixt  a  church  and  kingdom  newly 
brcathing  from  affliction,  and  settled  upon  the  lees  of  a  misused 
peace  ! 

But  oh  the  patience  and  mercy  of  our  long-suffering  God,  that 
will  not  strike  a  very  Jeroboam  imwarned  I  Judgment  hovers  over 
the  heads  of  sinners,  ere  it  light.  If  Israel  afford  not  a  bold  re- 
prover of  Jeroboam,  Judah  shall.  When  the  king  of  Israel  is  in 
all  the  height,  both  of  his  state  and  superstition,  honouring  his 
solemn  day  with  his  richest  devotion,  steps  forth  a  prophet  of  God, 
and  interrupts  that  glorious  service,  with  a  loud  inclamation  of 
judgment. 

Doubtless,  the  man  wanted  not  wit  to  know  what  displeasure, 
what  danger,  must  needs  follow  so  unwelcome  a  message;  yet 
dares  he,  upon  the  commission  of  God,  do  this  affront  to  an  ido- 
kttrous  king,  in  the  midst  of  all  his  awful  magnificence.  The  pro- 
phets of  God  go  upon  many  a  than k  less  errand.  He  is  no  messen- 
ger for  God,  that  eitlier  know  s  or  fears  the  feces  of  men. 

It  was  the  altar,  not  the  person,  of  Jeroboam,  which  the  prophet 
thus  threatens ;  yet  not  the  stones  are  stricken,  but  the  founder, 
in  both  their  apprehensions.  So  dear  are  the  devices  of  our  own 
brains  to  us,  as  if  the}'  were  incorporated  into  ourselves.  There 
is  no  opposition  whereof  we  are  so  sensible,  as  that  of  religion. 

That  the  royal  altar  Should  be  thus  polluted,  by  dead  men's 
bones  and  the  blood  of  the  priests,  was  not  more  unpleasing,  than 
that  all  this  should  be  done,  by  a  child  of  the  house  of  David  ; 
for  Jeroboam  well  saw,  that  the  throne  and  the  altar  must  stand  or 
fall  together;  that  a  son  of  David  could  not  have  such  power  over 
the  altar,  without  an  utter  subversion  of  the  government,  of  the 
succession  ;  therefore  is  he  thus  ga'ied,  with,  this  comminatory  pre-, 
diction. 

The  rebellious  people,  who  had  said,  What  portion  have  we  in 
David  ?  hear  now  ,  that  David  will  perforce  have  a  portion  in  them  ; 
and  might  vvdl  see,  what  beasts  thev  had  made  themselves,  in  wor- 
shipping the  image  of  a  beast,  and  sacrificing  to  such  a  god,  as 
could  not  preserve  his  own  altar  from  violation  and  ruin. 

All  this  while,,  I  do  not  see  this  zealous  prophet  laying  "his  hand 
to  the  demolition  of  this  idolatrous  altar,  or  threatening  a  knife  to 
the  author  of  this  depravation  of  religion  :  only  his  tongue  smites 
both,  not  with  foul,  but  sharp  words  ;  of  menace,  not  of  reproach. 
It  was  for  Josiah  a  king,  to  shed  the  blood  of  those  sacrilicers,  to 


JEROBOAM.  45D 

deface  those  altars:  prophets  «;rc  for  the  tongue;  princes  for  the 
hand  :  prophets  must  onlv  denounce  judgment: ;  princes  execute. 
]  Future  things  are  present  to  the  Eternal.  It  was  some  two  Hun- 
dred and  sixty  years,  ere  this  prophecy  should  be  fulfilled  ;  yet  the 
man  of  God  speaks  of  it  as  now  in  acting.  What  are  some  cen- 
turies of  years  to  the  Ancient  of  Days  ?  How  slow,  and  yet,  how 
sure,  is  tiie  pace  of  God's  revenge  !  It  is  not  in  the  power  of  time, 
to  frustrate  God's  determinations.  There  is  no  less  justice  nor 
severity,  in  a  delayed  punishment. 

What  a  perfect  record  there  is  of  all  names,  in  the  roll  of  hea- 
ven ;  before  they  be,  after  they  are  past !  Whatever  .eeining  con- 
tingency there  is  in  their  imposition,  yet  they  fall  under  the  cer- 
tainty of  a  decree,  and  are  better  known  in  heaven  ere  they  be, 
than  on  earth  while  they  arc. 

He,  that  knows  what  names  we  shall  have  before  we  or  the 
world  have  a  being,  doth  not  often  reveal  tills  piece  of  his  know  - 
ledge to  his  creature  :  here  he  doth  ;  naming  the  man,  that  should 
be  two  hundred  years  after ;  for  more  assurance  of  the  event,  that 
Israel  may  sav,  "  I  bis  man  speaks  from  a  God  who  knows  what 
shall  be." 

There  cannot  be  a  more  sure  evidence  of  a  true  Godhead,  than 
the  foreknowledge  of  those  things,  whose  causes  have  yet  no  hope 
of  being.  But  because  the  proof  of  this  prediction  was  no  more 
certain  than  remote,  a  present  demonstration  shall  convince  the 
future  ;  The  altar  shall  rend  in  pieces,  the  ashes  shall  be  scattered. 

How  amazedly  must  the  seduced  Israelites  needs  look  upon  this 
miracle!  And  why  do  they  not  think  with  themselves,  "  While 
these  stones  rend,  why  are  our  hearts  whole  ?  Of  what  an  over- 
riding power  is  the  God  whom  we  have  forsaken,  that  can  thus  tear 
the  altars  of  his  co-rivals  !  How  shall  we  stand  before  his  vengeance, 
when  the  very  stones  break  at  the  word  of  his  prophet  f"  Perhaps, 
some  beholders  were  thus  affected  ;  but  Jeroboam,  whom  it  most 
concerned,  instead  of  bowing  his  knees  for  humiliation,  stretcheth 
forth  his  hand  for  revenge,  and  cries,  Lai/  hold  on  him.  Resolute 
wickedness  is  impatient  of  a  reproof;  and*  instead  of  yielding  to 
the  voice  of  God,  rebclleth.  Just  and  discreet  reprehension  doth 
not  more  reform  some  sinners,  than  exasperate  others. 

How  easy  it  is  for  God,  to  cool  the  courage  of  proud  Jeroboam! 
The  hand,  which  his  rage  stretches  out,  dries  up,  and  cannot  be 
pulled  back  again  :  and  now  stands  the  king  of  Israel  like  some 
antique  statue,  in  a  posture  of  impotent  endeavour  ;  so  disabled  to 
the  hurt  of  the  prophet,  that  he  cannot  command  that  piece  of 
himself!  What  are  the  great  potentates  of  the  world,  in  the  pow- 
erful hand  of  the  Almighty  ?  Tyrants  cannot  be  so  harmful,  a> 
they  arc:  malicious. 

The  strongest  heart  may  be  brought  down  with  affliction.  Now 
the  stout  stomach  of  Jeroboam  is  fallen  to  an  humble  deprecation  ; 
Entreat  now  the  face  of  the  Lord  thy  God,  and  pray  for  me,  thai 
my  hand  may  be  restored  me  again.  It  must  needs  he  a  great 
straight,  that  could  drive  a  proud  heart  to  beg  mercy,  where  he 


460 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


bent,  his  Persecution  r  so  doth  .Jeroboam;  kofflihg  it  no  scorn,  to 
be  beholding  to  an  enemy.  In  extremities,  the  worst  men  can  be 
content,  to  sue  for  favour,  where  they  have  spent  their  malice. 

It  well  becomes  the  prophets  of  God  to' be  merciful.  I  do  not' 
see  this  seer,  to  stand  upon  terms  of  exprobration  and  overly  con- 
testations with  Jeroboam  ;  to  sav,  "  Thine  intentions  to  me  were 
cruel.  Had  thy  hand  prevailed,  I  should  have  sued  to  thee  in 
vain.  Continue  ever  a  spectacle  of  the  fearful  justice  of  thy  Maker, 
whom  thou  hast  provoked  by  thine  idolatry,  whom  thou  wouldst 
have  smitten  in  pay  persecution."  But  he  meekly  sues  for  Jero- 
boam's release  ;  and,  that  God  might  abundantly  magnify  both  liis 
power  and  mercy,  is  heard  and  answered  with  success.  We  do  no 
whit  savour  of  heaven,  if  we  have  not  learned  to  do  good  for  evil. 

When  both  wind  and  sun,  the  blasts  of  judgment  and  the  beams 
of  favour,  met  together  to  work  upon  Jeroboam,  who  would  not 
look,  that  he  should  have  cast  off  his  cumbrous  and  mis-beseem- 
ing cloke  of  his  idolatry  ;  and  have  said,  "  Lord  thou  hast  stricken 
me  in  justice;  thou  hast  healed  me  in  mercy:  I  will  provoke 
thee  no  more:  this  hand:,  which  thou  hast' restored,  shall  be 
consecrated  to  thee,  in  pulling  down  these  bold  abominations  ?" 
Yet  now,  behold  he  goes  on  in  his  old  courses  ;  and,  as  if  God  had 
neither  done  him  good  nor  evil,  lives  and  dies  idolatrous.  No  stone 
is  more  hard  or  insensate,  than  a  sinful  heart.  The  changes  of 
judgment  and  mercy  do  butobdure  it,  instead  of  melting. 

1  Icings  xii,  xiii. 

THE  SEDUCED  PHOPHET. 
Jeroboam's  hand  is  amended  ;  his  soul  is  not :  th.it  continues  still 
dry  and  inflexible.  Yet,  while  he  is  unthankful  to  the  Author  of 
his  recovery,  he  is  thankful  to  the  instrument :  he  kindly  invites 
the  prophet,  whom  he  had  threatened  •,  and  will  remunerate  him, 
whom  he  endeavoured  to  punish.  The  Worst  men  may  be  sensible 
of  bodily  favours  :  civil  respects  may  well  stand  with  gracelessness  : 
many  a  one  would  be  lib  ral  of  their  purses,  if  they  might  be  al- 
lowed to  be  niggardly  of  their  obedience. 

As  God,  so  his  prophet,  cares  not  for  these  waste  courtesies, 
where  he  sees  main  duties  neglected  :  more  piety  would  have  done 
well,  with  less  compliment :  the  man  of  God  returns  a  blunt  and 
peremptory  denial,  to  so  bounteous  an  offer;  Jf  thou  wilt  give 
■me  half' thine  house,  1  will  not  no  in  with  thee,  neither  will  I  eat 
bread  nor  drink  water  in  this  place.  Kindness  is  more  safely  done 
to  an  idolater,  than  taken  from  him:  that,  which  is  done  to  him, 
obligeth  him  ;  that,  which  is  taken  from  him,  obligeth  us  :  his  ob- 
ligation to  us,  may  beoccasion  of  his  good  ;  our  obligation  to  him, 
may  occasion  our  hurt :  the  surest  way  is,  to  keep  aloof  from  the 
infectiously  wicked., •  ,  .    ,     „f  ;  .  .  ..  on 

The  prophet  is  not  uncivil,  to  reject  the  favour  of  a  prince, 
without  some  reason.  He  yields.no  reason  of  his  refusal,  but  the 
command  of  his  God,.  God  hath  charged  him,  Eat  no  breadynor 


THE  SEDUCED  PROPHET.  461 

di  ink  Water,  nor  /urn  ag  tin  by  the  same  -way  that  thou  earnest.  It 
is  not  tor  a  prophet,  to  plead  human  or  carnal  grounds,  for  the 
actions  of  his  function:  ha  may  not  move,  but  upon  a  divine 
warrant. 

Would  this  seer  have  looked  with  the  eyes  of  flesh  and  blood,  he 
might  have  found  many,  arguments  of  his  yieldance.  "  He  is  a 
king,  that  invite;  me.  ,  his  reward,  by  enriching  me,  may  benefit 
many  ;  and  who  knows,  how  much  my  further  conversation  may 
prevail  to  reform  him  ?  How  can  he  be  but  well  prepared  for 
good  coilnsel,  by  a  miraculous  cure  ?  How  gainfully  should  my 
receipt  of  a  temporal  courtesy  be  exchanged  with  a  spiritual  to 
him  !  All  Israel  will  follow  him,  either  in  idolatry  or  reformation  : 
which  way  can  be  devised  of  doing  so  great  service  to  God  and  the 
Church,  as  by  reclaiming  him  ?  what  can  yield  so  great  likelihood 
of  his  reclamation,  as  the  opportunity  of  mv  further  entireness  with 
him  ?'*  But  the  prophet  dares  not  argue  cases,  where  he  had  a 
command.  Whatever  become  of  Jeroboam  and  Israel,  God  must 
be  obeyed.  Neither  profit  nor  hopes  may  carry  us  cross  to  the 
word  of  our  Maker.  How  safe  had  this  seer  been,  if  he  had  kept 
him  ever  upon  this  sure  ward  ;  which  he  no  sooner  leaves,  than  he 
miscarries. 

So  deeply  doth  God  detest  idolatry,  that  he  forbids  his  prophet 
to  eat  the  bread,  to  drink  the  water,  of  a  people  infected  with  this 
sin  ;  vea,  to  tread  in  those  very  steps,  which  their  feet  have 
touched.  If  this  inhibition  were  personal,  yet  the  grounds  of  it  are 
common.  No  pestilence  should  be  more  shunned,  than  the  conver- 
sation of  the  mis-religious,  or  opcnlv  scandalous  :  it  is  no  thank  to 
ys,  if  their  familiarity  do  not  enfeoff  us  of  their  wickedness. 

I  know  not  what  to  think  of  an  old  prophet  that  dwells  in  Bethel, 
within  the  air  of  Jeroboam's  idol,  within  the  ncise  of  his  sacrifices; 
that  lives,  where  the  man  of  God  dares  not  eat ;  that  permitted  I  us 
sons  to  be  present  at  that  idolatrous  service.  If  he  were  a  prophet 
of  God,  what  did  he  now  in  Bethel?  why  did  he  wink  at  the  sin  of 
Jeroboam  ?  what  needed  a  seer  to  come  out  of  Judah,  for  the  re- 
proof of  that  sin,  which  was  acted  under  his  nose  ?  why  did  he  lie  ? 
why  did  his  family  partake  with  idolaters  ?  If  he  were  not  a  prophe 
of  God,  how  had  he  true  visions,  how  had  he  true  messages  from 
God  ?  why  did  he  second  the  menacing  word  of  that  prophet, 
whom  he  seduced  ?  why  did  he  desire,  that  his  own  bones  might 
be  honoured  with  his  sepulchre  f  doubtless,  he  was  a  prophet  of 
God  ;  but  corrupt,  resty,  vicious. 

Prophecy  doth  not  always  presuppose  sanctification.  Main  a 
one  hath  had  visions  from  God,  who  shall  never  enjoy  the  vision  of 
God.  A  very  Balaam,  in  his  ecstasies,  hath  so  clear  a  revelation  of 
the  Messiah  to  come,  as  scarce  ever  any  of  the  holiest  prophets  ; 
yea,  his  very  ass  hath  both  her  mouth  miraculously  opened  and 
i>er  eyes,  to  see  and  notify  that  angel,  which  was  hid  from  hei 
master:  yea,  Satan  himself  sometimes  receives  notice  from  God  of 
his  future  actions,  which  else  that  evil  spirit  cotdd  neither  foreU  i 
nor  foresee.    These  kinds  of  graces  are  both  rare  and  common 


462 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


rare,  in  that  they  are  seldom  given  to  any  ;  common,  in  that  they 
are  indifferently  given  to  the  evil  and  to  the  good.  A  little  holiness 
k  wort!)  much  illumination. 

Whether  out  of  envy,  to  hear  that  said  by  the  seer  of  Judah 
which  he  either  knew  not  or  smothered,  to  hear  that  done  by  ano- 
ther which  he  could  not  have  effected  and  could  not  choose  but  ad- 
mire; or,  whether  out  of  desire  to  make  trial  of  the  fidelity  of  so 
powerful  a  messenger ;  the  old  prophet  hastens  to  overtake,  to  re- 
eal,  that  man  of  God,  who  had  so  defied  his  Bethel :  whom  he  finds 
sitting  faint  and  weary  under  an  oak,  in  the  way ;  taking  the  benefit 
of  that  shade,  which  he  hated  to  receive  from  those  contagious 
groves,  that  he  had  left  behind  him.  His  habit  easily  bewrayed 
him,  to  a  man  of  his  own  trade  ;  neither  doth  his  tongue  spare  to 
profess  himself. 

The  old  prophet  of  Bethel  invites  him  to  return,  to  a  repast; 
and  is  answered  with  the  same  words,  wherewith  Jeroboam's  offer 
was  repelled.  The  man  of  God  varies  not  a  syllable  from  his 
message.  It  concerns  us,  to  take  good  heed  of  our  charge,  who 
we  go  on  God's  errand> 

A  denial  doth  but  invite  the  importunate.  What  he  cannot  do 
by  entreaty,  the  old  man  tries  to  do  by  persuasion  ;  I  am  a  pro- 
phet also,  as  thou  art,  and,  an  angel  spake  to  me,  by  the  word  of 
the  Lord,  saying,  Bring  him  baek  mtk  thee  into  thine  houseT 
that  he  may  eat  bread  and  drink  water.  There  is  no  temptation  so 
dangerous,  as  that  which  comes  shrouded  under  a  veil  of  holiness,, 
and  pretends  authority  of  God  himself.  Jeroboam  threatens,  the 
prophet  stands  undaunted  •,  Jeroboam  fawns  and  promises,  the 
prophet  holds  constant :  now  comes  a  grey-headed  seer  and  pleads 
a  counter-message  from  God  ;  the  prophet  yields  and  transgresses. 
Satan  may  affright  us  as  a  fiend,  but  he  seduces  us  as  an  angel 
of  light. 

Who  would  have  looked  for  a  liar,  under  hoary  hairs  and  a  holy 
mantle  ?  Who  would  not  have  trusted  that  gravity,  when  there 
was  no  colour  of  any  gain  in  the  untruth  ?  Nothing  is  so  apt  to 
deceive,  as  the  fairest  semblances,  as  the  sweetest  words.  We 
cannot  err,  if  we  believe  not  the  speech  for  the  person,  but  the 
person  for  the  speech. 

Well  might  this  man  of  God  think  "An  aged  man,  a  prophet, 
an  old  prophet,  will  not,  sure,  bely  God  unto  a  prophet.  No  man 
will  forge  a  lie,  but  for  an  advantage.  What  can  this  man  gain  by 
this  match,  but  the  entertainment  of  an  unprofitable  guest  ?  Per- 
haps, though  God  will  not  allow  me  to  feast  with  Jeroboam,  yet, 
pitying  my  faintness,  he  may  allow  me  to  eat  with  a  prophet. 
Perhaps,  now  that  I  have  approved  my  fidelity  in  refusing  the 
bread  of  Bethel,  God  thinks  good  to  send  me  a  gracious  release  of 
that  strict  charge.  Why  should  I  think  that  God's  revelations  are 
not  as  free  to  others,  as  to  me  ?  And  if  this  prophet  have  received 
a.  countermand  from  an  ahgel  of  God,  how  shall  1  not  disobey  God, 
if  I  do  not  follow  him  ?" 

Vpon  this  ground,  he  returns  with  this  deceitful  host ;  and, 


TKE  SEDUCED  PROPHET. 


4G3 


when  the  meat  was  now  in  his  mouth,  receives  the  true  message  of 
death)  from  the  same  lips  that  brought  him  the  false  message  of  his 
invitation  ;  Thus  saith  the.  Lord,  Forasmuch  as  thvu  hast  dis- 
obeyed the  mouth  ef  the  Lord,  and  hast  not  kept  the  command- 
ment of  the  Lord  thy  dad,  but  earnest  back  and  hast  eaten  bread, 
and  drunk  water t  in  the  place  forbidden  thee,  thy  carcase  shall 
not  come  to  the  sepulchre  of  thy  fathers. 

O  woeful  prophet !  When  he  looks  on  bis  host,  he  sees  his  ex- 
ecutioner ;  while  he  is  feeding  of  his  body,  he  hears  of  his  carcase  ; 
at  the  table,  he  hears  of  his  denied  sepulchre  ;  and  all  this  for  eat- 
ing and  drinking  where  he  was  forbidden  by  God,  though  bidden 
as  from  God.  The  violation  of  the  least  charge  of  a  God  is  mortal. 
No  pretences  can  warrant  the  transgression  of  a  divine  command. 

A  word  from  God  is  pleaded  on  both  sides  :  the  one  was  re-' 
ceived  immediately  from  God  ;  the  other  related  mediately  by 
man:  one,  the  prophet  was  sure  of;  the  other  was  questionable. 
A  sure  word  of  God  may  not  be  left,  for  an  uncertain.  An  express 
charge  of  the  Almighty  admitteth  not  of  any  check.  His  will  is 
but  one,  as  himself  is ;  and  therefore,  it  is  out  of  the  danger  of  con- 
tradiction. 

Methinks,  I  see  the  man  of  God  change  countenance,  at  this 
sharp  sauce  of  his  pleasing  morsel.  His  face  before-hand  is  dyed 
with  the  paleness  of  death.  Methinks,  I  hear  him  urging,  manv 
unkind  expostulations,  with  his  injurious  host:  who  yet  dismissed 
him,  better  provided  for  the  ease  of  his  journey,  than  he  found 
him.  Perhaps  this  ofheiousness  was  out  of  desire,  to  make  some 
amends  for  this  late  seducement.  It  is  a  poor  reeompence,  when 
lie  hath  betrayed  his  life  and  wronged  the  soul,  to  cast  some  cour- 
tesies upon  the  body. 

The  old  Bethelite,  that  had  taken  pains  to  come  and  fetch  the 
man  of  God  into  sin,  will  not  now  go  back  with  hiin,  to  accom- 
pany his  departure.  Doubtless,  he  was  afraid  to  be  enwrapped  in 
the  judgment,  which  he  saw  hanged  over  that  obnoxious  head. 
Thus  the  mischievous  guides  of  wickedness  leave  a  man,  when 
they  have  led  him  to  his  bane  ;  as  familiar  devils  forsake  their 
witches,  when  they  have  brought  them  once  into  fetters. 

The  man  of  God  returns  alone ;  careful,  no  doubt,  and  pensive, 
for  his  offence  ;  when  a  lion  out  of  the  wood  meets  him,  assaults 
him,  kills  him.  Oh  the  just  and  severe  judgments  of  the  Almightv, 
who  hath  brought  this  fierce  beast,  out  of  his  wild  ranges  into  the 
highway.,  to  be  the  executioner  of  his  oMending  servant ! 

Doubtless,  this  prophet  was  a  man  of  great  holiness,  of  singular 
fidelity,  else  he  durst  not  have  been  God's  herald,  to  carry  a  mes- 
sage of  defiance  to  Jeroboam,  king  of  Israel,  in  the  midst  of  his 
royal  magnificence  ;  vet  now,  for  varying  from  but  a  circumstance 
of  God's  command,  though  upon  the  suggestion  of  a  divine  war- 
rant, is  given  for  a  prey  to  the  lion.  Our  interest  in  God  is  so  far 
from  excusing  our  sin,  that  it  aggravates  it.  Of  all  other-.,  the  .sin 
of  a  prophet  shall  not  pass  unrevenged. 

The  very  wild  beasts  are  led  by  a  providence.    Their  wi$e  and 


464 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


powerful  Creator  knows  how  to  serve  himself  of  them.  The  lions 
guard  one  prophet,  kill  another,  according  to  the  commission  re- 
ceived from  their  Maker.  What  sinner  can  hope  to  escape  unpu- 
nished, when  every  creature  of  God  is  ready  to  be  an  avenger  of 
evil  ?  The  beasts  of  the  held  were  made  to  serve  us;  we,  to  serve 
our  Creator*,  When  we  forsake  our  homage  to  him  that  made  us,  it 
is  no  marvel,  if  the  beasts  forget  their  duty  to  us,  and  deal  with  us, 
not  as  masters,  but  as  rebels. 

When  a  holy  man  buys  so  dearly  such  a  slight  frailty,  of  a  cre- 
dulous mistaking,  what  shall  become  of  our  heinous  and  presump- 
tuous sins  r 

I  cannot  think  but  this-  prophet  died  in  the  favour  of  God, 
though  by  the  teeth  of  the  lion.  His  life  was  forfeited  for  example ; 
his  soul  was  safe  :  yea,  his  very  carcase  was  left,  though  torne,  yet 
fair  after  those  deadly  grasps;  as  if  God  had  said,  "  I  will  only 
take  thy  breath  from  thee,  as  the  penalty  of  thy  disobedience.  A 
lion  shall  do  that,  which  an  apoplexy  or  fever  might  do.  I  owe 
thee  no  further  revenge,  than  may  be  satisfied  with  thy  blood.'1 
Violent  events  do  not  always  argue  the  anger  of  God.  Even  death 
itself  is,  to  his  servants,  a  fatherly  castigation. 

But  oh,  the  unsearchable  ways  of  the  Almighty  !  the  man  of 
God  sins,  and  dies  speedily  :  the  lying  prophet,  that  seduced  him, 
survives:  yea,  wicked  Jeroboam  enjoys  his  idolatry,  and  treads 
upon  the  grave  of  his  reprover.  There  is  neither  favour  in  the 
delay  of  stripes,  nor  displeasure  in  the  haste  :  rather,  whom  God 
loves,  he  chastises,  as  sharply,  so  speedily,  while  the  rest  prosper 
to  condemnation.  Even  the  rod  of  a  loving  father  may  draw  blcod. 
How  much  happier  is  it  for  us,  that  we  die  now,  to  live  for  ever, 
than  that  we  live  awhile  to  die  ever  ! 

Had  this  lion  set  upon  the  prophet  for  hunger,  why  did  he  not 
devour,  as  well  as  kill  him  !  Why  did  he  not  rather  kill  the  beast, 
than  the  man  ?  since  we  know  the  nature  of  the  lion  such,  that  he 
is  not  wont  to  assail  man,  save  in  the  extreme  want  of  other  prey. 
Certainly,  the  same  power,  that  employed  those  fangs,  restrained 
them ;  that  the  world  might  see,  it  was  not  appetite,  that  pro- 
voked the  beast  to  this  violence,  but  the  over-ruling  command  of 
God.  Even  so,  O  Lord,  thy  powerful  hand  is  over  that  roaring 
lion,  that  goes  about  continually,  seeking  whom  he  may  devour. 
Thine  hand  withholds  him,  that,  though  he  may  shed  the  blood  of 
thine  elect,  yet  he  cannot  hurt  their  souls;  and,  while  he  doth 
those  things  which  thou  pcrmittest,  and  orderest  to  thy  just  ends, 
yet  he  cannot  do  lesser  things,  which  he  desireth,  and  thou  permit- 
test  not. 

The  fierce  beast  stands  by  the  carcase ;  as  to  avow"  his  own  act 
and  to  teil  who  sent  him,  so  to  preserve  that  body  which  he  hath 
slain.  Oh  wonderful  work  of  God!  the  executioner  is  turned 
guardian  ;  and,  as  the  officer  of  the  Highest,  commands  all  other 
creatures  to  stand  aloof  from  his  charge  ;  and  commands  the  fearful 
ass,  that  brought  this  burthen  thither,  not  to  stir  thence,  but  stand 
ready  pressed,  to  re-carry  it  to  the  sepulchre :  and  now,  when  he 


Jeroboam's  wife.  463 
hath  sufficiently  witnessed  to  all  passengers,  that  this  act  was  not 
done  upon  his  own  hunger,  but  upon  the  quarrel  of  his  Maker,  he 
delivers  up  his  charge  to  that  old  prophet,  who  was  no  less  guilty 
of  this  blood  than  himself. 

This  old  seducer  hath  so  much  truth,  as  both  to  give  a  right 
commentary  upon  God's  intention  in  this  act  for  the  terror  of  the 
disobedient,  and  to  give  his  voice  to  the  certainty  of  that  future 
judgment  which  his  late  guest  had  threatened  to  Israel.  Some- 
times it  pleaseth  the  wisdom  of  God,  to  express  and  justify  himself, 
even  by  the  tongues  of  faulty  instruments.  Withal,  he  hath  so  much 
faith  and  courage,  as  to  fetch  that  carcase  from  the  lion  ;  so  much 
pity  and  compassion,  as  to  weep  for  the  man  of  God,  to  inter  him  in 
his  own  sepulchre  ;  so  much  love,  as  to  wish  himself  joined  in 
death  to  that  bod}-,  which  he  had  hastened  unto  death.  It  is  hard 
to  find  a  man  absolutely  wicked.  Some  grace  will  bewray  itself,  in 
the  most  forsaken  breasts. 

It  is  a  cruel  courtesy,  to  kill  a  man,  and  then  to  help  him  to  his 
grave  ;  to  betray  a  man  with  our  breath,  and  then  to  bedew  him 
with  our  tears.  The  prophet  had  needed  no  such  friend,  if  he  had 
not  met  with  such  an  enemy.   The  mercies  of  the  wicked  are  cruel. 

1  Kings  xiii. 

JEROBOAM'S  WIFE. 
It  is  no  measuring  of  God's  favour,  by  the  line  of  outward  welfare. 
Jeroboam,  the  idolatrous  usurper  of  Israel,  prospers  better,  than 
the  true  heirs  of  David.   He  lives  to  see  three  successions  in  the 
throne  of  Judah.    Thus  the  ivy  lives,  when  the  oak  is  dead. 

Yet  could  not  that  misgotten  crown  of  his  keep  his  head  always 
from  aching  :  he  hath  his  crosses  too.  God  whips  sometimes  more 
than  his  own  :  his  enemies  smart  from  him,  as  well  as  his  children  ; 
his  children  in  love,  his  enemies  in  judgment.  Not  simply  the  rod 
argues  love,  but  the  temper  of  the  hand  that  wields  it,  and  the  back 
that  feels  it. 

First,  Jeroboam's  hand  was  stricken  ;  now,  his  son.  Abijah  the 
eldest,  the  best  son  of  Jeroboam,  is  smitten  with  sickness.  As  chil- 
dren are  but  the  pieces  of  their  parents  in  another  skin,  so  parents 
are  no  less  stricken  in  their  children,  than  in  their  natural  limbs. 
Jeroboam  doth  not  more  feel  his  arm,  than  his  son.  Not  wicked 
men  only,  but  beasts  may  have  natural  affections.  It  is  no  thank 
to  any  creature,  to  love  his  own. 

Nature  wrought  in  Jeroboam,  not  grace.  He  is  enough  troubled, 
with  his  sou's  disease  ;  no  whit  bettered.  I  would  have  heard  him 
say  ;  "  God  follows  me  with  his  afflictions.  It  is  for  mine  im- 
piety. What  other  measure  can  I  expect  from  his  justice  ?  While 
mine  idols  stand,  how  can  I  look  that  my  house  should  prosper  ? 
I  will  turn  from  my  wickedness ;  O  God,  turn  thou  from  thy 
wrath." 

These  thoughts  were  too  good  for  that  obdured  heart.  His 

VOL.  I.  H  H 


466  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

son  is  sick,  he  is  sorrowful ;  but  as  an  amazed  man  seeks  to  go 
forth  at  the  wrong  door,  his  distraction  sends  him  to  a  false  help. 
He  thinks  not  of  God  ;  he  thinks  of  his  prophet :  he  thinks  of  the 
prophet,  that  had  foretold  him  he  should  be  a  king;  he  thinks  not 
of  the  God  of  that  prophet,  who  made  him  a  king.  It  is  the  pro- 
perty of  a  carnal  heart,  to  confine  both  his  obligations  and  his  hopes 
to  the  means,  neglecting  the  Author  of  good.  Vain  is  the  respect 
that  is  given  to  the  servant,  where  the  Master  is  contemned. 

Extremity  draws  Jeroboam's  thoughts  to  the  prophet ;  whom 
else  he  had  not  cared  to  remember.  The  king  of  Israel  had  divines 
enough  of  his  own  ;  else  he  must  needs  have  thought  them  mise- 
rable gods,  that  were  not  worth  a  prophet :  and  besides,  there  was 
an  old  prophet  (if  he  yet  survived)  dwelling  within  the  smoke  of 
his  palace,  whose  visions  had  been  too  well  approved  :  why  should 
Jeroboam  send  so  far  to  an  Abijah  ?  Certainly,  his  heart  despised 
those  base  priests  of  his  high  places;  neither  could  he  trust,  either 
to  the  gods  or  the  clergy  of  his  own  making.  His  conscience  rest5; 
upon  the  fidelity  of  that  man,  whose  doctrine  he  had  forsaken. 
How  did  this  idolater  strive  against  his  own  heart,  while  lie  in- 
wardly despised  those,  whom  lie  professed  to  honour ;  and  in- 
wardly honoured  them,  whom  he  professed  to  despise  !  Wicked 
breasts  are  false  to  themselves ;  neither  trusting  to  their  own 
choice,  nor  making  choice  of  that  which  they  may  dare  to  trust. 
They  will  set  a  good  face  upon  their  secretly  unpleasing  sins ;  and 
would  rather  be  self-condemned,  than  wise  and  penitent. 

As  for  that  old  seer,  it  is  like  Jeroboam  knew  his  skill,  but 
doubted  of  his  sinceritv.  That  man  w  as  too  much  his  neighbour  to 
be  good.  Abijah's  truth  had  been  tried  in  a  case  of  his  own  :  he, 
whose  word  was  found  just  in  the  prediction  of  his  kingdom,  was 
well  worthy  of  credit  in  the  news  of  his  son.  Experience  is  a  great 
encouragement  of  our  trust.  It  is  a  good  matter  to  be  faithful: 
this  loadstone  of  our  fidelity  shall  draw  to  us  even  hearts  of  iron, 
and  hold  them  to  our  reliance  ;  as  contrarily,  deceit  doth  both  ar- 
gue and  make  a  bankrupt.  Who  can  trust,  where  he  is  disap- 
pointed ?  O  God,  so  oft,  so  ever,  have  we  found  thee  true  in  all 
thy  promises,  in  all  thy  performances,  that  if  we  do  not  seek  thee, 
if  we  do  not  trust  thee  in  the  sequel,  we  are  worthy  of  our  loss, 
worthy  of  thy  desertions. 

Yet  I  do  not  see,  that  Jeroboam  sends  to  the  prophet,  for  his 
aid,  but  for  intelligence.  Curiosity  is  guilty  of  this  message,  and 
not  devotion.  He  calls  not  for  the  prayers,  not  for  the  benediction 
of  that  holy  man,  but  for  mere  information  of  the  event.  He  well 
saw  what  the  prayers  of  a  prophet  couUI  do.  That,  which  cured 
his  hand,  might  it  not  have  cured  his  son  ?  Yet  he,  that  said  to  a 
man  of  God,  Entreat  the  face  of  the  Lord  thy  God,  that  he  may 
restore  mjj  hand,  says  not  now  in  his  message  to  Abijah,  "  Entreat 
thy  God  to  restore  my  son."  Sin  makes  such  a  strangeness  be- 
twixt God  and  man,  that  the  guilty  heart  either  thinks  not  of  suing 
to  God,  or  fears  it.  What  a  poor  contentment  it  was  to  foreknow 
that  evil,  which  he  couJd  not  avoid,  and  whose  notice  could  but 


jeroboam's  wife.  467 
hasten  his  misery  !  Yet,  thus  fond  is  our  restless  curiosity,  that  it 
seeks  ease,  in  the  drawing  on  of  torment.  He  is  worthy  of  sorrow, 
that  will  not  stay  till  it  comes  to  him,  but  goes  to  fetch  it. 

Whom  doth  Jeroboam  send  on  this  message,  but  his  wife  ;  and 
how,  but  disguised  !  Why  her,  and  why  thus  ?  Neither  durst  he 
trust  tins  errand  with  another,  nor  with  her  in  her  own  form.  It 
was  a  secret,  that  Jeroboam  sends  to  a  prophet  of  God :  none 
might  know  it,  but  his  own  bosom,  and  she  that  lay  in  it.  If  this 
had  been  noised  in  Israel,  the  example  had  been  dangerous.  Who 
would  not  have  said,  "  The  king  is  glad  to  leave  his  counterfeit 
deities,  and  seek  to  the  true:  why  should  we  adhere  to  them,  whom 
he  forsakes  ?" 

As  the  message  must  not  be  known  to  the  people,  so  she  that 
bears  it  must  not  be  known  to  the  prophet;  her  name,  her  habit 
must  be  changed  :  she  must  put  off  her  robes,  and  put  on  a  russet 
coat ;  she  must  put  off  the  queen,  and  put  on  the  peasant ;  instead 
of  her  sceptre,  she  must  take  up  a  basket,  and  go  a  masked  pil- 
grimage to  Shiloh.  Oh  the  fondness  of  vain  men,  that  think  to 
juggle  with  the  Almighty,  and  to  hide  their  councils  from  that  all- 
seeing  eye  !  If  this  change  of  habit  were  necessary  at  Bethel,  yet 
what  needs  it  at  Shiloh  ?  Though  she  would  hide  her  face  from  her 
subjects,  yet  why  should  she  not  pull  off  her  muffler,  and  shew  her- 
self to  the  prophet  ?  Certainly,  what  policy  began,  guiltiness  must 
continue.  Well  might  she  think,  "  There  can  be  no  good  answer 
expected  by  the  wife  of  Jeroboam.  My  presence  will  do  no  less, 
than  solicit  a  reproof.  No  prophet  can  speak  well,  to  the  consort 
of  a  founder  of  idolatry.  I  may  perhaps  hear  good,  as  another; 
though,  a»  myself,  I  can  look  for  nothing,  but  tidings  of  evil." 
Wicked  hearts  know  they  deserve  ill  at  God's  hands ;  and  therefore 
they  do  all  they  can,  to  avoid  the  eyes  of  his  displeased  justice  ; 
and  if  they  cannot  do  it  by  colours  of  dissimulation,  they  will  do  it 
by  hnploration  of  shelter  :  they  shall  say  to  the  rocks,  Fall  on  us, 
and  cover  us. 

But  oh  the  gross  folly  mixed  with  the  craft  of  wickedness ' 
Could  Jeroboam  think  that  the  prophet  could  know  the  event  of 
his  son's  disease,  and  did  he  think  that  he  could  not  know  the  dis- 
guise of  his  wife  ?  The  one  was  present,  the  other  future  ;  this 
was  but  w  rapped  in  a  clout,  that  event  was  wrapped  up  in  the  coun- 
cil of  God  :  yet  this  politic  head  presumes,  that  the  greater  shall 
be  revealed,  where  the  lesser  shall  be  hid.  There  was  never  wicked 
man,  that  was  not  infatuate  ;  and  in  nothing  more,  than  in  those 
things  wherein  he  hoped  most  to  transcend  the  reach  of  others. 

Abijah,  shunning  the  iniquity  of  the  times,  was  retired  to  a  soli- 
tary corner  of  Shiloh.  No  place  could  be  too  private  for  an  ho- 
nest prophet,  in  so  extreme  depraved ness :  yet  even  there,  doth 
the  king  of  Israel  take  notice  of  his  reclusion  ;  and  sends  his  wife 
to  that  poor  cell,  laden  with  presents  ;  presents,  that  dissembled 
their  bearer.  Had  she  offered  jewels  or  gold,  her  greatness  had 
LtL-n  suspected:  now  she  brings  loaves,  and  cracknels,  and  honey, 


CM  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

her  hand  answers  her  back.  She  gives  as  she  seems,  not  as  she  is. 
Something  she  must  give,  even  when  she  acts  the  poorest  client. 

The  prophets  of  God  were  not  wont  to  have  empty  visitations. 
They,  who  hated  bribes,  yet  refused  not  tokens  of  gratitude.  Yea, 
the  God  of  Heaven,  who  neither  needs  our  goods  nor  is  capable  of 
our  gratifications,  yet  would  have  no  man  to  come  to  him  giftless. 
Woe  to  those  sacrilegious  hands,  that,  instead  of  bringing  to  the 
prophets,  carry  from  them  ! 

Jeroboam  was  a  bad  man  ;  yet,  as  he  had  a  towardly  son,  so  he 
had  an  obedient  wife ;  else  she  had  not  wanted  excuses,  to  turn  off 
both  the  journey  and  the  disguise.  Against  the  disguise,  she  had 
pleaded  the  unbeseemingness  for  her  person  and  state  ;  against  the 
journey,  the  perils  of  so  long  and  solitary  a  walk.  Perhaps  a  lion 
might  be  in  the  way ;  the  lion  that  tore  the  prophet  in  pieces : 
perhaps,  robbers :  or,  if  not  they,  perhaps  her  chastity  might  be 
in  danger;  an  unguarded  solitariness  in  the  weaker  sex,  might  be 
a  provocation  to  some  forced  uncleanness.  She  cast  off  all  these 
shifting  projections  of  fear.  According  to  the  will  of  her  husband, 
she  changes  her  raiment ;  she  sets  upon  the  journey,  and  over- 
comes it. 

What  needed  this  disguise  to  an  old  prophet,  whose  dim  eyes 
were  set  with  age  ?  All  clothes,  all  faces  were  alike  to  a  blind  seer. 
The  visions  of  Abijah  were  inward  ;  neither  was  his  bodily  sight 
more  dusky,  than  the  eyes  of  his  mind  were  clear  and  piercing.  It 
was  not  the  common  light  of  men  whereby  he  saw,  but  divine  illu- 
mination. Things  absent,  things  future,  were  no  less  .obvious  to 
those  spiritual  beams,  than  present  things  are  to  vis.  Ere  the  quick 
eyes  of  that  great  lady  can  discern  him,  he  hath  espied  Ijer ;  and  as 
soon  as  he  hears  the  sound  of  her  feet,  she  hears  from  him  the  sound 
of  her  name  ;  Coyne  in,  thou  wife  of  Jeroboam.  How  God  laughs  in 
heaven,  at  the  frivolous  fetches  of  crafty  politicians;  and,  when 
they  think  themselves  most  sure,  shames  them  with  a  detection, 
with  a  defeat !  What  an  idleness  it  is,  for  foolish  hypocrites  to 
hope  they  can  dance  in  a  net,  unseen  of  heaven  ! 

Never  before  was  this  queen  troubled,  to  hear  of  herself:  now, 
she  is.  Her  very  name  strikes  her  with  astonishment,  and  prepares 
her  for  the  assured  horror  of  following  judgments ;  I  am  sent  to 
thee  with  heavy  tidings :  Go,  tell  Jeroboam,  Thus  saith  the  Lord 
God  of  Israel. 

Could  this  lady  less  wonder  at  the  mercy  of  this  style  of  God, 
than  tremble  at  the  sequel  of  his  justice?  Co,  Israel  hath  forsaken 
God ;  yet  God  still  owns  Israel  :  Israel  hath  gone  a  whoring ;  yet 
God  hath  not  divorced  her  !  O  the  infinite  goodness  of  our  long- 
suffering  God,  whom  our  foulest  sins  cannot  rob  of  his  compas- 
sions ! 

By  how  much  dearer  Israel  was  to  God,  so  much  more  odious,  is 
Jeroboam,  that  hath  marred  Israel.  Terrible  is  that  vengeance, 
which  God  thunders  against  him  by  his  prophet;  whose  passionate 
message  upbraids  him  with  his  promotions,  chargeth  him  with  his 


jeroboam's  wife.  4G9 
sins,  and  lastly  denounceth  his  judgments.  No  mouth  was  fitter, 
to  cast  this  royalty  in  the  teeth  of  Jeroboam,  than  that  by  which 
it  was  first  foretold,  forepromised.  Every  circumstance  of  the  ad- 
vancement aggravates  the  sin.  "  /  exalted  thee  :  thou  couldest 
not  rise  to  honour  alone.  /  exalted  thee,  from  among  the  people,- 
not  from  the  peers  :  thy  rank  was  but  common,  before  this  rise.  / 
exalted  thee,  from  among  the  people,  to  be  a  prince  :  subordinate 
height  was  not  enough  for  thee :  no  seat  would  serve  thee,  but  a 
throne.  Yea,  to  be  a  prince  of  my  people  Israel :  no  nation  was 
for  thee,  but  my  chosen  one  ;  none,  but  my  royal  inheritance. 
Neither  did  I  raise  thee  into  a  vacant  throne  ;  a  forlorn  and  forsaken 
principality  might  be  thankless;  but  I  rent  the  kingdom  away  from 
another,  for  thy  sake ;  yea,  from  what  other,  but  the  grandchild 
of  David  ?  Out  of  his  hands  did  I  wrest  the  sceptre,  to  give  it 
into  thine."  Oh  what  high  favours  doth  God  sometimes  cast 
away,  upon  unworthy  subjects  !  How  do  his  abused  bounties  dou- 
ble both  their  sin  and  judgment  !  The  sins  of  this  prince  were 
no  less  eminent,  than  his  obligations  ;  therefore  his  judgments 
shall  be  no  less  eminent,  than  his  sins. 

How  bitterly  doth  God  express  that,  which  shall  be  more  bitter 
in  the  execution!  Behold,  I  will  bring  evil  upon  the  house  of  Je- 
roboam, and  will  cut  off  from  Jeroboam,  every  male,  and  him 
that  is  shut  up  and  left  in  Israel,  and  will  take  away  the  rem- 
nant of  the  house  of  Jeroboam,  as  a  man  taketh  away  dung,  till 
it  be  all  gone :  him  that  dieth  of  Jeroboam  in  the  city,  shall 
the  dogs  eat ;  and  him  that  dieth  in  the  field,  shall  the  fowls  of 
the  air  eat. 

Oh  heavy  load,  that  this  disguised  princess  must  carry  to  her 
husband  !  But  because  these  evils,  though  grievous,  yet  might  be 
remote  ;  therefore,  for  a  present  handsel  of  vengeance,  she  is  dis- 
missed with  the  sad  tidings  of  the  death  of  her  son  ;  When 
thy  feet  enter  into  the  city,  the  child  shall  die.  It  is  heavy  news 
for  a  mother,  that  she  must  lose  her  son  ;  but  worse  yet,  that 
she  may  not  see  him.    In  these  cases  of  our  final  departures,  our 

fjresence  gives  some  mitigation  to  our  grief.  Might  she  but 
iave  closed  the  eyes,  and  have  received  the  last  breath  of  her  dy- 
ing son,  the  loss  had  been  more  tolerable.  I  know  not  how  our 
personal  farewell  eases  our  heart,  even  while  it  increases  our 
passion.  But  now,  she  shall  no  more  see,  nor  be  seen  of  her 
Abijah  :  she  shall  no  sooner  be  in  the  city,  than  he  shall  be  out 
of  the  world.  Yet,  more  to  perfect  her  sorrow,  she  hears,  that  in 
him  alone  there  is  found  some  good  ;  the  rest  of  her  issue  are  grace- 
less :  she  must  lose  the  good,  and  hold  the  graceless  :  he  shall 
die.  to  afflict  her;  they  shall  live  to  afflict  her. 

Yet,  what  a  mixture  is  here  of  severity  and  favour,  in  one  act  ; 
favour  to  the  son,  severity  to  the  Father  :  severity  to  the  father, 
that  he  must  lose  such  a  son  ;  favour  to  the  son,  that  he  shall  be 
taken  from  such  a  father  !  Jeroboam  is  wicked,  therefore  lie  shall 
not  enjoy  an  Abijah  ;  Abijah  hath  some  good  things,  therefore 
he  shall  be  removed  fiom  the  danger  of  the  depravation  of  Je- 


470 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


roboam.  Sometimes  God  strikes  in  favour,  but  more  often  for- 
bears out  of  severity.  The  best  are  fittest  for  heaven  ;  the  earth 
is  fittest  for  the  worst :  this  is  the  region  of  sin  and  miser v  ;  that, 
of  immortality.  It  is  no  argument  of  disfavour,  to  be  taken  early 
from  a  well-led  life  ;  as  not  of  approbation,  to  age  in  sin. 

As  the  soul  of  Ahijah  is  favoured  in  the  removal,  so  is  his  body 
with  a  burial.  He  shall  have  alone,  both  tears  and  tomb  :  all  the 
rest  of  his  brethren  shall  have  no  grave,  but  dogs  and  fowls  ;  no 
sorrow,  but  for  their  life.  Though  the  carcase  be  insensible  of  an)' 
position,  yet  honest  sepulture  is  a  blessing.  It  is  fit  the  body  should 
be  duly  respected  on  earth,  whose  soul  is  glorious  in  heaven. 

1  Kings  xiv. 


ASA. 

The  two  houses  of  Judah  and  Israel  grow  up  now  together,  in  an 
ambitious  rivalry.  This  splittcd  plant  branches  out  so  severally, 
as  if  it  had  forgotten,  that  ever  it  was  joined  in  the  root. 

The  throne  of  David  oft  changeth  the  possessors ;  and  more 
complaineth  of  their  iniquity,  than  their  remove. 

Abijam  inherits  the  sins  of  his  father  Rehoboam,  no  less  than  hib 
crown  ;  and  so  spends  his  three  years,  as  if  he  had  been  no  whit  a 
kin  to  his  grandfather's  virtues.  It  is  no  news,  that  grace  is  not 
traduced,  while  vice  is.  Therefore  is  his  reign  short,  because  it  was* 
wicked. 

It  was  a  sad  case,  when  both  the  kings  of  Judah  and  Israel, 
though  enemies,  yet  conspired  in  sin.  Rehoboam,  like  his  father 
Solomon,  began  graciously,  but  fell  to  idolatry.  As  he  followed 
his  father,  so  his  son,  so  his  people  followed  him.  Oh,  what  a 
face  of  a  Church  was  here,  when  Israel  worshipped  Jeroboam's 
calves  ;  when  Judah  built  them  high  places,  and  images,  and  groves 
on  every  high  hill,  and  under  every  green  tree  !  On  both  hands, 
GOD  is  forsaken,  his  temple  neglected,  his  worship  adulterate ;  and 
this,  not  for  some  short  brunt,  but  during  the  succession  of  two  kings: 
for,  after  the  first  three  years,  Rehoboam  changed  his  father's  reli- 
gion (as  his  shields)  from  gold  to  brass  ;  the  rest  of  his  seventeen 
years  were  led  in  impiety.  His  son  Abijam  trod  in  the  same  miry 
steps,  and  Judah  with  them  both.  If  there  were  any  (doubtless 
there  were  some)  faithful  hearts,  yet  remaining  in  both  kingdoms, 
during  these  heavy  times,  what  a  corrosive  it  must  needs  have  been 
to  them,  to  see  so  deplored  and  miserable  a  deprivation  ! 

There  was  no  visible  Church  upon  earth,  but  here ;  and  this, 
what  a  one  !  O  God,  how  low  dost  thou  sometimes  suffer  thine 
own  flock  to  be  driven  !  What  woeful  wanes  and  eclipses,  hast  thou 
ordained  for  this  heavenly  bodv  !  Yet  at  last,  an  Asa  shall  arise 
from  the  loins,  from  the  grave,  of  Abijam.  He*shall  revive  David, 
and  reform  Judah.  The  gloomy  times  of  corruption  shall  not  last 
always.  The  light  of  truth  and  peace  shall  at  length  break  out, 
and  bless  the  sad  hearts  of  the  righteous. 

It  is  a  wonder  how  Asa  should  be  good,  of  the  seed  of  Abijam, 
of  the  soil  of  Maachah  ;  both  wicked,  both  idolatrous.  God  would 


ASA.  471 

have  us  see,  that  grace  is  from  heaven  ;  neither  needs  the  help  of 
these  earthly,  conveyances.  Should  not  the  children  of  good  pa- 
rents sometimes  be  evil,  and  the  children  of  evil  parents  good, 
virtue  would  seem  natural,  and  the  giver  would  lose  his  thanks. 
Thus  we  have  seen  a  fair  flower  spring  out  of  dung,  and  a  well- 
fruited  tree  rise  out  of  a  sour  stock.  Education  hath  no  less  power 
to  corrupt,  than  nature  :  it  is  therefore  the  just  praise  of  Asa, 
that,  being  trained  up  under  an  idolatrous  Maachah,  he  maintained 
his  piety  ;  as  contrarily,  it  is  a  shame  for  those,  that  have  been  bred 
up  in  the  precepts  and  examples  of  virtue  and  godliness,  to  fall  off 
to  lewdness  or  superstition. 

There  are  four  principal  monuments  of  Asa's  virtue,  as  so  many 
rich  stones  in  his  diadem. 

He  took  away  sodomy  and  idols  out  of  Judah.  Who  cannot 
wonder  more,  that  he  found  them  there,  than  that  he  removed 
them  ?  What  a  strange  incongruity  is  this;  Sodom,  in  Jerusalem  ! 
Idols,  in  Judah  !  Surely,  debauched  profession  proves  desperate. 
Admit  the  idols;  ye  cannot  doubt  of  the  sodomy.  If  they  have 
changed  the  glory  of  the  incorruptible  God,  into  an  image,  made 
like  to  corruptible  man,  and  to  birds,  and  Jour-footed  beasts,  and 
creeping  things,  it  is  no  marvel,  if  God  give  them  up  to  unclean- 
ness,  through  the  lusts  of  their  own  hearts,  to  dishonour  their  own 
bodies,  between  themselves.  If  they  changed  the  truth  of  God  into 
a  lie,  and  worshipped  and  served  the  creature  more  than  the  Cre- 
ator, who  is  blessed  for  ever,  no  marvel,  if  God  give  them  up  to  vile 
affections,  to  change  the  natural  use,  into  that  which  is  against  na- 
ture; burning  in  lust  one  towards  another,  men  with  men  working 
that  which  is  unseemly,  Contrarily,  admit  the  sodomy,  ye  cannot 
doubt  of  the  idols.  Unnatural  beastliness  in  manners  is  punished 
justly,  with  a  sottish  dotage  in  religion  ;  bodily  pollution,  with 
spiritual.  How  should  the  soul  care  to  be  chaste,  that  keeps  a  stew 
in  the  body  !  Asa  begins  with  the  banishment  of  both  ;  scouring 
Judah  of  this  double  unclcanncss.  In  vain  should  he  have  hoped 
to  restore  God  to  his  kingdom,  while  these  abominations  inhabited 
it.  It  is  justly  the  main  care  of  worthy  and  religious  princes,  to 
clear  their  coasts  of  the  foulest  sins.  Oh  the  impartial  zeal  of  Asa! 
There  were  idols,  that  challenged  a  prerogative  of  favour;  the 
idols  that  his  father  had  made  :  all  these  he  defaces.  The  name 
of  a  father  cannot  protect  an  idol.  The  duty  to  his  parent  cannot 
win  him  to  a  liking,  to  a  forbearance  of  his  misdevotion.  Yea,  so 
much  the  more  doth  the  heart  of  Asa  rise  against  these  puppets, 
for  that  they  were  the  sin,  the  shame,  of  his  father.  Did  there  want, 
think  we,  some  courtier  of  his  father's  retinue,  to  say,  "  Sir,  fa- 
vour the  memory  of  him  that  begot  you  ;  you  cannot  demolish 
these  statues,  without  the  dishonour  of  the  erector:  hide  your  dis- 
like at  the  least  :  it  will  be  your  glory  to  lay  your  finger  upon  this 
blot  of  your  father's  reputation  :  if  .you  list  not  to  allow  his  act, 
yet  wink  at  it?"  The  godly  zeal  of  Asa  turns  the  deaf  ear  to  these 
monitors  ;  and  lets  them  see,  that  he  doth  not  more  honour  a  fa- 
ther, than  hate  an  idol.    No  dearness  of  person  should  take  off  the 


472 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


edge  of  our  detestation  of  the  sin.  Nature  is  worthy  of  forgetful- 
ness  and  contempt,  in  opposition  to  the  God  of  nature. 

Upon  the  same  ground  as  he  removed  the  idols  of,  his  father 
Abijam,  so  for  idols  he  removed  his  grandmother  Maachah  :  she 
would  not  be  removed  from  her  obscene  idols  ;  she  is  therefore  re- 
moved from  the  station  of  her  honour,  j.  hat  princess  had  aged, 
both  in  her  regency  and  superstition.  Under  her  rod,  was  Asa 
brought  up  ;  and  schooled,  in  the  rudiments  of  her  idolatry.  Whom 
she  could  not  infect,  she  hoped  to  overawe  ;  so  as,  if  Asa  will  not 
follow  her  gods,  yet  she  presumes  that  she  may  retain  her  own. 
Doubtless,  no  means  were  neglected  for  her  reclamation  ;  none 
would  prevail.  Religious  Asa  gathers  up  himself ;  and  begins  to 
remember,  that  he  is  a  king,  though  a  son  ;  that  she,  though  a  mo- 
ther, yet  is  a  subject ;  that  her  eminence  could  not  but  counte- 
nance idolatry ;  that  her  greatness  suppressed  religion,  which  he 
should  in  vain  hope  to  reform,  while  her  superstition  swayed  :  for- 
getting therefore  the  challenges  of  nature,  the  awe  of  infancy,  the 
Custom  of  reverence,  he  strips  her  of  that  command,  which  he  saw 
prejudicial  to  his  M^ker.  All  respects  of  flesh  and  blood  must  be 
trampled  on,  for  God.  Could  that  long-settled  idolatry  want  abet- 
tors ?  Questionless,  some  or  other  would  say,  "  This  was  the  reli- 
-  gion  of  your  father  Abijam  ;  this,  of  your  grandfather  Rehoboam; 
this,  of  the  latter  days  of  your  wise  and  great-grandfather  Solo- 
mon; this,  of  your  grandmother  Maachah;  this,  of  your  great- 
grandmother  Naaman  ;  why  should  it  not  be  yours?  Why  should 
you  suspect  either  the  wisdom,  or  piety,  or  salvation  of  so  many 
predecessors  ?"  Good  Asa  had  learned  to  contemn  prescription 
against  a  direct  law.  He  had  the  grace  to  know,  it  was  no  measur- 
ing truth  by  so  modern  antiquity.  His  eyes,  scorning  to  look 
so  low,  raise  up  themselves  to  the  uncorrupt  times  of  Solomon, 
to  David,  to  Samuel,  to  the  Judges,  to  Joshua,  to  Moses,  to  the 
Patriarchs,  to  Noah,  to  the  religious  founders  of  the  first  world, 
to  the  first  father  of  mankind,  to  Paradise,  to  Heaven.  In  com- 
parison of  these,  Maachah's  god  cannot  overlook  yesterday.  The 
ancientest  error  is  but  a  novice  to  truth;  and,  if  never  any  ex- 
ample could  be  pleaded  for  punty  of  religion,  it  is  enough  that 
the  precept  is  cxpi'ess.  He  knew  what  God  said  in  Sinai,  and 
wrote  in  the  tables ;  Thou  shall  not  make  to  thyself  any  graven 
image,  nor  any  similitude.  Thou  shalt  not  bow  dnxvn  to  them,  nor 
worship  them.  If  ail  the  world  had  been  an  idolater,  ever  since 
that  word  was  given,  he  knew  how  little  that  precedent  could 
avail  for  disobedience.  Practice,  must  be  corrected  by  law,  and 
not  the  law  yield  to  practice.  Maachah  therefore  goes  down  from 
her  seat;  her  idols  from  their  grove  :  she  to  retircdness ;  they  to 
the  fire,  and  from  thence  to  the  water.  Woeful  deities  1  that  could 
both  burn  and  drown. 

Neither  did  the  zeal  of  Asa  more  magnify  itself,  in  these  privative 
acts  of  weeding  out  the  corruptions  of  religion,  than  in  the  posi- 
tive acts  of  a  holy  plantation.  In  the  falling  of  thc.-c  idolatrous 
shrines,  the  temple  of  God  flourishes.  That  doth  he  furnish,  with 


ASA. 


473 


those  sacred  treasures,  which  were  dedicated  by  himself,  by  his 
progenitors.  Like  the  true  son  of  David,  he  would  not  serve  God 
cost-free.  Jtehoboam  turned  Solomon's  gold  into  brass  ;  Asa  turns 
Rehoboam's  brass  into  gold.  Some  of  these  vessels,  it  seems, 
Abijam,  Asa's  father,  had  dedicated  to  God  ;  but,  after  his  vow, 
inquired,  yea,  withheld  them  :  Asa,  like  a  good  son,  pays  his  fa- 
ther's debts,  and  his  own.  It  is  a  good  sign  of  a  well-meant  devo- 
tion, when  we  can  abide  it  chargeable;  as  contrarily,  in  the  af- 
fairs of  God,  a  niggardly  hand  argues  a  cold  and  hollow  heart. 

All  these  were  noble  and  excellent  acts  ;  the  extirpation  of  so- 
domy ;  the  demolition  of  idols  ;  the  removal  of  Maachah  ;  the 
bounteous  contribution  to  the  Temple :  but  that,  which  gives  true 
life  unto  all  these,  is  a  sound  root ;  Asa's  heart  was  perfect  -with 
the  Lord,  all  his  days.  No  less  laudable  works  than  these  have 
proceeded  from  hypocrisy  ;  which,  while  they  have  carried  away 
applause  from  men,  have  lost  their  thanks  with  God.  All  Asa's 
gold  was  but  dross,  to  his  pure  intentions. 

But  oh,  what  great  and  many  infirmities  may  consist  with  up- 
rightness !  What  allays  of  imperfection  will  there  be  found,  in  the 
most  refined  soul !  Four  no  small  faults  are  found  in  true-hearted 
Asa. 

First,  the  high  places  stood  still,  unremoved.  What  high  places? 
There  were  some  dedicated  to  the  worship  of  false  gods  ;  these, 
Asa  took  away  :  there  were  some  misdevoted  to  the  worship  of  the 
true  God  ;  these,  he  lets  stand.  There  was  gross  idolatry  in  the 
former ;  there  was  a  weak  will- worship  in  the  latter.  While  he 
opposes  impiety,  he  winks  at  mistakings.  Yet  even  the  variety 
of  altars  was  forbidden,  by  an  express  charge  from  God,  who  had 
confined  his  service  to  the  Temple.  With  one  breath,  doth  God 
report  both  these  ;  The  high  places  were  not  removed  ;  yet,  never- 
theless, Asa's  heart  was  perfect.  God  will  not  sec  weaknesses, 
where  he  sees  truth.  How  pleasing  a  thing  is  sincerity,  that,  in 
favour  thereof,  the  mercy  of  our  just  God  digests  many  an  error! 
O  God,  let  our  hearts  go  upright,  thoug;h  our  feet  slide:  the 
fall  cannot,  through  thy  grace,  be  deadly,  however  it  may  shame 
or  pain  us. 

Besides,  to  confront  his  rival  of  Israel,  Baasha,  this  religious 
king  of  Judah  fetches  in  Benhadad,  the  king  of  Syria,  into  God's 
inheritance,  upon  too  dear  a  rate ;  the  breach  of  his  league,  the 
expilation  of  the  temple.  All  the  wealth  wherewith  A.sa  had  en- 
dowed the  house  of  the  Lord,  was  little  enough  to  hire  an  luloin- 
ite,  to  betray  his  fidelity  and  to  invade  Israel.  Leagues  may  be 
made  with  infidels  ;  not  at  such  a  price,  upon  such  terms.  There 
can  be  no  warrant,  for  a  wilful  subornation  ofperfidiousncss.  In  these 
cases  of  outward  tilings,  the  mercy  of  God  dispenseth  with  our 
true  necessities,  not  with  the  affcct/exl.  O  Asa,  where  w;»s  thy  piety, 
white  thou  r^hbest  God,  to  corrupt  an  infidel  for  the  slaughter  of 
Israelites  ?  O  princes,  where  is  your  piety,  while  you  hire  Turks 
to  the  slaughter  of  Christians  ?  to  the  spoil  of  God's  Church  ? 

Yet,  which  was  worse,  Asa  doth  not  only  employ  the  Syrian,  but 


474  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

relies  on  him ;  relies  not  on  God.  A  confidence  less  sinful  cost 
his  grandfather  David  dear.  And  when  Hanani,  God's  seer,  the 
herald  of  heaven,  came  to  denounce  war  against  him  for  these 
sins,  Asa,  instead  of  penitence,  breaks  into  choler :  fury  sparkles 
in  those  eyes,  which  should  have  gushed  out  with  water  :  those 
lips,  that  should  have  called  for  mercy,  command  revenge.  How 
ill  do  these  two  agree,  the  heart  of  David,  the  tongue  of  Jero- 
boam !  That  h©ly  grandfather  of  his  would  not  have  done  so  : 
when  God's  messenger  reproved  him  for  sin,  he  condemned  it,  and 
himself  for  it :  I  see  his  tears  ;  I  do  not  hear  his  threats.  Jt  ill  be- 
comes a  faithful  heart  to  rage,  where  it  should  sorrow  ;  and,  in- 
stead of  submission,  to  persecute.  Sometimes,  no  difference  ap- 
pears, betwixt  a  son  of  David  and  the  son  of  Nebat.  Any  man 
may  do  ill,  but  to  defend  it,  to  outface  it,  is  for  rebels;  yet  even 
upright  Asa  imprisons  the  prophet,  and  crushes  his  gainsayers.  It 
were  pity,  that  the  best  man  should  be  judged  by  every  of  his  ac- 
tions, and  not  by  all.  The  course  of  our  life  must  either  allow  or 
condemn  us  ;  not  these  sudden  eruptions. 

As  the  life,  so  the  death-bed  of  Asa  wanted  not  infirmities.  Long 
and  prosperous  had  his  reign  been  :  now,  after  forty  years'  health 
and  happiness,  he,  that  imprisoned  the  prophet,  is  imprisoned  in 
his  bed.  There  is  more  pain  in  those  fetters  which  God  put  upon 
Asa,  than  those  which  Asa  puts  upon  Hanani.  And  now,  behold, 
he,  that  in  his  war  seeks  to  Benhadad,  not  to  God,  in  his  sickness 
seeks  not  to  God,  but  to  physicians.  We  cannot  easily  put  upon 
God  a  greater  wrong,  than  the  alienation  of  our  trust.  Earthly 
means  are  for  use,  not  for  confidence.  We  may,  we  must  employ 
them  ;  we  may  not  rely  upon  them.  Well  may  God  challenge  our 
trust,  as  his  peculiar  ;  which,  if  we  cast  upon  any  creature,  we  de- 
ify it.  Whence  have  herbs,  and  drugs,  and  physicians  their  being 
and  efficacy,  but  from  that  divine  hand  ?  No  marvel,  then,  if 
Asa's  gout  struck  to  his  heart,  and  his  feet  carried  him  to  his  grave  ; 
since  his  heart  was  miscarried  for  the  cure  of  his  feet,  to  an  inju- 
rious misconfidence  in  the  means,  with  neglect  of  his  Maker. 

1  Kings  xv.  2  Chron.  xiv,  xvA  xvi. 

ELIJAH  WITH  THE  SAREPTAN. 
Who  should  be  matched  with  Moses  in  the  hill  of  Tabor,  but  Eli- 
jah ?    Surely  next  after  Moses,  there  was  never  any  prophet  of 
the  Old  Testament  more  glorious  than  he. 

None  more  glorious  ;  none  more  obscure.  The  other  prophets 
are  not  mentioned  without  the  name  of  their  parent,  for  the  mu- 
tual honour  both  of  the  father  and  the  son;  Elijah,  as  if  he  hud 
been  a  son  of  the  earth,  conies  forth  with  the  bare  mention  of 
the  place  of  bis  birth.  Meanness  of  descent  is  no  block  in  God's 
way,  to  the  most  honourable  vocations.  It  mutters  not  whose  son 
lie  be,  whom  God  will  grace  with  his  service.  In  the  greatest  ho- 
nours that  human  nature  is  capable  of,  God  forgets  our  parents: 
as,  when  we  shall  be  raised  up  to  a  glorious  life,  there  shall  be  no 


ELIJAH  WITH  THE  SAHEPTAN.  475 

respect  had  to  the  loins  whence  we  came,  so  it  is  proportionally  in 
these  spiritual  advancements. 

These  times  were  fit  for  an  Elijah :  an  Elijah  was  fit  for  them. 
The  eminentest  prophet  is  reserved  for  the  corruptest  age.  Israel 
had  never  such  a  king  as  Ahah,  for  impiety  ;  never  so  miraculous 
a  'prophet  as  Elijah :  this  Elijah  is  addressed  to  this  Ahah.  The 
God  of  Spirits  knows  how  to  proportion  men  to  the  occasions ;  and 
to  raise  up  to  himself  such  witnesses,  as  may  be  most  able  to  enn- 
vi'ice  the  world  :  a  mild  Moses  was  for  the  low  estate  of  afflicted 
Israel;  mild  of  spirit,  but  mighty  in  wonders;  mild  of  spirit,  be- 
cause he  had  to  do  with  a  persecuted,  and  yet  a  techy  and  perverse 
people  ;  mighty  in  wonders,  because  he  had  to  do  with  a  Pharaoh  : 
a  grave  and  ioly  Samuel  was  for  the  quiet  consistence  of  Israel :  a 
fiery  spirited  Elijah  was  for  the  desperatest  declination  of  Israel  : 
anil  if,  in  the  late  times  of  the  depraved  condition  of  his  Church, 
God  have  raised  up  some  spirits,  that  have  been  more  warm  and 
stirring  than  those  of  common  mould,  we  cannot  censure  the  choice, 
when  we  see  the  service. 

The  first  word,  that  we  hear  from  Elijah,  is  an  oath,  and  a  threat 
to  Aliab,  to  Israel ;  As  the  Lord  God  of  Israel  liveth,  before  -whom 
I  stand,  there  shall  not  be  dew  nor  rain  these  years,  but  according 
to  my  word.  He  comes  in  like  a  tempest,  who  went  out  in  a  whirl- 
wind. Doubtless,  he  had  spoken  fair  and  peaceable  invitations  to 
Israel,  though  we  hear  them  not :  this  was  but  the  storm,  which 
followed  his  repulse,  their  obstinacy.  After  many  solicitations  and 
warnings,  Israel  is  stricken  by  the  same  tongue  that  had  prayed 
for  it. 

Elijah  dares  avouch  these  judgments  to  their  head,  to  Ahab.  I  do 
not  so  much  wonder  at  the  boldness  of  Elijah,  as  at  his  power  j 
yea,  who  sees  his  power,  can  no  whit  wonder  at  his  boldness.  How 
could  he  be  but  bold  to  the  face  of  a  man,  who  was  thus  powerf  u 
with  God  ! 

As  if  God  had  lent  him  the  keys  of  heaven,  to  shut  it  up  and 
open  it  at  pleasure,  he  can  say,  There  shall  be  ?ieither  dew  nor  rain 
these  years,  but  according  to  my  word.  O  God,  how  far  it  hath 
pleased  thee  to  communicate  thyself  to  a  weak  man  !  What  angel 
could  ever  say  thus  ?  Thy  hand,  O  Eord,  is  not  shortened.  Why 
art  thou  not  thus  marvellous,  in  the  ministers  of  thy  Gospel  r  Is  it, 
for  that  their  miracles  were  ours  ?  Is  it,  for  that  thou  wouldes'  have 
us  live  by  faith,  not  by  sense  ?  Is  it,  for  that  our  task  is  spiritual, 
and  therefore  more  abstracted  from  bodily  helps  ?  We  cannot  com- 
mand the  sun  wijdi  Joshua,  nor  the  thunder  with  Samuel,  nor  the 
rain  with  Elijah  :  it  shall  content  us,  if  we  can  fix  the  Sun  of  Righ- 
teousness in  the  soul ;  if  we  can  thunder  out  the  judgments  of  God 
against  sin ;  if  we  can  water  the  earthen  hearts  of  men,  with  the 
former  and  latter  rain  of  heavenly  doctrine. 

Elijah's  mantle  cannot  make  him  forget  his  flesh.  While  he 
knows  himself  a  prophet,  he  remembers  to  be  a  man  ;  he  doth  not 
therefore  arrogate  his  power  as  his  own,  but  publisheth  it  as  his 
Master's.    This  restraint  must  be  according  to  his  word;  and  that 


476  CONTEMPLATION'S. 

word  was  from  a  higher  mouth  than  his.  He  spake  from  him,  by 
whom  he  sware,  whose  word  was  sure  as  his  life  ;  and  therefore 
he  durst  say,  As  the  Lord Hveth,  there  shall  be  no  rain.  Man  only 
can  denounce,  what  God  will  execute  ;  which,  when  it  is  once  re- 
vealed, can  no  more  fail,  than  the  Almighty  himself. 

He,  that  had  tliis  interest  and  power  in  heaven,  what  needed  he 
flee  from  an  earthly  pursuit  ?  Could  his  prayers  restrain  the  clouds, 
and  not  hold  the  hands  of  flesh  and  blood  ?  Yet  behold,  Elijah 
must  flee  from  Ahab,  and  hide  him  by  the  brook  Cherith.  The 
wisdom  of  God  doth  not  think  fit,  so  to  make  a  beaten  path,  of 
miracles,  as  that  he  will  not  walk  beside  it.  He  will  have  our  own 
endeavours  concur  to  oar  preservation.  Elijah  wanted  neither 
courage  of  heart  nor  strength  of  hand,  and  yet  he  must  trust  to 
his  feet  for  safety.  How  much  more  lawful  is  it  for  our  impotence, 
to  flee  from  persecution  !  Even  that  God  sends  him  to  hide  his 
head,  who  could  as  easily  have  protected  as  nourished  him.  He, 
that  wilfully  stands  still  to  catch  dangers,  tempteth  God,  instead 
of  trusting  him. 

The  prophet  must  be  gone  ;  not  without  order  taken  for  his  pur- 
veys nee.  Oh  the  strange  caterers  for  Elijah  ;  J  have  commanded 
the  ravens  to  feed  thee  there.  I  know  not  whether  had  been  more 
miraculous,  to  preserve  him  without  meat,  or  to  provide  meat  by 
such  mouths.  The  raven,  a  devouring  and  ravenous  fowl,  that 
uses  to  snatch  away  meat  from  others,  brings  it  to  him.  He,  that 
could  have  fed  Elijah  by  angels,  will  feed  him  by  ravens.  There 
was  then  in  Israel  a  hospitable  Obadiah,  that  kept  a  secret  table  in 
two  several  caves,  for  a  hundred  prophets  of  God.  There  were 
seven  thousand  faithful  Israelites,  in  spite  of  the  devil,  who  had 
never  bowed  knee  to  Baal.  Doubtless,  any  of  these  would  have 
had  a  rencher  ready  for  Elijah  :  and  have  thought  himself  happy, 
tn  have  defrauded  his  own  maw,  for  so  noble  a  prophet.  God  ra- 
ther chooses,  to  make  use  of  the  mo^t  unlikely  fowls  of  the  air,  than 
their  bounty  ;  that  he  might  give,  both  to  his  prophet  and  us,  a 
pregnant  proof  of  his  absolute  command  over  all  his  creatures,  and 
win  our  trust  in  all  extremities.  Who  can  make  question  of  the 
provisions  of  God,  when  he  sees  the  very  ravens  shall  forget  their 
own  hunger,  and  purvey  for  Elijah  ?  O  God,  thou,  that  providest 
meat  for  the  fowls  of  the  air,  wilt  make  the  fowls  of  the  air  provide 
meat  for  man,  rather  than  this  dependance  on  thee  shall  be  disap- 
pointed. Oh  let  not  our  faith  be  wanting  to  thee  ;  thy  care  can 
never  be  wanting  to  us. 

Elijah  might  have  lived  for  the  time,  with  bread  and  water  ;  nei- 
ther had  his  fare  been  worse,  than  Ins  fellows  in  the  caves  of  Oba- 
diah :  but  the  munificence  of  God  will  have  his  meals  better  fur- 
nished:  the  ravens  shall  bring  him  both  bread  and  flesh,  twice  in 
the  day. 

It  is  not  for  a  persecuted  prophet,  to  long  after  delicacies.  God 
gives  order  for  competency  ;  not  for  wantonness.  Not  out  of  the 
eainty  compositions  in  Jezebel's  kitchen,  not  out  of  the  pleasant 
wines  in  her  cellar,  would  God  provide  for  Elijah ;  but  the  ravens 


ELIJAH  WITH  THE  SAREPTAN.  477 

shall  bring  him  plain  and  homely  victuals,  and  the  river  shall  afford 
him  drink.  If  we  have  wherewith  to  sustain  nature,  though  not 
to  pamper  it,  we  owe  thanks  to  the  giver.  Those  of  God's  family 
may  not  be  curious  ;  not  disdainful.  Ill  doth  it  become  a  servant 
of  the  highest,  to  be  a  slave  to  his  palate.  Doubtless,  one  bit  from 
the  mouth  of  the  raven  was  more  pleasing  to  Elijah,  than  a  whole 
table-full  of  Ahab.  Nothing  is  more  comfortable  to  God's  chil- 
dren, than  to  see  the  sensible  demonstrations  of  the  divine  care  and 
providence. 

The  brook  Cherith  cannot  last  always.  That  stream  shall  not, 
for  Elijah's  sake,  be  exempted  from  the  universal  exsiccation  ;  yea 
the  prophet  himself  feels  the  smart  of  this  drought,  which  he  had 
denounced.  It  is  no  unusual  thing  with  God,  to  suffer  his  own 
dear  children  to  be  inwrapped  in  the  common  calamities  of  of- 
fenders. He  makes  difference,  in  the  use  and  issue  of  their  stripes; 
not  in  the  infliction.  The  corn  is  cut  down  with  the  weeds,  but  to  a 
better  purpose. 

When  the  brook  fails,  God  hath  a  Zarephathfor  Kiijah  :  instead 
of  the  ravens,  a  widow  shall  there  feed  him  ;  yea,  herself  by  him. 
Who  can  enough  wonder,  at  the  pitch  of  this  selective  providence 
of  the  Almighty  !  Zarephath  was  a  town  of  Sidon,  and  therefore 
without  the  pale  of  the  Church.  Poverty  was  the  best  of  this  wi- 
dow :  she  was  a  pagan,  by  birth  ;  heathenishly  superstitious,  by 
institution.  Many  widows  were  in  Israel,  in  the  days  of  Elijah, 
•when  the  heaven  was  shut  up  three  years  and  six  months,  when 
great  famine  was  throughout  all  the  land,  but  unto  none  of  them 
was  Elias  sent,  save  unto  this  Sarepia,  a  city  of  Sidon,  unto  a  wo- 
man that  was  a  widow.  He,  that  first  fed  the  prophet  by  the 
mouth  of  unclean  fowls,  will  now  feed  him  by  the  hand  of  a  hea- 
thenish hostess.  Hisonly  command  sanctifiesthose  creatures,  which 
by  a  general  charge,  were  legally  impure. 

There  were  other  birds,  besides  ravens  ;  other  widows,  besides 
this  Sareptan :  none  but  the  ravens,  none  but  the  Sareptan,  shal 
nourish  Elijah.  God's  choice. is  not  led  in  the  string  of  humai 
reasons.  His  holy  will  is  the  guide,  and  the  ground,  of  all  as 
elections.  It  is  not  in  him  that  wills,  nor  in  him  that  runs,  but  n 
God  that  shews  mercy. 

The  prophet  follows  the  call  of  his  God.  The  same  hand,  tlat 
brought  him  to  the  gate  of  Sarepta,  led  also  this  poor  widow  ait 
of  her  doors.  She  shall  then  go  to  seek  her  sticks,  when  she  slali 
be  found  of  Elijah.  She  thought  of  her  hearth  ;  she  thought  lot 
of  a  prophet :  when  the  man  of  God  calls  to  her,  Eetch  me  a  title, 
water,  I  pray  thee,  in  a  vessel,  that  I  may  drink.  It  was  -  no  eisy 
suit,  in  so  droughty  a  season  ;  and  yet,  at  the  first  sight,  the  p'o- 
phet  dares  second  it  with  a  greater ;  Bring  me  a  morsel  of  br.ad 
in  thine  hand.  That  long  drought  had  made  every  drop,  every  » 
crumb  precious  ;  yet  the  prophet  is  emboldened,  by  the  charge  of 
God,  to  call  for  both  water  and  bread.  He  had  found  the  raveis  so 
officious,  that  he  cannot  make  doubt  of  the  Sareptan.  She  sicks 
not  at  the  water ;  she  would  not  stick  at  the  bread,  if  necessity 


478 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


had  not  pressed  her;  As  the  Lord  thy  God  fiveik,  I  have  7iot  a  cake, 
but  a  handful  of  meal  in  a  barrel,  and  a  little  oil  in  a  cruse ;  and 
behold,  I  am  gathering  txco  sticks,  that  I  may  go  in  and  dress  it, 
for  me  and  my  son,  that  xcr  may  eat  it  and  die. 

If  she  knew  not  the  man,  how  did  she  know  his  God  ?  And  if 
she  knew  not  the  God  of  Elijah,  how  did  she  swear  by  him  ?  Cer- 
tainly, though  she  were  without  the  bounds  of  Israel,  yet  she  was 
within  the  borders.  So  much  she  had  gained  by  her  neighbourhood, 
to  know  an  Israelite,  a  prophet  by  his  habit ;  to  know  the  only  liv- 
ing God  was  the  God  of  the  prophet,  the  God  of  Israel :  and  if 
this  had  not  been,  yet  it  is  no  marvel,  if  the  widow  knew  Elijah, 
since  the  ravens  knew  him. 

It  was  high  time,  for  the  prophet  to  visit  the  Sareptan.  Poor 
soul  !  she  was  now  making  her  last  meal :  after  one  mean  morsel, 
she  was  yielding  herself  over  to  death.  How  opportunely  hath 
God  provided  succours  to  our  distresses  !  It  is  his  glory,  to  help 
at  a  pinch  ;  to  begin,  where  we  have  given  over  :  that  our  relief 
might  be  so  much  the  more  welcome,  by  how  much  it  is  less  look- 
ed for. 

But  oh,  what  a  trial  is  this  of  the  faith  of  a  weak  proselyte,  if 
she  were  so  much  '.  Fear  not ;  go,  do  as  thou  hast  said,  but  wake 
me  thereof  a  little  cake  first,  and  bring  it  to  me,  and  after  make 
for  thee,  and  thy  son  :  for,  thus  saith  the.  God  of  Israel,  The  bar- 
rel of  meal  shall  not  waste,  nor  the  cruse  of  oil  fail,  till  the  day 
that  God  send  rain  upon  the  earth.  She  must  go  spend  upon  a 
stranger  part  of  that  little  she  hath,  in  hope  of  more,  which  she 
hath  not,  which  she  mav  have.  She  must  part  with  her  present 
food,  which  she  saw,  in  trust  of  future,  which  she  could  not  see. 
She  must  rob  her  sense,  in  the  exercise  of  her  belief ;  and  shorten 
her  life  in  being,  upon  the  hope  of  a  protraction  of  it  in  promise. 
She  must  believe  God  will  miraculously  increase,  what  she  hath 
yielded  to  consume.  She  must  first  feed  the  stranger,  with  her  last 
denials;  and  then  after,  herself  and  her  son. 

Some  sharp  dame  would  have  taken  up  the  prophet  ;  and  have 
lent  him  away,  with  an  angry  repulse  :  11  Bold  Israelite;  there  m 
10  reason  in  this  request.  Wert  thou  a  friend  or  a  brother,  with 
vhat  face  couldest  thou  require,  to  pull  my  last  bit  out  of  my 
nouth  ?  Had  I  superfluity  of  provision,  thou  mightest  hope  for 
tiis  eflect  of  my  charity  :  now,  that  I  have  but  one  morsel  for  my- 
.vlf  and  my  son,  this  is  an  injurious  importunity.  What  can  induce 
tlec:  to  think  thy  life,  an  unknown  traveller,  should  be  more  dear 
tc  me  than  my  son's,  than  my  own  ?  How  uncivil  is  this  motion, 
ttat  I  should  first  make  provision  for  thee,  in  this  dying  extremity ! 
Ithad  been  too  much,  to  have  begged  my  last  scraps.  Thou  tellest 
nv  the  meal  shall  not  waste,  nor  the  oil  fail ;  how  shall  I  believe 
th  e  ?  Let  me  see  that  done,  before  thou  eatest.  In  vain  should  I 
chillcnge  thee,  when  the  remainder  of  my  poor  store  is  consumed. 
If  hou  canst  so  easily  multiply  victuals,  how  is  it  that  thou  want- 
cst:  Do  that  beforehand,  which  thou  promisest  shall  be  afterwards 
perorated)  there  will  be  no  need  of  my  little." 


ELIJAH  WITH  THE  SAREPTAN. 


479 


But  this  good  Sareptan  was  wrought  hv  God,  not  to  mistrust  a 
prophet.  She  will  do  what  he  bids,  and  hope  for  what  he  pro- 
mises. She  will  live  by  faith,  rather  than  by  sense  ;  and  give  away 
the  present,  in  the  confidence  of  a  future  remuneration.  First,  she 
bakes  Elijah's  cake  ;  then,  her  own :  not  grudging,  to  see  her  last 
morsels  go  down  another's  throat,  while  herself  was  famishing. 
How  hard  precepts  doth  God  lay,  where  he  intends  bounty  !  Had 
not  God  meant  her  preservation,  he  had  suffered  her  to  eat  her 
last  cake  alone,  without  any  interpellation  :  now,  the  mercy  of  the 
Almighty  purposing,  as  well  this  miraculous  favour  to  her  as  to 
his  prophet,  requires  of  her  this  task,  which  flesh  and  blood  would 
have  thought  unreasonable.  So  we  are  wont,  to  put  hard  ques- 
tions to  those  scholars,  whom  we  would  promote  to  higher  forms. 
So  in  all  atcliicvemcnts,  the  difficulty  of  the  enterprise  makes  way  for 
the  glory  of  the  actor. 

Happy  was  it  for  this  widow,  that  she  did  not  shut  her  hand  to 
the  man  of  God  ;  that  she  was  no  niggard  of  her  last  handful.  Ne- 
ver corn  or  olive  did  so  increase  in  growing,  as  here  in  consuming. 
This  barrel,  tins  cruse  of  hers,  had  no  bottom  :  The  barrel  of  meal 
wasted  not ;  the  cruse  of  oil  failed  not.  Behold,  not  getting,  not 
saving,  is  the  way  to  abundance,  but  giving.  The  mercy  of  God 
crowns  our  beneficence,  with  the  blessing  of  store.  Who  can  fear 
want,  by  a  merciful  liberality  ;  when  he  sees  the  Sareptan  had  fa- 
mished, if  she  had  not  given,  and  by  giving  abounded  ?  With 
what  thankful  devotion  must  this  woman  every  day  needs  look 
upon  her  barrel  and  cruse,  wherein  she  saw  the  mercy  of  God  re- 
newed to  her  continually  !  Doubtless,  her  soul  was  no  less  fed  by 
faith,  than  her  body  with  this  supernatural  provision.  How  wel- 
come a  guest  must  Elijah  needs  be  to  this  widow,  that  gave  her  life 
and  her  son's  to  her,  for  his  board  !  yea,  that,  in  woeful  famine, 
gave  her  and  her  son  their  board,  for  his  house  room  ! 

The  dearth  thus  overcome,  the  mother  looks  hopefully  upon  her 
only  son  ;  promising  herself  much  joy,  in  his  life  and  prosperity  ; 
when  an  unexpected  sickness  surpriseth  him,  and  doth  that  which 
the  famine  but  threatened.  When  can  we  hold  ourselves  secure 
from  evils  ?  No  sooner  is  one  of  these  sergeants  compounded  with- 
al, than  we  are  arrested  by  another. 

How  ready  we  are  to  mistake  the  grounds  of  our  afflictions,  and 
to  cast  them  upon  false  causes  !  The  passionate  mother  cannot  find 
whither  to  impute  the  death  of  her  son,  but  to  the  presence  of  Eli- 
jah ;  to  whom  she  comes,  distracted  with  perplexity  ;  not  without 
un  unkind  challenge  of  him,  from  whom  she  had  received,  both 
that  life  she  had  lost  and  that  she  had  ;  What  have  I  to  do  with  thee, 
O  thou  man  of  God  ?  Art  thou  come  to  me,  to  call  my  sin  to  re- 
membrance; and  to  slay  my  son  ?  As  if  her  son  could  not  have 
died,  if  Elijah  had  not  been  her  guest ;  whereas  her  son  had  died, 
but  for  him.  Why  should  she  think,  that  the  prophet  had  saved 
him  from  the  famine,  to  kill  him  with  sickness  ?  As  if  God  had  not 
been  free  in  his  actions  ;  and  must  needs  strike  bv  the  same  hands, 
by  which  he  preserved.    She  had  the  grace  to  know,  that  her 


4S0 


CO^TEMPLATIOKS. 


affliction  was  for  her  sin ;  yet  was  so  unwise,  to  imagine  the  ar- 
rearages of  her  iniquities  had  not  been  called  for,  if  Elijah  had  not 
been  the  remembrancer.  He,  who  had  appeased  God  towards  her, 
is  suspected  to  have  incensed  him. 

This  wrongful  misconstruction  was  enough  to  move  any  pa- 
tience. Elijah  was  of  a  hot  spirit ;  yet  his  holiness  kept  him  from 
fury.  This  challenge  rather  increased  the  zeal  of  his  prayer,  than 
stirred  his  choler  to  the  offender.  He  takes  the  dead  child  out  of 
his  mother's  bosom,  and  lays  him  upon  his  own  bed,  and  cries  unto 
the  Lord  ;  O  Lord  my  God,  hast  thou  brought  evil  also  upon  the 
widow,  with  whom  I  sojourn,  by  slaying  her  son  ?  Instead  of  chid- 
ing the  Sareptan,  out  of  the  fervency  of  his  soul,  he  humbly  ex- 
postulates with  his  God.  His  only  remedy  is  in  his  prayer  :  that, 
which  shut  heaven  for  rain,  must  open  it  for  life. 

Every  word  enforceth  ;  first,  he  pleads  his  interest  in  God,  O 
Lord  my  God :  then,  the  quality  of  the  patient ;  a  widow,  and 
therefore,  both  most  distressed  with  the  loss,  and  most  peculiar  to 
the  charge  of  the  Almighty  :  then,  his  interest,  as  in  God,  so  in 
this  patient ;  With  whom  1  sojourn  ;  as  if  the  stroke  were  given  to 
himself,  through  her  sides  :  and  lastly,  the  quality  of  the  punish- 
ment, By  slaying  her  son,  the  only  comfort  of  her  life :  and  in  all 
these  implying  the  scandal,  that  must  needs  arise  from  this  event, 
wherever  it  should  be  noised,  to  the  name  of  his  God,  to  his  own; 
when  it  should  be  said  :  **  Lo  how  Elijah's  entertainment  is  re- 
warded :  surely  the  prophet  is  either  impotent  or  unthankful!" 

Neither  doth  his  tongue  move  thus  only.  Thrice  doth  he  stretch, 
himself  upon  the  dead  body  ;  as  if  he  could  wish,  to  infuse  of  his 
own  life  into  the  child  ;  and  so  often  calls  to  his  God,  for  the  re- 
stitution of  that  soul. 

What  can  Elijah  ask,  to  be  denied  r  The  Lord  heard  the  voice 
of  the  prophet ;  the  soul  of  the  child  came  into  him  again,  and  he 
revived.  What  miracle  is  impossible  to  faithful  prayers  ?  There 
cannot  be  moi-e  difference  betwixt  Elijah's  devotion  and  ours,  than 
betwixt  supernatural  and  ordinary  acts ;  if  he  therefore  obtained 
miraculous  favours  by  his  prayers,  do  we  doubt  of  those  which  are 
within  the  sphere  of  nature  and  use  ?  What  could  we  want,  if  we 
did  not  slack  to  ply  heaven  with.our  prayers  ? 

Certainly,  Elijah  had  not  been  premonished  of  this  sudden  sick- 
ness and  death  of  the  child.  He,  who  knew  the  remote  affairs  of 
the  world,  might  not  know  what  God  would  do  within  his  own 
roof.  The  greatest  prophet  must  content  himself,  with  so  much 
of  God's  council,  as  he  will  please  to  reveal ;  and  he  will  some- 
times reveal  the  great  secrets  and  conceal  the  less,  to  make  good, 
both  his  own  libertv  and  man's  humiliation. 

So  much  more  unexpected  as  the  stroke  was,  so  much  more  wel- 
come is  the  cure.  How  joyfully  doth  the  man  of  God  take  the  re- 
vived child  into  his  arms  and  present  him  to  his  mother  !  How  doth 
his  heart  leap  within  him,  at  this  proof  of  God's  favour  to  him ; 
mercy,  to  the  widow  ;  power,  to  the  child  ! 

What  life  and  joy  did  now  shew  itself,  in  the  face  of  that  amazed 


ELIJAH  WITH  THE  BAALITES. 


481 


mother,  when  she  saw  again  the  eyes  of  her  son  fixed  upon 
hers  ;  when  she  felt  his  flesh  warm,  his  motions  vital ! 

Now  she  can  say  to  Elijah,  By  this  I  know  that  thou  art  a  man 
of  God,  aticl  that  the  word  of  the  Lord  in  thy  mouth  is  truth.  Did 
she  not  till  now  know  this  ?  Had  she  not  said  before,  What  have  I 
to  do  with  thee,  O  thou  man  of  God  f  Were  not  her  cruse  and  her 
barrel  sufficient  proofs  of  his  divine  commission  r  Doubtless,  what 
her  meal  and  oil  had  assured  her  of,  the  death  of  her  son  made  her 
to  doubt  ;  and  now,  reviving,  did  reascertain.  Even  the  strongest 
faith  sometimes  staggereth,  and  needeth  new  acts  of  heavenly  sup- 
position. 

The  end  of  miracles  is  confirmation  of  truth.  It  seems  had  this 
widow's  son  continued  dead,  her  belief  had  been  buried  in  his 
grave:  notwithstanding  her  meal  and  her  oil,  her  soul  had  lan- 
guished. The  mercy  of  God  is  fain  to  provide  new  helps  for  our 
infirmities  ;  and  graciously  condescends  to  our  own  terms,  that  we 
may  work  out  our  faith  and  salvation.  1  Kings  xvii. 


ELIJAH  WITH  THE  BAALITES. 

Three  years  and  a  half,  did  Israel  lie  gasping  under  a  parching 
drought  and  miserable  famine. 

No  creature  was  so  odious  to  them,  as  Elijah  ;  to  whom  they  as- 
cribed all  their  misery.  Methinks,  I  hear  how  they  rail  on  and 
curse  the  prophet.  How  much  envy  must  the  servants  of  God  un- 
dergo for  their  master  !  Nothing  but  the  tongue  was  Elijah's  ;  the 
hand  was  God's.  The  prophet  did  but  say,  what  God  would  do  :  I 
do  not  see  them  fall  out  with  their  sins,  that  had  deserved  the  judge- 
ment ;  but  with  the  messenger,  that  denounced  it.  Baal  had  no 
fewer  servants,  than  if  there  had  been  both  rain  and  plenty. 

Elijah  safely  spends  this  storm,  under  the  lee  of  Sarcpta.  Some 
three  years  hath  he  lain  close  in  that  obscure  coiner  ;  and  lived 
upon  the  barrel  and  cruse,  which  he  had  multiplied  :  at  last,  God 
calls  him  forth  ;  Go  shew  thyself  to  Ahab ;  and  I  will  send  rain 
upon  the  earth. 

No  rain  must  fall,  till  Elijah  were  seen  of  Ahab.  He  carried 
away  the  clouds  with  him ;  he  must  bring  them  again.  The  king, 
the  people  of  Israel,  shall  be  witnesses,  that  God  will  make  good 
the  word,  the  oath  of  his  prophet.  Should  the  rain  have  fallen  in 
Elijah's  absence,  who  could  have  known  it  was  by  his  procurement  ? 
God  holds  the  credit  of  his  messengers  precious  ;  and  neglects  no- 
thing that  may  grace  them,  in  the  eyes  of  the  world.  Not  the  ne- 
cessity of  seven  thousand  religious  Israelites  could  crack  the  word 
of  one  Elijah.  There  is  nothing,  wherein  God  is  more  tender,  than 
in  approving  the  veracity  of  himself,  in  his  ministers. 

Lewd  Ahab  hath  a  holy  steward.  As  his  name  was,  so  was  he,  % 
servant  of  God,  while  his  master  was  a  slave  to  Baal.  He,  that  re- 
served seven  thousand  in  the  kingdom  of  Israel,  hath  reserved  an 

VOL.  I.  II 


432 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


Obadiah  in  the  court  of  Israel ;  and  by  him,  hath  reserved  them. 
Neither  is  it  likely,  there  had  been  so  many  free  hearts  in  the  coun- 
try, if  religion  had  not  been  secretly  backed  in  the  court.  It  is  a 
great  happiness,  when  God  gives  favour  and  honour  to  the  vir- 
tuous. 

Elijah  did  not  lie  more  close  in  Sarepta,  than  Obadiah  did  in  the 
court.  He  could  not  have  done  so  much  service  to  the  Church,  if 
he  had  not  been  as  secret  as  good.  Policy  and  religion  do  as  well 
together,  as  they  do  ill  asunder.  The  dove  without  the  serpent,  is 
easily  caught ;  the  serpent  without  the  dove,  stings  deadly.  Reli- 
gion without  policy,  is  too  simple  to  be  safe  ;  policy  without  reli- 
gion, is  too  subtile  to  be  good  :  their  match  makes  themselves  se- 
cure, and  many  happy. 

Oh  degenerated  estate  of  Israel !  Any  thing  was  now  lawful 
there,  saving  piety*  It  is  well,  if  God's  prophets  can  find  a  hole  to 
hide  their  heads  in.  They  must  needs  be  hard  driven,  when  fifty. of 
them  are  fain  to  crowd  together  into  one  cave.  There  they  had  both 
shade  and  repast.  Good  Obadiah  hazards  his  own  life,  to  preserve 
theirs  ;  and  spends  himself,  in  that  extreme  dearth,  upon  their  ne- 
cessary diet.  Bread  and  water  was  more  now,  than  other  while 
wine  and  delicacies.  Whether  shall  we  wonder  more,  at  the  mercy 
of  God  in  reserving  a  hundred  prophets,  or  in  thus  sustaining 
them  being  reserved  ?  When  did  God  ever  leave  his  Israel,  unfur- 
nished of  some  prophets  ?  When  did  he  leave  his  prophets,  un- 
provided of  some  Obadiah  ?  How  worthy  art  thou,  O  Lord,  to  be 
trusted  with  thine  own  charge.  While  there  are  men  upon  earth,  or 
birds  in  the  air,  or  angels  in  heaven,  thy  messengers  cannot  want 
provision. 

Goodness  carries  away  trust,  where  it  cannot  have  imitation. 
Ahab  divides  with  Obadiah  the  survey  of  the  whole  land.  They 
two  set  their  own  eyes  on  work,  for  the  search  of  water,  of  pas- 
ture, to  preserve  the  horses  and  mules  alive. 

Oh  the  poor  and  vain  cares  of  Ahab.!  He  casts  to  kill  the  pro- 
phet, to  save  the  cattle  ;  he  never  seeks  to  save  his  own  soul,  to 
destroy  idolatry  :  he  takes  thought  for  grass,  none  for  mercy.  Car- 
nal hearts  are  ever,  either  grovelling  on  the  earth,  or  delving  into 
it ;  no  more  regarding  God  or  their  souls,  than  if  the\-  either  were 
not,  or  were  worthless. 

Elijah  hears  of  the  progress  ;  and  offers  himself  to  the  view  of 
them  both.  Here  was  wisdom  in  this  courage  :  first,  he  presents 
himself  to  Obadiah,  ere  he  will  be  seen  of  Ahab  ;  that  Ahab  might, 
upon  the  report  of  so  discreet  an  informer,  digest  the  expectation 
of  his  meeting  :  then  he  takes  the  opportunity  of  Ahab's  presence, 
when  he  might  be  sure  Jezebel  was  away. 

'  "Obadiah  meets  the  prophet ;  knows  him  ;  and,  as  if  he  had  seen 
God  in  him,  falls  on  his  face  to  him,  whom  he  knew  his  master 
persecuted.  Though  a  great  peer,  die  had  learned  to  honour  a  pro- 
phet. No  respect  was  too  much,  for  the  president  of  that  sacred 
college.  To  the  poor  boarder  of  the  Sareptan,  here  was  no  less, 
than  a  prostration ;  and,  My  Urd  Elijah,  from  the  great  high 


ELIJAH  WITH  THE  BAALITES.  483 

steward  of  Israel.  Those,  that  are  truly  gracious,  cannot  be  nig- 
gardly of  their  observances,  to  the  messengers  of  God. 

Elijah  receives  the  reverence ;  returns  a  charge ;  Go  tell  my 
lord,  behold  Elijah  is  here.  Obadiah  finds  this  load  too  heavy  ; 
neither  is  he  more  stricken  with  the  boldness,  than  with  the  un- 
kindness  of  this  command:  boldness,  in  respect  of  Elijah;  un- 
kindness,  in  respect  of  himself.  For,  thus  he  thinks,  "  If  Elijah  do 
come  to  Ahab,  lie  dies  :  if  he  do  not  come,  I  die.  If  it  be  known 
that  I  met  him,  and  brought  him  not,  it  is  death  :  if  I  say  that  he 
will  come  voluntarily,  and  God  shall  alter  his  intentions,  it  is  death. 
How  unhappy  a  man  am  I,  that  must  be  either  Elijah's  executioner, 
or  my  own  !  Were  Ahab's  displeasure  but  smoking,  I  might  hope 
to  quench  it ;  but  now,  that  the  flame  of  it  hath  broken  forth  to 
the  notice,  to  the  search,  of  all  the  kingdoms  and  nations  round 
about,  it  may  consume  me  ;  I  cannot  extinguish  it.  This  message 
were  for  an  enemy  of  Elijah  ;  for  a  client  of  Baal  :  as  for  me,  I 
have  well  approved  my  true  devotion  to  God  ;  my  love  to  his  pro- 
phets. What  have  I  done,  that  I  should  be  singled  out,  cither  to 
kill  Elijah  or  to  be  killed  for  him  r"  Many  a  hard  plunge  must  that 
man  needs  be  driven  to,  who  would  hold  his  conscience,  together 
with  the  service  and  favour  of  a  tyrant.  It  is  a  happy  thing,  to 
serve  a  just  master :  there  is  no  danger,  no  stain,  in  such  obe- 
dience. 

But,  when  the  prophet  binds  his  resolution  with  an  oath,  and 
clears  the  heart  of  Obadiah  from  all  fears,  from  all  suspicions,  the 
good  man  dares  be  the  messenger  of  that,  which  he  saw  was  de- 
creed in  heaven. 

Doubtless,  Ahab  startled  to  hear  of  Elijah  coming  to  meet  him  ; 
as  one,  that  did  not  more  hate,  than  fear  the  prophet.  Well  might 
bethink,  "  Thus  long,  thus  far,  have  I  sought  Elijah.  Elijah 
would  not  come  to  seek  me,  but  under  a  sure  guard,  and  with  some 
strange  commission.  His  coarse  mantle  hath  the  advantage  of  my 
robe  and  sceptre.  If  I  can  command  a  piece  of  the  earth,  I  see  he 
can  command  heaven."  The  edge  of  his  revenge  is  taken  off,  with 
a  doubtful  expectation  of  the  issue  ;  and  now,  when  Elijah  offers 
himself  to  the  eyes  of  Ahab,  be,  who  durst  not  strike,  yet  durst 
challenge  the  prophet;  Art  thou  he,  that  troubleth  Israel?  Jero- 
boam's hand  was  still  in  Ahab's  thoughts.  He  holds  it  not  so  safe 
to  smite,  as  to  expostulate.  He,  that  was  the  head  of  Israel,  speaks 
out  that,  which  was  in  the  heart  of  all  his  people,  that  Elijah  was 
the  cause  of  all  their  sorrow.  Alas !  what  hath  the  righteous  pro- 
phet done  ?  He  taxed  their  sin,  he  foretold  the  judgments  ;  he  de- 
served it  not,  he  inflicted  it  not :  yet  he  smarts,  and  they  are  guil- 
ty. As  if  some  fond  people  should  accuse  the  herald  or  the  trumpet, 
as  the  cause  of  their  war  ;  or,  as  if  some  ignorant  peasant,  when 
lie  sees  his  fowls  bathing  in  his  pond,  should  cry  out  of  them  as  the 
causes  of  foul  weather. 

Oh  the  heroicai  spirit  of  Elijah  !  He  stands  alone,  amidst  all  the 
train  of  Ahab  ;  and  dares  not  only  repel  this  charge,  but  retort  it ; 


484  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

1  have  not  troubled  Israel ,  but  thou,  and  thy  father's  house,  in 
that  ye  have  forsaken  the  commandments  of  the  Lord,  and  thou 
hast  followed  Baalim.  No  earthly  glory  can  daunt  hhn,  who  hath 
the  clear  and  heartening  visions  of  God. 

Tins  holv  seer  discerns  the  true  cause  of  our  sufferings  to  he  our 
sins.  Foolish  men  are  plagued  for  their  offences  ;  and  it  is  no  small 
part  of  their  plague,  that  they  see  it  not.  The  only  common  dis- 
turber of  men,  families,  cities,  kingdoms,  worlds,  is  sin.  There  is 
no  such  traitor  to  any  state,  as  the  wilfully  wicked.  The  quietest 
and  most  plausible  offender  is  secretly  seditious,  and  stirreth  quar- 
rels in  heaven. 

The  true  messengers  of  God  carry  authority,  even  where  they 
are  maligned.  Elijah  doth  at  once  reprove  the  king,  and  require  of 
him  the  improvement  of  his  power;  in  gathering  all  Israel  to  Car- 
mel ;  in  fetching  thither  all  the  prophets  of  Baal. 

Baal  was  rich  in  Israel,  while  God  was  poor.  While  God  hath 
but  one  hundred  prophets  hid  closely  in  Obadiah's  caves,  Baal 
hath  eight  hundred  and  fifty  :  four  hundred  and  fifty  dispersed 
over  the  villages  and  towns  of  Israel ;  four  hundred  at  the  court. 
God's  prophets  are  glad  of  bread  and  water,  while  the  four  hun- 
dred trencher  prophets  of  Jezebel  feed  on  her  dainties  :  they  lurk 
in  caves ;  while  these  lord  it  in  the  pleasantest  groves.  Outward 
prosperity  is  a  false  note  of  truth. 

All  these,  with  all  Israel,  doth  Elijah  require  Ahab  to  summon 
unto  Carmel.  It  is  in  the  power  of  kings,  to  command  the  assem- 
bly of  the  prophets.  The  prophet  sues  to  the  prince,  for  the  in- 
diction  of  this  synod.  They  are  injurious  to  sovereignty,  who  ar- 
rogate this  power  to  none  hut  spiritual  hands. 

How  is  it,  that  Ahab  is  as  ready  to  perform  this  charge,  as  Elijah 
to  move  it  ?  I  dare  answer  for  his  heart,  that  it  was  not  drawn  with 
love.  Was  it  out  of  the  sense  of  one  judgment,  and  fear  of  ano- 
ther r  He  smarted  with  the  dearth  and  drought  ;  and  well  thinks 
Elijah  would  not  be  so  round  with  him  for  nothing.  Was  it  out  of 
an  expectation  of  some  miraculous  exploit,  which  the  prophet 
would  do  in  the  sight  of  all  Israel?  Or,  was  it  out  of  the  over-rul- 
ing power  of  the  Almighty  I  The  heart  of  Kings  is  in  the  hands 
of  God,  and  he  turns  it  which  way  soever  he  pleaseth. 

Israel  is  met  together  :  Elijah  rates  them  ;  not  so  much  for  their 
superstition,  as  for  their  unsettledness  and  irresolution.  One  Is- 
raelite serves  God,  another  Baal ;  yea,  the  same  Israelite,  perhaps, 
serves  both  God  and  Baal.  How  long  halt  ye  between  two  opi- 
nions ?  If  the  Lord  be  God,  follow  him  ;  but  if  Baal,  then  follow 
him.  Nothing  is  more  odious  to  God,  than  a  profane  neutrality,  in 
main  oppositions  of  religion.  To  go  upright  in  a  wrong  way  is  a 
less  eye-sore  to  God,  than  to  halt  betwixt  right  and  wrong.  The 
Spirit  wisheth,  that  the  Laodicean  were  either  hot  or  cold:  either 
temper  would  better  be  borne,  than  neither ;  than  both.  In  recon- 
cileable  differences,  nothing  is  more  safe,  than  indirlerency  both  of 
practice  and  opinion  ;  but  in  oases  of  so  necessary  hostility  as  b»- 


ELIJAH  WITH  THE  BAALITES.  485 

twixt  God  and  Baal,  he,  that  is  on  neither  side,  is  the  deadliest 
enemy  to  both.  Less  hateful  are  they  to  God  that  serve  him  not  at 
all,  than  they  that  serv*  him  with  a  rival. 

Whether  out  of  guiltiness,  or  fear,  or  uncertainty,  Israel  is  si- 
lent ;  yet,  while  their  mouth  was  shut,  their  eyes  were  open. 

It  was  a  fair  motion  of  Elijah,  "  I  am  only  remaining  a  prophet 
of  the  Lord  :  Baal's  prophets  arc  four  hundred  and  fifty.  Let  them 
choose  one  bullock  ;  let  me  choose  another.  Their  devotion  shall  be 
combined  ;  mine  single.  The  God  that  consumes  the  sacrifice  by 
fire  from  heaven,  let  him  be  God."  Israel  cannot  but  approve  it : 
the  prophets  of  Baal  cannot  refuse  it ;  they  had  the  appearance 
of  the  advantage,  in  their  number,  in  the  favour  of  king  and 
people. 

Oil  strange  disputation  :  wherein  the  argument  which  must  be 
used  is  fire  ;  the  place  whence  it  must  be  fetched,  heaven  ;  the  mood 
and  figure,  devotion  ;  the  conclusion,  death  to  be  overcome! 

Had  not  Elijah,  bv  divine  instinct,  been  assured  of  the  event, 
he  durst  not  have  put  religion  upon  such  hazard.  That  God  com- 
manded him  this  trial,  who  meant  confusion  to  the  authors  of  ido- 
latry, victory  to  the  truth.  His  terror  shall  be  approved,  both  by 
fire  and  by  water:  first,  by  fire;  then,  by  water.  There  was  no 
less  terror  in  the  fire,  than  mercy  in  the  rain.  It  was  fit  they  should 
first  be  humbled  by  his  terrors,  that  they  might  be  made  capable 
of  his  mercy  ;  and  by  both  might  be  won  to  repentance.  Thus 
still,  the  fears  of  the  law  make  way  for  the  influences  of  grace ; 
neither  do  those  sweet  and  heavenly  dews  descend  upon  the  soul, 
till  way  be  made  for  them,  by  the  terrible  flashes  of  the  law. 

Justly  doth  Elijah  urge  this  trial.  God's  sacrifices  were  used  to 
none,  but  heavenly  fires  ;  whereas,  the  base  and  earthly  religion 
of  the  heathen  contented  itself,  with  gross  and  natural  Haines. 

The  prophets  of  Baal  durst  not,  though  with  faint  and  guilty 
hearts,  but  embrace  the  condition.  They  dress  their  bullock,  and 
lay  it  ready  upon  the  wood  ;  and  send  out  their  cries  to  Baal,  from 
morning  until  midday  ;  O  Baal,  hear  us.  What  a  yelling  was  here, 
of  four  hundred  and  fifty  throats  tearing  the  skies  for  an  answer  ! 
What  leaping  was  here  upon  the  altar  ;  as  if  they  would  have 
climbed  up  to  fetch  that  fire,  which  would  not  come  down  alone  J 
Mount  Carrnel  might  give  an  echo  to  their  voice  ;  heaven  gave 
none.  In  vain  do  they  roar  out,  and  weary  themselves  in  inipl<  ing 
a  dumb  and  deaf  deitv. 

Grave  and  austere  Elijah  holds  it  not  too  li^ht,  to  flout  their  zea- 
lous devotion.  He  laughs  at  their  tears,  and  plays  upon  their  ear- 
nest ;  Cry  aloud ;  for  he  is  a  God :  either  he  is  talk  ing,  or  he  is 
pursuing,  or  he  is  travelling,  or  he  is  sleeping,  and  must  be  awaked. 
Scorns  and  taunts  are  the  best  answers,  for  serious  idolatry.  Holi- 
ness will  bear  us  out,  in  dis.laiuful  scoffs  and  bitterness,  again  l 
wilful  superstition. 

No  less  in  the  indignation  at  these  insulting  frumps,  than  zeal  of 
their  own  sal'  ty  ami  reparation,  do  these  idolatrous  prophets  now 
rend  their  throats  with  w  ; iarn.it  ions ;  and,  that  they  may  assure 


48()  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

the  beholders  they  were  not  in  jest,  they  cut  and  slash  themselves 
with  knives  and  lancets,  and  solicit  the  lire  with  their  blood. 

How  much  painfullness  there  is  in  misreligion  !  I  do  not  find, 
that  the  true  God  ever  required  or  accepted  the  s( lf-tortures  of  his 
servants.  He  loves  true  inward  mortification  of  our  corruptions; 
he  loves  the  subduing  of  our  spiritual  insurrections,  by  due  exer- 
cise of  severe  restraint  ;  he  takes  no  pleasure  in  our  blood,  in  our 
carcases.  They  mistake  God,  that  they  think  to  please  him,  by 
destroying  that  nature,  which  he  hath  made ;  and  measure  truth, 
by  rigour  of  outward  extremities.  Elijah  drew  no  blood  of  him- 
self :  the  priests  of  Baal  did. 

How  fain  would  the  devil,  whom  these  idolaters  adored,  have  an- 
swered the  suit  of  his  suppliants  !  What  would  that  ambitious  spi- 
rit have  given,  that,  as  he  was  cast  down  from  heaven  like  light- 
ning, so  now  he  might  have  fallen  down  in  that  form  upon  his  altar! 
God  forbids  it :  all  the  powers  of  darkness  can  no  more  shew  one 
flash  of  fire  in  the  air,  than  avoid  the  unquenchable  fire  in  hell. 
How  easy  were  it  for  the  power  of  the  Almighty,  to  cut  short  all 
the  tyrannical  usurpation  of  that  wicked  one ;  if  his  wisdom  and 
justice  did  not  find  the  permission  thereof  useful  to  his  holy  pur- 
poses. 

These  idolaters  now,  towards  evening,  grew  so  much  more  vehe- 
ment, as  they  were  more  hopeless  ;  and  at  last,  when  neither  their 
shrieks,  nor  their  wounds,  nor  their  mad  motions  could  prevail, 
they  sit  down  hoarse  and  weary  ;  tormenting  themselves  afresh  with 
their  despairs,  and  with  the  fears  of  bitter  success  of  their  adver- 
sary :  when  Elijah  calls  the  people  to  him,  (the  witnesses  of  his  sin- 
cere proceedings,)  and,  taking  the  opportunity  both  of  the  time, 
the  just  hour  of  the  evening  sacrifice,  and  of  the  place,  a  ruined 
altar  of  God  now  by  him  repaired,  convinces  Israel  with  his  mira- 
cle ;  and  more  cuts  these  fiaalites  with  envy,  than  they  had  cut 
themselves  with  their  lancets. 

O  holy  prophet,  why  didst  thou  not  save  this  labour  ?  What 
needed  these  unseasonable  reparations  ?  Was  there  not  an  altar, 
was  there  not  a  sacrifice,  ready  prepared  to  thy  hand  ?  That,  which 
the  prophets  of  Baal  had  addressed,  stood  still  waiting  for  that  fire 
from  thee,  which  the  founders  threatened  in  vain.  The  stones 
were  not  more  impure,  either  for  their  touch  or  their  intentions ; 
yet,  such  was  thy  detestation  of  idolatry,  that  thou  abhorrest  to 
meddle  with  ought,  which  their  wickedness  had  defiled.  Even  that 
altar,  whose  ruins  thou  didst  thus  repair,  was  miserected,  though 
to  the  name  of  the  true  God  ;  yet  didst  thou  find  it  better,  to  make 
up  the  breaches  of  that  altar,  which  was  misconsecrated  to  the  ser- 
vice of  thy  God,  than  to  make  use  of  that  pile,  which  was  ido- 
latrously  devoted  to  a  false  god.  It  cannot  be  but  safe,  to  keep 
aloof  from  participation  with  idolaters  ;  even  in  those  things,  which, 
not  only  in  nature  but  in  use,  are  unclean. 

Elijah  lays  twelve  stones  in  his  repaired  altar,  according  to  the 
number  of  the  tribes  of  the  sons  of  Jacob.  Alas  !  ten  of  these 
were  perverted  to  Baal.    The  prophet  regards  not  their  present 


ELIJAH  WITH  THE  BAALITES. 


48T 


•apostasy :  he  regards  the  ancient  covenant,  that  was  made  with 
their  father  Israel ;  he  regards  their  first  station,  to  which  he  would 
reduce  them.  He  knew,  that  the  unworthiness  of  Israel  could  not 
make  God  forgetful :  he  would,  by  this  monument,  put  Israel  in 
mind  of  their  own  degeneration  and  forgetfulness. 

He  employs  those  many  hands,  for  the  making  a  large  trench' 
round  about  the  altar ;  and  causes  it  to  be  filled,  with  those  pre- 
cious remainders  of  water,  which  the  people  would  have  grudged 
to  their  own  mouths;  neither  would  easily  have  parted  with,  but, 
as  those  that  pour  down  a  pailful  into  a  dry  pump,  in  the  hope  of 
fetching  more.  The  altar,  the  trench  is  full.  A  barrelful  is  poured 
out  for  each  of  the  tribes ;  that  every  tribe  might  be  afterwards 
replenished. 

Ahab  and  Israel  are  no  less  full  of  expectation  ;  and  now,  when 
God's  appointed  hour  of  the  evening  sacrifice  was  come,  Elijah 
comes  confidently  to  his  altar,  and,  looking  up  into  heaven,  says. 
Lord  God  of  Abraham,  Isaac,  and  Israel,  let  it  be  known  this  day, 
that  thou  art  God  in  Israel,  and  that  I  am  thy  servant,  and  that 
I  have  done  all  these  things  at  thy  word.  Hear  me,  0  Lord,  hear 
vie,  that  this  people  may  know  that  thou  art  the  Lord  God,  and  that 
thou  hast  turned  their  hearts  back  again. 

The  Baalites'  prayers  were  not  more  tedious,  than  Elijah's  was 
short ;  and  yet  more  pithy,  than  short ;  charging  God  with  the  care 
of  his  covenant,  of  his  truth,  of  his  glory.  It  was  Elijah,  that 
spake  loud.  Oh  strong  cries  of  faith,  that  pierce  the  heavens, 
and  irresistibly  make  their  way  to  the  throne  of  grace  ! 

Israel  shall  well  see,  that  Elijah's  God,  whom  they  have  forsaken, 
is  neither  talking,  nor  pursuing,  nor  travelling,  nor  sleeping.  In- 
stantly, the  fire  of  the  Lord  falls  from  heaven,  and  consumes  the 
burnt  sacrifice,  the  wood,  the  stones,  the  dust,  and  licks  up  the 
water  that  was  in  the  trench. 

With  what  terror  must  Ahab  and  Israel  needs  see  this  fire  rolling 
down  out  of  the  sky,  and  alighting  with  such  fury  so  near  their 
heads;  heads,  no  less  fit  for  this  flame,  than  the  sacrifice  of  Eli- 
jah !  Well  might  they  have  thought,  "  How  easily  might  this  fire? 
have  dilated  itself ;  and  have  consumed  our  bodies,  as  well  as  the 
wood  and  stone ;  and  have  licked  up  our  blood,  as  well  as  that' 
water!"  I  know  not,  whether  they  had  the  grace  to  acknowledge 
the  mercy  of  God :  they  could  do  no  less,  than  confess  his  power  ; 
The  Lord  is  God ;  the  Lord  is  God. 

The  iron  was  now  hot,  with  this  heavenly  fire.  Elijah  staj-s  not 
till  it  cool  again,  but  strikes  immediately  ;  Take  the  prophets  of 
Baal ;  let  not  one  of  them  esiffpe. 

This  wap;er  was  for  life.  Had  they  prevailed  in  procuring  this 
fire,  and  Elijah  had  failed  of  effect,  his  head  had  been  forfeited 
unto  them  :  now,  in  the  contrary  success,  theirs  arc  lost  to  him. 
Let  no  man  complain,  that  those  holy  hands  were  bloody.  This 
sacrifice  was  no  less  pleasing  to  God,  than  that  other.'  Both  the 
man  and  the  act  were  extraordinary,  and  led  by  a  peculiar  in- 
stinct.   Neither  doth  the  prophet  this,  without  the  assent  of  the 


488  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

supreme  magistrate  ;  who  was  now  so  affected  with  this  miraculous 
work,  that  he  could  not,  in  the  heat  of  that  conviction,  but  allow 
the  justice  of  such  a  sentence.  Far  be  it  from  us,  to  accuse  God's 
commands  or  executions  of  cruelty.  It  was  the  ancient  and  peremp- 
tory charge  of  God,  that  the  authors  of  idolatry  and  seduction 
should  die  the  death :  no  eye,  no  hand  might  spare  them.  The 
prophet  doth  but  move  the  performance  of  that  law,  which  Israel 
could  not  without  sin  have  omitted.  It  is  a  merciful  and  thank, 
worthy  severity,  to  rid  the  world  of  the  ringleaders  of  wicked- 
ness. ,  i  Kings  xviii. 


ELIJAH  RUNNING  BEFORE  AHAB,  FLYING  FROM 

JEZEBEL, 

I  hear  no  news  of  the  four  hundred  prophets  of  the  groves,  They 
lie  close  under  the  wing  of  Jezebel,  under  their  pleasing  shades ; 
neither  will  be  suffered  to  undergo  the  danger  of  this  trial,  The 
carcases  of  their  fellows  help  to  fill  up  the  half-dry  channel  of 
Kishon. 

Justice  is  no  sooner  done,  than  Ahab  hears  news  of  mercy  from 
Elijah ;  Get  thee  up,  eat  and  drink,  for  there  is  a  sound  of  abun- 
dance  of  rain.  Their  meeting  was  not  more  harsh,  than  their  part- 
ing was  friendly.  It  seems  Ahab  had  spent  all  that  day  fasting, 
in  an  eager  attendance  of  those  conflicting  prophets.  It  must  needs 
be  late,  ere  the  execution  could  be  done.  Elijah's  part  began  not 
till  the  evening.  So  far  must  the  king  of  Israel  be,  from  taking 
thought  for  the  massacre  of  those  four  hundred  and  fifty  Baalites ; 
that  now,  he  may  go  eat  his  bread  with  joy,  and  drink  his  wine 
•with  a  cheerful  heart ;  for  God  accepteth  this  work,  and  testifies 
it  in  the  noise  of  much  rain.  Every  drop  of  that  idolatrous  blood 
was  answered,  with  a  shower  of  rain,  with  a  stream  of  water ;  and 
plenty  poured  down  in  every  shower.  A  sensible  blessing  follows 
the  impartial  strokes  of  severe  justice.  Nothing  is  more  cruel,  than 
an  unjust  piety. 

No  ears  but  Elijah's  could  as  yet  perceive  a  sound  of  rain,  The 
clouds  were  not  yet  gathered,  the  vapours  were  not  yet  risen,  yet 
Elijah  hears  that  which  shall  be.  Those  that  are  of  God's  counsel 
can  discern  either  favours  or  judgments  afar  oft".  The  slack  appre- 
hensions of  carnal  hearts  make  them  hard  to  believe  that,  as  future, 
which  the  quick  and  refined  senses  of  the  faithful  receive,  as  pre- 
sent. 

Ahab  goes  up  to  his  repast :  Elijah  goes  up  to  his  prayers.  That 
day  had  been  painful  to  him :  the  vehemency  of  his  spirit  draws 
him  to  a  neglect  of  his  body.  The  holy  man  climbs  up  to  the  top 
of  Carmel,  that  now  he  may  talk  with  his  God  alone ;  neither  is 
he  sooner  ascended,  than  he  casts  himself  down  upon  the  earth. 
He  bows  his  knees  to  God,  and  bows  his  face  down  to  his  knees; 
by  this  humble  posture  acknowledging  his  awful  respects  to  that 
Majesty,  which  he  implored.    We  cannot  prostrate  our  bodies  or 


ELIJAH  RVNNrNG  BEFORE  AHAB,  FLYING  FROM  JEZEBEL.  489 

touls  too  low,  to  that  infinitely  glorious  Deity,  who  is  the  Creator 
of  both. 

His  thoughts  were  more  high,  than  his  body  was  low.  What  he 
said,  we  know  not ;  we  know  that  "what  he  said  opened  the  heavens, 
that  for  three  years  and  a  half  had  been  shut  up. 

God  had  said  before,  /  will  send  rain  Upon  the  earth  ;  yet  Eli- 
jah must  pray  for  what  God  did  promise.  The  promises  of  the 
Almighty  do  not  discharge  our  prayers,  but  suppose  them.  He 
will  do  what  he  undertakes,  but  we  must  sue  for  that,  which  we 
would  have  him  do.  Our  petitions  are  included  in  the  decrees, 
in  the  engagements  of  God. 

The  prophet  had  newly  seen,  and  caused,  the  fire  to  descend 
immediately  out  of  heaven :  he  doth  not  look  the  water  should  do 
so.  He  knew  that  the  rain  must  come  from  ihc  clouds,  and  that 
the  clouds  must  arise  from  vapours,  and  those  vapours  from  the 
sea  r  thence  doth  he  expect  them.  But,  as  not  willing  that  the 
thoughts  of  his  fixed  devotion  should  be  distracted,  he  doth  not  go 
himself,  only  sends  his  servant  to  bring  him  the  news  of  his  suc- 
cess,   .  - 

At  the  first  sight,  nothing  appears.  Seven  times  must  he  walk 
to  that  prospect ;  and  not  till  his  last  view  can  discern  ought.  All 
that  while  is  the  prophet  in  his  prayers  ;  neither  is  any  whit  daunted 
with  that  delay.  Hope  holds  up  the  head  of  our  holy  desires,  and 
perseverance  crowns  it.  If  we  receive  not  an  answer  to  our  suits 
at  the  sixth  motion,  we  may  not  be  out  of  countenance,  but  must 
try  the  seventh. 

At  last,  a  little  cloud  arises  out  of  the  sea,  of  a  hand  breadth. 
80  many,  so  fervent  prayers  cannot  but  pull  water  out  of  heaven, 
as  well  as  fire.  Those  sighs  reflect  upon  the  earth,  and  from  the 
earth  reflect  upon  heaven,  from  heaven  rebound  upon  the  sea, 
and  raise  vapours  up  thence  to  heaven  again. 

If  we  find  that  our  prayers  are  heard  for  the  substance,  we  may 
not  cavil  at  the  quantity.  Even  a  hand-broad  cloud  contents  Eli- 
jah ;  and  fills  his  heart  full  of  joy  and  thankfulness.  He  knew  well 
this  meteor  was  not  at  the  biggest :  it  was  newly  born  of  the  womb 
of  the  waters  ;  and,  in  some  minutes  of  age,  must  grow  to  a  large 
stature ;  stay  but  a  while,  and  heaven  is  covered  with  it.  Erom 
how  small  beginnings,  have  greater  matters  risen  !  It  is  no  other- 
wise, in  all  the  gracious  proceedings  of  God  with  the  soul.  Scarce 
sensible  are  those  first  works  of  his  Spirit  in  the  heart,  which  grow 
up  at  last,  to  the  wonder  of  men  and  applause  of  angels. 

Well  did  Elijah  know,  that  God,  who  is  perfection  itself,  would 
not  defile  his  hand,  with  an  inchoate  and  scanted  favour  ;  as  one 
therefore,  that  foresaw  the  face  of  heaven  overspread  with  thii 
cloudy  spot,  he  sends  to  Ahab,  to  hasten  his  chariot,  that  the  rain 
stop  hirn  not.  It  is  long,  since  Ahab  feared  this  let.  Never  was 
the  news  of  a  danger  more  welcome.  Doubtless,  the  king  of  Is- 
rael, while  he  was  at  his  diet,  looked  long  for  Elijah's  promised 
showers.  ':  Where  is  the  rain,  whose  sound  the  prophet  heard? 
How  is  it,  that  his  ears  were  so  much  quicker,  than  our  eyes  ? 


490 


CONTEMPLATIONS. 


We  saw  his  fire  to  our  terror  ;  how  gladly  would  we  see  his  waters  t" 
When  now,  the  servant  of  Elijah  brings  him  news  from  heaven, 
that  the  clouds  were  setting  forward,  and,  if  he  hastened  not,  would 
be  before  him. 

The  wind  arises ;  the  clouds  gather ;  the  sky  thickens ;  Ahab 
betakes  him  to  his  chariot ;  Elijah  girds  up  his  loins,  and  runs  be- 
fore him.  Surely,  the  prophet  could  not  want  the  offer  of  more 
ease  in  his  passage ;  but  he  will  be,  for  the  time,  Aliab's  lacquey, 
that  the  king  and  all  Israel  may  see  his  humility  no  less  than  his 
power,  and  may  confess  that  the  glory  of  those  miracles  hath  not 
made  him  insolent.  He  knew,  that  his  very  sight  was  monitory  ; 
neither  could  Ahab's  mind  be  beside  the  miraculous  works  of  God, 
while  his  eye  was  upon  Elijah ;  neither  could  the  king's  heart  be 
otherwise  than  well  affected  towards  the  prophet,  while  he  saw  that 
himself  and  all  Israel  had  received  a  new  life  by  his  procurement. 

But  what  news  was  here  for  Jezehel !  Certainly,  Ahab  minced 
nothing  of  the  report  of  all  those  astonishing  accidents.  If  but  to 
salve  up  his  own  honour,  in  the  death  of  those  Baalites,  he  made 
the  best  of  Elijah's  merits ;  he  told  of  his  challenge,  conflict,  vic- 
tory, of  the  Are  that  fell  down  from  heaven,  of  the  conviction  of 
Israel,  of  the  unavoidable  execution  of  the  prophets,  of  the  pre- 
diction and  fall  of  those  happy  showers,  and  lastly  of  Elijah's  offi- 
cious attendance. 

Who  would  not  have  expected,  that  Jezebel  should  have  said  ; 
"  It  is  no  striving,  no  dallying,  with  the  Almighty.  No  reasonable 
creature  can  doubt,  after  so  prodigious  a  decision.  God  hath  won 
us  from  heaven  ;  he  must  possess  us.  Justly  are  our  seducers  pe- 
rished. None  but  the  God,  that  can  command  fire  and  water,  shall 
be  ours  :  there  is  no  prophet,  but  his." 

But  she,  contrarily,  instead  of  relenting,  rageth  ;  and  sends  a 
message  of  death  to  Elijah,  So  let  the  gods  do  to  me,  and  more  alsof 
if  I  make  not  thy  life  as  the  life  of  one  of  them,  by  to  morrow, 
about  this  time.  Neither  scourges,  nor  favours  can  work  any  thing, 
with  the  obstinately  wicked. 

All  evil  hearts  are  not  equally  dis-a fleeted  to  good.  Ahab  and  Je- 
zebel were  both  bad  enough,  yet  Ahab  yields  to  that  work  of  God, 
which  Jezebel  stubbornly  opposeth  ;  Ahab  melts  with  that  water, 
with  that  fire,  wherewith  Jezebel  is  hardened  ;  Ahab  was  bashfully, 
Jezebel  audaciously  impious.  The  weaker  sex  is  ever  most  com- 
monly stronger  in  passion,  and  more  vehemently  carried  with  the 
sway  of  their  desires,  whether  to  good  or  evil.  She  swears  and 
stamps  at  that,  whereat  she  should  have  trembled.  She  swears  by 
those  gods  of  hers,  which  were  not  able  to  save  their  prophets, 
that  she  will  kill  the  prophet  of  God,  who  had  scorned  her  gods, 
and  slain  her  prophets. 

It  is  well,  that  Jezebel  could  not  keep  counsel.  Her  threat  pre- 
served him,  whom  she  had  meant  to  kill.  The  wisdom  and  power 
of  God  could  have  found  evasions  for  his  prophet,  in  her  greatest 
secresy  ;  but  now,  he  needs  no  other  means  of  rescue,  but  her 
own  lips.     .  .  . 


ELIJAH  RUNNING  BEFORE  AHAB,  FLYrNG  FROM  JEZEBEL.  49l 

She  is  no  less  vain,  than  the  gods  she  swears  bv.  In  spite  of  her 
fury,  and  her  oath,  and  her  gods,  Elijah  shail  li  .e.  At  once,  s  mil 
she  find  herself  frustrate  and  forsworn.  She  is  now  ready  to  bite 
her  tongue,  to  eat  her  heart,  for  anger,  at  the  disappointment  of 
her  cruel  vow.  It  were  no  living  for  godiy  men,  if  tne  hands  of 
tyrants  were  allowed  to  be  as  bloody  as  their  hearts.  Men  and 
devils  are  under  the  restraint  of  the  Almighty  ;  neither  art;  tiieir 
designs  more  lavish,  than  their  executions  short. 

Holy  Elijah  flees  for  his  life.  We  hear  not  of  the  command  of 
God,  but  we  would  willingly  presuppose  it.  So  divine  a  prophet 
should  do  nothing  without  God.  His  heels  were  no  new  refuge. 
As  :o  where  safe  within  the  ten  tribes,  he  flees  to  Scendieba,  in 
the  territories  of  judah.  As  not  there  safe  from  the  machinations 
of  Jezebel,  he  flees  alone,  one  day's  journey,  into  the  wilderness. 
There  he  sits  him  down,  under  a  juniper  tree;  and,  as  weary  of 
life  no  less  than  of  his  way,  wishes  to  rise  no  more  ;  It  is  enough 
vow,  O  Lord,  take  away  my  life,  for  I  am  not  better  than  my  fa- 
thers. 

O  strange  and  uncouth  mutation  !  What  is  this  we  hear  ? 
Elijah  fainting  and  giving  up  !  That  heroical  spirit  dejected  and 
prostrate  !  He,  that  durst  say  to  Ahab's  face,  It  is  thou,  and  thy 
Jatlier's  house,  that  troubleth  Ismel ;  he,  that  could  raise  the  dead, 
open  and  shut  the  heavens,  fetch  down  both  fire  and  water,  with 
his  prayers  ;  he,  that  durst  chide  and  contest  with  all  Israel,  that 
durst  kill  the  four  hundred  and  fifty  Baalites  with  the  sword  ;  doth 
he  shrink  at  the  frowns  and  threats  of  a  woman  ?  doth  he  wish  to 
be  rid  of  his  life,  because  he  feared  to  lose  it  ?  Who  can  expect 
an  undaunted  constancy  from  flesh  and  blood,  when  Elijah  fails  ? 
The  strongest  and  holiest  saint  upon  earth,  is  subject  to  some 
qualms  of  fear  and  infirmity.  To  be  always  and  unchangeably 
good,  is  proper  only  to  the  glorious  spirits  in  heaven.  Thus  the 
wise  and  holy  God  will  have  his  power  perfected  in  our  weakness. 
It  is  in  vain  for  us,  while  we  carry  this  flesh  about  us,  to  hope  for 
so  exact  health,  as  not  to  be  cast  down  sometimes  with  fits  of  spi- 
ritual distemper. 

It  is  no  new  thing,  for  holy  men  to  wish  for  death.  Who  can  ei- 
ther marvel  at  or  blame  the  desire  of  advantage  ?  For  the  weary 
traveller  to  long  for  rest,  the  prisoner  for  liberty,  the  banished  for 
home,  it  is  so  natural,  that  the  contrary  disposition  were  mon- 
strous. The  benefit  of  the  change  is  a  just  motive  to  our  appeti- 
tion  ;  but  to  call  for  death  out  of  a  satiety  of  life,  out  of  an  impa- 
tience of  sulfering,  is  a  weakness  unbeseeming  a  saint.  It  is  not 
enough,  O  Elijah.  God  hath  more  work  vet  for  thee.  Thy  God 
hath  more  honoured  thee  than  thy  fathers,  and  thou  shalt  live  to 
honour  him. 

Toil  and  sorrow  have  lulled  the  prophet  asleep,  under  his  juni- 
per tree.  That  wholesome  shade  was  well  chosen,  for  his  rei,ose. 
While  death  was  called  for,  the  cousin  of  death  come:;,  unbidden. 

The  angel  of  God  waits  on  him,  in  that  hard  lodging.  No  .vil- 
derncss  is  too  solitary,  for  the  attendance  of  those  blessed  spirits. 


492  CONTEMPLATIONS. 

As  he  is  guarded,  so  is  he  awaked,  by  that  messenger  of  God ; 
and  stirred  up.  from  his  rest,  to  his  repast.  While  lie  slept,  his 
breakfast  is  made  ready  for  him,  by  those  spiritual  hands ;  there 
n-as  a  cake  baked  on  the  coals,  and  a  cruse  of  watew  at  his  head. 
Oh  the  never  ceasing  care  and  providence  of  the  Almighty  ;  not  to 
be  barred  by  any  place,  by  any  condition  !  When  means  are 
wanting  to  us,  when  we  are  wanting  to  ourselves,  when  to  God, 
even  then  doth  he  follow  us  with  his  mercy,  and  cast  favours  upon 
us,  beyond,  against  expectation. 

What  variety  of  purveyance  doth  he  make  for  his  servant  !  One 
while  the  ravens,  then  the  Sareptan,  now  the  angel  shall  be  his 
caterer  :  none  of  them  without  a  miracle.  Those  other  provided 
for  him  waking  ;  this,  sleeping.  O  God,  the  eye  of  thy  provi- 
dence is  not  dimmer,  the  hand  of  thy  power  is  not  shorter  :  only 
teach  thou  us  to  serve  thee,  to  trust  thee. 

Needs  must  the  prophet  eat,  and  drink,  and  sleep  with  much 
comfort,  while  he  saw  that  he  had  such  a  guardian,  attendance, 
purveyor;  and  now,  the  second  time,  is  he  raised,  bv  that  happy 
touch,  to  his  meal  and  his  way  :  Arise,  and  eat ;  because  the  jour- 
ney is  too  great  for  thee.  What  needed  he  to  travel  further,  since 
that  divine  power  could  as  well  protect  him  in  the  wilderness,  as  in 
Horeb  r  What  needed  he  to  eat,  since  he,  that  meant  to  sustain  him 
forty  days  with  one  meal,  might  as  well  have  sustained  him  with- 
out it  ?  God  is  a  most  free  agent  ;  neither  M  ill  he  be  tied  to  the 
terms  of  human  regularities:  it  is  enough,  that  he  knows  and  ap- 
proves the  reasons  of  his  own  choice  and  commands. 

Once  in  forty  days  and  nights  shall  Elijah  eat,  to  teach  us  what 
God  can  do  with  little  means  ;  and  but  once,  to  teach  us  what  he 
can  do  without  means :  once  shall  the  prophet  eat,  Man  lives  by 
bread ;  and  but  once,  Man  lives  not  by  bread  only,  but  by  every 
wed  that  proceeds  out  of  the  mouth  of  God, 

Moses,  Elijah,  our  Saviour,  fasted  each  of  them  forty  days  and 
forty  nights.  The  three  great  fasters  met  gloriously  in  Tabor.  I 
do  not  find  where  God  ever  honoured  any  man  for  feasting.  It  is 
abstinence,  not  fulness,  that  makes  a  man  capable  of  heavenly  vi- 
sions, of  divine  glory. 

The  journev  was  not,  of  itself,  so  long  :  the  prophet  took  those 
ways,  those  hours,  which  his  heart  gave  him. 

In  the  very  same  mount,  where  Moses  fust  saw  God,  shall  Elijah 
see  him.  One  and  the  same  cave,  as  is  very  probable,  was  the 
receptacle  to  both.  It  could  not  be  but  a  great  confirmation  of 
Elijah,  to  renew  the  sight  of  those  seusible  monuments  of  God's 
favour  and  protection,  to  his  faithful  predecessor.  Moses  canie  to 
see  God  in  the  bush  of  Horeb  '■ .  God  came  to  find  Elijah  in  the 
cave  of  Horeb  ;  What  doest  thou  here,  Elijah  ? 

The  place  was  directed  by  a.  providence,  not  by  a  command. 
He  is  hid  sure  enough  from  Jezebel ;  lie  cannot  be  hid  from  the 
all-seeing  eye  of  God.  -Ji'hi/her  shall  I  go  from  thy  Spirit?  or 
Whither  shall  1 fly from  thy  presence?  If  I  ascend  up  into  heaven, 
thpM  art  there;  if  I  make  my  bed  in  hdl,  behold  thou  art  there  ; 


ELIJAH  RUNNING  BEFORE  AHAB,  FLVWG  FROM  JEZEBEL.  498 

if  I  take  the  wings  of  the  morning,  and  dwell  in  the  almost  parts 
vf  the  sea  ,-  even  there  shall  thine  hand  find  vie,  and  thy  right  hand 
shall  hold  me.  . 

Twice  hath  God  propounded  the  same  question  to  Elijah:  once 
in  the  heart,  once  in  the  mouth  or'  the  cave  :i  twice  doth  the  pro- 
phet answer,  in  the  same  words.  Had  the  first  answer'  satisfied, 
the  question  had  not  been  redemanded.  Now,  that  sullen  answer, 
which  Elijah  gave  in  the  darkness  of  the  ;cave;  is  challenged  into 
the  light,  not  without  an  awful  preface.  =■ 

The  Lord  first  passeth  by  him,  with  the  terrible  demonstrations 
of  his  power;  A  great  and  strong  wind  rent  the  mountains,  and 
brake  the  rocks  in  pieces.  The  tearing  blast  was  from  God ;  God 
was  not  in  it :  so  was  he  in  it,  as  in  his  other  extraordinary  works  ; 
not  so  in  it,  as  by  it  to  impart  himself  to  Elijah.'  It  was  the  usher, 
not  the  carriage,  of  God. 

After  the  wind,  came  an  earthquake ;  more  fearful  than  it.  That 
did  but  move  the  air ;  this,  the  earth  :  .that  beat  upon  some  promi- 
nences of  earth  ;  this  shook  it  from  the  centre. 

After  the  earthquake,  came  a  fire  ;  more  fearful  than  either.  The 
other  affected  the  ear,  the  feeling ;  but  this  lets  in  horror  into  the 
soul,  by  the  eye,  the  quickest  and  most  apprehensive  of  the  senses. 
Elijah  shall  see  God's  mighty  power  in  the  earth,  air,  fire,  before 
he  hear  him  in  the  soft  voice. 

All  these  are  but  boisterous  harbingers  of  a  meek  and  still  word. 
In  that,  God  was.  Behold,  in  that  gentle  and  mild  breath,  there 
was  omnipotency  ;  there  was  but  powerfulness,  in  those  fierce  re- 
presentations. There  is  not  always  the  greatest  efficacy,  where  is 
the  greatest  noise.  God  loves  to  make  way  for  himself,  by  terror ; 
but  he  conveys  himself  to  us,  in  sweetness.  It  is  happv  for  us,  if, 
after  the  gusts  and  flashes  of  the  law,  we  have  heard  the  soft  voice 
of  evangelical  mercy. 

In  this  very  mount,  with  the  same  horror,  God  had  delivered  his 
law  to  Moses  and  Israel.  It  is  no  marvel,  if  Elijah  wrapt  his  face 
in  his  mantle.  His  obedience  draws  him  forth,  to  the  mouth  of 
the  cave;  his  fear  still  hides  his  head.  Had  there  not.  been  much 
courage  in  the  prophet's  faith,  he  had  not  stood  out  these  afiright- 
ful  forerunners  of  the  divine  presence,  though  with  his  face  cover- 
ed. The  very  angels  do  no  less,  before  that  all-glorious  Majesty, 
than  vail  themselves  with  their  wings ;  far  be  it- from  us,  once  to 
think  of  that  infinite  and  omnipotent  Deity,  without  an  humble 
awfulness. 

tear  changes  not  the  tenor  of  Elijah's  answer.  He  hath  not  left 
■one  word  behind  him  in  the  cave  ,  /  have  been  very  jealous  for  the 
Lord  God  of  Hosts ;  because  the  children  of  Israel  have  forsaken 
thy  covenant,  thrown  down  thine  altars,  and  slain  thy  prophets  with 
the  sword;  and  I,  even  I  only,  am  left and  they  seek  my  life, 
to  take  it  away. 

I  hear  not  a  direct  answer  from  the  prophet,  to  the  demand  of 
God :  then  he  had  said,  "  I  run  away  from  the  threats  of  Jezebel ; 
and  here  I  hide  my  head  from  her  riialiuiuns  pursuit."    His  guiiti- 


494  CONTEMPLATIONS^ 

ness  would  not  let  him  speak  out  all.  He  would  rather  say,  /  have 
been  jealous  for  the  Lord  God  of  Hosts,  than,  "  I  was  fearful  of 
Jezebel."  We  are  all  willing,  to  make  the  best  of  our  own  case. 
But  what  he  wants  of  his  own  accusation,  he  spends  upon  the 
complaint  of  Israel.  Neither  doth  he  more  bemoan  himself,  than 
exclaim  against  them,  as  apostates  from  God's  covenant,  violaters 
of  his  altars,  murderers  of  his  prophets.  It  must  needs  be  a  despe- 
rate condition  of  Israel,  that  drives  Elijah  to  indict  them  before 
the  throne  of  God.  That  tongue  of  his  was  used  to  plead  for 
them,  to  sue  for  their  pardon ;  it  could  not  be  but  a  forcible  wick- 
edness, that  makes  it  their  accuser. 

Those  idolatrous  Israelites  were  well  forward  to  reformation.  The 
fire  and  rain  from  heaven,  at  the  prayers  of  Elijah,  had  won  them 
to  a  scorn  of  Baal :  only  the  violence  of  Jezebel  turned  the  stream  ; 
and  now,  they  are  resettled  in  impiety,  and  persecute  him  for  an 
enemy,  whom  they  almost  adored  for  a  benefactor ;  otherwise, 
Elijah  had  not  complained  of  what  they  had  been.  Who  would 
think  it  ?  Jezebel  can  do  more  than  Elijah  !  No  miracle  is  so  pre- 
valent with  the  vulgar,  as  the  sway  of  authority,  whether  to  good 
or  evil. 

Thou  art  deceived,  O  Elijah.  Thou  art  not  left  alone  ;  neither 
is  all  Israel  tainted.  God  hath  children  and  prophets  in  Israel, 
though  thou  see  them  not.  Those  clear  eyes  of  the  seer  discern 
not  the  secret  story  of  God.  They  looked  not  into  Obadiah's 
caves ;  they  looked  not  into  the  closets  of  the  religious  Israelites. 
He,  that  sees  the  heart,  can  say,  /  have  left  me  seven  thousand  in 
Israel,  all  the  knees  which  have  not  bowed  to  Baal,  and  every  moutJi 
which  hath  not  kissed  him.  According  to  the  fashion  of  the  weal- 
thy, God  pleaseth  himself  in  hidden  treasures.  It  is  enough,  that 
his  own  eyes  behold  his  riches.  Never  did  he,  never  will  he  leave 
himself  unfurnished  with  holy  clients,  in  the  midst  of  the  foulest 
depravations  of  his  Church.  The  sight  of  his  faithful  ones  hath 
sometimes  been  lost ;  never  the  being.  Do  your  worst,  O  ye  gates 
of  hell,  God  will  have  his  own.  He,  that  could  have  more,  will 
have  some.  That  foundation  is  sure,  God  knoweth  who  are  his. 

It  was  a  true  cordial  for  Elijah's  solitariness,  that  he  had  seven 
thousand  invisible  abettors  ;  neither  is  it  a  small  comfort  to  our 
weakness,  to  have  companions  in  good. 

Eor  the  wickedness  of  Israel,  God  hath  another  receipt;  the  oil 
of  royal  and  prophetical  unction.  Elijah  must  anoint  Hazael  king 
of  Syria,  Jehu  king  of  Israel,  Elisha  for  his  successor.  All  these 
shall  revenge  the  quarrels  of  God  and  him:  one  shall  begin,  the 
other  shall  prosecute,  the  third  shall  perfect,  the  vengeance  upon 
Israel. 

A  prophet  shall  avenge  the  wrongs  done  to  a  prophet.  Elisha  is 
found,  not  in  his  study,  but  in  the  field  ;  not  with  a  book  in  his 
hand,  but  a  plough.  His  father  Shaphat  was  a  rich  farmer,  in 
Abel-Meholah :  himself  was  a  good  husband  ;  not  trained  in  the 
schools  of  the  prophets,  but  in  the  thrifty  trade  of  tillage:  and 
behold,  tliis  was  the  man,  whom  God  will  pick  out  of  all  Israel,  for 


ELIJAH  RUNNING  BEFORE  AHAB,  FLYING  FROM  JEZEBEL.  495 

a  prophet.  God  seeth  not  as  man  scctli ;  neither  doth  he  choose 
men  before  they  are  tit,  but  therefore  he  fits  them,  because  he 
hath  chosen  them  :  his  call  is  above  all  earthly  institution. 

I  hear  not  of  ought  that  Elijah  said :  only  he  cast;  his  cloke 
upon  Elisha,  in  the  passage.  That  mantle,  that  act  was  vocal. 
Together  with  this  sign,  God's  instinct  teacheth  this  amazed  son 
of  Shaphat,  that  he  was  designed  to  a  higher  work,  to  break  up 
the  fallow  grounds  of  Israel,  by  his  prophetical  function.  He  finds 
a  strange  virtue  in  that  robe ;  and,  as  if  his  heart  were  changed 
with  that  habit,  forgets  his  team,  and  runs  after  Elijah  ;  and  sues 
for  the  leave  of  a  farewell  to  his  parents,  ere  he  had  any  but  a 
dumb  command  to  follow.  The  secret  call  of  God  offers  an  inward 
force  to  the  heart,  and  insensibly  draws  us  beyond  the  power  of 
our  resistance.  Grace  is  no  enemy  to  good -nature.  Well  may  the 
respects  to  our  earthly  parents,  stand  with  our  duties  to  our  Father 
in  Heaven. 

I  do  not  see  Elisha  wring  his  hands  and  deplore  his  condition,  that 
he  shall  leave  the  world  and  follow  a  prophet,  but,  for  the  joy  of 
that  change,  he  makes  a  feast.  Those  oxen,  those  utensils  of  hus- 
bandry, whereon  his  former  labours  had  been  bestowed,  shall  now 
be  gladly  devoted  to  the  celebration  of  that  happy  day,  wherein  he 
is  honoured  with  so  blessed  an  employment.  If  with  desire,  if  with 
cheerfulness,  we  do  not  enter  into  the  works  of  our  heavenly 
Master,  the}'  are  not  like  to  prosper  in  our  hands.  He  is  not  wor- 
thy of  this  spiritual  station,  who  holds  not  the  service  of  God  his 
iighest,  his  richest  preferment.  1  Kings  xviii,  xix. 


£VX>  OF  THE  FIRST  VOLUMF. 


C.  WHrrrtNGHAM,  Prater,  nean3tre<rt. 


Princeton  Theological  Seminary  Libraries 


1   1012  01187  3652